This is a modern-English version of The collected works of William Hazlitt, Vol. 01 (of 12), originally written by Hazlitt, William.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
Transcriber's Note:
Transcription Note:
The cover image was created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.
The cover image was made by the transcriber and is in the public domain.

William Hazlitt.
Aged 13.
from a Miniature on Ivory
Painted by his Brother.
William Hazlitt.
At age 13.
from a Miniature on Ivory
Painted by his Brother.
THE COMPLETE WORKS OF
WILLIAM HAZLITT
CONTENTS
PAGE | |
---|---|
INTRODUCTION BY WILLIAM ERNEST HENLEY | vii |
EDITORS’ PREFACE | xxvii |
THE ROUND TABLE | xxix |
CHARACTERS OF SHAKESPEAR’S PLAYS, | 165 |
A LETTER TO WILLIAM GIFFORD, ESQ., | 363 |
NOTES | 415 |
INTRODUCTION
Hazlitt’s father, a minister in the Unitarian Church, was the son of an Antrim dissenter, who had removed to Tipperary; Hazlitt’s mother was the daughter of a Cambridgeshire yeoman; so that there is small room for wonder if Hazlitt were all his life distinguished by a fine pugnaciousness of mind, a fiery courage, an excellent doggedness of temper, and (not to crack the wind of the poor metaphor) a brilliancy in the use of his hands unequalled in his time, and since his time, by any writing Englishman. Of course, he was very much else; or this monument to his genius would scarce be building, this draft to his credit would have been drawn for To-Morrow on To-Day. But, while he lived, his fighting talent was the sole thing in his various and splendid gift that was evident to the powers that were; and, inasmuch as he loved nothing so dearly as asserting himself to the disadvantage of certain superstitions which the said powers esteemed the very stuff of life, they did their utmost to dissemble his uncommon merits, and to present him to the world at large as a person whose morals were deplorable, whose nose was pimpled, whose mind was lewd, whose character would no more bear inspection than his English, whose heart and soul and taste were irremediable, and who, as he persisted in regarding ‘the Corsican fiend’ as a culmination of human genius and character, must for that reason especially—(but there were many others)—be execrated as a public enemy, and stuck in the pillory whenever, in the black malice of his corrupt and poisonous heart, he sought, by feigning an affection for Shakespeare, or an interest in metaphysics, to recommend his vulgar, mean, pernicious personality to the attention of a loyal, God-fearing, church-going, tax-paying, Pope-and-Pretender-hating British Public. I cannot say that I regret the very scandalous attacks that were made on Hazlitt: since, if they had not been, we viiishould have lacked some admirable pages in the Political Essays and The Spirit of the Age, nor should we now be privileged to rejoice in the dignified and splendid savagery of the Letter to William Gifford. And, if I do not regret them for myself and the many who think with me, still less can I wish them wanting for Hazlitt’s sake; for if they had been, who shall say how dull and how profitless, how weary and flat and stale, some years of what he described, in his last words to his kind, as ‘a happy life’—how mean and beggarly may not some days in these years have seemed? But there is, after all, a reason for being rather sorry than not that Hazlitt’s polemic was so brilliant, his young conviction so unalterably constant, his example so detestable as it seemed to the magnificent ruffian in Blackwood and the infinitely spiteful underling in The Quarterly. The British Public of those days was a good, hard-hitting, hard-drinking, hard-living lot; and, in the matter of letters, there was no guile in it. It read its Campbell, its Rogers, its Moore, its Hook and Egan and Jon Bee; it accepted its convinced and pedantic sycophant in Southey, its gay, light-hearted protestant in Leigh Hunt; it nibbled at its Wordsworth, knew not what to make of its Coleridge, swallowed its Cobbett (that prince of pugilists) as its morning rasher and toast; it made much of Hone, yet was far from contemptuous of Westmacott; it laid itself open to its Scott and its Byron, Michael and Satan, the Angel of Acceptance and the Angel of Revolt. Withal it was essentially a Tory Public: a public long practised in fearing God and honouring the King; with half an ear for Major Cartwright and his like, and a whole mind for the story of Randal and Cribb; honestly and jovially proud of Nelson and ‘The Duke,’ but neither loving the Emperor nor seeking to understand him. Now, to Hazlitt the Revolution was humanity in excelsis, while the Emperor, being democracy incarnate, and so a complete expression of character and human genius, was as his god. Gifford, then, and Wilson, had small difficulty in blasting Hazlitt’s fame, and in so far ruining Hazlitt’s chance that ’tis but now, after some seventy years, that he takes his place in literary history as the hero of a Complete Edition. In the meanwhile he has had praise, and praise again. But it has come ever from the few, and he has yet to be considered of the general as a critic of many elements in human activity, a ixmaster of his mother-tongue, and one, and that one not the least, in an epoch illustrious in the achievement of Keats and Shelley and Wordsworth, the inimitable Cobbett, Byron and Sir Walter, Coleridge, the Arch-Potency (who, ‘prone on the flood’ of failure, ever ‘lies floating many a rood’), and the thrice-beloved Lamb.
Hazlitt's father was a minister in the Unitarian Church and the son of a dissenter from Antrim who had moved to Tipperary. Hazlitt's mother was the daughter of a yeoman from Cambridgeshire. It’s no surprise that Hazlitt was known throughout his life for his combative intellect, fiery courage, stubborn temperament, and unmatched brilliance in writing during his time, something that hasn't been surpassed by any English writer since. Of course, he had many other qualities; otherwise, this tribute to his genius wouldn’t be necessary, and this acknowledgment wouldn’t be drafted for Tomorrow on Today. However, while he lived, his fighting spirit was the only trait evident to those in power. Since he loved nothing more than challenging some of the superstitions these powers considered essential to life, they tried hard to downplay his extraordinary talents and depict him to the world as someone with deplorable morals, a pimply nose, a vulgar mind, a character that couldn’t withstand scrutiny, questionable heart and soul, and irredeemable taste. Because he viewed ‘the Corsican fiend’ as the pinnacle of human genius and character, they especially sought to vilify him as a public enemy and tried to humiliate him whenever, in the spitefulness of his corrupt and toxic heart, he feigned admiration for Shakespeare or interest in metaphysics to gain the attention of a loyal, God-fearing, church-going, tax-paying, Pope-and-Pretender-hating British Public. I can't say I regret the scandalous attacks on Hazlitt; if they hadn’t happened, we would have missed out on some brilliant pages in the Political Essays and The Spirit of the Age, nor would we currently enjoy the noble and magnificent ferocity of the Letter to William Gifford. And while I don’t wish them away for myself or those who agree with me, I certainly don’t wish them gone for Hazlitt’s sake; if they hadn’t occurred, who knows how dull and unproductive, how tiresome and lifeless, some years of what he described as ‘a happy life’ might have seemed? But ultimately, there’s reason to feel more sorry than not that Hazlitt's arguments were so brilliant, his youthful beliefs so unwavering, and his example so detestable to those in Blackwood and The Quarterly. The British Public of that era was a tough, hard-drinking, hard-living crowd, and when it came to literature, it was straightforward. It read its Campbell, Rogers, Moore, Hook, and Egan, and it welcomed its loyal and pedantic sycophant Southey, as well as its cheerful protestant Leigh Hunt; it dabbled with Wordsworth, was confused by Coleridge, and consumed Cobbett (that champion of fighters) like a morning rasher and toast. It appreciated Hone but didn’t look down on Westmacott; it opened itself to Scott and Byron, Michael and Satan, the Angel of Acceptance and the Angel of Revolt. Yet, it was essentially a Tory Public: a group well-practiced in fearing God and honoring the King; half-listening to Major Cartwright and his companions, while fully engaged with stories of Randal and Cribb; proudly and joyfully celebrating Nelson and ‘The Duke,’ but neither loving nor trying to understand the Emperor. For Hazlitt, the Revolution represented humanity in the highest, while the Emperor, being democracy personified, embodied the full expression of character and human genius for him. So, Gifford and Wilson had little trouble tarnishing Hazlitt's reputation and, in many ways, ruining his chances; it is only now, after about seventy years, that he has begun to take his rightful place in literary history as the subject of a Complete Edition. In the meantime, he has received praise time and again, but it has primarily come from a select few. He has yet to be recognized by the broader public as a critic of various aspects of human activity, a master of the English language, and one of the significant figures in an era renowned for the works of Keats, Shelley, Wordsworth, the incomparable Cobbett, Byron, Sir Walter, Coleridge, the Arch-Potency (who, ‘prone on the flood’ of failure, ever ‘lies floating many a rood’), and the dearly-loved Lamb.
I
The elder Hazlitt was trained in Glasgow. A man of spirit and understanding, an active and a vigilant minister, he married Grace Loftus, the Wisbech yeoman’s daughter, in 1766; and in 1778 (he being much older than she), the last of their children, their son William, was born to them at Maidstone. Five years later this son accompanied his parents to Philadelphia. There the elder Hazlitt preached and lectured for some fifteen months; but in 1786–87, having meanwhile established the earliest Unitarian church in America, he returned to England, and settled at Wem, in Shropshire, which was practically Hazlitt’s first taste of native earth. A precocious youngster, well grounded by his father, himself a man of parts and reading,[1] he was responsible as early as 1792 for a New Theory of Criminal and Civil Jurisprudence, and at fifteen he went to the Unitarian College at Hackney, there to study for the ministry. But his mind changed. In the meantime he learned something of literature, something of metaphysics, something of painting, something (I doubt not) of life; the Revolution blazed out, Bonaparte fell falconwise upon Austrian Italy, and approved himself the greatest captain since Marlborough; there was a strong unrest in time and the destiny of man; the ambitions of life were changed, the possibilities and conditions of life transformed. The skies thrilled with the dawn of a new day, and Hazlitt: already, it is fair to conjecture, at grips with that potent and implacable devil of sex which possessed him so vigorously for so many years; already, too, the devout and militant Radical, the fanatic of Bonaparte, he remained till the end: was no longer for the pulpit. And at this moment existence was transfigured xfor him also. In the January of 1798, Coleridge, that embodied Inspiration, visited the elder Hazlitt at Wem, and preached his last (Unitarian) sermon in the chapel there. He was at his best, his freshest, his most copious, his most expressive and persuasive; he had the poet’s eye, the poet’s mouth, the poet’s voice, impulse, authority, style; he had already ‘fed on honey-dew, and drunk the milk of Paradise’; and he carried Hazlitt clean off his legs. To the sombre, personal, scarce lettered but very thoughtful youth this voluble and affecting Apparition was the bearer of a revelation. He listened to Coleridge as to a John Baptist. He dared to talk metaphysics, and was so far rewarded for his valour as to be encouraged to persevere.[2] What was of vastly greater importance, he was asked to Stowey in the spring of the same year: an event from which he dated the true beginnings of his intellectual life.
The elder Hazlitt was educated in Glasgow. He was an energetic and insightful minister who married Grace Loftus, the daughter of a yeoman from Wisbech, in 1766. In 1778, when he was much older than her, their last child, a son named William, was born in Maidstone. Five years later, this son joined his parents in Philadelphia. There, the elder Hazlitt preached and lectured for about fifteen months; however, in 1786-87, after founding the first Unitarian church in America, he returned to England and settled in Wem, Shropshire, which was essentially Hazlitt’s first experience of his homeland. As a precocious young man, well-trained by his father, who was also a well-read individual, he was already responsible for a New Theory of Criminal and Civil Jurisprudence by 1792. At the age of fifteen, he attended the Unitarian College at Hackney to prepare for the ministry. But his interests shifted. During that time, he gained knowledge of literature, metaphysics, art, and undoubtedly, life itself. The Revolution took off, Bonaparte quickly advanced through Austria and proved himself the greatest general since Marlborough. Times were restless, changing the ambitions and conditions of life. The future felt full of new possibilities, and Hazlitt—already grappling with a powerful and relentless obsession with sex that would dominate him for years—became a dedicated and passionate Radical, a supporter of Bonaparte, and he decided against pursuing the pulpit. This was a transformative moment in his life. In January 1798, Coleridge, the personification of Inspiration, visited the elder Hazlitt in Wem and delivered his last (Unitarian) sermon in that chapel. He was at his peak—fresh, articulate, expressive, and persuasive; he had the eyes, voice, energy, authority, and style of a poet. He had already experienced the heights of creativity and knowledge; he completely captivated Hazlitt. To the serious, self-taught, and contemplative young man, this engaging figure represented a profound revelation. He listened to Coleridge as if he were a prophet. He felt bold enough to delve into metaphysics, receiving encouragement for his courage. What was even more significant was that he was invited to Stowey in the spring of the same year, an event he considered the true start of his intellectual journey.
In that centre of enchantment he stayed three weeks. It was a Golden Year. Hazlitt was drunk throughout with what I should like to call Neophytism. Coleridge was magnificent—elusive, archimagian, irresistible; Wordsworth was opinionated but sublime; at intervals, as in Sir Richard Burton’s Thousand Nights and a Night, they ‘repeated the following verses.’ It was a time—O, but it was a time! A time of ecstasy: ‘When proud-pied April was in all his trim,’ and even ‘heavy Saturn’ must have laughed, if only to keep his yoke-fellow, Wordsworth, in company; Wordsworth with his thick airs, and his luminous Belt, and his dull but steady-going group of Moons! A time of gold, I say; yet had it a most strange outcome. In 1798 Coleridge and Wordsworth were Revolutionaries in everything: they looked to France for liberty, for change, for a shining and enduring example. Hazlitt was with them now and here: his also was a revolutionary soul, he also was of a mind with Danton, he also looked to France for leading and light, he also held xithe assault delivered upon France for an assault against Freedom. But Coleridge and Wordsworth changed their minds, and readjusted their points of view; and he did not. They loved not Bonaparte; and he did. And the end of it was that, so far as I know, he never wrote with so ripe and sensual a gust: not even, to my mind, when he was merely annihilating Gifford: as when, long years after Nether-Stowey, he broke in upon the strong, solid hold of Wordsworth’s egotism, and tore to tatters—tatters which he flung upon the wind—the old, greasy prophet’s mantle,[3] which Coleridge had sported to so little purpose for so many years. To Hazlitt, the dissenter born, the deeply brooding, the inflexible—to Hazlitt, I say, these Twin-Stars of the Romantic Movement were common turn-coats; and he dealt with them on occasion as he thought fit. But he never lost his interest in them; and when it comes to a comparison between Wordsworth, the renegade, and Byron, the leader of storming-parties, the captain of forlorn-hopes, then is his idiosyncrasy revealed. He hacks and stabs, he jibes and sneers and denies, till there is no Byron left, and the sole poet of the century is the ‘gentlemanly creature—reads nothing but his own poetry, I believe,’—whose best passages, in a moment of supreme geniality, he once likened, not to their advantage, to those of ‘the classic Akenside.’
In that center of enchantment, he stayed for three weeks. It was a Golden Year. Hazlitt was completely immersed in what I’d like to call a new enthusiasm. Coleridge was magnificent—elusive, cunning, irresistible; Wordsworth was opinionated but sublime; at intervals, like in Sir Richard Burton’s Thousand Nights and a Night, they ‘repeated the following verses.’ It was a time—oh, but what a time! A time of ecstasy: ‘When proud-pied April was in all his trim,’ and even ‘heavy Saturn’ must have laughed, if only to keep his companion, Wordsworth, company; Wordsworth with his thick airs, his luminous presence, and his dull but steady group of Moons! A golden time, I say; yet it had a most strange outcome. In 1798, Coleridge and Wordsworth were revolutionaries in everything: they looked to France for liberty, for change, for a shining and enduring example. Hazlitt was with them now and here: he, too, had a revolutionary spirit, he also shared the mindset of Danton, he too looked to France for guidance and inspiration, he also believed that the attack on France was an attack against Freedom. But Coleridge and Wordsworth changed their minds and adjusted their viewpoints; he did not. They did not admire Bonaparte; he did. And the end result was that, as far as I know, he never wrote with such ripe and passionate gusto: not even, in my opinion, when he was simply destroying Gifford; but when, years after Nether-Stowey, he broke through the strong, solid grasp of Wordsworth’s ego and shredded—shreds which he tossed to the wind—the old, worn-out prophet’s cloak,[3] which Coleridge had worn to so little effect for so many years. To Hazlitt, the born dissenter, the deeply introspective, the unyielding—to Hazlitt, I say, these Twin Stars of the Romantic Movement were just common turncoats; and he dealt with them as he saw fit. But he never lost interest in them; and when comparing Wordsworth, the renegade, and Byron, the leader of rebellious forces, the captain of desperate hopes, his preferences become clear. He hacks and stabs, he jibes and sneers and denies, until there's no Byron left, and the only poet of the century is the ‘gentlemanly person—reads nothing but his own poetry, I believe,’—whose best lines, in a moment of supreme generosity, he once compared, not to their advantage, to those of ‘the classic Akenside.’
II
It was from Nether-Stowey that Hazlitt dated his regard for poetry. But if literature came late to him, as (his father’s office and his own metaphysical inklings aiding) it did, he ever cherished a pure and ardent passion for it, once it had come. Yet he was by no means widely read, and in his last years seldom finished a new book. First and last, indeed, he was a man of few books and fewer authors. Shakespeare, Burke, Cervantes, Rabelais, Milton, the Decameron, the Nouvelle Héloïse and the Confessions, Richardson’s epics of the parlour and Fielding’s epics of the road—these things and their kind he read intensely; and, when it pleased him to speak of them, it was ever in the terms of understanding and regard. Yet it was long ere he had any thought of writing; and it was necessity alone that made him a xiiman of letters. In the beginning, the Pulpit proving impossible, he turned to painting for a career, and, after certain studies, presumably under his elder brother John,[4] and possibly under Northcote, he went to the Paris of the First Consul, and painted there for some four months in a Louvre which the thrift of Bonaparte had stored with the choicest plunder in Italian Art. I know not whether or no he could ever have been a painter. Haydon, who neither loved nor understood him, and was, besides, a man who could greatly dare and ‘toil terribly’—Haydon says that he was at once too lazy and too timid ever to succeed in painting: an art in which, as Haydon showed, and as Millet was presently to say, ‘You must flay yourself alive, and give your skin.’[5] I do not think that Hazlitt was daunted by what may be called the painfulness of painting; for in letters he was soon enough to prove that he had in him to face a world in arms, and to tincture his writings, if need were, with the best blood of his heart. In any case, after divers essays at copying in the Louvre,[6] and certain attempts at portraiture on his return to England,[7] he found that he could not excel; that, in fact, he was neither Titian nor Rembrandt, nor could he even be Sir Joshua. So he painted no more, but went on reading certain painters: very much, I assume, as he went on taking certain authors; because he loved them for themselves, and found emotions—and not only emotions, but sensations[8]—in them.
It was from Nether-Stowey that Hazlitt started his appreciation for poetry. Although literature came to him later in life, thanks to his father's influence and his own philosophical interests, he always had a deep and passionate love for it once he discovered it. However, he wasn't very widely read, and in his later years, he rarely finished a new book. Throughout his life, he was indeed a man of few books and even fewer authors. He intensely read Shakespeare, Burke, Cervantes, Rabelais, Milton, the Decameron, the New Héloïse, the Confessions, Richardson’s domestic epics, and Fielding’s adventures on the road—always discussing them with understanding and appreciation. Yet it took him a long time to consider writing; it was necessity that made him a xiiman of letters. Initially, finding the pulpit impossible, he turned to painting as a career. After some training, presumably under his older brother John,[4] and possibly Northcote, he went to Paris during the First Consul's reign and painted there for about four months in a Louvre filled with Bonaparte’s prized Italian art. I don't know if he could have ever become a painter. Haydon, who neither liked nor understood him, and who was also an ambitious and hard-working man, claimed Hazlitt was both too lazy and too timid to succeed in painting—an art in which, as Haydon pointed out and as Millet would later say, 'You have to flay yourself alive and give your skin.'[5] I don’t believe Hazlitt was discouraged by the challenges of painting; he would soon show through his writing that he was capable of facing a fierce world and pouring the deepest feelings into his work. In any case, after several attempts at copying in the Louvre,[6] and some portrait attempts when he returned to England,[7] he realized he couldn't surpass his abilities; he was neither Titian nor Rembrandt, nor could he even aspire to be Sir Joshua. So, he stopped painting and continued reading about certain painters, much like he continued to read certain authors, because he loved them for their own sake and found emotions—and not just feelings, but sensations[8]—within them.
xiiiHis ideals are Claude, Rembrandt, Raphael, Poussin, Titian; he gives you very gentlemanly and intelligent estimates of Watteau and Velasquez; he has an eye—a right one—for Rubens and Van Dyck; he exults in Jan Steen, has words of worth for Ruysdael and Hobbima, and gives Turner as neat a croc-en-jambe as you could wish to see. But, despite his training and his gift, he is no more in advance of his age than the best of us here and now. To him the Carraccis and Salvator are sommités of a kind; if, so far as I remember, he will have nought to do with Carlo Dolci, he will not do without his Guido; I have read no word of his on Lawrence, no word of his on Constable, none on Morland; on Hogarth he is chiefly literary, on Turner not much more than diabolically ingenious. Wisely or not, he took pictures as he took books: they might be few, but they must be good; and, not only good but, of (as he believed) the best. If they were not, or if they were new, he drew them not to his heart, nor adorned the chambers of his mind with them. Those chambers were filled with good things long since done. To him, then, what were the best things doing? It was his habit to take the good thing on; savour its excellences to their last sucket; meditate it strictly, jealously, privily, longingly; say, if it must be so, a few last words about it—some for the painter, more for the man of letters;[9] and then...? Well, then he accepted the situation. I do not know that he cared much for Keats; I do know that he found Shelley impossible, that he was never an exalted Wordsworthian, and that he hesitated—(ever so little, but he hesitated!)—even at Charles Lamb. Politics and all, in truth, he was a prophet who adored the past, and had but an infidel eye for xivthe promise of the years. He was interested only in the highest achievement; and to be the highest even that must lie behind him. Thus, Fielding was good, and Rubens; Sir Joshua was good, and so were Richardson and Smollett; so, likewise, Shakespeare was good, and Raphael and Titian were good—these with Milton and Rembrandt, and Burke and Rousseau and Boccaccio; and it was well. Well with them, and well—especially well!—with him: they had achieved, and here was he, the perfect lover, to whom their achievement was as an enchanted garden, a Prospero’s Island abounding in romantic and inspiring chances, unending marvels, miracles of vision and solace and pure, perennial delight. And if these, the ‘Thrones, Dominations, Powers,’ had done their work, and were venerable in it, so also in their degrees and sorts had Congreve and Watteau, Sir Thomas Browne and Sir Anthony Van Dyck, Wycherley and Jordaens; so had even Salvator and John Buncle. In dealing with painters, and with purely painters’ pictures, Hazlitt generally strikes a right note.[10] But the man of letters in him is inevitably first; and ’tis not insignificant that some of the ‘crack passages’ in his writings about pictures are rhapsodies about places—Burleigh or Oxford—or pieces of pure literature like that very human and ingenious essay ‘On the Pleasures of Painting,’ which is one of the best good things in Table Talk.
xiiiHis ideals are Claude, Rembrandt, Raphael, Poussin, Titian; he gives you very gentlemanly and intelligent insights into Watteau and Velasquez; he has a keen eye for Rubens and Van Dyck; he admires Jan Steen, speaks highly of Ruysdael and Hobbima, and gives Turner a clever critique. But, despite his training and talent, he is no more ahead of his time than the best of us today. For him, the Carraccis and Salvator are notable figures; as far as I remember, he wants nothing to do with Carlo Dolci, but he can’t do without his Guido; I haven’t seen any of his comments on Lawrence, Constable, or Morland; he is mostly literary about Hogarth and only somewhat clever when it comes to Turner. Whether wisely or not, he approached paintings like he did books: they might be few, but they had to be good; and not just good, but (as he believed) the best. If they weren’t, or if they were new, he wouldn’t hold them close to his heart or fill his mind with them. His mind was filled with great things from the past. So, what were the best things happening then? He tended to take the good things and fully enjoy their excellence; he contemplated them thoroughly, carefully, privately, longingly; and if necessary, he would offer a few final thoughts about it—some for the artist, more for the writer;[9] and then...? Well, then he accepted the situation. I don’t think he cared much for Keats; I do know he found Shelley impossible, that he was never an enthusiastic Wordsworthian, and he hesitated—(just a little, but he hesitated!)—even about Charles Lamb. Politics aside, he was a prophet who loved the past and had a skeptical view of the future. He was only interested in the highest achievements; and to reach the highest, even that had to be in the past. Thus, Fielding was good, and Rubens; Sir Joshua was good, as were Richardson and Smollett; likewise, Shakespeare was good, and Raphael and Titian were good—along with Milton and Rembrandt, Burke and Rousseau, and Boccaccio; and that was great. Great for them, and especially great for him: they had achieved, and here he was, the perfect admirer, for whom their achievements were like an enchanted garden, a Prospero’s Island filled with romantic and inspiring opportunities, endless wonders, miracles of insight and comfort and pure, everlasting joy. And if these, the ‘Thrones, Dominations, Powers,’ had fulfilled their purpose and were esteemed for it, then so had Congreve and Watteau, Sir Thomas Browne and Sir Anthony Van Dyck, Wycherley and Jordaens; even Salvator and John Buncle had. In discussing painters and purely painterly works, Hazlitt usually hits the right note.[10] But the writer in him always comes first; and it’s worth noting that some of the standout passages in his writings about paintings are enthusiastic reflections on places—like Burleigh or Oxford—or pure literary pieces such as that very human and clever essay ‘On the Pleasures of Painting,’ which is one of the best things in Table Talk.
III
So Hazlitt the painter was gathered to his fathers, and in his stead a Hazlitt reigned about whom the world knows little worth the telling: a Hazlitt who abridged philosophers, and made grammars, and compiled anthologies; a married and domesticated Hazlitt; a Hazlitt with a son and heir, and a wife who seems to have cared as little for his works and him as, in the long run, he assuredly cared for her company and her. The lady’s name was Stoddart; she was a brisk, inconsequent, unsexual sort of person—a friend of Mary xvLamb; and, like the only Mrs. Pecksniff, ‘she had a small property.’ It was situate at Winterslow, certain miles from Salisbury, and Hazlitt, who loved the neighbourhood, and clung to it till the end, has so far illustrated the name that, if there could ever be a Hazlitt Cult, the place would instantly become a shrine. It was a cottage, within easy walking distance of Wilton and Stonehenge; and in 1812 the Hazlitts, who were made one in 1808, departed it—it and the well-beloved woods of Norman Court—for 19 York Street, Westminster.[11] Hence it was that he issued to deliver his first course of lectures;[12] and here it was that he entertained those friends he had, made himself a reputation by writing in papers and magazines, drank hard, and cured himself of drinking, and long ere the end came found his wife insufferable. In the beginning he worked in the Reporters’ Gallery, where he made notes (in long hand) for The Morning Chronicle, and learned to take more liquor than was good for him.[13] In this same journal he printed some of his best political work, and broke ground as a critic of acting; and he left it only because he could not help quarrelling with its proprietors.
So Hazlitt the painter passed away, and in his place, another Hazlitt took over, someone the world knows little about: a Hazlitt who summarized philosophers, created grammars, and put together anthologies; a married and settled Hazlitt; a Hazlitt with a son and heir, and a wife who seemed to care as little for his work and him as, in the end, he definitely cared for her company. The woman's name was Stoddart; she was a lively, trivial, and nonsexual type of person—a friend of Mary xvLamb; and, just like the only Mrs. Pecksniff, ‘she had a small property.’ It was located in Winterslow, a few miles from Salisbury, and Hazlitt, who loved the area and held onto it until the end, has made the place so notable that if there were ever a Hazlitt Cult, it would quickly become a shrine. It was a cottage, an easy walk from Wilton and Stonehenge; and in 1812, the Hazlitts, who had married in 1808, left it—and the beloved woods of Norman Court—for 19 York Street, Westminster.[11] Because of this, he went on to deliver his first series of lectures;[12] and it was here that he entertained the friends he had, built his reputation by writing for newspapers and magazines, drank heavily, quit drinking, and long before the end, found his wife unbearable. At first, he worked in the Reporters’ Gallery, where he took notes (by hand) for The Morning Chronicle, and learned to drink more than was good for him.[13] In this same journal, he published some of his best political work and started out as a critic of acting; and he left it only because he couldn't stop arguing with its owners.
Another stand-by of his was The Champion, to his work in which he owed a not unprofitable connexion with The Edinburgh; yet another, The Examiner, to which, with much dramatic criticism, he contributed, at Leigh Hunt’s suggestion, the set of essays reprinted as The Round Table, and in which he may therefore be said to have discovered his avocation, and given the measure of his best quality. xviThen, in 1817, he published his Characters of Shakespeare, which he dedicated to Charles Lamb; in 1818 he reprinted a series of lectures (at the Surrey Institute) on the English poets;[14] in 1819–20 he delivered from the same platform two courses more—on the Comic Writers and the Age of Elizabeth. He wrote for The Liberal, The Yellow Dwarf, The London Magazine—(to which he may very well have introduced the unknown Elia)—Colburn’s New Monthly; he returned to the Chronicle in 1824; in 1825 he published The Spirit of the Age, in 1826 The Plain Speaker, the Boswell Redivivus in 1827; and in this last year he set to work, at Winterslow, on a life of Napoleon. That was the beginning of the end. He had no turn for history, nor none for research; his methods were personal, his results singular and brief; he was as it were an accidental writer, whose true material was in himself. His health broke, and worsened; his publishers went bankrupt; he lost the best part of the £500 which he had hoped to earn by his work; and though, consulting none but anti-English authorities, he lived to complete a book containing much strong thinking and not a few striking passages, it was a thing foredoomed to failure: a matter in which the nation, still hating its tremendous enemy, and still rejoicing in the man and the battle which had brought him to the ground, would not, and could not take an interest. Two volumes were published in 1828 (Sir Walter’s Napoleon appeared in 1827), and two more in 1830; but the work of writing them killed the writer.[15] His digestion, always feeble, was xviiruined; and in the September of 1830 he died. He was largely, I should say, a sacrifice to tea, which he drank, in vast quantities, of extraordinary strength. However this be, his ending was (as he’d have loved to put it) ‘as a Chrissom child’s.’[16]
Another favorite of his was The Champion, which connected him profitably with The Edinburgh; he also contributed to The Examiner, writing a series of essays reprinted as The Round Table at Leigh Hunt’s suggestion, which is where he really found his calling and showcased his best work. xviThen, in 1817, he published his Characters of Shakespeare, dedicated to Charles Lamb; in 1818, he reprinted a set of lectures (at the Surrey Institute) on English poets; [14] in 1819–20, he gave two more lecture series on Comic Writers and the Age of Elizabeth from the same platform. He wrote for The Liberal, The Yellow Dwarf, The London Magazine—(to which he likely introduced the unknown Elia)—Colburn’s New Monthly; he returned to the Chronicle in 1824; in 1825, he published The Spirit of the Age, in 1826 The Plain Speaker, and Boswell Redivivus in 1827; that same year, he began working in Winterslow on a life of Napoleon. That was the start of the end. He had no knack for history or research; his approach was personal, his results unique and brief; he was, in a way, an accidental writer whose true material was himself. His health deteriorated; his publishers went bankrupt; he lost most of the £500 he had hoped to earn from his work; and although he only consulted anti-English sources, he managed to finish a book full of strong ideas and some striking passages, it was doomed to fail: a topic that the nation, still resentful of its powerful enemy and still celebrating the man and the battle that had brought him down, simply wouldn’t and couldn’t care about. Two volumes came out in 1828 (Sir Walter’s Napoleon was published in 1827), and two more in 1830; but the effort of writing them took a toll on the writer.[15] His digestion, which had always been weak, failed; and in September 1830, he passed away. I would say he was largely a victim of tea, which he drank in huge quantities and of extraordinary strength. However it happened, his ending was (as he would have put it) ‘like a Chrissom child’s.’[16]
IV
Thus much, thus all-too little, of his course in print. For his life, despite his many ‘bursts of confidence,’ the admissions of his grandson, and the discoveries of such friends as Patmore, the half of it, I think, has to be told to us. This was not his fault, for he was in no sense secretive: he would no more lie about himself than he would lie about Southey or Gifford. His trick of drinking was, while it lasted, public; he proclaimed with all his lungs his frank and full approval of the fundamentals of the Revolution and his preference of Bonaparte before all the Kings in Europe; he despised Shelley the politician, and rejected Shelley the poet, and he cherished and made the most he could of his resentment against Coleridge and Wordsworth, though his disdain for concealment perilled his friendship with Lamb, and well nigh cost him the far more facile regard of Leigh Hunt; while, as for Byron, he so bitterly resented the ‘noble Lord’s’ pre-eminency that he made no difference, strongly as he contemned the Laureate, between the Laureate’s Vision of Judgment, a piece of English verse immortal by the sheer force of its absurdity, and that other Vision of Judgment, which is one of the great things in English poetry. ’Twas much the same in life. Poor Mrs. Hazlitt, though she was well-read, of no account as an housekeeper, ‘fond of incongruous finery,’ and capable of child-bearing withal, was, one may take for granted, not distinguished as a woman. Now, her husband, thinker as he approved himself, was very much of a male. Who runs may read of his early loves—Miss Railton and the rest; ’tis history—at any rate ’tis history according to Wordsworth[17]—that once, in Lakeland, he so dealt with the local beauty xviiithat he came very near to tasting of the local pond; when Patmore walked home with him to Westminster, after his first lecture in the Surrey Institute, the wayside nymphs flocked to his encounter, and—(so Patmore says)—he knew them all;[18] he has himself recorded the confession that in the matter of mob-caps and black stockings and red elbows—in fact, on the score of your maid-servant—he could flourish a list as long, or thereabouts, as Leporello’s. I know not whether he lied or spoke the truth;[19] but I can scarce believe that he lied. I should rather opine that on this point, as on others, Hazlitt, a gross and extravagant admirer (be it remembered) of J.-J. Rousseau, was, and is, entirely credible. We may take it that his veracity is beyond reproach. But ’tis another matter with his taste; and for that I can say no more than that I have listened to so many confidences:
Thus far, and so little, is his story in print. For his life, despite his many moments of confidence, his grandson's admissions, and the insights of friends like Patmore, I think we only know about half of it. This wasn't his fault, as he wasn't secretive at all; he would never lie about himself any more than he would lie about Southey or Gifford. His drinking habit, while it lasted, was public; he loudly proclaimed his complete approval of the core principles of the Revolution and preferred Bonaparte over all the kings in Europe. He looked down on Shelley the politician and dismissed Shelley the poet, while holding onto and amplifying his resentment towards Coleridge and Wordsworth, although his dislike for concealment almost cost him his friendship with Lamb and nearly jeopardized his more casual rapport with Leigh Hunt. As for Byron, he was so bitter about the "noble Lord's" prominence that he didn't differentiate, despite his strong disdain for the Laureate, between the Laureate’s Vision of Judgment, a piece of English verse immortalized by its sheer absurdity, and that other Vision of Judgment, which is one of the great works in English poetry. Life mirrored this dynamic. Poor Mrs. Hazlitt, though well-read, was not much of a housekeeper, "fond of incongruous finery," and capable of bearing children; she wasn’t particularly distinguished as a woman. Now, her husband, a thinker in his own right, was very much a man. Those who seek can read about his early loves—Miss Railton and the others; it’s history—at least it’s history according to Wordsworth[17]—that once, in Lakeland, he had such interactions with the local beauty that he nearly went for a swim in the local pond; when Patmore walked home with him to Westminster after his first lecture at the Surrey Institute, the local women flocked to see him, and—(as Patmore says)—he knew them all;[18] he recorded the confession that regarding mob-caps, black stockings, and red elbows—in other words, concerning your maid—he could produce a list nearly as long as Leporello’s. I don't know if he lied or told the truth;[19] but I can hardly believe he lied. I would rather guess that in this matter, as with others, Hazlitt, who was a gross and extravagant admirer (let it be noted) of J.-J. Rousseau, was, and still is, entirely credible. We may assume that his truthfulness is beyond reproach. But his taste is another story; for that, all I can say is that I've listened to so many of his confessions:
that I hold it for merely unessential.
that I consider it to be simply unnecessary.
But the man who habitually hugs his housemaid is, whether he boast of it or not, no more superior to consequences than another: especially if he have, as Hazlitt had, an ardent imagination and a teeming waste of sentiment. And so Hazlitt found. About 1819 he ceased from consorting with his wife; and in 1820 he lodged with a tailor, one Walker, in Southampton Buildings, Chancery Lane. Walker, a most respectable man, had daughters, and one of these, a girl well broken-in, it would seem, to the ways of ‘gentlemen’—a girl with a dull eye, a ‘sinuous gait,’ and a habit of sitting on the knees of ‘gentlemen’; a girl, in fine, who is only to be described by an old and sane and homely but unquotable designation—this poor half-harlot took on our Don Juan of the area, and brought him to utter grief. He looked at passion, as embodied in Sarah Walker, until it grew to be the world to him; he went about like a man drunken and dazed, telling the story of his slighted love to anybody xixthat would listen to it;[20] now he raved and was rampant, now was he soul-stricken and heart-broken; he swore he’d marry Walker whether she would or not, and to this end he persuaded his wife to follow him to Edinburgh, and there divorce him—pour cause, as the lady and her legal adviser had every reason to believe;[21] and having achieved a divorce, which was no divorce in law, and been finally refused by the young woman in Southampton Buildings, he set to work assiduously to coin his madness into drachmas, and wrote, always with Jean-Jacques Rousseau in his eye, that Liber Amoris which the unknowing reader will find in our Second Volume. It is a book by no means bad—if you can at all away with it. Indeed, it is unique in English, and the hundred guineas Hazlitt got for it were uncommonly well earned. But to away with it at all—that is the difficulty; and, as it varies with the temperaments of them that read the book, I shall discourse no more of it, but content myself with noting that, in writing the Liber Amoris, Hazlitt wrote off Sarah Walker.[22] He had been in love with a housemaid, but he had been very much more in love with his love; and, having wearied all he knew with descriptions of his feelings, he wrote those feelings down, cleared his system, and became himself again. ’Twas Goethe’s way, I believe—his and many another’s; the world will scarce get disaccustomed to it while there are women and writing men. What distinguishes Hazlitt from a whole wilderness of self-chroniclers is the fulness of his revelation. It is extraordinary; but, even so, Rousseau had shown him the way. And perhaps the simple truth about the Liber is that it is the best Rousseau—the best and the nearest to the Confessions—done since Rousseau died.
But the man who regularly hugs his housemaid is, whether he brags about it or not, no more immune to consequences than anyone else, especially if he has, like Hazlitt, a vivid imagination and an overflowing supply of emotions. And so Hazlitt discovered. Around 1819, he stopped spending time with his wife; by 1820, he was living with a tailor named Walker in Southampton Buildings, Chancery Lane. Walker, a highly respectable man, had daughters, and one of them—a girl who seemed quite accustomed to the ways of “gentlemen”—had a dull gaze, a “sinuous gait,” and a tendency to sit on the laps of “gentlemen.” In short, she was best described by an old, straightforward, and unquotable term—this unfortunate half-courtesan captivated our local Don Juan and led him to utter despair. He viewed passion, as represented by Sarah Walker, as his entire world; he walked around like a drunken, dazed man, sharing his heartache with anyone willing to listen; sometimes he was raving and wild, other times he was deeply sorrowful and heartbroken. He swore he’d marry Walker, regardless of her feelings, convincing his wife to come with him to Edinburgh so she could divorce him—for good reason, as the lady and her legal advisor had every reason to believe; and having managed to secure a divorce that wasn't legally valid, and having been ultimately rejected by the young woman in Southampton Buildings, he set to work diligently, trying to turn his madness into money, and wrote, always keeping Jean-Jacques Rousseau in mind, the Liber Amoris, which the unaware reader will find in our Second Volume. It’s a book that’s by no means bad—if you can tolerate it at all. In fact, it’s unique in English, and the hundred guineas Hazlitt earned for it were exceptionally well deserved. But being able to tolerate it at all—that’s the challenge; and since it depends on the reader's temperament, I won’t discuss it further, but will simply note that, in writing the Book of Love, Hazlitt was able to express his feelings for Sarah Walker. He had been in love with a housemaid, but he was even more in love with his feelings; after exhausting everyone he knew with descriptions of his emotions, he wrote them down, cleared his mind, and returned to himself. It was, I believe, Goethe’s way—his and many others’; the world will hardly stop seeing it while there are women and writers. What sets Hazlitt apart from a vast range of self-chronicles is the depth of his revelation. It’s remarkable; however, Rousseau had shown him the way. And perhaps the simple truth about the Liber is that it is the best Rousseau—the best and closest to the Confessions—produced since Rousseau died.
Sarah Hazlitt married no more; but her husband did. In 1824 xxhe took to wife a certain Mrs. Bridgewater. She was Scots by birth, had lived much abroad, had married and buried a Colonel Bridgewater, was of excellent repute, and had about £300 a year; and with her new husband and his son by Sarah Stoddart—(who had an idea that his mother had been wronged, and seems to have been a most uncomfortable travelling companion)—she toured it awhile in France and Italy. On the return journey the Hazlitts left her in Paris; and when the elder, writing from London, asked her when she purposed to come home to him, she replied that she did not purpose to come home to him: that, in fact, she had done with him, and he would see her no more. So far as I know, he never did; so that, as his grandson says, this second marriage was but ‘an episode.’ Apparently it was the last in his life; for neither Mrs. Hazlitt attended him in his mortal illness, nor was there any woman at his bed’s head when he passed.
Sarah Hazlitt never remarried, but her husband did. In 1824, he married a woman named Mrs. Bridgewater. She was Scottish by birth, had lived abroad extensively, had married and lost Colonel Bridgewater, was well-regarded, and had an income of about £300 a year. With her new husband and his son from Sarah Stoddart—who felt that his mother had been wronged and was reportedly a very difficult travel companion—they toured France and Italy for a while. On the way back, the Hazlitts left her in Paris; and when the elder Hazlitt, writing from London, asked her when she planned to return to him, she responded that she had no intention of coming home to him: in fact, she had moved on, and he wouldn't see her again. As far as I know, he never did; so, as his grandson puts it, this second marriage was just ‘an episode.’ Apparently, it was the last one in his life, as neither Mrs. Hazlitt was with him during his final illness, nor was there any woman by his bedside when he passed away.
V
It is told of him that he was dark-eyed and dark-haired, slim in figure, rather slovenly in his habit; that he valued himself on his effect in evening dress; that his manners were rather ceremonious than easy; that he had a wonderfully eloquent face, with a mouth as expressive as Kean’s, and a frown like the Giaour’s own[23]—that Giaour whom he did not love. He worshipped women, but was awkward and afraid with them; he played a good game of fives, and would walk his forty to fifty miles a day; he would lie a-bed till two in the afternoon, then rise, dally with his breakfast until eight without ever moving from his tea-pot and his chair, and go to a theatre, a bite at the Southampton, and talk till two in the morning.[24] That he excelled in talk is beyond all doubt. Witness after witness is here xxito his wit, his insight, his grip on essentials, his beautiful trick of paradox, his brilliancy in attack, his desperate defence, his varying, far-glancing, inextinguishable capacity for expression. And he was himself—Hazlitt: a man who borrowed nobody’s methods, set no limits to the field of discussion, nor made other men wonder if this were no talk but a lecture. He bore no likeness to that ‘great but useless genius,’ Coleridge: who, beginning well as few begin, lived ever after ‘on the sound of his own voice’; none to Wordsworth, whose most inspiring theme was his own poetry; none to Sheridan, who ‘never oped his mouth but out there flew’ a jest; none to Lamb, who——But no; I cannot imagine Lamb in talk. Hazlitt himself has plucked out only a tag or two of Lamb’s mystery; and I own that, even in the presence of the notes in which he sets down Lamb as Lamb was to his intimates, I am divided in appreciation between the pair. Lamb for the unexpected, the incongruous, the profound, the jest that bred seriousness, the pun that was that and a light upon dark places, a touch of the dread, the all-disclosing Selene, besides; Hazlitt for none of these but for himself; and what that was I have tried to show. Well; Lamb, Coleridge, Sheridan, Hazlitt, Hunt, Wordsworth—all are dead, tall men of their tongues as they were. And dead is Burke, and Fox is dead, and Byron, most quizzical of lords! And of them all there is nothing left but their published work; and of those that have told us most about some of them, ‘in their habit as they lived,’ the best and the strictest-seeing, the most eloquent and the most persuasive, is assuredly Hazlitt. And, being something of an expert in talk,[25] I think that, if I could break the grave and call the great ghosts back to earth for a spell of their mortal fury, I would begin and end with Lamb and Hazlitt: Lamb as he always was;[26] Hazlitt in one of his high and mighty moods, sweeping life, and letters, and the art of painting, and the nature of xxiiman, and the curious case of woman (especially the curious case of woman!) into a rapture of give-and-take, a night-long series of achievements in consummate speech.
It is said that he had dark eyes and dark hair, was slim in build, and rather messy in his habits; that he took pride in how he looked in evening wear; that his manners were more formal than relaxed; that he had a strikingly expressive face, with a mouth as expressive as Kean's and a frown like the Giaour's—a Giaour he didn’t love. He idolized women but felt awkward and scared around them; he played a good game of fives and would walk forty to fifty miles a day; he would stay in bed until two in the afternoon, then get up, linger over his breakfast until eight without ever leaving his teapot and chair, and go to a theater, grab a bite at the Southampton, and talk until two in the morning. That he excelled in conversation is beyond doubt. Witness after witness attests to his wit, insight, command of essentials, his cleverness with paradox, his brilliance in attack, his passionate defense, and his diverse, far-reaching, insatiable ability to express himself. And he was himself—Hazlitt: a man who didn’t borrow anyone’s style, imposed no limits on the subjects of discussion, nor made others feel that they were listening to a lecture instead of engaging in conversation. He had no resemblance to that "great but useless genius," Coleridge: who, starting well as few do, spent the rest of his life "living on the sound of his own voice"; none to Wordsworth, whose most inspiring topic was his own poetry; none to Sheridan, who "never opened his mouth without launching a joke"; none to Lamb, who—but no; I can’t picture Lamb in conversation. Hazlitt himself only captured a bit of Lamb's mystery; and I admit that even when looking at the notes where he depicts Lamb as he was to his close friends, I find myself torn in appreciation between the two. Lamb for the unexpected, the absurd, the profound, the joke that carried weight, the pun that was both clever and illuminating, a hint of the fearsome, the all-revealing Selene, and Hazlitt for none of these but for his own essence; and what that was, I have tried to convey. Well; Lamb, Coleridge, Sheridan, Hazlitt, Hunt, Wordsworth—all are gone, towering figures of their craft as they were. And Burke is dead, and Fox is dead, and Byron, the most eccentric of lords! And of them all, nothing remains but their published works; and of those who have told us the most about some of them, "in their everyday life," the best and most perceptive, the most eloquent and persuasive, is undoubtedly Hazlitt. And, being somewhat of an expert in conversation, I think that if I could break the grave and bring the great spirits back to earth for a spell of their human fervor, I would start and end with Lamb and Hazlitt: Lamb as he always was; Hazlitt in one of his grand and powerful moods, sweeping through life, letters, the art of painting, and the nature of man, and the peculiar case of woman (especially the peculiar case of woman!) into a thrilling exchange, a night-long series of triumphs in masterful speech.
VI
Many men, as Coleridge, have written well, and yet talked better than they wrote. I have named Coleridge, though his talk, prodigious as it was, in the long run ended in ‘Om-m-mject’ and ‘Sum-m-mject,’ and though, some enchanting and undying verses apart, his writing, save when it is merely critical, is nowadays of small account. But, in truth, I have in my mind, rather, two friends, both dead, of whom one, an artist in letters, lived to conquer the English-speaking world, while the second, who should, I think, have been the greater writer, addicted himself to another art, took to letters late in life, and, having the largest and the most liberal utterance I have known, was constrained by the very process of composition so to produce himself that scarce a touch of his delightful, apprehensive, all-expressing spirit appeared upon his page. I take these two cases because both are excessive. In the one you had both speech and writing; in the other you found a rarer brain, a more fanciful and daring humour, a richer gusto, perhaps a wider knowledge, in any event a wider charity. And at one point the two met, and that point was talk. Therein each was pre-eminent, each irresistible, each a master after his kind, each endowed with a full measure of those gifts that qualify the talker’s temperament: as voice and eye and laugh, look and gesture, humour and fantasy, audacity and agility of mind, a lively and most impudent invention, a copious vocabulary, a right gift of foolery, a just, inevitable sense of conversational right and wrong. Well; one wrote like an angel, the other like poor Poll; and both so far excelled in talk that I can take it on me to say that they who know them only in print scarce know them at all. ’Twas thus, I imagine, with Hazlitt. He wrote the best he could; but I see many reasons to believe that he was very much more brilliant and convincing at the Southampton than he is in the most convincing and the most brilliant of his Essays. He was a full man; he had all the talker’s gifts; he exulted in all kinds of oral opportunities; what xxiiimore is there to say? Sure ’tis the case of all that are born to talk as well as write. They live their best in talk, and what they write is but a sop for posterity: a last dying speech and confession (as it were) to show that not for nothing were they held rare fellows in their day.
Many men, like Coleridge, have written well but talked even better. I mention Coleridge because, despite his remarkable conversations, they ultimately ended up as “Om-m-mject” and “Sum-m-mject,” and while he produced some enchanting and timeless verses, his writing, aside from his critical work, is not highly regarded today. However, I’m really thinking of two friends of mine, both now gone. One was a master of words who managed to impress the English-speaking world, while the other, I believe, had the potential to be an even greater writer. He got into writing later in life, having initially pursued a different art, and despite having an incredibly expressive and generous nature, his writing was constrained by the process he used, leaving little of his delightful, sensitive, and expressive spirit in his text. I bring up these two friends because they are both exceptional cases. One excelled at both speaking and writing, while the other had a more imaginative and bold mind, richer tastes, and possibly broader knowledge, along with a wider sense of compassion. They intersected at one moment: in conversation. In that realm, each was outstanding and irresistible, masters in their own way, each possessing a full range of qualities that make for a great conversationalist: voice, eye contact, laughter, demeanor, humor, creativity, mental agility, quick wit, a vast vocabulary, a knack for playfulness, and an instinctive grasp of what’s appropriate and inappropriate in conversation. One wrote beautifully, while the other struggled more with his writing. Yet both excelled in conversation to the extent that I’d say anyone who knows them only through their writing doesn’t truly know them at all. I suspect this was also true for Hazlitt. He wrote as best as he could, but I have many reasons to believe he was much more brilliant and persuasive in person than he comes across in even his most engaging essays. He was a vibrant person with all the qualities of a great talker; he reveled in every chance to speak. What more is there to say? It seems to be the case for anyone born to excel in both talk and writing. They shine brightest in conversation, and their written work is merely a token for future generations: a final statement to prove that they were exceptional individuals in their time.
This is not to say that Hazlitt was not an admirable man of letters. His theories were many, for he was a reality among men, and so had many interests, and there was none on which he did not write forcibly, luminously, arrestingly. He had the true sense of his material, and used the English language as a painter his pigments, as a musician the varying and abounding tonalities that constitute a symphonic scheme. His were a beautiful and choice vocabulary, an excellent ear for cadence, a notable gift of expression. In fact, when Stevenson was pleased to declare that ‘we are mighty fine fellows, but we cannot write like William Hazlitt,’ he said no more than the truth. Whether or not we are mighty fine fellows is a Great Perhaps; but that none of us, from Stevenson down, can as writers come near to Hazlitt—this, to me, is merely indubitable. To note that he now and then writes blank verse is to note that he sometimes writes impassioned prose;[27] he misquoted habitually; he was a good hater, and could be monstrous unfair; he was given to thinking twice, and his second thoughts were not always better than his first; he repeated himself as seemed good to him. But in the criticism of politics, the criticism of letters, the criticism of acting, the criticism and expression of life,[28] there is none like him. His politics are not xxivmine; I think he is ridiculously mistaken when he contrasts the Wordsworth of the best things in The Excursion with the ‘classic Akenside’; his Byron is the merest petulance; his Burke (when he is in a bad temper with Burke), his Fox, his Pitt, his Bonaparte—these are impossible. Also, I never talk art or life with him but I disagree. But I go on reading him, all the same; and I find that technically and spiritually I am always the better for the bout. Where outside Boswell is there better talk than in Hazlitt’s Boswell Redivivus—his so-called Conversations with Northcote? And his Age of Elizabeth, and his Comic Writers, and his Spirit of the Age—where else to look for such a feeling for differences, such a sense of literature, such an instant, such a masterful, whole-hearted interest in the marking and distinguishing qualities of writers? And The Plain Speaker—is it not at least as good reading as (say) Virginibus Puerisque and the discoursings of the late imperishable Mr. Pater! His Political Essays is readable after—how many years? His notes on Kean and the Siddons are as novel and convincing as when they were penned. In truth, he is ever a solace and a refreshment. As a critic of letters he lacks the intense, immortalising vision, xxveven as he lacks, in places, the illuminating and inevitable style of Lamb. But if he be less savoury, he is also more solid, and he gives you phrases, conclusions, splendours of insight and expression, high-piled and golden essays in appreciation: as the Wordsworth and the Coleridge of the Political Essays, the character of Hamlet, the note on Shakespeare’s style, the Horne Tooke, the Cervantes, the Rousseau, the Sir Thomas Browne, the Cobbet: that must ever be rated high among the possessions of the English mind.
This isn’t to say that Hazlitt wasn’t an amazing writer. He had plenty of theories because he was a real person with diverse interests, and he wrote powerfully, clearly, and engagingly about all of them. He had a true grasp of his material and used the English language like a painter uses colors or a musician uses different sounds in a symphony. He had a beautiful and carefully chosen vocabulary, a great ear for rhythm, and a remarkable ability to express himself. When Stevenson said, “we’re pretty great, but we can’t write like William Hazlitt,” he was speaking the truth. Whether or not we’re great people is uncertain, but it’s undeniable that none of us, from Stevenson on down, can match Hazlitt as writers. To point out that he sometimes wrote blank verse is to acknowledge that he also occasionally wrote passionate prose; he often misquoted; he could really express hate and could sometimes be outrageously unfair; he tended to think things over, and his second thoughts weren’t always better than the first; he repeated himself whenever he felt like it. But in the critique of politics, literature, acting, and the expression of life, there’s no one like him. I don’t agree with his politics; I think he’s hilariously wrong when he compares the best parts of Wordsworth’s *The Excursion* to the ‘classic Akenside’; his views on Byron are just cranky; his opinions on Burke (especially when he’s in a bad mood), Fox, Pitt, and Bonaparte are absurd. I also always find myself disagreeing with him when discussing art or life. Yet I keep reading him because I always come away feeling technically and spiritually enriched. Where else, outside of Boswell, can you find better conversation than in Hazlitt’s *Boswell Redivivus*—his so-called *Conversations with Northcote*? What about his *Age of Elizabeth*, *Comic Writers*, and *Spirit of the Age*—where else can you find such a keen awareness of differences, such a deep understanding of literature, or such a passionate, genuine interest in the unique qualities of writers? And *The Plain Speaker*—isn’t it at least as engaging as, say, *Virginibus Puerisque* or the writings of the late, unforgettable Mr. Pater? His *Political Essays* are still readable after how many years? His notes on Kean and Siddons are just as fresh and convincing as when he first wrote them. Honestly, he’s always a comfort and a refreshing presence. As a literary critic, he might lack the intense, timeless vision, just like he sometimes misses the enlightening writing style of Lamb. But while he might be less agreeable, he’s also more substantial, offering you phrases, conclusions, brilliant insights, and beautifully crafted essays in appreciation: like the sections on Wordsworth and Coleridge in the *Political Essays*, his analysis of Hamlet, his notes on Shakespeare’s style, his observations on Horne Tooke, Cervantes, Rousseau, and Sir Thomas Browne, and Cobbet: these should always be highly valued as part of the English intellectual heritage.
As a writer, therefore, it is with Lamb that I would bracket him: they are dissimilars, but they go gallantly and naturally together—par nobile fratrum.[29] Give us these two, with some ripe Cobbett, a volume of Southey, some Wordsworth, certain pages of Shelley, a great deal of the Byron who wrote letters, and we get the right prose of the time. The best of it all, perhaps, is the best of Lamb. But Hazlitt’s, for different qualities, is so imminent and shining a second that I hesitate as to the pre-eminency. Probably the race is Lamb’s. But Hazlitt is ever Hazlitt; and at his highest moments Hazlitt is hard to beat, and has not these many years been beaten.
As a writer, I would associate him with Lamb: they’re different, but they fit together perfectly—by noble brothers.[29] Give us these two, along with some mature Cobbett, a volume of Southey, some Wordsworth, certain pages of Shelley, and a lot of the Byron who wrote letters, and we’ll have the true prose of the time. The best of it all, perhaps, is Lamb’s best work. But Hazlitt’s is so evident and outstanding for different reasons that I hesitate about who is superior. The race likely belongs to Lamb. But Hazlitt is always Hazlitt; and at his best, Hazlitt is tough to top, and he hasn’t been overshadowed in many years.
EDITORS’ PREFACE
Two previous editions of Hazlitt’s works have been published: the Templeman edition, edited by the author’s son, and the seven volume edition in Bohn’s Library, edited by the author’s grandson, Mr. W. Carew Hazlitt. Valuable as these editions are from the exceptional advantages enjoyed by the respective editors, neither of them professes to be, or is, complete, and the aim of the present edition is to give for the first time an accurate text of the complete collected writings of Hazlitt with the exception of his Life of Napoleon.
Two earlier editions of Hazlitt’s works have been published: the Templeman edition, edited by the author’s son, and the seven-volume edition in Bohn’s Library, edited by the author’s grandson, Mr. W. Carew Hazlitt. While these editions are valuable because of the unique insights from their respective editors, neither claims to be complete, and the goal of this edition is to provide, for the first time, an accurate text of the complete collected writings of Hazlitt, excluding his Life of Napoleon.
In the case of works published in book form by Hazlitt himself the latest edition published in his lifetime is here reprinted. Some obvious errors of the press have been corrected, but no attempt has been made to modernise or improve Hazlitt’s orthography or punctuation. He himself expressed contempt for ‘the collating of points and commas,’ and was probably a careless proof reader. He did not plume himself, as Boswell did, upon a deliberately adopted orthography, and his punctuation and use of italics were perhaps rather his printers’ fancy than his own. However that may be, the Editors feel that there is no justification for any tampering with his text. Essays not republished by Hazlitt himself are printed from the periodical or other publication in which they first appeared.
In the case of works published in book form by Hazlitt himself, the latest edition released during his lifetime is being reprinted here. Some clear printing errors have been fixed, but there hasn’t been any effort to modernize or improve Hazlitt’s spelling or punctuation. He openly showed disdain for “the collating of points and commas” and was likely a careless proofreader. Unlike Boswell, he didn’t pride himself on a chosen spelling style, and his punctuation and use of italics were probably more influenced by his printers than by him. Regardless, the Editors believe there’s no reason to alter his text. Essays not republished by Hazlitt himself are printed from the periodical or other publication where they first appeared.
It has been found impossible to avoid a good deal of repetition. All readers of Hazlitt know that he repeated not only phrases and sentences, but paragraphs and pages, as, e.g., in the case of the essay on ‘The Character of Pitt’ (see note to p. 125). A few of such cases might have been dealt with by means of cross references, but they are so numerous that the cross references would have become tiresome if only one of the identical or nearly identical passages had been printed.
It has been impossible to avoid a lot of repetition. All readers of Hazlitt know that he repeated not just phrases and sentences, but also paragraphs and pages, as, e.g., in the essay on ‘The Character of Pitt’ (see note to p. 125). A few of these cases could have been handled with cross references, but there are so many that the cross references would have become tedious if only one of the identical or nearly identical passages had been printed.
The notes chiefly contain bibliographical matter, concise biographical details of some of the persons mentioned by Hazlitt, and references xxviiito quotations. They also include several passages which Hazlitt omitted from his essays when he came to republish them in book form. Some of these are in themselves worthy of preservation; some help to explain the ferocity of certain contemporary allusions; and it is at any rate interesting to compare what he rejected with what he retained in moments of reflection.
The notes mainly contain bibliographical information, brief biographical details about some of the people mentioned by Hazlitt, and references to quotations. They also include several passages that Hazlitt left out of his essays when he published them in book form. Some of these are worth keeping; some help clarify the harshness of certain contemporary references; and it’s interesting to compare what he chose to exclude with what he decided to keep in his thoughtful moments. xxviii
One word is necessary here as to the course which has been adopted with Hazlitt’s very numerous and very inaccurate quotations. In many cases his quotations are simply and unintentionally inaccurate, but very often he misquotes (if so it can be called) on purpose. That is to say, in his masterful way he presses quotations into his service, and if they are not exactly serviceable as they stand, he makes them so by changing a word here and there, or by blending two or more quotations together. He sometimes quotes (or misquotes) without using quotation marks, and the Editors would fain believe that he sometimes uses quotation marks to round off some unusually happy phrase of his own. The variations between Hazlitt and his original are given in the notes where it seemed desirable that they should be given, but in no case have his quotations been corrected or altered in the text.
One word is needed here about how Hazlitt has handled his many numerous and inaccurate quotations. In many cases, his quotes are simply and unintentionally wrong, but often he misquotes on purpose. In his skillful way, he uses quotations to serve his purposes, and if they aren’t quite fitting as they are, he makes them work by changing a word here and there, or by mixing two or more quotes together. He sometimes quotes (or misquotes) without using quotation marks, and the Editors would like to believe that he sometimes uses quotation marks to finish off some particularly well-turned phrase of his own. The differences between Hazlitt's text and the originals are noted where it seemed necessary, but in no case have his quotations been corrected or altered in the text.
It has been a pleasure to the Editors to have the sympathy and co-operation of Mr. W. Carew Hazlitt, and they desire to thank him for his valuable assistance. At the same time they accept entire responsibility for the errors and failings which may be found in their work.
It has been a pleasure for the Editors to have the support and collaboration of Mr. W. Carew Hazlitt, and they want to thank him for his valuable help. At the same time, they take full responsibility for any errors and shortcomings that may be found in their work.
THE ROUND TABLE
BIBLIOGRAPHICAL NOTE
The Round Table was published in two 12mo volumes in 1817. The title-page runs as follows: ‘The Round Table: A Collection of Essays on Literature, Men, and Manners, By William Hazlitt. Edinburgh: Printed for Archibald Constable and Co. And Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, and Brown, London, 1817.’ Twelve of the fifty-two numbers were by Leigh Hunt, as the Advertisement explains. The essays consisted for the most part, but not entirely, of papers contributed to The Examiner under the title of ‘The Round Table’ between January 1, 1815, and January 5, 1817. Hazlitt, however, included several essays taken from other columns of The Examiner and from The Morning Chronicle and other sources, and did not include the whole of his contributions to the Round Table series. A ‘third’ edition, edited by the author’s son, was published in one 12mo volume in 1841. In this edition many essays were omitted which had appeared, or were intended to appear, in the series of Hazlitt’s works then being published by Templeman; three essays contributed by Hazlitt to The Liberal in 1822 were added; and Leigh Hunt’s essays were retained. Hazlitt’s essays as published in the two volumes of 1817 were restored, and Leigh Hunt’s essays were for the first time omitted in a later edition (8vo, 1871) edited by the author’s grandson, Mr. W. C. Hazlitt. The present edition is an exact reproduction of Hazlitt’s essays from the edition of 1817, except that a few obvious printer’s errors have been corrected. Of the contributions made by Hazlitt to the Round Table series in The Examiner and not included in the two volumes of 1817 some were used by him in other publications, Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (1817) and Political Essays (1819), some were published in the posthumous Winterslow (1850), and some have not been hitherto republished. The source of each of the following essays is indicated in the Notes. Gifford’s review of The Round Table in The Quarterly Review for April 1817 is dealt with by the author in A Letter to William Gifford, Esq., which is included in this volume.
The Round Table was published in two 12mo volumes in 1817. The title page states: ‘The Round Table: A Collection of Essays on Literature, Men, and Manners, By William Hazlitt. Edinburgh: Printed for Archibald Constable and Co. And Longman, Hurst, Rees, Orme, and Brown, London, 1817.’ Twelve of the fifty-two pieces were written by Leigh Hunt, as noted in the Advertisement. The essays mainly, but not solely, consisted of papers contributed to The Examiner under the title ‘The Round Table’ between January 1, 1815, and January 5, 1817. However, Hazlitt included several essays from other sections of The Examiner and from The Morning Chronicle and other sources, and did not include all of his contributions to the Round Table series. A ‘third’ edition, edited by the author’s son, was published in one 12mo volume in 1841. In this edition, many essays that had appeared or were meant to appear in the series of Hazlitt’s works being published by Templeman were omitted; three essays contributed by Hazlitt to The Liberal in 1822 were added; and Leigh Hunt’s essays were kept. Hazlitt’s essays as published in the two volumes of 1817 were restored, and Leigh Hunt’s essays were omitted for the first time in a later edition (8vo, 1871) edited by the author’s grandson, Mr. W. C. Hazlitt. The current edition is an exact reproduction of Hazlitt’s essays from the 1817 edition, except that a few obvious printing errors have been corrected. Of the contributions made by Hazlitt to the Round Table series in The Examiner that were not included in the two volumes of 1817, some were used by him in other publications, Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (1817) and Political Essays (1819), some were published in the posthumous Winterslow (1850), and some have not been republished until now. The source of each of the following essays is noted in the Notes. Gifford’s review of The Round Table in The Quarterly Review for April 1817 is addressed by the author in A Letter to William Gifford, Esq., which is included in this volume.
ADVERTISEMENT TO THE EDITION OF 1817
The following work falls somewhat short of its title and original intention. It was proposed by my friend, Mr. Hunt, to publish a series of papers in the Examiner, in the manner of the early periodical Essayists, the Spectator and Tatler. These papers were to be contributed by various persons on a variety of subjects; and Mr. Hunt, as the Editor, was to take the characteristic or dramatic part of the work upon himself. I undertook to furnish occasional Essays and Criticisms; one or two other friends promised their assistance; but the essence of the work was to be miscellaneous. The next thing was to fix upon a title for it. After much doubtful consultation, that of The Round Table was agreed upon as most descriptive of its nature and design. But our plan had been no sooner arranged and entered upon, than Buonaparte landed at Frejus, et voila la Table Ronde dissoute. Our little congress was broken up as well as the great one; Politics called off the attention of the Editor from the Belles Lettres; and the task of continuing the work fell chiefly upon the person who was least able to give life and spirit to the original design. A want of variety in the subjects and mode of treating them, is, perhaps, the least disadvantage resulting from this circumstance. All the papers, in the two volumes here offered to the public, were written by myself and Mr. Hunt, except a letter communicated by a friend in the seventeenth number. Out of the fifty-two numbers, twelve are Mr. Hunt’s, with the signatures L. H. or H. T. For all the rest I am answerable.
The following work doesn’t completely meet its title and original intention. My friend, Mr. Hunt, proposed that we publish a series of articles in the Examiner, similar to the early periodicals like the Spectator and Tatler. These articles were to be contributed by various individuals on different topics, with Mr. Hunt taking on the editorial role and the dramatic aspect of the work. I agreed to provide occasional Essays and Critiques; a couple of other friends offered their help; however, the main idea was to keep it diverse. Next, we needed to settle on a title. After much discussion, we chose The Round Table, which seemed to reflect its nature and purpose best. But just as our plan was set and underway, Buonaparte landed at Frejus, And there you have it, the Round Table is dissolved. . Our small gathering was disrupted, just like the larger one; politics diverted the Editor’s focus away from the Creative Writing; and the responsibility of continuing the project mostly fell to the one least capable of bringing life and energy to the original idea. A lack of variety in topics and how they were treated is perhaps the least of the drawbacks from this situation. All the papers in the two volumes presented here were written by me and Mr. Hunt, except for one letter shared by a friend in the seventeenth issue. Out of the fifty-two pieces, twelve are by Mr. Hunt, signed as L. H. or H. T. I am responsible for all the others.
CONTENTS
PAGE | |
---|---|
On the Love of Life | 1 |
On Classical Education | 4 |
On the Tatler | 7 |
On Modern Comedy | 10 |
On Mr. Kean’s Iago | 14 |
On the Love of the Country | 17 |
On Posthumous Fame.—Whether Shakspeare was influenced by a Love of it? | 21 |
On Hogarth’s Marriage a-la-mode | 25 |
The Subject continued | 28 |
On Milton’s Lycidas | 31 |
On Milton’s Versification | 36 |
On Manner | 41 |
On the Tendency of Sects | 47 |
On John Buncle | 51 |
On the Causes of Methodism | 57 |
On the Midsummer Night’s Dream | 61 |
On the Beggar’s Opera | 65 |
On Patriotism—A Fragment | 67 |
On Beauty | 68 |
On Imitation | 72 |
On Enthusiasm | 77 |
On Pedantry | 80 |
The same Subject continued | 84 |
On the Character of Rousseau | 88 |
On Different Sorts of Fame | 93 |
Character of John Bull | 97 |
On Good-Nature | 100 |
xxxivOn the Character of Milton’s Eve | 105 |
Observations on Mr. Wordsworth’s Poem The Excursion | 111 |
The same Subject continued | 120 |
Character of the late Mr. Pitt | 125 |
On Religious Hypocrisy | 128 |
On the Literary Character | 131 |
On Common-place Critics | 136 |
On the Catalog Raisonné of the British Institution | 140 |
The same Subject continued | 146 |
On Poetical Versatility | 151 |
On Actors and Acting | 153 |
On the Same | 156 |
Why the Arts are not Progressive: A Fragment | 160 |
No. 1.] ON THE LOVE OF LIFE [Jan. 15, 1815.
It is our intention, in the course of these papers, occasionally to expose certain vulgar errors, which have crept into our reasonings on men and manners. Perhaps one of the most interesting of these, is that which relates to the source of our general attachment to life. We are not going to enter into the question, whether life is, on the whole, to be regarded as a blessing, though we are by no means inclined to adopt the opinion of that sage, who thought ‘that the best thing that could have happened to a man was never to have been born, and the next best to have died the moment after he came into existence.’ The common argument, however, which is made use of to prove the value of life, from the strong desire which almost every one feels for its continuance, appears to be altogether inconclusive. The wise and the foolish, the weak and the strong, the lame and the blind, the prisoner and the free, the prosperous and the wretched, the beggar and the king, the rich and the poor, the young and the old, from the little child who tries to leap over his own shadow, to the old man who stumbles blindfold on his grave, all feel this desire in common. Our notions with respect to the importance of life, and our attachment to it, depend on a principle, which has very little to do with its happiness or its misery.
It’s our goal, in these papers, to occasionally point out certain common misconceptions that have sneaked into our understanding of people and their behaviors. One of the most intriguing of these is about the source of our overall attachment to life. We're not going to debate whether life is, on balance, a blessing, although we definitely don’t agree with the wise person who believed that the best thing for a person would have been never to be born, and the second best would have been to die just moments after being born. The usual argument made to prove the value of life, based on the strong desire almost everyone has for its continuation, doesn’t hold up. The wise and the foolish, the weak and the strong, the lame and the blind, the prisoner and the free, the successful and the miserable, the beggar and the king, the rich and the poor, the young and the old—everyone feels this desire. From the little child trying to jump over his own shadow to the old man stumbling blindfolded toward his grave, all share this longing. Our ideas about the significance of life and our connection to it stem from a principle that has very little to do with happiness or suffering.
The love of life is, in general, the effect not of our enjoyments, but of our passions. We are not attached to it so much for its own sake, or as it is connected with happiness, as because it is necessary to action. Without life there can be no action—no objects of pursuit—no restless desires—no tormenting passions. Hence it is that we fondly cling to it—that we dread its termination as the close, not of enjoyment, but of hope. The proof that our attachment to life is not absolutely owing to the immediate satisfaction we find in it, is, that those persons are commonly found most loth to part with it who have the least enjoyment of it, and who have the greatest difficulties to struggle with, as losing gamesters are the most desperate. And farther, there are not many persons who, with all their pretended love 2of life, would not, if it had been in their power, have melted down the longest life to a few hours. ‘The school-boy,’ says Addison, ‘counts the time till the return of the holidays; the minor longs to be of age; the lover is impatient till he is married.’—‘Hope and fantastic expectations spend much of our lives; and while with passion we look for a coronation, or the death of an enemy, or a day of joy, passing from fancy to possession without any intermediate notices, we throw away a precious year’ (Jeremy Taylor). We would willingly, and without remorse, sacrifice not only the present moment, but all the interval (no matter how long) that separates us from any favourite object. We chiefly look upon life, then, as the means to an end. Its common enjoyments and its daily evils are alike disregarded for any idle purpose we have in view. It should seem as if there were a few green sunny spots in the desert of life, to which we are always hastening forward: we eye them wistfully in the distance, and care not what perils or suffering we endure, so that we arrive at them at last. However weary we may be of the same stale round—however sick of the past—however hopeless of the future—the mind still revolts at the thought of death, because the fancied possibility of good, which always remains with life, gathers strength as it is about to be torn from us for ever, and the dullest scene looks bright compared with the darkness of the grave. Our reluctance to part with existence evidently does not depend on the calm and even current of our lives, but on the force and impulse of the passions. Hence that indifference to death which has been sometimes remarked in people who lead a solitary and peaceful life in remote and barren districts. The pulse of life in them does not beat strong enough to occasion any violent revulsion of the frame when it ceases. He who treads the green mountain turf, or he who sleeps beneath it, enjoys an almost equal quiet. The death of those persons has always been accounted happy, who had attained their utmost wishes, who had nothing left to regret or to desire. Our repugnance to death increases in proportion to our consciousness of having lived in vain—to the violence of our efforts, and the keenness of our disappointments—and to our earnest desire to find in the future, if possible, a rich amends for the past. We may be said to nurse our existence with the greatest tenderness, according to the pain it has cost us; and feel at every step of our varying progress the truth of that line of the poet—
The love of life generally comes not from our pleasures but from our passions. We cling to it not necessarily for its own sake or because it brings happiness, but because it's essential for action. Without life, there's no action—no goals to chase—no restless desires—no painful passions. That's why we hold onto it dearly and fear its end, not as a loss of enjoyment, but as a loss of hope. The fact that our attachment to life isn't solely based on immediate satisfaction is shown by the people who are usually most reluctant to give it up, even though they enjoy it the least and face the toughest struggles; like losing gamblers, they become the most desperate. Moreover, many people, despite claiming to love life, would gladly trade a long life for just a few hours if they could. ‘The schoolboy,’ Addison says, ‘counts down the days until holiday; the minor wishes to be an adult; the lover can’t wait to get married.’—‘Hope and fanciful expectations take up much of our lives; while passionately anticipating a crowning moment, the downfall of an enemy, or a day of joy, we transition from dreams to reality without pausing, squandering a precious year’ (Jeremy Taylor). We would willingly sacrifice not just the present moment, but any time separating us from our favorite goal, no matter how long. Therefore, we primarily see life as a means to an end. We ignore its usual pleasures and daily struggles for any aim we have in mind. It seems like there are a few sunny spots in the desert of life that we are always rushing towards: we long for them from afar and don’t mind the dangers or suffering we endure as long as we reach them. Regardless of how tired we are of the same old routine—how sick we are of the past—how hopeless we feel about the future—the thought of death still fills us with resistance, because the imagined possibility of good that life offers grows stronger just as it's about to be taken away from us forever, and even the dullest moments shine bright compared to the darkness of the grave. Our reluctance to separate from life clearly doesn’t rely on the calm and steady flow of our lives, but rather on the intensity and drive of our passions. This explains the indifference to death sometimes seen in people living solitary and peaceful lives in remote areas. Their life doesn’t pulse strongly enough to provoke a drastic reaction when it ends. Someone walking on green mountain grass or lying beneath it experiences almost the same tranquility. The deaths of those who have achieved their greatest wishes, who have nothing left to regret or desire, have always been considered fortunate. Our aversion to death grows with our awareness of having lived without purpose—due to the severity of our struggles and the intensity of our disappointments—and our strong desire to discover in the future, if possible, a substantial compensation for the past. We might be said to nurture our existence with the utmost care, depending on the pain it has brought us; and we feel at every step of our changing journey the truth of that line from the poet—
The love of life is in fact the sum of all our passions and of all our enjoyments; but these are by no means the same thing, for the 3vehemence of our passions is irritated, not less by disappointment than by the prospect of success. Nothing seems to be a match for this general tenaciousness of existence, but such an extremity either of bodily or mental suffering as destroys at once the power both of habit and imagination. In short, the question, whether life is accompanied with a greater quantity of pleasure or pain, may be fairly set aside as frivolous, and of no practical utility; for our attachment to life depends on our interest in it; and it cannot be denied that we have more interest in this moving, busy scene, agitated with a thousand hopes and fears, and checkered with every diversity of joy and sorrow, than in a dreary blank. To be something is better than to be nothing, because we can feel no interest in nothing. Passion, imagination, self-will, the sense of power, the very consciousness of our existence, bind us to life, and hold us fast in its chains, as by a magic spell, in spite of every other consideration. Nothing can be more philosophical than the reasoning which Milton puts into the mouth of the fallen angel:—
The love of life is really just the combination of all our passions and all our joys; but these are not the same thing, since the intensity of our passions can be affected just as much by disappointment as by the possibility of success. Nothing seems to rival this overall stubbornness of existence, except for extreme physical or mental pain that completely wipes out both our habits and imagination. In short, the debate over whether life has more pleasure or pain can be set aside as pointless and impractical; our attachment to life is based on our interest in it. It's undeniable that we care more about this active, bustling world filled with countless hopes and fears, and mixed with every kind of joy and sorrow, than we do about a lifeless void. Being something is better than being nothing, because we can't have any interest in nothing. Passion, imagination, self-determination, the sense of power, and even the awareness of our own existence tie us to life, keeping us bound in its grasp as if by a magic spell, despite any other concerns. Nothing is more philosophical than the reasoning Milton attributes to the fallen angel:—
Nearly the same account may be given in answer to the question which has been asked, Why so few tyrants kill themselves? In the first place, they are never satisfied with the mischief they have done, and cannot quit their hold of power, after all sense of pleasure is fled. Besides, they absurdly argue from the means of happiness placed within their reach to the end itself; and, dazzled by the pomp and pageantry of a throne, cannot relinquish the persuasion that they ought to be happier than other men. The prejudice of opinion, which attaches us to life, is in them stronger than in others, and incorrigible to experience. The Great are life’s fools—dupes of the splendid shadows that surround them, and wedded to the very mockeries of opinion.
Almost the same explanation can be given in response to the question, Why do so few tyrants take their own lives? First, they’re never satisfied with the harm they’ve caused and can’t let go of their grip on power, even after all sense of pleasure has disappeared. Additionally, they mistakenly assume that the means to happiness available to them equate to happiness itself; dazzled by the grandeur and spectacle of a throne, they can’t shake the belief that they should be happier than everyone else. Their attachment to life is, in fact, stronger than it is for others, and immune to experience. The powerful are fools in life—caught up in the dazzling illusions around them and trapped by the very deceptions of public opinion.
Whatever is our situation or pursuit in life, the result will be much the same. The strength of the passion seldom corresponds to the pleasure we find in its indulgence. The miser ‘robs himself to increase his store’; the ambitious man toils up a slippery precipice only to be tumbled headlong from its height: the lover is infatuated with the charms of his mistress, exactly in proportion to the mortifications 4he has received from her. Even those who succeed in nothing, who, as it has been emphatically expressed—
Whatever our situation or pursuit in life, the outcome will often be the same. The intensity of our passion rarely matches the joy we get from indulging it. The miser “robs himself to increase his wealth”; the ambitious person struggles up a steep slope only to be thrown down from its height; the lover is captivated by his mistress's charms in direct relation to the pain he feels from her. Even those who achieve nothing, who, as it has been powerfully expressed— 4
are yet as unwilling as others to give over the unprofitable strife: their harassed feverish existence refuses rest, and frets the languor of exhausted hope into the torture of unavailing regret. The exile, who has been unexpectedly restored to his country and to liberty, often finds his courage fail with the accomplishment of all his wishes, and the struggle of life and hope ceases at the same instant.
are still as reluctant as anyone else to end the pointless struggle: their troubled, restless lives refuse to find peace, and the weariness of lost hope turns into the pain of useless regret. The exile, who has suddenly returned to his homeland and freedom, often feels his courage wane right as all his desires are fulfilled, and the fight for life and hope stops at the very moment.
We once more repeat, that we do not, in the foregoing remarks, mean to enter into a comparative estimate of the value of human life, but merely to shew that the strength of our attachment to it is a very fallacious test of its happiness.
We want to clarify again that in the comments above, we do not intend to make a comparison of the value of human life, but simply to show that our deep attachment to it is a misleading measure of its happiness.
No. 2.] ON CLASSICAL EDUCATION [Feb. 12, 1815.
The study of the Classics is less to be regarded as an exercise of the intellect, than as ‘a discipline of humanity.’ The peculiar advantage of this mode of education consists not so much in strengthening the understanding, as in softening and refining the taste. It gives men liberal views; it accustoms the mind to take an interest in things foreign to itself; to love virtue for its own sake; to prefer fame to life, and glory to riches; and to fix our thoughts on the remote and permanent, instead of narrow and fleeting objects. It teaches us to believe that there is something really great and excellent in the world, surviving all the shocks of accident and fluctuations of opinion, and raises us above that low and servile fear, which bows only to present power and upstart authority. Rome and Athens filled a place in the history of mankind, which can never be occupied again. They were two cities set on a hill, which could not be hid; all eyes have seen them, and their light shines like a mighty sea-mark into the abyss of time.
The study of the Classics should be seen less as an intellectual exercise and more as "a discipline of humanity." The unique benefit of this form of education lies not so much in sharpening the mind, but in softening and refining our tastes. It broadens our perspectives; it helps us become interested in things beyond ourselves; to appreciate virtue for its own sake; to value fame over life, and glory over wealth; and to focus our thoughts on what is distant and enduring rather than what is narrow and temporary. It teaches us to believe in something truly great and excellent in the world that survives all the ups and downs of chance and changing opinions, lifting us above that low and submissive fear that only bows to current power and new authority. Rome and Athens occupied a place in human history that can never be filled again. They were two cities set on a hill that cannot be hidden; everyone has seen them, and their light shines like a powerful beacon into the depths of time.
It is this feeling, more than anything else, which produces a marked difference between the study of the ancient and modern languages, and which, from the weight and importance of the consequences attached to the former, stamps every word with a monumental firmness. By conversing with the mighty dead, we imbibe sentiment with knowledge; we become strongly attached to those who can no longer either hurt or serve us, except through the influence which they exert over the mind. We feel the presence of that power which gives immortality to human thoughts and actions, and catch the flame of enthusiasm from all nations and ages.
It’s this feeling, more than anything else, that creates a clear difference between studying ancient and modern languages. The weight and importance of the ancient languages make every word feel incredibly solid. By interacting with the mighty dead, we absorb emotions along with knowledge; we grow deeply connected to those who can no longer hurt or help us, except through the impact they have on our minds. We sense the power that grants immortality to human thoughts and actions and ignite our passion from all cultures and eras.
It is hard to find in minds otherwise formed, either a real love of excellence, or a belief that any excellence exists superior to their own. Everything is brought down to the vulgar level of their own ideas and pursuits. Persons without education certainly do not want either acuteness or strength of mind in what concerns themselves, or in things immediately within their observation; but they have no power of abstraction, no general standard of taste, or scale of opinion. They see their objects always near, and never in the horizon. Hence arises that egotism which has been remarked as the characteristic of self-taught men, and which degenerates into obstinate prejudice or petulant fickleness of opinion, according to the natural sluggishness or activity of their minds. For they either become blindly bigoted to the first opinions they have struck out for themselves, and inaccessible to conviction; or else (the dupes of their own vanity and shrewdness) are everlasting converts to every crude suggestion that presents itself, and the last opinion is always the true one. Each successive discovery flashes upon them with equal light and evidence, and every new fact overturns their whole system. It is among this class of persons, whose ideas never extend beyond the feeling of the moment, that we find partizans, who are very honest men, with a total want of principle, and who unite the most hardened effrontery, and intolerance of opinion, to endless inconsistency and self-contradiction.
It’s tough to find in those with different mindsets, either a genuine love for excellence or a belief that any form of excellence exists beyond their own. Everything gets reduced to the basic level of their own ideas and interests. Uneducated people definitely don’t have either sharpness or strength of mind regarding themselves or things immediately around them; however, they lack the ability to think abstractly, a general sense of taste, or a scale of opinion. They always see their objects up close and never far away. This leads to the self-centeredness that’s often seen as a trait of self-taught individuals, which can turn into stubborn bias or petty changes of opinion, depending on how lazy or active their minds are. They either become blindly devoted to the first opinions they come up with and are closed off to new ideas; or, swayed by their own vanity and cleverness, they quickly jump on every new idea that comes their way, believing that the last opinion they heard is the correct one. Each new discovery hits them with equal impact and clarity, and every new fact can completely change their entire belief system. It’s among this group of people, whose ideas never go beyond the feelings of the moment, that we find supporters who are very honest but lack principles, combining the most brazen confidence and intolerance for differing opinions with endless inconsistency and self-contradiction.
A celebrated political writer of the present day, who is a great enemy to classical education, is a remarkable instance both of what can and what cannot be done without it.
A well-known political writer today, who strongly opposes classical education, is a striking example of both what can and cannot be achieved without it.
It has been attempted of late to set up a distinction between the education of words, and the education of things, and to give the preference in all cases to the latter. But, in the first place, the knowledge of things, or of the realities of life, is not easily to be taught 6except by things themselves, and, even if it were, is not so absolutely indispensable as it has been supposed. ‘The world is too much with us, early and late’; and the fine dream of our youth is best prolonged among the visionary objects of antiquity. We owe many of our most amiable delusions, and some of our superiority, to the grossness of mere physical existence, to the strength of our associations with words. Language, if it throws a veil over our ideas, adds a softness and refinement to them, like that which the atmosphere gives to naked objects. There can be no true elegance without taste in style. In the next place, we mean absolutely to deny the application of the principle of utility to the present question. By an obvious transposition of ideas, some persons have confounded a knowledge of useful things with useful knowledge. Knowledge is only useful in itself, as it exercises or gives pleasure to the mind: the only knowledge that is of use in a practical sense, is professional knowledge. But knowledge, considered as a branch of general education, can be of use only to the mind of the person acquiring it. If the knowledge of language produces pedants, the other kind of knowledge (which is proposed to be substituted for it) can only produce quacks. There is no question, but that the knowledge of astronomy, of chemistry, and of agriculture, is highly useful to the world, and absolutely necessary to be acquired by persons carrying on certain professions: but the practical utility of a knowledge of these subjects ends there. For example, it is of the utmost importance to the navigator to know exactly in what degree of longitude and latitude such a rock lies: but to us, sitting here about our Round Table, it is not of the smallest consequence whatever, whether the map-maker has placed it an inch to the right or to the left; we are in no danger of running against it. So the art of making shoes is a highly useful art, and very proper to be known and practised by some body: that is, by the shoemaker. But to pretend that every one else should be thoroughly acquainted with the whole process of this ingenious handicraft, as one branch of useful knowledge, would be preposterous. It is sometimes asked, What is the use of poetry? and we have heard the argument carried on almost like a parody on Falstaff’s reasoning about Honour. ‘Can it set a leg? No. Or an arm? No. Or take away the grief of a wound? No. Poetry hath no skill in surgery then? No.’ It is likely that the most enthusiastic lover of poetry would so far agree to the truth of this statement, that if he had just broken a leg, he would send for a surgeon, instead of a volume of poems from a library. But, ‘they that are whole need not a physician.’ The reasoning would be well founded, if we lived in an hospital, and not in the world.
Recently, there's been an effort to distinguish between the education of words and the education of things, giving preference to the latter. However, first of all, it's not easy to teach knowledge of things, or the realities of life, except through those things themselves. Even if it could be done, it's not as absolutely essential as people have thought. 'The world is too much with us, early and late'; and the beautiful dreams of our youth are best kept alive among the imaginative ideas of the past. We owe many of our most charming misconceptions, and some of our sense of superiority, to the crude nature of mere physical existence, as well as to the power of our connections with words. Language may obscure our ideas, but it also adds a layer of softness and refinement, similar to what the atmosphere provides to bare objects. True elegance cannot exist without a sense of style. Additionally, we completely reject applying the principle of utility to this issue. Some people have mistakenly equated knowledge of practical things with practical knowledge. Knowledge is only valuable in itself, as it exercises or pleases the mind; the only knowledge that is practically useful is professional knowledge. Yet, knowledge, when viewed as part of general education, can only benefit the mind of the person learning it. If knowledge of language creates pedants, the other kind of knowledge (which is suggested as a replacement) can only produce frauds. There's no denying that knowledge of astronomy, chemistry, and agriculture is very useful to the world and essential for those in specific professions. However, the practical usefulness of knowing these subjects ends there. For instance, it's crucial for a navigator to know the exact longitude and latitude of a certain rock, but for us, sitting here at our Round Table, it doesn't matter in the slightest whether the map-maker placed it an inch to the right or left; we're not at risk of running into it. Similarly, the art of shoemaking is indeed valuable and should be practiced by someone—specifically, the shoemaker. But to claim that everyone else must thoroughly understand the whole process of this clever craft as a branch of useful knowledge would be absurd. People often ask, "What’s the use of poetry?" and the debate sometimes sounds like a joke based on Falstaff's reasoning about honor. "Can it mend a leg? No. Or an arm? No. Or relieve the pain of a wound? No. So poetry is useless in surgery? No." It's likely that even the most passionate lover of poetry would agree that if they just broke a leg, they would call a surgeon rather than reach for a book of poems from a library. But 'those who are well don't need a doctor.' This argument would make sense if we lived in a hospital and not in the world.
No. 3.] ON THE TATLER [March 5, 1815.
Of all the periodical Essayists, (our ingenious predecessors), the Tatler has always appeared to us the most accomplished and agreeable. Montaigne, who was the father of this kind of personal authorship among the moderns, in which the reader is admitted behind the curtain, and sits down with the writer in his gown and slippers, was a most magnanimous and undisguised egotist; but Isaac Bickerstaff, Esq. was the more disinterested gossip of the two. The French author is contented to describe the peculiarities of his own mind and person, which he does with a most copious and unsparing hand. The English journalist, good-naturedly, lets you into the secret both of his own affairs and those of his neighbours. A young lady, on the other side of Temple Bar, cannot be seen at her glass for half a day together, but Mr. Bickerstaff takes due notice of it; and he has the first intelligence of the symptoms of the belle passion appearing in any young gentleman at the west end of the town. The departures and arrivals of widows with handsome jointures, either to bury their grief in the country, or to procure a second husband in town, are regularly recorded in his pages. He is well acquainted with the celebrated beauties of the last age at the Court of Charles II. and the old gentleman often grows romantic in recounting the disastrous strokes which his youth suffered from the glances of their bright eyes and their unaccountable caprices. In particular, he dwells with a secret satisfaction on one of his mistresses who left him for a rival, and whose constant reproach to her husband, on occasion of any quarrel between them, was,—‘I, that might have married the famous Mr. Bickerstaff, to be treated in this manner!’ The club at the Trumpet consists of a set of persons as entertaining as himself. The cavalcade of the justice of the peace, the knight of the shire, the country squire, and the young gentleman, his nephew, who waited on him at his chambers, in such form and ceremony, seem not to have settled the order of their precedence to this hour; and we should hope the Upholsterer and his companions in the Green Park stand as fair a chance for immortality as some modern politicians. Mr. Bickerstaff himself is a gentleman and a scholar, a humourist and a man of the world; with a great deal of nice easy naïveté about him. If he walks out and is caught in a shower of rain, he makes us amends for this unlucky accident, by a criticism on the shower in Virgil, and concludes with a burlesque copy of verses on a city-shower. He entertains us, when he dates from his own apartment, with a quotation from Plutarch or a moral reflection; from the Grecian 8coffeehouse with politics; and from Will’s or the Temple with the poets and players, the beaux and men of wit and pleasure about town. In reading the pages of the Tatler, we seem as if suddenly transported to the age of Queen Anne, of toupees and full-bottomed periwigs. The whole appearance of our dress and manners undergoes a delightful metamorphosis. We are surprised with the rustling of hoops and the glittering of paste buckles. The beaux and the belles are of a quite different species; we distinguish the dappers, the smarts, and the pretty fellows, as they pass; we are introduced to Betterton and Mrs. Oldfield behind the scenes; are made familiar with the persons of Mr. Penkethman and Mr. Bullock; we listen to a dispute at a tavern on the merits of the Duke of Marlborough or Marshal Turenne; or are present at the first rehearsal of a play by Vanbrugh, or the reading of a new poem by Mr. Pope.—The privilege of thus virtually transporting ourselves to past times, is even greater than that of visiting distant places. London, a hundred years ago, would be better worth seeing than Paris at the present moment.
Of all the periodical essayists—our clever predecessors—the Tatler has always seemed to us the most skilled and enjoyable. Montaigne, who was the father of this type of personal writing among moderns, where readers get a glimpse behind the scenes and sit with the writer in his robe and slippers, was a very open and unapologetic egotist; but Isaac Bickerstaff, Esq. was the more thoughtful gossip of the two. The French writer focuses on describing the quirks of his own mind and personality, doing so with a rich and unfiltered style. The English journalist, with a good-natured spirit, shares the secrets of his own life and those of his neighbors. If a young lady on the other side of Temple Bar can’t be seen at her mirror for half a day, Mr. Bickerstaff takes note of it; he’s the first to report the signs of love showing up in any young man at the west end of the town. The comings and goings of widows with nice dowries, either to bury their sorrow in the countryside or to find a second husband in town, are regularly documented in his writings. He knows well the renowned beauties from the time of Charles II., and the old gentleman often grows nostalgic as he recounts the heartaches his youth endured from their dazzling eyes and unpredictable whims. Notably, he takes a hidden pleasure in recalling one of his lovers who left him for a rival, whose constant complaint to her husband during any argument was, "I, who could have married the famous Mr. Bickerstaff, treated this way!" The club at the Trumpet is made up of people as entertaining as he is. The gathering of the local magistrate, the county knight, the country gentleman, and the young gentleman, his nephew, who accompanied him to his quarters, seems still not to have sorted out their order of precedence; and we would hope that the Upholsterer and his friends in the Green Park have as much chance for lasting fame as some modern politicians. Mr. Bickerstaff himself is a gentleman and scholar, a humorist and a worldly man, with a great deal of charming natural naivety about him. If he goes out and gets caught in a rain shower, he makes up for this unfortunate incident by critiquing the shower in Virgil and finishing with a humorous poem about a city shower. He entertains us, when he writes from his own home, with a quote from Plutarch or a moral thought; from the Grecian coffeehouse with politics; and from Will’s or the Temple with poets, actors, stylish folks, and witty people in town. Reading the pages of the Tatler feels like being suddenly transported to the age of Queen Anne, with its toupees and elaborate wigs. Our whole sense of dress and manners undergoes a delightful transformation. We’re amazed by the rustling of skirts and the shine of paste buckles. The fashionable men and women are a completely different breed; we identify the stylish, the chic, and the attractive as they pass by; we meet Betterton and Mrs. Oldfield backstage; we get familiar with Mr. Penkethman and Mr. Bullock; we listen to a debate at a pub about the merits of the Duke of Marlborough or Marshal Turenne; or we witness the first rehearsal of a play by Vanbrugh, or the reading of a new poem by Mr. Pope. The ability to virtually transport ourselves to the past is even greater than visiting far-off places. London a hundred years ago would be more interesting to see than Paris right now.
It may be said that all this is to be found, in the same or a greater degree, in the Spectator. We do not think so; or, at least, there is in the last work a much greater proportion of common-place matter. We have always preferred the Tatler to the Spectator. Whether it is owing to our having been earlier or better acquainted with the one than the other, our pleasure in reading the two works is not at all in proportion to their comparative reputation. The Tatler contains only half the number of volumes, and we will venture to say, at least an equal quantity of sterling wit and sense. ‘The first sprightly runnings’ are there: it has more of the original spirit, more of the freshness and stamp of nature. The indications of character and strokes of humour are more true and frequent, the reflections that suggest themselves arise more from the occasion, and are less spun out into regular dissertations. They are more like the remarks which occur in sensible conversation, and less like a lecture. Something is left to the understanding of the reader. Steele seems to have gone into his closet only to set down what he observed out-of-doors; Addison seems to have spun out and wire-drawn the hints, which he borrowed from Steele, or took from nature, to the utmost. We do not mean to depreciate Addison’s talents, but we wish to do justice to Steele, who was, upon the whole, a less artificial and more original writer. The descriptions of Steele resemble loose sketches or fragments of a comedy; those of Addison are ingenious paraphrases on the genuine text. The characters of the club, not only in the Tatler, but in the Spectator, were drawn by Steele. That of Sir Roger de Coverley is among them. Addison has gained himself eternal honour by his 9manner of filling up this last character. Those of Will Wimble and Will Honeycomb are not a whit behind it in delicacy and felicity. Many of the most exquisite pieces in the Tatler are also Addison’s, as the Court of Honour, and the Personification of Musical Instruments. We do not know whether the picture of the family of an old acquaintance, in which the children run to let Mr. Bickerstaff in at the door, and the one that loses the race that way turns back to tell the father that he is come,—with the nice gradation of incredulity in the little boy, who is got into Guy of Warwick and The Seven Champions, and who shakes his head at the veracity of Æsop’s Fables,—is Steele’s or Addison’s.[30] The account of the two sisters, one of whom held her head up higher than ordinary, from having on a pair of flowered garters, and of the married lady who complained to the Tatler of the neglect of her husband, are unquestionably Steele’s. If the Tatler is not inferior to the Spectator in manners and character, it is very superior to it in the interest of many of the stories. Several of the incidents related by Steele have never been surpassed in the heart-rending pathos of private distress. We might refer to those of the lover and his mistress when the theatre caught fire, of the bridegroom who, by accident, kills his bride on the day of their marriage, the story of Mr. Eustace and his wife, and the fine dream about his own mistress when a youth. What has given its superior popularity to the Spectator, is the greater gravity of its pretensions, its moral dissertations and critical reasonings, by which we confess we are less edified than by other things. Systems and opinions change, but nature is always true. It is the extremely moral and didactic tone of the Spectator which makes us apt to think of Addison (according to Mandeville’s sarcasm) as ‘a parson in a tie-wig.’ Some of the moral essays are, however, exquisitely beautiful and happy. Such are the reflections in Westminster Abbey, on the Royal Exchange, and some very affecting ones on the death of a young lady. These, it must be allowed, are the perfection of elegant sermonising. His critical essays we do not think quite so good. We prefer Steele’s occasional selection of beautiful poetical passages, without any affectation of analysing their beauties, to Addison’s fine-spun theories. The best criticism in the Spectator, that on the Cartoons of Raphael, is by Steele. We owed 10this acknowledgment to a writer who has so often put us in good humour with ourselves and every thing about us, when few things else could.[31]
It can be said that all of this is found, to the same or an even greater extent, in the Spectator. We disagree; or at least, the latter includes a much larger share of ordinary content. We have always preferred the Tatler over the Spectator. Whether this is because we were introduced to one earlier or have a better familiarity with it than the other, our enjoyment of reading the two works doesn’t reflect their relative popularity. The Tatler contains only half as many volumes, and we would argue it offers at least an equal amount of genuine wit and insight. The initial energy is present: it carries more of the original spark and freshness of nature. The character indications and humorous touches are more authentic and frequent, and the reflections that come to mind are more spontaneous and less stretched into formal essays. They resemble the remarks that come up in a sensible conversation and less like a lecture. The reader is given some room to think for themselves. Steele seems to have written down what he noticed outside, while Addison appears to have elaborated on the ideas he took from Steele, or from nature, to the extreme. We don’t mean to downplay Addison’s talent; we just want to give Steele his due, as he was generally less artificial and more original in his writing. Steele’s descriptions feel like loose sketches or pieces of a comedy; Addison’s are clever rephrasing of the genuine material. The characters of the club, found in both the Tatler and the Spectator, were drawn by Steele. Sir Roger de Coverley is one of them. Addison secured eternal praise for how he fleshed out this character. The characters of Will Wimble and Will Honeycomb match it in charm and skill. Many of the best pieces in the Tatler are also Addison’s, like the Court of Honour and the Personification of Musical Instruments. We can’t tell whether the depiction of the family of an old acquaintance, where the children rush to let Mr. Bickerstaff in at the door, and the one who loses the race turns back to inform the father that he’s arrived—along with the nuanced expression of disbelief in the little boy, who’s gotten into Guy of Warwick and The Seven Champions, and shakes his head at the truth of Æsop’s Fables—is by Steele or Addison.[30] The account of the two sisters, one of whom holds her head a bit higher due to wearing flowered garters, and the married woman who complains to the Tatler about her neglectful husband, are undoubtedly Steele’s. If the Tatler isn’t inferior to the Spectator in its manners and characters, it is certainly superior in the engagement of many of its stories. Several incidents recounted by Steele have never been surpassed in their heart-wrenching portrayal of personal sorrow. We could mention those involving the lover and his mistress during the theater fire, the bridegroom who accidentally kills his bride on their wedding day, the tale of Mr. Eustace and his wife, and the beautiful dream he has about his own mistress when he was young. What has contributed to the greater popularity of the Spectator is its more serious ambitions, its moral essays and critical reflections, which we admit we find less enlightening than other content. Systems and opinions may change, but human nature remains constant. It’s the highly moral and didactic tone of the Spectator that makes us tend to think of Addison (as Mandeville sarcastically put it) as ‘a parson in a tie-wig.’ Some of the moral essays, however, are incredibly beautiful and insightful. Such are the reflections in Westminster Abbey, on the Royal Exchange, and some very touching ones about the death of a young woman. These must be acknowledged as the zenith of elegant sermon-writing. His critical essays, we think, are not quite as impressive. We prefer Steele’s occasional selection of beautiful poetic lines without any pretension of analyzing their merits to Addison’s overly refined theories. The best critique in the Spectator, that of the Cartoons by Raphael, is by Steele. We owe this recognition to a writer who has consistently uplifted our mood about ourselves and our surroundings when few other things could.[31]
No. 4.] ON MODERN COMEDY [Aug. 20, 1815.
The question which has often been asked, Why there are so few good modern Comedies? appears in a great measure to answer itself. It is because so many excellent Comedies have been written, that there are none written at present. Comedy naturally wears itself out—destroys the very food on which it lives; and by constantly and successfully exposing the follies and weaknesses of mankind to ridicule, in the end leaves itself nothing worth laughing at. It holds the mirror up to nature; and men, seeing their most striking peculiarities and defects pass in gay review before them, learn either to avoid or conceal them. It is not the criticism which the public taste exercises upon the stage, but the criticism which the stage exercises upon public manners, that is fatal to comedy, by rendering the subject-matter of it tame, correct, and spiritless. We are drilled into a sort of stupid decorum, and forced to wear the same dull uniform of outward appearance; and yet it is asked, why the Comic Muse does not point, as she was wont, at the peculiarities of our gait and gesture, and exhibit the picturesque contrast of our dress and costume, in all that graceful variety in which she delights. The genuine source of comic writing,
The question that often comes up, Why are there so few good modern comedies? seems to answer itself to a large extent. It's because so many great comedies have already been written that there aren’t any new ones being created now. Comedy naturally exhausts itself—erasing the very topics it thrives on; and by continually and effectively highlighting the foolishness and flaws of humanity for laughter, it eventually runs out of material worth laughing at. It reflects reality; and when people see their most noticeable quirks and flaws showcased in a lighthearted manner, they start to either avoid or hide them. It's not the criticism that public taste places on the stage that's harmful to comedy, but rather the way the stage critiques public behavior, rendering its subject matter dull, conventional, and lifeless. We are conditioned to adhere to some sort of mindless decorum and forced to wear the same boring uniform of outward appearance; and yet it’s questioned why the Comic Muse doesn’t, as she once did, highlight the idiosyncrasies of our movements and showcase the striking variety of our clothing and style, all the graceful diversity she thrives on. The true source of comic writing,
is undoubtedly to be found in the distinguishing peculiarities of men and manners. Now, this distinction can subsist, so as to be strong, pointed, and general, only while the manners of different classes are formed immediately by their particular circumstances, and the characters of individuals by their natural temperament and situation, without being everlastingly modified and neutralised by intercourse with the world—by knowledge and education. In a certain stage of society, men may be said to vegetate like trees, and to become rooted to the soil in which they grow. They have no idea of anything beyond themselves and their immediate sphere of action; they are, as 11it were, circumscribed, and defined by their particular circumstances; they are what their situation makes them, and nothing more. Each is absorbed in his own profession or pursuit, and each in his turn contracts that habitual peculiarity of manners and opinions, which makes him the subject of ridicule to others, and the sport of the Comic Muse. Thus the physician is nothing but a physician, the lawyer is a mere lawyer, the scholar degenerates into a pedant, the country squire is a different species of being from the fine gentleman, the citizen and the courtier inhabit a different world, and even the affectation of certain characters, in aping the follies or vices of their betters, only serves to show the immeasurable distance which custom or fortune has placed between them. Hence the early comic writers, taking advantage of this mixed and solid mass of ignorance, folly, pride, and prejudice, made those deep and lasting incisions into it,—have given those sharp and nice touches, that bold relief to their characters,—have opposed them in every variety of contrast and collision, of conscious self-satisfaction and mutual antipathy, with a power which can only find full scope in the same rich and inexhaustible materials. But in proportion as comic genius succeeds in taking off the mask from ignorance and conceit, as it teaches us to
is definitely found in the unique traits of people and their behaviors. This distinction can only exist strongly and broadly when the behaviors of different classes are shaped directly by their specific circumstances, and the personalities of individuals by their natural temperament and environment, without being constantly altered and neutralized through interaction with the wider world—through knowledge and education. In a certain phase of society, people can be said to exist like trees, becoming rooted in the soil where they grow. They have no awareness of anything beyond themselves and their immediate surroundings; they are, so to speak, restricted and defined by their specific situations; they are shaped by their circumstances and nothing more. Each person is focused on their profession or interest, and each, in turn, develops that habitual uniqueness in behavior and opinions, which makes them a target of mockery for others and fodder for humor. Thus, the physician is just a physician, the lawyer is merely a lawyer, the scholar turns into a pedant, the country landowner is a different kind of person from the refined gentleman, the city dweller and the courtier live in separate worlds, and even the pretense of certain characters, in trying to mimic the foolishness or vices of their betters, only highlights the vast gap that custom or fortune has created between them. Consequently, the early comic writers, exploiting this mixed and solid blend of ignorance, folly, pride, and prejudice, made significant and lasting impressions on it—they gave sharp and refined touches, a bold contrast to their characters—they placed them in various contrasts and conflicts, with a sense of self-satisfaction and mutual dislike, with a power that can only fully flourish in the same rich and endless materials. But as comic genius succeeds in removing the facade of ignorance and vanity, as it teaches us to
in proportion as we are brought out on the stage together, and our prejudices clash one against the other, our sharp angular points wear off; we are no longer rigid in absurdity, passionate in folly, and we prevent the ridicule directed at our habitual foibles, by laughing at them ourselves.
As we come together on stage and our prejudices bump against each other, our sharp edges smooth out; we stop being stubbornly absurd and overly passionate about our foolishness, and we dodge the ridicule aimed at our usual quirks by laughing at them ourselves.
If it be said, that there is the same fund of absurdity and prejudice in the world as ever—that there are the same unaccountable perversities lurking at the bottom of every breast,—I should answer, be it so: but at least we keep our follies to ourselves as much as possible—we palliate, shuffle, and equivocate with them—they sneak into by-corners, and do not, like Chaucer’s Canterbury Pilgrims, march along the highroad, and form a procession—they do not entrench themselves strongly behind custom and precedent—they are not embodied in professions and ranks in life—they are not organised into a system—they do not openly resort to a standard, but are a sort of straggling nondescripts, that, like Wart, ‘present no mark to the foeman.’ As to the gross and palpable absurdities of modern manners, they are too shallow and barefaced, and those who affect, are too little serious in them, to make them worth the detection of the Comic Muse. They proceed from an idle, impudent affectation of folly in general, in the dashing bravura style, not from an infatuation with any of its characteristic 12modes. In short, the proper object of ridicule is egotism; and a man cannot be a very great egotist who every day sees himself represented on the stage. We are deficient in Comedy, because we are without characters in real life—as we have no historical pictures, because we have no faces proper for them.
If someone says that there's just as much absurdity and prejudice in the world as ever—that there are the same unexplainable quirks hiding in everyone—I would reply, fine: but at least we try to keep our foolishness to ourselves as much as we can—we downplay it, shuffle it around, and make excuses for it—they hide in the shadows, and don’t, like Chaucer’s Canterbury Pilgrims, march down the main road in a parade—they don't firmly establish themselves behind traditions and customs—they're not represented in professions and social classes—they're not organized into a system—they don’t openly adhere to any standard, but rather are a mixed bunch, that, like Wart, ‘present no mark to the foe.’ As for the obvious and blatant absurdities of today's behavior, they are too superficial and brazen, and those who indulge in them are too lacking in seriousness for them to be worth the attention of the Comic Muse. They stem from a careless, bold display of silliness in a flashy bravura style, not from a genuine obsession with any of its specific forms. In short, the real target of mockery is egotism; and a person can't be much of an egotist if they see themselves represented on stage every day. We lack Comedy because we lack real-life characters—just as we have no historical portraits, because we have no faces suitable for them.
It is, indeed, the evident tendency of all literature to generalise and dissipate character, by giving men the same artificial education, and the same common stock of ideas; so that we see all objects from the same point of view, and through the same reflected medium;—we learn to exist, not in ourselves, but in books;—all men become alike mere readers—spectators, not actors in the scene, and lose all proper personal identity. The templar, the wit, the man of pleasure, and the man of fashion, the courtier and the citizen, the knight and the squire, the lover and the miser—Lovelace, Lothario, Will Honeycomb, and Sir Roger de Coverley, Sparkish and Lord Foppington, Western and Tom Jones, My Father, and My Uncle Toby, Millamant and Sir Sampson Legend, Don Quixote and Sancho, Gil Blas and Guzman d’Alfarache, Count Fathom and Joseph Surface,—have all met, and exchanged common-places on the barren plains of the haute littérature—toil slowly on to the Temple of Science, seen a long way off upon a level, and end in one dull compound of politics, criticism, chemistry, and metaphysics!
It’s clear that all literature tends to generalize and dissipate character by giving everyone the same artificial education and shared set of ideas, causing us to see everything from the same perspective and through the same filtered lens. We learn to exist not within ourselves but in books; everyone turns into mere readers—spectators, not actors in life’s play, and lose their true personal identity. The templar, the wit, the pleasure-seeker, the fashionable person, the courtier and the citizen, the knight and the squire, the lover and the miser—Lovelace, Lothario, Will Honeycomb, Sir Roger de Coverley, Sparkish, and Lord Foppington, Western and Tom Jones, My Father and My Uncle Toby, Millamant and Sir Sampson Legend, Don Quixote and Sancho, Gil Blas and Guzman d’Alfarache, Count Fathom and Joseph Surface—have all gathered and shared cliché remarks on the barren plains of high literature—slowly trudged toward the Temple of Science, visible from afar, only to end up with a dull mix of politics, criticism, chemistry, and metaphysics!
We cannot expect to reconcile opposite things. If, for example, any of us were to put ourselves into the stage-coach from Salisbury to London, it is more than probable we should not meet with the same number of odd accidents, or ludicrous distresses on the road, that befell Parson Adams; but why, if we get into a common vehicle, and submit to the conveniences of modern travelling, should we complain of the want of adventures? Modern manners may be compared to a modern stage-coach: our limbs may be a little cramped with the confinement, and we may grow drowsy; but we arrive safe, without any very amusing or very sad accident, at our journey’s end.
We can't expect to find a resolution between completely opposite things. For instance, if any of us hopped on the stagecoach from Salisbury to London, it's likely we wouldn't experience the same number of strange mishaps or funny troubles along the way that Parson Adams did; so why, if we choose a regular vehicle and go along with the comforts of modern travel, should we complain about lacking excitement? Contemporary life can be likened to a modern stagecoach: our bodies might feel a bit cramped from sitting for too long, and we might get a little sleepy; but we arrive safely, without any particularly funny or sad incidents, at the end of our journey.
Again, the alterations which have taken place in conversation and dress in the same period, have been by no means favourable to Comedy. The present prevailing style of conversation is not personal, but critical and analytical. It consists almost entirely in the discussion of general topics, in dissertations on philosophy or taste: and Congreve would be able to derive no better hints from the conversations of our toilettes or drawing-rooms, for the exquisite raillery or poignant repartee of his dialogues, than from a deliberation of the Royal Society. In the same manner, the extreme simplicity and graceful uniformity of modern dress, however favourable to the arts, has certainly stript Comedy of one of its richest ornaments and most expressive symbols. 13The sweeping pall and buskin, and nodding plume, were never more serviceable to Tragedy, than the enormous hoops and stiff stays worn by the belles of former days were to the intrigues of Comedy. They assisted wonderfully in heightening the mysteries of the passion, and adding to the intricacy of the plot. Wycherley and Vanbrugh could not have spared the dresses of Vandyke. These strange fancy-dresses, perverse disguises, and counterfeit shapes, gave an agreeable scope to the imagination. ‘That sevenfold fence’ was a sort of foil to the lusciousness of the dialogue, and a barrier against the sly encroachments of double entendre. The greedy eye and bold hand of indiscretion were repressed, which gave a greater licence to the tongue. The senses were not to be gratified in an instant. Love was entangled in the folds of the swelling handkerchief, and the desires might wander for ever round the circumference of a quilted petticoat, or find a rich lodging in the flowers of a damask stomacher. There was room for years of patient contrivance, for a thousand thoughts, schemes, conjectures, hopes, fears, and wishes. There seemed no end of difficulties and delays; to overcome so many obstacles was the work of ages. A mistress was an angel concealed behind whalebone, flounces, and brocade. What an undertaking to penetrate through the disguise! What an impulse must it give to the blood, what a keenness to the invention, what a volubility to the tongue! ‘Mr. Smirk, you are a brisk man,’ was then the most significant commendation. But now-a-days—a woman can be but undressed!
Again, the changes that have happened in conversation and fashion during the same period have not been kind to Comedy. The current style of conversation isn't personal, but rather critical and analytical. It mostly revolves around discussions of general topics, philosophical debates, or matters of taste. Congreve would find it just as useful to gather ideas from the discussions at our social gatherings as he would from a meeting of the Royal Society. Similarly, the extreme simplicity and consistent style of modern dress, while encouraging for the arts, has definitely stripped Comedy of one of its richest embellishments and most expressive symbols. 13The flowing gown and elevated shoes, along with feathered headgear, were never more beneficial to Tragedy than the exaggerated skirts and tight corsets worn by women of earlier times were to the intrigues of Comedy. They played a significant role in heightening the mysteries of passion and adding complexity to the plot. Wycherley and Vanbrugh couldn't have done without the costumes of Vandyke. These quirky costumes, odd disguises, and false shapes allowed for a delightful stretch of the imagination. That figurative barrier acted as a counterbalance to the richness of the dialogue, offering protection against the sly advances of double entendre. The watchful eye and bold hand of indiscretion were kept in check, which allowed for more freedom of speech. The senses couldn't be satisfied instantly. Love was tangled in the layers of an oversized handkerchief, and desires could endlessly circle around the edges of a padded petticoat or find a cozy spot among the flowers of a damask bodice. There was room for years of careful planning, for countless thoughts, schemes, conjectures, hopes, fears, and wishes. It appeared there were endless challenges and delays; overcoming so many hurdles felt like the labor of ages. A mistress was an angel hidden behind whalebone, ruffles, and brocade. What a task it was to see through the disguise! What a rush it must have given to the blood, what a sharpness to creativity, what a fluency to speech! ‘Mr. Smirk, you are quite the lively gentleman,’ was once the highest praise. But nowadays—a woman can be but undressed!
The same account might be extended to Tragedy. Aristotle has long since said, that Tragedy purifies the mind by terror and pity; that is, substitutes an artificial and intellectual interest for real passion. Tragedy, like Comedy, must therefore defeat itself; for its patterns must be drawn from the living models within the breast, from feeling or from observation; and the materials of Tragedy cannot be found among a people, who are the habitual spectators of Tragedy, whose interests and passions are not their own, but ideal, remote, sentimental, and abstracted. It is for this reason chiefly, we conceive, that the highest efforts of the Tragic Muse are in general the earliest; where the strong impulses of nature are not lost in the refinements and glosses of art; where the writers themselves, and those whom they saw about them, had ‘warm hearts of flesh and blood beating in their bosoms, and were not embowelled of their natural entrails, and stuffed with paltry blurred sheets of paper.’ Shakspeare, with all his genius, could not have written as he did, if he had lived in the present times. Nature would not have presented itself to him in the same freshness and vigour; he must have seen it through all 14the refractions of successive dullness, and his powers would have languished in the dense atmosphere of logic and criticism. ‘Men’s minds,’ he somewhere says, ‘are parcel of their fortunes’; and his age was necessary to him. It was this which enabled him to grapple at once with Nature, and which stamped his characters with her image and superscription.
The same idea can apply to Tragedy. Aristotle pointed out long ago that Tragedy purifies the mind through feelings of terror and pity; in other words, it replaces genuine emotion with a constructed, intellectual interest. Like Comedy, Tragedy has to overcome its own purpose; its themes must come from real life, based on emotions or observations. The elements of Tragedy can’t be drawn from an audience that regularly watches it, whose interests and emotions aren’t their own, but rather ideal, distant, sentimental, and abstract. This is mainly why we think the greatest works of Tragic literature tend to be the earliest ones; they come from a time when the raw emotions of nature were not dulled by the tricks and refinements of art. The writers and the people around them had "warm hearts of flesh and blood" rather than being devoid of genuine feeling and filled with trivial, poorly written sheets of paper. Shakespeare, despite all his talent, couldn't have produced his works if he lived in today's world. Nature wouldn’t have appeared to him with the same freshness and vigor; he would have viewed it through the fog of accumulated dullness, and his creativity would have suffered in a heavy atmosphere of logic and criticism. "Men's minds," he once said, "are part of their fortunes"; and his time was essential to him. It was what allowed him to engage deeply with Nature and to create characters that reflected her true essence.
No. 5.] ON MR. KEAN’S IAGO [July 24, 1814.
We certainly think Mr. Kean’s performance of the part of Iago one of the most extraordinary exhibitions on the stage. There is no one within our remembrance who has so completely foiled the critics as this celebrated actor: one sagacious person imagines that he must perform a part in a certain manner,—another virtuoso chalks out a different path for him; and when the time comes, he does the whole off in a way that neither of them had the least conception of, and which both of them are therefore very ready to condemn as entirely wrong. It was ever the trick of genius to be thus. We confess that Mr. Kean has thrown us out more than once. For instance, we are very much inclined to adopt the opinion of a contemporary critic, that his Richard is not gay enough, and that his Iago is not grave enough. This he may perhaps conceive to be the mere caprice of idle criticism; but we will try to give our reasons, and shall leave them to Mr. Kean’s better judgment. It is to be remembered, then, that Richard was a princely villain, borne along in a sort of triumphal car of royal state, buoyed up with the hopes and privileges of his birth, reposing even on the sanctity of religion, trampling on his devoted victims without remorse, and who looked out and laughed from the high watch-tower of his confidence and his expectations on the desolation and misery he had caused around him. He held on his way, unquestioned, ‘hedged in with the divinity of kings,’ amenable to no tribunal, and abusing his power in contempt of mankind. But as for Iago, we conceive differently of him. He had not the same natural advantages. He was a mere adventurer in mischief, a pains-taking plodding knave, without patent or pedigree, who was obliged to work his up-hill way by wit, not by will, and to be the founder of his own fortune. He was, if we may be allowed a vulgar allusion, a sort of prototype of modern Jacobinism, who thought that talents ought to decide the place,—a man of ‘morbid sensibility,’ (in the fashionable phrase), full of distrust, of hatred, of anxious and corroding thoughts, and who, though he might assume a temporary superiority over others by superior adroitness, and pride 15himself in his skill, could not be supposed to assume it as a matter of course, as if he had been entitled to it from his birth. We do not here mean to enter into the characters of the two men, but something must be allowed to the difference of their situations. There might be the same insensibility in both as to the end in view, but there could not well be the same security as to the success of the means. Iago had to pass through a different ordeal: he had no appliances and means to boot; no royal road to the completion of his tragedy. His pretensions were not backed by authority; they were not baptized at the font; they were not holy-waterproof. He had the whole to answer for in his own person, and could not shift the responsibility to the heads of others. Mr. Kean’s Richard was, therefore, we think, deficient in something of that regal jollity and reeling triumph of success which the part would bear; but this we can easily account for, because it is the traditional commonplace idea of the character, that he is to ‘play the dog—to bite and snarl.’—The extreme unconcern and laboured levity of his Iago, on the contrary, is a refinement and original device of the actor’s own mind, and therefore deserves consideration. The character of Iago, in fact, belongs to a class of characters common to Shakspeare, and at the same time peculiar to him—namely, that of great intellectual activity, accompanied with a total want of moral principle, and therefore displaying itself at the constant expence of others, making use of reason as a pander to will—employing its ingenuity and its resources to palliate its own crimes and aggravate the faults of others, and seeking to confound the practical distinctions of right and wrong, by referring them to some overstrained standard of speculative refinement.—Some persons, more nice than wise, have thought the whole of the character of Iago unnatural. Shakspeare, who was quite as good a philosopher as he was a poet, thought otherwise. He knew that the love of power, which is another name for the love of mischief, was natural to man. He would know this as well or better than if it had been demonstrated to him by a logical diagram, merely from seeing children paddle in the dirt, or kill flies for sport. We might ask those who think the character of Iago not natural, why they go to see it performed, but from the interest it excites, the sharper edge which it sets on their curiosity and imagination? Why do we go to see tragedies in general? Why do we always read the accounts in the newspapers of dreadful fires and shocking murders, but for the same reason? Why do so many persons frequent executions and trials, or why do the lower classes almost universally take delight in barbarous sports and cruelty to animals, but because there is a natural tendency in the mind to strong excitement, a desire to have its 16faculties roused and stimulated to the utmost? Whenever this principle is not under the restraint of humanity, or the sense of moral obligation, there are no excesses to which it will not of itself give rise, without the assistance of any other motive, either of passion or self-interest. Iago is only an extreme instance of the kind; that is, of diseased intellectual activity, with an almost perfect indifference to moral good or evil, or rather with a preference of the latter, because it falls more in with his favourite propensity, gives greater zest to his thoughts, and scope to his actions.—Be it observed, too, (for the sake of those who are for squaring all human actions by the maxims of Rochefoucault), that he is quite or nearly as indifferent to his own fate as to that of others; that he runs all risks for a trifling and doubtful advantage; and is himself the dupe and victim of his ruling passion—an incorrigible love of mischief—an insatiable craving after action of the most difficult and dangerous kind. Our ‘Ancient’ is a philosopher, who fancies that a lie that kills has more point in it than an alliteration or an antithesis; who thinks a fatal experiment on the peace of a family a better thing than watching the palpitations in the heart of a flea in an air-pump; who plots the ruin of his friends as an exercise for his understanding, and stabs men in the dark to prevent ennui. Now this, though it be sport, yet it is dreadful sport. There is no room for trifling and indifference, nor scarcely for the appearance of it; the very object of his whole plot is to keep his faculties stretched on the rack, in a state of watch and ward, in a sort of breathless suspense, without a moment’s interval of repose. He has a desperate stake to play for, like a man who fences with poisoned weapons, and has business enough on his hands to call for the whole stock of his sober circumspection, his dark duplicity, and insidious gravity. He resembles a man who sits down to play at chess, for the sake of the difficulty and complication of the game, and who immediately becomes absorbed in it. His amusements, if they are amusements, are severe and saturnine—even his wit blisters. His gaiety arises from the success of his treachery; his ease from the sense of the torture he has inflicted on others. Even, if other circumstances permitted it, the part he has to play with Othello requires that he should assume the most serious concern, and something of the plausibility of a confessor. ‘His cue is villainous melancholy, with a sigh like Tom o’ Bedlam.’ He is repeatedly called ‘honest Iago,’ which looks as if there were something suspicious in his appearance, which admitted a different construction. The tone which he adopts in the scenes with Roderigo, Desdemona, and Cassio, is only a relaxation from the more arduous business of the play. Yet there is in all his conversation an inveterate misanthropy, a licentious 17keenness of perception, which is always sagacious of evil, and snuffs up the tainted scent of its quarry with rancorous delight. An exuberance of spleen is the essence of the character. The view which we have here taken of the subject (if at all correct) will not therefore justify the extreme alteration which Mr. Kean has introduced into the part. Actors in general have been struck only with the wickedness of the character, and have exhibited an assassin going to the place of execution. Mr. Kean has abstracted the wit of the character, and makes Iago appear throughout an excellent good fellow, and lively bottle-companion. But though we do not wish him to be represented as a monster, or fiend, we see no reason why he should instantly be converted into a pattern of comic gaiety and good-humour. The light which illumines the character should rather resemble the flashes of lightning in the mirky sky, which make the darkness more terrible. Mr. Kean’s Iago is, we suspect, too much in the sun. His manner of acting the part would have suited better with the character of Edmund in King Lear, who, though in other respects much the same, has a spice of gallantry in his constitution, and has the favour and countenance of the ladies, which always gives a man the smug appearance of a bridegroom!
We definitely believe Mr. Kean's portrayal of Iago is one of the most remarkable performances on stage. There’s no one we can recall who has so thoroughly outsmarted the critics as this famous actor: one insightful individual thinks he should perform a part a certain way—another expert sketches out a different approach; and when the moment arrives, he delivers everything in a manner neither of them could have imagined, and which they both quickly dismiss as completely wrong. It’s always the hallmark of genius to behave like this. We admit that Mr. Kean has thrown us off more than once. For example, we're quite inclined to agree with a contemporary critic who claims his Richard isn't cheerful enough, and that his Iago isn't serious enough. He might think this is just the whimsy of aimless criticism; however, we’ll attempt to explain our reasons and leave them for Mr. Kean’s better judgment. It’s important to remember that Richard was a royal villain, carried along in a kind of triumphant procession, buoyed by the expectations and privileges of his birth, relying even on the sanctity of religion, trampling on his devoted victims without remorse, and gazing down from the high tower of his confidence and expectations at the devastation and misery he caused around him. He moved ahead unchallenged, ‘shielded by the divinity of kings,’ answerable to no authority, and abusing his power in contempt of mankind. But as for Iago, we see him differently. He didn’t have the same natural advantages. He was merely a schemer in mischief, a diligent and crafty rogue, with no lineage or background, forced to carve his way up through cleverness, not by entitlement, and to create his own fortune. He was, if we may use a casual analogy, a sort of prototype of modern radicalism, believing that talent should determine one's place—a man of ‘morbid sensitivity,’ (as the popular phrase goes), filled with distrust, hatred, and anxious, corrosive thoughts, who, although he might for a moment seem superior to others due to his cleverness, couldn’t be expected to take it for granted as if he had a right to it from his birth. We don’t intend to delve into the characters of the two men here, but we must acknowledge the difference in their circumstances. There might be similar insensitivity in both regarding the end goal, but their assurance about the success of their methods cannot have been the same. Iago had to endure a different trial: he lacked resources and means; there was no easy path to complete his tragedy. His claims weren’t supported by authority; they weren't blessed at birth; they weren’t shielded by sacredness. He had to answer for everything by himself and couldn’t shift the responsibility onto others. Therefore, we think Mr. Kean’s Richard is lacking a bit of that royal cheerfulness and drunk triumph of success that the role could encompass; but we can easily explain this, as it’s the traditional and common idea of the character to ‘play the dog—to bite and snarl.’—In contrast, the extreme nonchalance and effortful lightness of his Iago is a refinement and original concept of the actor's own mind, and thus deserves consideration. The character of Iago actually belongs to a category common to Shakespeare, yet unique to him—namely, that of great intellectual activity combined with a complete absence of moral principle, constantly manifesting itself at the expense of others, using reason as a tool for will—deploying its ingenuity and resources to justify its own crimes and amplify the faults of others, and aiming to blur the lines between right and wrong by holding them to some exaggerated standard of speculative sophistication.—Some individuals, more precise than wise, have considered the character of Iago to be unnatural. Shakespeare, who was just as good a philosopher as he was a poet, thought otherwise. He understood that the love of power, which is simply another term for the love of mischief, is natural to humanity. He would understand this as well or better than if it had been laid out in a logical diagram, merely from observing children playing in the dirt or killing flies for fun. We might ask those who view Iago as unnatural why they attend performances of it, if not for the interest it stirs up, the sharper edge it brings to their curiosity and imagination? Why do we watch tragedies in general? Why do we always read reports in the newspapers about horrific fires and shocking murders, if not for the same reason? Why do so many people attend public executions and trials, or why do the lower classes generally take pleasure in barbaric sports and cruelty to animals, except because there is an innate tendency in the mind towards intense excitement, a desire to awaken and stimulate its faculties to the maximum? Whenever this principle isn’t restrained by humanity or the sense of moral duty, there are no extremes it won’t self-generate, without the aid of any other motivation, whether from passion or self-interest. Iago is simply an extreme case of this type; that is, of diseased intellectual activity, with nearly perfect indifference to moral good or evil, or rather with a preference for the latter, as it aligns better with his favorite inclination, adds more spice to his thoughts, and gives more freedom to his actions.—It should also be noted, (for the sake of those who want to measure all human behavior by the principles of Rochefoucauld), that he is almost equally indifferent to his own fate as to that of others; that he takes all risks for a trifle and uncertain gain; and is himself the fool and victim of his dominant passion—an unchangeable love of mischief—an insatiable craving for the most difficult and dangerous forms of action. Our ‘Ancient’ is a philosopher who believes a killing lie holds more significance than an alliteration or an antithesis; who views a deadly experiment on a family’s peace as more valuable than observing the pulsing of a flea’s heart in a vacuum chamber; who schemes the ruin of his friends as a test of his intellect, and stabs men in the dark just to avoid boredom. Now, while this may be a form of entertainment, it’s still dreadful entertainment. There’s no space for trifling or indifference, or even the semblance of it; the very aim of his entire scheme is to keep his faculties stretched tight, constantly alert, in a state of breathless suspense, without a moment’s respite. He has a desperate stake to play for, like a man fencing with poisoned swords, and enough on his plate to require all of his sober caution, his dark cunning, and insidious seriousness. He resembles someone who sits down to play chess, drawn to the difficulty and complexity of the game, and who quickly becomes engrossed in it. His hobbies, if they can be called that, are harsh and morose—even his humor is sharp. His merriment springs from the success of his betrayal; his ease comes from the awareness of the torment he inflicts on others. Even if other circumstances allowed for it, the role he has to play with Othello demands that he adopt a serious demeanor, and a hint of the plausibility of a confessor. ‘His cue is villainous sadness, with a sigh like Tom o’ Bedlam.’ He is repeatedly referred to as ‘honest Iago,’ which suggests there’s something suspicious about his appearance that invites a different interpretation. The tone he adopts in scenes with Roderigo, Desdemona, and Cassio is merely a break from the more strenuous affairs of the play. Yet, in all his dialogue, there’s a deeply ingrained misanthropy, a sharp awareness of evil, which readily detects the tainted scent of its prey with malicious delight. A strong dose of spleen is the essence of the character. The perspective we’ve taken on the subject (if it’s at all accurate) will not justify the drastic modifications Mr. Kean has made to the part. Actors generally focus only on the wickedness of the character, portraying him as an assassin walking to the gallows. Mr. Kean has stripped the character of its wit, making Iago seem throughout like a genuinely good buddy, a lively drinking companion. But while we don’t want him portrayed as a monster or a fiend, we see no reason for him to be instantly transformed into a model of comic joy and good humor. The light that shines on the character should be more like the flashes of lightning in a dark sky, making the darkness all the more terrifying. We suspect Mr. Kean’s Iago is too much in the spotlight. His approach to the role would have suited the character of Edmund in King Lear, who, though in other respects quite similar, has a dash of gallantry in his makeup, and enjoys the favor and support of women, which always lends a man the smug appearance of a groom!
No. 6.] ON THE LOVE OF THE COUNTRY [Nov. 27, 1814.
Sir,—I do not know that any one has ever explained satisfactorily the true source of our attachment to natural objects, or of that soothing emotion which the sight of the country hardly ever fails to infuse into the mind. Some persons have ascribed this feeling to the natural beauty of the objects themselves, others to the freedom from care, the silence and tranquillity which scenes of retirement afford—others to the healthy and innocent employments of a country life—others to the simplicity of country manners—and others to different causes; but none to the right one. All these causes may, I believe, have a share in producing this feeling; but there is another more general principle, which has been left untouched, and which I shall here explain, endeavouring to be as little sentimental as the subject will admit.
Mr.,—I don’t think anyone has ever clearly explained why we feel such a deep connection to nature or why the sight of the countryside often brings a sense of peace to our minds. Some people attribute this feeling to the natural beauty of the landscapes, others to the absence of worry, the quietness and calmness that secluded scenes provide—some link it to the healthy and pure activities of rural life—others point to the simplicity of country customs—and still others have various explanations; but none have identified the real reason. I believe all these factors might contribute to this feeling, but there’s another broader principle that’s often overlooked, and I’ll explain it here, trying to keep my thoughts as straightforward as the topic allows.
Rousseau, in his Confessions, (the most valuable of all his works), relates, that when he took possession of his room at Annecy, at the house of his beloved mistress and friend, he found that he could see ‘a 18little spot of green’ from his window, which endeared his situation the more to him, because, he says, it was the first time he had had this object constantly before him since he left Boissy, the place where he was at school when a child.[32] Some such feeling as that here described will be found lurking at the bottom of all our attachments of this sort. Were it not for the recollections habitually associated with them, natural objects could not interest the mind in the manner they do. No doubt, the sky is beautiful; the clouds sail majestically along its bosom; the sun is cheering; there is something exquisitely graceful in the manner in which a plant or tree puts forth its branches; the motion with which they bend and tremble in the evening breeze is soft and lovely; there is music in the babbling of a brook; the view from the top of a mountain is full of grandeur; nor can we behold the ocean with indifference. Or, as the Minstrel sweetly sings—
Rousseau, in his Confessions, (the most significant of all his works), shares that when he settled into his room in Annecy, at the home of his beloved mistress and friend, he discovered he could see ‘a 18little spot of green’ from his window, which made his situation even more dear to him. He says this was the first time he had this view constantly before him since leaving Boissy, the place where he went to school as a child.[32] A feeling like the one he describes is often found at the root of all our attachments in this way. Without the memories that we typically associate with them, natural objects wouldn’t capture our minds the way they do. Certainly, the sky is beautiful; the clouds move majestically across it; the sun is uplifting; there’s something truly elegant in how a plant or tree extends its branches; the way they sway and quiver in the evening breeze is gentle and lovely; there’s music in the babbling of a brook; the view from the top of a mountain is magnificent; nor can we look at the ocean without feeling something. Or, as the Minstrel sweetly sings—
It is not, however, the beautiful and magnificent alone that we admire in Nature; the most insignificant and rudest objects are often found connected with the strongest emotions; we become attached to the most common and familiar images as to the face of a friend whom we have long known, and from whom we have received many benefits. It is because natural objects have been associated with the sports of our childhood, with air and exercise, with our feelings in solitude, when the mind takes the strongest hold of things, and clings with the fondest interest to whatever strikes its attention; with change of place, the pursuit of new scenes, and thoughts of distant friends: it is because they have surrounded us in almost all situations, in joy and in sorrow, in pleasure and in pain; because they have been one chief source and nourishment of our feelings, and a part of our being, that we love them as we do ourselves.
It’s not just the beautiful and grand things in nature that we admire; even the smallest and simplest objects are often tied to our strongest emotions. We become attached to the everyday and familiar images just like we do to the face of a long-time friend who has done so much for us. This connection is because natural objects remind us of childhood games, fresh air and activity, and our feelings of solitude when our minds latch onto things and hold on to whatever captures our interest. They are linked to changes in our surroundings, the thrill of new experiences, and thoughts of friends far away. Natural elements have been present in nearly every situation we’ve faced—during joy and sorrow, pleasure and pain; they've been a key source of our feelings and part of who we are, which is why we love them as much as we love ourselves.
There is, generally speaking, the same foundation for our love of Nature as for all our habitual attachments, namely, association of ideas. But this is not all. That which distinguishes this attachment 19from others is the transferable nature of our feelings with respect to physical objects; the associations connected with any one object extending to the whole class. My having been attached to any particular person does not make me feel the same attachment to the next person I may chance to meet; but, if I have once associated strong feelings of delight with the objects of natural scenery, the tie becomes indissoluble, and I shall ever after feel the same attachment to other objects of the same sort. I remember when I was abroad, the trees, and grass, and wet leaves, rustling in the walks of the Thuilleries, seemed to be as much English, to be as much the same trees and grass, that I had always been used to, as the sun shining over my head was the same sun which I saw in England; the faces only were foreign to me. Whence comes this difference? It arises from our always imperceptibly connecting the idea of the individual with man, and only the idea of the class with natural objects. In the one case, the external appearance or physical structure is the least thing to be attended to; in the other, it is every thing. The springs that move the human form, and make it friendly or adverse to me, lie hid within it. There is an infinity of motives, passions, and ideas contained in that narrow compass, of which I know nothing, and in which I have no share. Each individual is a world to himself, governed by a thousand contradictory and wayward impulses. I can, therefore, make no inference from one individual to another; nor can my habitual sentiments, with respect to any individual, extend beyond himself to others. But it is otherwise with respect to Nature. There is neither hypocrisy, caprice, nor mental reservation in her favours. Our intercourse with her is not liable to accident or change, interruption or disappointment. She smiles on us still the same. Thus, to give an obvious instance, if I have once enjoyed the cool shade of a tree, and been lulled into a deep repose by the sound of a brook running at its feet, I am sure that wherever I can find a tree and a brook, I can enjoy the same pleasure again. Hence, when I imagine these objects, I can easily form a mystic personification of the friendly power that inhabits them, Dryad or Naiad, offering its cool fountain or its tempting shade. Hence the origin of the Grecian mythology. All objects of the same kind being the same, not only in their appearance, but in their practical uses, we habitually confound them together under the same general idea; and, whatever fondness we may have conceived for one, is immediately placed to the common account. The most opposite kinds and remote trains of feeling gradually go to enrich the same sentiment; and in our love of Nature, there is all the force of individual attachment, combined with the most airy abstraction. It is this circumstance which gives that refinement, expansion, and wild 20interest to feelings of this sort, when strongly excited, which every one must have experienced who is a true lover of Nature. The sight of the setting sun does not affect me so much from the beauty of the object itself, from the glory kindled through the glowing skies, the rich broken columns of light, or the dying streaks of day, as that it indistinctly recalls to me numberless thoughts and feelings with which, through many a year and season, I have watched his bright descent in the warm summer evenings, or beheld him struggling to cast a ‘farewel sweet’ through the thick clouds of winter. I love to see the trees first covered with leaves in the spring, the primroses peeping out from some sheltered bank, and the innocent lambs running races on the soft green turf; because, at that birth-time of Nature, I have always felt sweet hopes and happy wishes—which have not been fulfilled! The dry reeds rustling on the side of a stream,—the woods swept by the loud blast,—the dark massy foliage of autumn,—the grey trunks and naked branches of the trees in winter,—the sequestered copse and wide extended heath,—the warm sunny showers, and December snows,—have all charms for me; there is no object, however trifling or rude, that has not, in some mood or other, found the way to my heart; and I might say, in the words of the poet,
There’s basically the same basis for our love of nature as there is for all of our usual attachments, and that’s the association of ideas. But it doesn’t end there. What sets this attachment apart is how our feelings for physical objects can transfer; the connections we have with one object extend to the entire class of similar objects. Just because I was attached to one specific person doesn’t mean I’ll feel the same way about the next person I meet. However, if I’ve had powerful feelings of joy tied to natural scenery, that bond becomes unbreakable, and I’ll continue to feel that same attachment to other similar objects. I remember, when I was abroad, the trees, the grass, and the wet leaves rustling along the paths of the Tuileries felt just as English to me, as familiar as the sun shining above was the same sun I used to see in England; the only things that felt foreign were the faces around me. Why is there this difference? It comes from how we always link the idea of an individual to a person, while we only tie the idea of a category to natural objects. In one case, the external appearance or physical structure matter the least; in the other, they matter most. The forces that shape the human form, making it friendly or unfriendly, are hidden inside. There are countless motives, passions, and ideas contained in that limited space, of which I know nothing and in which I have no involvement. Each person is a world unto themselves, driven by a thousand conflicting and unpredictable impulses. Therefore, I can’t make any assumptions from one person to another, nor can my feelings about any individual extend beyond that person to others. But it’s different with nature. There’s no hypocrisy, whim, or hidden agendas in her gifts. Our interactions with her aren’t subject to chance, change, interruption, or disappointment. She still smiles upon us the same. To give a clear example, if I’ve once enjoyed the cool shade of a tree and been lulled into deep relaxation by the sound of a brook at its base, I know that wherever there’s a tree and a brook, I can enjoy that same pleasure again. So, when I think of these objects, I can easily imagine a mystical spirit inhabiting them, like a Dryad or Naiad, offering its cool water or inviting shade. This is how Grecian mythology originated. All objects of the same kind are similar, not just in appearance but also in their practical uses, so we commonly group them under the same general idea; any love we’ve developed for one is quickly considered part of the whole. The most contrasting types of feelings gradually enrich the same sentiment, and in our love for nature, we combine the intensity of individual attachment with the most ethereal abstraction. This element gives that refinement, expansion, and wild interest to such strongly felt emotions, which everyone who truly loves nature must have experienced. The sight of the setting sun doesn’t move me as much because of the beauty of the object itself, the glory ignited in the glowing skies, the rich, broken columns of light, or the fading streaks of day, but because it vaguely brings to mind countless thoughts and feelings from all the years and seasons I’ve watched his bright descent on warm summer evenings or seen him struggling to cast a ‘sweet farewell’ through the thick winter clouds. I love seeing the trees first covered with leaves in spring, the primroses peeking out from a sheltered bank, and the innocent lambs racing on the soft green grass; because during that rebirth of nature, I’ve always felt sweet hopes and happy wishes—which have yet to come true! The dry reeds rustling by a stream, the woods blown by the loud winds, the thick dark foliage of autumn, the grey trunks and bare branches of winter trees, the secluded thicket and wide-open heath, the warm sunny showers, and December snows—each has its own charm for me; there’s no object, no matter how insignificant or rough, that hasn’t, at some point or another, found its way to my heart; and I might say, in the words of the poet,
Thus Nature is a kind of universal home, and every object it presents to us an old acquaintance with unaltered looks.
Thus Nature is like a universal home, and every object it shows us is an old friend that looks the same as ever.
For there is that consent and mutual harmony among all her works, one undivided spirit pervading them throughout, that, if we have once knit ourselves in hearty fellowship to any of them, they will never afterwards appear as strangers to us, but, which ever way we turn, we shall find a secret power to have gone out before us, moulding them into such shapes as fancy loves, informing them with life and sympathy, bidding them put on their festive looks and gayest attire at our approach, and to pour all their sweets and choicest treasures at our feet. For him, then, who has well acquainted himself with Nature’s works, she wears always one face, and speaks the same well-known language, striking on the heart, amidst unquiet thoughts and the tumult of the world, like the music of one’s native tongue heard in some far-off country.
For there is a shared agreement and harmony among all her creations, a single spirit that runs through them all, so that once we’ve connected ourselves in true friendship with any of them, they will never seem foreign to us again. No matter which way we look, we’ll find a hidden force has gone ahead of us, shaping them into forms that imagination loves, filling them with life and warmth, urging them to dress up in their most festive and vibrant looks when we approach, and to bring forth all their sweetness and finest treasures at our feet. For someone who has deeply familiarized himself with Nature’s works, she always presents the same face and speaks the same familiar language, touching the heart amidst restless thoughts and the chaos of the world, like the sound of one’s mother tongue heard in a distant land.
21We do not connect the same feelings with the works of art as with those of nature, because we refer them to man, and associate with them the separate interests and passions which we know belong to those who are the authors or possessors of them. Nevertheless, there are some such objects, as a cottage, or a village church, which excite in us the same sensations as the sight of nature, and which are, indeed, almost always included in descriptions of natural scenery.
21We don't feel the same emotions about artworks as we do about nature, because we attribute them to people and connect them to the individual interests and passions of their creators or owners. However, there are certain objects, like a cottage or a village church, that evoke the same feelings as a natural landscape, and these are often included in descriptions of natural scenery.
Which is in part, no doubt, because they are surrounded with natural objects, and, in a populous country, inseparable from them; and also because the human interest they excite relates to manners and feelings which are simple, common, such as all can enter into, and which, therefore, always produce a pleasing effect upon the mind.
Which is partly because they are surrounded by natural objects, and in a crowded country, they’re inseparable from them; and also because the human interest they stir is connected to simple, common manners and feelings that everyone can relate to, which always leaves a positive impression on the mind.
No. 7.] ON POSTHUMOUS FAME,—WHETHER SHAKSPEARE WAS INFLUENCED BY A LOVE OF IT? [May 22, 1814.
It has been much disputed whether Shakspeare was actuated by the love of fame, though the question has been thought by others not to admit of any doubt, on the ground that it was impossible for any man of great genius to be without this feeling. It was supposed, that that immortality, which was the natural inheritance of men of powerful genius, must be ever present to their minds, as the reward, the object, and the animating spring, of all their efforts. This conclusion does not appear to be well founded, and that for the following reasons:
It has been widely debated whether Shakespeare was motivated by a desire for fame, although some have argued that there's no doubt about it, claiming that no person of great talent could lack this ambition. It was believed that the immortality typically associated with highly talented individuals must always be on their minds, serving as the reward, the goal, and the driving force behind all their efforts. However, this conclusion doesn't seem to be well supported, and here are the reasons why:
First, The love of fame is the offspring of taste, rather than of genius. The love of fame implies a knowledge of its existence. The men of the greatest genius, whether poets or philosophers, who lived in the first ages of society, only just emerging from the gloom of ignorance and barbarism, could not be supposed to have much idea of those long trails of lasting glory which they were to leave behind them, and of which there were as yet no examples. But, after such men, inspired by the love of truth and nature, have struck out those lights which become the gaze and admiration of after times,—when those who succeed in distant generations read with wondering 22rapture the works which the bards and sages of antiquity have bequeathed to them,—when they contemplate the imperishable power of intellect which survives the stroke of death and the revolutions of empire,—it is then that the passion for fame becomes an habitual feeling in the mind, and that men naturally wish to excite the same sentiments of admiration in others which they themselves have felt, and to transmit their names with the same honours to posterity. It is from the fond enthusiastic veneration with which we recal the names of the celebrated men of past times, and the idolatrous worship we pay to their memories, that we learn what a delicious thing fame is, and would willingly make any efforts or sacrifices to be thought of in the same way. It is in the true spirit of this feeling that a modern writer exclaims—
First, the love of fame comes more from personal taste than from genius. Loving fame means knowing it exists. The most talented people, whether they were poets or philosophers, who lived in the early days of society—just coming out of ignorance and barbarism—were not likely to have any real understanding of the lasting glory they would leave behind, especially since there were no examples to guide them. But after these individuals, driven by a passion for truth and nature, have created works that capture the admiration of future generations—when people in distant times read the works of ancient poets and thinkers with awe—when they reflect on the enduring power of intellect that outlasts death and changes in empires—it is then that the desire for fame becomes a common feeling in the mind. People naturally want to evoke the same admiration they have felt in others and to pass on their names with similar honors to posterity. From the deep admiration we have for the famous figures of the past, and the almost worshipful attitude we adopt towards their memories, we realize how sweet fame is and are willing to make efforts or sacrifices to be remembered in the same way. It is with this true spirit that a modern writer exclaims—
The love of fame is a species of emulation; or, in other words, the love of admiration is in proportion to the admiration with which the works of the highest genius have inspired us, to the delight we have received from their habitual contemplation, and to our participation in the general enthusiasm with which they have been regarded by mankind. Thus there is little of this feeling discoverable in the Greek writers, whose ideas of posthumous fame seem to have been confined to the glory of heroic actions; whereas the Roman poets and orators, stimulated by the reputation which their predecessors had acquired, and having those exquisite models constantly before their eyes, are full of it. So Milton, whose capacious mind was imbued with the rich stores of sacred and of classic lore, to whom learning opened her inmost page, and whose eye seemed to be ever bent back to the great models of antiquity, was, it is evident, deeply impressed with a feeling of lofty emulation, and a strong desire to produce some work of lasting and equal reputation:—
The love of fame is a form of imitation; in other words, the desire for admiration relates directly to how much the works of the greatest talents have inspired us, the joy we've gained from regularly contemplating them, and our involvement in the shared excitement with which people regard them. Because of this, there's little evidence of this feeling in Greek writers, whose ideas about lasting fame seem to have been limited to the glory of heroic deeds. In contrast, Roman poets and orators, motivated by the reputation their predecessors had achieved and constantly inspired by those exceptional models, are filled with this sentiment. Similarly, Milton, whose expansive mind was enriched by both sacred and classical knowledge, and for whom learning revealed its deepest secrets, clearly felt a strong sense of noble imitation and a deep desire to create a work of enduring and equal significance:—
23Spenser, who was a man of learning, had a high opinion of the regard due to ‘famous poets’ wit’; and Lord Bacon, whose vanity is as well known as his excessive adulation of that of others, asks, in a tone of proud exultation, ‘Have not the poems of Homer lasted five-and-twenty hundred years, and not a syllable of them is lost?’ Chaucer seems to have derived his notions of fame more immediately from the reputation acquired by the Italian poets, his contemporaries, which had at that time spread itself over Europe; while the latter, who were the first to unlock the springs of ancient learning, and who slaked their thirst of knowledge at that pure fountain-head, would naturally imbibe the same feeling from its highest source. Thus, Dante has conveyed the finest image that can perhaps be conceived of the power of this principle over the human mind, when he describes the heroes and celebrated men of antiquity as ‘serene and smiling,’ though in the shades of death,
23Spenser, a well-educated man, held a high opinion of the respect owed to the wit of ‘famous poets’; and Lord Bacon, known for his vanity as much as for his excessive praise of others, exclaims with proud delight, ‘Haven’t Homer’s poems lasted two thousand five hundred years, and not a single syllable is lost?’ Chaucer seems to have drawn his ideas of fame more directly from the reputation of the Italian poets, his contemporaries, whose influence had spread across Europe at that time; while these poets, who were the first to unlock the secrets of ancient learning and quenched their thirst for knowledge at that pure source, would naturally absorb the same sentiment from its highest origin. Thus, Dante captures perhaps the best image of the power of this principle over the human mind when he describes the heroes and celebrated figures of antiquity as ‘serene and smiling,’ even in the shadows of death,
But it is not so in Shakspeare. There is scarcely the slightest trace of any such feeling in his writings, nor any appearance of anxiety for their fate, or of a desire to perfect them or make them worthy of that immortality to which they were destined. And this indifference may be accounted for from the very circumstance, that he was almost entirely a man of genius, or that in him this faculty bore sway over every other: he was either not intimately conversant with the productions of the great writers who had gone before him, or at least was not much indebted to them: he revelled in the world of observation and of fancy; and perhaps his mind was of too prolific and active a kind to dwell with intense and continued interest on the images of beauty or of grandeur presented to it by the genius of others. He seemed scarcely to have an individual existence of his own, but to borrow that of others at will, and to pass successively through ‘every variety of untried being,’—to be now Hamlet, now Othello, now Lear, now Falstaff, now Ariel. In the mingled interests and feelings belonging to this wide range of imaginary reality, in the tumult and rapid transitions of this waking dream, the author could not easily find time to think of himself, nor wish to embody that personal identity in idle reputation after death, of which he was so little tenacious while living. To feel a strong desire that others should think highly of us, it is, in general, necessary that we should think highly of ourselves. There is something of egotism, and even pedantry, in this sentiment; and there is no author who was so little 24tinctured with these as Shakspeare. The passion for fame, like other passions, requires an exclusive and exaggerated admiration of its object, and attaches more consequence to literary attainments and pursuits than they really possess. Shakspeare had looked too much abroad into the world, and his views of things were of too universal and comprehensive a cast, not to have taught him to estimate the importance of posthumous fame according to its true value and relative proportions. Though he might have some conception of his future fame, he could not but feel the contrast between that and his actual situation; and, indeed, he complains bitterly of the latter in one of his sonnets.[34] He would perhaps think, that, to be the idol of posterity, when we are no more, was hardly a full compensation for being the object of the glance and scorn of fools while we are living; and that, in truth, this universal fame so much vaunted, was a vague phantom of blind enthusiasm; for what is the amount even of Shakspeare’s fame? That, in that very country which boasts his genius and his birth, perhaps not one person in ten has ever heard of his name, or read a syllable of his writings!
But it’s different with Shakespeare. There’s hardly a hint of any such feeling in his works, nor any sign of worry about their fate, or of a desire to improve them or make them worthy of the immortality they were meant to achieve. This indifference could be explained by the fact that he was almost entirely a man of genius, with this talent overshadowing all others: he either wasn’t very familiar with the works of the great writers before him, or at least didn’t owe a lot to them. He thrived in the world of observation and imagination; perhaps his mind was too inventive and active to focus intensely and continuously on the beautiful or grand images presented by the genius of others. He seemed to lack a personal existence of his own, borrowing that of others at will and experiencing ‘every variety of untried being’—one moment he was Hamlet, the next Othello, then Lear, Falstaff, and Ariel. In the mix of interests and feelings from this vast range of imagined reality, in the chaos and rapid changes of this waking dream, the author found it hard to think of himself, nor did he seem interested in solidifying that personal identity into an idle reputation after death, which he was so little attached to while alive. To truly desire that others should think highly of us, it’s generally necessary for us to have a high opinion of ourselves. There’s a bit of egotism, and even pretentiousness, in this thought; and no author was less touched by these feelings than Shakespeare. The passion for fame, like other passions, requires an exclusive and exaggerated admiration of its object and places more importance on literary achievements and pursuits than they actually deserve. Shakespeare had looked too broadly at the world, and his perspectives were too universal and comprehensive to not recognize the true value and relative significance of posthumous fame. While he might have had some idea of his future fame, he couldn’t help but feel the contrast between that and his actual situation; indeed, he bitterly complains about the latter in one of his sonnets.[34] He might think that being the idol of posterity after we’re gone isn’t much compensation for being the target of fools’ glances and scorn while we’re alive; and that, in reality, this universal fame—so much praised—is a vague illusion fueled by blind enthusiasm; because what is the real extent of Shakespeare’s fame? In the very country that boasts of his genius and birthplace, perhaps not one in ten people have ever heard of his name or read a word of his works!
We will add another observation in connection with this subject, which is, that men of the greatest genius produce their works with too much facility (and, as it were, spontaneously) to require the love of fame as a stimulus to their exertions, or to make them seem deserving of the admiration of mankind as their reward. It is, indeed, one characteristic mark of the highest class of excellence to appear to come naturally from the mind of the author, without consciousness or effort. The work seems like inspiration—to be the gift of some God or of the Muse. But it is the sense of difficulty which enhances the admiration of power, both in ourselves and in others. Hence it is that there is nothing so remote from vanity as true genius. It is almost as natural for those who are endowed with the highest powers of the human mind to produce the miracles of art, as for other men to breathe or move. Correggio, who is said to have produced some of his divinest works almost without having seen a picture, probably did not know that he had done anything extraordinary.
We will add another observation related to this topic, which is that highly talented individuals create their works so easily, almost spontaneously, that they don’t need the desire for fame as motivation for their efforts, nor do they feel deserving of people's admiration as a reward. In fact, one distinguishing feature of the highest level of excellence is that it seems to come naturally from the author's mind, without conscious effort. The work feels like inspiration—like a gift from some divine force or Muse. However, it is the sense of challenge that increases admiration for skill, both in ourselves and others. This is why true genius is far from vanity. For those who possess the greatest capabilities of the human mind, producing incredible art is as natural as breathing or moving for others. Correggio, who is said to have created some of his greatest works almost without ever having looked at a painting, probably didn’t realize he had done anything remarkable.
No. 8.] ON HOGARTH’S MARRIAGE A-LA-MODE [June 5, 1814.
The superiority of the pictures of Hogarth, which we have seen in the late collection at the British Institution, to the common prints, is confined chiefly to the Marriage a-la-Mode. We shall attempt to illustrate a few of their most striking excellencies, more particularly with reference to the expression of character. Their merits are indeed so prominent, and have been so often discussed, that it may be thought difficult to point out any new beauties; but they contain so much truth of nature, they present the objects to the eye under so many aspects and bearings, admit of so many constructions, and are so pregnant with meaning, that the subject is in a manner inexhaustible.
The quality of Hogarth's paintings, which we saw in the recent collection at the British Institution, is clearly superior to ordinary prints, especially in Marriage a-la-Mode. We will try to highlight a few of their most impressive qualities, particularly regarding character expression. Their strengths are so obvious and have been discussed so often that it might seem hard to point out any new beauties; however, they capture so much truth of nature, show the subjects from various angles and perspectives, allow for numerous interpretations, and are rich in meaning, making the topic virtually endless.
Boccacio, the most refined and sentimental of all the novel-writers, has been stigmatised as a mere inventor of licentious tales, because readers in general have only seized on those things in his works which were suited to their own taste, and have reflected their own grossness back upon the writer. So it has happened that the majority of critics having been most struck with the strong and decided expression in Hogarth, the extreme delicacy and subtle gradations of character in his pictures have almost entirely escaped them. In the first picture of the Marriage a-la-Mode, the three figures of the young Nobleman, his intended Bride, and her inamorato, the Lawyer, shew how much Hogarth excelled in the power of giving soft and effeminate expression. They have, however, been less noticed than the other figures, which tell a plainer story and convey a more palpable moral. Nothing can be more finely managed than the differences of character in these delicate personages. The Beau sits smiling at the looking-glass, with a reflected simper of self-admiration, and a languishing inclination of the head, while the rest of his body is perked up on his high heels with a certain air of tiptoe elevation. He is the Narcissus of the reign of George II., whose powdered peruke, ruffles, gold lace, and patches, divide his self-love unequally with his own person,—the true Sir Plume of his day;
Boccaccio, the most sophisticated and sentimental of all novelists, has been labeled a simple creator of scandalous stories because most readers have focused only on the parts of his work that fit their own taste, reflecting their own vulgarity back onto him. As a result, many critics have been so captivated by the bold and clear expression in Hogarth's work that the extreme subtlety and nuances of character in his paintings have largely gone unnoticed. In the first painting of the Marriage a-la-Mode, the three characters—the young nobleman, his future bride, and her lover, the lawyer—showcase Hogarth's remarkable ability to depict soft and effeminate expressions. However, these characters have received less attention than the others, which tell a more straightforward story and convey a clearer moral. The differences in character among these delicate figures are masterfully portrayed. The dandy sits smiling at the mirror, with a smirk of self-admiration, and a languid tilt of his head, while the rest of his body is raised on his high heels with an air of tiptoe elegance. He is the Narcissus of the reign of George II., whose powdered wig, frills, gold lace, and beauty spots split his self-love unevenly with his own image—the true Sir Plume of his time;
There is the same felicity in the figure and attitude of the Bride, courted by the Lawyer. There is the utmost flexibility, and yielding softness in her whole person, a listless languor and tremulous suspense in the expression of her face. It is the precise look and air which 26Pope has given to his favourite Belinda, just at the moment of the Rape of the Lock. The heightened glow, the forward intelligence, and loosened soul of love in the same face, in the assignation scene before the masquerade, form a fine and instructive contrast to the delicacy, timidity, and coy reluctance expressed in the first. The Lawyer in both pictures is much the same—perhaps too much so—though even this unmoved, unaltered appearance may be designed as characteristic. In both cases he has ‘a person, and a smooth dispose, framed to make woman false.’ He is full of that easy good-humour and easy good opinion of himself, with which the sex are delighted. There is not a sharp angle in his face to obstruct his success, or give a hint of doubt or difficulty. His whole aspect is round and rosy, lively and unmeaning, happy without the least expense of thought, careless and inviting; and conveys a perfect idea of the uninterrupted glide and pleasing murmur of the soft periods that flow from his tongue.
The Bride, pursued by the Lawyer, has a similar grace in her pose and demeanor. There's an incredible flexibility and gentle softness in her entire being, a relaxed weariness and nervous anticipation in her expression. It's exactly the look and vibe that Pope captured in his beloved Belinda, right at that moment in the Rape of the Lock. The flushed cheeks, the eager expression, and the liberated essence of love on her face during the assignation scene before the masquerade create a striking and revealing contrast to the delicate, shy, and hesitant reluctance she showed earlier. The Lawyer in both depictions is quite similar—maybe too much so—but even this steady, unchanged demeanor might be meant to highlight his character. In both instances, he has "a person, and a smooth dispose, framed to make woman false." He exudes that effortless charm and comfortable self-assurance that women find appealing. There’s not a sharp feature on his face to hinder his success or suggest doubt or difficulty. His entire look is rounded and cheerful, lively yet lacking substance, happy without any mental strain, carefree and inviting; it perfectly reflects the smooth flow and pleasant sound of the easy words that come from his lips.
The expression of the Bride in the Morning Scene is the most highly seasoned, and at the same time the most vulgar in the series. The figure, face, and attitude of the Husband are inimitable. Hogarth has with great skill contrasted the pale countenance of the husband with the yellow whitish colour of the marble chimney-piece behind him, in such a manner as to preserve the fleshy tone of the former. The airy splendour of the view of the inner room in this picture is probably not exceeded by any of the productions of the Flemish School.
The Bride's expression in the Morning Scene is the most intense and, at the same time, the most crude in the series. The figure, face, and posture of the Husband are unmatched. Hogarth skillfully contrasts the husband's pale complexion with the yellowish-white color of the marble fireplace behind him, preserving the flesh tone of his face. The airy brilliance of the inner room view in this painting is probably surpassed by none of the works from the Flemish School.
The Young Girl in the third picture, who is represented as the victim of fashionable profligacy, is unquestionably one of the artist’s chef-d’œuvres. The exquisite delicacy of the painting is only surpassed by the felicity and subtlety of the conception. Nothing can be more striking than the contrast between the extreme softness of her person, and the hardened indifference of her character. The vacant stillness, the docility to vice, the premature suppression of youthful sensibility, the doll-like mechanism of the whole figure, which seems to have no other feeling but a sickly sense of pain,—shew the deepest insight into human nature, and into the effects of those refinements in depravity by which it has been good-naturedly asserted, that ‘vice loses half its evil in losing all its grossness.’ The story of this picture is in some parts very obscure and enigmatical. It is certain that the Nobleman is not looking straightforward to the Quack, whom he seems to have been threatening with his cane, but that his eyes are turned up with an ironical leer of triumph to the Procuress. The commanding attitude and size of this woman, the swelling circumference of her dress, spread out like a turkey-cock’s feathers,—the fierce, ungovernable, inveterate malignity of her countenance, 27which hardly needs the comment of the clasp-knife to explain her purpose, are all admirable in themselves, and still more so, as they are opposed to the mute insensibility, the elegant negligence of the dress, and the childish figure of the girl, who is supposed to be her protégée. As for the Quack, there can be no doubt entertained about him. His face seems as if it were composed of salve, and his features exhibit all the chaos and confusion of the most gross, ignorant, and impudent empiricism.
The young girl in the third picture, depicted as a victim of trendy excess, is definitely one of the artist's masterpieces. The painting's exquisite delicacy is only surpassed by the cleverness and subtlety of the idea. The contrast between her extreme softness and the hardened indifference of her character is striking. The vacant stillness, the submissiveness to vice, the early loss of youthful sensitivity, and the doll-like mechanics of her entire figure—which seems to express nothing but a sickly sense of pain—reveal a deep understanding of human nature and the effects of the sophisticated depravity that is often described as making ‘vice lose half its evil by losing all its grossness.' The story behind this picture is somewhat obscure and enigmatic. It's clear that the nobleman is not looking directly at the quack, whom he appears to threaten with his cane; instead, his eyes are rolled up with an ironic sneer of triumph directed at the procuress. The commanding stance and size of this woman, the expansive shape of her dress, spread out like a peacock's feathers—the fierce, uncontrollable malice in her expression, which hardly needs the visual aid of a clasp-knife to convey her intent—are all impressive on their own and even more so when contrasted with the muted insensitivity, the elegant neglect of the girl's attire, and her childlike form, which is assumed to be her protege. As for the quack, there’s no doubt about him. His face looks as if it were made of ointment, and his features reflect the chaos and confusion of the most blatant, ignorant, and shameless charlatanism.
The gradations of ridiculous affectation in the Music Scene are finely imagined and preserved. The preposterous, overstrained admiration of the Lady of Quality, the sentimental, insipid, patient delight of the Man with his hair in papers and sipping his tea,—the pert, smirking, conceited, half-distorted approbation of the figure next to him, the transition to the total insensibility of the round face in profile, and then to the wonder of the Negro-boy at the rapture of his Mistress, form a perfect whole. The sanguine complexion and flame-coloured hair of the female Virtuoso throw an additional light on the character. This is lost in the print. The continuing the red colour of the hair into the back of the chair has been pointed out as one of those instances of alliteration in colouring, of which these pictures are everywhere full. The gross bloated appearance of the Italian Singer is well relieved by the hard features of the instrumental performer behind him, which might be carved of wood. The Negro-boy, holding the chocolate, both in expression, colour, and execution, is a master-piece. The gay, lively derision of the other Negro boy, playing with the Actæon, is an ingenious contrast to the profound amazement of the first. Some account has already been given of the two lovers in this picture. It is curious to observe the infinite activity of mind which the artist displays on every occasion. An instance occurs in the present picture. He has so contrived the papers in the hair of the Bride, as to make them look almost like a wreath of half-blown flowers, while those which he has placed on the head of the musical Amateur very much resemble a cheveux-de-frise of horns, which adorn and fortify the lack-lustre expression and mild resignation of the face beneath.
The levels of absurd pretentiousness in the Music Scene are cleverly crafted and captured. The ridiculous, overly dramatic admiration of the high-class lady, the sentimental, bland, patient enjoyment of the man with his hair in curlers sipping his tea—the smug, self-satisfied, somewhat awkward approval from the person next to him, the shift to the complete oblivion of the round face in profile, and then to the amazement of the Black boy at the ecstasy of his Mistress create a perfect unity. The rosy complexion and fiery hair of the female Virtuoso add extra dimension to the character. This is lost in the print. The continuation of the red color of her hair into the back of the chair has been noted as one of those examples of color alliteration that these paintings are rich with. The swollen appearance of the Italian Singer is nicely balanced by the sharp features of the instrumental performer behind him, who could be made of wood. The Black boy holding the chocolate, in his expression, color, and execution, is a masterpiece. The cheerful, lively mockery of the other Black boy, playing with the Actæon, provides a clever contrast to the deep astonishment of the first. Some details have already been shared about the two lovers in this image. It's fascinating to see the endless creativity the artist demonstrates in every instance. An example appears in this painting. He has arranged the papers in the hair of the Bride so that they almost look like a wreath of half-bloomed flowers, while those on the head of the music lover strongly resemble a barbed wire made of horns, which enhance and support the dull expression and gentle resignation of the face underneath.
The Night Scene is inferior to the rest of the series. The attitude of the Husband, who is just killed, is one in which it would be impossible for him to stand or even to fall. It resembles the loose pasteboard figures they make for children. The characters in the last picture, in which the Wife dies, are all masterly. We would particularly refer to the captious, petulant self-sufficiency of the Apothecary, whose face and figure are constructed on exact physiognomical principles, and to the fine example of passive obedience and 28non-resistance in the Servant, whom he is taking to task, and whose coat of green and yellow livery is as long and melancholy as his face. The disconsolate look, the haggard eyes, the open mouth, the comb sticking in the hair, the broken, gapped teeth, which, as it were, hitch in an answer—every thing about him denotes the utmost perplexity and dismay. The harmony and gradations of colour in this picture are uniformly preserved with the greatest nicety, and are well worthy the attention of the artist.
The Night Scene isn’t as strong as the rest of the series. The Husband, who has just been killed, is in a position where it’s impossible for him to stand or even fall. He looks like one of those flimsy cardboard figures made for kids. The characters in the last scene, where the Wife dies, are all expertly done. We especially want to highlight the picky, irritable self-importance of the Apothecary, whose face and body are crafted based on precise physical traits, and the great example of passive obedience and non-resistance in the Servant, who he is scolding. The Servant’s green and yellow livery coat is as long and sorrowful as his expression. His despondent look, tired eyes, open mouth, hair with a comb stuck in it, and broken, uneven teeth – all of it shows sheer confusion and distress. The harmony and gradations of color in this image are consistently maintained with remarkable precision and deserve the artist’s attention.
No. 9.] THE SUBJECT CONTINUED [June 19, 1814.
It has been observed, that Hogarth’s pictures are exceedingly unlike any other representations of the same kind of subjects—that they form a class, and have a character, peculiar to themselves. It may be worth while to consider in what this general distinction consists.
It has been noted that Hogarth's paintings are very different from any other depictions of similar subjects—they create a category of their own and have a unique character. It might be worthwhile to think about what this overall distinction involves.
In the first place, they are, in the strictest sense, Historical pictures; and if what Fielding says be true, that his novel of Tom Jones ought to be regarded as an epic prose-poem, because it contained a regular developement of fable, manners, character, and passion, the compositions of Hogarth will, in like manner, be found to have a higher claim to the title of Epic Pictures than many which have of late arrogated that denomination to themselves. When we say that Hogarth treated his subjects historically, we mean that his works represent the manners and humours of mankind in action, and their characters by varied expression. Every thing in his pictures has life and motion in it. Not only does the business of the scene never stand still, but every feature and muscle is put into full play; the exact feeling of the moment is brought out, and carried to its utmost height, and then instantly seized and stamped on the canvass for ever. The expression is always taken en passant, in a state of progress or change, and, as it were, at the salient point. Besides the excellence of each individual face, the reflection of the expression from face to face, the contrast and struggle of particular motives and feelings in the different actors in the scene, as of anger, contempt, laughter, compassion, are conveyed in the happiest and most lively manner. His figures are not like the back-ground on which they are painted: even the pictures on the wall have a peculiar look of their own. Again, with the rapidity, variety, and scope of history, Hogarth’s heads have all the reality and correctness of portraits. He gives the extremes of character and expression, but he gives them with perfect truth and accuracy. This is, in fact, what distinguishes his compositions 29from all others of the same kind, that they are equally remote from caricature, and from mere still life. It of course happens in subjects from common life, that the painter can procure real models, and he can get them to sit as long as he pleases. Hence, in general, those attitudes and expressions have been chosen which could be assumed the longest; and in imitating which, the artist, by taking pains and time, might produce almost as complete fac-similes as he could of a flower or a flower-pot, of a damask curtain, or a china vase. The copy was as perfect and as uninteresting in the one case as in the other. On the contrary, subjects of drollery and ridicule affording frequent examples of strange deformity and peculiarity of features, these have been eagerly seized by another class of artists, who, without subjecting themselves to the laborious drudgery of the Dutch School and their imitators, have produced our popular caricatures, by rudely copying or exaggerating the casual irregularities of the human countenance. Hogarth has equally avoided the faults of both these styles, the insipid tameness of the one, and the gross vulgarity of the other, so as to give to the productions of his pencil equal solidity and effect. For his faces go to the very verge of caricature, and yet never (we believe in any single instance) go beyond it: they take the very widest latitude, and yet we always see the links which bind them to nature: they bear all the marks and carry all the conviction of reality with them, as if we had seen the actual faces for the first time, from the precision, consistency, and good sense, with which the whole and every part is made out. They exhibit the most uncommon features with the most uncommon expressions, but which are yet as familiar and intelligible as possible, because with all the boldness they have all the truth of nature. Hogarth has left behind him as many of these memorable faces, in their memorable moments, as perhaps most of us remember in the course of our lives, and has thus doubled the quantity of our observation.
In the first place, they are, in the strictest sense, Historical pictures; and if what Fielding says is true, that his novel Tom Jones should be seen as an epic prose poem, because it features a regular development of story, manners, character, and emotion, then Hogarth’s works can similarly be recognized as having a stronger claim to the title of Epic Pictures than many that have recently taken on that label. When we say that Hogarth dealt with his subjects historically, we mean that his works show the behaviors and moods of people in action, capturing their characters through varied expressions. Everything in his pictures is full of life and movement. Not only does the action of the scene never stop, but every feature and muscle is animated; the exact feeling of the moment is expressed, heightened to its peak, and then instantly captured and fixed on the canvas forever. The expression is always portrayed en passant, in a state of progress or change, almost at the critical moment. Besides the excellence of each individual face, the way expressions reflect from one face to another, the contrast and struggle of different motives and feelings among the characters in the scene—such as anger, contempt, laughter, and compassion—are conveyed in the most vivid and lively manner. His figures don’t blend into the background they are painted on: even the pictures on the wall have a distinct look of their own. Furthermore, with the speed, variety, and scope of history, Hogarth’s heads have all the reality and accuracy of portraits. He captures extremes of character and expression, but does so with perfect truth and precision. This is what sets his works apart from all others of the same kind; they are equally distant from caricature and from mere still life. It often happens in scenes from everyday life that the painter can find real models and have them pose for as long as necessary. Therefore, in general, those postures and expressions that could be held the longest are chosen; and by putting in effort and time, the artist might create almost complete reproductions as he could of a flower or a flowerpot, a damask curtain, or a porcelain vase. The copy was equally perfect and uninteresting in one case as it was in the other. On the other hand, subjects of humor and ridicule often provide examples of strange deformity and peculiar features, which have been eagerly embraced by a different group of artists, who, avoiding the tedious work of the Dutch School and their followers, have produced our popular caricatures by roughly copying or exaggerating the random irregularities of the human face. Hogarth successfully avoids the shortcomings of both styles, the blandness of one, and the crudeness of the other, giving his works equal substance and impact. His faces come very close to caricature, yet never (we believe in any single case) cross that line: they explore an extensive range, yet we still see the connections that tie them to reality; they bear all the signs and convey all the certainty of reality as if we were seeing the actual faces for the first time, due to the precision, consistency, and common sense with which the whole and each part is rendered. They showcase the most unusual features with the most distinctive expressions, yet remain as familiar and understandable as possible, because despite their boldness, they embody all the truth of nature. Hogarth has left behind as many of these memorable faces, in their significant moments, as most of us might recall throughout our lives, thereby enriching the depth of our observation.
We have, in a former paper, attempted to point out the fund of observation, physical and moral, contained in one set of these pictures, the Marriage a-la-Mode. The rest would furnish as many topics to descant upon, were the patience of the reader as inexhaustible as the painter’s invention. But as this is not the case, we shall content ourselves with barely referring to some of those figures in the other pictures, which appear the most striking, and which we see not only while we are looking at them, but which we have before us at all other times. For instance, who having seen can easily forget that exquisite frost-piece of religion and morality, the antiquated Prude in the Morning Scene; or that striking commentary on the good old 30times, the little wretched appendage of a Foot-boy, who crawls half famished and half frozen behind her? The French Man and Woman in the Noon are the perfection of flighty affectation and studied grimace; the amiable fraternisation of the two old Women saluting each other is not enough to be admired; and in the little Master, in the same national group, we see the early promise and personification of that eternal principle of wondrous self-complacency, proof against all circumstances, and which makes the French the only people who are vain even of being cuckolded and being conquered! Or shall we prefer to this the outrageous distress and unmitigated terrors of the Boy, who has dropped his dish of meat, and who seems red all over with shame and vexation, and bursting with the noise he makes? Or what can be better than the good housewifery of the Girl underneath, who is devouring the lucky fragments, or than the plump, ripe, florid, luscious look of the Servant-wench, embraced by a greasy rascal of an Othello, with her pye-dish tottering like her virtue, and with the most precious part of its contents running over? Just—no, not quite—as good is the joke of the Woman over-head, who, having quarrelled with her husband, is throwing their Sunday’s dinner out of the window, to complete this chapter of accidents of baked-dishes. The Husband in the Evening Scene is certainly as meek as any recorded in history; but we cannot say that we admire this picture, or the Night Scene after it. But then, in the Taste in High Life, there is that inimitable pair, differing only in sex, congratulating and delighting one another by ‘all the mutually reflected charities’ of folly and affectation, with the young Lady coloured like a rose, dandling her little, black, pug-faced, white-teethed, chuckling favourite, and with the portrait of Mons. Des Noyers in the back-ground, dancing in a grand ballet, surrounded by butterflies. And again, in the Election Dinner, is the immortal Cobler, surrounded by his Peers, who, ‘frequent and full,’—
We previously tried to highlight the deep insights, both physical and moral, found in one collection of these artworks, the Marriage a-la-Mode. There are plenty of other topics to discuss, if the reader's patience were as endless as the painter's creativity. But since that’s not the case, we'll simply mention some of the more notable figures in the other paintings, ones that stay in our minds even when we’re not looking at them. For example, who can easily forget the striking representation of religion and morality in the outdated Prude from the Morning Scene; or the sad little Foot-boy, who crawls behind her, half-starved and half-frozen? The French Man and Woman at Noon perfectly embody over-the-top affectation and exaggerated expressions; the charming interaction between the two old Women greeting each other deserves admiration; and in the little Master from the same national group, we see the early signs of that persistent self-satisfaction that makes the French unique in their vanity, even in defeat or humiliation! Or shall we focus instead on the Boy, who has dropped his dish of meat and looks completely red with shame and frustration, making a scene? What could be better than the resourcefulness of the Girl below, who is munching on the fallen scraps, or the plump and lively Servant girl, embraced by a greasy rascal of an Othello, with her pie dish wobbling like her virtue, spilling its most precious contents? Almost as good is the Woman above, who, after arguing with her husband, is throwing their Sunday dinner out the window, adding to this comical disaster of baked dishes. The Husband in the Evening Scene is certainly as meek as any in history; however, we can't say we admire this painting or the subsequent Night Scene. Yet, in the Taste in High Life, there's that unmatched pair, differing only by gender, congratulating and enjoying each other's company through ‘all the mutually reflected charities’ of foolishness and pretense, with the young Lady blushing like a rose, playing with her little black pug-faced, white-toothed, chuckling pet, while in the background, Mons. Des Noyers dances in a grand ballet, surrounded by butterflies. And again, in the Election Dinner, is the legendary Cobbler, surrounded by his Peers, who, ‘frequent and full,’—
the Jew in the second picture, a very Jew in grain—innumerable fine sketches of heads in the Polling for Votes, of which the Nobleman overlooking the caricaturist is the best; and then the irresistible tumultuous display of broad humour in the Chairing the Member, which is, perhaps, of all Hogarth’s pictures, the most full of laughable incidents and situations—the yellow, rusty-faced thresher, with his swinging flail, breaking the head of one of the Chairmen, and his redoubted antagonist, the Sailor, with his oak-stick, and stumping wooden leg, a supplemental cudgel—the persevering ecstasy of the hobbling Blind Fiddler, who, in the fray, appears to have been trod 31upon by the artificial excrescence of the honest Tar—Monsieur, the Monkey, with piteous aspect, speculating the impending disaster of the triumphant candidate, and his brother Bruin, appropriating the paunch—the precipitous flight of the Pigs, souse over head into the water, the fine Lady fainting, with vermilion lips, and the two Chimney-sweepers, satirical young rogues! We had almost forgot the Politician who is burning a hole through his hat with a candle in reading the newspaper; and the Chickens, in the March to Finchley, wandering in search of their lost dam, who is found in the pocket of the Serjeant. Of the pictures in the Rake’s Progress in this collection, we shall not here say any thing, because we think them, on the whole, inferior to the prints, and because they have already been criticised by a writer, to whom we could add nothing, in a paper which ought to be read by every lover of Hogarth and of English genius.[35]
the Jewish man in the second picture, truly a Jew in essence—countless detailed sketches of faces in the Polling for Votes, with the Nobleman watching the caricaturist being the standout; and then the irresistibly chaotic display of broad humor in the Chairing the Member, which may be the most entertaining of all Hogarth’s works, filled with hilarious incidents and situations—the yellow, rusty-faced thresher, swinging his flail and hitting one of the Chairmen, and his formidable opponent, the Sailor, with his oak stick and wooden leg serving as an extra weapon—the relentless joy of the limping Blind Fiddler, who seems to have been stepped on by the honest Tar’s artificial leg—Monsieur, the Monkey, looking worried as he anticipates the impending disaster for the winning candidate, and his brother Bruin, taking advantage of the situation—the pigs plunging headfirst into the water, the elegant Lady fainting with bright red lips, and the two Chimney sweepers, cheeky young scoundrels! We almost forgot the Politician burning a hole in his hat with a candle while reading the newspaper; and the Chickens, in the March to Finchley, wandering in search of their lost mother, who is found in the pocket of the Sergeant. We won’t comment on the pictures in the Rake’s Progress in this collection, as we believe they are generally inferior to the prints, and because they have already been critiqued by a writer who offered insights we couldn’t add to, in an article that should be read by every fan of Hogarth and English creativity.[35]
No. 10.] ON MILTON’S LYCIDAS [Aug. 6, 1815.
Of all Milton’s smaller poems, Lycidas is the greatest favourite with us. We cannot agree to the charge which Dr. Johnson has brought against it, of pedantry and want of feeling. It is the fine emanation of classical sentiment in a youthful scholar—‘most musical, most melancholy.’ A certain tender gloom overspreads it, a wayward abstraction, a forgetfulness of his subject in the serious reflections that arise out of it. The gusts of passion come and go like the sounds of music borne on the wind. The loss of the friend whose death he laments seems to have recalled, with double force, the reality of those speculations which they had indulged together; we are transported to classic ground, and a mysterious strain steals responsive on the ear while we listen to the poet,
Of all of Milton's shorter poems, Lycidas is our favorite. We can't agree with Dr. Johnson's criticism that it lacks depth and emotion. It beautifully expresses classical sentiment through a young scholar—‘most musical, most melancholy.’ There’s a gentle sadness that permeates it, a whimsical distraction, a forgetfulness of the subject in the serious thoughts it inspires. The waves of passion rise and fall like music carried by the wind. The loss of his friend, whose death he mourns, seems to have intensified the reality of the ideas they shared; we’re transported to a classical landscape, and a haunting melody resonates in our ears as we listen to the poet.
We shall proceed to give a few passages at length in support of our opinion. The first we shall quote is as remarkable for the truth and 32sweetness of the natural descriptions as for the characteristic elegance of the allusions:
We will now present a few excerpts in full to support our view. The first one we’ll quote is notable for both the accuracy and beauty of its natural descriptions, as well as the distinct elegance of its references:
After the fine apostrophe on Fame which Phœbus is invoked to utter, the poet proceeds:
After the great statement on Fame that Phœbus is called to express, the poet continues:
If this is art, it is perfect art; nor do we wish for anything better. The measure of the verse, the very sound of the names, would almost 33produce the effect here described. To ask the poet not to make use of such allusions as these, is to ask the painter not to dip in the colours of the rainbow, if he could. In fact, it is the common cant of criticism to consider every allusion to the classics, and particularly in a mind like Milton’s, as pedantry and affectation. Habit is a second nature; and, in this sense, the pedantry (if it is to be called so) of the scholastic enthusiast, who is constantly referring to images of which his mind is full, is as graceful as it is natural. It is not affectation in him to recur to ideas and modes of expression, with which he has the strongest associations, and in which he takes the greatest delight. Milton was as conversant with the world of genius before him as with the world of nature about him; the fables of the ancient mythology were as familiar to him as his dreams. To be a pedant, is to see neither the beauties of nature nor of art. Milton saw both; and he made use of the one only to adorn and give new interest to the other. He was a passionate admirer of nature; and, in a single couplet of his, describing the moon,—
If this is art, it’s perfect art, and we don’t want anything better. The rhythm of the verse, even the sound of the names, would almost create the effect described here. Asking the poet not to use allusions like these is like asking the painter not to use rainbow colors if he could. In fact, critics often claim that every reference to the classics, especially in a mind like Milton’s, is just snobbery and pretentiousness. Habit is a second nature, and in this regard, the enthusiasm of the scholar who frequently refers to images that fill his mind is both graceful and natural. It’s not pretentious for him to draw on ideas and expressions that he associates strongly with and finds immense joy in. Milton was as familiar with the world of genius around him as he was with the natural world; the stories of ancient mythology were as known to him as his own dreams. Being a pedant means not seeing the beauty in nature or art. Milton appreciated both, and he used one to enhance and give new life to the other. He was a passionate lover of nature; and, in one of his couplets describing the moon,—
there is more intense observation, and intense feeling of nature (as if he had gazed himself blind in looking at her), than in twenty volumes of descriptive poetry. But he added to his own observation of nature the splendid fictions of ancient genius, enshrined her in the mysteries of ancient religion, and celebrated her with the pomp of ancient names.
there is a stronger observation and deeper appreciation of nature (as if he had looked so hard at her that he became blind), than in twenty volumes of descriptive poetry. But he combined his own observations of nature with the incredible stories of ancient genius, placed her within the mysteries of ancient religion, and honored her with the grandeur of ancient names.
There is a wonderful correspondence in the rhythm of these lines to the idea which they convey. This passage, which alludes to the clerical character of Lycidas, has been found fault with, as combining the truths of the Christian religion with the fictions of the heathen mythology. We conceive there is very little foundation for this objection, either in reason or good taste. We will not go so far as to defend Camoens, who, in his Lusiad, makes Jupiter send Mercury with a dream to propagate the Catholic religion; nor do we know that it is generally proper to introduce the two things in the same 34poem, though we see no objection to it here; but of this we are quite sure, that there is no inconsistency or natural repugnance between this poetical and religious faith in the same mind. To the understanding, the belief of the one is incompatible with that of the other; but in the imagination, they not only may, but do constantly co-exist. We will venture to go farther, and maintain, that every classical scholar, however orthodox a Christian he may be, is an honest Heathen at heart. This requires explanation. Whoever, then, attaches a reality to any idea beyond the mere name, has, to a certain extent, (though not an abstract), an habitual and practical belief in it. Now, to any one familiar with the names of the personages of the Heathen mythology, they convey a positive identity beyond the mere name. We refer them to something out of ourselves. It is only by an effort of abstraction that we divest ourselves of the idea of their reality; all our involuntary prejudices are on their side. This is enough for the poet. They impose on the imagination by all the attractions of beauty and grandeur. They come down to us in sculpture and in song. We have the same associations with them, as if they had really been; for the belief of the fiction in ancient times has produced all the same effects as the reality could have done. It was a reality to the minds of the ancient Greeks and Romans, and through them it is reflected to us. And, as we shape towers, and men, and armed steeds, out of the broken clouds that glitter in the distant horizon, so, throned above the ruins of the ancient world, Jupiter still nods sublime on the top of blue Olympus, Hercules leans upon his club, Apollo has not laid aside his bow, nor Neptune his trident; the sea-gods ride upon the sounding waves, the long procession of heroes and demi-gods passes in endless review before us, and still we hear
There’s a great connection between the rhythm of these lines and the idea they express. This passage, which refers to the clerical aspect of Lycidas, has faced criticism for mixing the truths of Christianity with the fictions of pagan mythology. We believe there’s little basis for this objection, either logically or tastefully. We won’t go so far as to defend Camoens, who, in his Lusiad, has Jupiter send Mercury with a dream to spread the Catholic faith; nor do we think it’s generally appropriate to mix the two in the same 34 poem, though we see no issue with it here. However, we are certain that there’s no inconsistency or natural conflict between poetic and religious beliefs within the same individual. Logically, believing in one contradicts believing in the other; but in the realm of imagination, they can, and often do, coexist. We’ll go further and argue that every classical scholar, no matter how orthodox a Christian they may be, has a bit of a pagan spirit at heart. This needs some clarification. Anyone who gives reality to any idea beyond just a name has, to some extent (though not abstractly), a consistent and practical belief in it. Now, for anyone familiar with the names of figures from pagan mythology, those names represent something real beyond just the name itself. They remind us of something outside ourselves. It takes a conscious effort to separate ourselves from the idea of their reality; all our involuntary biases lean in their favor. That’s enough for the poet. They captivate our imagination with their beauty and grandeur. They come down to us through sculpture and song. We associate with them as if they truly existed, because the belief in these fictions in ancient times has had the same effects as their actual existence could have had. It was real to the minds of ancient Greeks and Romans, and through them, it reflects to us. Just as we form towers, people, and armored horses from the broken clouds that sparkle on the far horizon, so, seated above the ruins of the ancient world, Jupiter still majestically overlooks the blue Olympus, Hercules rests on his club, Apollo hasn’t put down his bow, and Neptune still holds his trident; the sea gods ride the roaring waves, the long line of heroes and demigods passes before us in an endless parade, and we still hear
If all these mighty fictions had really existed, they could have done no more for us! We shall only give one other passage from Lycidas; but we flatter ourselves that it will be a treat to our readers, if they are not already familiar with it. It is the passage which contains that exquisite description of the flowers:
If all these powerful stories had actually existed, they couldn't have done more for us! We'll only share one other excerpt from Lycidas; but we believe it will be a delight for our readers, if they haven't come across it before. It's the part that features that beautiful description of the flowers:
Dr. Johnson is very much offended at the introduction of these Dolphins; and indeed, if he had had to guide them through the waves, he would have made much the same figure as his old friend Dr. Burney does, swimming in the Thames with his wig on, with the water-nymphs, in the picture by Barry at the Adelphi.
Dr. Johnson is really upset about the addition of these Dolphins; and honestly, if he had to lead them through the waves, he would have looked just like his old friend Dr. Burney does, swimming in the Thames with his wig on, alongside the water-nymphs in that painting by Barry at the Adelphi.
There is a description of flowers in the Winter’s Tale, which we shall give as a parallel to Milton’s. We shall leave it to the reader to decide which is the finest; for we dare not give the preference. Perdita says,
There is a description of flowers in the Winter’s Tale, which we will provide as a comparison to Milton’s. We’ll let the reader determine which is the best; we wouldn’t want to show any favoritism. Perdita says,
Dr. Johnson’s general remark, that Milton’s genius had not room to show itself in his smaller pieces, is not well-founded. Not to mention Lycidas, the Allegro, and Penseroso, it proceeds on a false estimate of the merits of his great work, which is not more distinguished by strength and sublimity than by tenderness and beauty. The last were as essential qualities of Milton’s mind as the first. The battle of the angels, which has been commonly considered as the best part of the Paradise Lost, is the worst.
Dr. Johnson’s general statement that Milton's genius didn’t have the space to shine in his shorter works isn’t accurate. Aside from Lycidas, Allegro, and Penseroso, it’s based on a mistaken view of the value of his major work, which is equally noted for its tenderness and beauty as it is for strength and grandeur. The latter qualities were just as fundamental to Milton’s character as the former. The battle of the angels, often regarded as the highlight of the Paradise Lost, is actually the weakest part.
No. 11.] ON MILTON’S VERSIFICATION [Aug. 20, 1815.
Milton’s works are a perpetual invocation to the Muses; a hymn to Fame. His religious zeal infused its character into his imagination; and he devotes himself with the same sense of duty to the cultivation of his genius, as he did to the exercise of virtue, or the good of his country. He does not write from casual impulse, but after a severe examination of his own strength, and with a determination to leave nothing undone which it is in his power to do. He always labours, and he almost always succeeds. He strives to say the finest things in the world, and he does say them. He adorns and dignifies his subject to the utmost. He surrounds it with all the possible associations of beauty or grandeur, whether moral, or physical, or intellectual. He refines on his descriptions of beauty, till the sense almost aches 37at them, and raises his images of terror to a gigantic elevation, that ‘makes Ossa like a wart.’ He has a high standard, with which he is constantly comparing himself, and nothing short of which can satisfy him:
Milton's works continually call upon the Muses; they celebrate Fame. His religious passion shapes his creativity; he dedicates himself to nurturing his talent with the same commitment he shows towards virtue and the welfare of his country. He doesn't write just on a whim but after carefully evaluating his capabilities, determined to leave no stone unturned in what he can achieve. He works tirelessly, and almost always finds success. He aims to express the most beautiful ideas in the world, and he accomplishes that. He embellishes and elevates his subjects to their fullest potential. He surrounds them with every possible association of beauty or greatness, whether moral, physical, or intellectual. He refines his depictions of beauty until they almost cause a sense of pain, and he lifts his terrifying images to such heights that they make Ossa seem like a mere bump. He holds himself to a high standard, consistently measuring himself against it, and nothing less can satisfy him:
Milton has borrowed more than any other writer; yet he is perfectly distinct from every other writer. The power of his mind is stamped on every line. He is a writer of centos, and yet in originality only inferior to Homer. The quantity of art shews the strength of his genius; so much art would have overloaded any other writer. Milton’s learning has all the effect of intuition. He describes objects of which he had only read in books, with the vividness of actual observation. His imagination has the force of nature. He makes words tell as pictures:
Milton has borrowed more than any other writer; yet he stands out as completely unique. The power of his mind is evident in every line. He is a writer of centos, but in terms of originality, he is only second to Homer. The amount of technique he employs highlights the strength of his genius; so much craft would have overwhelmed any other writer. Milton’s knowledge feels like intuition. He describes things he’s only read about with the brightness of real experience. His imagination has a natural force. He makes words convey images:
And again:
And once more:
Such passages may be considered as demonstrations of history. Instances might be multiplied without end. There is also a decided tone in his descriptions, an eloquent dogmatism, as if the poet spoke from thorough conviction, which Milton probably derived from his spirit of partisanship, or else his spirit of partisanship from the natural firmness and vehemence of his mind. In this Milton resembles Dante, (the only one of the moderns with whom he has anything in common), and it is remarkable that Dante, as well as Milton, was a political partisan. That approximation to the severity of impassioned 38prose which has been made an objection to Milton’s poetry, is one of its chief excellencies. It has been suggested, that the vividness with which he describes visible objects, might be owing to their having acquired a greater strength in his mind after the privation of sight; but we find the same palpableness and solidity in the descriptions which occur in his early poems. There is, indeed, the same depth of impression in his descriptions of the objects of the other senses. Milton had as much of what is meant by gusto as any poet. He forms the most intense conceptions of things, and then embodies them by a single stroke of his pen. Force of style is perhaps his first excellence. Hence he stimulates us most in the reading, and less afterwards.
Such passages can be seen as demonstrations of history. Countless examples could be provided. There's also a strong tone in his descriptions, an eloquent certainty, as if the poet is speaking from deep conviction, which Milton likely got from his partisanship, or vice versa, his partisanship stemming from the natural strength and intensity of his mind. In this way, Milton is similar to Dante, (the only modern poet with whom he shares anything in common), and it's notable that Dante, like Milton, was also a political supporter. The similarity to the intensity of passionate prose that some criticize in Milton’s poetry is actually one of its key strengths. Some have suggested that the vividness with which he describes visual objects might come from the heightened impression they made on him after losing his sight; however, we see the same clarity and solidity in the descriptions from his early poems. In fact, there is a similar depth of impression in his descriptions of objects related to the other senses. Milton had as much of what is meant by enthusiasm as any poet. He forms the most intense ideas of things and then captures them with a single stroke of his pen. The power of his style is probably his greatest strength. Thus, he inspires us most while reading, and less so afterward.
It has been said that Milton’s ideas were musical rather than picturesque, but this observation is not true, in the sense in which it was meant. The ear, indeed, predominates over the eye, because it is more immediately affected, and because the language of music blends more immediately with, and forms a more natural accompaniment to, the variable and indefinite associations of ideas conveyed by words. But where the associations of the imagination are not the principal thing, the individual object is given by Milton with equal force and beauty. The strongest and best proof of this, as a characteristic power of his mind, is, that the persons of Adam and Eve, of Satan, etc., are always accompanied, in our imagination, with the grandeur of the naked figure; they convey to us the ideas of sculpture. As an instance, take the following:
It’s been said that Milton’s ideas were more about music than visuals, but that’s not true in the way it was intended. The ear does dominate over the eye because it’s more immediately impacted, and the language of music blends more seamlessly with, and serves as a more natural accompaniment to, the shifting and vague associations of ideas conveyed by words. However, when the associations of imagination aren’t the main focus, Milton presents the individual objects with equal strength and beauty. The strongest proof of this, showcasing a distinctive power of his mind, is that the characters of Adam and Eve, Satan, and others, always come to mind alongside the grandeur of their naked forms; they evoke thoughts of sculpture. For example, consider the following:
The figures introduced here have all the elegance and precision of a Greek statue.
The figures presented here have all the elegance and precision of a Greek statue.
Milton’s blank verse is the only blank verse in the language (except Shakspeare’s) which is readable. Dr. Johnson, who had modelled his ideas of versification on the regular sing-song of Pope, condemns the Paradise Lost as harsh and unequal. We shall not pretend to say that this is not sometimes the case; for where a degree of excellence beyond the mechanical rules of art is attempted the poet must sometimes fail. But we imagine that there are more perfect examples in Milton of musical expression, or of an adaptation of the sound and movement of the verse to the meaning of the passage, than in all our other writers, whether of rhyme or blank verse, put together, (with the exception already mentioned). Spenser is the most harmonious of our poets, and Dryden is the most sounding and varied of our rhymists. But in neither is there anything like the same ear for music, the same power of approximating the varieties of poetical to those of musical rhythm, as there is in our great epic poet. The sound of his lines is moulded into the expression of the sentiment, almost of the very image. They rise or fall, pause or hurry rapidly on, with exquisite art, but without the least trick or affectation, as the occasion seems to require.
Milton’s blank verse is the only one in the language (except for Shakespeare’s) that is truly readable. Dr. Johnson, who based his ideas of poetry on the regular sing-song style of Pope, criticizes Paradise Lost as harsh and uneven. We won’t pretend that this isn’t sometimes true; indeed, when a poet attempts to achieve excellence beyond the mechanical rules of art, they might fail at times. However, we believe there are more perfect examples in Milton of musical expression, or of matching the sound and rhythm of the verse to the meaning of the text, than in all our other writers, whether in rhyme or blank verse, combined (except for the previously mentioned). Spenser is the most harmonious of our poets, and Dryden is the most resonant and varied of our rhymers. But neither of them has the same ear for music, nor the same ability to align the varieties of poetic rhythm with those of musical rhythm, as our great epic poet does. The sound of his lines is shaped to express the sentiment, almost to embody the very image. They rise or fall, pause or rush forward with incredible skill, but without any contrived tricks or pretentiousness, depending on what the moment requires.
The following are some of the finest instances:
The following are some of the best examples:
We can only give another instance; though we have some difficulty in leaving off. ‘What a pity,’ said an ingenious person of our acquaintance, ‘that Milton had not the pleasure of reading Paradise Lost!’—
We can only give another example; though we have a hard time stopping. ‘What a shame,’ said a clever person we know, ‘that Milton never got to enjoy Paradise Lost!’—
The verse, in this exquisitely modulated passage, floats up and down as if it had itself wings. Milton has himself given us the theory of his versification.
The verse, in this beautifully crafted passage, flows up and down as if it has its own wings. Milton has provided us with the theory behind his verse structure.
Dr. Johnson and Pope would have converted his vaulting Pegasus into a rocking-horse. Read any other blank verse but Milton’s,—Thomson’s, Young’s, Cowper’s, Wordsworth’s,—and it will be found, 41from the want of the same insight into ‘the hidden soul of harmony,’ to be mere lumbering prose.
Dr. Johnson and Pope would have turned his soaring Pegasus into a rocking horse. Read any other blank verse besides Milton’s—Thomson’s, Young’s, Cowper’s, Wordsworth’s—and you’ll find that, lacking the same insight into ‘the hidden soul of harmony,’ it comes off as just clumsy prose. 41
Sir,—It is somewhat remarkable, that in Pope’s Essay on Criticism (not a very long poem) there are no less than half a score couplets rhyming to the word sense.
Dude,—It's kind of interesting that in Pope’s Essay on Criticism (not a very long poem), there are at least ten couplets that rhyme with the word sense.
No. 12.] ON MANNER [Aug. 27, 1815. [Sep 3, 1815.
It was the opinion of Lord Chesterfield, that manner is of more importance than matter. This opinion seems at least to be warranted by the practice of the world; nor do we think it so entirely without foundation as some persons of more solid than showy pretensions would make us believe. In the remarks which we are going to make, we can scarcely hope to have any party very warmly on our side; for the most superficial coxcomb would be thought to owe his success to sterling merit.
It was Lord Chesterfield's view that how you present yourself is more important than what you say. This perspective seems to be supported by real-life experiences; we don’t believe it's as unfounded as some who are more focused on substance than style would suggest. In the points we’re about to make, we can hardly expect to have anyone very passionately on our side, because even the most superficial show-off is often seen as succeeding due to genuine talent.
What any person says or does is one thing; the mode in which 42he says or does it is another. The last of these is what we understand by manner. In other words, manner is the involuntary or incidental expression given to our thoughts and sentiments by looks, tones, and gestures. Now, we are inclined in many cases to prefer this latter mode of judging of what passes in the mind to more positive and formal proof, were it for no other reason than that it is involuntary. ‘Look,’ says Lord Chesterfield, ‘in the face of the person to whom you are speaking, if you wish to know his real sentiments; for he can command his words more easily than his countenance.’ We may perform certain actions from design, or repeat certain professions by rote: the manner of doing either will in general be the best test of our sincerity. The mode of conferring a favour is often thought of more value than the favour itself. The actual obligation may spring from a variety of questionable motives, vanity, affectation, or interest: the cordiality with which the person from whom you have received it asks you how you do, or shakes you by the hand, does not admit of misinterpretation. The manner of doing any thing, is that which marks the degree and force of our internal impressions; it emanates most directly from our immediate or habitual feelings; it is that which stamps its life and character on any action; the rest may be performed by an automaton. What is it that makes the difference between the best and the worst actor, but the manner of going through the same part? The one has a perfect idea of the degree and force with which certain feelings operate in nature, and the other has no idea at all of the workings of passion. There would be no difference between the worst actor in the world and the best, placed in real circumstances, and under the influence of real passion. A writer may express the thoughts he has borrowed from another, but not with the same force, unless he enters into the true spirit of them. Otherwise he will resemble a person reading what he does not understand, whom you immediately detect by his wrong emphasis. His illustrations will be literally exact, but misplaced and awkward; he will not gradually warm with his subject, nor feel the force of what he says, nor produce the same effect on his readers. An author’s style is not less a criterion of his understanding than his sentiments. The same story told by two different persons shall, from the difference of the manner, either set the table in a roar, or not relax a feature in the whole company. We sometimes complain (perhaps rather unfairly) that particular persons possess more vivacity than wit. But we ought to take into the account, that their very vivacity arises from their enjoying the joke; and their humouring a story by drollery of gesture or archness of look, shews only that they are acquainted with the different ways in which the sense of the 43ludicrous expresses itself. It is not the mere dry jest, but the relish which the person himself has of it, with which we sympathise. For in all that tends to pleasure and excitement, the capacity for enjoyment is the principal point. One of the most pleasant and least tiresome persons of our acquaintance is a humourist, who has three or four quaint witticisms and proverbial phrases, which he always repeats over and over; but he does this with just the same vivacity and freshness as ever, so that you feel the same amusement with less effort than if he had startled his hearers with a succession of original conceits. Another friend of ours, who never fails to give vent to one or two real jeu-d’esprits every time you meet him, from the pain with which he is delivered of them, and the uneasiness he seems to suffer all the rest of the time, makes a much more interesting than comfortable companion. If you see a person in pain for himself, it naturally puts you in pain for him. The art of pleasing consists in being pleased. To be amiable is to be satisfied with one’s self and others. Good-humour is essential to pleasantry. It is this circumstance, among others, that renders the wit of Rabelais so much more delightful than that of Swift, who, with all his satire, is ‘as dry as the remainder biscuit after a voyage.’ In society, good-temper and animal spirits are nearly everything. They are of more importance than sallies of wit, or refinements of understanding. They give a general tone of cheerfulness and satisfaction to the company. The French have the advantage over us in external manners. They breathe a lighter air, and have a brisker circulation of the blood. They receive and communicate their impressions more freely. The interchange of ideas costs them less. Their constitutional gaiety is a kind of natural intoxication, which does not require any other stimulus. The English are not so well off in this respect; and Falstaff’s commendation on sack was evidently intended for his countrymen,—whose ‘learning is often a mere hoard of gold kept by a devil, till wine commences it, and sets it in act and use.’[36] More undertakings fail for want of spirit than for want of sense. Confidence gives a fool the advantage over a wise man. In general, a strong passion for any object will ensure success, for the desire of the end will point out the means. We apprehend that people usually complain, without reason, of not succeeding in various pursuits according to their deserts. Such persons, we 44will grant, may have great merit in all other respects; but in that in which they fail, it will almost invariably hold true, that they do not deserve to succeed. For instance, a person who has spent his life in thinking will acquire a habit of reflection; but he will neither become a dancer nor a singer, rich nor beautiful. In like manner, if any one complains of not succeeding in affairs of gallantry, we will venture to say, it is because he is not gallant. He has mistaken his talent—that’s all. If any person of exquisite sensibility makes love awkwardly, it is because he does not feel it as he should. One of these disappointed sentimentalists may very probably feel it upon reflection, may brood over it till he has worked himself up to a pitch of frenzy, and write his mistress the finest love-letters in the world, in her absence; but, be assured, he does not feel an atom of this passion in her presence. If, in paying her a compliment, he frowns with more than usual severity, or, in presenting her with a bunch of flowers, seems as if he was going to turn his back upon her, he can only expect to be laughed at for his pains; nor can he plead an excess of feeling as an excuse for want of common sense. She may say, ‘It is not with me you are in love, but with the ridiculous chimeras of your own brain. You are thinking of Sophia Western, or some other heroine, and not of me. Go and make love to your romances.’
What someone says or does is one thing; how they say or do it is another. The latter is what we mean by manner. In other words, manner is the involuntary or incidental expression we give to our thoughts and feelings through looks, tones, and gestures. In many cases, we tend to prefer this way of judging what’s going on in someone’s mind to more concrete and formal proof, if for no other reason than that it is involuntary. “Look,” says Lord Chesterfield, “into the face of the person you’re speaking to, if you want to know their real feelings; because they can control their words more easily than their facial expressions.” We might do certain things on purpose or recite certain things by memory: the way we do either is generally the best indicator of our sincerity. The way a favor is given often seems more valuable than the favor itself. The actual obligation might come from various questionable motives like vanity, show, or self-interest: the warmth with which the person who helped you asks how you are or shakes your hand can’t be misinterpreted. The manner of doing anything shows the degree and intensity of our internal feelings; it comes most directly from our immediate or habitual emotions; it is what gives life and character to any action; the rest could be done by a robot. What distinguishes the best actor from the worst? It’s the manner in which they perform the same role. One understands the level and strength of certain feelings in nature, while the other has no clue about the workings of passion. There would be no difference between the worst actor and the best if they were in real situations, influenced by real feelings. A writer can express thoughts borrowed from someone else, but not with the same impact, unless they truly capture the spirit of those thoughts. Otherwise, they’ll resemble someone reading without understanding, and you'll notice this by their incorrect emphasis. Their examples may be literally correct but awkwardly placed; they won’t gradually engage with their topic, nor feel the weight of what they say, nor have the same effect on their readers. An author’s style is as much a measure of their understanding as their thoughts. The same story told by two different people can either cause everyone to burst out laughing or leave the whole group completely still, due to the difference in their manner. Sometimes we complain (perhaps unfairly) that some people have more energy than wit. But we should consider that their energy comes from their enjoyment of the joke; their playful gestures or mischievous looks only show that they understand the different ways humor can be expressed. It’s not just the dry joke, but the enjoyment the person has of it that resonates with us. In everything that brings joy and excitement, the ability to enjoy is the key. One of the most delightful and least tiring people we know is a humorist who has three or four quirky jokes and phrases that he repeats over and over; but he does this with the same energy and freshness every time, so you feel the same amusement with less effort than if he overwhelmed his listeners with a stream of original ideas. Another friend of ours, who always manages to share a real witty piece every time you see him, seems so pained when doing so and appears uncomfortable the rest of the time, making him a much more interesting than enjoyable companion. When you see someone in distress, it naturally causes you distress for them. The art of pleasing lies in being pleased. To be charming is to be content with oneself and others. Good humor is essential to enjoyment. This is one reason why Rabelais’s wit is so much more enjoyable than Swift’s, who, with all his satire, is “as dry as the last biscuit after a voyage.” In society, being easygoing and lively is almost everything. They are more important than bursts of wit or intellectual refinement. They give a general sense of cheerfulness and satisfaction to the group. The French have an advantage over us in terms of social manners. They exist in a lighter environment, with a livelier energy. They share and receive their impressions more freely. The exchange of ideas is less costly for them. Their natural cheerfulness is like a built-in high, needing no other boost. The English don’t fare as well in this aspect; and Falstaff’s praise of sack was clearly intended for his fellow countrymen—whose “knowledge is often just a stash of gold guarded by a devil, until wine brings it to life and puts it into action.” More efforts fail due to a lack of spirit than due to a lack of intelligence. Confidence gives a fool an edge over a wise man. Generally, a strong passion for any goal will guarantee success, for the drive for the outcome will indicate the means. We believe that people often complain, without cause, about not succeeding in various endeavors relative to their talents. While these people might indeed have great abilities in other areas, in the area where they fail, it’s almost always true that they don’t deserve to succeed. For instance, if a person has spent their life deep in thought, they'll develop a habit of reflection; however, they won’t become a dancer or a singer, wealthy or beautiful. Similarly, if someone laments their lack of success in romance, we’ll dare to say it’s due to their lack of romantic charm. They’ve confused their true talent—that’s all. If someone with great sensitivity awkwardly tries to be romantic, it’s because they don’t feel it as they should. One of these let-down romantics might actually come to feel it with time, might obsess over it until they're frenzied and write their lady the most beautiful love letters during her absence; but trust that they don’t feel a shred of that passion when she’s around. If, when complimenting her, he scowls unusually, or if presenting her with a bouquet looks like he’s about to turn away, he’ll only find himself laughed at for his efforts; nor can he claim an overflow of feelings as a reason for his lack of common sense. She might say, “You’re not in love with me, but with the silly fantasies in your own head. You’re imagining Sophia Western or some other heroine, not me. Go and woo your stories.”
Lord Chesterfield’s character of the Duke of Marlborough is a good illustration of his general theory. He says, ‘Of all the men I ever knew in my life, (and I knew him extremely well), the late Duke of Marlborough possessed the graces in the highest degree, not to say engrossed them; for I will venture (contrary to the custom of profound historians, who always assign deep causes for great events) to ascribe the better half of the Duke of Marlborough’s greatness and riches to those graces. He was eminently illiterate; wrote bad English, and spelt it worse. He had no share of what is commonly called parts; that is, no brightness, nothing shining in his genius. He had most undoubtedly an excellent good plain understanding with sound judgment. But these alone would probably have raised him but something higher than they found him, which was page to King James II.‘s Queen. There the Graces protected and promoted him; for while he was Ensign of the Guards, the Duchess of Cleveland, then favourite mistress of Charles II., struck by these very graces, gave him £5000, with which he immediately bought an annuity of £500 a year, which was the foundation of his subsequent fortune. His figure was beautiful, but his manner was irresistible by either man or woman. It was by this engaging, graceful manner, that he was enabled, during all his wars, to connect 45the various and jarring powers of the grand alliance, and to carry them on to the main object of the war, notwithstanding their private and separate views, jealousies, and wrongheadedness. Whatever court he went to (and he was often obliged to go himself to some resty and refractory ones), he as constantly prevailed, and brought them into his measures.’[37]
Lord Chesterfield's description of the Duke of Marlborough is a great example of his overall theory. He says, "Of all the men I've ever known in my life (and I knew him very well), the late Duke of Marlborough had grace like no other, if not monopolizing it; because I will boldly state (against the trend of serious historians, who always look for deep reasons behind significant events) that a big part of the Duke of Marlborough’s greatness and wealth can be attributed to those graces. He was definitely not well-educated; he wrote poorly and spelled even worse. He didn’t have what is usually called talent; in other words, there was nothing particularly striking in his genius. He did have a very good, straightforward understanding and sound judgment. But these qualities alone would probably have only elevated him somewhat above his starting point, which was being a page to Queen James II's wife. It was thanks to the Graces that he was protected and advanced; for while he was an Ensign of the Guards, the Duchess of Cleveland, who was then the favored mistress of Charles II, attracted by these very graces, gave him £5000, which he immediately used to buy an annuity of £500 a year, laying the foundation for his future wealth. He had a beautiful appearance, but his charm was irresistible to both men and women. It was through this engaging, graceful demeanor that he was able, throughout all his wars, to unite the various conflicting powers of the grand alliance and drive them toward the war's main objective, despite their personal agendas, jealousies, and stubbornness. Wherever he went (and he often had to deal with difficult and stubborn courts), he consistently succeeded and brought them into alignment with his plans."
Grace in women has more effect than beauty. We sometimes see a certain fine self-possession, an habitual voluptuousness of character, which reposes on its own sensations, and derives pleasure from all around it, that is more irresistible than any other attraction. There is an air of languid enjoyment in such persons, ‘in their eyes, in their arms, and their hands, and their faces,’ which robs us of ourselves, and draws us by a secret sympathy towards them. Their minds are a shrine where pleasure reposes. Their smile diffuses a sensation like the breath of spring. Petrarch’s description of Laura answers exactly to this character, which is indeed the Italian character. Titian’s portraits are full of it: they seem sustained by sentiment, or as if the persons whom he painted sat to music. There is one in the Louvre (or there was) which had the most of this expression we ever remember. It did not look downward; ‘it looked forward, beyond this world.’ It was a look that never passed away, but remained unalterable as the deep sentiment which gave birth to it. It is the same constitutional character (together with infinite activity of mind) which has enabled the greatest man in modern history to bear his reverses of fortune with gay magnanimity, and to submit to the loss of the empire of the world with as little discomposure as if he had been playing a game at chess.
Grace in women has a greater impact than beauty. We often notice a certain poise, a habitual sensuality that finds contentment in its own feelings and takes joy in everything around it, which is more captivating than any other allure. There’s an air of relaxed enjoyment about these individuals—visible in their eyes, arms, hands, and faces—that captivates us and pulls us toward them with an unspoken connection. Their minds are like a sanctuary where pleasure resides. Their smile spreads a warmth like the breath of spring. Petrarch’s description of Laura perfectly fits this quality, which truly reflects the Italian spirit. Titian’s portraits are brimming with this essence; they seem infused with emotion, as if the subjects were posing to music. There’s one in the Louvre (or at least there used to be) that captured this expression like none other we remember. It didn’t look down; it looked forward, beyond this world. It was a gaze that never faded, remaining as unchanged as the deep feeling that inspired it. This inherent quality (along with a boundless mental activity) has allowed the greatest figure in modern history to handle his ups and downs with cheerful grace, accepting the loss of a world empire with as little disturbance as if he were simply playing a game of chess.
Grace has been defined as the outward expression of the inward harmony of the soul. Foreigners have more of this than the English,—particularly the people of the southern and eastern countries. Their motions appear (like the expression of their countenances) to have a more immediate communication with their feelings. The inhabitants of the northern climates, compared with these children of the sun, are like hard inanimate machines, with difficulty set in motion. A strolling gipsy will offer to tell your fortune with a grace and an insinuation of address that would be admired in a court.[38] The 46Hindoos that we see about the streets are another example of this. They are a different race of people from ourselves. They wander about in a luxurious dream. They are like part of a glittering procession,—like revellers in some gay carnival. Their life is a dance, a measure; they hardly seem to tread the earth, but are borne along in some more genial element, and bask in the radiance of brighter suns. We may understand this difference of climate by recollecting the difference of our own sensations at different times, in the fine glow of summer, or when we are pinched and dried up by a northeast wind. Even the foolish Chinese, who go about twirling their fans and their windmills, shew the same delight in them as the children they collect around them. The people of the East make it their business to sit and think and do nothing. They indulge in endless reverie; for the incapacity of enjoyment does not impose on them the necessity of action. There is a striking example of this passion for castle-building in the story of the glass-man in the Arabian Nights.
Grace is seen as the outward expression of the inner harmony of the soul. People from other countries tend to have more of this than the English—especially those from southern and eastern regions. Their movements (much like their facial expressions) seem to connect more directly with their feelings. The inhabitants of colder climates, in contrast to these children of the sun, can seem like stiff, unyielding machines that are hard to get moving. A wandering gypsy might offer to tell your fortune with a charm and flair that would be praised in a royal court.[38] The 46Hindoos we see in the streets are another example of this. They belong to a different culture than ours. They drift through life as if in a beautiful dream, like part of a sparkling parade or party-goers in a lively festival. Their existence resembles a dance, a rhythm; they seem to barely touch the ground, instead floating in a more pleasant atmosphere, enjoying the warmth of brighter suns. We can understand this climate difference by recalling how we feel during different seasons, whether in the pleasant warmth of summer or when we feel cold and dried out by a northeast wind. Even the seemingly silly Chinese, who stroll around fanning themselves and spinning windmills, show the same joy as the children who gather around them. People from the East often prioritize sitting, thinking, and doing nothing. They immerse themselves in endless daydreams because their inability to find pleasure doesn't force them into action. A notable example of this penchant for daydreaming is found in the tale of the glass-man from the Arabian Nights.
After all, we would not be understood to say that manner is every thing. Nor would we put Euclid or Sir Isaac Newton on a level with the first petit-maître we might happen to meet. We consider Æsop’s Fables to have been a greater work of genius than Fontaine’s translation of them; though we doubt whether we should not prefer Fontaine, for his style only, to Gay, who has shewn a great deal of original invention. The elegant manners of people of fashion have been objected to us to shew the frivolity of external accomplishments, 47and the facility with which they are acquired. As to the last point, we demur. There is no class of people who lead so laborious a life, or who take more pains to cultivate their minds as well as persons, than people of fashion. A young lady of quality, who has to devote so many hours a day to music, so many to dancing, so many to drawing, so many to French, Italian, etc., certainly does not pass her time in idleness; and these accomplishments are afterwards called into action by every kind of external or mental stimulus, by the excitements of pleasure, vanity, and interest. A Ministerial or Opposition lord goes through more drudgery than half a dozen literary hacks; nor does a reviewer by profession read half the same number of productions as a modern fine lady is obliged to labour through. We confess, however, we are not competent judges of the degree of elegance or refinement implied in the general tone of fashionable manners. The successful experiment made by Peregrine Pickle, in introducing his strolling mistress into genteel company, does not redound greatly to their credit. In point of elegance of external appearance, we see no difference between women of fashion and women of a different character, who dress in the same style.
After all, we wouldn’t say that appearance is everything. Nor would we compare Euclid or Sir Isaac Newton to the first dandy we happen to meet. We consider Æsop’s Fables to be a greater work of genius than Fontaine’s translation of them; although we’re not sure if we wouldn’t prefer Fontaine, just for his style, to Gay, who shows a lot of original creativity. The elegant manners of fashionable people have been pointed out to us as evidence of the superficial nature of external accomplishments, 47 and how easily they can be acquired. As for the last point, we disagree. No group works harder or puts in more effort to develop their minds and appearances than fashionable people. A quality young lady, who has to dedicate so many hours a day to music, so many to dancing, so many to drawing, and so many to French and Italian, certainly isn’t spending her time idly; and these skills are then put to use through various external or mental triggers, by the appeals of pleasure, vanity, and interest. A Ministerial or Opposition lord has to do more tedious work than half a dozen literary freelancers; and a professional reviewer doesn’t read nearly as many works as a modern fashionable lady is expected to get through. We admit, though, that we aren’t qualified to judge the level of elegance or refinement indicated by the general nature of fashionable manners. The successful attempt by Peregrine Pickle to bring his wandering mistress into polite society doesn’t do much for their reputation. In terms of external elegance, we see no difference between fashionable women and women of a different kind who dress in the same way.
No. 13.] ON THE TENDENCY OF SECTS [Sep 10, 1815.
There is a natural tendency in sects to narrow the mind.
There’s a natural tendency in groups to limit thinking.
The extreme stress laid upon differences of minor importance, to the neglect of more general truths and broader views of things, gives an inverted bias to the understanding; and this bias is continually increased by the eagerness of controversy, and captious hostility to the prevailing system. A party-feeling of this kind once formed will insensibly communicate itself to other topics; and will be too apt to lead its votaries to a contempt for the opinions of others, a jealousy of every difference of sentiment, and a disposition to arrogate all sound principle as well as understanding to themselves, and those who think with them. We can readily conceive how such persons, from fixing too high a value on the practical pledge which they have given of the independence and sincerity of their opinions, come at last to entertain a suspicion of every one else as acting under the shackles of prejudice or the mask of hypocrisy. All those who have not given in their unqualified protest against received doctrines and established authority, are supposed to labour under an acknowledged incapacity to form a rational determination on any subject whatever. Any argument, not 48having the presumption of singularity in its favour, is immediately set aside as nugatory. There is, however, no prejudice so strong as that which arises from a fancied exemption from all prejudice. For this last implies not only the practical conviction that it is right, but the theoretical assumption that it cannot be wrong. From considering all objections as in this manner ‘null and void,’ the mind becomes so thoroughly satisfied with its own conclusions, as to render any further examination of them superfluous, and confounds its exclusive pretensions to reason with the absolute possession of it. Those who, from their professing to submit everything to the test of reason, have acquired the name of rational Dissenters, have their weak sides as well as other people: nor do we know of any class of disputants more disposed to take their opinions for granted, than those who call themselves Freethinkers. A long habit of objecting to every thing establishes a monopoly in the right of contradiction; a prescriptive title to the privilege of starting doubts and difficulties in the common belief, without being liable to have our own called in question. There cannot be a more infallible way to prove that we must be in the right, than by maintaining roundly that every one else is in the wrong! Not only the opposition of sects to one another, but their unanimity among themselves, strengthens their confidence in their peculiar notions. They feel themselves invulnerable behind the double fence of sympathy with themselves, and antipathy to the rest of the world. Backed by the zealous support of their followers, they become equally intolerant with respect to the opinions of others, and tenacious of their own. They fortify themselves within the narrow circle of their new-fangled prejudices; the whole exercise of their right of private judgment is after a time reduced to the repetition of a set of watchwords, which have been adopted as the Shiboleth of the party; and their extremest points of faith pass as current as the beadroll and legends of the Catholics, or St. Athanasius’s Creed, and the Thirty-nine Articles. We certainly are not going to recommend the establishment of articles of faith, or implicit assent to them, as favourable to the progress of philosophy; but neither has the spirit of opposition to them this tendency, as far as relates to its immediate effects, however useful it may be in its remote consequences. The spirit of controversy substitutes the irritation of personal feeling for the independent exertion of the understanding; and when this irritation ceases, the mind flags for want of a sufficient stimulus to urge it on. It discharges all its energy with its spleen. Besides, this perpetual cavilling with the opinions of others, detecting petty flaws in their arguments, calling them to a literal account for their absurdities, and squaring their doctrines by a pragmatical standard of our own, is necessarily 49adverse to any great enlargement of mind, or original freedom of thought.[39] The constant attention bestowed on a few contested points, by at once flattering our pride, our prejudices, and our indolence, supersedes more general inquiries; and the bigoted controversialist, by dint of repeating a certain formula of belief, shall not only convince himself that all those who differ from him are undoubtedly wrong on that point, but that their knowledge on all others must be comparatively slight and superficial. We have known some very worthy and well-informed biblical critics, who, by virtue of having discovered that one was not three, or that the same body could not be in two places at once, would be disposed to treat the whole Council of Trent, with Father Paul at their head, with very little deference, and to consider Leo X. with all his court, as no better than drivellers. Such persons will hint to you, as an additional proof of his genius, that Milton was a non-conformist, and will excuse the faults of Paradise Lost, as Dr. Johnson magnified them, because the author was a republican. By the all-sufficiency of their merits in believing certain truths which have been ‘hid from ages,’ they are elevated, in their own imagination, to a higher sphere of intellect, and are released from the necessity of pursuing the more ordinary tracks of inquiry. Their faculties are imprisoned in a few favourite dogmas, and they cannot break through the trammels of a sect. Hence we may remark a hardness and setness in the ideas of those who have been brought up in this way, an aversion to those finer and more delicate operations of the intellect, of taste and genius, which require greater flexibility and variety of thought, and do not afford the same opportunity for dogmatical assertion and controversial cabal. The distaste of the Puritans, Quakers, etc. to pictures, music, poetry, and the fine arts in general, may be traced to this source as much as to their affected disdain of them, as not sufficiently spiritual and remote from the gross impurity of sense.[40]
The extreme focus on insignificant differences, while ignoring broader truths and perspectives, skews understanding. This skew is further fueled by the zeal of debate and a critical attitude toward the dominant system. Once formed, such a factional mindset subtly spreads to other issues, often leading its supporters to disregard the opinions of others, harbor jealousy over differing views, and assume that all sound principles and understanding belong solely to themselves and like-minded individuals. It’s easy to see how these individuals, by placing too much importance on the practical expression of their independence and honesty, come to suspect everyone else of being trapped in prejudice or deception. Those who haven’t outright rejected established doctrines and authority are deemed incapable of making rational decisions on any subject. Any argument lacking the aura of uniqueness is quickly dismissed as worthless. However, there is no bias stronger than the one that stems from a belief in being free from all bias. This belief not only carries the conviction of being right but also assumes it cannot be wrong. By dismissing all objections as “null and void,” the mind becomes so satisfied with its own conclusions that further examination seems unnecessary, confusing exclusive claims to reason with actual reason itself. Those who, by claiming to subject everything to reason, have earned the title of rational Dissenters, also have their weaknesses like everyone else; in fact, we can’t think of any group more likely to take their opinions for granted than those who call themselves Freethinkers. A long-standing habit of contesting everything establishes a monopoly on the right to dissent; it gives them the privilege of raising doubts and challenges to commonly accepted beliefs without facing scrutiny of their own. There’s no more surefire way to claim we’re right than to insist that everyone else is wrong! Not only do different groups oppose one another, but their shared beliefs strengthen their conviction in their unique ideas. They feel invulnerable behind a double barrier of mutual support and hostility toward the outside world. With the enthusiastic backing of their followers, they become just as intolerant of others’ opinions as they are stubborn about their own. They lock themselves within the narrow confines of their newly adopted biases; over time, the exercise of personal judgment reduces to repeating a set of catchphrases chosen as the party's shibboleth; their extreme beliefs circulate as readily as the liturgy and legends of Catholics, or St. Athanasius’s Creed and the Thirty-nine Articles. We certainly aren’t advocating for the establishment of articles of faith or unquestioning acceptance of them as beneficial to philosophical progress; however, neither does the opposition to them tend to promote that progress in its immediate effects, even if it might be helpful in the long run. The spirit of debate replaces the independent exercise of understanding with the irritation of personal feelings, and when that irritation fades, the mind lacks sufficient motivation to continue exploration. It expends all its energy in frustration. Moreover, this constant nitpicking of others’ opinions, pointing out minor flaws in their arguments, holding them to a strict accounting for inconsistencies, and measuring their doctrines against our own rigid standards, is fundamentally opposed to any broadening of the mind or genuine freedom of thought. The relentless focus on a few disputed issues, while catering to our pride, biases, and laziness, sidelines broader inquiries; the bigoted debater, by repeating certain beliefs, not only convinces himself that everyone who disagrees with him must be wrong on that point, but also that their understanding of all other subjects is probably superficial. We know some genuinely good and well-informed biblical critics who, having concluded that one isn’t three or that the same object can’t occupy two locations simultaneously, would likely regard the entire Council of Trent, with Father Paul at its forefront, with little respect, and consider Pope Leo X and his court as nothing more than fools. These individuals might suggest to you that Milton was a non-conformist as further proof of his genius and would dismiss the faults in *Paradise Lost*, just as Dr. Johnson highlighted them, because the author was a republican. Their firm belief in certain truths that have been “hidden for ages” elevates them, in their own minds, to a higher intellectual plane, freeing them from the need to follow more conventional paths of inquiry. Their faculties get shackled to a few beloved dogmas, and they can’t break free from the constraints of a sect. Thus, we observe a rigidity and fixity in the ideas of those raised in this manner, a disdain for the finer, more subtle workings of the intellect— the aspects of taste and creativity that demand greater flexibility and variety in thought and offer little chance for dogmatic assertions or argumentative maneuvering. The Puritans, Quakers, and others’ aversion to visual arts, music, poetry, and the fine arts can be traced back to this just as much as their feigned disdain for them, as they deem them insufficiently spiritual and tainted by the grossness of physical sensation.
We learn from the interest we take in things, and according to 50the number of things in which we take an interest. Our ignorance of the real value of different objects and pursuits, will in general keep pace with our contempt for them. To set out with denying common sense to every one else, is not the way to be wise ourselves; nor shall we be likely to learn much, if we suppose that no one can teach us any thing worth knowing. Again, a contempt for the habits and manners of the world is as prejudicial as a contempt for their opinions. A puritanical abhorrence of every thing that does not fall in with our immediate prejudices and customs, must effectually cut us off, not only from a knowledge of the world and of human nature, but of good and evil, of vice and virtue; at least, if we can credit the assertion of Plato, (which, to some degree, we do), that the knowledge of every thing implies the knowledge of its opposite. ‘There is some soul of goodness in things evil.’ A most respectable sect among ourselves (we mean the Quakers) have carried this system of negative qualities nearly to perfection. They labour diligently, and with great success, to exclude all ideas from their minds which they might have in common with others. On the principle that evil communications corrupt good manners, they retain a virgin purity of understanding, and laudable ignorance of all liberal arts and sciences; they take every precaution, and keep up a perpetual quarantine against the infection of other people’s vices—or virtues; they pass through the world like figures cut out of pasteboard or wood, turning neither to the right nor the left; and their minds are no more affected by the example of the follies, the pursuits, the pleasures, or the passions of mankind, than the clothes which they wear. Their ideas want airing; they are the worse for not being used: for fear of soiling them, they keep them folded up and laid by in a sort of mental clothes-press, through the whole of their lives. They take their notions on trust from one generation to another, (like the scanty cut of their coats), and are so wrapped up in these traditional maxims, and so pin their faith on them, that one of the most intelligent of this class of people, not long ago, assured us that ‘war was a thing that was going quite out of fashion’! This abstract sort of existence may have its advantages, but it takes away all the ordinary sources of a moral imagination, as well as strength of intellect. Interest is the only link that connects them with the world. We can understand the high enthusiasm and religious devotion of monks and anchorites, who gave up the world and its pleasures to dedicate themselves to a sublime contemplation of a future state. But the sect of the Quakers, who have transplanted the maxims of the desert into manufacturing towns and populous cities, who have converted the solitary cells of the religious orders into counting-houses, their beads 51into ledgers, and keep a regular debtor and creditor account between this world and the next, puzzle us mightily! The Dissenter is not vain, but conceited: that is, he makes up by his own good opinion for the want of the cordial admiration of others. But this often stands their self-love in so good stead that they need not envy their dignified opponents who repose on lawn sleeves and ermine. The unmerited obloquy and dislike to which they are exposed has made them cold and reserved in their intercourse with society. The same cause will account for the dryness and general homeliness of their style. They labour under a sense of the want of public sympathy. They pursue truth, for its own sake, into its private recesses and obscure corners. They have to dig their way along a narrow under-ground passage. It is not their object to shine; they have none of the usual incentives of vanity, light, airy, and ostentatious. Archiepiscopal Sees and mitres do not glitter in their distant horizon. They are not wafted on the wings of fancy, fanned by the breath of popular applause. The voice of the world, the tide of opinion, is not with them. They do not therefore aim at éclat, at outward pomp and shew. They have a plain ground to work upon, and they do not attempt to embellish it with idle ornaments. It would be in vain to strew the flowers of poetry round the borders of the Unitarian controversy.
We learn from what we care about and how many things we care about. Our lack of understanding of the true value of different objects and activities usually matches our disdain for them. Starting out by dismissing everyone else's common sense is not a smart way to gain wisdom; we probably won't learn much if we think no one has anything worth teaching us. Similarly, looking down on the habits and customs of others is as harmful as looking down on their opinions. A strict rejection of anything that doesn’t align with our immediate beliefs and customs will cut us off from understanding not just the world and human nature, but also concepts of good and evil, and vice and virtue; this aligns with Plato’s idea that knowing anything involves understanding its opposite. 'There is some good in things that are evil.' A very respectable group among us (the Quakers) has almost perfected this system of negative qualities. They work hard, and quite successfully, to exclude any ideas from their minds that they might share with others. Believing that bad influences corrupt good behavior, they maintain a pure understanding and a commendable ignorance of all liberal arts and sciences; they take every precaution and keep a constant distance from the influence of other people's vices—or virtues. They navigate the world like figures cut from cardboard or wood, turning neither right nor left; their minds are unaffected by the follies, pursuits, pleasures, or passions of people, just like the clothes they wear. Their ideas need airing; they suffer from not being used: to avoid messing them up, they keep them stored away in a kind of mental wardrobe throughout their lives. They pass down their beliefs from generation to generation (just like the outdated styles of their coats), and are so wrapped up in these traditional maxims, placing their faith in them, that one of the smartest from this group recently assured us that ‘war is a thing that’s going out of style’! Living in such an abstract way might have its perks, but it removes all the usual sources of a moral imagination and intellectual strength. Interest is the only connection they have to the world. We can understand the deep enthusiasm and religious devotion of monks and hermits who renounced worldly pleasures to focus on a higher state of contemplation. But the Quakers, who have brought the ideas of isolation into bustling towns and cities, who have transformed the quiet cells of religious orders into offices, their prayer beads into ledgers, and maintain a strict account of debts and credits between this world and the next, really baffle us! The Dissenter isn't vain, but rather conceited: they compensate for the lack of genuine admiration from others with their own positive self-image. However, this often benefits their self-esteem so much that they need not envy their dignified opponents adorned in fine garments. The unwarranted scorn and dislike they face have made them distant and reserved in their interactions with society. This also explains the dryness and straightforwardness of their style. They feel a lack of public support. They pursue truth for its own sake into its hidden depths and shadowy corners. They have to carve their way through a narrow underground path. They do not seek to shine; they lack the usual motivations of vanity, lightness, and showiness. Archiepiscopal positions and mitres don’t dazzle on their horizon. They aren't lifted by imagination or the winds of public praise. The world’s voice and public sentiment are not on their side. Therefore, they don’t aim for brilliance, outward pomp, or display. They have a plain foundation to work with and do not attempt to adorn it with unnecessary decorations. It would be pointless to scatter the flowers of poetry around the edges of the Unitarian debate.
There is one quality common to all sectaries, and that is, a principle of strong fidelity. They are the safest partisans, and the steadiest friends. Indeed, they are almost the only people who have any idea of an abstract attachment either to a cause or to individuals, from a sense of duty, independently of prosperous or adverse circumstances, and in spite of opposition.[41]
There’s one quality that all believers share, and that’s a strong sense of loyalty. They are the most reliable supporters and the truest friends. In fact, they are basically the only ones who understand the idea of being dedicated to a cause or to people out of a sense of duty, regardless of whether things are going well or poorly, and despite facing opposition.[41]
No. 14.] ON JOHN BUNCLE [Sept. 17, 1815.
John Buncle is the English Rabelais. This is an author with whom, perhaps, many of our readers are not acquainted, and whom we therefore wish to introduce to their notice. As most of our countrymen delight in English Generals and in English Admirals, in English Courtiers and in English Kings, so our great delight is in English authors.
John Buncle is the English Rabelais. This is an author that many of our readers might not know, and we’d like to introduce him to you. Just as most of our countrymen enjoy English Generals, English Admirals, English Courtiers, and English Kings, our greatest pleasure comes from English authors.
52The soul of Francis Rabelais passed into John Amory, the author of The Life and Adventures of John Buncle. Both were physicians, and enemies of too much gravity. Their great business was to enjoy life. Rabelais indulges his spirit of sensuality in wine, in dried neats’ tongues, in Bologna sausages, in botargos. John Buncle shews the same symptoms of inordinate satisfaction in tea and bread and butter. While Rabelais roared with Friar John and the Monks, John Buncle gossiped with the ladies; and with equal and uncontrolled gaiety. These two authors possessed all the insolence of health, so that their works give a fillip to the constitution; but they carried off the exuberance of their natural spirits in different ways. The title of one of Rabelais’ chapters (and the contents answer to the title) is—‘How they chirped over their cups.’ The title of a corresponding chapter in John Buncle would run thus: ‘The author is invited to spend the evening with the divine Miss Hawkins, and goes accordingly, with the delightful conversation that ensued.’ Natural philosophers are said to extract sun-beams from ice: our author has performed the same feat upon the cold, quaint subtleties of theology. His constitutional alacrity overcomes every obstacle. He converts the thorns and briars of controversial divinity into a bed of roses. He leads the most refined and virtuous of their sex through the mazes of inextricable problems with the air of a man walking a minuet in a drawing-room; mixes up in the most natural and careless manner the academy of compliments with the rudiments of algebra; or passes with rapturous indifference from the First of St. John and a disquisition on the Logos, to the no less metaphysical doctrines of the principle of self-preservation, or the continuation of the species. John Buncle is certainly one of the most singular productions in the language; and herein lies its peculiarity. It is a Unitarian romance; and one in which the soul and body are equally attended to. The hero is a great philosopher, mathematician, anatomist, chemist, philologist, and divine, with a good appetite, the best spirits, and an amorous constitution, who sets out on a series of strange adventures to propagate his philosophy, his divinity, and his species, and meets with a constant succession of accomplished females, adorned with equal beauty, wit, and virtue, who are always ready to discuss all kinds of theoretical and practical points with him. His angels (and all his women are angels) have all taken their degrees in more than one science: love is natural to them. He is sure to find
52 The spirit of Francis Rabelais has moved into John Amory, the author of The Life and Adventures of John Buncle. Both were doctors and disliked too much seriousness. Their main goal was to enjoy life. Rabelais indulged in sensual pleasures like wine, dried beef tongues, Bologna sausages, and fish roe. John Buncle shows the same signs of excessive enjoyment in tea and bread and butter. While Rabelais laughed with Friar John and the monks, John Buncle chatted with the ladies; both with equal and unrestrained joy. These two writers had all the confidence that comes with good health, which makes their works invigorating, though they channeled their lively spirits in different ways. One of Rabelais’s chapter titles (and the content matches the title) is—‘How they chirped over their cups.’ A similar chapter in John Buncle would be titled: ‘The author is invited to spend the evening with the lovely Miss Hawkins, and happily goes, enjoying the delightful conversation that follows.’ It’s said that natural philosophers can extract sunlight from ice: our author has done the same with the cold, quirky details of theology. His natural enthusiasm overcomes every challenge. He turns the thorns and thickets of complicated religious debates into a bed of roses. He guides the most refined and virtuous women through the tangled web of difficult issues as if he's gracefully dancing in a drawing-room; mixing compliments with the basics of algebra in the most casual way; or shifting with carefree ease from the First of St. John and a discussion on the Logos to the equally philosophical ideas of self-preservation and the continuation of the species. John Buncle is definitely one of the most unique works in the language, and that’s what makes it special. It is a Unitarian romance that equally considers the soul and the body. The hero is a brilliant philosopher, mathematician, anatomist, chemist, linguist, and theologian, with a great appetite, high spirits, and a romantic nature, who embarks on a series of strange adventures to share his philosophy, his faith, and his lineage, meeting a constant stream of accomplished women, blessed with equal beauty, intelligence, and virtue, who are always eager to debate various theoretical and practical topics with him. His angels (and all his women are angels) are well-versed in more than one field: love comes naturally to them. He is sure to find
Pleasure and business, wisdom and mirth, take their turns with the most agreeable regularity. A jocis ad seria, in seriis vicissim ad jocos transire. After a chapter of calculations in fluxions, or on the descent of tongues, 53the lady and gentleman fall from Platonics to hoydening, in a manner as truly edifying as anything in the scenes of Vanbrugh or Sir George Etherege. No writer ever understood so well the art of relief. The effect is like travelling in Scotland, and coming all of a sudden to a spot of habitable ground. His mode of making love is admirable. He takes it quite easily, and never thinks of a refusal. His success gives him confidence, and his confidence gives him success. For example: in the midst of one of his rambles in the mountains of Cumberland, he unexpectedly comes to an elegant country-seat, where, walking on the lawn with a book in her hand, he sees a most enchanting creature, the owner of the mansion: our hero is on fire, leaps the ha-ha which separates them, presents himself before the lady with an easy but respectful air, begs to know the subject of her meditation, they enter into conversation, mutual explanations take place, a declaration of love is made, and the wedding-day is fixed for the following Tuesday. Our author now leads a life of perfect happiness with his beautiful Miss Noel, in a charming solitude, for a few weeks; till, on his return from one of his rambles in the mountains, he finds her a corpse. He ‘sits with his eyes shut for seven days,’ absorbed in silent grief; he then bids adieu to melancholy reflections, not being one of that sect of philosophers who think that ‘man was made to mourn,’—takes horse and sets out for the nearest watering-place. As he alights at the first inn on the road, a lady dressed in a rich green riding-habit steps out of a coach, John Buncle hands her into the inn, they drink tea together, they converse, they find an exact harmony of sentiment, a declaration of love follows as a matter of course, and that day week they are married. Death, however, contrives to keep up the ball for him; he marries seven wives in succession, and buries them all. In short, John Buncle’s gravity sat upon him with the happiest indifference possible. He danced the hays with religion and morality with the ease of a man of fashion and of pleasure. He was determined to see fair-play between grace and nature, between his immortal and his mortal part, and in case of any difficulty, upon the principle of ‘first come, first served,’ made sure of the present hour. We sometimes suspect him of a little hypocrisy, but upon a closer inspection, it appears to be only an affectation of hypocrisy. His fine constitution comes to his relief, and floats him over the shoals and quicksands that lie in his way, ‘most dolphin-like.’ You see him from mere happiness of nature chuckling with inward satisfaction in the midst of his periodical penances, his grave grimaces, his death’s-heads, and memento moris.
Pleasure and business, wisdom and humor, take their turns with the most enjoyable regularity. From jokes to serious matters, and then back to jokes again. After a chapter of complex calculations or discussions of various topics, 53 the lady and gentleman shift from platonic conversation to playful banter, in a way that is just as enlightening as anything in the works of Vanbrugh or Sir George Etherege. No writer ever mastered the art of comic relief as well. The effect is like traveling through Scotland and suddenly arriving at a spot of arable land. His approach to love is admirable. He takes it all in stride and never considers the possibility of rejection. His success boosts his confidence, and that confidence leads to more success. For instance: while wandering in the mountains of Cumberland, he unexpectedly encounters a beautiful country house, where he spots a stunning woman, the owner of the estate, walking on the lawn with a book in hand. Our hero is smitten, leaps over the ha-ha that separates them, approaches the lady with a casual yet respectful demeanor, asks what she's thinking about, and they strike up a conversation. Mutual feelings are expressed, a love declaration is made, and they set their wedding date for the following Tuesday. Our author then enjoys a blissful life with the lovely Miss Noel in charming seclusion for a few weeks, until one day, after returning from a mountain hike, he finds her lifeless. He ‘sits with his eyes shut for seven days’, lost in silent sorrow; then he bids farewell to melancholy thoughts, not one of those philosophers who believe that ‘man was made to mourn’—he mounts his horse and heads to the nearest spa. When he arrives at the first inn, a woman in an elegant green riding outfit steps out of a carriage, John Buncle helps her into the inn, they enjoy tea together, they talk, and they find a perfect match in their sentiments; a love declaration follows naturally, and a week later, they are married. However, death keeps his life interesting; he marries seven wives in succession and buries them all. In short, John Buncle’s seriousness comes with a remarkably carefree attitude. He dances through life with religion and morality just as effortlessly as any fashionable person. He is determined to ensure equality between grace and nature, between his immortal and mortal self, and in case of any challenge, with the principle of ‘first come, first served,’ he makes the most of the present moment. Sometimes, we suspect him of a bit of hypocrisy, but upon closer look, it seems more like a playful pretense of hypocrisy. His robust health carries him through the obstacles that lie in his path, ‘most dolphin-like.’ You can see him, filled with natural happiness, chuckling with inner satisfaction amid his periodic penances, serious expressions, skull motifs, and remember you will die.
54As men make use of olives to give a relish to their wine, so John Buncle made use of philosophy to give a relish to life. He stops in a ball-room at Harrowgate to moralise on the small number of faces that appeared there out of those he remembered some years before: all were gone whom he saw at a still more distant period; but this casts no damper on his spirits, and he only dances the longer and better for it. He suffers nothing unpleasant to remain long upon his mind. He gives, in one place, a miserable description of two emaciated valetudinarians whom he met at an inn, supping a little mutton-broth with difficulty, but he immediately contrasts himself with them in fine relief. ‘While I beheld things with astonishment, the servant,’ he says, ‘brought in dinner—a pound of rump-steaks and a quart of green peas, two cuts of bread, a tankard of strong beer, and a pint of port-wine; with a fine appetite, I soon despatched my mess, and over my wine, to help digestion, began to sing the following lines!’ The astonishment of the two strangers was now as great as his own had been.
54Just like people use olives to enhance their wine, John Buncle used philosophy to enrich his life. He pauses in a ballroom at Harrowgate to reflect on how few familiar faces he sees compared to years ago: everyone he recognized from an even longer time ago is gone; however, this doesn’t dampen his spirits, and he ends up dancing longer and better because of it. He doesn’t let unpleasant thoughts linger in his mind for long. In one instance, he gives a grim description of two frail invalids he encountered at an inn, struggling to eat some mutton broth, but he quickly contrasts himself with them in a positive light. "While I gazed in amazement, the servant," he says, "brought in dinner—a pound of rump steaks and a quart of green peas, two slices of bread, a tankard of strong beer, and a pint of port wine; with a hearty appetite, I quickly finished my meal, and over my wine, to aid digestion, I started to sing the following lines!” The amazement of the two strangers was now as intense as his own had been.
We wish to enable our readers to judge for themselves of the style of our whimsical moralist, but are at a loss what to chuse—whether his account of his man O’Fin; or of his friend Tom Fleming; or of his being chased over the mountains by robbers, ‘whisking before them like the wind away,’ as if it were high sport; or his address to the Sun, which is an admirable piece of serious eloquence; or his character of six Irish gentlemen, Mr. Gollogher, Mr. Gallaspy, Mr. Dunkley, Mr. Makins, Mr. Monaghan, and Mr. O’Keefe, the last ‘descended from the Irish kings, and first cousin to the great O’Keefe, who was buried not long ago in Westminster Abbey.’ He professes to give an account of these Irish gentlemen, ‘for the honour of Ireland, and as they were curiosities of the human kind.’ Curiosities, indeed, but not so great as their historian!
We want our readers to decide for themselves about the style of our quirky moralist, but we're uncertain about what to choose—whether it should be his story about his man O’Fin; his friend Tom Fleming; his experience being chased over the mountains by robbers, ‘whisking before them like the wind,’ as if it were just a fun game; his address to the Sun, which is a fantastic example of serious rhetoric; or his description of six Irish gentlemen, Mr. Gollogher, Mr. Gallaspy, Mr. Dunkley, Mr. Makins, Mr. Monaghan, and Mr. O’Keefe, the last of whom is ‘descended from the Irish kings, and first cousin to the great O’Keefe, who was buried not long ago in Westminster Abbey.’ He claims to share stories about these Irish gentlemen ‘for the honor of Ireland, and because they were curiosities of humankind.’ Curiosities, indeed, but not nearly as remarkable as their storyteller!
‘Mr. Makins was the only one of the set who was not tall and handsome. He was a very low, thin man, not four feet high, and had but one eye, with which he squinted most shockingly. But as he was matchless on the fiddle, sung well, and chatted agreeably, he was a favourite with the ladies. They preferred ugly Makins (as he was called) to many very handsome men. He was a Unitarian.’
‘Mr. Makins was the only one in the group who wasn't tall and handsome. He was a very short, thin man, not even four feet tall, and had just one eye, which he squinted with quite a shock. However, since he was unmatched on the fiddle, sang well, and had an agreeable conversation, he was a favorite among the ladies. They preferred the unattractive Makins (as he was known) over many much better-looking men. He was a Unitarian.’
‘Mr. Monaghan was an honest and charming fellow. This gentleman and Mr. Dunkley married ladies they fell in love with at Harrowgate Wells; Dunkley had the fair Alcmena, Miss Cox of Northumberland; and Monaghan, Antiope with haughty charms, Miss Pearson of Cumberland. They lived very happy many years, and their children, I hear, are settled in Ireland.’
‘Mr. Monaghan was a genuine and charming guy. He and Mr. Dunkley married the women they loved at Harrowgate Wells; Dunkley married the lovely Alcmena, Miss Cox from Northumberland; and Monaghan married Antiope with her proud charms, Miss Pearson from Cumberland. They lived happily for many years, and I hear their children are now settled in Ireland.’
55Gentle reader, here is the character of Mr. Gallaspy:
55Hey there, reader, here’s what Mr. Gallaspy is like:
‘Gallaspy was the tallest and strongest man I have ever seen, well made, and very handsome: had wit and abilities, sung well, and talked with great sweetness and fluency, but was so extremely wicked that it were better for him if he had been a natural fool. By his vast strength and activity, his riches and eloquence, few things could withstand him. He was the most profane swearer I have known: fought every thing, whored every thing, and drank seven in hand: that is, seven glasses so placed between the fingers of his right hand, that, in drinking, the liquor fell into the next glasses, and thereby he drank out of the first glass seven glasses at once. This was a common thing, I find from a book in my possession, in the reign of Charles II., in the madness that followed the restoration of that profligate and worthless prince.[42] But this gentleman was the only man I ever saw who could or would attempt to do it; and he made but one gulp of whatever he drank. He did not swallow a fluid like other people, but if it was a quart, poured it in as from pitcher to pitcher. When he smoked tobacco, he always blew two pipes at once, one at each corner of his mouth, and threw the smoke out at both his nostrils. He had killed two men in duels before I left Ireland, and would have been hanged, but that it was his good fortune to be tried before a judge who never let any man suffer for killing another in this manner. (This was the late Sir John St. Leger.) He debauched all the women he could, and many whom he could not corrupt....’ The rest of this passage would, we fear, be too rich for the Round Table, as we cannot insert it, in the manner of Mr. Buncle, in a sandwich of theology. Suffice it to say, that the candour is greater than the candour of Voltaire’s Candide, and the modesty equal to Colley Cibber’s.
‘Gallaspy was the tallest and strongest man I've ever seen, well-built and very handsome. He was witty and talented, sang well, and spoke with great charm and fluency, but was so incredibly wicked that it would have been better for him if he had been a natural fool. With his immense strength, agility, wealth, and eloquence, few things could stand in his way. He was the most profane swearer I've known, got into fights all the time, pursued women relentlessly, and drank seven glasses at once: that is, seven glasses arranged between the fingers of his right hand so that, in drinking, the liquid flowed into the next glasses, allowing him to drink from the first glass as if consuming seven at once. This was common, as I found in a book I own, during the reign of Charles II. amidst the chaos following the restoration of that extravagant and worthless prince.[42] But this gentleman was the only person I ever saw who could or would try to do it, and he downed whatever he drank in a single gulp. He didn't swallow like other people; if it was a quart, he poured it in like passing liquid from pitcher to pitcher. When he smoked tobacco, he always puffed on two pipes at once, one at each corner of his mouth, exhaling smoke through both nostrils. He had killed two men in duels before I left Ireland and would have been hanged, but it was his luck to be tried before a judge who never condemned anyone for killing another in this way. (This was the late Sir John St. Leger.) He seduced all the women he could, and many who were beyond his reach...’ The rest of this passage would, I fear, be too scandalous for the Round Table, as we can't include it, as Mr. Buncle would, in a mix of theology. Suffice to say, the honesty is greater than the honesty found in Voltaire’s Candide, and the modesty is equal to Colley Cibber’s.
To his friend Mr. Gollogher, he consecrates the following irresistible petit souvenir:
To his friend Mr. Gollogher, he dedicates this unforgettable small memento:
‘He might, if he had pleased, have married any one of the most illustrious and richest women in the kingdom; but he had an aversion to matrimony, and could not bear the thoughts of a wife. Love and a bottle were his taste: he was, however, the most honourable of men in his amours, and never abandoned any woman in distress, as too many men of fortune do, when they have gratified desire. All the distressed were ever sharers in Mr. Gollogher’s fine estate, and especially the girls he had taken to his breast. He provided happily for them all, and left nineteen daughters he had by several women, a 56thousand pounds each. This was acting with a temper worthy of a man; and to the memory of the benevolent Tom Gollogher, I devote this memorandum.’
‘He could have married any of the most notable and wealthiest women in the kingdom if he wanted to; however, he had a strong dislike for marriage and couldn’t stand the idea of having a wife. He preferred love and a drink: still, he was the most honorable of men in his romantic affairs and never abandoned any woman in need, unlike many wealthy men who do so after fulfilling their desires. All those in distress always benefited from Mr. Gollogher’s generous estate, especially the women he took in. He took good care of all of them and left nineteen daughters he had with various women a thousand pounds each. This was a worthy way to behave; and to the memory of the kind Tom Gollogher, I dedicate this note.’
Lest our readers should form rather a coarse idea of our author from the foregoing passages, we will conclude with another list of friends in a different style:
Lest our readers get a rough impression of our author from the previous passages, we will end with another list of friends in a different style:
‘The Conniving-house (as the gentlemen of Trinity called it in my time, and long after) was a little public-house, kept by Jack Macklean, about a quarter of a mile beyond Rings-end, on the top of the beach, within a few yards of the sea. Here we used to have the finest fish at all times; and, in the season, green peas, and all the most excellent vegetables. The ale here was always extraordinary, and everything the best; which, with its delightful situation, rendered it a delightful place of a summer’s evening. Many a delightful evening have I passed in this pretty thatched house with the famous Larry Grogan, who played on the bagpipes extremely well; dear Jack Lattin, matchless on the fiddle, and the most agreeable of companions; that ever-charming young fellow, Jack Wall, the most worthy, the most ingenious, the most engaging of men, the son of Counsellor Maurice Wall; and many other delightful fellows, who went in the days of their youth to the shades of eternity. When I think of them and their evening songs—‘We will go to Johnny Macklean’s, to try if his ale be good or no,’ etc. and that years and infirmities begin to oppress me—What is life!’
‘The Conniving-house (as the guys from Trinity called it in my time, and for a long time after) was a little pub run by Jack Macklean, about a quarter of a mile past Rings-end, right on the beach, just a few yards from the sea. We used to have the freshest fish all the time; and in season, green peas and all the best vegetables. The ale here was always amazing, and everything was top-notch; which, combined with its lovely location, made it a great spot on a summer evening. I’ve spent many a lovely evening in this charming thatched house with the famous Larry Grogan, who played the bagpipes really well; dear Jack Lattin, unbeatable on the fiddle, and the most enjoyable company; that ever-charming young guy, Jack Wall, the most honorable, clever, and engaging man, the son of Counsellor Maurice Wall; and many other great guys, who are now gone. When I think of them and their evening songs—‘We will go to Johnny Macklean’s, to see if his ale is good or not,’ etc. and that years and health issues are starting to weigh me down—What is life!’
We have another English author, very different from the last mentioned one, but equal in naïveté, and in the perfect display of personal character; we mean Isaac Walton, who wrote the Complete Angler. That well-known work has an extreme simplicity, and an extreme interest, arising out of its very simplicity. In the description of a fishing tackle you perceive the piety and humanity of the author’s mind. This is the best pastoral in the language, not excepting Pope’s or Philips’s. We doubt whether Sannazarius’s Piscatory Eclogues are equal to the scenes described by Walton on the banks of the River Lea. He gives the feeling of the open air. We walk with him along the dusty roadside, or repose on the banks of the river under a shady tree, and in watching for the finny prey, imbibe what he beautifully calls ‘the patience and simplicity of poor, honest fishermen.’ We accompany them to their inn at night, and partake of their simple but delicious fare, while Maud, the pretty milkmaid, at her mother’s desire, sings the classical ditties of Sir Walter Raleigh. Good cheer is not neglected in this work, any more than in John Buncle, or any other history which sets a proper value on the good things of life. The prints in the Complete Angler give an additional reality and 57interest to the scenes it describes. While Tottenham Cross shall stand, and longer, thy work, amiable and happy old man, shall last![43]
We have another English author, very different from the last one mentioned, but just as naive and perfectly showcasing personal character; we mean Isaac Walton, who wrote the Complete Angler. That well-known work is extremely simple yet incredibly engaging because of that simplicity. In his description of fishing gear, you can see the author's piety and humanity. This is the best pastoral writing in the language, not excluding Pope or Philips. We wonder if Sannazarius’s Piscatory Eclogues can compare to the scenes Walton describes along the banks of the River Lea. He captures the feeling of the great outdoors. We stroll with him along the dusty roadside, or relax by the river under a shady tree, and while waiting for the fish to bite, we absorb what he beautifully calls ‘the patience and simplicity of poor, honest fishermen.’ We join them at their inn at night and enjoy their simple but tasty meals, while Maud, the pretty milkmaid, sings the classic songs of Sir Walter Raleigh at her mother’s request. Good food is not overlooked in this work, just like in John Buncle, or any other story that values the good things in life. The illustrations in the Complete Angler add even more reality and interest to the scenes it portrays. As long as Tottenham Cross stands, your work, kind and happy old man, will endure!57
No. 15.] ON THE CAUSES OF METHODISM [Oct. 22, 1815.
The first Methodist on record was David. He was the first eminent person we read of, who made a regular compromise between religion and morality, between faith and good works. After any trifling peccadillo in point of conduct, as a murder, adultery, perjury, or the like, he ascended with his harp into some high tower of his palace; and having chaunted, in a solemn strain of poetical inspiration, the praises of piety and virtue, made his peace with heaven and his own conscience. This extraordinary genius, in the midst of his personal errors, retained the same lofty abstract enthusiasm for the favourite objects of his contemplation; the character of the poet and the prophet remained unimpaired by the vices of the man—
The first recorded Methodist was David. He was the first notable person we read about who managed to create a balance between religion and morality, between faith and good deeds. After committing any minor wrongdoing, like murder, adultery, perjury, or something similar, he would go up to a high tower in his palace with his harp; and there, singing in a serious, inspired manner, he would praise piety and virtue, making peace with both heaven and his own conscience. This remarkable individual, despite his personal flaws, maintained the same high, abstract passion for his favorite subjects of contemplation; the roles of the poet and the prophet were not diminished by the man's vices—
and the best test of the soundness of his principles and the elevation of his sentiments, is, that they were proof against his practice. The Gnostics afterwards maintained, that it was no matter what a man’s actions were, so that his understanding was not debauched by them—so that his opinions continued uncontaminated, and his heart, as the phrase is, right towards God. Strictly speaking, this sect (whatever name it might go by) is as old as human nature itself; for it has existed ever since there was a contradiction between the passions and the understanding—between what we are, and what we desire to be. The principle of Methodism is nearly allied to hypocrisy, and almost unavoidably slides into it: yet it is not the same thing; for we can hardly call any one a hypocrite, however much at variance his professions and his actions, who really wishes to be what he would be thought.
and the best way to test the strength of his principles and the nobility of his feelings is that they held up against his actions. The Gnostics later argued that it didn’t matter what a person's actions were, as long as their understanding wasn’t corrupted by them—so their opinions remained untarnished, and their heart, as the saying goes, right towards God. To be precise, this sect (regardless of what it was called) has existed as long as human nature itself; for it has been around since there’s been a conflict between our passions and our understanding—between who we are and who we want to be. The core idea of Methodism is closely related to hypocrisy and almost inevitably slips into it; yet it’s not quite the same; because we can hardly label someone a hypocrite, no matter how much their statements and actions clash, if they genuinely want to be what they wish to appear.
The Jewish bard, whom we have placed at the head of this class of devotees, was of a sanguine and robust temperament. Whether 58he chose ‘to sinner it or saint it,’ he did both most royally, with a fulness of gusto, and carried off his penances and his faux-pas in a style of oriental grandeur. This is by no means the character of his followers among ourselves, who are a most pitiful set. They may rather be considered as a collection of religious invalids; as the refuse of all that is weak and unsound in body and mind. To speak of them as they deserve, they are not well in the flesh, and therefore they take refuge in the spirit; they are not comfortable here, and they seek for the life to come; they are deficient in steadiness of moral principle, and they trust to grace to make up the deficiency; they are dull and gross in apprehension, and therefore they are glad to substitute faith for reason, and to plunge in the dark, under the supposed sanction of superior wisdom, into every species of mystery and jargon. This is the history of Methodism, which may be defined to be religion with its slobbering-bib and go-cart. It is a bastard kind of Popery, stripped of its painted pomp and outward ornaments, and reduced to a state of pauperism. ‘The whole need not a physician.’ Popery owed its success to its constant appeal to the senses and to the weaknesses of mankind. The Church of England deprives the Methodists of the pride and pomp of the Romish Church; but it has left open to them the appeal to the indolence, the ignorance, and the vices of the people; and the secret of the success of the Catholic faith and evangelical preaching is the same—both are a religion by proxy. What the one did by auricular confession, absolution, penance, pictures, and crucifixes, the other does, even more compendiously, by grace, election, faith without works, and words without meaning.
The Jewish poet we’ve put at the forefront of this group of followers had a cheerful and strong personality. Whether he acted like a sinner or a saint, he did so with complete enthusiasm and handled his struggles and mistakes with a touch of grand style. This is definitely not the case for his followers among us, who are quite unfortunate. They could be seen as a bunch of spiritual invalids; the remnants of all that is weak and unhealthy in both body and mind. To be frank, they aren’t well physically, so they turn to spirituality for refuge; they aren’t comfortable in this life and are looking for the next; they lack steady moral principles and rely on grace to fill that gap; they are dull and slow to understand, which is why they happily replace reason with blind faith, diving into the unknown under the guise of higher wisdom, embracing every kind of mystery and confusing terminology. This encapsulates Methodism, which can be described as religion for those who are still in diapers and needing a push. It’s a diluted version of Catholicism, stripped of its flashy trappings and reduced to a state of poverty. “The whole need not a physician.” Catholicism succeeded because it constantly appealed to human senses and weaknesses. The Church of England takes away the pride and extravagance of the Catholic Church from the Methodists, but it still allows them to tap into people’s laziness, ignorance, and vices; the secret to the success of both Catholic faith and evangelical preaching is the same—they both serve as a religion by proxy. Where one relied on confession, forgiveness, penance, images, and crucifixes, the other simplifies this even more with grace, election, faith without deeds, and empty words.
In the first place, the same reason makes a man a religious enthusiast that makes a man an enthusiast in any other way, an uncomfortable mind in an uncomfortable body. Poets, authors, and artists in general, have been ridiculed for a pining, puritanical, poverty-struck appearance, which has been attributed to their real poverty. But it would perhaps be nearer the truth to say, that their being poets, artists, etc. has been owing to their original poverty of spirit and weakness of constitution. As a general rule, those who are dissatisfied with themselves, will seek to go out of themselves into an ideal world. Persons in strong health and spirits, who take plenty of air and exercise, who are ‘in favour with their stars,’ and have a thorough relish of the good things of this life, seldom devote themselves in despair to religion or the Muses. Sedentary, nervous, hypochondriacal people, on the contrary, are forced, for want of an appetite for the real and substantial, to look out for a more airy food and speculative comforts. ‘Conceit in weakest bodies strongest works.’ 59A journeyman sign-painter, whose lungs have imbibed too great a quantity of the effluvia of white-lead, will be seized with a fantastic passion for the stage; and Mawworm, tired of standing behind his counter, was eager to mount a tub, mistaking the suppression of his animal spirits for the communication of the Holy Ghost![44] If you live near a chapel or tabernacle in London, you may almost always tell, from physiognomical signs, which of the passengers will turn the corner to go there. We were once staying in a remote place in the country, where a chapel of this sort had been erected by the force of missionary zeal; and one morning, we perceived a long procession of people coming from the next town to the consecration of this same chapel. Never was there such a set of scarecrows. Melancholy tailors, consumptive hair-dressers, squinting cobblers, women with child or in the ague, made up the forlorn hope of the pious cavalcade. The pastor of this half-starved flock, we confess, came riding after, with a more goodly aspect, as if he had ‘with sound of bell been knolled to church, and sat at good men’s feasts.’ He had in truth lately married a thriving widow, and been pampered with hot suppers to strengthen the flesh and the spirit. We have seen several of these ‘round fat oily men of God,
In the first place, the same reason that makes someone a religious enthusiast is what makes anyone an enthusiast in any way: an uncomfortable mind in an uncomfortable body. Poets, authors, and artists, in general, have often been mocked for their longing, puritanical, poverty-stricken look, which people chalk up to real poverty. But it might be more accurate to say that their status as poets, artists, etc., stems from their original lack of spirit and weakness of constitution. Generally speaking, those who are unhappy with themselves seek to escape into an ideal world. Those who are healthy and in good spirits, who get plenty of fresh air and exercise, who are in tune with their fate and enjoy the good things in life, rarely devote themselves with despair to religion or the arts. In contrast, sedentary, anxious, hypochondriacal individuals, lacking an appetite for the real and substantial, are compelled to search for lighter nourishment and speculative comforts. “Conceit in the weakest bodies works the strongest.” A journeyman sign-painter, whose lungs have absorbed too much white lead fumes, might develop a fanciful passion for the stage; and Mawworm, tired of being stuck behind his counter, was eager to stand on a tub, confusing the suppression of his spirits with the inspiration of the Holy Ghost! If you live near a chapel or tabernacle in London, you can almost always tell from their appearances which pedestrians will turn the corner to go there. We once stayed in a remote area in the countryside, where a chapel had been built thanks to missionary fervor; and one morning, we noticed a long line of people coming from the next town for the consecration of this chapel. Never have we seen such a collection of scarecrows. Melancholy tailors, consumptive hairdressers, squinting cobblers, and pregnant women or those suffering from fever made up the forlorn hope of the pious procession. The pastor of this half-famished flock, we must admit, rode up afterward, looking much better, as if he had been called to church with a sound of bells and was sitting at the feasts of good men. He had recently married a well-off widow and had been treated to hot suppers to strengthen both his body and spirit. We’ve seen several of these “round, fat, oily men of God,”
They grow sleek and corpulent by getting into better pasture, but they do not appear healthy. They retain the original sin of their constitution, an atrabilious taint in their complexion, and do not put a right-down, hearty, honest, good-looking face upon the matter, like the regular clergy.
They become sleek and overweight by accessing better grazing, but they don’t seem healthy. They hold onto the inherent flaws of their nature, showing a bit of a gloomy tint in their skin, and don’t present a genuinely warm, honest, attractive appearance like the proper clergy.
Again, Methodism, by its leading doctrines, has a peculiar charm for all those, who have an equal facility in sinning and repenting,—in whom the spirit is willing but the flesh is weak,—who have neither fortitude to withstand temptation, nor to silence the admonitions of conscience,—who like the theory of religion better than the practice, and who are willing to indulge in all the raptures of speculative devotion, without being tied down to the dull, literal performance of its duties. There is a general propensity in the human mind (even in the most vicious) to pay virtue a distant homage; and this desire is only checked by the fear of condemning ourselves by our own acknowledgments. What an admirable expedient then in ‘that 60burning and shining light,’ Whitefield, and his associates, to make this very disposition to admire and extol the highest patterns of goodness, a substitute for, instead of an obligation to, the practice of virtue, to allow us to be quit for ‘the vice that most easily besets us,’ by canting lamentations over the depravity of human nature, and loud hosannahs to the Son of David! How comfortably this doctrine must sit on all those who are loth to give up old habits of vice, or are just tasting the sweets of new ones; on the withered hag who looks back on a life of dissipation, or the young devotee who looks forward to a life of pleasure; the knavish tradesman retiring from business or entering on it; the battered rake; the sneaking politician, who trims between his place and his conscience, wriggling between heaven and earth, a miserable two-legged creature, with sanctified face and fawning gestures; the maudling sentimentalist, the religious prostitute, the disinterested poet-laureate, the humane war-contractor, or the Society for the Suppression of Vice! This scheme happily turns morality into a sinecure, takes all the practical drudgery and trouble off your hands, ‘and sweet religion makes a rhapsody of words.’ Its proselytes besiege the gates of heaven, like sturdy beggars about the doors of the great, lie and bask in the sunshine of divine grace, sigh and groan and bawl out for mercy, expose their sores and blotches to excite commiseration, and cover the deformities of their nature with a garb of borrowed righteousness!
Once again, Methodism, through its key beliefs, has a unique appeal for those who can easily sin and repent—those whose spirit is willing but whose flesh is weak—who lack the strength to resist temptation or quiet their conscience—who prefer the theory of religion over the practice, and who are eager to engage in all the excitement of speculative devotion without being burdened by the dull, straightforward execution of its duties. There’s a common tendency in human nature (even in the most corrupt) to show virtue a distant respect; this desire is only held back by the fear of self-condemnation through our own admissions. What a brilliant strategy, then, by ‘that burning and shining light,’ Whitefield, and his peers, to turn this very tendency to admire and praise the highest examples of goodness into a substitute for, rather than a requirement for, practicing virtue—allowing us to excuse ‘the vice that easily traps us’ by lamenting the fallen state of humanity and shouting praises to the Son of David! How comfortably this belief must suit anyone reluctant to abandon old vices or who is just beginning to enjoy new ones; the worn-out woman reflecting on a life of excess, or the young devotee anticipating a life of pleasure; the deceitful tradesman retiring from or starting a business; the jaded rake; the scheming politician, who balances his job with his conscience, wriggling between heaven and earth, a pitiful creature with a pious face and flattering mannerisms; the overly sentimentalist, the religious hypocrite, the self-serving poet-laureate, the compassionate war contractor, or the Society for the Suppression of Vice! This approach conveniently turns morality into an easy task, relieving you of all the practical work and hassle, ‘and sweet religion becomes a series of words.’ Its followers swarm the gates of heaven like persistent beggars outside the homes of the wealthy, lie and bask in the light of divine grace, sigh and moan and call out for mercy, reveal their wounds and blemishes to stir pity, and cover up their flaws with a facade of borrowed righteousness!
The jargon and nonsense which are so studiously inculcated in the system, are another powerful recommendation of it to the vulgar. It does not impose any tax upon the understanding. Its essence is to be unintelligible. It is carte blanche for ignorance and folly! Those, ‘numbers without number,’ who are either unable or unwilling to think connectedly or rationally on any subject, are at once released from every obligation of the kind, by being told that faith and reason are opposed to one another, and the greater the impossibility, the greater the merit of the faith. A set of phrases which, without conveying any distinct idea, excite our wonder, our fear, our curiosity and desires, which let loose the imagination of the gaping multitude, and confound and baffle common sense, are the common stock-in-trade of the conventicle. They never stop for the distinctions of the understanding, and have thus got the start of other sects, who are so hemmed in with the necessity of giving reasons for their opinions, that they cannot get on at all. ‘Vital Christianity’ is no other than an attempt to lower all religion to the level of the capacities of the lowest of the people. One of their favourite places of worship combines the noise and turbulence of a drunken brawl at an ale-house, with the indecencies of a bagnio. They strive to gain a 61vertigo by abandoning their reason, and give themselves up to the intoxications of a distempered zeal, that
The jargon and nonsense that are rigorously instilled in the system are another strong selling point for it among the average person. It doesn’t challenge anyone’s understanding. Its core purpose is to be confusing. It’s a free pass for ignorance and foolishness! Those who are “countless in number,” either unable or unwilling to think logically or coherently about any topic, are immediately freed from any such obligation by being told that faith and reason oppose each other, and that the more impossible something is, the more valuable the faith. A collection of phrases that, without presenting any clear idea, stir our wonder, our fear, our curiosity, and desires, which unleash the imagination of the awe-struck crowd and confuse common sense, are the standard tools of the assembly. They disregard the distinctions of understanding and have thus gained an edge over other groups, who are so constrained by the need to justify their views that they struggle to make any progress. “Vital Christianity” is just an effort to bring all religion down to the level of the least educated people. One of their favored places of worship mixes the noise and chaos of a drunken fight at a pub with the indecency of a brothel. They aim to reach a dizzying state by abandoning their reason and surrendering themselves to the intoxicating fervor of misguided zeal.
Religion, without superstition, will not answer the purposes of fanaticism, and we may safely say, that almost every sect of Christianity is a perversion of its essence, to accommodate it to the prejudices of the world. The Methodists have greased the boots of the Presbyterians, and they have done well. While the latter are weighing their doubts and scruples to the division of a hair, and shivering on the narrow brink that divides philosophy from religion, the former plunge without remorse into hell-flames, soar on the wings of divine love, are carried away with the motions of the spirit, are lost in the abyss of unfathomable mysteries,—election, reprobation, predestination,—and revel in a sea of boundless nonsense. It is a gulf that swallows up every thing. The cold, the calculating, and the dry, are not to the taste of the many; religion is an anticipation of the preternatural world, and it in general requires preternatural excitements to keep it alive. If it takes a definite consistent form, it loses its interest: to produce its effect it must come in the shape of an apparition. Our quacks treat grown people as the nurses do children;—terrify them with what they have no idea of, or take them to a puppet-show.
Religion, without superstition, won't fulfill the needs of fanaticism, and we can confidently say that almost every Christian denomination twists its core beliefs to fit societal prejudices. The Methodists have supported the Presbyterians, and that's commendable. While the latter meticulously ponder their doubts and concerns, teetering on the fine line between philosophy and religion, the former dive headfirst into chaos, reveling in divine love, swept away by the spirit, lost in a sea of deep mysteries—like election, reprobation, and predestination—and indulge in a flood of utter nonsense. It’s a chasm that engulfs everything. The rational and methodical approach doesn’t appeal to most; religion is a glimpse into the supernatural realm, and it often needs extraordinary stimulation to survive. If it takes on a clear, consistent form, it loses its allure; to have an impact, it must come across like a ghostly vision. Our charlatans treat adults like caregivers treat children—scaring them with the unknown or entertaining them with a puppet show.
No. 16.] ON THE MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM [Nov. 26, 1815.
Bottom the weaver is a character that has not had justice done him. He is the most romantic of mechanics. And what a list of companions he has—Quince the carpenter, Snug the joiner, Flute the bellows-mender, Snout the tinker, Starveling the tailor; and then, again, what a group of fairy attendants, Puck, Peaseblossom, Cobweb, Moth, and Mustard-seed! It has been observed that Shakspeare’s characters are constructed upon deep physiological principles; and there is something in this play which looks very like it. Bottom the weaver, who takes the lead of
Bottom the weaver is a character who hasn't been given the recognition he deserves. He is the most imaginative of craftsmen. And just look at his companions—Quince the carpenter, Snug the joiner, Flute the bellows mender, Snout the tinker, Starveling the tailor; and then there's also a whole group of fairy helpers, Puck, Peaseblossom, Cobweb, Moth, and Mustard-seed! It's been noted that Shakespeare’s characters are built on profound psychological principles; and there's something in this play that strongly suggests that. Bottom the weaver, who takes the lead of
follows a sedentary trade, and he is accordingly represented as conceited, 62serious, and fantastical. He is ready to undertake any thing and every thing, as if it was as much a matter of course as the motion of his loom and shuttle. He is for playing the tyrant, the lover, the lady, the lion. ‘He will roar that it shall do any man’s heart good to hear him’; and this being objected to as improper, he still has a resource in his good opinion of himself, and ‘will roar you an ‘twere any nightingale.’ Snug the joiner is the moral man of the piece, who proceeds by measurement and discretion in all things. You see him with his rule and compasses in his hand. ‘Have you the lion’s part written? Pray you, if it be, give it me, for I am slow of study.’ ‘You may do it extempore,’ says Quince, ‘for it is nothing but roaring.’ Starveling the tailor keeps the peace, and objects to the lion and the drawn sword: ‘I believe we must leave the killing out, when all’s done.’ Starveling, however, does not start the objections himself, but seconds them when made by others, as if he had not spirit to express his fears without encouragement. It is too much to suppose all this intentional: but it very luckily falls out so. Nature includes all that is implied in the most subtle and analytical distinctions; and the same distinctions will be found in Shakspeare. Bottom, who is not only chief actor, but stage-manager for the occasion, has a device to obviate the danger of frightening the ladies: ‘Write me a prologue, and let the prologue seem to say, we will do him no harm with our swords, and that Pyramus is not killed indeed; and for better assurance, tell them that I, Pyramus, am not Pyramus, but Bottom the weaver; this will put them out of fear.’ Bottom seems to have understood the subject of dramatic illusion at least as well as any modern essayist. If our holiday mechanic rules the roast among his fellows, he is no less at home in his new character of an ass, ‘with amiable cheeks and fair large ears.’ He instinctively acquires a most learned taste, and grows fastidious in the choice of dried peas and bottled hay. He is quite familiar with his new attendants, and assigns them their parts with all due gravity. ‘Monsieur Cobweb, good Monsieur, get your weapon in your hand, and kill me a red-hipt humble bee on the top of a thistle, and good Monsieur, bring me the honey-bag.’ What an exact knowledge is shewn here of natural history!
follows a sedentary job, and he is therefore shown as arrogant, serious, and whimsical. He’s ready to take on anything and everything, as if it were just as routine as the movement of his loom and shuttle. He’s going to play the tyrant, the lover, the lady, and the lion. “He will roar that it will be a joy to anyone’s heart to hear him,” and when someone points out that this is inappropriate, he still has his self-esteem to rely on, insisting “I will roar for you as if I were a nightingale.” Snug the joiner is the moral one in the group, approaching everything with careful measurement and thought. You see him holding his ruler and compass. “Do you have the lion’s part written? Please, if you do, give it to me, because I’m a slow learner.” “You can do it on the spot,” says Quince, “since it’s just roaring.” Starveling the tailor keeps the peace and objects to the lion and the drawn sword: “I think we should leave out the killing, when all is said and done.” Starveling, however, doesn’t voice the objections himself but supports others when they bring them up, almost as if he lacks the courage to express his worries without prompting. It’s too much to assume all of this is intentional, but it happens to work out that way. Nature includes everything suggested in the most subtle and analytical distinctions, and you’ll find the same distinctions in Shakespeare. Bottom, who is not just the main actor but also the stage manager for the event, has a plan to avoid scaring the women: “Write me a prologue, and let it seem to say that we won’t harm anyone with our swords, and that Pyramus isn’t really dead; and for extra assurance, tell them that I, Pyramus, am not Pyramus, but Bottom the weaver; this will ease their fears.” Bottom seems to grasp the concept of dramatic illusion at least as well as any modern writer. If our holiday worker is in charge amongst his peers, he also fits perfectly into his new role as a donkey, “with friendly cheeks and large ears.” He naturally develops a surprisingly refined taste, becoming picky about choosing dried peas and bottled hay. He’s totally comfortable with his new companions, assigning them their roles with all seriousness. “Monsieur Cobweb, my good sir, grab your weapon and kill me a red-hipped humble bee on top of a thistle, and good Monsieur, bring me the honey-bag.” What a precise knowledge of natural history is displayed here!
Puck or Robin Goodfellow is the leader of the fairy band. He is the Ariel of the Midsummer Night’s Dream; and yet as unlike as can be to the Ariel in the Tempest. No other poet could have made two such different characters out of the same fanciful materials and situations. Ariel is a minister of retribution, who is touched with a sense of pity at the woes he inflicts. Puck is a mad-cap sprite, full of wantonness and mischief, who laughs at those whom he misleads: 63‘Lord, what fools these mortals be!’ Ariel cleaves the air, and executes his mission with the zeal of a winged messenger: Puck is borne along on his fairy errand, like the light and glittering gossamer before the breeze. He is, indeed, a most Epicurean little gentleman, dealing in quaint devices, and faring in dainty delights. Prospero and his world of spirits are a set of moralists: but with Oberon and his fairies we are launched at once into the empire of the butterflies. How beautifully is this race of beings contrasted with the men and women actors in the scene, by a single epithet which Titania gives to the latter, ‘the human mortals’! It is astonishing that Shakspeare should be considered, not only by foreigners, but by many of our own critics, as a gloomy and heavy writer, who painted nothing but ‘Gorgons and Hydras and Chimeras dire.’ His subtlety exceeds that of all other dramatic writers, insomuch that a celebrated person of the present day said, that he regarded him rather as a metaphysician than a poet. His delicacy and sportive gaiety are infinite. In the Midsummer Night’s Dream alone, we should imagine, there is more sweetness and beauty of description than in the whole range of French poetry put together. What we mean is this, that we will produce out of that single play ten passages, to which we do not think any ten passages in the works of the French poets can be opposed, displaying equal fancy and imagery. Shall we mention the remonstrance of Helena to Hermia, or Titania’s description of her fairy train, or her disputes with Oberon about the Indian boy, or Puck’s account of himself and his employments, or the Fairy Queen’s exhortation to the elves to pay due attendance upon her favourite Bottom,[45] or Hippolyta’s description of a chace, or Theseus’s answer? The two last are as heroical and spirited, as the others are full of luscious tenderness. The reading of this play is like wandering in a grove by moonlight: the descriptions breathe a sweetness like odours thrown from beds of flowers.
Puck or Robin Goodfellow is the leader of the fairy crew. He is the Ariel of the Midsummer Night’s Dream; yet he couldn't be more different from Ariel in the Tempest. No other poet could create such distinct characters from the same whimsical elements and situations. Ariel is a bringer of justice, who feels pity for the suffering he causes. Puck is a whimsical sprite, brimming with mischief, who laughs at those he deceives: 63‘Lord, what fools these mortals be!’ Ariel soars through the air, fulfilling his duties with the enthusiasm of a messenger with wings: Puck floats along on his fairy tasks, like glimmering gossamer carried by the breeze. He is truly a most hedonistic little gentleman, engaging in clever tricks and indulging in delightful pleasures. Prospero and his spirits are moralists, but with Oberon and his fairies, we are immediately immersed in the whimsical world of butterflies. How beautifully this race of beings is contrasted with the human actors in the scene, by a single word Titania uses for the latter, ‘the human mortals’! It’s surprising that Shakespeare is seen, both by foreigners and even by some of our critics, as a gloomy and heavy writer, who depicted only ‘Gorgons and Hydras and Chimeras dire.’ His subtlety surpasses all other dramatic writers, to the extent that a well-known figure today claimed to see him more as a philosopher than a poet. His delicacy and playful joy are boundless. In the Midsummer Night’s Dream alone, one might argue that there is more sweetness and beauty in its descriptions than in the entire body of French poetry combined. What we mean is this: we can find ten passages from that single play that we believe no ten passages from the works of French poets can match in terms of imagination and imagery. Should we mention Helena’s plea to Hermia, or Titania’s depiction of her fairy entourage, or her arguments with Oberon over the Indian boy, or Puck’s description of himself and his duties, or the Fairy Queen’s urging her elves to properly attend to her favorite Bottom,[45] or Hippolyta’s chase description, or Theseus’s response? The latter two are as heroic and spirited as the former are full of tender sweetness. Reading this play feels like strolling through a grove under the moonlight: the descriptions carry a sweetness like fragrances wafting from beds of flowers.
64Shakspeare is almost the only poet of whom it may be said, that
64Shakespeare is almost the only poet who can be said that
His nice touches of individual character, and marking of its different gradations, have been often admired; but the instances have not been exhausted, because they are inexhaustible. We will mention two which occur to us. One is where Christopher Sly expresses his approbation of the play, by saying, ‘’Tis a good piece of work, would ‘twere done,’ as if he were thinking of his Saturday night’s job. Again, there cannot well be a finer gradation of character than that in Henry IV. between Falstaff and Shallow, and Shallow and Silence. It seems difficult to fall lower than the Squire; but this fool, great as he is, finds an admirer and humble foil in his cousin Silence. Vain of his acquaintance with Sir John, who makes a butt of him, he exclaims, ‘Would, cousin Silence, that thou had’st seen that which this Knight and I have seen!’ ‘Aye, master Shallow, we have heard the chimes at midnight,’ says Sir John. The true spirit of humanity, the thorough knowledge of the stuff we are made of, the practical wisdom with the seeming fooleries, in the whole of this exquisite scene, and afterwards in the dialogue on the death of old Double, have no parallel anywhere else.
His unique touches of individual character and the way he marks its different levels have often been admired, but we haven’t run out of examples, because they are endless. We’ll mention two that come to mind. One is when Christopher Sly shows his approval of the play, saying, "It’s a good piece of work, I wish it were done," as if he were thinking about his Saturday night job. Again, there’s hardly a finer distinction of character in Henry IV. than between Falstaff and Shallow, and Shallow and Silence. It seems difficult to find someone lower than the Squire; yet this great fool finds both an admirer and a humble counterpart in his cousin Silence. Proud of knowing Sir John, who makes fun of him, he exclaims, "I wish, cousin Silence, that you had seen what this Knight and I have seen!" "Aye, master Shallow, we have heard the chimes at midnight," replies Sir John. The true essence of humanity, the deep understanding of what we’re made of, and the practical wisdom mixed with seeming foolishness in this whole exquisite scene, and later in the dialogue about the death of old Double, have no equal anywhere else.
It has been suggested to us, that the Midsummer Night’s Dream would do admirably to get up as a Christmas after-piece; and our prompter proposes that Mr. Kean should play the part of Bottom, as worthy of his great talents. He might offer to play the lady like any of our actresses that he pleased, the lover or the tyrant like any of our actors that he pleased, and the lion like ‘the most fearful wild fowl living.’ The carpenter, the tailor, and joiner, would hit the galleries. The young ladies in love would interest the side-boxes, and Robin Goodfellow and his companions excite a lively fellow-feeling in the children from school. There would be two courts, an empire within an empire, the Athenian and the Fairy King and Queen, with their attendants, and with all their finery. What an opportunity for processions, for the sound of trumpets, and glittering of spears! What a fluttering of urchins’ painted wings; what a delightful profusion of gauze clouds, and airy spirits floating on them! It would be a complete English fairy tale.
It has been suggested to us that Midsummer Night’s Dream would be perfect as a Christmas after-show, and our prompter proposes that Mr. Kean should play the role of Bottom, which suits his great talents. He could choose to play the lady like any of our actresses, the lover or the tyrant like any of our actors, and the lion like “the most fearful wild creature alive.” The carpenter, the tailor, and the joiner would entertain the audience in the upper levels. The young ladies in love would capture the attention of those in the side-boxes, and Robin Goodfellow and his friends would create a lively vibe among the children coming from school. There would be two courts, an empire within an empire, the Athenian and the Fairy King and Queen, along with their attendants and all their finery. What a chance for parades, the sound of trumpets, and the shine of spears! What a flurry of painted wings from the kids; what a delightful abundance of gauzy clouds and airy spirits floating above! It would be a complete English fairy tale.
No. 17.] ON THE BEGGAR’S OPERA [June 18, 1815.
We have begun this Essay on a very coarse sheet of damaged foolscap, and we find that we are going to write it, whether for the sake of contrast, or from having a very fine pen, in a remarkably nice hand. Something of a similar process seems to have taken place in Gay’s mind, when he composed his Beggar’s Opera. He chose a very unpromising ground to work upon, and he has prided himself in adorning it with all the graces, the precision and brilliancy of style. It is a vulgar error to call this a vulgar play. So far from it, that we do not scruple to declare our opinion that it is one of the most refined productions in the language. The elegance of the composition is in exact proportion to the coarseness of the materials: by ‘happy alchemy of mind,’ the author has extracted an essence of refinement from the dregs of human life, and turns its very dross into gold. The scenes, characters, and incidents are, in themselves, of the lowest and most disgusting kind: but, by the sentiments and reflections which are put into the mouths of highwaymen, turnkeys, their mistresses, wives, or daughters, he has converted this motley group into a set of fine gentlemen and ladies, satirists and philosophers. He has also effected this transformation without once violating probability, or ‘o’erstepping the modesty of nature.’ In fact Gay has turned the tables on the critics; and by the assumed licence of the mock-heroic style, has enabled himself to do justice to nature, that is, to give all the force, truth, and locality of real feeling to the thoughts and expressions, without being called to the bar of false taste and affected delicacy. The extreme beauty and feeling of the song, ‘Woman is like the fair flower in its lustre,’ is only equalled by its characteristic propriety and naïveté. It may be said that this is taken from Tibullus; but there is nothing about Covent Garden in Tibullus. Polly describes her lover going to the gallows with the same touching simplicity, and with all the natural fondness of a young girl in her circumstances, who sees in his approaching catastrophe nothing but the misfortunes and the personal accomplishments of the object of her affections. ‘I see him sweeter than the nosegay in his hand: the admiring crowd lament that so lovely a youth should come to an untimely end:—even butchers weep, and Jack Ketch refuses his fee rather than consent to tie the fatal knot.’ The preservation of the character and costume is complete. It has been said by a great authority, ‘There is some soul of goodness in things evil’: and the Beggar’s Opera is a good-natured but instructive comment on this text. The poet has thrown all the gaiety and sunshine of the imagination, 66all the intoxication of pleasure, and the vanity of despair, round the short-lived existence of his heroes; while Peachum and Lockitt are seen in the back-ground, parcelling out their months and weeks between them. The general view exhibited of human life, is of the most masterly and abstracted kind. The author has, with great felicity, brought out the good qualities and interesting emotions almost inseparable from the lowest conditions; and with the same penetrating glance has detected the disguises which rank and circumstances lend to exalted vice. Every line in this sterling comedy sparkles with wit, and is fraught with the keenest sarcasm. The very wit, however, takes off from the offensiveness of the satire; and we have seen great statesmen, very great statesmen, heartily enjoying the joke, laughing most immoderately at the compliments paid to them as not much worse than pickpockets and cut-throats in a different line of life, and pleased, as it were, to see themselves humanised by some sort of fellowship with their kind. Indeed, it may be said that the moral of the piece is to show the vulgarity of vice; and that the same violations of integrity and decorum, the same habitual sophistry in palliating their want of principle, are common to the great and powerful, with the lowest and most contemptible of the species. What can be more convincing than the arguments used by these would-be politicians, to shew that in hypocrisy, selfishness, and treachery, they do not come up to many of their betters? The exclamation of Mrs. Peachum, when her daughter marries Macheath, ‘Hussey, hussey, you will be as ill used, and as much neglected, as if you had married a lord,’ is worth all Miss Hannah More’s laboured invectives on the laxity of the manners of high life![46]
We started this essay on a rough piece of damaged paper, and it turns out we'll write it in a surprisingly nice handwriting, either for contrast or because we have an excellent pen. A similar thing seems to have happened in Gay’s mind when he wrote his Beggar’s Opera. He picked a very unpromising foundation to build on, yet he takes pride in decorating it with all the grace, precision, and brilliance of style. It's a common misconception to call this a vulgar play. On the contrary, we confidently state that it’s one of the most refined works in the language. The elegance of the composition is perfectly balanced with the coarseness of the materials: through a 'happy alchemy of mind,' the author has extracted an essence of refinement from the dregs of human life and turned its very dross into gold. The scenes, characters, and events are inherently low and disgusting; however, through the sentiments and reflections placed in the mouths of highwaymen, jailers, their lovers, wives, or daughters, he has transformed this mixed group into refined gentlemen and ladies, satirists, and philosophers. He achieved this transformation without once violating believability or 'overstepping the modesty of nature.' In fact, Gay has flipped the script on the critics; with the license of a mock-heroic style, he has managed to do justice to nature, meaning he can give all the strength, truth, and realism of genuine feelings to the thoughts and expressions without being judged by false taste and pretentious delicacy. The extreme beauty and emotion of the song, ‘Woman is like the fair flower in its lustre,’ is matched only by its fitting propriety and naivety. It could be said that this is inspired by Tibullus; however, there’s nothing about Covent Garden in Tibullus. Polly describes her lover going to the gallows with the same touching simplicity and natural affection of a young girl in her situation, who sees nothing in his impending doom except the misfortunes and personal qualities of the person she loves. ‘I see him sweeter than the nosegay in his hand: the admiring crowd laments that such a lovely youth should meet an untimely end:—even butchers weep, and Jack Ketch refuses his fee rather than agree to tie the fatal knot.’ The preservation of character and costume is flawless. A great authority has said, ‘There is some soul of goodness in things evil’; and the Beggar’s Opera is a good-natured but insightful commentary on this idea. The poet has infused all the joy and brightness of imagination, all the intoxication of pleasure, and the vanity of despair around the brief existence of his heroes; while Peachum and Lockitt are seen in the background, dividing their months and weeks. The overall portrayal of human life is incredibly skillful and abstract. The author has successfully highlighted the good qualities and interesting emotions that are often inseparable from the lowest conditions, while also discerning the disguises that rank and circumstance lend to high vice. Every line of this brilliant comedy sparkles with wit and is filled with sharp sarcasm. The very wit, however, reduces the harshness of the satire; we’ve seen very prominent statesmen thoroughly enjoying the joke, laughing heartily at being compared to pickpockets and murderers in a different line of work, pleased, in a way, to see themselves humanized by a sort of kinship with their kind. Indeed, one could argue that the moral of the piece is to illustrate the vulgarity of vice; that the same breaches of integrity and decency, the same habitual reasoning in justifying their lack of principles, are common among the powerful and great as well as the lowest and most contemptible among us. What could be more convincing than the arguments used by these self-proclaimed politicians to show that in hypocrisy, selfishness, and betrayal, they don't measure up to many of their betters? The exclamation of Mrs. Peachum when her daughter marries Macheath, ‘Hussey, hussey, you will be as ill-used, and as much neglected, as if you had married a lord,’ is worth more than all of Miss Hannah More’s forced critiques on the looseness of high society![46]
No. 18.] ON PATRIOTISM.—A FRAGMENT [Jan. 5, 1814.
Patriotism, in modern times, and in great states, is and must be the creature of reason and reflection, rather than the offspring of physical or local attachment. Our country is a complex, abstract existence, recognised only by the understanding. It is an immense riddle, containing numberless modifications of reason and prejudice, of thought and passion. Patriotism is not, in a strict or exclusive sense, a natural or personal affection, but a law of our rational and moral nature, strengthened and determined by particular circumstances and associations, but not born of them, nor wholly nourished by them. It is not possible that we should have an individual attachment to sixteen millions of men, any more than to sixty millions. We cannot be habitually attached to places we never saw, and people we never heard of. Is not the name of Englishman a general term, as well as that of man? How many varieties does it not combine within it? Are the opposite extremities of the globe our native place, because they are a part of that geographical and political denomination, our country? Does natural affection expand in circles of latitude and longitude? What personal or instinctive sympathy has the English peasant with the African slave-driver, or East Indian Nabob? Some of our wretched bunglers in metaphysics would fain persuade us to discard all general humanity, and all sense of abstract justice, as a violation of natural affection, and yet do not see that the love of our country itself is in the list of our general affections. The common notions of patriotism are transmitted down to us from the savage tribes, where the fate and condition of all was the same, or from the states of Greece and Rome, where the country of the citizen was the town in which he was born. Where this is no longer the case,—where our country is no longer contained within the narrow circle of the same walls,—where we can no longer behold its glimmering horizon from the top of our native mountains—beyond these limits, it is not a natural but an artificial idea, and our love of it either a deliberate dictate of reason, or a cant term. It was said by an acute observer, and eloquent writer (Rousseau) that the love of mankind 68was nothing but the love of justice: the same might be said, with considerable truth, of the love of our country. It is little more than another name for the love of liberty, of independence, of peace, and social happiness. We do not say that other indirect and collateral circumstances do not go to the superstructure of this sentiment (as language,[47] literature, manners, national customs), but this is the broad and firm basis.
Patriotism today, especially in large nations, should be based on reason and reflection, not just physical or local attachments. Our country is a complex and abstract idea, understood only through thought. It’s an enormous puzzle made up of countless reasons, biases, thoughts, and feelings. Patriotism isn’t strictly a natural or personal love; it's a principle of our rational and moral nature, shaped and influenced by specific circumstances and connections, but it doesn’t solely arise from them or depend on them completely. We can't feel a personal attachment to sixteen million people any more than to sixty million. We can't be habitually attached to places we've never seen and people we've never met. Isn't "Englishman" just a general term, similar to "human"? It encompasses so many different aspects. Are distant corners of the world our homeland simply because they fall under the same geographical and political label of our country? Does natural affection stretch across lines of latitude and longitude? What instinctive connection does an English farmer have with an African slave trader or an Indian noble? Some of our confused thinkers in philosophy try to convince us to ignore universal humanity and abstract justice as a betrayal of natural affection, yet they fail to see that our love for our country is also part of these broader feelings. The typical ideas about patriotism come down to us from primitive tribes, where everyone shared the same fate, or from ancient Greek and Roman states, where a citizen's country was simply the city they were born in. When this isn’t the case anymore—when our country isn't confined to the small area of our hometown—and when we can no longer see its distant horizon from our local mountains, then our notion of country becomes artificial, and our affection for it is either a careful choice or just empty words. An insightful observer and eloquent writer (Rousseau) noted that love for humanity is essentially the love for justice; similarly, we could say with some truth that love for our country is primarily about the love for freedom, independence, peace, and social happiness. We don't claim that other indirect factors (like language, [47] literature, customs, and national practices) don't contribute to this sentiment, but they are built upon this solid foundation.
No. 19.] ON BEAUTY [Feb 4, 1816.
It is about sixty years ago that Sir Joshua Reynolds, in three papers which he wrote in the Idler, advanced the notion, which has prevailed very much ever since, that Beauty was entirely dependent on custom, or on the conformity of objects to a given standard. Now, we could never persuade ourselves that custom, or the association of ideas, though a very powerful, was the only principle of the preference which the mind gives to certain objects over others. Novelty is surely one source of pleasure; otherwise we cannot account for the well-known epigram, beginning—
It was about sixty years ago that Sir Joshua Reynolds, in three articles he wrote in the Idler, proposed the idea that beauty is completely reliant on custom or the alignment of objects with a specific standard. However, we could never convince ourselves that custom, or the connection of ideas, no matter how influential, was the only reason why the mind favors certain objects over others. Novelty is definitely one source of enjoyment; otherwise, we can't explain the famous epigram that starts—
Nor can we help thinking, that, besides custom, or the conformity of certain objects to others of the same general class, there is also a certain conformity of objects to themselves, a symmetry of parts, a principle of proportion, gradation, harmony (call it what you will), which makes certain things naturally pleasing or beautiful, and the want of it the contrary.
Nor can we help but think that, in addition to custom, or the way certain objects match others in the same general category, there is also a natural connection among objects themselves—a symmetry of parts, a principle of proportion, gradation, harmony (call it whatever you want)—which makes certain things naturally pleasing or beautiful, and the absence of that connection leads to the opposite.
We will not pretend to define what Beauty is, after so many learned authors have failed; but we shall attempt to give some examples of what constitutes it, to shew that it is in some way inherent in the object, and that if custom is a second nature, there is another nature which ranks before it. Indeed, the idea that all pleasure and pain depend on the association of ideas is manifestly absurd: there must be something in itself pleasurable or painful, before it could become possible for the feelings of pleasure or pain to be transferred by association from one object to another.
We won’t pretend to define what Beauty is, considering how many learned authors have failed at it; instead, we’ll provide some examples of what makes it, to show that it is somehow inherent in the object, and that if custom is a second nature, there is another nature that comes first. In fact, the idea that all pleasure and pain rely on the association of ideas is clearly absurd: there must be something intrinsically pleasurable or painful before it can even be possible for feelings of pleasure or pain to be transferred from one object to another through association.
Regular features are generally accounted handsome; but regular features are those, the outlines of which answer most nearly to each other, or undergo the fewest abrupt changes. We shall attempt to explain this idea by a reference to the Greek and African face; the 69first of which is beautiful, because it is made up of lines corresponding with or melting into each other: the last is not so, because it is made up almost entirely of contradictory lines and sharp angular projections.
Regular features are usually considered attractive; however, regular features are those whose outlines closely resemble each other or have the fewest sudden changes. We’ll try to explain this concept by referring to the Greek and African faces; the 69 Greek face is beautiful because its lines correspond with or blend into each other, while the African face is not because it consists almost entirely of conflicting lines and sharp angles.
The general principle of the difference between the two heads is this: the forehead of the Greek is square and upright, and, as it were, overhangs the rest of the face, except the nose, which is a continuation of it almost in an even line. In the Negro or African, the tip of the nose is the most projecting part of the face; and from that point the features retreat back, both upwards towards the forehead, and downwards to the chin. This last form is an approximation to the shape of the head of the animal, as the former bears the strongest stamp of humanity.
The main difference between the two head shapes is this: the forehead of the Greek is broad and upright, seeming to extend forward over the rest of the face, except for the nose, which is almost in a straight line from it. In the African, the tip of the nose is the most prominent part of the face; from that point, the features slope back both up towards the forehead and down towards the chin. This latter shape is closer to the head of an animal, while the former clearly reflects human characteristics.
The Grecian nose is regular, the African irregular. In other words, the Grecian nose seen in profile forms nearly a straight line with the forehead, and falls into the upper lip by two curves, which balance one another: seen in front, the two sides are nearly parallel to each other, and the nostrils and lower part form regular curves, answering to one another, and to the contours of the mouth. On the contrary, the African pug-nose is more ‘like an ace of clubs.’ Whichever way you look at it, it presents the appearance of a triangle. It is narrow, and drawn to a point at top, broad and flat at bottom. The point is peaked, and recedes abruptly to the level of the forehead or the mouth, and the nostrils are as if they were drawn up with hooks towards each other. All the lines cross each other at sharp angles. The forehead of the Greeks is flat and square, till it is rounded at the temples; the African forehead, like the ape’s, falls back towards the top, and spreads out at the sides, so as to form an angle with the cheek-bones. The eyebrows of the Greeks are either straight, so as to sustain the lower part of the tablet of the forehead, or gently arched, so as to form the outer circle of the curves of the eyelids. The form of the eyes gives all the appearance of orbs, full, swelling, and involved within each other; the African eyes are flat, narrow at the corners, in the shape of a tortoise, and the eyebrows fly off slantwise to the sides of the forehead. The idea of the superiority of the Greek face in this respect is admirably expressed in Spenser’s description of Belphœbe:
The Grecian nose is straight, while the African nose is crooked. In other words, the Grecian nose, viewed from the side, aligns closely with the forehead and curves gently into the upper lip in a balanced way. When seen from the front, both sides are nearly parallel, and the nostrils along with the lower part have smooth curves that match the shape of the mouth. On the other hand, the African nose resembles “an ace of clubs.” No matter the angle, it appears triangular. It's narrow at the top and broad and flat at the bottom. The peak is pointed and slopes sharply back to the level of the forehead or mouth, with the nostrils looking like they’re pulled together with hooks. The lines intersect at sharp angles. The Greek forehead is flat and square until it rounds at the temples, while the African forehead, similar to that of an ape, leans back at the top and widens at the sides, creating an angle with the cheekbones. The Greeks have either straight eyebrows that support the lower part of the forehead or softly arched ones that form the outer curve of the eyelids. Their eyes are rounded, full, and seem to swell into one another; conversely, African eyes are flat, narrow at the corners, tortoise-shaped, and the eyebrows slant away toward the sides of the forehead. The notion of the Greek face being superior in this regard is beautifully captured in Spenser’s description of Belphœbe:
70The head of the girl in the Transfiguration (which Raphael took from the Niobe) has the same correspondence and exquisite involution of the outline of the forehead, the eyebrows, and the eyes (circle within circle) which we here speak of. Every part of that delightful head is blended together, and every sharp projection moulded and softened down, with the feeling of a sculptor, or as if nothing should be left to offend the touch as well as eye. Again, the Greek mouth is small, and little wider than the lower part of the nose: the lips form waving lines, nearly answering to each other; the African mouth is twice as wide as the nose, projects in front, and falls back towards the ears—is sharp and triangular, and consists of one protruding and one distended lip. The chin of the Greek face is round and indented, curled in, forming a fine oval with the outline of the cheeks, which resemble the two halves of a plane parallel with the forehead, and rounded off like it. The Negro chin falls inwards like a dew-lap, is nearly bisected in the middle, flat at bottom, and joined abruptly to the rest of the face, the whole contour of which is made up of jagged cross-grained lines. The African physiognomy appears, indeed, splitting in pieces, starting out in every oblique direction, and marked by the most sudden and violent changes throughout: the whole of the Grecian face blends with itself in a state of the utmost harmony and repose.[48] There is a harmony of expression as well as a symmetry of form. We sometimes see a face melting into beauty by the force of sentiment—an eye that, in its liquid mazes, for ever expanding and for ever retiring within itself, draws the soul after it, and tempts the rash beholder to his fate. This is, perhaps, what Werter meant, when he says of Charlotte, ‘Her full dark eyes are ever before me, like a sea, like a precipice.’ The historical in expression is the consistent and harmonious,—whatever in thought or feeling communicates the same movement, whether voluptuous or impassioned, to all the parts of the face, the mouth, the eyes, the forehead, and shews that they are all actuated by the same spirit. For this reason it has been observed, that all intellectual and impassioned faces are historical,—the heads of philosophers, poets, lovers, and madmen.
70The head of the girl in the Transfiguration (which Raphael took from the Niobe) has a similar connection and intricate flow of the forehead, eyebrows, and eyes (circle within circle) that we’re discussing here. Every aspect of that beautiful head blends together, and every sharp edge is smoothed out, like a sculptor’s touch, as if nothing should offend both the touch and the eye. The Greek mouth is small, only slightly wider than the lower part of the nose; the lips form gentle curves that almost mirror each other. The African mouth, on the other hand, is twice as wide as the nose, protrudes outward, and recedes toward the ears—it’s sharp and triangular, made up of one sticking out lip and one puffed out lip. The chin of the Greek face is round and slightly indented, curling inward to create a nice oval shape with the cheeks, which are like two halves running parallel to the forehead and rounded like it. The Negro chin curves inward like a dew-lap, is almost split in the middle, flat on the bottom, and abruptly connects to the rest of the face, whose shape is composed of jagged, rough lines. The African face appears to be breaking apart, projecting in every angle and marked by sudden and extreme changes; in contrast, the Grecian face merges with itself in perfect harmony and calmness.[48] There’s a harmony of expression and a balance of form. Sometimes, we see a face transforming into beauty through emotion—an eye that, in its flowing depths, constantly draws the soul in and tempts the reckless onlooker toward ruin. This is possibly what Werter meant when he described Charlotte, ‘Her full dark eyes are always before me, like a sea, like a precipice.’ The historical in expression is that which is consistent and harmonious—whatever thought or feeling conveys the same movement, be it sensual or passionate, across all facial features—the mouth, the eyes, the forehead—showing that they are all driven by the same spirit. For this reason, it has been noted that all intellectual and passionate faces tell a story—the heads of philosophers, poets, lovers, and madmen.
Motion is beautiful as it implies either continuity or gradual change. 71The motion of a hawk is beautiful, either returning in endless circles with suspended wings, or darting right forward in one level line upon its prey. We have, when boys, often watched the glittering down of the thistle, at first scarcely rising above the ground, and then, mingling with the gale, borne into the upper sky with varying fantastic motion. How delightful, how beautiful! All motion is beautiful that is not contradictory to itself,—that is free from sudden jerks and shocks,—that is either sustained by the same impulse, or gradually reconciles different impulses together. Swans resting on the calm bosom of a lake, in which their image is reflected, or moved up and down with the heaving of the waves, though by this the double image is disturbed, are equally beautiful. Homer describes Mercury as flinging himself from the top of Olympus, and skimming the surface of the ocean. This is lost in Pope’s translation, who suspends him on the incumbent air. The beauty of the original image consists in the idea which it conveys of smooth, uninterrupted speed, of the evasion of every let or obstacle to the progress of the God.[49] Awkwardness is occasioned by a difficulty in moving, or by disjointed 72movements, that distract the attention and defeat each other. Grace is the absence of every thing that indicates pain or difficulty, or hesitation or incongruity. The only graceful dancer we ever saw was Deshayes, the Frenchman. He came on bounding like a stag. It was not necessary to have seen good dancing before to know that this was really fine. Whoever has seen the sea in motion, the branches of a tree waving in the air, would instantly perceive the resemblance. Flexibility and grace are to be found in nature as well as at the opera. Mr. Burke, in his Essay on the Sublime and Beautiful, has very admirably described the bosom of a beautiful woman, almost entirely with reference to the ideas of motion. Those outlines are beautiful which describe pleasant motions. A fine use is made of this principle by one of the apocryphal writers, in describing the form of the rainbow. ‘He hath set his bow in the heavens, and his hands have bended it.’ Harmony in colour has not been denied to be a natural property of objects, consisting in the gradations of intermediate colours. The principle appears to be here the same as in some of the former instances. The effect of colour in Titian’s Bath of Diana, at the Marquis of Stafford’s, is perhaps the finest in the world, made up of the richest contrasts, blended together by the most masterly gradations. Harmony of sound depends apparently on the same principle as harmony of colour. Rhyme depends on the pleasure derived from a recurrence of similar sounds, as symmetry of features does on the correspondence of the different outlines. The prose style of Dr. Johnson originated in the same principle. The secret consisted in rhyming on the sense, and balancing one half of the sentence uniformly and systematically against the other. The Hebrew poetry was constructed in the same manner.
Motion is beautiful because it suggests either continuity or gradual change. 71The movement of a hawk is striking, whether it's flying in endless circles with its wings outstretched or diving straight toward its prey in a smooth line. As boys, we often watched the glittering fluff of the thistle, initially barely lifting off the ground, and then, swirling with the wind, it was carried up into the sky in various fantastical motions. How delightful, how beautiful! All motion is beautiful that isn’t contradictory to itself—that is free from sudden jerks and shocks—either driven by the same force or gradually blending different forces together. Swans resting on the calm surface of a lake, their reflections perfectly mirrored, or bobbing gently with the waves, are equally beautiful, even if their reflection is disturbed. Homer describes Mercury as diving from the top of Olympus and skimming the ocean's surface. This is lost in Pope's translation, where he merely has him suspended in the air. The beauty of the original image lies in the smooth, uninterrupted speed, free from any hindrances or obstacles to the God's progress.[49] Awkwardness arises from difficulties in movement or disconnected motions that distract and undermine each other. Grace is the absence of anything that suggests pain, difficulty, hesitation, or inconsistency. The only graceful dancer we ever saw was Deshayes, the Frenchman. He came on stage leaping like a stag. You didn't need to have seen great dancing before to recognize that this was exceptional. Anyone who has seen the sea in motion or tree branches swaying in the breeze would immediately notice the similarity. Flexibility and grace exist in nature as well as in the theater. Mr. Burke, in his Essay on the Sublime and Beautiful, beautifully describes the bosom of a lovely woman, almost entirely in terms of motion. Those outlines are beautiful that depict pleasing movements. One of the apocryphal writers makes fine use of this principle when describing the rainbow’s shape: “He has set his bow in the heavens, and his hands have bent it.” Harmony in color is acknowledged to be a natural trait of objects, formed by the gradations of intermediate colors. The principle here seems to be the same as in some previous examples. The color effect in Titian’s Bath of Diana, at the Marquis of Stafford’s, is perhaps the finest in the world, composed of rich contrasts skillfully blended with masterful gradations. Harmony of sound appears to depend on the same principle as color harmony. Rhyme provides pleasure from the repetition of similar sounds, just as symmetrical features arise from the correspondence of different outlines. Dr. Johnson’s prose style originated from the same idea. The secret lay in rhyming in meaning, balancing one half of the sentence against the other uniformly and systematically. Hebrew poetry was constructed in the same way.
No. 20.] ON IMITATION [Feb 18, 1816.
Objects in themselves disagreeable or indifferent, often please in the imitation. A brick-floor, a pewter-plate, an ugly cur barking, a Dutch boor smoking or playing at skittles, the inside of a shambles, a fishmonger’s or a greengrocer’s stall, have been made very interesting as pictures by the fidelity, skill, and spirit, with which they have been copied. One source of the pleasure thus received is undoubtedly the surprise or feeling of admiration, occasioned by the unexpected coincidence between the imitation and the object. The deception, however, not only pleases at first sight, or from mere novelty; but 73it continues to please upon farther acquaintance, and in proportion to the insight we acquire into the distinctions of nature and of art. By far the most numerous class of connoisseurs are the admirers of pictures of still life, which have nothing but the elaborateness of the execution to recommend them. One chief reason, it should seem then, why imitation pleases, is, because, by exciting curiosity, and inviting a comparison between the object and the representation, it opens a new field of inquiry, and leads the attention to a variety of details and distinctions not perceived before. This latter source of the pleasure derived from imitation has never been properly insisted on.
Objects that are usually unattractive or unremarkable often become appealing in their imitation. A brick floor, a pewter plate, an ugly dog barking, a Dutch farmer smoking or playing skittles, the inside of a butcher shop, or a fishmonger’s or greengrocer’s stall have all been turned into fascinating images through the accuracy, skill, and spirit with which they’ve been replicated. One reason for the enjoyment we get from this is the surprise or admiration that comes from the unexpected match between the imitation and the real thing. However, the charm of the imitation goes beyond initial impressions or novelty; it continues to engage us as we become more familiar with the nuances of nature and art. The largest group of art lovers consists of those who appreciate still life paintings, which appeal solely because of how intricately they are crafted. Thus, a key reason imitation is enjoyable seems to be that it sparks curiosity, encouraging a comparison between the original object and its representation, opening up a new area of exploration, and directing our focus to various details and differences we may not have noticed before. This latter source of pleasure from imitation hasn’t been emphasized enough.
The anatomist is delighted with a coloured plate, conveying the exact appearance of the progress of certain diseases, or of the internal parts and dissections of the human body. We have known a Jennerian Professor as much enraptured with a delineation of the different stages of vaccination, as a florist with a bed of tulips, or an auctioneer with a collection of Indian shells. But in this case, we find that not only the imitation pleases,—the objects themselves give as much pleasure to the professional inquirer, as they would pain to the uninitiated. The learned amateur is struck with the beauty of the coats of the stomach laid bare, or contemplates with eager curiosity the transverse section of the brain, divided on the new Spurzheim principles. It is here, then, the number of the parts, their distinctions, connections, structure, uses; in short, an entire new set of ideas, which occupies the mind of the student, and overcomes the sense of pain and repugnance, which is the only feeling that the sight of a dead and mangled body presents to ordinary men. It is the same in art as in science. The painter of still life, as it is called, takes the same pleasure in the object as the spectator does in the imitation; because by habit he is led to perceive all those distinctions in nature, to which other persons never pay any attention till they are pointed out to them in the picture. The vulgar only see nature as it is reflected to them from art; the painter sees the picture in nature, before he transfers it to the canvass. He refines, he analyses, he remarks fifty things, which escape common eyes; and this affords a distinct source of reflection and amusement to him, independently of the beauty or grandeur of the objects themselves, or of their connection with other impressions besides those of sight. The charm of the Fine Arts, then, does not consist in any thing peculiar to imitation, even where only imitation is concerned, since there, where art exists in the highest perfection, namely, in the mind of the artist, the object excites the same or greater pleasure, before the imitation exists. Imitation renders an object, displeasing in itself, a source of pleasure, not by repetition of the same idea, but by suggesting new ideas, by 74detecting new properties, and endless shades of difference, just as a close and continued contemplation of the object itself would do. Art shows us nature, divested of the medium of our prejudices. It divides and decompounds objects into a thousand curious parts, which may be full of variety, beauty, and delicacy in themselves, though the object to which they belong may be disagreeable in its general appearance, or by association with other ideas. A painted marigold is inferior to a painted rose only in form and colour: it loses nothing in point of smell. Yellow hair is perfectly beautiful in a picture. To a person lying with his face close to the ground in a summer’s day, the blades of spear-grass will appear like tall forest trees, shooting up into the sky; as an insect seen through a microscope is magnified into an elephant. Art is the microscope of the mind, which sharpens the wit as the other does the sight; and converts every object into a little universe in itself.[50] Art may be said to draw aside the veil from nature. To those who are perfectly unskilled in the practice, unimbued with the principles of art, most objects present only a confused mass. The pursuit of art is liable to be carried to a contrary excess, as where it produces a rage for the picturesque. You cannot go a step with a person of this class, but he stops you to point out some choice bit of landscape, or fancied improvement, and teazes you almost to death with the frequency and insignificance of his discoveries!
The anatomist is thrilled with a colorful illustration that perfectly represents the appearance of certain diseases or the internal structures and dissections of the human body. We've seen a Jennerian Professor just as captivated by a depiction of the different stages of vaccination as a florist is with a bed of tulips or an auctioneer is with a collection of Indian shells. However, in this case, we find that not only does the imitation please—the actual objects bring just as much enjoyment to the professional inquirer as they would cause discomfort to the untrained. The knowledgeable amateur is amazed by the beauty of the stomach's layers laid bare or eagerly contemplates the cross-section of the brain, divided according to the new Spurzheim principles. Here, then, lies the focus on the number of parts, their distinctions, connections, structure, and functions; in short, a completely new set of concepts occupies the student’s mind, overcoming the pain and aversion that the sight of a dead and mangled body evokes in ordinary people. It’s the same in art as it is in science. The painter of still life derives as much pleasure from the object as the viewer does from the representation because, through habit, he observes all those nuances in nature that others only notice once they’re pointed out in the painting. The general public sees nature merely as it is reflected by art; the painter sees the scene in nature even before transferring it to the canvas. He refines, analyzes, and notices fifty different things that escape the average eye, providing him with a distinct source of reflection and enjoyment, independent of the beauty or grandeur of the objects themselves or their connection to other sensations aside from sight. The appeal of the Fine Arts, therefore, doesn’t lie in anything unique to imitation, even when it involves only imitation, since where art is realized at its highest level, specifically in the artist's mind, the object generates the same or greater pleasure before any imitation is created. Imitation turns an object that is unappealing in itself into a source of enjoyment, not by repeating the same idea, but by suggesting new concepts, uncovering new properties, and countless shades of difference, just as a thorough and prolonged examination of the object itself would. Art reveals nature stripped of our biases. It dissects and breaks down objects into a thousand intriguing parts, which can be full of variety, beauty, and delicacy on their own, even if the overall object is unpleasant due to its appearance or associations. A painted marigold is only inferior to a painted rose in form and color: it loses nothing in terms of its fragrance. Yellow hair can be perfectly beautiful in a painting. To someone lying close to the ground on a summer day, blades of grass can look like tall trees reaching up to the sky, just like an insect observed under a microscope is enlarged into an elephant. Art serves as the mind's microscope, sharpening perception just as a regular microscope enhances sight; it transforms every object into a little universe in itself. Art may be seen as pulling back the curtain on nature. For those who are completely untrained and lack an understanding of artistic principles, most objects appear as a confusing mass. However, the pursuit of art can also swing to an excessive extreme, resulting in a fixation on the picturesque. You can’t take a step with someone like this without them stopping to point out some attractive part of the landscape or a perceived improvement, driving you almost to madness with the frequency and triviality of their discoveries!
It is a common opinion, (which may be worth noticing here), that the study of physiognomy has a tendency to make people satirical, and the knowledge of art to make them fastidious in their taste. Knowledge may, indeed, afford a handle to ill-nature; but it takes away the principal temptation to its exercise, by supplying the mind with better resources against ennui. Idiots are always mischievous; and the most superficial persons are the most disposed to find fault, because they understand the fewest things. The English are more apt than any other nation to treat foreigners with contempt, because they seldom see anything but their own dress and manners; and it is only in petty provincial towns that you meet with persons who pride themselves on being satirical. In every country place in England there are one or two persons of this description who keep the whole neighbourhood 75in terror. It is not to be denied that the study of the ideal in art, if separated from the study of nature, may have the effect above stated, of producing dissatisfaction and contempt for everything but itself, as all affectation must; but to the genuine artist, truth, nature, beauty, are almost different names for the same thing.
It's a common belief, (which is worth mentioning here), that studying physiognomy tends to make people sarcastic, and understanding art makes them picky about their taste. Knowledge can provide a tool for negativity; however, it also reduces the main temptation to be negative by giving the mind better options to combat boredom. Foolish people are always troublemakers, and the most shallow individuals are the quickest to complain because they understand the least. The English are more likely than any other nationality to look down on foreigners, as they rarely see anything beyond their own style and customs; it's only in small towns that you find people who take pride in being sarcastic. In every English village, there are one or two people like this who keep the entire neighborhood on edge. It can't be denied that focusing solely on the **ideal** in art, without considering nature, can lead to the dissatisfaction and disdain mentioned earlier, just like any form of pretension; but for a true artist, truth, nature, and beauty are nearly synonymous.
Imitation interests, then, by exciting a more intense perception of truth, and calling out the powers of observation and comparison: wherever this effect takes place the interest follows of course, with or without the imitation, whether the object is real or artificial. The gardener delights in the streaks of a tulip, or ‘pansy freak’d with jet’; the mineralogist in the varieties of certain strata, because he understands them. Knowledge is pleasure as well as power. A work of art has in this respect no advantage over a work of nature, except inasmuch as it furnishes an additional stimulus to curiosity. Again, natural objects please in proportion as they are uncommon, by fixing the attention more steadily on their beauties or differences. The same principle of the effect of novelty in exciting the attention, may account, perhaps, for the extraordinary discoveries and lies told by travellers, who, opening their eyes for the first time in foreign parts, are startled at every object they meet.
Imitation interests us by heightening our awareness of truth and enhancing our ability to observe and compare. Whenever this happens, interest naturally follows, whether there’s imitation involved or not, and regardless of whether the object is real or artificial. A gardener enjoys the patterns of a tulip or a “pansy streaked with jet”; a mineralogist appreciates the variations in certain rock layers because he understands them. Knowledge brings both pleasure and power. In this sense, a work of art doesn’t have any real advantage over nature, except that it can provide an extra spark of curiosity. Moreover, natural objects are appealing to the extent that they are rare, as they capture our attention more effectively with their beauty or uniqueness. This same idea that novelty captures attention might also explain the incredible discoveries and tall tales told by travelers who are seeing new places for the first time and are amazed by everything they encounter.
Why the excitement of intellectual activity pleases, is not here the question; but that it does so, is a general and acknowledged law of the human mind. We grow attached to the mathematics only from finding out their truth; and their utility chiefly consists (at present) in the contemplative pleasure they afford to the student. Lines, points, angles, squares, and circles are not interesting in themselves; they become so by the power of mind exerted in comprehending their properties and relations. People dispute for ever about Hogarth. The question has not in one respect been fairly stated. The merit of his pictures does not so much depend on the nature of the subject, as on the knowledge displayed of it, on the number of ideas they excite, on the fund of thought and observation contained in them. They are to be looked on as works of science; they gratify our love of truth; they fill up the void of the mind: they are a series of plates of natural history, and also of that most interesting part of natural history, the history of man. The superiority of high art over the common or mechanical consists in combining truth of imitation with beauty and grandeur of subject. The historical painter is superior to the flower-painter, because he combines or ought to combine human interests and passions with the same power of imitating external nature; or, indeed, with greater, for the greatest difficulty of imitation is the power of imitating expression. The difficulty of 76copying increases with our knowledge of the object; and that again with the interest we take in it. The same argument might be applied to shew that the poet and painter of imagination are superior to the mere philosopher or man of science, because they exercise the powers of reason and intellect combined with nature and passion. They treat of the highest categories of the human soul, pleasure and pain.
Why the excitement of intellectual activity is enjoyable isn’t the main question here; what matters is that it is a widely accepted truth about human nature. We become attached to mathematics because we discover its truths, and its value mainly lies in the enjoyment it brings to the learner. Lines, points, angles, squares, and circles aren’t interesting by themselves; they become intriguing through the mental effort we put into understanding their properties and relationships. People endlessly argue about Hogarth. The debate has not been properly framed in one respect. The merit of his art relies more on the knowledge he demonstrates, the range of ideas he sparks, and the depth of thought and observation in his work rather than merely on the subject matter itself. His pieces should be viewed as scientific works; they satisfy our desire for truth and fill the gaps in our understanding. They are a series of natural history plates, including that most fascinating aspect of natural history, human history. High art is superior to common or mechanical art because it blends accuracy of representation with beauty and grandeur of subject matter. An historical painter is superior to a flower painter because the former combines, or should combine, human interests and emotions with an equal or greater ability to imitate the external world; after all, the toughest challenge in imitation is capturing expression. The difficulty of reproduction grows with our understanding of the subject, which in turn increases with our interest in it. This same logic can be used to argue that imaginative poets and painters are superior to mere philosophers or scientists because they combine reason and intellect with nature and emotion. They explore the most significant aspects of the human experience: pleasure and pain.
From the foregoing train of reasoning, we may easily account for the too great tendency of art to run into pedantry and affectation. There is ‘a pleasure in art which none but artists feel.’ They see beauty where others see nothing of the sort, in wrinkles, deformity, and old age. They see it in Titian’s Schoolmaster as well as in Raphael’s Galatea; in the dark shadows of Rembrandt as well as in the splendid colours of Rubens; in an angel’s or in a butterfly’s wings. They see with different eyes from the multitude. But true genius, though it has new sources of pleasure opened to it, does not lose its sympathy with humanity. It combines truth of imitation with effect, the parts with the whole, the means with the end. The mechanic artist sees only that which nobody else sees, and is conversant only with the technical language and difficulties of his art. A painter, if shewn a picture, will generally dwell upon the academic skill displayed in it, and the knowledge of the received rules of composition. A musician, if asked to play a tune, will select that which is the most difficult and the least intelligible. The poet will be struck with the harmony of versification, or the elaborateness of the arrangement in a composition. The conceits in Shakspeare were his greatest delight; and improving upon this perverse method of judging, the German writers, Goethe and Schiller, look upon Werter and The Robbers as the worst of all their works, because they are the most popular. Some artists among ourselves have carried the same principle to a singular excess.[51] If professors themselves are liable to this kind of pedantry, connoisseurs and dilettanti, who have less sensibility and more affectation, are almost wholly swayed by it. They see nothing in a picture but the execution. They are proud of their 77knowledge in proportion as it is a secret. The worst judges of pictures in the United Kingdom are, first, picture-dealers; next, perhaps, the Directors of the British Institution; and after them, in all probability, the Members of the Royal Academy.
From the previous discussion, we can easily explain why art often leans towards being overly formal and pretentious. There is a 'pleasure in art that only artists experience.' They notice beauty where others see none, in wrinkles, imperfections, and aging. They find it in Titian’s Schoolmaster as well as in Raphael’s Galatea; in the dark shadows of Rembrandt and in the vibrant colors of Rubens; in an angel’s or a butterfly’s wings. They view the world differently than most. However, true genius, while discovering new sources of pleasure, remains connected to humanity. It balances the truth of representation with impact, the parts with the whole, and the means with the ends. A mechanical artist focuses solely on what no one else sees, only engaging with the technical language and challenges of their craft. A painter, when shown a painting, will usually focus on the technical skill involved and the understanding of established composition rules. A musician, when asked to play a song, will often choose the most complex and least comprehensible one. A poet will be captivated by the rhythm of the verses or the complexity of the structure in a piece. Shakespeare’s clever wordplay was his greatest joy; building on this flawed way of assessing art, German writers Goethe and Schiller consider Werther and The Robbers to be their worst works because they are the most popular. Some artists among us have taken this principle to an extreme.[51] If professors can fall into this kind of pretentiousness, connoisseurs and amateurs, who tend to have less sensitivity and more pretentiousness, are often completely influenced by it. They see nothing in a painting except the execution. They pride themselves on their knowledge based on how much of a secret it is. The worst judges of paintings in the UK are, first, art dealers; next, perhaps, the Directors of the British Institution; and after them, likely, the Members of the Royal Academy.
No. 21.] ON GUSTO [May 26, 1816.
Gusto in art is power or passion defining any object. It is not so difficult to explain this term in what relates to expression (of which it may be said to be the highest degree) as in what relates to things without expression, to the natural appearances of objects, as mere colour or form. In one sense, however, there is hardly any object entirely devoid of expression, without some character of power belonging to it, some precise association with pleasure or pain: and it is in giving this truth of character from the truth of feeling, whether in the highest or the lowest degree, but always in the highest degree of which the subject is capable, that gusto consists.
Gusto in art is the power or passion that defines any object. It's not too hard to explain this term when it comes to expression (which can be considered its highest form) as it is when discussing things without expression, like just the natural appearances of objects, such as color or shape. However, in one sense, there's hardly any object that’s completely lacking expression; every object has some character of power associated with it, linked to feelings of pleasure or pain. Gusto lies in conveying this character truthfully, based on true feelings, whether at its highest or lowest level, but always at the highest level that the subject can achieve.
There is a gusto in the colouring of Titian. Not only do his heads seem to think—his bodies seem to feel. This is what the Italians mean by the morbidezza of his flesh-colour. It seems sensitive and alive all over; not merely to have the look and texture of flesh, but the feeling in itself. For example, the limbs of his female figures have a luxurious softness and delicacy, which appears conscious of the pleasure of the beholder. As the objects themselves in nature would produce an impression on the sense, distinct from every other object, and having something divine in it, which the heart owns and the imagination consecrates, the objects in the picture preserve the same impression, absolute, unimpaired, stamped with all the truth of passion, the pride of the eye, and the charm of beauty. Rubens makes his flesh-colour like flowers; Albano’s is like ivory; Titian’s is like flesh, and like nothing else. It is as different from that of other painters, as the skin is from a piece of white or red drapery thrown over it. The blood circulates here and there, the blue veins just appear, the rest is distinguished throughout only by that sort of tingling sensation to the eye, which the body feels within itself. This is gusto. Vandyke’s flesh-colour, though it has great truth and purity, wants gusto. It has not the internal character, the living principle in it. It is a smooth surface, not a warm, moving mass. It is painted without passion, with indifference. The hand only has been concerned. The impression slides off from the eye, and does not, like the tones of Titian’s pencil, leave a sting behind it in the mind of the spectator. 78The eye does not acquire a taste or appetite for what it sees. In a word, gusto in painting is where the impression made on one sense excites by affinity those of another.
There’s a vibrancy in Titian’s use of color. Not only do his faces seem to think, but his bodies seem to feel. This is what the Italians refer to as the morbidezza of his flesh tones. It appears sensitive and alive all over; it’s not just about looking and feeling like flesh, but embodying that sensation. For instance, the limbs of his female figures possess a luxurious softness and delicacy that seems aware of the viewer’s pleasure. Just like objects in nature create a unique impression on the senses, distinct from anything else and with a divine quality that touches the heart and inspires the imagination, the elements in his paintings convey the same powerful impact—absolute, unblemished, infused with genuine passion, visual pride, and beauty. Rubens renders flesh tones like flowers; Albano’s resemble ivory; but Titian’s look like real flesh and nothing else. It’s as different from other painters’ work as skin is from a piece of white or red fabric draped over it. The blood flows beneath the surface, the blue veins faintly visible, while the rest is characterized by a tingling sensation that the eye perceives, similar to the sensations the body experiences within. That’s what gusto means. Vandyke’s flesh tones, though truthful and pure, lack gusto. They miss that internal essence, that living quality. It appears as a smooth surface rather than a warm, vibrant mass. It’s painted without passion, almost indifferently. The impression slides off the viewer’s eye and doesn’t leave a lingering effect, like the tones from Titian’s brush do in the mind of the spectator. The eye doesn’t develop a taste or longing for what it sees. In short, gusto in painting is when an impression made on one sense stimulates others by connection.
Michael Angelo’s forms are full of gusto. They everywhere obtrude the sense of power upon the eye. His limbs convey an idea of muscular strength, of moral grandeur, and even of intellectual dignity: they are firm, commanding, broad, and massy, capable of executing with ease the determined purposes of the will. His faces have no other expression than his figures, conscious power and capacity. They appear only to think what they shall do, and to know that they can do it. This is what is meant by saying that his style is hard and masculine. It is the reverse of Correggio’s, which is effeminate. That is, the gusto of Michael Angelo consists in expressing energy of will without proportionable sensibility, Correggio’s in expressing exquisite sensibility without energy of will. In Correggio’s faces as well as figures we see neither bones nor muscles, but then what a soul is there, full of sweetness and of grace—pure, playful, soft, angelical! There is sentiment enough in a hand painted by Correggio to set up a school of history painters. Whenever we look at the hands of Correggio’s women or of Raphael’s, we always wish to touch them.
Michael Angelo’s forms are full of life. They everywhere convey a sense of power to the eye. His limbs suggest muscular strength, moral greatness, and even intellectual dignity; they are strong, commanding, broad, and solid, capable of easily executing the determined intentions of the will. His faces express no other emotion than that of his figures, conscious strength and ability. They seem to simply contemplate what they will do, knowing they can accomplish it. This is what is meant by saying that his style is strong and masculine. It contrasts with Correggio’s, which feels more delicate. In other words, Michael Angelo’s vigor expresses willpower without corresponding sensitivity, while Correggio’s expresses delicate sensitivity without willpower. In Correggio’s faces and figures, we see neither bones nor muscles, but what a spirit exists there, full of sweetness and grace—pure, playful, soft, angelic! There's enough emotion in a hand painted by Correggio to inspire a generation of history painters. Whenever we look at the hands of Correggio’s women or Raphael’s, we always feel the urge to touch them.
Again, Titian’s landscapes have a prodigious gusto, both in the colouring and forms. We shall never forget one that we saw many years ago in the Orleans Gallery of Acteon hunting. It had a brown, mellow, autumnal look. The sky was of the colour of stone. The winds seemed to sing through the rustling branches of the trees, and already you might hear the twanging of bows resound through the tangled mazes of the wood. Mr. West, we understand, has this landscape. He will know if this description of it is just. The landscape back-ground of the St. Peter Martyr is another well known instance of the power of this great painter to give a romantic interest and an appropriate character to the objects of his pencil, where every circumstance adds to the effect of the scene,—the bold trunks of the tall forest trees, the trailing ground plants, with that tall convent spire rising in the distance, amidst the blue sapphire mountains and the golden sky.
Again, Titian’s landscapes are incredibly vibrant, both in their colors and forms. We will always remember one that we saw many years ago in the Orleans Gallery featuring Acteon hunting. It had a warm, autumnal feel to it. The sky was stone-colored. The winds seemed to sing through the rustling branches of the trees, and you could already hear the sound of bows twanging through the dense wood. Mr. West, we understand, owns this landscape. He’ll know if this description fits. The landscape background of the St. Peter Martyr is another well-known example of this great painter’s ability to give a romantic touch and fitting character to his subjects, where every detail enhances the scene—the sturdy trunks of the tall forest trees, the trailing ground plants, and that tall convent spire rising in the distance amidst the blue mountains and golden sky.
Rubens has a great deal of gusto in his Fauns and Satyrs, and in all that expresses motion, but in nothing else. Rembrandt has it in everything; everything in his pictures has a tangible character. If he puts a diamond in the ear of a burgomaster’s wife, it is of the first water; and his furs and stuffs are proof against a Russian winter. Raphael’s gusto was only in expression; he had no idea of the character of anything but the human form. The dryness and poverty 79of his style in other respects is a phenomenon in the art. His trees are like sprigs of grass stuck in a book of botanical specimens. Was it that Raphael never had time to go beyond the walls of Rome? That he was always in the streets, at church, or in the bath? He was not one of the Society of Arcadians.[52]
Rubens brings a lot of energy to his Fauns and Satyrs and everything that shows movement, but not much else. Rembrandt captures that energy in everything; everything in his paintings feels real. If he places a diamond in the ear of a mayor's wife, it's the highest quality; his furs and fabrics can withstand a Russian winter. Raphael's energy was only in expression; he had no sense of anything other than the human form. The lack of richness and depth in his other styles is unusual in art. His trees look like small twigs stuck in a collection of botanical samples. Was it because Raphael never had time to step outside the walls of Rome? That he was always in the streets, at church, or in the bath? He wasn't part of the Society of Arcadians.79
Claude’s landscapes, perfect as they are, want gusto. This is not easy to explain. They are perfect abstractions of the visible images of things; they speak the visible language of nature truly. They resemble a mirror or a microscope. To the eye only they are more perfect than any other landscapes that ever were or will be painted; they give more of nature, as cognisable by one sense alone; but they lay an equal stress on all visible impressions. They do not interpret one sense by another; they do not distinguish the character of different objects as we are taught, and can only be taught, to distinguish them by their effect on the different senses. That is, his eye wanted imagination: it did not strongly sympathise with his other faculties. He saw the atmosphere, but he did not feel it. He painted the trunk of a tree or a rock in the foreground as smooth—with as complete an abstraction of the gross, tangible impression, as any other part of the picture. His trees are perfectly beautiful, but quite immovable; they have a look of enchantment. In short, his landscapes are unequalled imitations of nature, released from its subjection to the elements, as if all objects were become a delightful fairy vision, and the eye had rarefied and refined away the other senses.
Claude's landscapes, as perfect as they are, lack passion. It's hard to explain. They are perfect representations of the visible images of things; they truly communicate the visible language of nature. They resemble a mirror or a microscope. To the eye alone, they are more perfect than any other landscapes that have ever been or will ever be painted; they reveal more of nature, as understood by just one sense; but they give equal importance to all visible impressions. They don't interpret one sense through another; they don't differentiate the characteristics of different objects as we are taught to recognize them through their effects on our different senses. In other words, his eye lacked imagination: it didn’t strongly connect with his other faculties. He could see the atmosphere, but he didn’t feel it. He painted the trunk of a tree or a rock in the foreground as smooth—with a complete abstraction of the physical, tangible impression, just like any other part of the painting. His trees are beautifully perfect, but completely still; they have a magical quality. In short, his landscapes are unrivaled imitations of nature, liberated from the influence of the elements, as if all objects had transformed into a delightful fairy-tale vision, and the eye had refined away the other senses.
The gusto in the Greek statues is of a very singular kind. The sense of perfect form nearly occupies the whole mind, and hardly suffers it to dwell on any other feeling. It seems enough for them to be, without acting or suffering. Their forms are ideal, spiritual. Their beauty is power. By their beauty they are raised above the frailties of pain or passion; by their beauty they are deified.
The enthusiasm in Greek statues is quite unique. The sense of flawless form takes up almost all of your thoughts, leaving little room for anything else. It seems like it's enough for them to be, without needing to act or suffer. Their shapes are ideal and spiritual. Their beauty is strength. Because of their beauty, they transcend the weaknesses of pain or emotion; through their beauty, they become divine.
The infinite quantity of dramatic invention in Shakspeare takes from his gusto. The power he delights to show is not intense, but discursive. He never insists on anything as much as he might, except a quibble. Milton has great gusto. He repeats his blows twice; grapples with and exhausts his subject. His imagination has a double 80relish of its objects, an inveterate attachment to the things he describes, and to the words describing them.
The endless amount of dramatic creativity in Shakespeare takes away from his enjoyment. The power he loves to express isn’t fierce, but rather meandering. He never emphasizes anything as much as he could, except for a clever pun. Milton has a lot of enthusiasm. He strikes his points twice; he wrestles with and fully explores his subjects. His imagination has a strong appreciation for what it depicts, showing a deep connection to both the things he describes and the words he uses to describe them.
There is a gusto in Pope’s compliments, in Dryden’s satires, and Prior’s tales; and among prose writers Boccacio and Rabelais had the most of it. We will only mention one other work which appears to us to be full of gusto, and that is the Beggar’s Opera. If it is not, we are altogether mistaken in our notions on this delicate subject.
There is an enthusiasm in Pope’s compliments, in Dryden’s satires, and Prior’s stories; and among prose writers, Boccaccio and Rabelais had the most of it. We will just mention one other work that seems to us to be full of enthusiasm, and that is the Beggar’s Opera. If it isn’t, then we are completely wrong in our views on this delicate subject.
No. 22.] ON PEDANTRY [March 3, 1816.
The power of attaching an interest to the most trifling or painful pursuits, in which our whole attention and faculties are engaged, is one of the greatest happinesses of our nature. The common soldier mounts the breach with joy; the miser deliberately starves himself to death; the mathematician sets about extracting the cube-root with a feeling of enthusiasm; and the lawyer sheds tears of admiration over Coke upon Littleton. It is the same through human life. He who is not in some measure a pedant, though he may be a wise, cannot be a very happy man.
The ability to find a connection to even the most trivial or difficult tasks, where all our focus and abilities are devoted, is one of the greatest joys of being human. A common soldier joyfully charges into battle; a miser intentionally starves himself to death; a mathematician eagerly tackles the cube-root; and a lawyer weeps with admiration over Coke on Littleton. This is true throughout life. Anyone who isn’t at least a bit of a pedant, even if they are wise, probably can’t be very happy.
The chief charm of reading the old novels is from the picture they give of the egotism of the characters, the importance of each individual to himself, and his fancied superiority over every one else. We like, for instance, the pedantry of Parson Adams, who thought a schoolmaster the greatest character in the world, and that he was the greatest schoolmaster in it. We do not see any equivalent for the satisfaction which this conviction must have afforded him in the most nicely graduated scale of talents and accomplishments to which he was an utter stranger. When the old-fashioned Scotch pedagogue turns Roderick Random round and round, and surveys him from head to foot with such infinite surprise and laughter, at the same time breaking out himself into gestures and exclamations still more uncouth and ridiculous, who would wish to have deprived him of this burst of extravagant self-complacency? When our follies afford equal delight to ourselves and those about us, what is there to be desired more? We cannot discover the vast advantage of ‘seeing ourselves as others 81see us.’ It is better to have a contempt for any one than for ourselves!
The main appeal of reading old novels lies in how they portray the characters' egotism, the significance each person places on themselves, and their perceived superiority over everyone else. For example, we find the pretentiousness of Parson Adams amusing, who believed that being a schoolmaster made him the most important person in the world and that he was the best schoolmaster out there. There's no comparison to the satisfaction this belief must have given him, despite his complete ignorance of the finer points of skills and talents. When the old-fashioned Scottish teacher examines Roderick Random, turning him around in disbelief and laughter, simultaneously bursting into even more bizarre and ridiculous gestures and exclamations, who would want to take away his moment of outrageous self-satisfaction? When our foolishness brings joy to ourselves and those around us, what more could we want? We don't really see the great benefit of 'seeing ourselves as others see us.' It's better to look down on someone else than to look down on ourselves! 81
One of the most constant butts of ridicule, both in the old comedies and novels, is the professional jargon of the medical tribe. Yet it cannot be denied that this jargon, however affected it may seem, is the natural language of apothecaries and physicians, the mother-tongue of pharmacy! It is that by which their knowledge first comes to them, that with which they have the most obstinate associations, that in which they can express themselves the most readily and with the best effect upon their hearers; and though there may be some assumption of superiority in all this, yet it is only by an effort of circumlocution that they could condescend to explain themselves in ordinary language. Besides, there is a delicacy at bottom; as it is the only language in which a nauseous medicine can be decorously administered, or a limb taken off with the proper degree of secrecy. If the most blundering coxcombs affect this language most, what does it signify, while they retain the same dignified notions of themselves and their art, and are equally happy in their knowledge or their ignorance? The ignorant and pretending physician is a capital character in Moliere: and, indeed, throughout his whole plays the great source of the comic interest is in the fantastic exaggeration of blind self-love, in letting loose the habitual peculiarities of each individual from all restraint of conscious observation or self-knowledge, in giving way to that specific levity of impulse which mounts at once to the height of absurdity, in spite of the obstacles that surround it, as a fluid in a barometer rises according to the pressure of the external air! His characters are almost always pedantic, and yet the most unconscious of all others. Take, for example, those two worthy gentlemen, Monsieur Jourdain and Monsieur Pourceaugnac.[53]
One of the most consistent targets of mockery in old comedies and novels is the specialized language of medical professionals. However, it can't be denied that this language, no matter how pretentious it may seem, is the natural speech of pharmacists and doctors—it's the native language of pharmacy! It's the medium through which their knowledge first reaches them, the way they have the strongest connections, and the language in which they can express themselves most easily and effectively to others. Although there might be an air of superiority in this, it's only through convoluted explanations that they could lower themselves to use everyday language. Moreover, there's a certain delicacy to it; it's the only way to properly administer a disgusting medicine or to remove a limb with the right amount of discretion. If the biggest fools are the ones who use this specialized language the most, what does it matter, as long as they maintain their lofty views of themselves and their profession, and are equally content whether they know a lot or know nothing? The clueless and pretentious doctor is a classic character in Molière's works: indeed, the primary source of comedic interest in all his plays is the outrageous exaggeration of blind self-importance, allowing the inherent quirks of each character to break free from any awareness or self-understanding. This gives rise to a specific kind of impulsiveness that instantly reaches absurdity, regardless of the challenges it faces, just like the way liquid in a barometer rises based on the pressure of the surrounding air! His characters are nearly always pompous, yet completely unaware compared to others. Take, for example, those two respectable gentlemen, Monsieur Jourdain and Monsieur Pourceaugnac.[53]
Learning and pedantry were formerly synonymous; and it was well when they were so. Can there be a higher satisfaction than for a man to understand Greek, and to believe that there is nothing else worth understanding? Learning is the knowledge of that which 82is not generally known. What an ease and a dignity in pretensions, founded on the ignorance of others! What a pleasure in wondering, what a pride in being wondered at! In the library of the family where we were brought up, stood the Fratres Poloni; and we can never forget or describe the feeling with which not only their appearance, but the names of the authors on the outside inspired us. Pripscovius, we remember, was one of the easiest to pronounce. The gravity of the contents seemed in proportion to the weight of the volumes; the importance of the subjects increased with our ignorance of them. The trivialness of the remarks, if ever we looked into them,—the repetitions, the monotony, only gave a greater solemnity to the whole, as the slowness and minuteness of the evidence adds to the impressiveness of a judicial proceeding. We knew that the authors had devoted their whole lives to the production of these works, carefully abstaining from the introduction of any thing amusing or lively or interesting. In ten folio volumes there was not one sally of wit, one striking reflection. What, then, must have been their sense of the importance of the subject, the profound stores of knowledge which they had to communicate! ‘From all this world’s encumbrance they did themselves assoil.’ Such was the notion we then had of this learned lumber; yet we would rather have this feeling again for one half-hour than be possessed of all the acuteness of Bayle or the wit of Voltaire!
Learning and pretentiousness used to mean the same thing, and it was good when they did. Is there anything more satisfying than a person who understands Greek and thinks there’s nothing else worth knowing? Learning is all about understanding what most people don’t. There’s a certain ease and dignity that comes from pretending to know more, thanks to the ignorance of others. The thrill of wonder and the pride of being wondered at is unique! In the library of the family where we grew up, we had the Polish Brothers; and we can never forget or describe how their appearance and the authors’ names on the spines made us feel. Pripscovius, we recall, was one of the easiest names to say. The seriousness of the content seemed proportional to the weight of the books; the more we didn’t understand, the more important the topics seemed. The trivial comments, if we ever dared to peek inside,—the repetitions, the dullness—added to the gravity of it all, as the slow and detailed presentation of evidence makes a court case feel more significant. We knew that these authors had dedicated their entire lives to producing these works, carefully avoiding anything fun, lively, or engaging. In those ten folio volumes, there wasn't a single joke or memorable insight. So, what must have been their sense of the subject's significance, the deep wells of knowledge they had to share? 'From all this world’s clutter, they freed themselves.' Such was our impression of this learned stuff; yet we would prefer to feel that way for just half an hour than have all the sharpness of Bayle or the humor of Voltaire!
It may be considered as a sign of the decay of piety and learning in modern times, that our divines no longer introduce texts of the original Scriptures into their sermons. The very sound of the original Greek or Hebrew would impress the hearer with a more lively faith in the sacred writers than any translation, however literal or correct. It may be even doubted whether the translation of the Scriptures into the vulgar tongue was any advantage to the people. The mystery in which particular points of faith were left involved, gave an awe and sacredness to religious opinions: the general purport of the truths and promises of revelation was made known by other means; and nothing beyond this general and implicit conviction can be obtained, where all is undefined and infinite.
It might be seen as a sign of the decline of faith and learning in modern times that our pastors no longer include passages from the original Scriptures in their sermons. Just hearing the original Greek or Hebrew would inspire a stronger belief in the sacred authors than any translation, no matter how accurate. It's even questionable whether translating the Scriptures into everyday language really benefitted the people. The mystery surrounding specific beliefs added a sense of awe and sacredness to religious ideas: the general messages and promises of revelation became known through other means, and nothing more than this broad and implicit understanding can be achieved when everything is vague and limitless.
Again, it may be questioned whether, in matters of mere human reasoning, much has been gained by the disuse of the learned languages. Sir Isaac Newton wrote in Latin; and it is perhaps one of Bacon’s fopperies that he translated his works into English. If certain follies have been exposed by being stripped of their formal disguise, others have had a greater chance of succeeding, by being presented in a more pleasing and popular shape. This has been remarkably the case in France, (the least pedantic country in the 83world), where the women mingle with everything, even with metaphysics, and where all philosophy is reduced to a set of phrases for the toilette. When books are written in the prevailing language of the country, every one becomes a critic who can read. An author is no longer tried by his peers. A species of universal suffrage is introduced in letters, which is only applicable to politics. The good old Latin style of our forefathers, if it concealed the dullness of the writer, at least was a barrier against the impertinence, flippancy, and ignorance of the reader. However, the immediate transition from the pedantic to the popular style in literature was a change that must have been very delightful at the time. Our illustrious predecessors, the Tatler and Spectator, were very happily off in this respect. They wore the public favour in its newest gloss, before it had become tarnished and common—before familiarity had bred contempt. It was the honey-moon of authorship. Their Essays were among the first instances in this country of learning sacrificing to the graces, and of a mutual understanding and good-humoured equality between the writer and the reader. This new style of composition, to use the phraseology of Mr. Burke, ‘mitigated authors into companions, and compelled wisdom to submit to the soft collar of social esteem.’ The original papers of the Tatler, printed on a half sheet of common foolscap, were regularly served up at breakfast-time with the silver tea-kettle and thin slices of bread and butter; and what the ingenious Mr. Bickerstaff wrote overnight in his easy chair, he might flatter himself would be read the next morning with elegant applause by the fair, the witty, the learned, and the great, in all parts of this kingdom, in which civilisation had made any considerable advances. The perfection of letters is when the highest ambition of the writer is to please his readers, and the greatest pride of the reader is to understand his author. The satisfaction on both sides ceases when the town becomes a club of authors, when each man stands with his manuscript in his hand waiting for his turn of applause, and when the claims on our admiration are so many, that, like those of common beggars, to prevent imposition they can only be answered with general neglect. Our self-love would be quite bankrupt, if critics by profession did not come forward as beadles to keep off the crowd, and to relieve us from the importunity of these innumerable candidates for fame, by pointing out their faults and passing over their beauties. In the more auspicious period just alluded to an author was regarded by the better sort as a man of genius, and by the vulgar, as a kind of prodigy; insomuch that the Spectator was obliged to shorten his residence at his friend Sir Roger de Coverley’s, from his being taken for a conjuror. Every state of society has its advantages and disadvantages. 84An author is at present in no danger of being taken for a conjuror!
Again, it might be questioned whether, in terms of simple human reasoning, we’ve really gained much from moving away from the learned languages. Sir Isaac Newton wrote in Latin; and perhaps it’s one of Bacon’s quirks that he translated his works into English. While some foolish ideas have been exposed when stripped of their formal disguise, others have had a better chance of succeeding by being presented in a more appealing and popular way. This has been especially true in France, the least pedantic country in the world, where women engage with everything, even metaphysics, and where all philosophy is boiled down to phrases for getting ready. When books are written in the dominant language of the country, anyone who can read becomes a critic. An author isn't judged by their peers anymore. A sort of universal voter system has been introduced in literature that only applies to politics. The good old Latin style of our ancestors, while it hid the dullness of the writer, at least kept readers' rudeness, casualness, and ignorance at bay. Still, the immediate shift from a pedantic to a popular writing style in literature must have been a delightful change at the time. Our esteemed predecessors, the Tatler and Spectator, were quite fortunate in this respect. They enjoyed public favor in its freshest form, before it turned stale and common—before familiarity bred contempt. It was the golden age of authorship. Their Essays were among the first examples in this country of learning giving way to elegance, and of a mutual understanding and friendly equality between the writer and the reader. This new writing style, to borrow Mr. Burke's words, ‘turned authors into companions, and forced wisdom to wear the soft collar of social esteem.’ The original issues of the Tatler, printed on a half sheet of regular paper, were regularly served with breakfast alongside the silver tea kettle and thin slices of bread and butter; and what the clever Mr. Bickerstaff scribbled overnight in his comfy chair, he could flatter himself would be read the next morning with enthusiastic applause by the charming, the witty, the educated, and the important, in every part of the kingdom where civilization had made significant progress. The ultimate achievement in writing is when the writer’s highest goal is to please their readers, and the greatest joy for the reader is to grasp the author’s meaning. The satisfaction for both sides fades when the town becomes a club of authors, where every man stands with his manuscript in hand, waiting for their turn to be applauded, and when the demands for our admiration become so numerous, like those of common beggars, that to avoid being overwhelmed, they can only be met with general indifference. Our self-esteem would be pretty much bankrupt if trained critics didn’t step in like ushers to keep the crowd at bay, relieving us from the hassle of countless fame seekers by highlighting their flaws and overlooking their merits. In that more fortunate time just mentioned, an author was viewed by the better sort as a person of genius, and by the crowd, as somewhat of a marvel; so much so that the Spectator had to cut short his visit at his friend Sir Roger de Coverley’s, because people mistook him for a magician. Every society has its benefits and downsides. An author today is in no risk of being seen as a magician!
No. 23.] THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED [March 10, 1816.
Life is the art of being well deceived; and in order that the deception may succeed, it must be habitual and uninterrupted. A constant examination of the value of our opinions and enjoyments, compared with those of others, may lessen our prejudices, but will leave nothing for our affections to rest upon. A multiplicity of objects unsettles the mind, and destroys not only all enthusiasm, but all sincerity of attachment, all constancy of pursuit; as persons accustomed to an itinerant mode of life never feel themselves at home in any place. It is by means of habit that our intellectual employments mix like our food with the circulation of the blood, and go on like any other part of the animal functions. To take away the force of habit and prejudice entirely, is to strike at the root of our personal existence. The book-worm, buried in the depth of his researches, may well say to the obtrusive shifting realities of the world, ‘Leave me to my repose!’ We have seen an instance of a poetical enthusiast, who would have passed his life very comfortably in the contemplation of his own idea, if he had not been disturbed in his reverie by the Reviewers; and for our own parts, we think we could pass our lives very learnedly and classically in one of the quadrangles at Oxford, without any idea at all, vegetating merely on the air of the place. Chaucer has drawn a beautiful picture of a true scholar in his Clerk of Oxenford:
Life is the art of being well deceived, and for that deception to work, it needs to be a regular and uninterrupted part of our lives. Constantly examining the value of our own opinions and pleasures compared to others may reduce our biases, but it leaves nothing for our feelings to hold onto. Too many options can confuse the mind and destroy not just our enthusiasm but also our genuine connections and commitment; people who live a nomadic lifestyle never truly feel at home anywhere. It's through habit that our intellectual pursuits blend into our lives like food with blood circulation, functioning like any other bodily activity. To completely remove the influence of habit and bias is to undermine the foundation of our personal existence. The bookworm, lost in the depths of research, can rightly tell the ever-changing realities of the world, ‘Leave me to my peace!’ We've seen a case of a passionate poet who would have lived comfortably immersed in his own thoughts if he hadn't been interrupted by critics; and for ourselves, we believe we could live quite learnedly and classically in one of the courtyards at Oxford, without any thoughts at all, simply thriving on the atmosphere of the place. Chaucer paints a beautiful picture of a true scholar in his Clerk of Oxenford:
If letters have profited little by throwing down the barrier between learned prejudice and ignorant presumption, the arts have profited still less by the universal diffusion of accomplishment and pretension. An artist is no longer looked upon as any thing, who is not at the same time ‘chemist, statesman, fiddler, and buffoon.’ It is expected of him that he should be well-dressed, and he is poor; that he should move gracefully, and he has never learned to dance; that he should converse on all subjects, and he understands but one; that he should be read in different languages, and he only knows his own. Yet there is one language, the language of Nature, in which it is enough for him to be able to read, to find everlasting employment and solace to his thoughts—
If letters have gained little by breaking down the barrier between educated bias and ignorant arrogance, the arts have benefited even less from the widespread sharing of skills and pretentiousness. An artist is no longer seen as legitimate unless he is also a "chemist, politician, musician, and clown." People expect him to be well-dressed, even if he's broke; to move beautifully, even if he's never taken a dance class; to discuss all sorts of topics, even if he only knows one; to be fluent in multiple languages, even if he only speaks his own. However, there is one language, the language of Nature, in which it is enough for him to be able to understand, to find endless work and comfort for his thoughts—
He will find no end of his labours or of his triumphs there; yet still feel all his strength not more than equal to the task he has begun—his whole life too short for art. Rubens complained, that just as he was beginning to understand his profession, he was forced to quit it. It was a saying of Michael Angelo, that ‘painting was jealous, and required the whole man to herself.’ Is it to be supposed that Rembrandt did not find sufficient resources against the spleen in the little cell, where mystery and silence hung upon his pencil, or the noon-tide ray penetrated the solemn gloom around him, without the aid of modern newspapers, novels, and reviews? Was he not more wisely employed, while devoted solely to his art—married to that immortal bride! We do not imagine Sir Joshua Reynolds was much happier for having written his lectures, nor for the learned society he kept, friendship apart; and learned society is not necessary to friendship. He was evidently, as far as conversation was concerned, little at his ease in it; and he was always glad, as he himself said, after he had been entertained at the houses of the great, to get back to his painting-room again. Any one settled pursuit, together with the ordinary alternations of leisure, exercise, and amusement, and the natural feelings and relations of society, is quite enough to take up the whole of our thoughts, time, and affections; and any thing 86beyond this will, generally speaking, only tend to dissipate and distract the mind. There is no end of accomplishments, of the prospect of new acquisitions of taste or skill, or of the uneasiness arising from the want of them, if we once indulge in this idle habit of vanity and affectation. The mind is never satisfied with what it is, but is always looking out for fanciful perfections, which it can neither attain nor practise. Our failure in any one object is fatal to our enjoyment of all the rest; and the chances of disappointment multiply with the number of our pursuits. In catching at the shadow, we lose the substance. No man can thoroughly master more than one art or science. The world has never seen a perfect painter. What would it have availed for Raphael to have aimed at Titian’s colouring, or for Titian to have imitated Raphael’s drawing, but to have diverted each from the true bent of his natural genius, and to have made each sensible of his own deficiencies, without any probability of supplying them? Pedantry in art, in learning, in every thing, is the setting an extraordinary value on that which we can do, and that which we understand best, and which it is our business to do and understand. Where is the harm of this? To possess or even understand all kinds of excellence equally, is impossible; and to pretend to admire that to which we are indifferent, as much as that which is of the greatest use, and which gives the greatest pleasure to us, is not liberality, but affectation. Is an artist, for instance, to be required to feel the same admiration for the works of Handel as for those of Raphael? If he is sincere, he cannot: and a man, to be free from pedantry, must be either a coxcomb or a hypocrite. Vestris was so far in the right, in saying that Voltaire and he were the two greatest men in Europe. Voltaire was so in the public opinion, and he was so in his own. Authors and literary people have been unjustly accused for arrogating an exclusive preference to letters over other arts. They are justified in doing this, because words are the most natural and universal language, and because they have the sympathy of the world with them. Poets, for the same reason, have a right to be the vainest of authors. The prejudice attached to established reputation is, in like manner, perfectly well founded, because that which has longest excited our admiration and the admiration of mankind, is most entitled to admiration, on the score of habit, sympathy, and deference to public opinion. There is a sentiment attached to classical reputation, which cannot belong to new works of genius, till they become old in their turn.
He will find endless work and triumphs there; yet still feel that his strength is barely enough for the task he has started—his entire life too short for art. Rubens complained that just as he was beginning to grasp his profession, he had to leave it. Michael Angelo once said that ‘painting was jealous and demanded the whole person for itself.’ Can we assume that Rembrandt didn’t find enough resources to fend off gloom in the little space where mystery and silence enveloped his brush, or where the midday light broke through the solemn darkness around him, without the help of modern newspapers, novels, and reviews? Was he not better off, entirely dedicated to his art—married to that immortal bride? We don’t think Sir Joshua Reynolds was much happier for having written his lectures or for the learned company he kept, aside from friendship; and learned society isn’t needed for friendship. He clearly felt uncomfortable in conversation; he was always relieved, as he himself said, to return to his painting room after being entertained in the homes of the wealthy. Any settled pursuit, along with the usual mix of leisure, exercise, and fun, along with the natural feelings and relationships of society, is more than enough to occupy our thoughts, time, and emotions; and anything more will usually only serve to scatter and distract the mind. There’s no end to the skills, the prospect of new tastes or abilities, or the anxiety from lacking them, if we indulge in this idle habit of vanity and pretension. The mind is never satisfied with its current state but constantly seeks imaginary perfections, which it can neither achieve nor practice. Our failure in any one area can ruin our enjoyment of all others; and the chances of disappointment grow with the number of our pursuits. In reaching for shadows, we lose substance. No one can fully master more than one art or science. The world has never seen a flawless painter. What good would it have done for Raphael to strive for Titian’s coloring, or for Titian to imitate Raphael’s drawing? It would have only diverted each from their true natural talent and made each aware of their own shortcomings, without the chance of addressing them. Pedantry in art, in learning, in everything, is overvaluing what we can do, what we understand best, and what it is our job to do and grasp. Where’s the harm in this? It’s impossible to possess or even understand all forms of excellence equally, and pretending to admire equally that which we’re indifferent to, as much as what brings us the most utility and joy, isn’t generosity but pretension. Should an artist be expected to feel the same admiration for Handel’s works as for Raphael’s? If he’s honest, he cannot; and a person wanting to be free from pedantry must be either a fool or a fraud. Vestris was partly right in claiming that he and Voltaire were the two greatest men in Europe. Voltaire held that status in the public eye, and he believed it himself. Authors and literary figures have been unfairly accused of unfairly prioritizing literature over other arts. They have every right to do so because words are the most natural and universal language, and because they have the sympathy of the world. Poets, for the same reason, have a right to be the most egotistical of writers. The bias surrounding established reputation is, likewise, completely justified because what has long captivated our admiration and that of humanity deserves admiration for reasons of habit, sympathy, and respect for public opinion. There is a sentiment associated with classical reputation that cannot belong to new works of genius until they too age.
There appears to be a natural division of labour in the ornamental as well as the mechanical arts of human life. We do not see why a nobleman should wish to shine as a poet, any more than to be dubbed 87a knight, or to be created Lord Mayor of London. If he succeeds, he gains nothing; and then if he is damned, what a ridiculous figure he makes! The great, instead of rivalling them, should keep authors, as they formerly kept fools,—a practice in itself highly laudable, and the disuse of which might be referred to as the first symptom of the degeneracy of modern times, and dissolution of the principles of social order! But of all the instances of a profession now unjustly obsolete, commend us to the alchemist. We see him sitting fortified in his prejudices, with his furnace, his diagrams, and his alembics; smiling at disappointments as proofs of the sublimity of his art, and the earnest of his future success: wondering at his own knowledge and the incredulity of others; fed with hope to the last gasp, and having all the pleasures without the pain of madness. What is there in the discoveries of modern chemistry equal to the very names of the Elixir Vitæ and the Aurum Potabile!
There seems to be a natural division of labor in both the decorative and practical arts of life. We don't see why a nobleman would want to shine as a poet any more than he would want to be made a knight or become the Lord Mayor of London. If he succeeds, he gains nothing; and if he fails, what a ridiculous sight he makes! The elite, instead of competing with authors, should support them, just like they used to keep jesters—a practice that was commendable in itself, and its decline could be seen as the first sign of the moral decline of modern times and the breakdown of social order! But of all the professions that are now unjustly outdated, let’s highlight the alchemist. We see him confidently entrenched in his beliefs, with his furnace, diagrams, and alembics; smiling at failures as proof of the greatness of his art and a sign of future success: amazed at his own knowledge and the skepticism of others; filled with hope until his last breath, enjoying all the pleasures without the pains of madness. What do modern chemistry's discoveries offer that can compare to the very names of the Elixir of Life and the Liquid Gold!
In Froissard’s Chronicles there is an account of a reverend Monk who had been a robber in the early part of his life, and who, when he grew old, used feelingly to lament that he had ever changed his profession. He said, ‘It was a goodly sight to sally out from his castle, and to see a troop of jolly friars coming riding that way, with their mules well laden with viands and rich stores, to advance towards them, to attack and overthrow them, returning to the castle with a noble booty.’ He preferred this mode of life to counting his beads and chaunting his vespers, and repented that he had ever been prevailed on to relinquish so laudable a calling. In this confession of remorse, we may be sure that there was no hypocrisy.
In Froissard’s Chronicles, there’s a story about a reverend monk who was a robber in his younger years. As he got older, he often expressed regret about changing his profession. He said, “It was a great sight to ride out from his castle and see a group of jolly friars coming toward him, their mules loaded with food and treasures, to approach them, attack and defeat them, and return to the castle with a nice haul.” He preferred that lifestyle over counting his prayer beads and singing his evening prayers and wished he had never been convinced to give up such an admirable way of life. In his confession of regret, we can be sure there was no pretense.
The difference in the character of the gentlemen of the present age and those of the old school, has been often insisted on. The character of a gentleman is a relative term, which can hardly subsist where there is no marked distinction of persons. The diffusion of knowledge, of artificial and intellectual equality, tends to level this distinction, and to confound that nice perception and high sense of honour, which arises from conspicuousness of situation, and a perpetual attention to personal propriety and the claims of personal respect. The age of chivalry is gone with the improvements in the art of war, which superseded the exercise of personal courage; and the character of a gentleman must disappear with those general refinements in manners, which render the advantages of rank and situation accessible almost to every one. The bag-wig and sword naturally followed the fate of the helmet and the spear, when these outward insignia no longer implied acknowledged superiority, and were a distinction without a difference.
The difference between the gentlemen of today and those from the past has been talked about a lot. The idea of a gentleman is a relative term that really can't exist without a clear distinction between people. The spread of knowledge and the push for social and intellectual equality tends to blur this distinction and mix up the fine judgment and strong sense of honor that come from being in a noticeable position and constantly paying attention to personal propriety and respect. The age of chivalry has faded away with advancements in warfare that have replaced the need for personal bravery. As manners become more refined, the qualities that once set apart gentlemen are becoming accessible to nearly everyone. The bag-wig and sword naturally met the same fate as the helmet and spear when these outward symbols no longer signified recognized superiority and became a distinction without real difference.
The spirit of chivalrous and romantic love proceeded on the same 88exclusive principle. It was an enthusiastic adoration, an idolatrous worship paid to sex and beauty. This, even in its blindest excess, was better than the cold indifference and prostituted gallantry of this philosophic age. The extreme tendency of civilisation is to dissipate all intellectual energy, and dissolve all moral principle. We are sometimes inclined to regret the innovations on the Catholic religion. It was a noble charter for ignorance, dullness, and prejudice of all kinds, (perhaps, after all, ‘the sovereign’st things on earth’), and put an effectual stop to the vanity and restlessness of opinion. ‘It wrapped the human understanding all round like a blanket.’ Since the Reformation, altars, unsprinkled by holy oil, are no longer sacred; and thrones, unsupported by the divine right, have become uneasy and insecure.
The spirit of chivalrous and romantic love followed the same exclusive principle. It was a passionate adoration, almost an idolization of sex and beauty. Even in its most extreme forms, it was better than the cold indifference and shallow courtesy of this philosophical age. The ultimate trend of civilization tends to drain all intellectual energy and dissolve all moral principles. Sometimes, we find ourselves regretting the changes made to the Catholic faith. It was a noble defense against ignorance, dullness, and all kinds of prejudice (perhaps, after all, ‘the most important things on earth’), and it effectively curbed the vanity and restlessness of opinions. ‘It wrapped human understanding all around like a blanket.’ Since the Reformation, altars that haven't been blessed by holy oil are no longer considered sacred, and thrones that lack divine support have become unstable and insecure.
No. 24.] ON THE CHARACTER OF ROUSSEAU [April 14, 1816.
Madame de Stael, in her Letters on the Writings and Character of Rousseau, gives it as her opinion, ‘that the imagination was the first faculty of his mind, and that this faculty even absorbed all the others.’[54] And she farther adds, ‘Rousseau had great strength of reason on abstract questions, or with respect to objects, which have no reality but in the mind.’[55] Both these opinions are radically wrong. Neither imagination nor reason can properly be said to have been the original predominant faculties of his mind. The strength both of imagination and reason, which he possessed, was borrowed from the excess of another faculty; and the weakness and poverty of reason and imagination, which are to be found in his works, may be traced to the same source, namely, that these faculties in him were artificial, secondary, and dependant, operating by a power not theirs, but lent to them. The only quality which he possessed in an eminent degree, which alone raised him above ordinary men, and which gave to his writings and opinions an influence greater, perhaps, than has been exerted by any individual in modern times, was extreme sensibility, or an acute and even morbid feeling of all that related to his own impressions, to the objects and events of his life. He had the most intense consciousness of his own existence. No object that had once made an impression on him was ever after effaced. Every feeling in his mind became a passion. His craving after 89excitement was an appetite and a disease. His interest in his own thoughts and feelings was always wound up to the highest pitch; and hence the enthusiasm which he excited in others. He owed the power which he exercised over the opinions of all Europe, by which he created numberless disciples, and overturned established systems, to the tyranny which his feelings, in the first instance, exercised over himself. The dazzling blaze of his reputation was kindled by the same fire that fed upon his vitals.[56] His ideas differed from those of other men only in their force and intensity. His genius was the effect of his temperament. He created nothing, he demonstrated nothing, by a pure effort of the understanding. His fictitious characters are modifications of his own being, reflections and shadows of himself. His speculations are the obvious exaggerations of a mind, giving a loose to its habitual impulses, and moulding all nature to its own purposes. Hence his enthusiasm and his eloquence, bearing down all opposition. Hence the warmth and the luxuriance, as well as the sameness of his descriptions. Hence the frequent verboseness of his style; for passion lends force and reality to language, and makes words supply the place of imagination. Hence the tenaciousness of his logic, the acuteness of his observations, the refinement and the inconsistency of his reasoning. Hence his keen penetration, and his strange want of comprehension of mind: for the same intense feeling which enabled him to discern the first principles of things, and seize some one view of a subject in all its ramifications, prevented him from admitting the operation of other causes which interfered with his favourite purpose, and involved him in endless wilful contradictions. Hence his excessive egotism, which filled all objects with himself, and would have occupied the universe with his smallest interest. Hence his jealousy and suspicion of others; for no attention, no respect or sympathy, could come up to the extravagant claims of his self-love. Hence his dissatisfaction with himself and with all around him; for nothing could satisfy his ardent longings after good, his restless appetite of being. Hence his feelings, overstrained and exhausted, recoiled upon themselves, and produced his love of silence and repose, his feverish aspirations after the quiet and solitude of nature. Hence in part also his quarrel with the artificial institutions and distinctions of society, which opposed so many barriers to the unrestrained indulgence of his will, and allured his imagination to scenes of 90pastoral simplicity or of savage life, where the passions were either not excited or left to follow their own impulse,—where the petty vexations and irritating disappointments of common life had no place,—and where the tormenting pursuits of arts and sciences were lost in pure animal enjoyment, or indolent repose. Thus he describes the first savage wandering for ever under the shade of magnificent forests, or by the side of mighty rivers, smit with the unquenchable love of nature!
Madame de Stael, in her Letters on the Writings and Character of Rousseau, expresses her belief that "imagination was the first faculty of his mind, and that this faculty even absorbed all the others."[54] She further states, "Rousseau had great strength of reason on abstract questions, or regarding concepts that exist only in the mind."[55] Both of these views are fundamentally mistaken. Neither imagination nor reason can truly be considered the primary faculties of his mind. The strength of both imagination and reason that he had was actually borrowed from an excess of another faculty. Additionally, the weaknesses and limitations of reason and imagination found in his works can be traced back to the same cause: namely, that these faculties in him were artificial, secondary, and dependent, operating through a power that was not inherently theirs but rather given to them. The only quality he had in an exceptional degree, which distinguished him from ordinary people and gave his writings and opinions perhaps more influence than any other individual in modern times, was extreme sensitivity, or an acute and even unhealthy awareness of everything related to his own impressions, the objects, and events in his life. He was intensely aware of his own existence. No object that had ever made an impression on him was ever erased from his memory. Every feeling he experienced turned into a passion. His craving for excitement became both an appetite and an affliction. His interest in his own thoughts and feelings was always heightened, which in turn created enthusiasm in others. He owed the influence he had over the opinions across Europe, which led to countless followers and the overthrow of established systems, to the oppressive nature of his feelings, which initially dominated him. The brilliant glow of his reputation was fueled by the same fire that consumed his core.[56] His ideas only differed from those of others in their strength and intensity. His genius was a result of his temperament. He didn’t create or demonstrate anything purely through intellectual effort. His fictional characters are variations of his own self, reflections and shadows of him. His theories are clear exaggerations of a mind that was allowed to follow its usual impulses, shaping all of nature to serve its interests. This led to his enthusiasm and eloquence, overwhelming all opposition. This also accounts for the warmth and richness, along with the sameness of his descriptions. This explains the frequent wordiness of his style; because passion gives power and reality to his words, often making them stand in for imagination. This contributes to the tenacity of his logic, the sharpness of his observations, the intricacy, and the inconsistencies in his reasoning. This is why he displayed sharp insight yet struggled to grasp broader concepts: that same intense feeling that helped him recognize core principles and see aspects of a subject in all its complexities also caused him to overlook other influences that conflicted with his preferred aims, leading him into endless intentional contradictions. Hence his extreme egotism, which filled every object with his own self and would have occupied the universe with even his smallest concerns. Hence his jealousy and distrust of others, as no attention, respect, or sympathy could meet the unreasonably high demands of his self-esteem. This led to his dissatisfaction with himself and everything around him; nothing could satisfy his strong desires for goodness or his restless hunger for existence. As a result, his feelings became strained and worn-out, turning back on themselves, resulting in his love for silence and stillness, as well as his restless longings for peace and solitude in nature. This also partly explains his conflict with the artificial structures and distinctions of society, which put up numerous barriers to his unrestrained desires and tempted his imagination with visions of pastoral simplicity or primitive life, where passions were either not stirred or allowed to flow freely—places where the trivial frustrations and annoying disappointments of everyday life disappeared, and where the exhausting pursuits of arts and sciences faded into sheer enjoyment or lazy tranquility. Thus, he depicts the first savage wandering forever beneath the shade of majestic forests or beside mighty rivers, struck by an unquenchable love for nature!
The best of all his works is the Confessions, though it is that which has been least read, because it contains the fewest set paradoxes or general opinions. It relates entirely to himself; and no one was ever so much at home on this subject as he was. From the strong hold which they had taken of his mind, he makes us enter into his feelings as if they had been our own, and we seem to remember every incident and circumstance of his life as if it had happened to ourselves. We are never tired of this work, for it everywhere presents us with pictures which we can fancy to be counterparts of our own existence. The passages of this sort are innumerable. There is the interesting account of his childhood, the constraints and thoughtless liberty of which are so well described; of his sitting up all night reading romances with his father, till they were forced to desist by hearing the swallows twittering in their nests; his crossing the Alps, described with all the feelings belonging to it, his pleasure in setting out, his satisfaction in coming to his journey’s end, the delight of ‘coming and going he knew not where’; his arriving at Turin; the figure of Madame Basile, drawn with such inimitable precision and elegance; the delightful adventure of the Chateau de Toune, where he passed the day with Mademoiselle G**** and Mademoiselle Galley; the story of his Zulietta, the proud, the charming Zulietta, whose last words, ‘Va Zanetto, e studia la Matematica,’ were never to be forgotten; his sleeping near Lyons in a niche of the wall, after a fine summer’s day, with a nightingale perched above his head; his first meeting with Madame Warens, the pomp of sound with which he has celebrated her name, beginning ‘Louise Eleonore de Warens étoit une demoiselle de la Tour de Pil, noble et ancienne famille de Vevai, ville du pays de Vaud’ (sounds which we still tremble to repeat); his description of her person, her angelic smile, her mouth of the size of his own; his walking out one day while the bells were chiming to vespers, and anticipating in a sort of waking dream the life he afterwards led with her, in which months and years, and life itself passed away in undisturbed felicity; the sudden disappointment of his hopes; his transport thirty years after at seeing the same flower which they had brought home together from one of their 91rambles near Chambery; his thoughts in that long interval of time; his suppers with Grimm and Diderot after he came to Paris; the first idea of his prize dissertation on the savage state; his account of writing the New Eloise, and his attachment to Madame d’Houdetot; his literary projects, his fame, his misfortunes, his unhappy temper; his last solitary retirement in the lake and island of Bienne, with his dog and his boat; his reveries and delicious musings there; all these crowd into our minds with recollections which we do not chuse to express. There are no passages in the New Eloise of equal force and beauty with the best descriptions in the Confessions, if we except the excursion on the water, Julia’s last letter to St. Preux, and his letter to her, recalling the days of their first loves. We spent two whole years in reading these two works; and (gentle reader, it was when we were young) in shedding tears over them
The best of all his works is the Confessions, even though it’s the one that’s been read the least because it has the fewest set paradoxes or general opinions. It’s entirely about himself; and no one ever delved into this subject as deeply as he did. The powerful hold it had on his mind allows us to connect with his feelings as if they were our own, making us feel like we remember every event and detail of his life as if it happened to us. We never tire of this work, as it constantly presents us with scenes that we can imagine as reflections of our own lives. There are countless passages like this. There’s the fascinating account of his childhood, with its constraints and carefree freedom so well described; of him staying up all night reading stories with his father until they were forced to stop when they heard the swallows chirping in their nests; his crossing of the Alps, depicted with all the emotions tied to it—his excitement at setting out, his contentment at reaching his destination, the thrill of ‘going and coming he knew not where’; his arrival in Turin; the portrait of Madame Basile, drawn with such unmatched accuracy and grace; the delightful adventure at the Chateau de Toune, where he spent the day with Mademoiselle G**** and Mademoiselle Galley; the story of his Zulietta, the proud and charming Zulietta, whose last words, ‘Go to Zanetto and study Mathematics.,’ are never to be forgotten; his sleeping near Lyons in a wall niche after a lovely summer day, with a nightingale perched above him; his first encounter with Madame Warens, the grand sound with which he celebrates her name, starting with ‘Louise Eleonore de Warens was a young lady from the Tour de Pil, a noble and historic family from Vevai, a town in the Vaud region.’ (words we still hesitate to repeat); his description of her appearance, her angelic smile, her mouth as big as his; his walking out one day while the bells chimed for vespers, envisioning in a sort of waking dream the life he would later lead with her, where months and years, and life itself went by in unbroken happiness; the sudden disappointment of his hopes; his joy thirty years later at seeing the same flower they had picked together on one of their 91 walks near Chambery; his thoughts during that long span of time; his dinners with Grimm and Diderot after arriving in Paris; the initial idea for his prize essay on the state of nature; his account of writing the New Eloise, and his affection for Madame d’Houdetot; his literary ambitions, his fame, his misfortunes, his troubled temperament; his last solitary retreat by the lake and island of Bienne, with his dog and his boat; his daydreams and sweet reflections there; all of these flood our minds with memories we prefer not to express. There are no passages in the New Eloise as powerful and beautiful as the best descriptions in the Confessions, except for the excursion on the water, Julia’s last letter to St. Preux, and his letter to her, reminiscing about their first love. We spent two whole years reading these two works; and (dear reader, it was when we were young) shedding tears over them.
They were the happiest years of our life. We may well say of them, sweet is the dew of their memory, and pleasant the balm of their recollection! There are, indeed, impressions which neither time nor circumstances can efface.[57]
They were the happiest years of our lives. We can definitely say that the memory of them is sweet, and the recollection is comforting! There are, in fact, memories that neither time nor circumstances can erase.[57]
92Rousseau, in all his writings, never once lost sight of himself. He was the same individual from first to last. The spring that moved his passions never went down, the pulse that agitated his heart never ceased to beat. It was this strong feeling of interest, accumulating in his mind, which overpowers and absorbs the feelings of his readers. He owed all his power to sentiment. The writer who most nearly resembles him in our own times is the author of the Lyrical Ballads. We see no other difference between them, than that the one wrote in prose and the other in poetry; and that prose is perhaps better adapted to express those local and personal feelings, which are inveterate habits in the mind, than poetry, which embodies its imaginary creations. We conceive that Rousseau’s exclamation, ‘Ah, voila de la pervenche,’ comes more home to the mind than Mr. Wordsworth’s discovery of the linnet’s nest ‘with five blue eggs,’ or than his address to the cuckoo, beautiful as we think it is; and we will confidently match the Citizen of Geneva’s adventures on the Lake of Bienne against the Cumberland Poet’s floating dreams on the Lake of Grasmere. Both create an interest out of nothing, or rather out of their own feelings; both weave numberless recollections into one sentiment; both wind their own being round whatever object occurs to them. But Rousseau, as a prose-writer, gives only the habitual and personal impression. Mr. Wordsworth, as a poet, is forced to lend the colours of imagination to impressions which owe all their force to their identity with themselves, and tries to paint what is only to be felt. Rousseau, in a word, interests you in certain objects by interesting you in himself: Mr. Wordsworth would persuade you that the most insignificant objects are interesting in themselves, because he is interested in them. If he had met with Rousseau’s favourite periwinkle, he would have translated it into the most beautiful of flowers. This is not imagination, but want of sense. If his jealousy of the sympathy of others makes him avoid what is beautiful and grand in nature, why does he undertake elaborately to describe other objects? His nature is a mere Dulcinea del Toboso, and he would make a Vashti of her. Rubens appears to have been as extravagantly attached to his three wives, as Raphael was to his Fornarina; but their faces were not so classical. The three greatest egotists that we know 93of, that is, the three writers who felt their own being most powerfully and exclusively, are Rousseau, Wordsworth, and Benvenuto Cellini. As Swift somewhere says, we defy the world to furnish out a fourth.
92Rousseau, in all his writings, never lost sight of who he was. He remained the same person from start to finish. The energy that fueled his passions never faded, and the heartbeat that stirred his emotions never stopped. It was this intense sense of personal investment, building up in his mind, that overwhelms and captivates his readers. He owed all his influence to his emotions. The writer who most closely resembles him in our time is the author of the Lyrical Ballads. The only difference between them is that one wrote in prose and the other in poetry; and prose is perhaps better suited to express those local and personal feelings that are deeply ingrained in the mind, while poetry captures its imaginative creations. We believe Rousseau’s exclamation, ‘Ah, here is the periwinkle.,’ resonates more clearly than Mr. Wordsworth’s discovery of the linnet’s nest ‘with five blue eggs,’ or his beautiful address to the cuckoo; and we would confidently compare the Citizen of Geneva’s experiences on the Lake of Bienne to the Cumberland Poet’s dreamy reflections on the Lake of Grasmere. Both create interest from nothing, or rather from their own feelings; both intertwine countless memories into one sentiment; both wrap their identity around whatever object catches their attention. But Rousseau, as a prose writer, conveys only habitual and personal impressions. Mr. Wordsworth, as a poet, has to infuse imaginative colors into impressions that derive all their strength from their connection to his own identity, trying to depict what can only be felt. In short, Rousseau engages you with certain subjects by engaging you with himself: Mr. Wordsworth wants to convince you that even the most trivial things are interesting on their own, simply because he is interested in them. If he came across Rousseau’s beloved periwinkle, he would have translated it into the most beautiful of flowers. This isn’t imagination; it’s a lack of perception. If his jealousy of others' sympathy leads him to shy away from what is beautiful and grand in nature, why does he go to great lengths to describe other subjects? His nature is merely a Dulcinea del Toboso, and he would elevate it to a Vashti. Rubens seemed to have been just as extravagantly attached to his three wives as Raphael was to his Fornarina, but their faces weren’t as classically beautiful. The three greatest egotists we know of – that is, the three writers who felt their existence most intensely and solely – are Rousseau, Wordsworth, and Benvenuto Cellini. As Swift once said, we challenge the world to come up with a fourth. 93
No. 25.] ON DIFFERENT SORTS OF FAME [April 21, 1816.
There is a half serious, half ironical argument in Melmoth’s Fitz-Osborn’s Letters, to shew the futility of posthumous fame, which runs thus: ‘The object of any one who is inspired with this passion is to be remembered by posterity with admiration and delight, as having been possessed of certain powers and excellences which distinguished him above his contemporaries. But posterity, it is said, can know nothing of the individual but from the memory of these qualities which he has left behind him. All that we know of Julius Cæsar, for instance, is that he was the person who performed certain actions, and wrote a book called his Commentaries. When, therefore, we extol Julius Cæsar for his actions or his writings, what do we say but that the person who performed certain things did perform them; that the author of such a work was the person who wrote it; or, in short, that Julius Cæsar was Julius Cæsar? Now this is a mere truism, and the desire to be the subject of such an identical proposition must, therefore, be an evident absurdity.’ The sophism is a tolerably ingenious one, but it is a sophism, nevertheless. It would go equally to prove the nullity, not only of posthumous fame, but of living reputation; for the good or the bad opinion which my next-door neighbour may entertain of me is nothing more than his conviction that such and such a person having certain good or bad qualities is possessed of them; nor is the figure, which a Lord-Mayor elect, a prating demagogue, or popular preacher, makes in the eyes of the admiring multitude—himself, but an image of him reflected in the minds of others, in connection with certain feelings of respect and wonder. In fact, whether the admiration we seek is to last for a day or for eternity, whether we are to have it while living or after we are dead, whether it is to be expressed by our contemporaries or by future generations, the principle of it is the same—sympathy with the feelings of others, and the necessary tendency which the idea or consciousness of the approbation of others has to strengthen the suggestions of our self-love.[58] We are all inclined to think well of ourselves, of 94our sense and capacity in whatever we undertake; but from this very desire to think well of ourselves, we are (as Mrs. Peachum says) ‘bitter bad judges’ of our own pretensions; and when our vanity flatters us most, we ought in general to suspect it most. We are, therefore, glad to get the good opinion of a friend, but that may be partial; the good word of a stranger is likely to be more sincere, but he may be a blockhead; the multitude will agree with us, if we agree with them; accident, the caprice of fashion, the prejudice of the moment, may give a fleeting reputation; our only certain appeal, therefore, is to posterity; the voice of fame is alone the voice of truth. In proportion, however, as this award is final and secure, it is remote and uncertain. Voltaire said to some one, who had addressed an Epistle to Posterity, ‘I am afraid, my friend, this letter will never be delivered according to its direction.’ It can exist only in imagination; and we can only presume upon our claim to it, as we prefer the hope of lasting fame to every thing else. The love of fame is almost another name for the love of excellence; or it is the ambition to attain the highest excellence, sanctioned by the highest authority, that of time. Vanity, and the love of fame, are quite distinct from each other; for the one is voracious of the most obvious and doubtful applause, whereas the other rejects or overlooks every kind of applause but that which is purified from every mixture of flattery, and identified with truth and nature itself. There is, therefore, something disinterested in this passion, inasmuch as it is abstracted and ideal, and only appeals to opinion as a standard of truth; it is this which ‘makes ambition virtue.’ Milton had as fine an idea as any one of true fame; and Dr. Johnson has very beautifully described his patient and confident anticipations of the success of his great poem in the account of Paradise Lost. He has, indeed, done the same thing himself in Lycidas:
There’s a partly serious, partly ironic argument in Melmoth’s Fitz-Osborn’s Letters, which shows the uselessness of posthumous fame. It goes like this: ‘Anyone who feels driven by this passion wants to be remembered by future generations with admiration and joy for having certain talents and qualities that set them apart from their peers. But it’s said that future generations can know nothing about a person except what memories of those qualities they’ve left behind. All we know about Julius Caesar, for example, is that he did certain things and wrote a book called his Commentaries. So when we praise Julius Caesar for his actions or writings, what we’re really saying is that the person who did those things did indeed do them; that the author of that work is the one who wrote it; or, in other words, that Julius Caesar was Julius Caesar. This is just a basic truth, and the desire to be the subject of such a straightforward statement must therefore be obviously absurd.’ The argument is clever enough, but it’s still an argument. It would equally prove the insignificance of not just posthumous fame but also living reputation; for the good or bad opinions my neighbor has about me are simply his belief that a certain person possesses certain good or bad qualities; nor is the image that an elected Lord Mayor, a talkative demagogue, or a popular preacher makes in the eyes of an admiring crowd—himself, but rather an image of him reflected in the minds of others, tied to certain feelings of respect and wonder. In fact, whether the admiration we seek lasts for a day or for eternity, whether we have it while alive or after we’re gone, whether it comes from our peers or from future generations, the principle is the same—empathy with others' feelings, and the natural tendency of the idea or awareness of others’ approval to boost our self-esteem.[58] We all tend to think well of ourselves, of our intelligence and abilities in anything we try; but from this very desire to hold ourselves in high regard, we are (as Mrs. Peachum says) ‘bitter bad judges’ of our own claims; and when our vanity flatters us the most, we generally should be the most suspicious. We’re therefore happy to receive the good opinion of a friend, but that may be biased; a stranger’s praise is likely more genuine, but they might be a fool; the crowd will agree with us if we fit in with them; chance, trends, and temporary biases might give us a fleeting reputation; our only real appeal, then, is to posterity; the voice of fame is the only true voice. However, the more final and secure this judgment is, the more distant and uncertain it becomes. Voltaire once told someone who had written a letter to Posterity, ‘I’m afraid, my friend, this letter will never reach its destination.’ It can exist only in imagination; and we can only speculate about our right to it, as we prefer the hope of lasting fame over anything else. The love of fame is almost another term for the love of excellence; or it’s the ambition to achieve the highest excellence, validated by the highest authority, that of time. Vanity and the love of fame are quite different; one craves immediate and questionable praise, while the other disregards or overlooks any form of praise that isn’t stripped of flattery and associated with truth and nature itself. Therefore, there is something altruistic in this passion, as it is lofty and ideal, only appealing to opinion as a measure of truth; it is this that ‘makes ambition virtue.’ Milton had as fine an understanding of true fame as anyone, and Dr. Johnson beautifully described his patient and confident expectations of the success of his great poem in his account of Paradise Lost. He himself did the same in Lycidas:
None but those who have sterling pretensions can afford to refer them to time; as persons who live upon their means cannot well go into Chancery. No feeling can be more at variance with the true love of fame than that impatience which we have sometimes witnessed to ‘pluck its fruits, unripe and crude,’ before the time, to make a 95little echo of popularity mimic the voice of fame, and to convert a prize-medal or a newspaper-puff into a passport to immortality.
Only those with genuine ambitions can afford to leave their reputations in the hands of time; just as people who live within their means can’t easily go to court. Nothing contrasts more with the true love of fame than the impatience we sometimes see in wanting to grab its rewards, unready and raw, before the right moment, making a little buzz of popularity mimic the sound of real fame, and turning an award or a newspaper mention into a ticket to immortality. 95
When we hear any one complaining that he has not the same fame as some poet or painter who lived two hundred years ago, he seems to us to complain that he has not been dead these two hundred years. When his fame has undergone the same ordeal, that is, has lasted as long, it will be as good, if he really deserves it. We think it equally absurd, when we sometimes find people objecting, that such an acquaintance of theirs, who has not an idea in his head, should be so much better off in the world than they are. But it is for this very reason; they have preferred the indulgence of their ideas to the pursuit of realities. It is but fair that he who has no ideas should have something in their stead. If he who has devoted his time to the study of beauty, to the pursuit of truth, whose object has been to govern opinion, to form the taste of others, to instruct or to amuse the public, succeeds in this respect, he has no more right to complain that he has not a title or a fortune, than he who has not purchased a ticket, that is, who has taken no means to the end, has a right to complain that he has not a prize in the lottery.
When we hear someone complaining that they don’t have the same fame as some poet or painter from two hundred years ago, it sounds like they’re saying they wish they were dead for those two hundred years. Once their fame has gone through the same test, that is, lasted as long, it will be just as valid if they truly deserve it. We find it just as ridiculous when we hear people complaining that an acquaintance of theirs, who has no ideas at all, should be doing so much better in life than they are. But that’s exactly why; they’ve chosen to indulge their ideas instead of chasing real accomplishments. It’s only fair that someone without ideas should have something else in place of them. If someone has dedicated their time to studying beauty, seeking truth, trying to influence opinions, shaping others’ tastes, or entertaining the public, and they succeed, they shouldn’t complain about not having a title or wealth any more than someone who hasn’t bought a lottery ticket, meaning they took no steps towards the goal, should complain about not winning a prize.
In proportion as men can command the immediate and vulgar applause of others, they become indifferent to that which is remote and difficult of attainment. We take pains only when we are compelled to do it. Little men are remarked to have courage; little women to have wit; and it is seldom that a man of genius is a coxcomb in his dress. Rich men are contented not to be thought wise; and the Great often think themselves well off, if they can escape being the jest of their acquaintance. Authors were actuated by the desire of the applause of posterity, only so long as they were debarred of that of their contemporaries, just as we see the map of the gold-mines of Peru hanging in the room of Hogarth’s Distressed Poet. In the midst of the ignorance and prejudices with which they were surrounded, they had a sort of forlorn hope in the prospect of immortality. The spirit of universal criticism has superseded the anticipation of posthumous fame, and instead of waiting for the award of distant ages, the poet or prose-writer receives his final doom from the next number of the Edinburgh or Quarterly Review. According as the nearness of the applause increases, our impatience increases with it. A writer in a weekly journal engages with reluctance in a monthly publication: and again, a contributor to a daily paper sets about his task with greater spirit than either of them. It is like prompt payment. The effort and the applause go together. We, indeed, have known a man of genius and eloquence, to whom, from a habit of excessive talking, the certainty of seeing what he wrote in print 96the next day was too remote a stimulus for his imagination, and who constantly laid aside his pen in the middle of an article, if a friend dropped in, to finish the subject more effectually aloud, so that the approbation of his hearer, and the sound of his own voice might be co-instantaneous. Members of Parliament seldom turn authors, except to print their speeches when they have not been distinctly heard or understood; and great orators are generally very indifferent writers, from want of sufficient inducement to exert themselves, when the immediate effect on others is not perceived, and the irritation of applause or opposition ceases.
As people gain the ability to win immediate and common applause from others, they become less interested in what is distant and hard to achieve. We only put in effort when we have to. It’s noted that small men display courage; small women show wit; and it’s rare for a truly talented man to dress like a fool. Wealthy individuals are fine with not being seen as wise; and those in positions of power often feel fortunate if they can avoid being the punchline among their peers. Writers are motivated by the desire for future praise only while they are denied that of their contemporaries, much like the map of the gold mines of Peru hangs in Hogarth’s Distressed Poet. In the face of ignorance and prejudice, they hold onto a glimmer of hope for immortality. The era of universal criticism has replaced the expectation of lasting fame; instead of waiting for validation from future generations, poets and writers get their verdicts from the next issue of the Edinburgh or Quarterly Review. As the immediacy of praise increases, our impatience grows alongside it. A writer for a weekly publication hesitates to engage in a monthly one; meanwhile, someone contributing to a daily paper approaches their work with more enthusiasm than either of the other two. It’s like getting paid on the spot. Effort and applause go hand in hand. Indeed, we’ve seen a talented and articulate man who, due to his tendency to talk excessively, found that the chance of seeing his writing in print the next day was too far away to inspire his imagination. He would often put down his pen mid-article if a friend popped in, eager to finish the topic more effectively in person, so the approval of his audience and the sound of his own voice could happen at the same time. Members of Parliament rarely write unless it’s to publish their speeches when they haven’t been clearly heard or understood; and great speakers are often indifferent writers, lacking the incentive to push themselves when they can't observe the immediate reactions from others, and the rush of applause or criticism fades away.
There have been in the last century two singular examples of literary reputation, the one of an author without a name, and the other of a name without an author. We mean the author of Junius’s Letters, and the translator of the mottos to the Rambler, whose name was Elphinstone. The Rambler was published in the year 1750, and the name of Elphinstone prefixed to each paper is familiar to every literary reader, since that time, though we know nothing more of him. We saw this gentleman, since the commencement of the present century, looking over a clipped hedge in the country, with a broad-flapped hat, a venerable countenance, and his dress cut out with the same formality as his ever-greens. His name had not only survived half a century in conjunction with that of Johnson, but he had survived with it, enjoying all the dignity of a classical reputation, and the ease of a literary sinecure, on the strength of his mottos. The author of Junius’s Letters is, on the contrary, as remarkable an instance of a writer who has arrived at all the public honours of literature, without being known by name to a single individual, and who may be said to have realised all the pleasure of posthumous fame, while living, without the smallest gratification of personal vanity. An anonymous writer may feel an acute interest in what is said of his productions, and a secret satisfaction in their success, because it is not the effect of personal considerations, as the overhearing any one speak well of us is more agreeable than a direct compliment. But this very satisfaction will tempt him to communicate his secret. This temptation, however, does not extend beyond the circle of his acquaintance. With respect to the public, who know an author only by his writings, it is of little consequence whether he has a real or a fictitious name, or a signature, so that they have some clue by which to associate the works with the author. In the case of Junius, therefore, where other personal considerations of interest or connections might immediately counteract and set aside this temptation, the triumph over the mere vanity of authorship might not have cost him so dear as we are at first inclined to imagine. Suppose it to have 97been the old Marquis of ——? It is quite out of the question that he should keep his places and not keep his secret. If ever the King should die, we think it not impossible that the secret may out. Certainly the accouchement of any princess in Europe would not excite an equal interest. ‘And you, then, Sir, are the author of Junius!’ What a recognition for the public and the author! That between Yorick and the Frenchman was a trifle to it.
There have been two unique cases of literary reputations in the last century: one is an author without a name, and the other is a name without an author. We’re talking about the author of Junius’s Letters and the translator of the mottos for the Rambler, named Elphinstone. The Rambler was published in 1750, and Elphinstone’s name, which appeared at the beginning of each paper, has been well-known to every literary reader since then, even though we know nothing else about him. Since the start of this century, we’ve seen this gentleman peering over a clipped hedge in the countryside, wearing a broad-brimmed hat, with a dignified expression, and dressed as formally as his evergreens. His name has not only survived half a century alongside Johnson’s but he has lived on with it, enjoying all the respect that comes with a classical reputation and the comfort of a literary position, thanks to his mottos. The author of Junius’s Letters, on the other hand, is a striking example of a writer who has gained all the public honors of literature while remaining unknown by name to anyone, and who has managed to achieve the joys of posthumous fame while alive, without any boost to personal vanity. An anonymous writer may feel a strong interest in what people say about their work and a quiet satisfaction in its success, since it doesn’t stem from personal reasons—overhearing someone praise us is often more pleasant than a direct compliment. However, this very satisfaction may tempt them to share their secret. This temptation usually doesn’t go beyond their circle of acquaintances. For the public, who know an author only by their work, it doesn’t really matter whether they have a real name, a made-up one, or just a signature, as long as there’s some way to connect the works to the author. In the case of Junius, where other personal interests or connections could easily overshadow this temptation, overcoming the simple vanity of authorship might not have been as costly for him as we might first think. What if it was the old Marquis of ——? It’s unlikely he could keep his positions and his secret at the same time. If the King were to die, we wouldn’t be surprised if the secret came out. Certainly, the birth of any princess in Europe wouldn’t draw as much interest. ‘So you, sir, are the author of Junius!’ What a moment of recognition for both the public and the author! That exchange between Yorick and the Frenchman seems trivial in comparison.
We have said that we think the desire to be known by name as an author chiefly has a reference to those to whom we are known personally, and is strongest with regard to those who know most of our persons and least of our capacities. We wish to subpœna the public to our characters. Those who, by great services or great meannesses, have attained titles, always take them from the place with which they have the earliest associations, and thus strive to throw a veil of importance over the insignificance of their original pretensions, or the injustice of fortune. When Lord Nelson was passing over the quay at Yarmouth, to take possession of the ship to which he had been appointed, the people exclaimed, ‘Why make that little fellow a captain?’ He thought of this when he fought the battles of the Nile and Trafalgar. The same sense of personal insignificance which made him great in action made him a fool in love. If Bonaparte had been six inches higher, he never would have gone on that disastrous Russian expedition, nor ‘with that addition’ would he ever have been Emperor and King. For our own parts, one object which we have in writing these Essays, is to send them in a volume to a person who took some notice of us when children, and who augured, perhaps, better of us than we deserved. In fact, the opinion of those who know us most, who are a kind of second self in our recollections, is a sort of second conscience; and the approbation of one or two friends is all the immortality we pretend to.
We’ve mentioned that we believe the desire to be recognized by name as an author largely relates to the people we know personally and is strongest with those who know us best as individuals but least in terms of our abilities. We want to subpoena the public to understand our true characters. Those who have gained titles through great achievements or disgrace often take them from the places tied to their earliest memories, trying to cover the unimportance of their original status or the unfairness of fate. When Lord Nelson was walking along the quay at Yarmouth to take command of the ship he’d been assigned to, the crowd shouted, ‘Why make that little guy a captain?’ He remembered this when fighting the battles of the Nile and Trafalgar. The same sense of personal unimportance that drove him to greatness in battle also made him foolish in love. If Bonaparte had been six inches taller, he probably wouldn’t have undertaken that disastrous Russian campaign, nor would he have ever become Emperor and King ‘with that addition.’ For us, one reason we’re writing these Essays is to send them in a volume to someone who paid attention to us when we were kids, and who perhaps thought we had more potential than we actually did. In reality, the views of those who know us best, who are like a second self in our memories, serve as a sort of second conscience; and the approval of just one or two friends is the only kind of immortality we seek.
No. 26.] CHARACTER OF JOHN BULL [May 19, 1816.
In a late number of a respectable publication, there is the following description of the French character:—
In a recent issue of a reputable magazine, there's a description of the French character that goes as follows:—
‘Extremes meet. This is the only way of accounting for that enigma, the French character. It has often been remarked, that this ingenious nation exhibits more striking contradictions than any other that ever existed. They are the gayest of the gay, and the gravest of the grave. Their very faces pass at once from an expression of the most lively animation, when they are in conversation or in action, to a melancholy blank. They are the lightest and most volatile, and 98at the same time the most plodding, mechanical, and laborious people in Europe. They are one moment the slaves of the most contemptible prejudices, and the next launch out into all the extravagance of the most abstract speculations. In matters of taste they are as inexorable as they are lax in questions of morality; they judge of the one by rules, of the other by their inclinations. It seems at times as if nothing could shock them, and yet they are offended at the merest trifles. The smallest things make the greatest impression on them. From the facility with which they can accommodate themselves to circumstances, they have no fixed principles or real character. They are always that which gives them least pain, or costs them least trouble. They easily disentangle their thoughts from whatever causes the slightest uneasiness, and direct their sensibility to flow in any channels they think proper. Their whole existence is more theatrical than real—their sentiments put on or off like the dress of an actor. Words are with them equivalent to things. They say what is agreeable, and believe what they say. Virtue and vice, good and evil, liberty and slavery, are matters almost of indifference. Their natural self-complacency stands them in stead of all other advantages.’
‘Extremes meet. This is the only way to account for the mystery of the French character. It has often been noted that this clever nation displays more striking contradictions than any other that has ever existed. They are the most cheerful of the cheerful and the gravest of the grave. Their expressions can shift in an instant from lively animation during conversation or action to a melancholic blank. They are the lightest and most carefree, yet also the most hardworking, mechanical, and diligent people in Europe. One moment they are bound by the most trivial prejudices, and the next they dive into the wildest abstractions. When it comes to taste, they are unyielding, while being quite loose in matters of morality; they evaluate the former by rules and the latter by their preferences. At times, it seems nothing could offend them, yet they can be upset by the smallest things. Little details leave the biggest impressions on them. Due to their ability to adapt to circumstances, they lack fixed principles or a solid character. They often choose what causes them the least pain or trouble. They can easily detach their thoughts from anything that causes even slight discomfort and redirect their feelings toward whatever seems appropriate. Their entire existence is more like a performance than reality—their emotions are put on or taken off like an actor's costume. Words are as meaningful to them as deeds. They say what is pleasant and believe what they say. Virtue and vice, good and evil, freedom and slavery are almost indifferent to them. Their natural self-satisfaction serves as their main advantage.’
The foregoing account is pretty near the truth; we have nothing to say against it; but we shall here endeavour to do a like piece of justice to our countrymen, who are too apt to mistake the vices of others for so many virtues in themselves.
The previous account is pretty close to the truth; we have nothing to dispute about it; but we will now try to do a similar justice to our fellow countrymen, who are often too quick to confuse the flaws of others for their own virtues.
If a Frenchman is pleased with every thing, John Bull is pleased with nothing, and that is a fault. He is, to be sure, fond of having his own way, till you let him have it. He is a very headstrong animal, who mistakes the spirit of contradiction for the love of independence, and proves himself to be in the right by the obstinacy with which he stickles for the wrong. You cannot put him so much out of his way as by agreeing with him. He is never in such good-humour as with what gives him the spleen, and is most satisfied when he is sulky. If you find fault with him, he is in a rage; and if you praise him, suspects you have a design upon him. He recommends himself to another by affronting him, and if that will not do, knocks him down to convince him of his sincerity. He gives himself such airs as no mortal ever did, and wonders at the rest of the world for not thinking him the most amiable person breathing. John means well too, but he has an odd way of showing it, by a total disregard of other people’s feelings and opinions. He is sincere, for he tells you at the first word he does not like you; and never deceives, for he never offers to serve you. A civil answer is too much to expect from him. A word costs him more than a blow. He is silent because he has nothing to say, and he looks stupid because he is so. 99He has the strangest notions of beauty. The expression he values most in the human countenance is an appearance of roast beef and plum-pudding; and if he has a red face and round belly, thinks himself a great man. He is a little purse-proud, and has a better opinion of himself for having made a full meal. But his greatest delight is in a bugbear. This he must have, be the consequence what it may. Whoever will give him that, may lead him by the nose, and pick his pocket at the same time. An idiot in a country town, a Presbyterian parson, a dog with a cannister tied to his tail, a bull-bait, or a fox-hunt, are irresistible attractions to him. The Pope was formerly his great aversion, and latterly, a cap of liberty is a thing he cannot abide. He discarded the Pope, and defied the Inquisition, called the French a nation of slaves and beggars, and abused their Grand Monarque for a tyrant, cut off one king’s head, and exiled another, set up a Dutch Stadtholder, and elected a Hanoverian Elector to be king over him, to shew he would have his own way, and to teach the rest of the world what they should do: but since other people took to imitating his example, John has taken it into his head to hinder them, will have a monopoly of rebellion and regicide to himself, has become sworn brother to the Pope, and stands by the Inquisition, restores his old enemies, the Bourbons, and reads a great moral lesson to their subjects, persuades himself that the Dutch Stadtholder and the Hanoverian Elector came to reign over him by divine right, and does all he can to prove himself a beast to make other people slaves. The truth is, John was always a surly, meddlesome, obstinate fellow, and of late years his head has not been quite right! In short, John is a great blockhead and a great bully, and requires (what he has been long labouring for) a hundred years of slavery to bring him to his senses. He will have it that he is a great patriot, for he hates all other countries; that he is wise, for he thinks all other people fools; that he is honest, for he calls all other people whores and rogues. If being in an ill-humour all one’s life is the perfection of human nature, then John is very near it. He beats his wife, quarrels with his neighbours, damns his servants, and gets drunk to kill the time and keep up his spirits, and firmly believes himself the only unexceptionable, accomplished, moral, and religious character in Christendom. He boasts of the excellence of the laws, and the goodness of his own disposition; and yet there are more people hanged in England than in all Europe besides: he boasts of the modesty of his countrywomen, and yet there are more prostitutes in the streets of London than in all the capitals of Europe put together. He piques himself on his comforts, because he is the most uncomfortable of mortals; and because he has no enjoyment in society, seeks it, as he says, at 100his fireside, where he may be stupid as a matter of course, sullen as a matter of right, and as ridiculous as he chuses without being laughed at. His liberty is the effect of his self-will; his religion owing to the spleen; his temper to the climate. He is an industrious animal, because he has no taste for amusement, and had rather work six days in the week than be idle one. His awkward attempts at gaiety are the jest of other nations. ‘They,’ (the English), says Froissard, speaking of the meeting of the Black Prince and the French King, ‘amused themselves sadly, according to the custom of their country,’—se rejouissoient tristement, selon la coutume de leur pays. Their patience of labour is confined to what is repugnant and disagreeable in itself, to the drudgery of the mechanic arts, and does not extend to the fine arts; that is, they are indifferent to pain, but insensible to pleasure. They will stand in a trench, or march up to a breach, but they cannot bear to dwell long on an agreeable object. They can no more submit to regularity in art than to decency in behaviour. Their pictures are as coarse and slovenly as their address. John boasts of his great men, without much right to do so; not that he has not had them, but because he neither knows nor cares anything about them but to swagger over other nations. That which chiefly hits John’s fancy in Shakspeare is that he was a deer-stealer in his youth; and, as for Newton’s discoveries, he hardly knows to this day that the earth is round. John’s oaths, which are quite characteristic, have got him the nickname of Monsieur God-damn-me. They are profane, a Frenchman’s indecent. One swears by his vices, the other by their punishment. After all John’s blustering, he is but a dolt. His habitual jealousy of others makes him the inevitable dupe of quacks and impostors of all sorts; he goes all lengths with one party out of spite to another; his zeal is as furious as his antipathies are unfounded; and there is nothing half so absurd or ignorant of its own intentions as an English mob.
If a Frenchman is happy with everything, John Bull is unhappy with nothing, and that's a flaw. He definitely loves having his own way, until you actually let him have it. He’s a really stubborn guy who confuses the spirit of contradiction with the love of independence, proving he’s right by being obstinate about the wrong things. The worst thing you can do is agree with him. He’s never in a better mood than when something ticks him off, and he feels most satisfied when he’s grumpy. If you criticize him, he gets furious; if you praise him, he thinks you have an agenda against him. He tries to win someone over by insulting them, and if that doesn’t work, he’ll take them down to prove his sincerity. He acts so high and mighty that no one else could possibly compare, and he’s puzzled that the rest of the world doesn’t see him as the most charming person alive. John means well too, but he shows it in a weird way by completely ignoring other people’s feelings and opinions. He’s honest because he tells you right from the start that he doesn’t like you; he never deceives because he never offers to help you. Expecting a polite response from him is too much; a word costs him more than a punch. He’s quiet because he has nothing to say, and he looks foolish because he is. 99 He has the strangest ideas of beauty. The expression he values most in a person’s face is one that looks like roast beef and plum pudding; if he has a red face and a round belly, he thinks he’s a big deal. He’s a bit proud of his money, and he feels better about himself after a good meal. But his biggest pleasure comes from a good scare. He must have that, no matter the consequences. Whoever can give him that can lead him around like a puppet and rob him at the same time. An idiot in a small town, a Presbyterian preacher, a dog with a can tied to its tail, a bull-baiting event, or a fox hunt are all irresistible to him. The Pope used to be his biggest enemy, and recently, he can't stand the idea of liberty. He rejected the Pope, defied the Inquisition, called the French a nation of slaves and beggars, criticized their Grand Monarque as a tyrant, beheaded one king, exiled another, installed a Dutch Stadtholder, and elected a Hanoverian Elector as king to show that he wanted his own way, teaching the rest of the world what they should do. But since other folks started imitating him, John has decided to stop them, wanting to keep the monopoly on rebellion and regicide for himself. He has aligned himself with the Pope, supports the Inquisition, restores his old enemies, the Bourbons, and lectures their subjects with a great moral lesson. He convinces himself that the Dutch Stadtholder and the Hanoverian Elector rule over him by divine right and does everything he can to prove he’s a brute to keep others enslaved. The truth is, John has always been a grumpy, meddlesome, stubborn fellow, and in recent years, his head hasn’t been quite right! In short, John is a big fool and a bully, and he needs (what he has been working towards) a hundred years of servitude to bring him to his senses. He insists he’s a great patriot because he hates all other countries; he believes he’s wise because he thinks everyone else is a fool; he claims he’s honest because he calls everyone else whores and rogues. If being grumpy one’s whole life is the ideal of human nature, then John is very close to it. He hits his wife, fights with his neighbors, curses his servants, and gets drunk to pass the time and keep his spirits up, convinced he’s the only truly exceptional, accomplished, moral, and religious person in Christendom. He brags about the excellence of his laws and the goodness of his character; yet there are more people hanged in England than in all of Europe combined. He boasts about how modest his country’s women are, yet there are more prostitutes on the streets of London than in all the capitals of Europe put together. He prides himself on his comfort, even though he’s the most uncomfortable person alive; because he has no enjoyment in socializing, he claims to find it at 100 home, where he can be as dull as can be, grumpy as a matter of course, and as ridiculous as he likes without being laughed at. His freedom comes from his stubbornness; his religion is rooted in his bad mood; and his temperament is influenced by his climate. He’s a hard worker because he has no taste for fun and would rather work six days a week than be idle for one. His awkward attempts at enjoyment are a joke to other nations. ‘They,’ the English, says Froissard, talking about the meeting of the Black Prince and the French King, ‘amused themselves sadly, according to the custom of their country,’—se réjouissaient tristement, selon la coutume de leur pays. Their endurance for hard work is limited to things that are inherently unpleasant and doesn't extend to the fine arts; that is, they may tolerate pain, but they are indifferent to pleasure. They can stand in a trench or march to a breach, but they can’t bear to linger on something pleasant for long. They resist any sense of order in art just as they resist decency in behavior. Their paintings are as rough and careless as their demeanor. John boasts of his great figures, though he has little right to do so; not because he hasn’t had them, but because he neither knows nor cares about them except to brag over other nations. What really captures John's interest in Shakespeare is that he was a poacher in his youth; as for Newton’s discoveries, to this day he hardly realizes that the earth is round. John’s oaths, which are quite distinctive, have earned him the nickname Monsieur God-damn-me. They’re profane, like a Frenchman’s indecencies. One swears by his vices; the other by their punishment. Despite all of John’s bluster, he’s just a blockhead. His constant jealousy of others makes him a guaranteed target for quacks and frauds of all kinds; he sides with one party out of spite for another; his enthusiasm is as wild as his hatreds are baseless; and there’s nothing so absurd or unaware of its own motives as an English mob.
No. 27.] ON GOOD-NATURE [June 9, 1816.
Lord Shaftesbury somewhere remarks, that a great many people pass for very good-natured persons, for no other reason than because they care about nobody but themselves; and, consequently, as nothing annoys them but what touches their own interest, they never irritate themselves unnecessarily about what does not concern them, and seem to be made of the very milk of human kindness.
Lord Shaftesbury once noted that a lot of people appear to be really nice simply because they only care about themselves. Since the only things that bother them are those that affect their own interests, they don’t get upset about things that don’t involve them, which makes them seem like they are truly kind-hearted.
Good-nature, or what is often considered as such, is the most 101selfish of all the virtues: it is nine times out of ten mere indolence of disposition. A good-natured man is, generally speaking, one who does not like to be put out of his way; and as long as he can help it, that is, till the provocation comes home to himself, he will not. He does not create fictitious uneasiness out of the distresses of others; he does not fret and fume, and make himself uncomfortable about things he cannot mend, and that no way concern him, even if he could: but then there is no one who is more apt to be disconcerted by what puts him to any personal inconvenience, however trifling; who is more tenacious of his selfish indulgences, however unreasonable; or who resents more violently any interruption of his ease and comforts, the very trouble he is put to in resenting it being felt as an aggravation of the injury. A person of this character feels no emotions of anger or detestation, if you tell him of the devastation of a province, or the massacre of the inhabitants of a town, or the enslaving of a people; but if his dinner is spoiled by a lump of soot falling down the chimney, he is thrown into the utmost confusion, and can hardly recover a decent command of his temper for the whole day. He thinks nothing can go amiss, so long as he is at his ease, though a pain in his little finger makes him so peevish and quarrelsome, that nobody can come near him. Knavery and injustice in the abstract are things that by no means ruffle his temper, or alter the serenity of his countenance, unless he is to be the sufferer by them; nor is he ever betrayed into a passion in answering a sophism, if he does not think it immediately directed against his own interest.
Good-nature, or what people often think of as such, is the most selfish of all virtues: it's usually just laziness of attitude. A good-natured person typically doesn't want to be inconvenienced; as long as he can avoid it—until something directly bothers him—he will. He doesn't create imaginary worries from other people's troubles; he doesn't stress out or make himself uncomfortable over issues he can't fix, and that don't affect him, even if he could do something about them. But he is definitely prone to getting upset by anything that causes him even a slight personal inconvenience; he clings to his selfish comforts, no matter how unreasonable; and he reacts more strongly to anything that interrupts his ease and comfort, feeling that the effort of dealing with it adds to the annoyance. Someone like this doesn't feel anger or disgust when hearing about the destruction of a province, the massacre of a town's residents, or the enslavement of a people; but if a lump of soot falls down the chimney and ruins his dinner, he's thrown into complete chaos and struggles to keep his temper in check for the rest of the day. He believes nothing can go wrong as long as he’s comfortable, even though a pain in his little finger can make him so irritable and argumentative that no one wants to be around him. Cheating and injustice in general don't upset his mood or change his relaxed demeanor unless he's personally affected by them; and he never gets passionate about responding to a tricky argument unless he thinks it's aimed at his own benefit.
On the contrary, we sometimes meet with persons who regularly heat themselves in an argument, and get out of humour on every occasion, and make themselves obnoxious to a whole company about nothing. This is not because they are ill-tempered, but because they are in earnest. Good-nature is a hypocrite: it tries to pass off its love of its own ease and indifference to everything else for a particular softness and mildness of disposition. All people get in a passion, and lose their temper, if you offer to strike them, or cheat them of their money, that is, if you interfere with that which they are really interested in. Tread on the heel of one of these good-natured persons, who do not care if the whole world is in flames, and see how he will bear it. If the truth were known, the most disagreeable people are the most amiable. They are the only persons who feel an interest in what does not concern them. They have as much regard for others as they have for themselves. They have as many vexations and causes of complaint as there are in the world. They are general righters of wrongs, and redressers of grievances. They not only are annoyed by what they can help, by an act of inhumanity done in the 102next street, or in a neighbouring country by their own countrymen, they not only do not claim any share in the glory, and hate it the more, the more brilliant the success,—but a piece of injustice done three thousand years ago touches them to the quick. They have an unfortunate attachment to a set of abstract phrases, such as liberty, truth, justice, humanity, honour, which are continually abused by knaves, and misunderstood by fools, and they can hardly contain themselves for spleen. They have something to keep them in perpetual hot water. No sooner is one question set at rest than another rises up to perplex them. They wear themselves to the bone in the affairs of other people, to whom they can do no manner of service, to the neglect of their own business and pleasure. They tease themselves to death about the morality of the Turks, or the politics of the French. There are certain words that afflict their ears, and things that lacerate their souls, and remain a plague-spot there forever after. They have a fellow-feeling with all that has been done, said, or thought in the world. They have an interest in all science and in all art. They hate a lie as much as a wrong, for truth is the foundation of all justice. Truth is the first thing in their thoughts, then mankind, then their country, last themselves. They love excellence, and bow to fame, which is the shadow of it. Above all, they are anxious to see justice done to the dead, as the best encouragement to the living, and the lasting inheritance of future generations. They do not like to see a great principle undermined, or the fall of a great man. They would sooner forgive a blow in the face than a wanton attack on acknowledged reputation. The contempt in which the French hold Shakspeare is a serious evil to them; nor do they think the matter mended, when they hear an Englishman, who would be thought a profound one, say that Voltaire was a man without wit. They are vexed to see genius playing at Tom Fool, and honesty turned bawd. It gives them a cutting sensation to see a number of things which, as they are unpleasant to see, we shall not here repeat. In short, they have a passion for truth; they feel the same attachment to the idea of what is right, that a knave does to his interest, or that a good-natured man does to his ease; and they have as many sources of uneasiness as there are actual or supposed deviations from this standard in the sum of things, or as there is a possibility of folly and mischief in the world.
On the contrary, we sometimes encounter people who easily get heated in arguments, take offense over minor issues, and become a nuisance to everyone around them for no reason. This isn't because they're bad-tempered; it's because they're passionate. Good-natured individuals can be hypocrites: they try to disguise their desire for comfort and indifference to everything else as a unique softness and gentleness of character. Everyone gets upset and loses their temper if you threaten or cheat them, meaning if you interfere with what they genuinely care about. Step on the foot of one of these supposedly good-natured individuals, who claim not to care if the world is falling apart, and watch how they react. If the truth were known, the most unpleasant people are often the ones with the best intentions. They're the only ones who care about things that don't directly concern them. They value others just as much as they value themselves. They have just as many annoyances and reasons to complain as there are issues in the world. They are the ones who champion justice and address grievances. They are not only bothered by injustices they can address, whether it's an act of cruelty happening in the next street or their fellow countrymen's actions abroad, but they also don’t take pride in any achievements, feeling more resentment the more successful the outcome is. Even injustices committed three thousand years ago affect them deeply. They have an unfortunate obsession with a set of abstract terms, like liberty, truth, justice, humanity, honor, which are constantly distorted by con artists and misunderstood by fools, and they can barely contain their frustration. They always find themselves in hot water. No sooner is one issue resolved than another arises to trouble them. They exhaust themselves over other people's business, to whom they can't really help, neglecting their own work and pleasure. They drive themselves crazy worrying about the ethics of the Turks or the politics of the French. Certain words grate on their ears, and things that hurt their souls linger painfully within them forever. They relate to everything that’s ever been done, said, or thought in the world. They have a stake in all science and art. They detest a lie just as much as a wrong, because truth is the foundation of all justice. Truth comes first to their minds, then humanity, next their country, and lastly, themselves. They love excellence and respect fame as its shadow. Above all, they want to see justice served for the dead, as the best encouragement for the living and a lasting legacy for future generations. They don’t like to witness a great principle being undermined or a great person’s downfall. They would rather forgive a slap in the face than a baseless attack on a respected reputation. The disdain the French have for Shakespeare is a serious issue for them; they also don't feel any better when they hear an Englishman, who would be considered insightful, claim that Voltaire was witless. They feel upset seeing genius behaving foolishly and integrity being compromised. It pains them to witness numerous things which, being unpleasant to recount, we will not mention here. In short, they are passionate about truth; they feel as strongly about the notion of what is right as a con artist does about his own interests, or as a good-natured person does about his comfort; and they have as many sources of distress as there are real or perceived deviations from this standard in the world or as long as there’s a chance for folly and harm to exist.
Principle is a passion for truth; an incorrigible attachment to a general proposition. Good-nature is humanity that costs nothing. No good-natured man was ever a martyr to a cause, in religion or politics. He has no idea of striving against the stream. He may become a good courtier and a loyal subject; and it is hard if he does not, for he has nothing to do in that case but to consult his ease, 103interest, and outward appearances. The Vicar of Bray was a good-natured man. What a pity he was but a vicar! A good-natured man is utterly unfit for any situation or office in life that requires integrity, fortitude, or generosity,—any sacrifice, except of opinion, or any exertion, but to please. A good-natured man will debauch his friend’s mistress, if he has an opportunity; and betray his friend, sooner than share disgrace or danger with him. He will not forego the smallest gratification to save the whole world. He makes his own convenience the standard of right and wrong. He avoids the feeling of pain in himself, and shuts his eyes to the sufferings of others. He will put a malefactor or an innocent person (no matter which) to the rack, and only laugh at the uncouthness of the gestures, or wonder that he is so unmannerly as to cry out. There is no villainy to which he will not lend a helping hand with great coolness and cordiality, for he sees only the pleasant and profitable side of things. He will assent to a falsehood with a leer of complacency, and applaud any atrocity that comes recommended in the garb of authority. He will betray his country to please a Minister, and sign the death-warrant of thousands of wretches, rather than forfeit the congenial smile, the well-known squeeze of the hand. The shrieks of death, the torture of mangled limbs, the last groans of despair, are things that shock his smooth humanity too much ever to make an impression on it: his good-nature sympathizes only with the smile, the bow, the gracious salutation, the fawning answer: vice loses its sting, and corruption its poison, in the oily gentleness of his disposition. He will not hear of any thing wrong in Church or State. He will defend every abuse by which any thing is to be got, every dirty job, every act of every Minister. In an extreme case, a very good-natured man indeed may try to hang twelve honester men than himself to rise at the Bar, and forge the seal of the realm to continue his colleagues a week longer in office. He is a slave to the will of others, a coward to their prejudices, a tool of their vices. A good-natured man is no more fit to be trusted in public affairs, than a coward or a woman is to lead an army. Spleen is the soul of patriotism and of public good. Lord Castlereagh is a good-natured man, Lord Eldon is a good-natured man, Charles Fox was a good-natured man. The last instance is the most decisive. The definition of a true patriot is a good hater.
Principle is a passion for truth; an unchangeable commitment to a general idea. Good nature is humanity that doesn't cost anything. No kind person has ever been a martyr for a cause, whether in religion or politics. They don't understand fighting against the current. They might become a good courtier and a loyal subject; and it’s tough if they don’t, because they have nothing to do except focus on their comfort, self-interest, and appearances. The Vicar of Bray was a good-natured man. What a shame he was just a vicar! A kind person is completely unfit for any role in life that requires integrity, strength, or generosity—any sacrifice except for opinions, or any effort beyond pleasing others. A good-natured person might even seduce their friend’s partner if they get the chance; and they will betray their friend rather than face disgrace or danger alongside them. They won’t give up the smallest pleasure to save the whole world. They make their own convenience the standard for right and wrong. They avoid their own pain and ignore the suffering of others. They would torture a criminal or an innocent person (it doesn't matter which) and only laugh at the awkwardness of their movements or wonder why they’re so rude as to cry out. There’s no wrongdoing to which they wouldn’t lend a hand with great calmness and friendliness because they only see the pleasant and profitable side of things. They will agree to a lie with a satisfied grin and praise any atrocity that comes with the seal of authority. They’d betray their country to please a Minister and sign the death warrant for thousands of unfortunate people rather than lose a friendly smile or handshake. The cries of death, the agony of broken bodies, the last moans of despair are too shocking for their smooth humanity to ever leave a mark: their good nature sympathizes only with smiles, bows, polite greetings, and flattering responses. Vice loses its bite, and corruption its poison, in the oily gentleness of their character. They won’t acknowledge anything wrong in Church or State. They will defend every abuse that provides any benefit, every shady deal, every action of any Minister. In extreme cases, a very good-natured person might even try to hang twelve honest men to rise in the Bar and forge the realm’s seal to keep their colleagues in office for another week. They are a slave to others’ will, a coward to their prejudices, a tool for their vices. A kind person is just as untrustworthy in public matters as a coward or a woman is at leading an army. Spleen is the essence of patriotism and public good. Lord Castlereagh is a good-natured man, Lord Eldon is a good-natured man, and Charles Fox was a good-natured man. The last example is the most telling. The definition of a true patriot is a good hater.
A king, who is a good-natured man, is in a fair way of being a great tyrant. A king ought to feel concern for all to whom his power extends; but a good-natured man cares only about himself. If he has a good appetite, eats and sleeps well, nothing in the universe besides can disturb him. The destruction of the lives or liberties of his subjects will not stop him in the least of his caprices, but will 104concoct well with his bile, and ‘good digestion wait on appetite, and health on both.’ He will send out his mandate to kill and destroy with the same indifference or satisfaction that he performs any natural function of his body. The consequences are placed beyond the reach of his imagination, or would not affect him if they were not, for he is a fool, and good-natured. A good-natured man hates more than any one else whatever thwarts his will, or contradicts his prejudices; and if he has the power to prevent it, depend upon it, he will use it without remorse and without control.
A king, who is a kind-hearted man, is on the verge of becoming a great tyrant. A king should care about everyone under his authority; however, a kind-hearted man is only concerned with himself. If he has a good appetite and sleeps well, nothing else in the world can bother him. The suffering or loss of his subjects won’t affect him at all; it will just fit in with his mood, and ‘good digestion follows appetite, and health comes from both.’ He will issue orders to kill and destroy with the same indifference or pleasure as he does any basic bodily function. The outcomes are beyond his comprehension, or they wouldn't matter to him even if they were, as he is foolish and kind-hearted. A kind-hearted man dislikes more than anyone else anything that opposes his will or challenges his beliefs; and if he has the power to stop it, you can be sure he will do it without remorse or restraint.
There is a lower species of this character which is what is usually understood by a well-meaning man. A well-meaning man is one who often does a great deal of mischief without any kind of malice. He means no one any harm, if it is not for his interest. He is not a knave, nor perfectly honest. He does not easily resign a good place. Mr. Vansittart is a well-meaning man.
There is a lesser version of this character that is what people typically think of as a well-meaning man. A well-meaning man is someone who often causes a lot of trouble without any intention to do harm. He doesn't wish anyone any ill, unless it serves his own interests. He isn’t dishonest, but he’s not completely honest either. He doesn’t easily give up a good position. Mr. Vansittart is a well-meaning man.
The Irish are a good-natured people; they have many virtues, but their virtues are those of the heart, not of the head. In their passions and affections they are sincere, but they are hypocrites in understanding. If they once begin to calculate the consequences, self-interest prevails. An Irishman who trusts to his principles, and a Scotchman who yields to his impulses, are equally dangerous. The Irish have wit, genius, eloquence, imagination, affections: but they want coherence of understanding, and consequently have no standard of thought or action. Their strength of mind does not keep pace with the warmth of their feelings, or the quickness of their conceptions. Their animal spirits run away with them: their reason is a jade. There is something crude, indigested, rash, and discordant, in almost all that they do or say. They have no system, no abstract ideas. They are ‘everything by starts, and nothing long.’ They are a wild people. They hate whatever imposes a law on their understandings, or a yoke on their wills. To betray the principles they are most bound by their own professions and the expectations of others to maintain, is with them a reclamation of their original rights, and to fly in the face of their benefactors and friends, an assertion of their natural freedom of will. They want consistency and good faith. They unite fierceness with levity. In the midst of their headlong impulses, they have an under-current of selfishness and cunning, which in the end gets the better of them. Their feelings, when no longer excited by novelty or opposition, grow cold and stagnant. Their blood, if not heated by passion, turns to poison. They have a rancour in their hatred of any object they have abandoned, proportioned to the attachment they have professed to it. Their zeal, converted against itself, is furious. The late Mr. Burke was an 105instance of an Irish patriot and philosopher. He abused metaphysics, because he could make nothing out of them, and turned his back upon liberty, when he found he could get nothing more by her.[59]—See to the same purpose the winding up of the character of Judy in Miss Edgeworth’s Castle Rackrent.
The Irish are friendly people; they have many good qualities, but those qualities come from the heart, not from the mind. In their passions and emotions, they are genuine, but they lack honesty in their understanding. Once they start calculating the outcomes, self-interest takes over. An Irishman who relies on his principles and a Scotsman who acts on his impulses can be equally risky. The Irish have wit, talent, eloquence, imagination, and emotions, but they lack coherent understanding, which leaves them without a clear standard for thought or action. Their mental strength doesn't match the intensity of their feelings or the speed of their thoughts. Their excitement gets the better of them; their reason is unreliable. There's often something rough, disorganized, impulsive, and inconsistent in nearly everything they do or say. They have no system or abstract ideas. They tend to start many things but finish none. They are a wild people. They dislike anything that imposes rules on their thinking or constraints on their desires. To betray the principles they feel obligated to uphold, both by their own declarations and the expectations of others, is for them a reclaiming of their original rights, and going against their benefactors and friends is seen as a declaration of their natural freedom. They crave consistency and good faith. They combine intensity with carelessness. In the midst of their reckless impulses, there's an underlying thread of selfishness and cunning that ultimately prevails. Their feelings, when not stirred by newness or opposition, become cold and stagnant. Their passion, if not fueled by excitement, turns toxic. They hold a grudge against anything they have let go of, proportional to how much they were attached to it. Their eagerness, turned inward, becomes fierce. The late Mr. Burke was an example of an Irish patriot and philosopher. He criticized metaphysics because he couldn’t make sense of them and turned away from liberty when he realized he could gain nothing more from her. 105—See also the conclusion of the character of Judy in Miss Edgeworth’s Castle Rackrent.
No. 28.] ON THE CHARACTER OF MILTON’S EVE [July 21, 1816.
The difference between the character of Eve in Milton and Shakspeare’s female characters is very striking, and it appears to us to be this: Milton describes Eve not only as full of love and tenderness for Adam, but as the constant object of admiration in herself. She is the idol of the poet’s imagination, and he paints her whole person with a studied profusion of charms. She is the wife, but she is still as much as ever the mistress, of Adam. She is represented, indeed, as devoted to her husband, as twining round him for support ‘as the vine curls her tendrils,’ but her own grace and beauty are never lost sight of in the picture of conjugal felicity. Adam’s attention and regard are as much turned to her as hers to him; for ‘in that first garden of their innocence,’ he had no other objects or pursuits to distract his attention; she was both his business and his pleasure. Shakspeare’s females, on the contrary, seem to exist only in their attachment to others. They are pure abstractions of the affections. Their features are not painted, nor the colour of their hair. Their hearts only are laid open. We are acquainted with Imogen, Miranda, Ophelia, or Desdemona, by what they thought and felt, but we cannot tell whether they were black, brown, or fair. But Milton’s Eve is all of ivory and gold. Shakspeare seldom tantalises the 106reader with a luxurious display of the personal charms of his heroines, with a curious inventory of particular beauties, except indirectly, and for some other purpose, as where Jachimo describes Imogen asleep, or the old men in the Winter’s Tale vie with each other in invidious praise of Perdita. Even in Juliet, the most voluptuous and glowing of the class of characters here spoken of, we are reminded chiefly of circumstances connected with the physiognomy of passion, as in her leaning with her cheek upon her arm, or which only convey the general impression of enthusiasm made on her lover’s brain. One thing may be said, that Shakspeare had not the same opportunities as Milton: for his women were clothed, and it cannot be denied that Milton took Eve at a considerable disadvantage in this respect. He has accordingly described her in all the loveliness of nature, tempting to sight as the fruit of the Hesperides guarded by that Dragon old, herself the fairest among the flowers of Paradise!
The difference between the character of Eve in Milton and Shakespeare’s female characters is quite noticeable, and it seems to us to be this: Milton portrays Eve not just as full of love and tenderness for Adam, but also as a constant object of admiration in her own right. She is the idol of the poet’s imagination, and he depicts her entire being with a carefully crafted abundance of charms. She is the wife, but she remains just as much the mistress of Adam. She is indeed shown to be devoted to her husband, entwining around him for support “as the vine curls her tendrils,” but her own grace and beauty are always present in the picture of marital bliss. Adam’s attention and regard are as focused on her as hers are on him; in “that first garden of their innocence,” he had no other distractions or pursuits to draw his focus away; she was both his work and his joy. In contrast, Shakespeare’s female characters seem to exist solely in relation to others. They are pure representations of affection. Their physical features aren’t detailed, nor is the color of their hair mentioned. We only get to know their hearts. We learn about Imogen, Miranda, Ophelia, or Desdemona through their thoughts and feelings, but we can’t tell if they were black, brown, or fair. But Milton’s Eve is all ivory and gold. Shakespeare rarely teases the reader with a lavish display of his heroines’ personal charms, offering only a subtle hint at their specific beauties, except for other purposes, like when Jachimo describes Imogen while she sleeps, or when the old men in Winter’s Tale compete with each other in jealous praise of Perdita. Even in Juliet, the most sensual and vibrant of the characters discussed here, we’re mainly reminded of situations tied to the expression of passion, like when she rests her cheek on her arm, which only conveys a general sense of enthusiasm captured in her lover’s mind. It may be noted that Shakespeare didn’t have the same opportunities as Milton: his women were clothed, and it’s undeniable that Milton presented Eve at a significant disadvantage in this regard. He depicted her in all the beauty of nature, as tempting to the eye as the fruit of the Hesperides guarded by that old Dragon, herself the fairest among the flowers of Paradise!
The figures both of Adam and Eve are very prominent in this poem. As there is little action in it, the interest is constantly kept up by the beauty and grandeur of the images. They are thus introduced:
The figures of Adam and Eve stand out prominently in this poem. Since there isn't much action, the interest is consistently maintained by the beauty and grandeur of the imagery. They are introduced in this way:
Eve is not only represented as beautiful, but with conscious beauty. Shakspeare’s heroines are almost insensible of their charms, and wound without knowing it. They are not coquets. If the salvation 107of mankind had depended upon one of them, we don’t know—but the Devil might have been baulked. This is but a conjecture! Eve has a great idea of herself, and there is some difficulty in prevailing on her to quit her own image, the first time she discovers its reflection in the water. She gives the following account of herself to Adam:
Eve is depicted not only as beautiful but as consciously aware of her beauty. Shakespeare’s heroines are often unaware of their allure and cause harm without realizing it. They aren’t flirtatious. If the fate of humanity depended on one of them, who knows—but the Devil might have been thwarted. This is just a guess! Eve has a strong sense of herself, and it’s challenging to convince her to look away from her own reflection the first time she sees it in the water. She shares the following description of herself with Adam:
The poet afterwards adds:
The poet later adds:
The same thought is repeated with greater simplicity, and perhaps even beauty, in the beginning of the Fifth Book:
The same idea is expressed more simply, and maybe even more beautifully, at the start of the Fifth Book:
The general style, indeed, in which Eve is addressed by Adam, or described by the poet, is in the highest strain of compliment:
The overall way that Adam talks to Eve, or how the poet portrays her, is full of the greatest compliments:
Eve is herself so well convinced that these epithets are her due, that the idea follows her in her sleep, and she dreams of herself as the paragon of nature, the wonder of the universe:
Eve is so sure that these titles belong to her that the thought follows her even in her sleep, and she dreams of herself as the perfect embodiment of nature, the marvel of the universe:
This is the very topic, too, on which the Serpent afterwards enlarges with so much artful insinuation and fatal confidence of success. ‘So talked the spirited sly snake.’ The conclusion of the foregoing scene, in which Eve relates her dream and Adam comforts her, is such an exquisite piece of description, that, though not to our immediate purpose, we cannot refrain from quoting it:
This is exactly the topic the Serpent later expands on with so much clever suggestion and a dangerous confidence in his success. ‘So spoke the cunning, spirited snake.’ The end of the previous scene, where Eve shares her dream and Adam comforts her, is such a beautifully detailed description that, although it’s not directly relevant to our main point, we can't help but quote it:
109The formal eulogy on Eve which Adam addresses to the Angel, in giving an account of his own creation and hers, is full of elaborate grace:
109The formal eulogy on Eve that Adam gives to the Angel, while recounting his own creation and hers, is full of elaborate grace:
That which distinguishes Milton from the other poets, who have pampered the eye and fed the imagination with exuberant descriptions of female beauty, is the moral severity with which he has tempered them. There is not a line in his works which tends to licentiousness, or the impression of which, if it has such a tendency, is not effectually checked by thought and sentiment. The following are two remarkable instances:
That which sets Milton apart from other poets, who have indulged the eye and stimulated the imagination with lavish descriptions of female beauty, is the moral seriousness he has infused into them. There isn’t a line in his works that leans towards indecency, or any impression that, if it does have such a tendency, isn’t effectively countered by thought and feeling. Here are two notable examples:
The other is a passage of extreme beauty and pathos blended. It is the one in which the Angel is described as the guest of our first ancestors:
The other is a passage of great beauty and mixed emotions. It’s the one where the Angel is described as the guest of our first ancestors:
110The character which a living poet has given of Spenser, would be much more true of Milton:
110The description that a contemporary poet has given of Spenser would be much more accurate for Milton:
Spenser, on the contrary, is very apt to pry into mysteries which do not belong to the Muses. Milton’s voluptuousness is not lascivious or sensual. He describes beautiful objects for their own sakes. Spenser has an eye to the consequences, and steeps everything in pleasure, often not of the purest kind. The want of passion has been brought as an objection against Milton, and his Adam and Eve have been considered as rather insipid personages, wrapped up in one another, and who excite but little sympathy in any one else. We do not feel this objection ourselves: we are content to be spectators in such scenes, without any other excitement. In general, the interest in Milton is essentially epic, and not dramatic; and the difference between the epic and the dramatic is this, that in the former the imagination produces the passion, and in the latter the passion produces the imagination. The interest of epic poetry arises from the contemplation of certain objects in themselves grand and beautiful: the interest of dramatic poetry from sympathy with the passions and pursuits of others; that is, from the practical relations of certain persons to certain objects, as depending on accident or will.
Spenser, on the other hand, tends to delve into mysteries that aren't really part of the Muses' realm. Milton’s sensuality isn’t lascivious or overly sexual. He describes beautiful things for their own sake. Spenser, however, looks at the outcomes and saturates everything in pleasure, often not of the purest kind. The lack of passion has been pointed out as a flaw in Milton, and his Adam and Eve have been seen as somewhat bland characters, wrapped up in each other and not stirring much sympathy in anyone else. We don't feel this way ourselves: we're fine just being observers in those moments, without needing any other excitement. Overall, Milton's appeal is essentially epic, not dramatic; and the difference between epic and dramatic is this: in the former, imagination creates the passion, while in the latter, passion sparks the imagination. The interest in epic poetry comes from contemplating certain things that are grand and beautiful in themselves: the interest in dramatic poetry comes from connecting with others' passions and pursuits, that is, from the practical relationships of specific people to specific things, shaped by chance or choice.
The Pyramids of Egypt are epic objects; the imagination of them is necessarily attended with passion; but they have no dramatic interest, till circumstances connect them with some human catastrophe. Now, a poem might be constructed almost entirely of such images, of the highest intellectual passion, with little dramatic interest; and it is in this way that Milton has in a great measure constructed his poem. That is not its fault, but its excellence. The fault is in those who have no idea but of one kind of interest. But this question would lead to a longer discussion than we have room for at present. We shall conclude these extracts from Milton with two passages, which have always appeared to us to be highly affecting, and to contain a fine discrimination of character:
The Pyramids of Egypt are incredible structures; imagining them evokes strong emotions, but they lack dramatic appeal unless linked to some human tragedy. A poem could be built mostly from such imagery, filled with deep intellectual passion, yet offer little dramatic intrigue; this is largely how Milton shaped his poem. This isn't a flaw but rather a strength. The real issue lies with those who only recognize one type of interest. However, this topic would require more discussion than we can fit in right now. We'll finish our excerpts from Milton with two passages that we've always found to be deeply moving and that showcase a keen understanding of character:
This is the lamentation of Eve on being driven out of Paradise. Adam’s reflections are in a different strain, and still finer. After expressing his submission to the will of his Maker, he says:
This is Eve's sorrow about being cast out of Paradise. Adam's thoughts are in a different tone, and even deeper. After acknowledging his acceptance of God's will, he says:
No. 29.] OBSERVATIONS ON MR. WORDSWORTH’S POEM THE EXCURSION [Aug. 21, 28, 1814.
The poem of The Excursion resembles that part of the country in which the scene is laid. It has the same vastness and magnificence, with the same nakedness and confusion. It has the same overwhelming, oppressive power. It excites or recalls the same sensations which those who have traversed that wonderful scenery must have felt. We are surrounded with the constant sense and superstitious 112awe of the collective power of matter, of the gigantic and eternal forms of nature, on which, from the beginning of time, the hand of man has made no impression. Here are no dotted lines, no hedge-row beauties, no box-tree borders, no gravel walks, no square mechanic inclosures; all is left loose and irregular in the rude chaos of aboriginal nature. The boundaries of hill and valley are the poet’s only geography, where we wander with him incessantly over deep beds of moss and waving fern, amidst the troops of red-deer and wild animals. Such is the severe simplicity of Mr. Wordsworth’s taste, that we doubt whether he would not reject a druidical temple, or time-hallowed ruin as too modern and artificial for his purpose. He only familiarises himself or his readers with a stone, covered with lichens, which has slept in the same spot of ground from the creation of the world, or with the rocky fissure between two mountains caused by thunder, or with a cavern scooped out by the sea. His mind is, as it were, coëval with the primary forms of things; his imagination holds immediately from nature, and ‘owes no allegiance’ but ‘to the elements.’
The poem in Excursion reflects the area it depicts. It shares the same vastness and grandeur, along with the same rawness and chaos. It carries the same intense, overwhelming power. It stirs or evokes the same feelings that anyone who has explored that incredible landscape must have experienced. We're constantly enveloped in a deep sense of, almost superstitious, awe of the collective force of nature, the immense and timeless shapes of the natural world, untouched by human hands since time began. There are no neat lines, no picturesque hedges, no trimmed boxwood, no gravel paths, no orderly enclosures; everything is wild and irregular in the rugged chaos of untouched nature. The only geography for the poet is the contours of hills and valleys, as we wander with him endlessly over thick moss and swaying ferns, among herds of red deer and wild animals. Mr. Wordsworth’s taste is so starkly simple that we wonder if he would even consider a druid temple or an ancient ruin too modern and artificial for his vision. He prefers to connect with a stone covered in lichens that has rested in the same place since the dawn of time, or the rocky split between two mountains shaped by thunder, or a cave carved by the sea. His mind appears to exist alongside the primal forms of nature; his imagination draws directly from the natural world and ‘owes no loyalty’ but ‘to the elements.’
The Excursion may be considered as a philosophical pastoral poem,—as a scholastic romance. It is less a poem on the country, than on the love of the country. It is not so much a description of natural objects, as of the feelings associated with them; not an account of the manners of rural life, but the result of the poet’s reflections on it. He does not present the reader with a lively succession of images or incidents, but paints the outgoings of his own heart, the shapings of his own fancy. He may be said to create his own materials; his thoughts are his real subject. His understanding broods over that which is ‘without form and void,’ and ‘makes it pregnant.’ He sees all things in himself. He hardly ever avails himself of remarkable objects or situations, but, in general, rejects them as interfering with the workings of his own mind, as disturbing the smooth, deep, majestic current of his own feelings. Thus his descriptions of natural scenery are not brought home distinctly to the naked eye by forms and circumstances, but every object is seen through the medium of innumerable recollections, is clothed with the haze of imagination like a glittering vapour, is obscured with the excess of glory, has the shadowy brightness of a waking dream. The image is lost in the sentiment, as sound in the multiplication of echoes.
The Excursion can be seen as a philosophical pastoral poem—a scholarly romance. It's less about the country itself than about the love for it. It’s not really a description of natural features but rather about the emotions tied to them; not an account of rural life but the poet's reflections on it. He doesn’t give readers a lively series of images or events but instead expresses the feelings of his heart and the shapes of his imagination. He essentially creates his own materials; his thoughts are what he truly focuses on. His mind contemplates what is ‘without form and void’ and ‘makes it meaningful.’ He perceives everything within himself. He rarely draws on striking objects or situations, generally avoiding them as they disrupt the flow of his thoughts and the smooth, deep, majestic current of his feelings. Therefore, his portrayals of natural scenes are not clearly represented to the naked eye by forms and circumstances; rather, every object is viewed through countless memories, wrapped in a mist of imagination like a shimmering vapor, dimmed by overwhelming beauty, and carries the ethereal brightness of a waking dream. The image fades into the sentiment, like sound lost in a myriad of echoes.
In describing human nature, Mr. Wordsworth equally shuns the common ‘vantage-grounds of popular story, of striking incident, or 113fatal catastrophe, as cheap and vulgar modes of producing an effect. He scans the human race as the naturalist measures the earth’s zone, without attending to the picturesque points of view, the abrupt inequalities of surface. He contemplates the passions and habits of men, not in their extremes, but in their first elements; their follies and vices, not at their height, with all their embossed evils upon their heads, but as lurking in embryo,—the seeds of the disorder inwoven with our very constitution. He only sympathises with those simple forms of feeling, which mingle at once with his own identity, or with the stream of general humanity. To him the great and the small are the same; the near and the remote; what appears, and what only is. The general and the permanent, like the Platonic ideas, are his only realities. All accidental varieties and individual contrasts are lost in an endless continuity of feeling, like drops of water in the ocean-stream! An intense intellectual egotism swallows up every thing. Even the dialogues introduced in the present volume are soliloquies of the same character, taking different views of the subject. The recluse, the pastor, and the pedlar, are three persons in one poet. We ourselves disapprove of these ‘interlocutions between Lucius and Caius’ as impertinent babbling, where there is no dramatic distinction of character. But the evident scope and tendency of Mr. Wordsworth’s mind is the reverse of dramatic. It resists all change of character, all variety of scenery, all the bustle, machinery, and pantomime of the stage, or of real life,—whatever might relieve, or relax, or change the direction of its own activity, jealous of all competition. The power of his mind preys upon itself. It is as if there were nothing but himself and the universe. He lives in the busy solitude of his own heart; in the deep silence of thought. His imagination lends life and feeling only to ‘the bare trees and mountains bare’; peoples the viewless tracts of air, and converses with the silent clouds!
In describing human nature, Mr. Wordsworth avoids the usual clichés of popular stories, dramatic incidents, or tragic events, seeing them as cheap and superficial ways to create impact. He examines humanity like a scientist studying the earth's regions, ignoring the picturesque aspects and the abrupt changes in landscape. He thinks about people's emotions and habits not in their extremes, but in their basic forms; their follies and vices, not at their peak with all their obvious consequences, but as hidden beginnings—the seeds of disorder woven into our very nature. He only connects with those simple feelings that resonate with his own identity or with the broader human experience. To him, big and small are the same; near and far; what is visible and what merely exists. The general and enduring, like Platonic ideals, are his only truths. All the random differences and individual contrasts fade into an endless stream of feelings, like drops of water in the ocean! An intense intellectual self-absorption consumes everything. Even the dialogues included in this volume are essentially soliloquies presenting different perspectives on the same topic. The recluse, the pastor, and the pedlar are three aspects of one poet. We personally find these “conversations between Lucius and Caius” trivial and lacking distinct character, but the clear aim and direction of Mr. Wordsworth’s mind is the opposite of dramatic. It resists any change in character, any variety in scene, and any hustle, machinery, and spectacle of the stage or real life—whatever might relieve or alter the focus of its own activity, wary of any competition. The power of his mind consumes itself. It’s as if there is just him and the universe. He exists in the busy solitude of his own heart; in the profound silence of thought. His imagination brings life and emotion only to "the bare trees and mountains bare"; fills the invisible expanses of air, and engages with the silent clouds!
We could have wished that our author had given to his work the form of a didactic poem altogether, with only occasional digressions or allusions to particular instances. But he has chosen to encumber himself with a load of narrative and description, which sometimes hinders the progress and effect of the general reasoning, and which, instead of being inwoven with the text, would have come in better in plain prose as notes at the end of the volume. Mr. Wordsworth, indeed, says finely, and perhaps as truly as finely:
We might have preferred if our author had presented his work as a fully didactic poem, with just a few digressions or references to specific cases. However, he opted to weigh himself down with a lot of narrative and description, which can sometimes slow down the flow and impact of the overall argument. These elements, instead of being woven into the text, would have been better suited as plain prose notes at the end of the book. Mr. Wordsworth does express this beautifully, and perhaps as accurately as he does beautifully:
But he immediately declines availing himself of these resources of the rustic moralist: for the priest, who officiates as ‘the sad historian of the pensive plain’ says in reply:
But he quickly decides against using the advice of the country moralist; because the priest, who acts as 'the somber historian of the thoughtful plain,' responds:
There is, in fact, in Mr. Wordsworth’s mind an evident repugnance to admit anything that tells for itself, without the interpretation of the poet,—a fastidious antipathy to immediate effect,—a systematic unwillingness to share the palm with his subject. Where, however, he has a subject presented to him, ‘such as the meeting soul may pierce,’ and to which he does not grudge to lend the aid of his fine genius, his powers of description and fancy seem to be little inferior to those of his classical predecessor, Akenside. Among several others which we might select we give the following passage, describing the religion of ancient Greece:
There is, in fact, a clear reluctance in Mr. Wordsworth’s mind to accept anything that stands on its own without the poet's interpretation—an annoying dislike for immediate impact—an ongoing unwillingness to share recognition with his subject. However, when he has a subject presented to him, “such as the meeting soul may pierce,” and he doesn’t hesitate to lend his fine genius to it, his skills in description and imagination seem to be nearly as impressive as those of his classical predecessor, Akenside. Among several others we could choose, we present the following passage, describing the religion of ancient Greece:
The foregoing is one of a succession of splendid passages equally enriched with philosophy and poetry, tracing the fictions of Eastern mythology to the immediate intercourse of the imagination with Nature, and to the habitual propensity of the human mind to endow the outward forms of being with life and conscious motion. With this expansive and animating principle, Mr. Wordsworth has forcibly, but somewhat severely, contrasted the cold, narrow, lifeless spirit of modern philosophy:
The above is one of a series of beautiful passages that are filled with both philosophy and poetry, linking the stories of Eastern mythology to the direct interaction between imagination and Nature, as well as the natural tendency of the human mind to give life and conscious movement to the external forms of existence. With this broad and invigorating idea, Mr. Wordsworth has strikingly, but rather harshly, compared it to the cold, limited, lifeless attitude of modern philosophy:
From the chemists and metaphysicians our author turns to the laughing sage of France, Voltaire. ‘Poor gentleman, it fares no better with him, for he’s a wit.’ We cannot, however, agree with Mr. Wordsworth that Candide is dull. It is, if our author pleases, ‘the production of a scoffer’s pen,’ or it is any thing but dull. It may not be proper in a grave, discreet, orthodox, promising young divine, who studies his opinions in the contraction or distension of his patron’s brow, to allow any merit to a work like Candide; but we conceive that it would have been more manly in Mr. Wordsworth, nor do we think it would have hurt the cause he espouses, if he had blotted out the epithet, after it had peevishly escaped him. Whatsoever savours of a little, narrow, inquisitorial spirit, does not sit well on a poet and a man of genius. The prejudices of a philosopher are not natural. There is a frankness and sincerity of opinion, which is a paramount obligation in all questions of intellect, though it may not govern the decisions of the spiritual courts, who may, however, be safely left to take care of their own interests. There is a plain directness and simplicity of understanding, which is the only security against the evils of levity, on the one hand, or of hypocrisy on the other. A speculative bigot is a solecism in the intellectual world. We can assure Mr. Wordsworth, that we should not have bestowed so much serious consideration on a single voluntary perversion of language, but that our respect for his character makes us jealous of his smallest faults!
From the chemists and metaphysicians, our author shifts to the witty sage of France, Voltaire. "Poor gentleman, his situation isn’t any better since he's a wit." However, we can't agree with Mr. Wordsworth that Candide is dull. It is, if our author prefers, "the work of a scoffer's pen," or it is definitely not dull. It may not be appropriate for a serious, reserved, orthodox, promising young minister, who gauges his opinions by the expression on his patron’s face, to acknowledge any value in a work like Candide; but we believe it would’ve been more honorable for Mr. Wordsworth—not to mention not detrimental to the cause he supports—if he had deleted the remark after it carelessly slipped out. Anything that smacks of a petty, narrow-minded, inquisitorial attitude doesn’t suit a poet and a person of genius. The biases of a philosopher aren’t natural. There’s an openness and honesty of thought that is a crucial obligation when dealing with intellectual matters, even if it may not influence the judgments of the spiritual authorities, who can safely manage their own interests. There’s a clear, straightforward simplicity of understanding, which is the best safeguard against the pitfalls of frivolity on one hand, or hypocrisy on the other. A narrow-minded thinker is a contradiction in the world of intellect. We assure Mr. Wordsworth that we wouldn't have given so much serious thought to a single intentional misuse of language if we didn’t hold his character in such high regard and feel protective of his slightest faults!
With regard to his general philippic against the contractedness and egotism of philosophical pursuits, we only object to its not being carried further. We shall not affirm with Rousseau (his authority 117would perhaps have little weight with Mr. Wordsworth)—‘Tout homme reflechi est mechant‘; but we conceive that the same reasoning which Mr. Wordsworth applies so eloquently and justly to the natural philosopher and metaphysician may be extended to the moralist, the divine, the politician, the orator, the artist, and even the poet. And why so? Because wherever an intense activity is given to any one faculty, it necessarily prevents the due and natural exercise of others. Hence all those professions or pursuits, where the mind is exclusively occupied with the ideas of things as they exist in the imagination or understanding, as they call for the exercise of intellectual activity, and not as they are connected with practical good or evil, must check the genial expansion of the moral sentiments and social affections; must lead to a cold and dry abstraction, as they are found to suspend the animal functions, and relax the bodily frame. Hence the complaint of the want of natural sensibility and constitutional warmth of attachment in those persons who have been devoted to the pursuit of any art or science,—of their restless morbidity of temperament, and indifference to every thing that does not furnish an occasion for the display of their mental superiority and the gratification of their vanity. The philosophical poet himself, perhaps, owes some of his love of nature to the opportunity it affords him of analyzing his own feelings, and contemplating his own powers,—of making every object about him a whole length mirror to reflect his favourite thoughts, and of looking down on the frailties of others in undisturbed leisure, and from a more dignified height.
Regarding his overall criticism of the narrow-mindedness and self-centeredness of philosophical pursuits, we only take issue with the fact that it isn’t taken further. We won't affirm with Rousseau (whose authority might carry little weight with Mr. Wordsworth) that “Every thoughtful man is wicked.”, but we believe that the same reasoning Mr. Wordsworth applies so eloquently and accurately to natural philosophy and metaphysics can be applied to the moralist, the theologian, the politician, the speaker, the artist, and even the poet. And why is that? Because when one faculty is intensely focused on, it inevitably hinders the proper and natural exercise of others. Therefore, all those professions or pursuits that occupy the mind exclusively with ideas as they exist in imagination or understanding—focusing on intellectual activity rather than their connection to practical good or evil—must stifle the healthy growth of moral sentiments and social bonds; they must lead to a cold and dry abstraction, as these pursuits tend to suspend bodily functions and weaken the physical frame. This explains the common complaint of a lack of natural sensitivity and emotional warmth in those who are dedicated to pursuing any art or science—their restless and morbid temperament, and their indifference to everything that doesn’t provide a chance to showcase their mental superiority and satisfy their vanity. The philosophical poet himself might owe some of his love for nature to the chance it gives him to analyze his own feelings and reflect on his abilities—to turn every object around him into a full-length mirror that reflects his favorite thoughts, allowing him to look down on the flaws of others with undisturbed leisure and from a more elevated perspective.
One of the most interesting parts of this work is that in which the author treats of the French Revolution, and of the feelings connected with it, in ingenuous minds, in its commencement and its progress. The solitary,[60] who, by domestic calamities and disappointments, had been cut off from society, and almost from himself, gives the following account of the manner in which he was roused from his melancholy:
One of the most fascinating sections of this work is where the author discusses the French Revolution and the emotions associated with it in open-minded individuals, both at its beginning and as it unfolded. The solitary,[60] who, due to personal tragedies and letdowns, had become isolated from society and nearly from himself, shares how he was awakened from his sadness:
The subject is afterwards resumed, with the same magnanimity and philosophical firmness:
The topic is then taken up again, with the same generosity and philosophical strength:
In the application of these memorable lines, we should, perhaps, differ a little from Mr. Wordsworth; nor can we indulge with him in the fond conclusion afterwards hinted at, that one day our triumph, the triumph of humanity and liberty, may be complete. For this purpose, we think several things necessary which are impossible. It is a consummation which cannot happen till the nature of things is changed, till the many become as united as the one, till romantic generosity shall be as common as gross selfishness, till reason shall have acquired the obstinate blindness of prejudice, till the love of power and of change shall no longer goad man on to restless action, till passion and will, hope and fear, love and hatred, and the objects proper to excite them, that is, alternate good and evil, shall no longer sway the bosoms and businesses of men. All things move, not in progress, but in a ceaseless round; our strength lies in our weakness; our virtues are built on our vices; our faculties are as limited as our being; nor can we lift man above his nature more than above the earth he treads. But though we cannot weave over again the airy, unsubstantial dream, which reason and experience have dispelled,
In applying these memorable lines, we might need to differ a bit from Mr. Wordsworth; we can't fully agree with his hopeful conclusion that one day our triumph—the triumph of humanity and freedom—may be complete. For this to happen, we believe several things that are impossible have to change. It’s a resolution that can’t occur until the nature of things shifts, until the many become as united as the one, until romantic generosity is as common as selfishness, until reason turns into the stubborn blindness of prejudice, until the love of power and change no longer drives humans to constant action, until passion and will, hope and fear, love and hatred, along with the things that trigger them, which are both good and evil, no longer control the hearts and actions of people. Everything moves, not forward, but in a never-ending cycle; our strength comes from our weaknesses; our virtues are built on our vices; our abilities are as limited as our existence; and we can't raise humans above their nature any more than we can lift them above the ground they walk on. But even though we can’t reweave the fragile, insubstantial dream that reason and experience have shattered,
yet we will never cease, nor be prevented from returning on the wings of imagination to that bright dream of our youth; that glad dawn of the day-star of liberty; that spring-time of the world, in which 120the hopes and expectations of the human race seemed opening in the same gay career with our own; when France called her children to partake her equal blessings beneath her laughing skies; when the stranger was met in all her villages with dance and festive songs, in celebration of a new and golden era; and when, to the retired and contemplative student, the prospects of human happiness and glory were seen ascending like the steps of Jacob’s ladder, in bright and never-ending succession. The dawn of that day was suddenly overcast; that season of hope is past; it is fled with the other dreams of our youth, which we cannot recal, but has left behind it traces, which are not to be effaced by Birth-day and Thanks-giving odes, or the chaunting of Te Deums in all the churches of Christendom. To those hopes eternal regrets are due; to those who maliciously and wilfully blasted them, in the fear that they might be accomplished, we feel no less what we owe—hatred and scorn as lasting!
yet we will never stop, nor will we be prevented from returning on the wings of imagination to that bright dream of our youth; that joyful dawn of the day-star of liberty; that springtime of the world, when the hopes and expectations of humanity seemed to blossom alongside our own; when France called her children to share her equal blessings under her cheerful skies; when strangers were welcomed in all her villages with dances and festive songs, celebrating a new and golden era; and when, for the thoughtful and reflective student, the prospects of human happiness and glory appeared to rise like the steps of Jacob’s ladder, in a bright and endless succession. The dawn of that day was suddenly overshadowed; that season of hope has passed; it has fled like the other dreams of our youth, which we cannot recall, but it has left behind traces that not even birthdays and Thanksgiving odes, or the singing of Te Deums in all the churches of Christendom can erase. To those hopes, eternal regrets must be given; to those who maliciously and willfully destroyed them, out of fear that they might come true, we feel no less what we owe—hatred and scorn that will last just as long!
No. 30.] THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED [Oct. 2, 1814.
Mr. Wordsworth’s writings exhibit all the internal power, without the external form of poetry. He has scarcely any of the pomp and decoration and scenic effect of poetry: no gorgeous palaces nor solemn temples awe the imagination; no cities rise ‘with glistering spires and pinnacles adorned’; we meet with no knights pricked forth on airy steeds; no hair-breadth ‘scapes and perilous accidents by flood or field. Either from the predominant habit of his mind not requiring the stimulus of outward impressions, or from the want of an imagination teeming with various forms, he takes the common every-day events and objects of nature, or rather seeks those that are the most simple and barren of effect; but he adds to them a weight of interest from the resources of his own mind, which makes the most insignificant things serious and even formidable. All other interests are absorbed in the deeper interest of his own thoughts, and find the same level. His mind magnifies the littleness of his subject, and raises its meanness; lends it his strength, and clothes it with borrowed grandeur. With him, a mole-hill, covered with wild thyme, assumes the importance of ‘the great vision of the guarded mount’: a puddle is filled with preternatural faces, and agitated with the fiercest storms of passion.
Mr. Wordsworth’s writings show all the inner power without the outer form of poetry. He has almost none of the grandeur, decoration, or scenic effect typical of poetry: no magnificent palaces or solemn temples that inspire awe; no cities with gleaming spires and decorated pinnacles; we encounter no knights riding on magical steeds; no narrow escapes or dangerous adventures by land or sea. Either because his mindset doesn’t need the stimulus of outer impressions, or due to a lack of imagination filled with various forms, he focuses on everyday events and natural objects, or rather seeks ones that are the simplest and least impactful; but he adds a weight of interest from his own mind that makes even the most insignificant things feel serious and even formidable. All other interests fade into the deeper interest of his own thoughts, which they all share. His mind amplifies the smallness of his subject and enhances its plainness; it gives it his strength and dresses it in borrowed grandeur. For him, a molehill covered with wild thyme takes on the significance of ‘the great vision of the guarded mount’: a puddle is filled with supernatural faces and stirred by the fiercest storms of emotion.
The extreme simplicity which some persons have objected to in Mr. Wordsworth’s poetry, is to be found only in the subject and the style: the sentiments are subtle and profound. In the latter respect, his poetry is as much above the common standard or capacity, as in the other it is below it. His poems bear a distant resemblance to some 121of Rembrandt’s landscapes, who, more than any other painter, created the medium through which he saw nature, and out of the stump of an old tree, a break in the sky, and a bit of water, could produce an effect almost miraculous.
The extreme simplicity that some people criticize in Mr. Wordsworth’s poetry is only present in the subject matter and style; the feelings conveyed are subtle and deep. In this way, his poetry is as much above the general standard or understanding as it is below it in the other. His poems have a distant resemblance to some 121of Rembrandt’s landscapes, who, more than any other painter, created the lens through which he viewed nature, and out of the stump of an old tree, a gap in the sky, and a patch of water, could create an effect that seems almost miraculous.
Mr. Wordsworth’s poems in general are the history of a refined and contemplative mind, conversant only with itself and nature. An intense feeling of the associations of this kind is the peculiar and characteristic feature of all his productions. He has described the love of nature better than any other poet. This sentiment, inly felt in all its force, and sometimes carried to an excess, is the source both of his strength and of his weakness. However we may sympathise with Mr. Wordsworth in his attachment to groves and fields, we cannot extend the same admiration to their inhabitants, or to the manners of country life in general. We go along with him, while he is the subject of his own narrative, but we take leave of him when he makes pedlars and ploughmen his heroes and the interpreters of his sentiments. It is, we think, getting into low company, and company, besides, that we do not like. We take Mr. Wordsworth himself for a great poet, a fine moralist, and a deep philosopher; but if he insists on introducing us to a friend of his, a parish clerk, or the barber of the village, who is as wise as himself, we must be excused if we draw back with some little want of cordial faith. We are satisfied with the friendship which subsisted between Parson Adams and Joseph Andrews. The author himself lets out occasional hints that all is not as it should be amongst these northern Arcadians. Though, in general, he professes to soften the harsher features of rustic vice, he has given us one picture of depraved and inveterate selfishness, which we apprehend could only be found among the inhabitants of these boasted mountain districts. The account of one of his heroines concludes as follows:
Mr. Wordsworth’s poems are essentially the story of a thoughtful and introspective mind, engaged only with itself and nature. A strong sense of the connections between these elements is a distinctive characteristic of all his works. He captures the love of nature better than any other poet. This feeling, deeply rooted and sometimes taken to extremes, is both his strength and his weakness. While we can relate to Mr. Wordsworth's affection for forests and fields, we can’t extend the same admiration to the people who live there or to the customs of country life overall. We follow him when he is at the center of his narrative, but we part ways when he makes peddlers and farmers the heroes and voices of his thoughts. We believe that it’s stepping into low company, and company that we don’t enjoy. We regard Mr. Wordsworth as a great poet, a noble moralist, and a profound philosopher; however, if he insists on introducing us to a friend of his, like a parish clerk or the village barber, who he claims is just as wise as he is, we must politely retreat with a bit of skepticism. We are content with the friendship that existed between Parson Adams and Joseph Andrews. The author himself occasionally hints that not everything is perfect among these so-called northern Arcadians. Although he generally claims to soften the harsher aspects of rural vice, he has presented us with one depiction of deep and entrenched selfishness, which we suspect could only exist among the residents of these praised mountain regions. The story of one of his heroines ends as follows:
We think it is pushing our love of the admiration of natural objects a good deal too far, to make it a set-off against a story like the preceding.
We believe it's taking our appreciation for the beauty of nature a bit too far to consider it a counterbalance to a story like the one before this.
All country people hate each other. They have so little comfort, that they envy their neighbours the smallest pleasure or advantage, and nearly grudge themselves the necessaries of life. From not being accustomed to enjoyment, they become hardened and averse to it—stupid, for want of thought—selfish, for want of society. There is nothing good to be had in the country, or, if there is, they will not let you have it. They had rather injure themselves than oblige any one else. Their common mode of life is a system of wretchedness and self-denial, like what we read of among barbarous tribes. You live out of the world. You cannot get your tea and sugar without sending to the next town for it: you pay double, and have it of the worst quality. The small-beer is sure to be sour—the milk skimmed—the meat bad, or spoiled in the cooking. You cannot do a single thing you like; you cannot walk out or sit at home, or write or read, or think or look as if you did, without being subject to impertinent curiosity. The apothecary annoys you with his complaisance; the parson with his superciliousness. If you are poor, you are despised; if you are rich, you are feared and hated. If you do any one a favour, the whole neighbourhood is up in arms; the clamour is like that of a rookery; and the person himself, it is ten to one, laughs at you for your pains, and takes the first opportunity of shewing you that he labours under no uneasy sense of obligation. There is a perpetual round of mischief-making and backbiting for want of any better amusement. There are no shops, no taverns, no theatres, no opera, no concerts, no pictures, no public-buildings, no crowded streets, no noise of coaches, or of courts of law,—neither courtiers nor 123courtesans, no literary parties, no fashionable routs, no society, no books, or knowledge of books. Vanity and luxury are the civilisers of the world, and sweeteners of human life. Without objects either of pleasure or action, it grows harsh and crabbed: the mind becomes stagnant, the affections callous, and the eye dull. Man left to himself soon degenerates into a very disagreeable person. Ignorance is always bad enough; but rustic ignorance is intolerable. Aristotle has observed, that tragedy purifies the affections by terror and pity. If so, a company of tragedians should be established at the public expence, in every village or hundred, as a better mode of education than either Bell’s or Lancaster’s. The benefits of knowledge are never so well understood as from seeing the effects of ignorance, in their naked, undisguised state, upon the common country people. Their selfishness and insensibility are perhaps less owing to the hardships and privations, which make them, like people out at sea in a boat, ready to devour one another, than to their having no idea of anything beyond themselves and their immediate sphere of action. They have no knowledge of, and consequently can take no interest in, anything which is not an object of their senses, and of their daily pursuits. They hate all strangers, and have generally a nickname for the inhabitants of the next village. The two young noblemen in Guzman d’Alfarache, who went to visit their mistresses only a league out of Madrid, were set upon by the peasants, who came round them calling out, ‘A wolf.’ Those who have no enlarged or liberal ideas, can have no disinterested or generous sentiments. Persons who are in the habit of reading novels and romances, are compelled to take a deep interest in, and to have their affections strongly excited by, fictitious characters and imaginary situations; their thoughts and feelings are constantly carried out of themselves, to persons they never saw, and things that never existed: history enlarges the mind, by familiarising us with the great vicissitudes of human affairs, and the catastrophes of states and kingdoms; the study of morals accustoms us to refer our actions to a general standard of right and wrong; and abstract reasoning, in general, strengthens the love of truth, and produces an inflexibility of principle which cannot stoop to low trick and cunning. Books, in Lord Bacon’s phrase, are ‘a discipline of humanity.’ Country people have none of these advantages, nor any others to supply the place of them. Having no circulating libraries to exhaust their love of the marvellous, they amuse themselves with fancying the disasters and disgraces of their particular acquaintance. Having no hump-backed Richard to excite their wonder and abhorrence, they make themselves a bugbear of their own, out of the first obnoxious person they can lay their hands on. Not having the 124fictitious distresses and gigantic crimes of poetry to stimulate their imagination and their passions, they vent their whole stock of spleen, malice, and invention, on their friends and next-door neighbours. They get up a little pastoral drama at home, with fancied events, but real characters. All their spare time is spent in manufacturing and propagating the lie for the day, which does its office, and expires. The next day is spent in the same manner. It is thus that they embellish the simplicity of rural life! The common people in civilised countries are a kind of domesticated savages. They have not the wild imagination, the passions, the fierce energies, or dreadful vicissitudes of the savage tribes, nor have they the leisure, the indolent enjoyments and romantic superstitions, which belonged to the pastoral life in milder climates, and more remote periods of society. They are taken out of a state of nature, without being put in possession of the refinements of art. The customs and institutions of society cramp their imaginations without giving them knowledge. If the inhabitants of the mountainous districts described by Mr. Wordsworth are less gross and sensual than others, they are more selfish. Their egotism becomes more concentrated, as they are more insulated, and their purposes more inveterate, as they have less competition to struggle with. The weight of matter which surrounds them, crushes the finer sympathies. Their minds become hard and cold, like the rocks which they cultivate. The immensity of their mountains makes the human form appear little and insignificant. Men are seen crawling between Heaven and earth, like insects to their graves. Nor do they regard one another more than flies on a wall. Their physiognomy expresses the materialism of their character, which has only one principle—rigid self-will. They move on with their eyes and foreheads fixed, looking neither to the right nor to the left, with a heavy slouch in their gait, and seeming as if nothing would divert them from their path. We do not admire this plodding pertinacity, always directed to the main chance. There is nothing which excites so little sympathy in our minds, as exclusive selfishness. If our theory is wrong, at least it is taken from pretty close observation, and is, we think, confirmed by Mr. Wordsworth’s own account.
All country folks despise each other. They have so little comfort that they envy their neighbors even the smallest pleasures or advantages, and they almost begrudge themselves the essentials of life. Because they're not used to enjoying anything, they become hardened and averse to it—dull, from lack of thought—selfish, from lack of community. There’s nothing good to be found in the countryside, or if there is, they won't let you have it. They'd rather harm themselves than help anyone else. Their way of life is a system of misery and self-denial, similar to what we read about in barbaric tribes. You live outside of the world. You can't get your tea and sugar without sending to the next town for it: you pay twice as much and get the worst quality. The small beer is always sour—the milk is skimmed—the meat is spoiled or poorly cooked. You can't do a single thing you enjoy; you can't walk out or stay at home, or write or read, or think or look as if you do, without facing rude curiosity. The pharmacist annoys you with his politeness; the pastor with his arrogance. If you're poor, you're looked down on; if you're wealthy, you're feared and hated. If you do someone a favor, the whole neighborhood reacts; the uproar sounds like a flock of crows, and the person you helped is likely to laugh at you for your trouble and take the first chance to show you they don’t feel any obligation. There’s a constant cycle of trouble-making and gossiping because they have no better form of entertainment. There are no shops, taverns, theaters, operas, concerts, paintings, public buildings, crowded streets, or sounds of carriages or courtrooms—there are neither nobles nor prostitutes, no literary gatherings, no fancy parties, no social life, no books, or knowledge of books. Vanity and luxury are what civilize the world and sweeten human life. Without sources of pleasure or action, life becomes harsh and bitter: the mind stagnates, the emotions become numb, and the vision dulls. Left to their own devices, people quickly turn into very unpleasant individuals. Ignorance is always bad enough, but rural ignorance is unbearable. Aristotle noted that tragedy purifies emotions through fear and pity. If that’s true, there should be a troupe of actors funded by the public in every village as a better form of education than either Bell's or Lancaster's. The benefits of knowledge are never as clear as when you see the effects of ignorance in its raw form on ordinary rural people. Their selfishness and insensitivity probably stem less from the hardships and deprivations that make them, like shipwrecked sailors, ready to eat each other, than from having no conception of anything beyond themselves and their immediate surroundings. They know nothing of, and hence take no interest in, anything that isn’t within their sight or daily routine. They dislike all outsiders and typically have a derogatory nickname for folks from a nearby village. The two young noblemen in Guzman d’Alfarache, who went to visit their lovers just a league outside of Madrid, were surrounded by peasants who called out, ‘A wolf.’ Those who lack broad or liberal ideas can’t have selfless or generous feelings. People who regularly read novels and romances are compelled to become deeply invested in and have strong feelings for fictional characters and invented situations; their thoughts and emotions are constantly directed beyond themselves, toward people they’ve never met and things that don’t exist: history broadens the mind by familiarizing us with the great changes in human affairs and the downfalls of states and nations; the study of morals helps us measure our actions against a general standard of right and wrong; and abstract reasoning generally strengthens the love of truth and fosters an unwavering principle that refuses to yield to deceit and cunning. Books, in Lord Bacon’s words, are ‘a discipline of humanity.’ Country folks lack these advantages and any substitutes for them. Without circulating libraries to quench their thirst for the marvelous, they entertain themselves by imagining the misfortunes and embarrassments of their acquaintances. Having no hunchbacked Richard to spark their wonder and disgust, they create their own bogeyman out of the first person they can target. Lacking the fabricated woes and dramatic crimes of poetry to stimulate their imaginations and passions, they unleash their entire stock of bitterness, malice, and creativity on their friends and neighbors. They create a little rural drama at home, with imagined events but real characters. All their free time goes into creating and spreading the latest gossip, which serves its purpose and then fades away. The next day is spent the same way. That’s how they embellish the simplicity of rural life! The common people in civilized countries are akin to domesticated savages. They don’t have the wild imagination, passions, fierce energies, or dreadful upheavals of savage tribes, nor do they have the leisure, idle pleasures, and romantic superstitions typical of pastoral life in gentler climates and earlier times. They are removed from a state of nature without gaining the refinements of culture. Social customs and institutions stifle their imaginations without providing knowledge. If the inhabitants of the mountainous areas described by Mr. Wordsworth are less coarse and sensual than others, they are more egotistical. Their self-absorption becomes more intense when they are more isolated, and their goals more entrenched when they have less competition to contend with. The heavy surroundings weigh down their finer sensibilities. Their minds harden and cool, like the rocks they farm. The enormity of their mountains makes human figures appear small and insignificant. People are seen moving between Heaven and earth, like insects headed for their graves. Nor do they regard one another any more than flies on a wall. Their faces show the materialism of their character, which has only one principle—rigid self-will. They walk with their eyes and brows fixed ahead, looking neither to the right nor the left, with a heavy slouch in their stride, as if nothing could divert them from their path. We don’t admire this persistent determination, always focused on personal gain. There’s nothing that evokes less sympathy in us than exclusive selfishness. If our theory is flawed, at least it is based on close observation, and we believe it is confirmed by Mr. Wordsworth’s own account.
Of the stories contained in the latter part of the volume, we like that of the Whig and Jacobite friends, and of the good knight, Sir Alfred Irthing, the best. The last reminded us of a fine sketch of a similar character in the beautiful poem of Hart Leap Well. To conclude,—if the skill with which the poet had chosen his materials had been equal to the power which he has undeniably exerted over them, if the objects (whether persons or things) which he makes use of as the vehicle of his sentiments, had been such as to convey 125them in all their depth and force, then the production before us might indeed ‘have proved a monument,’ as he himself wishes it, worthy of the author, and of his country. Whether, as it is, this very original and powerful performance may not rather remain like one of those stupendous but half-finished structures, which have been suffered to moulder into decay, because the cost and labour attending them exceeded their use or beauty, we feel that it would be presumptuous in us to determine.
Of the stories in the latter part of the volume, we enjoy the one about the Whig and Jacobite friends, and the noble knight, Sir Alfred Irthing, the most. The latter reminded us of an impressive character sketch in the beautiful poem Hart Leap Well. To wrap up,—if the poet's skill in selecting his materials matched the undeniable power he exerts over them, and if the subjects (whether people or things) he uses to express his feelings effectively conveyed their depth and intensity, then this work might truly have become a monument, as he himself desires, worthy of both the author and his country. As it stands, we can't say whether this very original and powerful piece may end up like one of those grand yet incomplete structures that have been left to deteriorate because the cost and effort involved outweighed their usefulness or beauty; it would be presumptuous of us to decide.
No. 31.] CHARACTER OF THE LATE MR. PITT[61]
The character of Mr. Pitt was, perhaps, one of the most singular that ever existed. With few talents, and fewer virtues, he acquired and preserved, in one of the most trying situations, and in spite of all opposition, the highest reputation for the possession of every moral excellence, and as having carried the attainments of eloquence and wisdom as far as human abilities could go. This he did (strange as it may appear) by a negation (together with the common virtues) of the common vices of human nature, and by the complete negation of every other talent that might interfere with the only ones which he possessed in a supreme degree, and which, indeed, may be made to include the appearance of all others,—an artful use of words, and a certain dexterity of logical arrangement. In these alone his power consisted; and the defect of all other qualities, which usually constitute greatness, contributed to the more complete success of these. Having no strong feelings, no distinct perceptions,—his mind having no link, as it were, to connect it with the world of external nature, every subject presented to him nothing more than a tabula rasa, on which he was at liberty to lay whatever colouring of language he pleased; having no general principles, no comprehensive views of things, no moral habits of thinking, no system of action, there was nothing to hinder him from pursuing any particular purpose by any means that offered; having never any plan, he could not be convicted of inconsistency, and his own pride and obstinacy were the only rules of his conduct. Without insight into human nature, without sympathy with the passions of men, or apprehension of their real designs, he seemed perfectly insensible to the consequences of things, and would believe nothing till it actually happened. The fog and haze in which he saw every thing communicated itself to others; and the total indistinctness and uncertainty of his own ideas tended to confound the perceptions of his hearers more effectually than the most 126ingenious misrepresentation could have done. Indeed, in defending his conduct, he never seemed to consider himself as at all responsible for the success of his measures, or to suppose that future events were in our own power; but that, as the best-laid schemes might fail, and there was no providing against all possible contingencies, this was sufficient excuse for our plunging at once into any dangerous or absurd enterprise without the least regard to consequences. His reserved logic confined itself solely to the possible and the impossible, and he appeared to regard the probable and improbable, the only foundation of moral prudence or political wisdom, as beneath the notice of a profound statesman; as if the pride of the human intellect were concerned in never entrusting itself with subjects, where it may be compelled to acknowledge its weakness. Nothing could ever drive him out of his dull forms, and naked generalities; which, as they are susceptible neither of degree nor variation, are therefore equally applicable to every emergency that can happen: and in the most critical aspect of affairs, he saw nothing but the same flimsy web of remote possibilities and metaphysical uncertainty. In his mind, the wholesome pulp of practical wisdom and salutary advice was immediately converted into the dry chaff and husks of a miserable logic. From his manner of reasoning, he seemed not to have believed that the truth of his statements depended on the reality of the facts, but that the facts themselves depended on the order in which he arranged them in words: you would not suppose him to be agitating a serious question, which had real grounds to go upon, but to be declaiming upon an imaginary thesis, proposed as an exercise in the schools. He never set himself to examine the force of the objections that were brought against him, or attempted to defend his measures upon clear, solid grounds of his own; but constantly contented himself with first gravely stating the logical form, or dilemma to which the question reduced itself; and then, after having declared his opinion, proceeded to amuse his hearers by a series of rhetorical common-places, connected together in grave, sonorous, and elaborately constructed periods, without ever shewing their real application to the subject in dispute. Thus, if any member of the opposition disapproved of any measure, and enforced his objections by pointing out the many evils with which it was fraught, or the difficulties attending its execution, his only answer was, ‘that it was true there might be inconveniences attending the measure proposed, but we were to remember, that every expedient that could be devised might be said to be nothing more than a choice of difficulties, and that all that human prudence could do, was to consider on which side the advantages lay; that, for his part, he conceived that the present measure was attended with more 127advantages and fewer disadvantages than any other that could be adopted; that it we were diverted from our object by every appearance of difficulty, the wheels of government would be clogged by endless delays and imaginary grievances; that most of the objections made to the measure appeared to him to be trivial, others of them unfounded and improbable; or that, if a scheme, free from all these objections, could be proposed, it might, after all, prove inefficient; while, in the meantime, a material object remained unprovided for, or the opportunity of action was lost.’ This mode of reasoning is admirably described by Hobbes, in speaking of the writings of some of the schoolmen, of whom he says that ‘they had learned the trick of imposing what they list upon their readers, and declining the force of true reason by verbal forks, that is, distinctions, which signify nothing, but serve only to astonish the multitude of ignorant men.’ That what we have here stated comprehends the whole force of his mind, which consisted solely in this evasive dexterity and perplexing formality, assisted by a copiousness of words and common-place topics, will, we think, be evident to any one who carefully looks over his speeches, undazzled by the reputation or personal influence of the speaker. It will be in vain to look in them for any of the common proofs of human genius or wisdom. He has not left behind him a single memorable saying,—not one profound maxim,—one solid observation,—one forcible description,—one beautiful thought,—one humorous picture,—one affecting sentiment. He has made no addition whatever to the stock of human knowledge. He did not possess any one of those faculties which contribute to the instruction and delight of mankind,—depth of understanding, imagination, sensibility, wit, vivacity, clear and solid judgment. But it may be asked, If these qualities are not to be found in him, where are we to look for them? and we may be required to point out instances of them. We shall answer then, that he had none of the abstract, legislative wisdom, refined sagacity, or rich, impetuous, high-wrought imagination of Burke; the manly eloquence, exact knowledge, vehemence, and natural simplicity of Fox; the ease, brilliancy, and acuteness of Sheridan. It is not merely that he had not all these qualities in the degree that they were severally possessed by his rivals, but he had not any of them in any remarkable degree. His reasoning is a technical arrangement of unmeaning common-places, his eloquence rhetorical, his style monotonous and artificial. If he could pretend to any one excellence more than another, it was to taste in composition. There is certainly nothing low, nothing puerile, nothing far-fetched or abrupt in his speeches; there is a kind of faultless regularity pervading them throughout; but in the confined, 128formal, passive mode of eloquence which he adopted, it seemed rather more difficult to commit errors than to avoid them. A man who is determined never to move out of the beaten road cannot lose his way. However, habit, joined to the peculiar mechanical memory which he possessed, carried this correctness to a degree which, in an extemporaneous speaker, was almost miraculous; he, perhaps, hardly ever uttered a sentence that was not perfectly regular and connected. In this respect, he not only had the advantage over his own contemporaries, but perhaps no one that ever lived equalled him in this singular faculty. But for this, he would always have passed for a common man; and to this the constant sameness, and, if we may so say, vulgarity of his ideas, must have contributed not a little, as there was nothing to distract his mind from this one object of his unintermitted attention; and as, even in his choice of words, he never aimed at any thing more than a certain general propriety and stately uniformity of style. His talents were exactly fitted for the situation in which he was placed; where it was his business not to overcome others, but to avoid being overcome. He was able to baffle opposition, not from strength or firmness, but from the evasive ambiguity and impalpable nature of his resistance, which gave no hold to the rude grasp of his opponents: no force could bind the loose phantom, and his mind (though ‘not matchless, and his pride humbled by such rebuke’) soon rose from defeat unhurt,
The character of Mr. Pitt was probably one of the most unique that ever existed. With few talents and even fewer virtues, he managed to gain and maintain, in one of the toughest situations, and despite all opposition, the highest reputation for having every moral excellence, and for reaching the heights of eloquence and wisdom that human abilities could achieve. He accomplished this (strange as it sounds) by negating not only the common vices of human nature but also by fully rejecting every other talent that could interfere with the ones he possessed most well—namely, an artful command of language and a certain skill in logical organization. His power resided solely in these aspects, and the lack of other qualities that usually define greatness actually contributed to his success. Without strong feelings or distinct perceptions—his mind lacking a connection to the external world—every topic presented to him was nothing more than a blank slate on which he could project whatever colorful language he desired; lacking general principles, comprehensive views, moral habits of thought, or a system of action, nothing prevented him from pursuing specific goals by any means available; without ever having a plan, he couldn’t be accused of inconsistency, with only his own pride and stubbornness guiding his actions. Lacking insight into human nature, sympathy with people’s passions, or understanding of their real intentions, he seemed completely oblivious to the consequences of things, believing nothing until it actually happened. The fog and haze through which he viewed everything also affected others; his own vague and uncertain ideas often confused his listeners’ perceptions more thoroughly than even the cleverest misrepresentation could. Indeed, when defending his actions, he never seemed to consider himself responsible for the success of his plans or assume that future events were within our control; he believed that since even the best-laid plans could fail and there was no way to guard against all possible outcomes, that was a sufficient excuse to dive headfirst into any risky or absurd venture without the slightest concern for consequences. His reserved logic focused solely on the possible and impossible, overlooking the probable and improbable—the foundations of moral prudence or political wisdom—as unworthy of a serious statesman, as if the pride of human intellect compelled it to avoid subjects that might reveal its own limitations. Nothing could push him out of his dull formats and bare generalities, which, being devoid of degree or variation, applied to every situation that arose: even in the most critical circumstances, he saw only the same flimsy web of remote possibilities and metaphysical uncertainty. In his mind, practical wisdom was quickly converted into the dry husks of miserable logic. From his reasoning approach, it seemed he believed the truth of his statements depended not on the reality of the facts but on how he arranged those facts with words: you wouldn’t think he was wrestling with a serious question grounded in reality, but rather declaiming on an imaginary topic for a school exercise. He never bothered to examine the strength of the objections raised against him or defend his actions on clear, solid grounds; he simply stated the logical form or dilemma posed by the question, then proceeded to entertain his audience with a series of rhetorical clichés, all connected in grave, sonorous, and intricately constructed sentences, without ever showing their real relevance to the subject at hand. Thus, if any opposition member criticized a measure and pointed out the various issues it might cause or the challenges it faced, his only response was that while it was true there might be inconveniences involved, we should remember that every possible solution could be seen as merely a choice among difficulties, and that all human prudence could do was weigh where the advantages lay; for his part, he believed the current measure had more benefits and fewer downsides than any other option; if we were deterred from our goals by every hint of difficulty, the machinery of government would be clogged by endless delays and imaginary woes; many of the objections seemed trivial to him, others unfounded and unlikely; or that even if a plan free from all these objections was proposed, it could still end up being ineffective, while, in the meantime, an important issue remained unaddressed, or an opportunity for action was lost. This way of reasoning is quite aptly described by Hobbes, who said that some schoolmen learned to impose their terms upon readers and evade the force of true reasoning through verbal twists—distinctions that mean nothing, serving only to astound the multitude of ignorant people. What we have outlined here captures the essence of his mind, consisting solely of evasion dexterity and confusing formalism, supported by an abundance of words and clichéd topics, will be clear to anyone who carefully examines his speeches without being dazzled by the speaker's reputation or personal influence. It would be futile to search them for any of the typical signs of human genius or wisdom. He didn’t leave behind a single memorable quote—not one profound saying, solid observation, compelling description, beautiful thought, humorous image, or moving sentiment. He made no contributions to the body of human knowledge. He lacked any of the abilities that enrich and delight humanity—depth of understanding, imagination, sensitivity, wit, liveliness, or clear, solid judgment. But one might ask, if these qualities are absent in him, where can we find them? We could say that he didn’t possess the abstract, legislative wisdom, refined insight, or rich, impassioned imagination of Burke; the robust eloquence, precise knowledge, passion, and natural simplicity of Fox; or the ease, brilliance, and sharpness of Sheridan. It’s not just that he lacked these attributes in the degrees they were held by his rivals; he didn’t possess any of them notably at all. His reasoning was a technical arrangement of meaningless clichés, his eloquence was rhetorical, and his style was monotonous and artificial. If he could claim to have one excellence above others, it was a sense of taste in composition. There’s certainly nothing low, childish, far-fetched, or abrupt in his speeches; they exhibit a kind of flawless regularity throughout; but in his confined, formal, passive style of eloquence, it seemed easier to avoid mistakes than to make them. A person determined never to stray from the beaten path can’t get lost. However, his habitual approach, combined with a peculiar mechanical memory, bestowed this correctness to a degree that, in an impromptu speaker, was almost miraculous; he rarely uttered a sentence that wasn't perfectly regular and coherent. In this sense, he not only surpassed his contemporaries, but perhaps no one who ever lived matched him in this exceptional ability. Absent this, he would have consistently been viewed as a common man; and the constant sameness and, if we may put it this way, vulgarity of his ideas only contributed to this perception, as there was nothing to distract his mind from this single point of focus. Even in his word choices, he aimed only for general appropriateness and stately uniformity in style. His abilities were precisely suited for his role, where his goal was not to outshine others but to avoid being overshadowed. He could neutralize opposition not through strength or determination but through the evasive ambiguity and intangible quality of his resistance, which gave no solid hold to his opponents' rough grasp: no force could bind the elusive phantom, and his mind, though not extraordinary and humbled by such setbacks, quickly rose from defeat unscathed.
No. 32.] ON RELIGIOUS HYPOCRISY [Oct. 9, 1814.
Religion either makes men wise and virtuous, or it makes them set up false pretences to both. In the latter case, it makes them hypocrites to themselves as well as others. Religion is, in grosser minds, an enemy to self-knowledge. The consciousness of the presence of an all-powerful Being, who is both the witness and judge of every thought, word, and action, where it does not produce its proper effect, forces the religious man to practise every mode of deceit upon himself with respect to his real character and motives; for it is only by being wilfully blind to his own faults, that he can suppose they will escape the eye of Omniscience. Consequently, the whole business of a religious man’s life, if it does not conform to the strict line of his duty, may be said to be to gloss over his errors to himself, and to invent a thousand shifts and palliations, in 129order to hoodwink the Almighty. While he is sensible of his own delinquency, he knows that it cannot escape the penetration of his invisible Judge; and the distant penalty annexed to every offence, though not sufficient to make him desist from the commission of it, will not suffer him to rest easy, till he has made some compromise with his own conscience as to his motives for committing it. As far as relates to this world, a cunning knave may take a pride in the imposition he practises upon others; and, instead of striving to conceal his true character from himself, may chuckle with inward satisfaction at the folly of those who are not wise enough to detect it. ‘But ’tis not so above.’ This shallow, skin-deep hypocrisy will not serve the turn of the religious devotee, who is ‘compelled to give in evidence against himself,’ and who must first become the dupe of his own imposture, before he can flatter himself with the hope of concealment, as children hide their eyes with their hands, and fancy that no one can see them. Religious people often pray very heartily for the forgiveness of a ‘multitude of trespasses and sins,’ as a mark of their humility, but we never knew them admit any one fault in particular, or acknowledge themselves in the wrong in any instance whatever. The natural jealousy of self-love is in them heightened by the fear of damnation, and they plead Not Guilty to every charge brought against them, with all the conscious terrors of a criminal at the bar. It is for this reason that the greatest hypocrites in the world are religious hypocrites.
Religion either makes people wise and good, or it leads them to pretend to be both. In the latter case, it turns them into hypocrites, both to themselves and others. For those with less understanding, religion can be a barrier to self-awareness. The awareness of an all-powerful Being, who witnesses and judges every thought, word, and action, when it doesn't produce its intended results, compels the religious person to deceive themselves about their true character and motives. Only by willfully ignoring their own faults can they believe those faults will escape the gaze of an all-knowing presence. As a result, the main focus of a religious person's life, if it doesn’t align with their duties, is to cover up their mistakes to themselves and to come up with countless excuses to mislead the Almighty. While they are aware of their own wrongdoings, they know those cannot hide from their invisible Judge; and the distant punishment attached to their misdeeds, though not enough to stop them from committing those acts, prevents them from feeling at ease until they’ve made some peace with their own conscience regarding their motives. In this world, a cunning trickster may take pride in deceiving others and may find satisfaction in their ability to fool those who can't see through them. But it doesn’t work that way in the spiritual realm. This superficial, shallow hypocrisy won’t satisfy the religious devotee, who is "forced to testify against themselves," and who must first fall victim to their own deception before they can convince themselves they’re hiding, much like children cover their eyes with their hands and believe no one can see them. Religious people often pray earnestly for the forgiveness of a "multitude of offenses and sins" to show their humility, yet we rarely see them admit to any particular fault or acknowledge wrongdoing in any circumstance. Their natural self-love is intensified by the fear of damnation, and they plead Not Guilty to every accusation thrown at them, carrying all the conscious dread of a criminal in court. That’s why the biggest hypocrites in the world often turn out to be religious hypocrites.
This quality, as it has been sometimes found united with the clerical character, is known by the name of Priestcraft. The Ministers of Religion are perhaps more liable to this vice than any other class of people. They are obliged to assume a greater degree of sanctity, though they have it not, and to screw themselves up to an unnatural pitch of severity and self-denial. They must keep a constant guard over themselves, have an eye always to their own persons, never relax in their gravity, nor give the least scope to their inclinations. A single slip, if discovered, may be fatal to them. Their influence and superiority depend on their pretensions to virtue and piety; and they are tempted to draw liberally on the funds of credulity and ignorance allotted for their convenient support. All this cannot be very friendly to downright simplicity of character. Besides, they are so accustomed to inveigh against the vices of others, that they naturally forget that they have any of their own to correct. They see vice as an object always out of themselves, with which they have no other concern than to denounce and stigmatise it. They are only reminded of it in the third person. They as naturally associate sin and its consequences with their flocks as a pedagogue associates a 130false concord and flogging with his scholars. If we may so express it, they serve as conductors to the lightning of divine indignation, and have only to point the thunders of the law at others. They identify themselves with that perfect system of faith and morals, of which they are the professed teachers, and regard any imputation on their conduct as an indirect attack on the function to which they belong, or as compromising the authority under which they act. It is only the head of the Popish church who assumes the title of God’s Vicegerent upon Earth; but the feeling is nearly common to all the oracular interpreters of the will of Heaven—from the successor of St. Peter down to the simple, unassuming Quaker, who, disclaiming the imposing authority of title and office, yet fancies himself the immediate organ of a preternatural impulse, and affects to speak only as the spirit moves him.
This trait, which is sometimes found combined with the clerical role, is called Priestcraft. Religious leaders may be more susceptible to this flaw than any other group. They are expected to present a higher level of sanctity than they actually possess and to push themselves to an unnatural level of strictness and self-denial. They must constantly monitor their behavior, always pay attention to how they present themselves, never let their seriousness slip, or give even a little leeway to their desires. A single mistake, if noticed, can be disastrous for them. Their influence and status rely on their claims of virtue and piety, and they are tempted to tap into the stores of gullibility and ignorance available for their ease. All of this isn’t very conducive to genuine simplicity of character. Moreover, they become so used to criticizing the faults of others that they often forget they have their own to fix. They view vice as something always outside themselves, with which their only role is to condemn and shame. They are only reminded of it in the third person. They naturally link sin and its consequences to their followers, just as a teacher links false agreements and punishment to their students. If we can say it this way, they act as conductors for the lightning of divine wrath, merely directing the thunders of the law at others. They see themselves as part of that flawless system of faith and morals they are meant to teach, and view any criticism of their actions as an indirect attack on their role or a compromise of the authority they represent. Only the leader of the Catholic Church claims the title God’s Vicegerent upon Earth; however, this sentiment is nearly universal among all self-proclaimed interpreters of divine will—from the successor of St. Peter to the humble, unassuming Quaker, who, dismissing the grand authority of title and position, still believes he is the immediate voice of a supernatural influence and claims to speak only as he is inspired.
There is another way in which the formal profession of religion aids hypocrisy, by erecting a secret tribunal, to which those who affect a more than ordinary share of it can (in case of need) appeal from the judgments of men. The religious impostor, reduced to his last shift, and having no other way left to avoid the most ‘open and apparent shame,’ rejects the fallible decisions of the world, and thanks God that there is one who knows the heart. He is amenable to a higher jurisdiction, and while all is well with Heaven, he can pity the errors, and smile at the malice of his enemies! Whatever cuts men off from their dependence on common opinion or obvious appearances, must open a door to evasion and cunning, by setting up a standard of right and wrong in every one’s own breast, of the truth of which nobody can judge but the person himself. There are some fine instances in the old plays and novels (the best commentaries on human nature) of the effect of this principle, in giving the last finishing to the character of duplicity. Miss Harris, in Fielding’s Amelia, is one of the most striking. Molière’s Tartuffe is another instance of the facility with which religion may be perverted to the purposes of the most flagrant hypocrisy. It is an impenetrable fastness, to which this worthy person, like so many others, retires without the fear of pursuit. It is an additional disguise, in which he wraps himself up like a cloak. It is a stalking-horse, which is ready on all occasions,—an invisible conscience, which goes about with him,—his good genius, that becomes surety for him in all difficulties,—swears to the purity of his motives,—extricates him out of the most desperate circumstances,—baffles detection, and furnishes a plea to which there is no answer.
There’s another way that formally practicing religion supports hypocrisy by creating a secret tribunal to which those who show excessive devotion can appeal when they’re in need, away from the opinions of others. A religious fraud, backed into a corner and having no way to escape the most obvious shame, dismisses the unreliable judgments of the world and thanks God that He knows what’s in the heart. He answers to a higher authority, and as long as things are good between him and Heaven, he can pity the mistakes of others and laugh at the malice of his enemies! Anything that separates people from depending on public opinion or clear appearances opens a door to avoidance and trickery by establishing a personal sense of right and wrong that only the individual can truly assess. There are great examples in old plays and novels (which are the best insights into human nature) of how this principle enhances duplicity. Miss Harris in Fielding’s Amelia is one of the most notable. Molière’s Tartuffe is another example of how easily religion can be twisted for blatant hypocrisy. It becomes an impenetrable fortress where this individual, like so many others, retreats without fear of being pursued. It acts as an additional disguise, wrapping him up like a cloak. It’s a decoy that’s always on hand—an invisible conscience that accompanies him—his good friend, vouching for him in all troubles—certifying the purity of his intentions—extricating him from dire situations—evading detection, and providing an excuse that can’t be challenged.
The same sort of reasoning will account for the old remark, that persons who are stigmatised as non-conformists to the established 131religion, Jews, Presbyterians, etc., are more disposed to this vice than their neighbours. They are inured to the contempt of the world, and steeled against its prejudices: and the same indifference which fortifies them against the unjust censures of mankind, may be converted, as occasion requires, into a screen for the most pitiful conduct. They have no cordial sympathy with others, and, therefore, no sincerity in their intercourse with them. It is the necessity of concealment, in the first instance, that produces, and is, in some measure, an excuse for, the habit of hypocrisy.
The same kind of reasoning explains the old saying that people labeled as non-conformists to the established religion, like Jews, Presbyterians, and others, are more prone to this vice than their neighbors. They are used to being looked down upon by society and have developed a resistance to its prejudices. The same indifference that protects them from unjust criticism can easily become a cover for the most pitiful behavior when needed. They lack genuine empathy for others, which leads to insincerity in their interactions. Initially, the need to hide their true selves creates, and somewhat justifies, a habit of hypocrisy.
Hypocrisy, as it is connected with cowardice, seems to imply weakness of body or want of spirit. The impudence and insensibility which belong to it, ought to suppose robustness of constitution. There is certainly a very successful and formidable class of sturdy, jolly, able-bodied hypocrites, the Friar Johns of the profession. Raphael has represented Elymas the Sorcerer, with a hard iron visage, and large uncouth figure, made up of bones and muscles; as one not troubled with weak nerves or idle scruples—as one who repelled all sympathy with others—who was not to be jostled out of his course by their censures or suspicions—and who could break with ease through the cobweb snares which he had laid for the credulity of others, without being once entangled in his own delusions. His outward form betrays the hard, unimaginative, self-willed understanding of the sorcerer.
Hypocrisy, especially when linked to cowardice, seems to suggest a lack of physical strength or spirit. The boldness and lack of sensitivity that come with it should imply a strong constitution. There definitely exists a tough, hearty, capable bunch of hypocrites, like the Friar Johns of the field. Raphael has depicted Elymas the Sorcerer with a hard, iron-like face and a large, awkward body made of bones and muscles; he looks like someone who isn’t bothered by weak nerves or petty concerns—someone who dismisses all sympathy for others—who won’t be swayed by their criticisms or doubts—and who can easily break through the traps he set for others’ gullibility, never getting caught in his own lies. His appearance reveals the hard, unimaginative, stubborn mindset of the sorcerer.
No. 33.] ON THE LITERARY CHARACTER [Oct. 28, 1813.
The following remarks are prefixed to the account of Baron Grimm’s Correspondence in a late number of a celebrated Journal:-
The following comments are attached to the account of Baron Grimm’s Correspondence in a recent issue of a well-known Journal:-
‘There is nothing more exactly painted in these graphical volumes, than the character of M. Grimm himself; and the beauty of it is, that, as there is nothing either natural or peculiar about it, it may stand for the character of all the wits and philosophers he frequented. He had more wit, perhaps, and more sound sense and information, than the greatest part of the society in which he lived; but the leading traits belong to the whole class, and to all classes, indeed, in similar situations, in every part of the world. Whenever there is a very large assemblage of persons who have no other occupation but to amuse themselves, there will infallibly be generated acuteness of intellect, refinement of manners, and good taste in conversation; and, with the same certainty, all profound thought, and all serious affection, will be discarded from their society.
‘There’s nothing better captured in these illustrated volumes than the character of M. Grimm himself; and the beauty of it is that, since there’s nothing particularly unique or different about it, it can represent the character of all the clever people and thinkers he associated with. He probably had more wit, common sense, and knowledge than most of the people in his social circle, but the main characteristics belong to the entire group, and indeed to all groups in similar situations around the world. Whenever you have a large gathering of people whose sole purpose is to have fun, you will inevitably see sharp intelligence, refined manners, and good taste in conversation; and just as surely, any deep thinking and serious emotions will be left out of their society.
‘The multitude of persons and things that force themselves on the 132attention in such a scene, and the rapidity with which they succeed each other, and pass away, prevent any one from making a deep or permanent impression; and the mind, having never been tasked to any course of application, and long habituated to this lively succession and variety of objects, comes at last to require the excitement of perpetual change, and to find a multiplicity of friends as indispensable as a multiplicity of amusements. Thus the characteristics of large and polished society come almost inevitably to be, wit and heartlessness—acuteness and perpetual derision. The same impatience of uniformity, and passion for variety, which give so much grace to their conversation, by excluding all tediousness and pertinacious wrangling, make them incapable of dwelling for many minutes on the feelings and concerns of any one individual; while the constant pursuit of little gratifications, and the weak dread of all uneasy sensations, render them equally averse from serious sympathy and deep thought.
The crowd of people and things that grab your attention in such a scene, and the speed at which they come and go, make it impossible for anyone to leave a lasting impression. The mind, never trained to focus on anything for long and used to this lively flow and variety of stimuli, eventually craves the thrill of constant change, needing a variety of friends as much as a range of entertainments. As a result, the traits of large and refined social circles tend to be wit and lack of empathy—sharpness and constant mockery. This same impatience with sameness and desire for variety, which adds so much charm to their conversations by eliminating any dullness and stubborn arguments, also makes them unable to linger on the feelings and concerns of any one person for more than a few minutes. Meanwhile, their relentless chase for small pleasures and their fear of any discomfort makes them equally resistant to serious empathy and deep thinking.
‘The whole style and tone of this publication affords the most striking illustration of these general remarks. From one end of it to the other, it is a display of the most complete heartlessness, and the most uninterrupted levity. It chronicles the deaths of half the author’s acquaintance, and makes jests upon them all; and is much more serious in discussing the merits of an opera-dancer, than in considering the evidence for the being of a God, or the first foundations of morality. Nothing, indeed, can be more just or conclusive than the remark that is forced from M. Grimm himself, upon the utter carelessness, and instant oblivion, that followed the death of one of the most distinguished, active, and amiable members of his coterie: “Tant il est vrai que ce que nous appelons la société, est ce qu’il y a de plus léger, plus ingrat, et de plus frivole au monde!”’
‘The overall style and tone of this publication perfectly illustrate these general points. From beginning to end, it showcases a complete lack of empathy and constant frivolity. It reports on the deaths of half the author's acquaintances and makes jokes about them all; it takes the merits of an opera-dancer more seriously than the evidence for the existence of a God or the fundamental principles of morality. Indeed, nothing can be more accurate or telling than the remark made by M. Grimm himself about the utter indifference and immediate forgetfulness that followed the death of one of the most distinguished, active, and kind-hearted members of his circle: “It's true that what we call society is the most superficial, ungrateful, and trivial thing in the world!”’
These remarks, though shrewd and sensible in themselves, apply rather to the character of M. Grimm and his friends as men of the world, after their initiation into the refined society of Paris and the great world, than as mere men of letters. There is, however, a character which every man of letters has before he comes into society, and which he carries into the world with him, which we shall here attempt to describe.
These comments, while clever and reasonable, relate more to the personalities of M. Grimm and his friends as worldly individuals, shaped by their entry into the sophisticated circles of Paris and high society, rather than just as men of letters. However, there is a distinctive quality that every author possesses before they enter society, and which they bring with them into the world, and this is what we will attempt to describe here.
The weaknesses and vices that arise from a constant intercourse with books, are in certain respects the same with those which arise from daily intercourse with the world; yet each has a character and operation of its own, which may either counteract or aggravate the tendency of the other. The same dissipation of mind, the same listlessness, languor, and indifference, may be produced by both, but they are produced in different ways, and exhibit very different appearances. The defects of the literary character proceed, not from 133frivolity and voluptuous indolence, but from the overstrained exertion of the faculties, from abstraction and refinement. A man without talents or education might mingle in the same society, might give in to all the gaiety and foppery of the age, might see the same ‘multiplicity of persons and things,’ but would not become a wit and a philosopher for all that. As far as the change of actual objects, the real variety and dissipation goes, there is no difference between M. Grimm and a courtier of Francis I.—between the consummate philosopher and the giddy girl—between Paris, amidst the barbaric refinements of the middle of the eighteenth century, and any other metropolis at any other period. It is in the ideal change of objects, in the intellectual dissipation of literature and of literary society, that we are to seek for the difference. The very same languor and listlessness which, in fashionable life, are owing to the rapid ‘succession of persons and things,’ may be found, and even in a more intense degree, in the most recluse student, who has no knowledge whatever of the great world, who has never been present at the sallies of a petit souper, or complimented a lady on presenting her with a bouquet. It is the province of literature to anticipate the dissipation of real objects, and to increase it. It creates a fictitious restlessness and craving after variety, by creating a fictitious world around us, and by hurrying us, not only through all the mimic scenes of life, but by plunging us into the endless labyrinths of imagination. Thus the common indifference produced by the distraction of successive amusements, is superseded by a general indifference to surrounding objects, to real persons and things, occasioned by the disparity between the world of our imagination and that without us. The scenes of real life are not got up in the same style of magnificence; they want dramatic illusion and effect. The high-wrought feelings require all the concomitant and romantic circumstances which fancy can bring together to satisfy them, and cannot find them in any given object. M. Grimm was not, by his own account, born a lover; but even supposing him to have been, in gallantry of temper, a very Amadis, would it have been necessary that the enthusiasm of a philosopher and a man of genius should have run the gauntlet of all the bonnes fortunes of Paris to evaporate into insensibility and indifference? Would not a Clarissa, a new Eloise, a Cassandra, or a Berenice, have produced the same mortifying effects on a person of his great critical and acumen and virtù? Where, O where would he find the rocks of Meillerie in the precincts of the Palais Royal, or on what lips would Julia’s kisses grow? Who, after wandering with Angelica, or having seen the heavenly face of Una, might not meet with impunity a whole circle of literary ladies? Cowley’s mistresses reigned by turns in the 134poet’s fancy, and the beauties of King Charles II. perplex the eye in the preference of their charms as much now as they ever did. One trifling coquette only drives out another; but Raphael’s Galatea kills the whole race of pertness and vulgarity at once. After ranging in dizzy mazes, through the regions of imaginary beauty, the mind sinks down, breathless and exhausted, on the earth. In common minds, indifference is produced by mixing with the world. Authors and artists bring it into the world with them. The disappointment of the ideal enthusiast is indeed greatest at first, and he grows reconciled to his situation by degrees; whereas the mere man of the world becomes more dissatisfied and fastidious, and more of a misanthrope, the longer he lives.
The weaknesses and flaws that come from constantly engaging with books are, in some ways, similar to those that arise from daily interactions with the world; however, each has its own character and impact, which can either counter or worsen the effects of the other. Both can lead to the same mental distraction, the same apathy, lethargy, and indifference, but they come about in different ways and show very different outcomes. The shortcomings of someone focused on literature come not from frivolity and careless laziness, but from overexertion of the mind, from being too absorbed and refined. A person without skills or education might participate in the same social circles, might indulge in all the joys and trivialities of the time, might witness the same ‘variety of people and things,’ but they wouldn’t necessarily become a witty and thoughtful individual. When it comes to changing actual experiences, the real variety and distraction, there’s no difference between M. Grimm and a courtier of Francis I, between a master philosopher and a giggly girl, between Paris during the extravagant middle of the eighteenth century and any other city at any other time. The difference lies in the ideal transformation of experiences, in the intellectual distraction that comes from literature and literary society. The same lethargy and apathy that arise in trendy society from the swift ‘succession of people and events’ can also be found, even more intensely, in the most secluded student, who has no awareness of the wider world, who has never joined a fancy dinner party, or complimented a lady for giving her a bouquet. Literature’s role is to anticipate the distraction of real experiences and to amplify it. It creates a false restlessness and desire for variety by fabricating a fictional world around us, pushing us through all the staged scenes of life, and diving into the endless twists of imagination. This leads to a general apathy towards the things around us, to real people and experiences, caused by the gap between our imaginative world and the one outside us. Real life scenes don’t have the same grandeur; they lack the dramatic illusion and effect. Deep feelings demand all the accompanying and romantic circumstances that our imagination can conjure to fulfill them, which cannot be found in any specific object. M. Grimm claimed he wasn’t inherently a lover; but even if he were, in terms of gallantry, a true knight, would it still be necessary for a philosopher and a genius to experience all the ‘good fortunes’ of Paris only to end up desensitized and indifferent? Wouldn’t a Clarissa, a new Eloise, a Cassandra, or a Berenice have the same disheartening impact on someone with his advanced critical thinking and abilities? Where, oh where, would he find the rocks of Meillerie near the Palais Royal, or where would he encounter Julia’s kisses? Who, after wandering with Angelica, or after seeing Una’s heavenly face, could possibly avoid a whole group of literary ladies? Cowley’s mistresses took turns ruling the poet’s imagination, and the beauties of King Charles II bewilder the eye with their charms just as they always have. One trivial flirt simply replaces another; but Raphael’s Galatea wipes out all traces of arrogance and banality at once. After spinning through dizzying mazes of imagined beauty, the mind collapses, breathless and weary, onto the ground. In ordinary minds, apathy results from mingling with the world. Authors and artists bring it into the world with them. The disappointment of the idealistic enthusiast is indeed greatest at first, and they gradually come to terms with their situation; while the typical worldly person becomes increasingly dissatisfied and critical, turning more misanthropic as they grow older.
It is much the same in friendships founded on literary motives. Literary men are not attached to the persons of their friends, but to their minds. They look upon them in the same light as on the books in their library, and read them till they are tired. In casual acquaintances friendship grows out of habit. Mutual kindnesses beget mutual attachment; and numberless little local occurrences in the course of a long intimacy, furnish agreeable topics of recollection, and are almost the only sources of conversation among such persons. They have an immediate pleasure in each other’s company. But in literature nothing of this kind takes place. Petty and local circumstances are beneath the dignity of philosophy. Nothing will go down but wit or wisdom. The mind is kept in a perpetual state of violent exertion and expectation, and as there cannot always be a fresh supply of stimulus to excite it, as the same remarks or the same bon mots come to be often repeated, or others so like them, that we can easily anticipate the effect, and are no longer surprised into admiration, we begin to relax in the frequency of our visits, and the heartiness of our welcome. When we are tired of a book we can lay it down, but we cannot so easily put our friends on the shelf when we grow weary of their society. The necessity of keeping up appearances, therefore, adds to the dissatisfaction on both sides, and at length irritates indifference into contempt.
It’s pretty similar in friendships based on literary interests. Literary people aren’t really attached to their friends as individuals, but rather to their minds. They see them like the books on their shelves, reading them until they’re worn out. In casual friendships, bonds form out of habit. Acts of kindness create mutual attachment, and countless little everyday experiences over a long friendship provide pleasant memories and are almost the only things they talk about. They genuinely enjoy each other’s company. But in literature, that doesn’t happen. Minor local details are too trivial for philosophy. Only wit or wisdom really matters. The mind is kept in a constant state of intense effort and anticipation, and since there can’t always be fresh stimuli to excite it, as the same comments or similar clever remarks get repeated, we start to predict the effect and no longer feel surprised or impressed. We begin to visit less often and don't welcome each other as warmly. When we’re done with a book, we can put it down, but it’s not as easy to distance ourselves from friends when we tire of their company. The need to maintain appearances adds to the dissatisfaction on both sides, eventually turning indifference into contempt.
By the help of arts and science, everything finds an ideal level. Ideas assume the place of realities, and realities sink into nothing. Actual events and objects produce little or no effect on the mind, when it has been long accustomed to draw its strongest interest from constant contemplation. It is necessary that it should, as it were, recollect itself—that it should call out its internal resources, and refine upon its own feelings—place the object at a distance, and embellish it at pleasure. By degrees all things are made to serve as hints, and occasions for the exercise of intellectual activity. It was on this 135principle that the sentimental Frenchman left his Mistress, in order that he might think of her. Cicero ceased to mourn for the loss of his daughter, when he recollected how fine an opportunity it would afford him to write an eulogy to her memory; and Mr. Shandy lamented over the death of Master Bobby much in the same manner. The insensibility of Authors, etc., to domestic and private calamities has been often carried to a ludicrous excess, but it is less than it appears to be. The genius of philosophy is not yet quite understood. For instance, the man who might seem at the moment undisturbed by the death of a wife or mistress, would perhaps never walk out on a fine evening as long as he lived, without recollecting her; and a disappointment in love that ‘heaves no sigh and sheds no tear,’ may penetrate to the heart, and remain fixed there ever after. Hæret lateri lethalis arundo. The blow is felt only by reflection, the rebound is fatal. Our feelings become more ideal; the impression of the moment is less violent, but the effect is more general and permanent. Those whom we love best, take nearly the same rank in our estimation as the heroine of a favourite novel! Indeed, after all, compared with the genuine feelings of nature, ‘clad in flesh and blood,’ with real passions and affections, conversant about real objects, the life of a mere man of letters and sentiment appears to be at best but a living death; a dim twilight existence: a sort of wandering about in an Elysian fields of our own making; a refined, spiritual, disembodied state, like that of the ghosts of Homer’s heroes, who, we are told, would gladly have exchanged situations with the meanest peasant upon earth![62]
With the help of art and science, everything reaches an ideal level. Ideas take the place of realities, and realities fade away into nothingness. Actual events and objects have little or no impact on the mind when it has become used to drawing its strongest interest from constant contemplation. It needs to, in a sense, recollect itself—it should tap into its internal resources and refine its feelings—put the object at a distance and embellish it as it pleases. Gradually, everything turns into hints and opportunities for exercising intellectual activity. This is the reason the sentimental Frenchman left his mistress so he could think about her. Cicero stopped mourning the loss of his daughter when he realized how great an opportunity it gave him to write an eulogy in her memory, and Mr. Shandy grieved the death of Master Bobby in a similar way. The insensitivity of authors and others to personal and private misfortunes has often been taken to a ridiculous extreme, but it’s less pronounced than it seems. The essence of philosophy is still not fully understood. For instance, a man who may seem unbothered by the death of a wife or mistress would probably never take a nice evening walk without thinking of her; and a heartbreak that “heaves no sigh and sheds no tear” can still penetrate deep into the heart, remaining there forever. Hæret lateri lethalis arundo. The pain is only felt through reflection, and the rebound can be devastating. Our feelings become more idealized; the impression of the moment may be less intense, but the effect is broader and more lasting. Those we love most hold almost the same place in our hearts as the heroine of a favorite novel! In fact, compared to the genuine feelings of nature, “clad in flesh and blood,” with real passions and affections connected to actual objects, the life of a mere man of letters and sentiment seems to be, at best, a living death; a dull twilight existence: a sort of wandering through Elysian fields of our own making; an elevated, spiritual, disembodied state, like the ghosts of Homer’s heroes, who we are told would have happily swapped places with the humblest peasant on earth![62]
The moral character of men of letters depends very much upon the same principles. All actions are seen through that general medium which reduces them to individual insignificance. Nothing fills or engrosses the mind—nothing seems of sufficient importance to interfere with our present inclination. Prejudices, as well as attachments, lose their hold upon us, and we palter with our duties as we please. Moral obligations, by being perpetually refined upon, and discussed, lose their force and efficacy, become mere dry distinctions of the understanding,
The moral character of writers relies heavily on similar principles. All actions are viewed through a lens that diminishes their individual significance. Nothing occupies or captures the mind—nothing appears important enough to distract us from what we currently want to do. Prejudices and attachments lose their grip on us, and we handle our responsibilities however we like. Moral obligations, by being constantly analyzed and debated, lose their strength and impact, becoming just dry technicalities of thought.
Opposite reasons and consequences balance one another, while appetite 136or interest turns the scale. Hence the severe sarcasm of Rousseau, ‘Tout homme reflechi est mechant.’ In fact, it must be confessed, that, as all things produce their extremes, so excessive refinement tends to produce equal grossness. The tenuity of our intellectual desires leaves a void in the mind which requires to be filled up by coarser gratification, and that of the senses is always at hand. They alone always retain their strength. There is not a greater mistake than the common supposition, that intellectual pleasures are capable of endless repetition, and physical ones not so. The one, indeed, may be spread out over a greater surface, they may be dwelt upon and kept in mind at will, and for that very reason they wear out, and pall by comparison, and require perpetual variety. Whereas the physical gratification only occupies us at the moment, is, as it were, absorbed in itself, and forgotten as soon as it is over, and when it returns is as good as new. No one could ever read the same book for any length of time without being tired of it, but a man is never tired of his meals, however little variety his table may have to boast. This reasoning is equally true of all persons who have given much of their time to study and abstracted speculations. Grossness and sensuality have been marked with no less triumph in the religious devotee than in the professed philosopher. The perfect joys of heaven do not satisfy the cravings of nature; and the good Canon in Gil Blas might be opposed with effect to some of the portraits in M. Grimm’s Correspondence.
Opposite reasons and outcomes balance each other, while appetite or interest tips the scale. This is where Rousseau's harsh sarcasm comes in, ‘Every thoughtful man is wicked..’ In reality, it’s true that just as everything can reach its extremes, excessive refinement can lead to equal coarseness. The thinness of our intellectual desires leaves a gap in the mind that needs to be filled with more basic pleasures, which are always accessible. These pleasures never lose their intensity. It’s a major misconception to believe that intellectual pleasures can be experienced endlessly while physical ones cannot. Intellectual pleasures might be spread out over a wider range—they can be contemplated and recalled at will, but because of that, they wear out and become less appealing, requiring constant variety. On the other hand, physical pleasure only occupies us in the moment; it is, in a way, self-contained and forgotten as soon as it’s over, and when it comes back, it feels as good as new. No one can read the same book for long without getting bored, but a person never tires of eating, no matter how little variety their meals have. This reasoning applies to anyone who has dedicated a lot of time to study and abstract thinking. Coarseness and sensuality have triumphed just as much in religious devotees as in professional philosophers. The perfect joys of heaven don’t satisfy the natural cravings, and the good Canon in Gil Blas could effectively counter some of the portrayals in M. Grimm’s Correspondence.
No. 34.] ON COMMON-PLACE CRITICS [Nov. 24, 1816.
We have already given some account of common-place people; we shall in this number attempt a description of another class of the community, who may be called (by way of distinction) common-place critics. The former are a set of people who have no opinions of their own, and do not pretend to have any; the latter are a set of people who have no opinions of their own, but who affect to have one upon every subject you can mention. The former are a very honest, good sort of people, who are contented to pass for what they are; the latter are a very pragmatical, troublesome sort of people, who would pass for what they are not, and try to put off their common-place notions in all companies and on all subjects, as something of their own. They are of both species, the grave and the gay; and it is hard to say which is the most tiresome.
We’ve already talked about ordinary people; in this issue, we’ll describe another group in the community, which we can call ordinary critics. The first group consists of people who don’t have their own opinions and don’t pretend to. The second group includes people who lack their own opinions but act like they have one on every topic you can think of. The first group is made up of honest, decent people who are fine being who they are; the second group is a rather pompous, annoying bunch who want to seem like something they’re not, trying to pass off their basic ideas in every setting as if they were theirs. They come in both serious and lighthearted forms, and it’s tough to decide which is more annoying.
A common-place critic has something to say upon every occasion, 137and he always tells you either what is not true, or what you knew before, or what is not worth knowing. He is a person who thinks by proxy, and talks by rote. He differs with you, not because he thinks you are in the wrong, but because he thinks somebody else will think so. Nay, it would be well if he stopped here; but he will undertake to misrepresent you by anticipation, lest others should misunderstand you, and will set you right, not only in opinions which you have, but in those which you may be supposed to have. Thus, if you say that Bottom the weaver is a character that has not had justice done to it, he shakes his head, is afraid you will be thought extravagant, and wonders you should think the Midsummer Night’s Dream the finest of all Shakspeare’s plays. He judges of matters of taste and reasoning as he does of dress and fashion, by the prevailing tone of good company; and you would as soon persuade him to give up any sentiment that is current there, as to wear the hind part of his coat before. By the best company, of which he is perpetually talking, he means persons who live on their own estates, and other people’s ideas. By the opinion of the world, to which he pays and expects you to pay great deference, he means that of a little circle of his own, where he hears and is heard. Again, good sense is a phrase constantly in his mouth, by which he does not mean his own sense or that of anybody else, but the opinions of a number of persons who have agreed to take their opinions on trust from others. If any one observes that there is something better than common sense, viz., uncommon sense, he thinks this a bad joke. If you object to the opinions of the majority, as often arising from ignorance or prejudice, he appeals from them to the sensible and well-informed; and if you say there may be other persons as sensible and well informed as himself and his friends, he smiles at your presumption. If you attempt to prove anything to him, it is in vain, for he is not thinking of what you say, but of what will be thought of it. The stronger your reasons, the more incorrigible he thinks you; and he looks upon any attempt to expose his gratuitous assumptions as the wandering of a disordered imagination. His notions are like plaster figures cast in a mould, as brittle as they are hollow; but they will break before you can make them give way. In fact, he is the representative of a large part of the community, the shallow, the vain, and indolent, of those who have time to talk, and are not bound to think: and he considers any deviation from the select forms of common-place, or the accredited language of conventional impertinence, as compromising the authority under which he acts in his diplomatic capacity. It is wonderful how this class of people agree with one another; how they herd together in all their opinions; what a tact they have for 138folly; what an instinct for absurdity; what a sympathy in sentiment; how they find one another out by infallible signs, like Freemasons! The secret of this unanimity and strict accord is, that not any one of them ever admits any opinion that can cost the least effort of mind in arriving at, or of courage in declaring it. Folly is as consistent with itself as wisdom: there is a certain level of thought and sentiment, which the weakest minds, as well as the strongest, find out as best adapted to them; and you as regularly come to the same conclusions, by looking no farther than the surface, as if you dug to the centre of the earth! You know beforehand what a critic of this class will say on almost every subject the first time he sees you, the next time, the time after that, and so on to the end of the chapter. The following list of his opinions may be relied on:—It is pretty certain that before you have been in the room with him ten minutes, he will give you to understand that Shakspeare was a great but irregular genius. Again, he thinks it a question whether any one of his plays, if brought out now for the first time, would succeed. He thinks that Macbeth would be the most likely, from the music which has been since introduced into it. He has some doubts as to the superiority of the French School over us in tragedy, and observes, that Hume and Adam Smith were both of that opinion. He thinks Milton’s pedantry a great blemish in his writings, and that Paradise Lost has many prosaic passages in it. He conceives that genius does not always imply taste, and that wit and judgment are very different faculties. He considers Dr. Johnson as a great critic and moralist, and that his Dictionary was a work of prodigious erudition and vast industry; but that some of the anecdotes of him in Boswell are trifling. He conceives that Mr. Locke was a very original and profound thinker. He thinks Gibbon’s style vigorous but florid. He wonders that the author of Junius was never found out. He thinks Pope’s translation of the Iliad an improvement on the simplicity of the original, which was necessary to fit it to the taste of modern readers. He thinks there is a great deal of grossness in the old comedies; and that there has been a great improvement in the morals of the higher classes since the reign of Charles II. He thinks the reign of Queen Anne the golden period of our literature, but that, upon the whole, we have no English writer equal to Voltaire. He speaks of Boccacio as a very licentious writer, and thinks the wit in Rabelais quite extravagant, though he never read either of them. He cannot get through Spenser’s Fairy Queen, and pronounces all allegorical poetry tedious. He prefers Smollett to Fielding, and discovers more knowledge of the world in Gil Blas than in Don Quixote. Richardson he thinks very minute and tedious. He thinks the French Revolution has done a great 139deal of harm to the cause of liberty; and blames Buonaparte for being so ambitious. He reads the Edinburgh and Quarterly Reviews, and thinks as they do. He is shy of having an opinion on a new actor or a new singer; for the public do not always agree with the newspapers. He thinks that the moderns have great advantages over the ancients in many respects. He thinks Jeremy Bentham a greater man than Aristotle. He can see no reason why artists of the present day should not paint as well as Raphael or Titian. For instance, he thinks there is something very elegant and classical in Mr. Westall’s drawings. He has no doubt that Sir Joshua Reynolds’s Lectures were written by Burke. He considers Horne Tooke’s account of the conjunction That very ingenious, and holds that no writer can be called elegant who uses the present for the subjunctive mood, who says If it is for If it be. He thinks Hogarth a great master of low, comic humour; and Cobbett a coarse, vulgar writer. He often talks of men of liberal education, and men without education, as if that made much difference. He judges of people by their pretensions; and pays attention to their opinions according to their dress and rank in life. If he meets with a fool, he does not find him out; and if he meets with any one wiser than himself, he does not know what to make of him. He thinks that manners are of great consequence to the common intercourse of life. He thinks it difficult to prove the existence of any such thing as original genius, or to fix a general standard of taste. He does not think it possible to define what wit is. In religion, his opinions are liberal. He considers all enthusiasm as a degree of madness, particularly to be guarded against by young minds; and believes that truth lies in the middle, between the extremes of right and wrong. He thinks that the object of poetry is to please; and that astronomy is a very pleasing and useful study. He thinks all this, and a great deal more, that amounts to nothing. We wonder we have remembered one half of it—
A typical critic has something to say on every occasion, 137 and he always tells you either something that's not true, or something you already knew, or something that's not worth knowing. He’s a person who thinks through others and talks by memorization. He disagrees with you, not because he believes you’re wrong, but because he thinks someone else will think that. In fact, it would be better if he just stopped there; but he will go ahead and misrepresent you in advance, so others won’t misunderstand you, and he will correct you, not just on opinions you hold, but on opinions you might be assumed to have. So, if you say that Bottom the weaver is a character that hasn't been given proper recognition, he shakes his head, worried that you’ll be seen as over the top, and wonders how you could consider Midsummer Night’s Dream the best of all Shakespeare’s plays. He judges matters of taste and reasoning like he does fashion trends, based on what’s popular among polite society; and it would be just as easy to convince him to stop holding any current opinion as it would to convince him to wear his coat backward. By the best company, which he constantly talks about, he means people who live off their own wealth and the ideas of others. When he refers to the opinion of the world, to which he expects you to show great respect, he means the opinion of a small circle of his peers, where he shares and receives opinions. Again, the term good sense is always on his lips, but he doesn’t mean his own sense or that of anyone else; he means the beliefs of a group of people who have agreed to take their views on trust from others. If someone points out that there’s something better than common sense, namely, uncommon sense, he sees this as a bad joke. If you challenge the majority's opinions, often based on ignorance or bias, he appeals to the sensible and knowledgeable; and if you suggest that there may be others as sensible and knowledgeable as him and his friends, he smirks at your arrogance. If you try to prove anything to him, it’s useless because he isn’t focused on your points but rather on what others will think of them. The stronger your arguments, the more stubborn he perceives you to be; and he views any attempt to challenge his unwarranted assumptions as the ramblings of a disordered mind. His concepts are like plaster figures cast from a mold, fragile yet hollow; but they break before they can be made to yield. In fact, he symbolizes a large portion of society—those who are shallow, vain, and lazy, who have time to talk without the obligation to think: and he considers any deviation from the accepted norms of ordinary conversation or the traditional language of conventional nonsense as a threat to the authority under which he operates in his diplomatic role. It’s astonishing how this group of people agree with one another; how they cluster around the same opinions; what a knack they have for folly; what an instinct for absurdity; how they connect with each other through unmistakable signs, like Freemasons! The secret behind this agreement and strict harmony is that none of them ever embraces an opinion that requires any real mental effort or courage to express. Folly is just as consistent as wisdom: there’s a certain level of thought and sentiment that both the weakest and the strongest minds identify as most suited to them; and you can reach the same conclusions simply by skimming the surface as easily as if you were digging to the earth's core! You already know what a critic of this type will say on almost any topic the first time you meet him, the next time, and every time after that until the end of the chapter. The following list of his opinions can be trusted:— It’s pretty clear that within ten minutes of being in a room with him, he will inform you that Shakespeare was a great but irregular genius. He also questions whether any of his plays would succeed if they were released for the first time today. He believes that Macbeth would likely have the best chance, due to the music that has been added to it since. He has some doubts about the superiority of the French School over ours in tragedy and notes that Hume and Adam Smith shared that view. He considers Milton’s pedantry a major flaw in his writings, claiming that Paradise Lost contains many dull passages. He thinks that genius doesn’t always mean having taste, and that wit and judgment are quite different abilities. He regards Dr. Johnson as a significant critic and moralist, believing that his Dictionary was a remarkable work of extensive learning and hard work; but that some of the anecdotes about him in Boswell are trivial. He believes Mr. Locke was a very original and deep thinker. He finds Gibbon’s style strong but overly ornate. He is puzzled that the author of Junius was never identified. He believes Pope’s translation of the Iliad improves upon the simplicity of the original, as it was necessary for modern readers' tastes. He thinks there’s a lot of vulgarity in old comedies and that the morals of the upper classes have greatly improved since the reign of Charles II. He sees the reign of Queen Anne as the golden age of our literature, but overall thinks we have no English author who can match Voltaire. He refers to Boccaccio as a very raunchy writer and considers Rabelais’s wit to be completely excessive, despite never having read either of them. He struggles with Spenser’s Fairy Queen and declares all allegorical poetry tedious. He prefers Smollett to Fielding and detects more worldly knowledge in Gil Blas than in Don Quixote. He finds Richardson very detailed and dull. He believes the French Revolution has done a lot of damage to the cause of freedom and criticizes Buonaparte for being too ambitious. He reads the Edinburgh and Quarterly Reviews, and aligns his opinions with theirs. He hesitates to voice opinions about new actors or singers because the public doesn’t always agree with the newspapers. He believes that modern artists have many advantages over the ancients. He thinks Jeremy Bentham is a greater thinker than Aristotle. He sees no reason why contemporary artists shouldn’t paint as well as Raphael or Titian. For example, he believes Mr. Westall’s drawings are very elegant and classical. He is absolutely convinced that Sir Joshua Reynolds's Lectures were written by Burke. He finds Horne Tooke’s explanation of the conjunction That very clever and asserts that no writer can be considered elegant if he uses the present for the subjunctive mood, such as saying If it is instead of If it be. He thinks Hogarth is a master of low, comic humor, while seeing Cobbett as a crude, vulgar writer. He frequently talks about men of refined education and those without education, as if that made a significant difference. He judges people by their claims and pays more attention to their opinions based on their attire and social status. If he encounters a fool, he fails to recognize it; and if he meets someone wiser than himself, he is at a loss. He thinks manners are crucial for everyday interactions. He finds it hard to prove the existence of anything like original genius or to establish a universal standard of taste. He doesn't believe it's possible to define what wit is. In terms of religion, his views are liberal. He sees all enthusiasm as a kind of madness, especially a condition to be avoided by young minds; and he believes truth exists in the balance, between extremes of right and wrong. He thinks poetry should aim to please, and that astronomy is a fascinating and beneficial field of study. He believes all this, and much more, that ultimately amounts to nothing. We’re amazed we’ve recalled half of it—
Though he has an aversion to all new ideas, he likes all new plans and matters-of-fact: the new Schools for All, the Penitentiary, the new Bedlam, the new Steam-Boats, the Gas-Lights, the new Patent Blacking; every thing of that sort but the Bible Society. The Society for the Suppression of Vice he thinks a great nuisance, as every honest man must.
Though he dislikes all new ideas, he enjoys all new plans and practical matters: the new Schools for All, the Penitentiary, the new Bedlam, the new Steam-Boats, the Gas-Lights, the new Patent Blacking; everything like that except the Bible Society. He thinks the Society for the Suppression of Vice is a huge nuisance, as any honest person would.
In a word, a common-place critic is the pedant of polite conversation. He refers to the opinion of Lord M. or Lady G. with the same air of significance that the learned pedant does to the authority 140of Cicero or Virgil; retails the wisdom of the day, as the anecdote-monger does the wit; and carries about with him the sentiments of people of a certain respectability in life, as the dancing-master does their air, or their valets their clothes.
In short, a typical critic is like the know-it-all of social conversations. He brings up the views of Lord M. or Lady G. with the same seriousness that an academic does when quoting Cicero or Virgil; he shares the popular ideas of the time, just like a storyteller shares clever remarks; and he carries around the opinions of well-respected people as a dance instructor carries their style or as their servants carry their outfits.
No. 35.] ON THE CATALOGUE RAISONNÉ OF THE BRITISH INSTITUTION [Nov. 10, 1816.
The Catalogue Raisonné of the pictures lately exhibited at the British Institution is worthy of notice, both as it is understood to be a declaration of the views of the Royal Academy, and as it contains some erroneous notions with respect to art prevalent in this country. It sets out with the following passages:—
The Catalog Raisonné of the paintings recently displayed at the British Institution is noteworthy, as it is believed to express the opinions of the Royal Academy and includes some misconceptions about art that are commonly held in this country. It begins with the following statements:—
‘The first resolution ever framed by the noblemen and gentlemen who met to establish the British Institution, consists of the following sentence, viz.:
‘The first resolution ever created by the noblemen and gentlemen who gathered to establish the British Institution is as follows:
‘“The object of the establishment is to facilitate, by a Public Exhibition, the Sale of the productions of British artists.”
‘“The purpose of the establishment is to make it easier, through a Public Exhibition, to sell the works of British artists.”’
‘Now, if the Directors had not felt quite certain as to the result of the present Exhibition, (of the Flemish School), if they had not perfectly satisfied themselves, that, instead of affording any, even the least means of promoting unfair and invidious comparisons, it would produce abundant matter for exaltation to the living Artist, can we possibly imagine they, the foster-parents of British Art, would ever have suffered such a display to have taken place? Certainly not. If they had not foreseen and fully provided against all such injurious results, by the deep and masterly manœuvre alluded to in our former remarks, is it conceivable that the Directors would have acted in a way so counter, so diametrically in opposition to this their fundamental and leading principle? No, No! It is a position which all sense of respect for their consistency will not suffer us to admit, which all feelings of respect for their views forbid us to allow.
‘Now, if the Directors hadn’t been absolutely sure about the outcome of the current Exhibition (of the Flemish School), and if they hadn’t completely convinced themselves that instead of enabling any unfair or unflattering comparisons, it would actually provide plenty of material to celebrate the living Artist, could we possibly think they, the champions of British Art, would have allowed such an exhibition to happen? Certainly not. If they hadn’t anticipated and fully guarded against all those harmful outcomes, with the clever and skillful strategy mentioned in our earlier comments, is it conceivable that the Directors would have acted in such a contrary, fundamentally opposite manner to their core principle? No, no! It’s a notion that all sense of respect for their consistency prevents us from accepting, and all feelings of respect for their intentions forbid us to permit.’
‘Is it at all to be wondered at, that, in an Exhibition such as this, where nothing like a patriotic desire to uphold the arts of their country can possibly have place in the minds of the Directors, we should attribute to them the desire of holding up the old Masters to derision, inasmuch as good policy would allow? Is it to be wondered at, that, when the Directors have the three-fold prospect, by so doing, of estranging the silly and ignorant Collector from his false and senseless infatuation for the Black Masters, of turning his unjust preference from Foreign to British Art, and, by affording the living painters a just encouragement, teach them to feel that becoming confidence in their 141powers, which an acknowledgment of their merits entitles them to? Is it to be wondered at, we say, that a little duplicity should have been practised upon this occasion, that some of our ill-advised Collectors and second-rate picture Amateurs should have been singled out as sheep for the sacrifice, and thus ingeniously made to pay unwilling homage to the talents of their countrymen, through that very medium by which they had previously been induced to depreciate them?’—‘If, in our wish to please the Directors, we should, without mercy, damn all that deserves damning, and effectually hide our admiration for those pieces and passages which are truly entitled to admiration, it must be placed entirely to that patriotic sympathy, which we feel in common with the Directors, of holding up to the public, as the first and great object, THE PATRONAGE OF MODERN ART.’
‘Is it really surprising that in an Exhibition like this, where the Directors likely have no genuine patriotic motivation to support the arts of their country, we might assume they want to mock the old Masters as much as policy allows? Is it surprising that the Directors see a three-fold opportunity in doing so: to alienate the silly and ignorant Collectors from their misguided obsession with the Black Masters, to shift their unjust preference from foreign art to British art, and to properly encourage living painters, helping them gain the confidence they deserve from being recognized for their merits? Is it surprising, we ask, that a bit of deceit might be involved here, singling out some misguided Collectors and second-rate art enthusiasts to be the scapegoats, thus cleverly forcing them to give reluctant praise to the talents of their fellow countrymen through the very means they were previously led to depreciate them? If, in our effort to appease the Directors, we were to indiscriminately condemn everything that deserves it and completely hide our admiration for pieces and passages truly worthy of praise, it would be entirely due to that patriotic sympathy we share with the Directors in showcasing, as the primary goal, Support for Modern Art.’
Once more:
Once more:
‘Who does not perceive (except those whose eyes are not made for seeing more than they are told by others) that Vandyke’s portraits, by the brilliant colour of the velvet hangings, are made to look as if they had been newly fetched home from the clear-starcher, with a double portion of blue in their ruffs? Who does not see, that the angelic females in Rubens’s pictures (particularly in that of the Brazen Serpent) labour under a fit of the bile, twice as severe as they would do, if they were not suffering on red velvet? Who does not see, from the same cause, that the landscapes by the same Master are converted into brown studies, and that Rembrandt’s ladies and gentlemen of fashion look as if they had been on duty for the whole of last week in the Prince Regent’s new sewer? And who, that has any penetration, that has any gratitude, does not see, in seeing all this, the anxious and benevolent solicitude of the Directors to keep the old masters under?’
‘Who doesn’t notice (except those whose eyes can’t see beyond what they’re told by others) that Vandyke’s portraits, thanks to the bright colors of the velvet backdrops, look as if they’ve just come back from the dry cleaner, with an extra dose of blue in their ruffs? Who can’t see that the angelic women in Rubens’s paintings (especially in the one of the Brazen Serpent) are suffering from a case of the jitters, even worse than they would if they weren’t surrounded by red velvet? Who doesn’t notice, for the same reason, that the landscapes by the same artist turn into brown studies, and that Rembrandt’s stylish men and women appear as if they've been stuck on duty for the whole of last week in the Prince Regent’s new sewer? And who, with any insight or gratitude, doesn’t see, in witnessing all this, the anxious and caring effort of the Directors to keep the old masters in line?’
So, then, this Writer would think it a matter of lively gratitude, and of exultation in the breasts of living Artists, if the Directors, ‘in their anxious and benevolent desire to keep the old Masters under,’ had contrived to make Vandyke’s pictures look like starch and blue: if they had converted Rubens’s pictures into brown studies, or a fit of the bile; or had dragged Rembrandt’s through the Prince Regent’s new sewers. It would have been a great gain, a great triumph to the Academy and to the Art, to have nothing left of all the pleasure or admiration which those painters had hitherto imparted to the world, to find all the excellences which their works had been supposed to possess, and all respect for them in the minds of the public destroyed, and converted into sudden loathing and disgust. This is, according to the Catalogue-writer and his friends, a consummation devoutly to be wished for themselves and for the Art. All that is taken from 142the old Masters is so much added to the moderns; the marring of Art is the making of the Academy. This is the kind of patronage and promotion of the Fine Arts on which he insists as necessary to keep up the reputation of living Artists, and to ensure the sale of their works. There is nothing then in common between the merits of the old Masters and the doubtful claims of the new: those are not ‘the scale by which we can ascend to the love’ of these. The excellences of the latter are of their own making and of their own seeing; we must take their own word for them; and not only so, but we must sacrifice all established principles and all established reputation to their upstart pretensions, because, if the old pictures are not totally worthless, their own can be good for nothing. The only chance, therefore, for the moderns, if the Catalogue-writer is to be believed, is to decry all the chef-d’œuvres of the Art, and to hold up all the great names in it to derision. If the public once get to relish the style of the old Masters, they will no longer tolerate theirs. But so long as the old Masters can be kept under, the coloured caricatures of the moderns, like Mrs. Peachum’s coloured handkerchiefs, ‘will be of sure sale at their warehouse at Redriff.’ The Catalogue-writer thinks it necessary, in order to raise the Art in this country, to depreciate all Art in all other times and countries. He thinks that the way to excite an enthusiastic admiration of genius in the public is by setting the example of a vulgar and malignant hatred of it in himself. He thinks to inspire a lofty spirit of emulation in the rising generation, by shutting his eyes to the excellences of all the finest models, or by pouring out upon them the overflowings of his gall and envy, to disfigure them in the eyes of others; so that they may see nothing in Raphael, in Titian, in Rubens, in Rembrandt, in Vandyke, in Claude Lorraine, in Leonardo da Vinci, but the low wit and dirty imagination of a paltry scribbler; and come away from the greatest monuments of human capacity, without one feeling of excellence in art, or of beauty or grandeur in nature. Nay, he would persuade us that this is a great public and private benefit, viz., that there is no such thing as excellence, as genius, as true fame, except what he and his anonymous associates arrogate to themselves, with all the profit and credit of this degradation of genius, this ruin of Art, this obloquy and contempt heaped on great and unrivalled reputation. He thinks it a likely mode of producing confidence in the existence and value of Art, to prove that there never was any such thing, till the last annual Exhibition of the Royal Academy. He would encourage a disinterested love of Art, and a liberal patronage of it in the great and opulent, by shewing that the living Artists have no regard, but the most sovereign and reckless contempt for it, except as it can be made a 143temporary stalking-horse to their pride and avarice. The writer may have a patriotic sympathy with the sale of modern works of Art, but we do not see what sympathy there can be between the buyers and sellers of these works, except in the love of the Art itself. When we find that these patriotic persons would destroy the Art itself to promote the sale of their pictures, we know what to say to them. We are obliged to the zeal of our critic for having set this matter in so clear a light. The public will feel little sympathy with a body of Artists who disclaim all sympathy with all other Artists. They will doubt their pretensions to genius who have no feeling of respect for it in others; they will consider them as bastards, not children of the Art, who would destroy their parent. The public will hardly consent, when the proposition is put to them in this tangible shape, to give up the cause of liberal art and of every liberal sentiment connected with it, and enter, with their eyes open, into a pettifogging cabal to keep the old Masters under, or hold their names up to derision ‘as good sport,’ merely to gratify the selfish importunity of a gang of sturdy beggars, who demand public encouragement and support, with a claim of settlement in one hand, and a forged certificate of merit in the other. They can only deserve well of the public by deserving well of the Art. Have we taken these men from the plough, from the counter, from the shop-board, from the tap-room and the stable-door, to raise them to fortune, to rank, and distinction in life, for the sake of Art, to give them a chance of doing something in Art like what had been done before them, of promoting and refining the public taste, of setting before them the great models of Art, and by a pure love of truth and beauty, and by patient and disinterested aspirations after it, of rising to the highest excellence, and of making themselves ‘a name great above all names’; and do they now turn round upon us, and because they have neglected these high objects of their true calling for pitiful cabals and filling their pockets, insist that we shall league with them in crushing the progress of Art, and the respect attached to all its great efforts? There is no other country in the world in which such a piece of impudent quackery could be put forward with impunity, and still less in which it could be put forward in the garb of patriotism. This is the effect of our gross island manners. The Catalogue-writer carries his bear-garden notions of this virtue into the Fine Arts, and would set about destroying Dutch or Italian pictures as he would Dutch shipping or Italian liberty. He goes up to the Rembrandts with the same swaggering Jack-tar airs as he would to a battery of nine-pounders, and snaps his fingers at Raphael as he would at the French. Yet he talks big about the Elgin Marbles, because Mr. Payne Knight has made a slip on that subject; though, 144to be consistent, he ought to be for pounding them in a mortar, should get his friend the Incendiary to set fire to the room building for them at the British Museum, or should get Mr. Soane to build it. Patriotism and the Fine Arts have nothing to do with one another—because patriotism relates to exclusive advantages, and the advantages of the Fine Arts are not exclusive, but communicable. The physical property of one country cannot be shared without loss by another: the physical force of one country may destroy that of another. These, therefore, are objects of national jealousy and fear of encroachment: for the interests or rights of different countries may be compromised in them. But it is not so in the Fine Arts, which depend upon taste and knowledge. We do not consume the works of Art as articles of food, of clothing, or fuel; but we brood over their idea, which is accessible to all, and may be multiplied without end, ‘with riches fineless.’ Patriotism is ‘beastly; subtle as the fox for prey; like warlike as the wolf for what it eats’; but Art is ideal, and therefore liberal. The knowledge or perfection of Art in one age or country is the cause of its existence or perfection in another. Art is the cause of art in other men. Works of genius done by a Dutchman are the cause of genius in an Englishman—are the cause of taste in an Englishman. The patronage of foreign Art is, not to prevent, but to promote Art in England. It does not prevent, but promote taste in England. Art subsists by communication, not by exclusion. The light of art, like that of nature, shines on all alike; and its benefit, like that of the sun, is in being seen and felt. The spirit of art is not the spirit of trade: it is not a question between the grower or consumer of some perishable and personal commodity: but it is a question between human genius and human taste, how much the one can produce for the benefit of mankind, and how much the other can enjoy. It is ‘the link of peaceful commerce ‘twixt dividable shores.’ To take from it this character is to take from it its best privilege, its humanity. Would any one, except our Catalogue-virtuoso, think of destroying or concealing the monuments of Art in past ages, as inconsistent with the progress of taste and civilisation in the present? Would any one find fault with the introduction of the works of Raphael into this country, as if their being done by an Italian confined the benefit to a foreign country, when all the benefit, all the great and lasting benefit, (except the purchase-money, the lasting burden of the Catalogue, and the great test of the value of Art in the opinion of the writer), is instantly communicated to all eyes that behold, and all hearts that can feel them? It is many years ago since we first saw the prints of the Cartoons hung round the parlour of a little inn on the great north road. We were then very young, 145and had not been initiated into the principles of taste and refinement of the Catalogue Raisonné. We had heard of the fame of the Cartoons, but this was the first time that we had ever been admitted face to face into the presence of those divine works. ‘How were we then uplifted!’ Prophets and Apostles stood before us, and the Saviour of the Christian world, with his attributes of faith and power; miracles were working on the walls; the hand of Raphael was there, and as his pencil traced the lines, we saw god-like spirits and lofty shapes descend and walk visibly the earth, but as if their thoughts still lifted them above the earth. There was that figure of St. Paul, pointing with noble fervour to ‘temples not made with hands, eternal in the heavens,’ and that finer one of Christ in the boat, whose whole figure seems sustained by meekness and love, and that of the same person, surrounded by the disciples, like a flock of sheep listening to the music of some divine shepherd. We knew not how enough to admire them. If from this transport and delight there arose in our breasts a wish, a deep aspiration of mingled hope and fear, to be able one day to do something like them, that hope has long since vanished; but not with it the love of Art, nor delight in works of Art, nor admiration of the genius which produces them, nor respect for fame which rewards and crowns them! Did we suspect that in this feeling of enthusiasm for the works of Raphael we were deficient in patriotic sympathy, or that, in spreading it as far as we could, we did an injury to our country or to living Art? The very feeling shewed that there was no such distinction in Art, that her benefits were common, that the power of genius, like the spirit of the world, is everywhere alike present. And would the harpies of criticism try to extinguish this common benefit to their country from a pretended exclusive attachment to their countrymen? Would they rob their country of Raphael to set up the credit of their professional little-goes and E. O. tables—‘cutpurses of the Art, that from the shelf the precious diadem stole, and put it in their pockets’? Tired of exposing such folly, we walked out the other day, and saw a bright cloud resting on the bosom of the blue expanse, which reminded us of what we had seen in some picture in the Louvre. We were suddenly roused from our reverie, by recollecting that till we had answered this catchpenny publication we had no right, without being liable to a charge of disaffection to our country or treachery to the Art, to look at nature, or to think of any thing like it in Art, not of British growth and manufacture!
So, this writer would consider it a matter of vibrant gratitude and excitement for current artists if the Directors, in their eager and well-meaning effort to keep the old masters down, had managed to make Vandyke's paintings appear stiff and washed out: if they had turned Rubens's works into dull, boring sketches or made Rembrandt’s art look like it came from the Prince Regent's latest sewer renovations. It would have been a huge win, a great victory for the Academy and for Art, to erase all the joy and admiration those painters had given to the world, to destroy all the qualities their works were believed to have, and to replace respect for them in the public’s mind with instant revulsion. According to the Catalogue-writer and his supporters, this is something they eagerly wish for themselves and for the Art. Everything taken from the old masters only serves to benefit the moderns; the corruption of Art fuels the Academy's existence. This is the kind of support and promotion of the Fine Arts he argues is necessary to uphold the reputation of contemporary artists and to guarantee the sale of their works. There's no connection between the achievements of the old masters and the questionable claims of the new; those aren't the standard by which we can grow to appreciate these. The strengths of the new are self-made and self-perceived; we must simply take their word for it; moreover, we must sacrifice all established principles and respected reputations to support their self-serving aspirations, because if the old paintings have any worth, then theirs must be worthless. Therefore, the only way for the moderns, if we are to believe the Catalogue-writer, is to denounce all the masterpieces of Art and mock all the great names in it. Once the public starts to appreciate the style of the old masters, they won’t tolerate the new. But as long as the old masters can be kept down, the gaudy caricatures of the moderns, much like Mrs. Peachum's colorful handkerchiefs, will continue to sell well at their shop in Redriff. The Catalogue-writer believes that to elevate Art in this country, it's necessary to belittle all Art from every other time and place. He thinks the way to stir public admiration for genius is to demonstrate a crude and malicious hatred for it himself. He imagines he can inspire a high spirit of competition in the upcoming generation by ignoring the strengths of the finest examples or by pouring out his bile and envy upon them to taint how others see them; so that they may see nothing in Raphael, Titian, Rubens, Rembrandt, Vandyke, Claude Lorraine, or Leonardo da Vinci, except the petty wit and dirty imagination of a lowly hack; and walk away from the greatest achievements of human ability without feeling any appreciation for Art or any sense of beauty and greatness found in nature. In fact, he would persuade us that this is a grand benefit to the public and to individuals, namely, that there is no real excellence, genius, or true fame, except what he and his anonymous comrades claim for themselves, reaping all the profits and recognition from this degradation of genius, this destruction of Art, this vitriol and scorn heaped upon unparalleled reputation. He believes a likely method of fostering confidence in the existence and worth of Art is to prove that there has never been any such thing, until the last annual Exhibition of the Royal Academy. He wants to encourage a disinterested love for Art and generous support for it from the affluent by showing that living artists have no regard, but the most serious and wanton disrespect for it, except as it can serve as a temporary crutch for their pride and greed. The writer may feel a patriotic sympathy toward the sale of modern art, but we don’t see what common ground there could possibly be between the buyers and sellers of these works, other than a shared love for the Art itself. When we find that these patriotic individuals would rather destroy the Art itself to enhance the sale of their paintings, we know exactly what to say to them. We owe thanks to our critic for shedding such clear light on this issue. The public will feel little sympathy for a group of artists who deny all sympathy for other artists. They will doubt the claims to genius of those who feel no respect for it in others; they will regard them as usurpers, not true children of Art, who would seek to destroy their creator. The public will hardly agree, when the proposition is presented to them in such a clear manner, to abandon the cause of refined art and every noble sentiment associated with it, and instead join, with their eyes wide open, a petty conspiracy to keep the old masters down, or to ridicule their names as mere entertainment, just to satisfy the selfish demands of a band of stubborn beggars, who seek public support with one hand while clutching a fabricated certificate of merit with the other. They can only do well by the public if they do well by the Art. Did we take these individuals from the plow, from the shop, from the bar, and from the stables, to elevate them to wealth, rank, and distinction in life, for the sake of Art, to give them the chance to create something in art like what had come before, promoting and refining public taste, presenting the great works of Art, and through a genuine love for truth and beauty, and by patient and unselfish striving towards it, rise to the highest excellence, and make themselves ‘a name greater than all names’; and now they turn against us, and because they have neglected these high aims of their true calling for trivial conspiracies and to line their own pockets, they insist that we must join them in suffocating the advancement of Art, and the respect granted to all its great endeavors? There isn't another country in the world where such brazen quackery could be presented without repercussions, and even less where it could be cast in the guise of patriotism. This reflects our crude island manners. The Catalogue-writer imposes his rough notions of virtue onto the Fine Arts, aiming to destroy Dutch or Italian art just like he would Dutch shipping or Italian freedom. He approaches the Rembrandts with the same cocky bravado he would exhibit to a line of nine-pound cannons, snapping his fingers at Raphael like he would at the French. Yet, he boasts about the Elgin Marbles, simply because Mr. Payne Knight made a blunder on that topic; though, to be consistent, he should advocate for grinding them into powder, should enlist his friend the Arsonist to burn down the room built for them at the British Museum, or should ask Mr. Soane to create it. Patriotism and the Fine Arts have nothing in common—because patriotism pertains to exclusive advantages, while the benefits of the Fine Arts are not exclusive but universally accessible. The physical assets of one country cannot be shared without loss to another: the physical force of one nation can overpower that of another. These, therefore, are matters of national jealousy and fear of invasion: the interests or rights of different nations may be compromised by them. But that's not the case with the Fine Arts, which thrive on taste and understanding. We don’t consume works of Art like food, clothing, or fuel; instead, we ponder their idea, which is available to everyone and can multiply endlessly, ‘with boundless richness.’ Patriotism is ‘beastly; cunning as a fox in search of prey; as warlike as a wolf for its dinner’; but Art is ideal, and thus liberating. The mastery or refinement of Art in one era or nation helps to nurture its existence or refinement in another. Art inspires art in others. Works of genius created by a Dutch artist inspire genius in an English artist—fueling taste in an Englishman. Supporting foreign Art is not about hindering but rather fostering Art in England. It doesn’t diminish but enhances taste in England. Art thrives through sharing, not exclusion. The light of art, akin to that of nature, shines equally on all; its benefit, like that of the sun, is felt and seen by all. The spirit of art isn’t about commerce; it’s not a debate between the producer or consumer of some fleeting, personal good; it’s a conversation between human genius and human taste regarding how much the former can offer for the good of humanity, and how much the latter can appreciate. It’s ‘the bridge of gentle trade between divided shores.’ To strip it of this character is to rob it of its greatest quality, its humanity. Would anyone, apart from our Catalogue-expert, contemplate destroying or hiding the monuments of Art from past ages, claiming them to be at odds with the growth of taste and civilization today? Would anyone object to the introduction of Raphael's works into this country as if their Italian origin limited the benefit to a foreign nation, when all the benefit, all the significant and enduring benefit (apart from the purchase price, the lasting burden of the Catalogue, and the ultimate test of the value of Art according to the writer), is immediately shared with every eye that views them, and every heart that can feel their impact? Years ago, we first saw prints of the Cartoons displayed in the parlor of a small inn along the great northern road. We were very young then and hadn’t yet been initiated into taste and refinement principles outlined in the Catalog Raisonné. We had heard of the Cartoons' fame, but this was the first time we had come face-to-face with those divine works. ‘How uplifted we felt!’ Prophets and Apostles appeared before us, and the Savior of the Christian world, exuding faith and power; miracles unfolded on the walls; the hand of Raphael was present, and as his pencil traced the lines, we saw godly spirits and magnificent figures come down and walk visibly on earth, as if their thoughts still lifted them above it. There was that depiction of St. Paul, nobly pointing to ‘temples not built by human hands, eternal in the heavens,’ and that more delicate image of Christ in a boat, whose entire form radiates meekness and love, along with that scene of Christ among the disciples, like a flock of sheep listening to the melody of a divine shepherd. We couldn't help but admire them. If from this joy and wonder arose within us a wish, a profound longing combined with hope and fear, to someday create something similar, that hope has long since faded; but not the love for Art, nor the delight in artistic works, nor admiration for the genius that produces them, nor respect for the fame that rewards and honors them! Did we ever suspect that in this feeling of enthusiasm for Raphael's works we were lacking in patriotic sentiment, or that by spreading this appreciation as far as we could, we were somehow harming our country or living Art? This very feeling proved that no such division existed in Art, that her advantages were universal, and that the power of genius, much like the spirit of the world, is present everywhere. And would the vultures of criticism attempt to extinguish this universal benefit to their nation under a false claim of loyalty to their fellow countrymen? Would they rob their own people of Raphael to elevate the standing of their mediocre professionals and E. O. tables—‘cutpurses of Art, who steal the precious crown from the shelf and stash it in their pockets’? Tired of exposing such nonsense, we went out the other day, and saw a bright cloud resting on the surface of the blue sky, reminding us of something we had seen in a painting at the Louvre. We were abruptly pulled from our daydream, recalling that until we responded to this money-grabbing publication, we had no right, without being accused of disloyalty to our country or betrayal of Art, to appreciate nature, or to think of anything resembling it in Art that wasn't British-made!
No. 36.] THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED [Nov. 10, 1816.
The Catalogue-writer nicknames the Flemish painters ‘the Black Masters.’ Either this means that the works of Rubens and Vandyke were originally black pictures, that is, deeply shadowed like those of Rembrandt, which is false, there being no painter who used so little shadow as Vandyke, or so much colour as Rubens; or it must mean that their pictures have turned darker with time, that is, that the art itself is a black art. Is this a triumph for the Academy? Is the defect and decay of Art a subject of exultation to the national genius? Then there is no hope (in this country at least) ‘that a great man’s memory may outlive him half a year!’ Do they calculate that the decomposition and gradual disappearance of the standard works of Art will quicken the demand, and facilitate the sale of modern pictures? Have they no hope of immortality themselves, that they are glad to see the inevitable dissolution of all that has long flourished in splendour and in honour? They are pleased to find, that at the end of near two hundred years, the pictures of Vandyke and Rubens have suffered half as much from time as those of their late President have done in thirty or forty, or their own in the last ten or twelve years. So that the glory of painting is that it does not last for ever: it is this which puts the ancients and the moderns on a level. They hail with undisguised satisfaction the approaches of the slow mouldering hand of time in those works which have lasted longest, not anticipating the premature fate of their own. Such is their short-sighted ambition. A picture is with them like the frame it is in, as good as new; and the best picture, that which was last painted. They make the weak side of Art the test of its excellence; and though a modern picture of two years standing is hardly fit to be seen, from the general ignorance of the painter in the mechanical as well as other parts of the Art, yet they are sure at any time to get the start of Rubens or Vandyke, by painting a picture against the day of exhibition. We even question whether they would wish to make their own pictures last if they could, and whether they would not destroy their own works as well as those of others, (like chalk figures on the floors), to have new ones bespoke the next day. The Flemish pictures then, except those of Rembrandt, were not originally black; they have not faded in proportion to the length of time they have been painted. All that comes then of the nickname in the Catalogue is, that the pictures of the old Masters have lasted longer than those of the present members of the Royal Academy, and that the latter, it is to be 147presumed, do not wish their works to last so long, lest they should be called the Black Masters. With respect to Rembrandt, this epitaph may be literally true. But, we would ask, whether the style of chiaroscuro, in which Rembrandt painted, is not one fine view of nature and of art? Whether any other painter carried it to the same height of perfection as he did? Whether any other painter ever joined the same depth of shadow with the same clearness? Whether his tones were not as fine as they were true? Whether a more thorough master of his art ever lived? Whether he deserved for this to be nicknamed by the Writer of the Catalogue, or to have his works ‘kept under, or himself held up to derision,’ by the Patrons and Directors of the British Institution for the support and encouragement of the Fine Arts?
The Catalogue-writer calls the Flemish painters “the Black Masters.” This could mean that the works of Rubens and Vandyke were originally dark, heavily shadowed like those of Rembrandt, which isn’t true, since Vandyke used very little shadow and Rubens used a lot of color; or it might mean that their pictures have darkened over time, suggesting that the art itself is a black art. Is this a win for the Academy? Is the decline and decay of Art something to celebrate for the national spirit? If so, there’s no hope (at least in this country) that “a great man’s memory may outlive him half a year!” Do they think that the breakdown and gradual fading of standard works of Art will boost demand and make it easier to sell modern pictures? Do they have no hope of their own legacy, celebrating the inevitable decline of all that has thrived in beauty and honor? They are pleased to find that after nearly two hundred years, Vandyke’s and Rubens’ paintings haven’t deteriorated much more than those of their late President in thirty or forty years, or their own over the last ten or twelve years. So the glory of painting is that it doesn’t last forever: this is what levels the ancients and the moderns. They openly welcome the slow, rotting hand of time in works that have endured longest, not anticipating the premature fate of their own. Such is their short-sighted ambition. To them, a picture is like its frame, as good as new; and the best picture is the latest one painted. They measure the weakness of Art as the standard of its excellence; even though a modern picture that's two years old is hardly worth seeing due to the general ignorance of the painter in both the mechanical and other aspects of the Art, they always manage to outdo Rubens or Vandyke by painting a picture just before the exhibition. We even wonder if they would want their own pictures to last if they could, or if they would rather destroy their own works, as well as others' (like chalk figures on the floor), to have new ones commissioned the next day. The Flemish pictures, except for those of Rembrandt, were not originally dark; they haven’t faded in proportion to how long they’ve been painted. So the nickname in the Catalogue indicates only that the old Masters’ works have lasted longer than those of the current members of the Royal Academy, and it seems they do not want their works to last that long, for fear of being called the Black Masters. Regarding Rembrandt, this might actually be true. But we must ask whether the style of chiaroscuro, in which Rembrandt painted, offers a fine view of nature and art? Did any other painter achieve the same level of perfection? Did any other painter ever combine such deep shadow with such clarity? Were his tones not as beautiful as they were accurate? Was there ever a more complete master of his art? Did he deserve to be nicknamed by the Catalogue Writer, or have his works “kept under, or himself ridiculed,” by the Patrons and Directors of the British Institution for supporting and promoting the Fine Arts?
But we have heard it said by a disciple and commentator on the Catalogue, (one would think it was hardly possible to descend lower than the writer himself), that the Directors of the British Institution assume a consequence to themselves, hostile to the pretensions of modern professors, out of the reputation of the old Masters, whom they affect to look upon with wonder, to worship as something preternatural;—that they consider the bare possession of an old picture as a title to distinction, and the respect paid to Art as the highest pretension of the owner. And is this then a subject of complaint with the Academy, that genius is thus thought of, when its claims are once fully established? That those high qualities, which are beyond the estimate of ignorance and selfishness while living, receive their reward from distant ages? Do they not ‘feel the future in the instant’? Do they not know, that those qualities which appeal neither to interest nor passion can only find their level with time, and would they annihilate the only pretensions they have? Or have they no conscious affinity with true genius, no claim to the reversion of true fame, no right of succession to this lasting inheritance and final reward of great exertions, which they would therefore destroy, to prevent others from enjoying it? Does all their ambition begin and end in their patriotic sympathy with the sale of modern works of Art, and have they no fellow-feeling with the hopes and final destiny of human genius? What poet ever complained of the respect paid to Homer as derogatory to himself? The envy and opposition to established fame is peculiar to the race of modern Artists; and it is to be hoped it will remain so. It is the fault of their education. It is only by a liberal education that we learn to feel respect for the past, or to take an interest in the future. The knowledge of Artists is too often confined to their art, and their views to their own interest. Even in this they are wrong:—in all respects they are wrong. As a mere matter of trade, the prejudice in favour of old pictures does not prevent but 148assist the sale of modern works of Art. If there was not a prejudice in favour of old pictures, there could be a prejudice in favour of none, and none would be sold. The professors seem to think, that for every old picture not sold, one of their own would be. This is a false calculation. The contrary is true. For every old picture not sold, one of their own (in proportion) would not be sold. The practice of buying pictures is a habit, and it must begin with those pictures which have a character and name, and not with those which have none. ‘Depend upon it,’ says Mr. Burke in a letter to Barry, ‘whatever attracts public attention to the Arts, will in the end be for the benefit of the Artists themselves.’ Again, do not the Academicians know, that it is a contradiction in terms, that a man should enjoy the advantages of posthumous fame in his lifetime? Most men cease to be of any consequence at all when they are dead; but it is the privilege of the man of genius to survive himself. But he cannot in the nature of things anticipate this privilege—because in all that appeals to the general intellect of mankind, this appeal is strengthened, as it spreads wider and is acknowledged; because a man cannot unite in himself personally the suffrages of distant ages and nations; because popularity, a newspaper puff, cannot have the certainty of lasting fame; because it does not carry the same weight of sympathy with it; because it cannot have the same interest, the same refinement or grandeur. If Mr. West was equal to Raphael, (which he is not), if Mr. Lawrence was equal to Vandyke or Titian, (which he is not), if Mr. Turner was equal to Claude Lorraine, (which he is not), if Mr. Wilkie was equal to Teniers, (which he is not), yet they could not, nor ought they to be thought of in the same manner, because there could not be the same proof of it, nor the same confidence in the opinion of a man and his friends, or of any one generation, as in that of successive generations and the voice of posterity. If it is said that we pass over the faults of the one, and severely scrutinise the excellences of the other; this is also right and necessary, because the one have passed their trial, and the others are upon it. If we forgive or overlook the faults of the ancients, it is because they have dearly earned it at our hands. We ought to have some objects to indulge our enthusiasm upon; and we ought to indulge it upon the highest, and those that are surest of deserving it. Would one of our Academicians expect us to look at his new house in one of the new squares with the same veneration as at Michael Angelo’s, which he built with his own hands, as at Tully’s villa, or at the tomb of Virgil? We have no doubt they would, but we cannot. Besides, if it were possible to transfer our old prejudices to new candidates, the way to effect this is not by destroying them. If we have no confidence in all that has gone 149before us, in what has received the sanction of time and the concurring testimony of disinterested judges, are we to believe all of a sudden that excellence has started up in our own times, because it never existed before: are we to take the Artists’ own word for their superiority to their predecessors? There is one other plea made by the moderns, ‘that they must live,’ and the answer to it is, that they do live. An Academician makes his thousand a-year by portrait-painting, and complains that the encouragement given to foreign Art deprives him of the means of subsistence, and prevents him from indulging his genius in works of high history,—‘playing at will his virgin fancies wild.’
But we've heard from a disciple and commentator on the Catalogue (it seems almost impossible to sink lower than the writer himself) that the Directors of the British Institution hold an inflated sense of importance derived from the reputation of the old Masters, whom they appear to regard with awe and treat as something extraordinary. They think that simply owning an old painting grants them a status of distinction, believing that the respect given to Art is the highest claim of the owner. Is this really something the Academy complains about, that genius is viewed this way once its merits are fully recognized? That those great qualities, often overlooked and undervalued by ignorance and selfishness during their lives, ultimately receive their rewards from future generations? Don’t they "feel the future in the present”? Don’t they realize that qualities appealing neither to self-interest nor emotion can only gain recognition over time? Would they really destroy the only claims they have? Or do they lack any true connection to genuine genius, any right to inherit true fame, or any claim to this enduring legacy and ultimate reward for great effort, which they would rather eradicate to prevent others from enjoying it? Does all their ambition start and end with their patriotic support of selling modern works of Art, having no empathy for the hopes and ultimate fates of human genius? What poet ever complained that the respect shown to Homer detracted from his own worth? Envy and opposition to established fame are specific to modern Artists, and let's hope it stays that way. This is a flaw in their education. A well-rounded education teaches us to honor the past and take an interest in the future. Artists often limit their knowledge to their craft and their perspective to their own gain. In fact, they are mistaken in every way. From a commercial standpoint, the bias towards old paintings doesn't hinder but rather aids the sale of modern Art. If there weren't a bias in favor of old pictures, there couldn’t be a preference for any, and none would sell. The professors seem to think that for every old painting that doesn’t sell, one of theirs would. This is a flawed calculation. The reverse is true. For every old picture that goes unsold, one of theirs (in proportion) would not be sold. The practice of buying paintings is a habit, and it must start with pieces that have character and a name, not with those that don't. “Trust me,” Mr. Burke wrote in a letter to Barry, “anything that draws public attention to the Arts will ultimately benefit the Artists themselves.” Furthermore, don't the Academicians realize that it contradicts logic for someone to enjoy the benefits of posthumous fame while still alive? Most people lose significance after death, but a genius has the privilege of outlasting themselves. However, he cannot foresee this privilege because in all things appealing to the collective intellect of mankind, this appeal grows stronger as it widens and gains acknowledgment; because a person cannot personally gather support from distant ages and nations; because popularity, like a newspaper article, can't guarantee lasting fame; because it lacks the same weight of sympathy; because it doesn’t carry the same interest, sophistication, or grandeur. If Mr. West were equal to Raphael (which he isn't), if Mr. Lawrence were equal to Vandyke or Titian (which he isn't), if Mr. Turner were equal to Claude Lorraine (which he isn't), if Mr. Wilkie were equal to Teniers (which he isn't), they could not, nor should they, be regarded in the same way, because there isn't the same evidence or assurance in the opinion of one man and his friends, or of any single generation, as there is in that of successive generations and public memory. If it's claimed that we overlook the faults of the former while critically analyzing the strengths of the latter, this is also correct and necessary, as the former have proven themselves, while the latter are still being tested. If we forgive or ignore the shortcomings of the ancients, it's because they’ve earned that from us. We should have some subjects to channel our enthusiasm into, and we should invest it in the highest and those most deserving. Would any of our Academicians expect us to regard his new house in one of the new squares with the same reverence as we do Michelangelo’s, which he built himself, or Tully’s villa, or the tomb of Virgil? We have no doubt they would, but we cannot. Moreover, even if it were possible to transfer our old biases to new contenders, the way to achieve this isn't by destroying them. If we have no faith in everything that has come before us, which has stood the test of time and gained the approval of impartial judges, are we suddenly to believe that excellence has appeared in our own time simply because it never existed before? Are we expected to take the Artists' word for their superiority over their predecessors? There's one more argument made by the moderns, "that they must live," and the response is that they do live. An Academician earns a thousand a year through portrait painting, yet complains that the support for foreign Art robs him of his means to survive and keeps him from pursuing his genius in high historical works—“playing at will his virgin fancies wild.”
As to the comparative merits of the ancients and the moderns, it does not admit of a question. The odds are too much in favour of the former, because it is likely that more good pictures were painted in the last three hundred than in the last thirty years. Now, the old pictures are the best remaining out of all that period, setting aside those of living Artists. If they are bad, the Art itself is good for nothing; for they are the best that ever were. They are not good, because they are old; but they have become old, because they are good. The question is not between this and any other generation, but between the present and all preceding generations, whom the Catalogue-writer, in his misguided zeal, undertakes to vilify and ‘to keep under, or hold up to derision.’ To say that the great names which have come down to us are not worth any thing, is to say that the mountain-tops which we see in the farthest horizon are not so high as the intervening objects. If there had been any greater painters than Vandyke or Rubens, or Raphael or Rembrandt, or N. Poussin or Claude Lorraine, we should have heard of them, we should have seen them in the Gallery, and we should have read a patriotic and disinterested account of them in the Catalogue Raisonné. Waiving the unfair and invidious comparison between all former excellence and the concentrated essence of it in the present age, let us ask who, in the last generation of painters, was equal to the old masters? Was it Highmore, or Hayman, or Hudson, or Kneller? Who was the English Raphael, or Rubens, or Vandyke, of that day, to whom the Catalogue-critic would have extended his patriotic sympathy and damning patronage? Kneller, we have been told, was thought superior to Vandyke by the persons of fashion whom he painted. So St. Thomas Apostle seems higher than St. Paul’s while you are close under it; but the farther off you go the higher the mighty dome aspires into the skies. What is become of all those great men who flourished in our own time—‘like flowers in men’s caps, dying or ere they sicken’—Hoppner, Opie, Shee, Loutherbourg, Rigaud, Romney, 150Barry, the painters of the Shakspeare Gallery? ‘Gone to the vault of all the Capulets,’ and their pictures with them, or before them! Shall we put more faith in their successors? Shall we take the words of their friends for their taste and genius? No, we will stick to what we know will stick to us, the ‘heirlooms’ of the Art, the Black Masters. The picture, for instance, of Charles I. on horseback, which our critic criticises with such heavy drollery, is worth all the pictures that were ever exhibited at the Royal Academy (from the time of Sir Joshua to the present time inclusive) put together. It shews more knowledge and feeling of the Art, more skill and beauty, more sense of what it is in objects that gives pleasure to the eye, with more power to communicate this pleasure to the world. If either this single picture, or all the lumber that has ever appeared at the Academy, were to be destroyed, there could not be a question which, with any Artist or with any judge or lover of Art. So stands the account between ancient and modern Art! By this we may judge of all the rest. The Catalogue-writer makes some strictures in the second part on the Waterloo Exhibition, which he does not think what it ought to be. We wonder he had another word to say on modern Art after seeing it. He should instantly have taken the resolution of Iago, ‘From this time forth I never will speak more.’
As for the comparison between the ancients and the moderns, there’s no question. The scale tips heavily in favor of the former, since it's likely that more great artwork was created in the last three hundred years than in the last thirty. The old masterpieces are the best surviving works from that era, aside from those by living artists. If those old pieces are poor, then the art itself is worthless; they're the best that ever existed. They aren't great simply because they're old, but they've aged well because they are great. The debate isn't about this generation versus another, but about the present compared to all previous generations, which the Catalogue-writer, in his misguided enthusiasm, tries to belittle and mock. To claim that the great names we've inherited aren't worth anything is like saying that the mountain peaks we see on the horizon are lower than the things in between. If there had been any greater painters than Vandyke, Rubens, Raphael, Rembrandt, N. Poussin, or Claude Lorraine, we would have heard of them, seen their works in galleries, and read a sincere and patriotic review of them in the Catalogue Raisonné. Setting aside the unfair comparison of past greatness with the concentrated essence of it in today's age, let’s ask who, in the last generation of painters, matched the old masters? Was it Highmore, Hayman, Hudson, or Kneller? Who was the English Raphael, Rubens, or Vandyke of that time, whom the Catalogue-critic would have shown patriotic admiration and damaging support for? We’ve been told that Kneller was considered superior to Vandyke by the fashionable people he painted. Just like St. Thomas Apostle seems taller than St. Paul’s when you're right under it; but the farther away you go, the higher the grand dome rises into the sky. What happened to all those great artists who were prominent in our time—‘like flowers in men’s caps, dying or before they fade’—Hoppner, Opie, Shee, Loutherbourg, Rigaud, Romney, Barry, the painters of the Shakspeare Gallery? ‘Gone to the vault of all the Capulets,’ along with their artworks, or even before! Should we trust their successors more? Should we take their friends' word for their talent and creativity? No, we'll stick with what we know has lasting value, the ‘heirlooms’ of the art world, the Black Masters. Take, for example, the painting of Charles I. on horseback, which our critic mocks so heavily; it's worth all the artworks that have ever been displayed at the Royal Academy (from Sir Joshua’s time to now) combined. It shows more understanding and emotion about the art, more skill and beauty, and a better sense of what brings pleasure to the eye, with greater power to share that pleasure with the world. If this one painting, or all the junk that has ever been shown at the Academy, were to be destroyed, there wouldn’t be a question among any artist or any art lover about which is more valuable. That's the comparison between ancient and modern art! From this, we can evaluate everything else. The Catalogue-writer has some criticisms in the second part about the Waterloo Exhibition, which he doesn’t think meets expectations. We're surprised he had anything else to say about modern art after seeing it. He should have immediately decided to take Iago’s resolution, ‘From this time forth, I never will speak more.’
The writer of the Catalogue Raisonné has fallen foul of two things which ought to be sacred to Artists and lovers of Art—Genius and Fame. If they are not sacred to them, we do not know to whom they will be sacred. A work such as the present shews that the person who could write it must either have no knowledge or taste for Art, or must be actuated by a feeling of unaccountable malignity towards it. It shews that any body of men by whom it could be set on foot or encouraged are not an Academy of Art. It shews that a country in which such a publication could make its appearance is not the country of the Fine Arts. Does the writer think to prove the genius of his countrymen for Art by proclaiming their utter insensibility and flagitious contempt for all beauty and excellence in the art, except in their own works? No! it is very true that the English are a shopkeeping nation; and the Catalogue Raisonné is the proof of it.
The writer of the Catalog Raisonné has gone against two things that should be sacred to artists and art lovers—Genius and Fame. If they aren’t sacred to them, we don’t know who they should be sacred to. A work like this shows that the person who wrote it must either lack knowledge or taste in art or be driven by an inexplicable malice towards it. It indicates that any group that could initiate or support it is not an Academy of Art. It suggests that a country where such a publication could appear is not a country known for the Fine Arts. Does the writer think he can prove the genius of his fellow countrymen for art by declaring their complete insensitivity and terrible disregard for all beauty and excellence in art, except in their own creations? No! It’s true that the English are a commercial nation, and the Catalogue Raisonné is proof of that.
Finally, the works of the moderns are not, like those of the Old Masters, a second nature. Oh Art, true likeness of nature, ‘balm of hurt minds, great nature’s second course, chief nourisher in life’s feast,’ of what would our Catalogue-mongers deprive us in depriving us of thee and of thy glories, of the lasting works of the great Painters, and of their names no less magnificent, grateful to our hearts as the sound of celestial harmony from other spheres, waking around us 151(whether heard or not) from youth to age, the stay, the guide and anchor of our purest thoughts; whom, having once seen, we always remember, and who teach us to see all things through them; without whom life would be to begin again, and the earth barren; of Raphael, who lifted the human form half way to heaven; of Titian, who painted the mind in the face, and unfolded the soul of things to the eye; of Rubens, around whose pencil gorgeous shapes thronged numberless, startling us by the novel accidents of form and colour, putting the spirit of motion into the universe, and weaving a gay fantastic round and Bacchanalian dance with nature; of thee, too, Rembrandt, who didst redeem one half of nature from obloquy, from the nickname in the Catalogue, ‘smoothing the raven down of darkness till it smiled,’ and tinging it with a light like streaks of burnished ore; of these, and more, of whom the world is scarce worthy; and what would they give us in return? Nothing.
Finally, the works of modern artists aren't, like those of the Old Masters, a second nature. Oh Art, true reflection of nature, 'soothing balm for hurt minds, great nature’s second course, main sustainer at life’s feast,' what would our Catalog-obsessed buyers take away from us by taking you and your glories away, the lasting works of the great Painters, with names just as magnificent, deeply appreciated by our hearts like the sound of heavenly harmony from other worlds, resonating around us (whether we hear it or not) from youth to old age, the support, the guide, and anchor of our purest thoughts; once seen, we always remember them, and they teach us to view everything through their lens; without them, life would feel like starting over, and the earth would be barren; of Raphael, who lifted the human form halfway to heaven; of Titian, who expressed the mind in the face, revealing the soul of things to our eyes; of Rubens, around whose brush countless vibrant shapes clustered, stunning us with new forms and colors, injecting the spirit of motion into the universe, and creating a lively, fantastical dance with nature; of you, too, Rembrandt, who redeemed half of nature from disgrace, from the title in the Catalogue, 'softening the raven darkness until it smiled,' and lighting it up with a glow like polished metal; of these, and more, whom the world barely deserves; and what would they give us in return? Nothing.
No. 37.] ON POETICAL VERSATILITY [Dec. 22, 1816.
The spirit of poetry is in itself favourable to humanity and liberty: but, we suspect, not when its aid is most wanted. The spirit of poetry is not the spirit of mortification or of martyrdom. Poetry dwells in a perpetual Utopia of its own, and is for that reason very ill calculated to make a Paradise upon earth, by encountering the shocks and disappointments of the world. Poetry, like law, is a fiction, only a more agreeable one. It does not create difficulties where they do not exist; but contrives to get rid of them, whether they exist or not. It is not entangled in cobwebs of its own making, but soars above all obstacles. It cannot be ‘constrained by mastery.’ It has the range of the universe; it traverses the empyrean, and looks down on nature from a higher sphere. When it lights upon the earth, it loses some of its dignity and its use. Its strength is in its wings; its element the air. Standing on its feet, jostling with the crowd, it is liable to be overthrown, trampled on, and defaced; for its wings are of a dazzling brightness, ‘heaven’s own tinct,’ and the least soil upon them shews to disadvantage. Sullied, degraded as we have seen it, we shall not insult over it, but leave it to Time to take out the stains, seeing it is a thing immortal as itself. ‘Being so majestical, we should do it wrong to offer it the show of violence.’ But the best things, in their abuse, often become the worst; and so it is with poetry when it is diverted from its proper end. Poets live in an ideal world, where they make everything out according to their 152wishes and fancies. They either find things delightful or make them so. They feign the beautiful and grand out of their own minds, and imagine all things to be, not what they are, but what they ought to be. They are naturally inventors, creators of truth, of love, and beauty: and while they speak to us from the sacred shrine of their own hearts, while they pour out the pure treasures of thought to the world, they cannot be too much admired and applauded: but when, forgetting their high calling, and becoming tools and puppets in the hands of power, they would pass off the gewgaws of corruption and love-tokens of self-interest as the gifts of the Muse, they cannot be too much despised and shunned. We do not like novels founded on facts, nor do we like poets turned courtiers. Poets, it has been said, succeed best in fiction: and they should for the most part stick to it. Invention, not upon an imaginary subject, is a lie: the varnishing over the vices or deformities of actual objects is hypocrisy. Players leave their finery at the stage-door, or they would be hooted; poets come out into the world with all their bravery on, and yet they would pass for bona fide persons. They lend the colours of fancy to whatever they see: whatever they touch becomes gold, though it were lead. With them every Joan is a lady; and kings and queens are human. Matters of fact they embellish at their will, and reason is the plaything of their passions, their caprice, or their interest. There is no practice so base of which they will not become the panders: no sophistry of which their understanding may not be made the voluntary dupe. Their only object is to please their fancy. Their souls are effeminate, half man and half woman:—they want fortitude, and are without principle. If things do not turn out according to their wishes, they will make their wishes turn round to things. They can easily overlook whatever they do not like, and make an idol of any thing they please. The object of poetry is to please: this art naturally gives pleasure, and excites admiration. Poets, therefore, cannot do well without sympathy and flattery. It is accordingly very much against the grain that they remain long on the unpopular side of the question. They do not like to be shut out when laurels are to be given away at Court—or places under Government to be disposed of, in romantic situations in the country. They are happy to be reconciled on the first opportunity to prince and people, and to exchange their principles for a pension. They have not always strength of mind to think for themselves, nor courage enough to bear the unjust stigma of the opinions they have taken upon trust from others. Truth alone does not satisfy their pampered appetites without the sauce of praise. To prefer truth to all other things, it requires that the mind should have been at some pains in finding it 153out, and that we should feel a severe delight in the contemplation of truth, seen by its own clear light, and not as it is reflected in the admiring eyes of the world. A philosopher may perhaps make a shift to be contented with the sober draughts of reason: a poet must have the applause of the world to intoxicate him. Milton was, however, a poet, and an honest man; he was Cromwell’s secretary.
The essence of poetry is inherently good for humanity and freedom, but we fear it’s not when we need it most. The essence of poetry isn’t about suffering or martyrdom. Poetry exists in its own constant Utopia and for that reason is poorly equipped to create a paradise on earth amid the world’s challenges and disappointments. Poetry, like law, is a kind of fiction—just a more pleasant one. It doesn’t create problems where there are none; it figures out how to eliminate them, whether they exist or not. It isn’t caught in its own webs but soars above obstacles. It cannot be “controlled by authority.” It has the freedom of the universe; it flies through the heavens and observes nature from a higher place. When it lands on earth, it loses some of its grace and purpose. Its strength lies in its wings; its natural element is the air. Standing on the ground, mingling with the crowd, it’s liable to be knocked down, trampled, and tarnished; its wings shine with a heavenly brilliance, and even a small stain makes them look bad. Having seen it sullied and degraded, we won’t insult it, but let Time remove the blemishes, as it’s something eternal. “Being so majestic, it would be wrong to subject it to violence.” However, the best things often become the worst when abused, and that’s true for poetry when it strays from its true purpose. Poets inhabit an ideal world where they create everything according to their wishes and fantasies. They either find things beautiful or make them so. They imagine beauty and grandeur from their own minds and perceive everything not as it is but as it ought to be. They are natural inventors, creators of truth, love, and beauty; while they speak to us from the sacred space of their hearts, sharing pure thoughts with the world, they deserve admiration and applause. But when they forget their noble calling and become tools and puppets of those in power, passing off the trinkets of corruption and tokens of self-interest as gifts from the Muse, they deserve nothing but disdain and avoidance. We don’t appreciate novels based on facts, nor do we like poets turned into courtiers. It’s been said that poets excel in fiction, and they should generally stick to it. Invention that isn’t based on an imaginary subject is a lie; glossing over the flaws or shortcomings of reality is hypocrisy. Actors leave their costumes at the stage door, or they would be booed; poets step into the world still adorned in their finery, yet they want to be seen as genuine people. They add the colors of imagination to everything they see: everything they touch turns into gold, even if it was lead. To them, every common girl is a lady; kings and queens become relatable. They embellish facts according to their whims, and reason becomes a plaything for their desires, whims, or interests. There's no degradation they won't endorse; no manipulation their minds won’t willingly succumb to. Their only goal is to please their imagination. Their souls are soft, a mix of masculinity and femininity; they lack strength and principles. If things don’t go as they wish, they will twist their desires to fit reality. They can easily ignore anything they dislike and idolize whatever pleases them. The purpose of poetry is to bring joy; this art naturally delights and inspires admiration. Therefore, poets can’t thrive without sympathy and flattery. It’s very difficult for them to remain on the unpopular side of an issue for long. They dislike being excluded when crowns are awarded at court or government positions are up for grabs in picturesque rural settings. They happily reconcile at the first chance with both the powerful and the public, trading their principles for a pension. They don’t always have the strength to think independently or the courage to endure the unjust judgment of the beliefs they’ve accepted from others. Truth alone doesn’t satisfy their pampered desires without the seasoning of praise. To choose truth over everything else requires a mind that has thoroughly sought it out, and we should gain profound joy from contemplating truth as it appears in its unfiltered light, rather than how it’s reflected in the admiring gazes of others. A philosopher might manage to find contentment in the straightforward reasoning of truth; a poet, however, needs the world’s applause to truly feel fulfilled. Milton, however, was both a poet and a man of integrity; he served as Cromwell’s secretary.
No. 38.] ON ACTORS AND ACTING [Jan 5, 1817.
Players are ‘the abstracts and brief chronicles of the time’; the motley representatives of human nature. They are the only honest hypocrites. Their life is a voluntary dream; a studied madness. The height of their ambition is to be beside themselves. To-day kings, to-morrow beggars, it is only when they are themselves, that they are nothing. Made up of mimic laughter and tears, passing from the extremes of joy or woe at the prompter’s call, they wear the livery of other men’s fortunes; their very thoughts are not their own. They are, as it were, train-bearers in the pageant of life, and hold a glass up to humanity, frailer than itself. We see ourselves at second-hand in them: they shew us all that we are, all that we wish to be, and all that we dread to be. The stage is an epitome, a bettered likeness of the world, with the dull part left out: and, indeed, with this omission, it is nearly big enough to hold all the rest. What brings the resemblance nearer is, that, as they imitate us, we, in our turn, imitate them. How many fine gentlemen do we owe to the stage? How many romantic lovers are mere Romeos in masquerade? How many soft bosoms have heaved with Juliet’s sighs? They teach us when to laugh and when to weep, when to love and when to hate, upon principle and with a good grace! Wherever there is a play-house, the world will go on not amiss. The stage not only refines the manners, but it is the best teacher of morals, for it is the truest and most intelligible picture of life. It stamps the image of virtue on the mind by first softening the rude materials of which it is composed, by a sense of pleasure. It regulates the passions by giving a loose to the imagination. It points out the selfish and depraved to our detestation, the amiable and generous to our admiration; and if it clothes the more seductive vices with the borrowed graces of wit and fancy, even those graces operate as a diversion to the coarser poison of experience and bad example, and often prevent or carry off the infection by inoculating the mind with a certain taste and elegance. To shew how little we agree with the common declamations against 154the immoral tendency of the stage on this score, we will hazard a conjecture, that the acting of the Beggar’s Opera a certain number of nights every year since it was first brought out, has done more towards putting down the practice of highway robbery, than all the gibbets that ever were erected. A person, after seeing this piece is too deeply imbued with a sense of humanity, is in too good humour with himself and the rest of the world, to set about cutting throats or rifling pockets. Whatever makes a jest of vice, leaves it too much a matter of indifference for any one in his senses to rush desperately on his ruin for its sake. We suspect that just the contrary effect must be produced by the representation of George Barnwell, which is too much in the style of the Ordinary’s sermon to meet with any better success. The mind, in such cases, instead of being deterred by the alarming consequences held out to it, revolts against the denunciation of them as an insult offered to its free-will, and, in a spirit of defiance, returns a practical answer to them, by daring the worst that can happen. The most striking lesson ever read to levity and licentiousness, is in the last act of the Inconstant, where young Mirabel is preserved by the fidelity of his mistress, Orinda, in the disguise of a page, from the hands of assassins, into whose power he has been allured by the temptations of vice and beauty. There never was a rake who did not become in imagination a reformed man, during the representation of the last trying scenes of this admirable comedy.
Players are “the abstracts and brief chronicles of the time”; the diverse representatives of human nature. They are the only honest hypocrites. Their life is a voluntary dream; a thoughtful madness. The peak of their ambition is to be beside themselves. Today kings, tomorrow beggars, it’s only when they are themselves that they are nothing. Composed of imitation laughter and tears, shifting from extremes of joy or sorrow at the prompter’s call, they wear the fortunes of others; their very thoughts aren’t their own. They are, in a way, bearers in the parade of life and hold a mirror up to humanity, which is more fragile than itself. We see ourselves reflected in them: they show us all that we are, all that we wish to be, and all that we fear to be. The stage is a summary, a refined likeness of the world, with the dull parts left out: in fact, with this omission, it’s almost big enough to hold everything else. What makes the resemblance closer is that, just as they imitate us, we, in turn, imitate them. How many fine gentlemen do we owe to the stage? How many romantic lovers are just Romeos in disguise? How many hearts have heaved with Juliet’s sighs? They teach us when to laugh and when to cry, when to love and when to hate, all with grace! Wherever there’s a theater, the world will keep going just fine. The stage not only refines manners, but it’s also the best teacher of morals because it provides the most accurate and understandable picture of life. It imprints the image of virtue on our minds by first softening the rough materials it’s made of, through a sense of enjoyment. It moderates our passions by letting the imagination roam. It highlights the selfish and wicked for our disdain, the kind and generous for our admiration; and while it dresses the more tempting vices in the borrowed graces of wit and charm, even those graces serve as a distraction from the harsher poison of experience and bad examples, often preventing or offsetting the infection by instilling a certain taste and elegance. To illustrate how little we agree with the usual complaints about the stage's immoral influence, we will take a guess that performing the Beggar’s Opera a specific number of nights each year since its debut has done more to reduce highway robbery than all the gallows ever built. After seeing this play, a person is too filled with a sense of humanity, too pleased with themselves and others, to start cutting throats or stealing. Whatever jokes about vice makes it too unimportant for anyone in their right mind to recklessly chase their ruin for its sake. We believe the opposite effect must occur from the story of George Barnwell, which is too much like an Ordinary’s sermon to find any better success. In such cases, instead of being deterred by the scary consequences presented to it, the mind rebels against being lectured as an insult to its free will and, in defiance, responds practically by daring the worst that could happen. The most striking lesson ever given to frivolity and debauchery is in the last act of the Inconstant, where young Mirabel is saved by the loyalty of his mistress, Orinda, disguised as a page, from the assassins who had lured him in with vice and beauty. There has never been a rake who didn’t imagine becoming a reformed man during the intense final scenes of this brilliant comedy.
If the stage is useful as a school of instruction, it is no less so as a source of amusement. It is the source of the greatest enjoyment at the time, and a never-failing fund of agreeable reflection afterwards. The merits of a new play, or of a new actor, are always among the first topics of polite conversation. One way in which public exhibitions contribute to refine and humanise mankind, is by supplying them with ideas and subjects of conversation and interest in common. The progress of civilisation is in proportion to the number of common-places current in society. For instance, if we meet with a stranger at an inn or in a stage-coach, who knows nothing but his own affairs, his shop, his customers, his farm, his pigs, his poultry, we can carry on no conversation with him on these local and personal matters: the only way is to let him have all the talk to himself. But if he has fortunately ever seen Mr. Liston act, this is an immediate topic of mutual conversation, and we agree together the rest of the evening in discussing the merits of that inimitable actor, with the same satisfaction as in talking over the affairs of the most intimate friend.
If the stage is valuable as a place for learning, it’s just as valuable for entertainment. It provides great enjoyment in the moment and a continuous source of pleasant reflection afterward. The merits of a new play or a new actor are always among the first topics of polite conversation. One way public performances help refine and humanize people is by giving them shared ideas and topics of interest. The advancement of civilization is tied to the number of common topics in society. For instance, if we encounter a stranger at an inn or in a coach who only knows about his own business, his shop, his customers, his farm, his pigs, and his chickens, we can’t have a conversation with him about those local and personal matters; the only option is to let him do all the talking. But if he has ever seen Mr. Liston perform, that becomes an immediate topic of mutual conversation, and we can spend the rest of the evening discussing the talents of that incredible actor with the same satisfaction as talking about the affairs of our closest friends.
If the stage thus introduces us familiarly to our contemporaries, it also brings us acquainted with former times. It is an interesting revival of past ages, manners, opinions, dresses, persons, and actions,—whether 155it carries us back to the wars of York and Lancaster, or half way back to the heroic times of Greece and Rome, in some translation from the French, or quite back to the age of Charles II. in the scenes of Congreve and of Etherege, (the gay Sir George!)—happy age, when kings and nobles led purely ornamental lives; when the utmost stretch of a morning’s study went no further than the choice of a sword-knot, or the adjustment of a side-curl; when the soul spoke out in all the pleasing eloquence of dress; and beaux and belles, enamoured of themselves in one another’s follies, fluttered like gilded butterflies in giddy mazes through the walks of St. James’s Park!
If the stage familiarizes us with our contemporaries, it also connects us with earlier times. It's a fascinating revival of past ages, customs, opinions, styles, people, and actions—whether it takes us back to the Wars of York and Lancaster, or halfway back to the heroic days of Greece and Rome through some French translation, or all the way back to the era of Charles II in the works of Congreve and Etherege (the charming Sir George!)—a delightful time when kings and nobles lived purely decorative lives; when the most intense focus of a morning's study was choosing a sword-knot or fixing a side-curl; when the soul expressed itself in the delightful eloquence of fashion; and young men and women, enamored with each other's quirks, flitted like gilded butterflies in dizzy patterns through the paths of St. James's Park!
A good company of comedians, a Theatre-Royal judiciously managed, is your true Herald’s College; the only Antiquarian Society, that is worth a rush. It is for this reason that there is such an air of romance about players, and that it is pleasanter to see them, even in their own persons, than any of the three learned professions. We feel more respect for John Kemble in a plain coat, than for the Lord Chancellor on the woolsack. He is surrounded, to our eyes, with a greater number of imposing recollections: he is a more reverend piece of formality; a more complicated tissue of costume. We do not know whether to look upon this accomplished actor as Pierre or King John or Coriolanus or Cato or Leontes or the Stranger. But we see in him a stately hieroglyphic of humanity; a living monument of departed greatness, a sombre comment on the rise and fall of kings. We look after him till he is out of sight, as we listen to a story of one of Ossian’s heroes, to ‘a tale of other times!’
A good group of comedians, a well-managed Royal Theatre, is your true Herald's College; the only Antiquarian Society that really matters. This is why there's such a sense of romance around performers, and why it's more enjoyable to see them, even in their ordinary lives, than any of the three learned professions. We have more respect for John Kemble in a simple coat than for the Lord Chancellor in the woolsack. He seems to us surrounded by a richer array of impressive memories: he's a more dignified piece of formality, a more intricate blend of costumes. We can't quite decide whether to see this talented actor as Pierre, King John, Coriolanus, Cato, Leontes, or the Stranger. But we recognize in him a grand symbol of humanity; a living monument to past greatness, a solemn reflection on the rise and fall of kings. We watch him until he disappears from view, like we listen to a story about one of Ossian's heroes, a 'tale of other times!'
One of the most affecting things we know is to see a favourite actor take leave of the stage. We were present not long ago when Mr. Bannister quitted it. We do not wonder that his feelings were overpowered on the occasion: ours were nearly so too. We remembered him, in the first heyday of our youthful spirits, in the Prize, in which he played so delightfully with that fine old croaker Suett, and Madame Storace,—in the farce of My Grandmother, in the Son-in-Law, in Autolycus, and in Scrub, in which our satisfaction was at its height. At that time, King and Parsons, and Dodd, and Quick, and Edwin were in the full vigour of their reputation, who are now all gone. We still feel the vivid delight with which we used to see their names in the play-bills, as we went along to the Theatre. Bannister was one of the last of these that remained; and we parted with him as we should with one of our oldest and best friends. The most pleasant feature in the profession of a player, and which, indeed, is peculiar to it, is that we not only admire the talents of those who adorn it, but we contract a personal intimacy with them. 156There is no class of society whom so many persons regard with affection as actors. We greet them on the stage; we like to meet them in the streets; they almost always recall to us pleasant associations; and we feel our gratitude excited, without the uneasiness of a sense of obligation. The very gaiety and popularity, however, which surround the life of a favourite performer, make the retiring from it a very serious business. It glances a mortifying reflection on the shortness of human life, and the vanity of human pleasures. Something reminds us, that ‘all the world’s a stage, and all the men and women merely players.’
One of the most emotional things we experience is watching a favorite actor say goodbye to the stage. We were there recently when Mr. Bannister stepped away. It's no surprise that he was overcome with feelings at that moment; we were almost in the same boat. We remembered him in the vibrant days of our youth, in the Prize, where he played wonderfully alongside that great old character Suett and Madame Storace—in the farce My Grandmother, in Son-in-Law, in Autolycus, and in Scrub, where we felt pure joy. Back then, King, Parsons, Dodd, Quick, and Edwin were at the height of their careers, and now they’ve all passed. We still feel the excitement we had when we spotted their names on the playbills as we headed to the Theater. Bannister was one of the last of this group; saying goodbye to him felt like parting with one of our oldest and dearest friends. The most enjoyable aspect of being a performer, and what makes it unique, is that we not only admire the skills of those in the profession, but we also develop a personal connection with them. 156No other group in society is looked upon with as much affection as actors. We greet them onstage; we enjoy running into them in the streets; they almost always bring back happy memories for us, and we feel grateful without any discomfort of obligation. However, the very joy and fame that come with being a beloved performer make stepping away a serious matter. It serves as a painful reminder of the brevity of life and the futility of worldly pleasures. Something brings to mind that ‘all the world’s a stage, and all the men and women merely players.’
No. 39.] ON THE SAME [Jan. 5, 1817.
It has been considered as the misfortune of first-rate talents for the stage, that they leave no record behind them except that of vague rumour, and that the genius of a great actor perishes with him, ‘leaving the world no copy.’ This is a misfortune, or at least an unpleasant circumstance, to actors; but it is, perhaps, an advantage to the stage. It leaves an opening to originality. The stage is always beginning anew; the candidates for theatrical reputation are always setting out afresh, unencumbered by the affectation of the faults or excellences of their predecessors. In this respect, we should imagine that the average quantity of dramatic talent remains more nearly the same than that in any other walk of art. In no other instance do the complaints of the degeneracy of the moderns seem so unfounded as in this; and Colley Cibber’s account of the regular decline of the stage, from the time of Shakspeare to that of Charles II., and from the time of Charles II. to the beginning of George II. appears quite ridiculous. The stage is a place where genius is sure to come upon its legs, in a generation or two at farthest. In the other arts, (as painting and poetry), it has been contended that what has been well done already, by giving rise to endless vapid imitations, is an obstacle to what might be done well hereafter: that the models or chef-d’œuvres of art, where they are accumulated, choke up the path to excellence; and that the works of genius, where they can be rendered permanent and handed down from age to age, not only prevent, but render superfluous, future productions of the same kind. We have not, neither do we want, two Shakspeares, two Miltons, two Raphaels, any more than we require two suns in the same sphere. Even Miss O’Neill stands a little in the way of our recollections of Mrs. Siddons. But Mr. Kean is an excellent substitute for the memory of Garrick, whom we never saw. When an 157author dies, it is no matter, for his works remain. When a great actor dies, there is a void produced in society, a gap which requires to be filled up. Who does not go to see Kean? Who, if Garrick were alive, would go to see him? At least one or the other must have quitted the stage. We have seen what a ferment has been excited among our living artists by the exhibition of the works of the old Masters at the British Gallery. What would the actors say to it, if, by any spell or power of necromancy, all the celebrated actors, for the last hundred years could be made to appear again on the boards of Covent Garden and Drury-Lane, for the last time, in all their most brilliant parts? What a rich treat to the town, what a feast for the critics, to go and see Betterton, and Booth, and Wilks, and Sandford, and Nokes, and Leigh, and Penkethman, and Bullock, and Estcourt, and Dogget, and Mrs. Barry, and Mrs. Montfort, and Mrs. Oldfield, and Mrs. Bracegirdle, and Mrs. Cibber, and Cibber himself, the prince of coxcombs, and Macklin, and Quin, and Rich, and Mrs. Clive, and Mrs. Pritchard, and Mrs. Abington, and Weston, and Shuter, and Garrick, and all the rest of those who ‘gladdened life, and whose deaths eclipsed the gaiety of nations’! We should certainly be there. We should buy a ticket for the season. We should enjoy our hundred days again. We should not lose a single night. We would not, for a great deal, be absent from Betterton’s Hamlet or his Brutus, or from Booth’s Cato, as it was first acted to the contending applause of Whigs and Tories. We should be in the first row when Mrs. Barry (who was kept by Lord Rochester, and with whom Otway was in love) played Monimia or Belvidera; and we suppose we should go to see Mrs. Bracegirdle (with whom all the world was in love) in all her parts. We should then know exactly whether Penkethman’s manner of picking a chicken, and Bullock’s mode of devouring asparagus, answered to the ingenious account of them in the Tatler; and whether Dogget was equal to Dowton—whether Mrs. Montfort[63] or Mrs. Abington was the finest 158lady—whether Wilks or Cibber was the best Sir Harry Wildair—whether Macklin was really ‘the Jew that Shakspeare drew,’ and whether Garrick was, upon the whole, so great an actor as the world have made him out! Many people have a strong desire to pry into the secrets of futurity: for our own parts, we should be satisfied if we had the power to recall the dead, and live the past over again as often as we pleased! Players, after all, have little reason to complain of their hard-earned, short-lived popularity. One thunder of applause from pit, boxes, and gallery, is equal to a whole immortality of posthumous fame: and when we hear an actor, whose modesty is equal to his merit, declare, that he would like to see a dog wag his tail in approbation, what must he feel when he sees the whole house in a roar! Besides, Fame, as if their reputation had been entrusted to her alone, has been particularly careful of the renown of her theatrical favourites: she forgets one by one, and year by year, those who have been great lawyers, great statesmen, and great warriors in their day; but the name of Garrick still survives with the works of Reynolds and of Johnson.
It’s seen as a misfortune for top talents in theater that they leave no lasting record aside from vague rumors, and the brilliance of a great actor fades away with them, ‘leaving the world no copy.’ This is unfortunate, or at least a bothersome situation, for actors; however, it might actually benefit the stage. It opens the door to originality. The stage is always starting fresh; the aspiring actors aiming for fame are constantly beginning anew, free from the pretentious flaws or strengths of their predecessors. In this regard, we might think that the overall amount of dramatic talent stays relatively constant, more so than in any other art form. The complaints about the decline of modern talent seem less justified here; Colley Cibber's depiction of the steady decline of the stage from Shakespeare’s time to Charles II and from Charles II to the beginning of George II seems quite absurd. The stage is where talent is sure to rise again in a generation or two at most. In other forms of art, like painting and poetry, it’s argued that what has already been done—leading to countless dull imitations—hinders future masterpieces: that the models or chef-d'œuvres of art block the path to excellence; and that works of genius, when they can be preserved and passed down through generations, not only obstruct but also render unnecessary future works of the same kind. We don’t need, nor do we want, two Shakespeares, two Miltons, or two Raphaels, just like we don’t need two suns in the same sky. Even Miss O’Neill slightly clouds our memories of Mrs. Siddons. But Mr. Kean is an outstanding stand-in for the memory of Garrick, whom we've never seen. When an author dies, it’s not a big deal because their work remains. When a great actor dies, it creates a void in society that needs to be filled. Who doesn’t go to see Kean? Who would go to see Garrick if he were alive? At least one of them must have left the stage. We’ve seen how much excitement has been stirred among current artists by showcasing the works of the old Masters at the British Gallery. What would actors say if, through some spell or mystical power, all the celebrated actors from the last hundred years could once again perform at Covent Garden and Drury-Lane, for the last time, in all their most dazzling roles? What a rich experience for the city, what a feast for the critics, to watch Betterton, Booth, Wilks, Sandford, Nokes, Leigh, Penkethman, Bullock, Estcourt, Dogget, Mrs. Barry, Mrs. Montfort, Mrs. Oldfield, Mrs. Bracegirdle, Mrs. Cibber, and Cibber himself, the king of coxcombs, along with Macklin, Quin, Rich, Mrs. Clive, Mrs. Pritchard, Mrs. Abington, Weston, Shuter, Garrick, and all those who 'brightened life, and whose deaths dimmed the joy of nations’! We would definitely be there. We’d buy a season ticket. We’d relive our best days again. We wouldn’t miss a single night. We wouldn’t, for anything, be absent from Betterton’s Hamlet or his Brutus, or from Booth’s Cato, as it was first performed to the competing applause of Whigs and Tories. We’d sit front row when Mrs. Barry (who was kept by Lord Rochester, and whom Otway loved) played Monimia or Belvidera; and we’d certainly want to see Mrs. Bracegirdle (whom everyone was in love with) in all her roles. We’d then find out if Penkethman’s way of picking a chicken, and Bullock’s method of eating asparagus, matched the clever descriptions in the Tatler; and whether Dogget measured up to Dowton—whether Mrs. Montfort or Mrs. Abington was the finest lady—whether Wilks or Cibber was the best Sir Harry Wildair—whether Macklin was really ‘the Jew that Shakespeare drew,’ and whether Garrick was, overall, as great an actor as the world claims! Many people are eager to peek into the future: as for us, we’d be content if we could bring back the dead and relive the past whenever we wanted! Actors, after all, have little reason to complain about their hard-earned, short-lived fame. One round of applause from the audience is worth a whole eternity of posthumous recognition: and when we hear an actor, whose modesty matches his talent, say he’d like to see a dog wag its tail in approval, just imagine how he must feel when he sees the entire house bursting with laughter! Plus, Fame, as if her reputation rests solely with them, has been especially careful in preserving the notoriety of her theatrical favorites: she forgets one by one, year by year, those who were once great lawyers, statesmen, and warriors; but Garrick’s name still endures alongside the works of Reynolds and Johnson.
Actors have been accused, as a profession, of being extravagant and dissipated. While they are said to be so as a piece of common cant, they are likely to continue so. But there is a sentence in Shakspeare which should be stuck as a label in the mouths of our beadles and whippers-in of morality: ‘The web of our life is of a mingled yarn, good and ill together: our virtues would be proud if our faults whipped them not: and our vices would despair if they were not cherished by our virtues.’ With respect to the extravagance of actors, as a traditional character, it is not to be wondered at. They live from hand to mouth: they plunge from want into 159luxury; they have no means of making money breed, and all professions that do not live by turning money into money, or have not a certainty of accumulating it in the end by parsimony, spend it. Uncertain of the future, they make sure of the present moment. This is not unwise. Chilled with poverty, steeped in contempt, they sometimes pass into the sunshine of fortune, and are lifted to the very pinnacle of public favour; yet even there cannot calculate on the continuance of success, but are, ‘like the giddy sailor on the mast, ready with every blast to topple down into the fatal bowels of the deep!’ Besides, if the young enthusiast, who is smitten with the stage, and with the public as a mistress, were naturally a close hunks, he would become or remain a city clerk, instead of turning player. Again, with respect to the habit of convivial indulgence, an actor, to be a good one, must have a great spirit of enjoyment in himself, strong impulses, strong passions, and a strong sense of pleasure: for it is his business to imitate the passions, and to communicate pleasure to others. A man of genius is not a machine. The neglected actor may be excused if he drinks oblivion of his disappointments; the successful one, if he quaffs the applause of the world, and enjoys the friendship of those who are the friends of the favourites of fortune, in draughts of nectar. There is no path so steep as that of fame: no labour so hard as the pursuit of excellence. The intellectual excitement, inseparable from those professions which call forth all our sensibility to pleasure and pain, requires some corresponding physical excitement to support our failure, and not a little to allay the ferment of the spirits attendant on success. If there is any tendency to dissipation beyond this in the profession of a player, it is owing to the prejudices entertained against them, to that spirit of bigotry which in a neighbouring country would deny actors Christian burial after their death, and to that cant of criticism, which, in our own, slurs over their characters, while living, with a half-witted jest.
Actors have often been labeled as extravagant and irresponsible. While this is a common stereotype, it’s unlikely to change. But there’s a line from Shakespeare that should be a reminder for those who judge them: “The web of our life is of a mixed fabric, both good and bad: our virtues would be proud if our faults didn’t whip them; and our vices would lose hope if they weren’t supported by our virtues.” Regarding actors' extravagance, it's not surprising. They often live paycheck to paycheck, swinging from poverty to luxury; they don’t have ways to make money grow, and professions that don’t generate wealth or involve saving tend to spend it. Unsure of what's ahead, they focus on enjoying the present. This isn’t unwise. After dealing with poverty and contempt, they sometimes rise to fortune and gain public favor; yet even then, they can’t guarantee their success, like a sailor on a mast, ready to tumble into the depths at any moment! Additionally, if a young person drawn to the stage were naturally frugal, they'd probably end up as a city clerk instead of an actor. Also, to be a good actor, one needs to enjoy life, have strong feelings, and a deep sense of pleasure, since their role is to portray emotions and bring joy to others. A person of talent isn’t a machine. A struggling actor might drink to forget their disappointments, and a successful one might indulge in the world's applause and enjoy the camaraderie of those who support the lucky ones. The climb to fame is steep, and pursuing excellence is a tough task. The mental stimulation from jobs that tap into our feelings about pleasure and pain often calls for some physical release to cope with failure and to calm the excitement that comes with success. If there’s any tendency towards excess in acting, it’s due to the biases against them, the narrow-mindedness that, in some places, wouldn’t permit actors a proper burial, and the snide criticism that belittles their character with foolish jests while they’re still alive.
A London engagement is generally considered by actors as the ne plus ultra of their ambition, as ‘a consummation devoutly to be wished,’ as the great prize in the lottery of their professional life. But this appears to us, who are not in the secret, to be rather the prose termination of their adventurous career: it is the provincial commencement that is the poetical and truly enviable part of it. After that, they have comparatively little to hope or fear. ‘The wine of life is drunk, and but the lees remain.’ In London, they become gentlemen, and the King’s servants: but it is the romantic mixture of the hero and the vagabond that constitutes the essence of the player’s life. It is the transition from their real to their assumed characters, from the contempt of the world to the applause of the 160multitude, that gives its zest to the latter, and raises them as much above common humanity at night, as in the daytime they are depressed below it. ‘Hurried from fierce extremes, by contrast made more fierce,’—it is rags and a flock-bed which give their splendour to a plume of feathers and a throne. We should suppose, that if the most admired actor on the London stage were brought to confession on this point, he would acknowledge that all the applause he had received from ‘brilliant and overflowing audiences,’ was nothing to the light-headed intoxication of unlooked-for success in a barn. In town, actors are criticised: in country-places, they are wondered at, or hooted at: it is of little consequence which, so that the interval is not too long between. For ourselves, we own that the description of the strolling player in Gil Blas, soaking his dry crusts in the well by the roadside, presents to us a perfect picture of human felicity.
A London engagement is usually seen by actors as the pinnacle of their ambitions, like "the ultimate dream come true," or the big prize in the lottery of their careers. But to us, who aren’t in on it, it seems more like the end of their adventurous journey: the provincial beginnings are the truly poetic and envied part. After that, they have little left to hope or fear. "The wine of life is drunk, and only the dregs remain." In London, they become gentlemen and the King’s servants, but it’s the romantic blend of being a hero and a wanderer that defines a performer’s life. It’s the shift from their real to their adopted personas, from being looked down upon to receiving applause from the crowd, that adds excitement to their lives, lifting them above ordinary people at night while during the day they feel lower than that. "Hurried from fierce extremes, by contrast made more fierce"—it's the rags and a simple bed that give their grandeur to a feathered crown and a throne. We’d think that if the most celebrated actor on the London stage admitted this, he would agree that all the applause from "brilliant and overflowing audiences" doesn’t compare to the light-headed thrill of unexpected success in a small barn. In the city, actors face criticism; in rural areas, they are either admired or booed at. It hardly matters which, as long as the gap isn’t too long between them. Personally, we feel that the image of the wandering actor in Gil Blas, soaking his dry bread in the well by the roadside, perfectly represents human happiness.
No. 40.] WHY THE ARTS ARE NOT PROGRESSIVE?—A FRAGMENT [Jan. 11, 1815; Sep. 11, 1814.
It is often made a subject of complaint and surprise, that the arts in this country, and in modern times, have not kept pace with the general progress of society and civilisation in other respects, and it has been proposed to remedy the deficiency by more carefully availing ourselves of the advantages which time and circumstances have placed within our reach, but which we have hitherto neglected, the study of the antique, the formation of academies, and the distribution of prizes.
It's often complained about and surprising that the arts in this country, and in modern times, haven't kept up with the overall progress of society and civilization in other areas. It's been suggested that we should address this shortcoming by making better use of the opportunities that time and circumstances have given us, which we've ignored until now—like studying ancient works, establishing academies, and offering prizes.
First, the complaint itself, that the arts do not attain that progressive degree of perfection which might reasonably be expected from them, proceeds on a false notion, for the analogy appealed to in support of the regular advances of art to higher degrees of excellence, totally fails; it applies to science, not to art. Secondly, the expedients proposed to remedy the evil by adventitious means are only calculated to confirm it. The arts hold immediate communication with nature, and are only derived from that source. When that original impulse no longer exists, when the inspiration of genius is fled, all the attempts to recal it are no better than the tricks of galvanism to restore the dead to life. The arts may be said to resemble Antæus in his struggle with Hercules, who was strangled when he was raised above the ground, and only revived and recovered his strength when he touched his mother earth.
First, the complaint that the arts aren’t reaching the level of perfection we should expect is based on a misunderstanding. The analogy used to argue that art should consistently improve doesn’t hold up; it applies to science, not art. Secondly, the proposed solutions to fix this problem through external means only end up reinforcing it. The arts are directly connected to nature and come from that source. When that original drive is gone, and the spark of genius has faded, all attempts to bring it back are no better than trying to use electrical shocks to bring the dead back to life. The arts can be compared to Antaeus in his battle with Hercules, who was choked when lifted off the ground and only regained his strength when he touched the earth again.
161Nothing is more contrary to the fact than the supposition that in what we understand by the fine arts, as painting and poetry, relative perfection is only the result of repeated efforts, and that what has been once well done constantly leads to something better. What is mechanical, reducible to rule, or capable of demonstration, is progressive, and admits of gradual improvement: what is not mechanical or definite, but depends on genius, taste, and feeling, very soon becomes stationary or retrograde, and loses more than it gains by transfusion. The contrary opinion is, indeed, a common error, which has grown up, like many others, from transferring an analogy of one kind to something quite distinct, without thinking of the difference in the nature of the things, or attending to the difference of the results. For most persons, finding what wonderful advances have been made in biblical criticism, in chemistry, in mechanics, in geometry, astronomy, etc.—i.e., in things depending on mere inquiry and experiment, or on absolute demonstration, have been led hastily to conclude, that there was a general tendency in the efforts of the human intellect to improve by repetition, and in all other arts and institutions to grow perfect and mature by time. We look back upon the theological creed of our ancestors, and their discoveries in natural philosophy, with a smile of pity; science, and the arts connected with it, have all had their infancy, their youth, and manhood, and seem to have in them no principle of limitation or decay; and, inquiring no farther about the matter, we infer, in the height of our self-congratulation, and in the intoxication of our pride, that the same progress has been, and will continue to be, made in all other things which are the work of man. The fact, however, stares us so plainly in the face, that one would think the smallest reflection must suggest the truth, and overturn our sanguine theories. The greatest poets, the ablest orators, the best painters, and the finest sculptors that the world ever saw, appeared soon after the birth of these arts, and lived in a state of society which was, in other respects, comparatively barbarous. Those arts, which depend on individual genius and incommunicable power, have always leaped at once from infancy to manhood, from the first rude dawn of invention to their meridian height and dazzling lustre, and have in general declined ever after. This is the peculiar distinction and privilege of each, of science and of art; of the one, never to attain its utmost summit of perfection, and of the other, to arrive at it almost at once. Homer, Chaucer, Spenser, Shakspeare, Dante, and Ariosto (Milton alone was of a later age, and not the worse for it), Raphael, Titian, Michael Angelo, Correggio, Cervantes, and Boccaccio—all lived near the beginning of their arts—perfected, and all but created them. These giant sons of genius stand, indeed, upon the earth, but they 162tower above their fellows, and the long line of their successors does not interpose any thing to obstruct their view, or lessen their brightness. In strength and stature they are unrivalled, in grace and beauty they have never been surpassed. In after-ages, and more refined periods, (as they are called), great men have arisen one by one, as it were by throes and at intervals: though in general the best of these cultivated and artificial minds were of an inferior order, as Tasso and Pope among poets, Guido and Vandyke among painters. But in the earliest stages of the arts, when the first mechanical difficulties had been got over, and the language as it were acquired, they rose by clusters and in constellations, never to rise again.
161There’s nothing more misguided than thinking that in what we call the fine arts, like painting and poetry, relative perfection is just the result of repeated practice, and that achieving something well once naturally leads to something even better. Mechanical skills, which can be broken down into rules or demonstrated, can progress and improve gradually. However, what isn’t mechanical or precise, but relies on genius, taste, and feeling, quickly becomes stagnant or even regresses, losing more than it gains through change. This contrary belief is a common misconception that arises, like many others, from applying an analogy from one area to a completely different one, without considering the differences in the nature of each or the results they produce. Most people, noticing the incredible advances in biblical criticism, chemistry, mechanics, geometry, astronomy, etc.—i.e.—areas that rely on inquiry, experimentation, or absolute proof, hastily conclude there’s a general tendency for human intellect to improve through repetition, and that all other arts and institutions will also become perfected over time. We look back at the theological beliefs of our ancestors and their discoveries in natural philosophy with a condescending smile; science, and the relevant arts, have all gone through their infancy, youth, and maturity and seem to possess no limit or risk of decay. Without delving deeper into this, we infer, in the height of our self-satisfaction and pride, that we’ve made—and will continue to make—the same progress in everything else created by humans. However, the truth is so evident that you’d think a moment's reflection would reveal it and challenge our optimistic theories. The greatest poets, the most skilled orators, the best painters, and the finest sculptors the world has ever known appeared shortly after these arts were born, and they existed in a society that was, in many ways, quite primitive. Those arts, which rely on individual genius and unique talent, have always jumped straight from their infancy to maturity, from the first rough beginnings of creativity to their peak and brilliant heights, and have generally declined afterward. This is the unique trait and privilege of both science and art; science never reaches its ultimate peak of perfection, while art achieves it almost immediately. Homer, Chaucer, Spenser, Shakespeare, Dante, and Ariosto (with Milton being from a later time, but not worse for it), along with Raphael, Titian, Michelangelo, Correggio, Cervantes, and Boccaccio—all lived near the beginnings of their respective arts, perfected them, and were close to creating them. These towering figures of genius stand on Earth, but they rise above their peers, and the long line of their successors doesn’t obscure their view or diminish their brilliance. In strength and prowess, they are unmatched; in grace and beauty, they have never been exceeded. In later ages, often considered more refined, great individuals have emerged gradually and sporadically: while the best of these cultivated minds were generally of a lesser caliber, like Tasso and Pope among poets, and Guido and Van Dyck among painters. Yet in the earliest stages of the arts, once the initial mechanical challenges were overcome and the language of the art was, so to speak, mastered, they arose in clusters and constellations, never to rise again.
The arts of painting and poetry are conversant with the world of thought within us, and with the world of sense without us—with what we know, and see, and feel intimately. They flow from the sacred shrine of our own breasts, and are kindled at the living lamp of nature. The pulse of the passions assuredly beat as high, the depths and soundings of the human heart were as well understood three thousand years ago, as they are at present; the face of nature and ‘the human face divine,’ shone as bright then as they have ever done. It is this light, reflected by true genius on art, that marks out its path before it, and sheds a glory round the Muses’ feet, like that which ‘circled Una’s angel face,
The arts of painting and poetry connect with our inner thoughts and the external world—what we know, see, and feel deeply. They spring from the sacred place within us and are ignited by the living light of nature. The intensity of our emotions was just as strong, and the depths of the human heart were as well understood three thousand years ago as they are today; the beauty of nature and "the human face divine" shone as brightly then as it ever has. It is this light, reflected by true genius in art, that illuminates its path and surrounds the Muses with a glow, much like the aura that surrounded Una’s angelic face.
Nature is the soul of art. There is a strength in the imagination that reposes entirely on nature, which nothing else can supply. There is in the old poets and painters a vigour and grasp of mind, a full possession of their subject, a confidence and firm faith, a sublime simplicity, an elevation of thought, proportioned to their depth of feeling, an increasing force and impetus, which moves, penetrates, and kindles all that comes in contact with it, which seems, not theirs, but given to them. It is this reliance on the power of nature which has produced those master-pieces by the Prince of Painters, in which expression is all in all, where one spirit, that of truth, pervades every part, brings down heaven to earth, mingles cardinals and popes with angels and apostles, and yet blends and harmonises the whole by the true touches and intense feeling of what is beautiful and grand in nature. It was the same trust in nature that enabled Chaucer to describe the patient sorrow of Griselda; or the delight of that young beauty in the Flower and the Leaf, shrouded in her bower, and listening, in the morning of the year, to the singing of the nightingale, while her joy rises with the rising song, and gushes out afresh at every pause, and is borne along with the full tide of pleasure, and still increases 163and repeats and prolongs itself, and knows no ebb. It is thus that Boccaccio, in the divine story of the Hawk, has represented Frederigo Alberigi steadily contemplating his favourite Falcon (the wreck and remnant of his fortune), and glad to see how fat and fair a bird she is, thinking what a dainty repast she would make for his Mistress, who had deigned to visit him in his low cell. So Isabella mourns over her pot of Basile, and never asks for any thing but that. So Lear calls out for his poor fool, and invokes the heavens, for they are old like him. So Titian impressed on the countenance of that young Neapolitan nobleman in the Louvre, a look that never passed away. So Nicolas Poussin describes some shepherds wandering out in a morning of the spring, and coming to a tomb with this inscription, ‘I also was an Arcadian.’
Nature is the essence of art. There’s a powerful creativity that relies completely on nature, and nothing else can provide that. The ancient poets and painters had a vitality and insight, a complete understanding of their subjects, a confidence and unwavering belief, a simple grandeur, and a thoughtful elevation that matched their deep feelings. This growing energy inspires, moves, and ignites everything it touches, seeming not to come from them but to be bestowed upon them. It’s this trust in nature’s power that led to the masterpieces by the great painters, where expression is everything, and one spirit—truth—flows through every detail, bringing heaven down to earth, mixing cardinals and popes with angels and apostles, all while blending and harmonizing through the genuine touches and deep feelings of beauty and greatness in nature. The same trust in nature allowed Chaucer to portray Griselda’s patient sorrow or capture the joy of that young beauty in “The Flower and the Leaf,” sheltered in her bower, listening to the nightingale’s song as her happiness rises with the melody, overflowing at every pause, carried along by a wave of pleasure that keeps growing and never fades. Similarly, Boccaccio, in the beautiful story of the Hawk, depicts Frederigo Alberigi gazing at his favorite falcon (the last remnant of his wealth), pleased to see how plump and beautiful she is, imagining what a delightful meal she would be for his visitor, who had graced him in his humble room. So Isabella mourns over her pot of basil, wishing for nothing else. So Lear cries out for his poor fool and calls on the heavens, for they are as old as he is. So Titian captured the expression of that young Neapolitan nobleman in the Louvre, a look that never faded. So Nicolas Poussin illustrates shepherds wandering in a spring morning, coming upon a tomb with the inscription, ‘I was also an Arcadian..’
In general, it must happen in the first stages of the Arts, that as none but those who had a natural genius for them would attempt to practise them, so none but those who had a natural taste for them would pretend to judge of or criticise them. This must be an incalculable advantage to the man of true genius, for it is no other than the privilege of being tried by his peers. In an age when connoisseurship had not become a fashion; when religion, war, and intrigue, occupied the time and thoughts of the great, only those minds of superior refinement would be led to notice the works of art, who had a real sense of their excellence; and in giving way to the powerful bent of his own genius, the painter was most likely to consult the taste of his judges. He had not to deal with pretenders to taste, through vanity, affectation, and idleness. He had to appeal to the higher faculties of the soul; to that deep and innate sensibility to truth and beauty, which required only a proper object to have its enthusiasm excited; and to that independent strength of mind, which, in the midst of ignorance and barbarism, hailed and fostered genius, wherever it met with it. Titian was patronised by Charles V., Count Castiglione was the friend of Raphael. These were true patrons, and true critics; and as there were no others, (for the world, in general, merely looked on and wondered), there can be little doubt, that such a period of dearth of factitious patronage would be the most favourable to the full developement of the greatest talents, and the attainment of the highest excellence.
In general, during the early stages of the Arts, only those with a natural talent would try to practice them, and only those with a genuine appreciation would claim to judge or critique them. This was a huge advantage for true geniuses because it meant they were evaluated by their equals. In a time when connoisseurship hadn’t become trendy, and when religion, war, and politics occupied the minds of the elite, only those with refined sensibilities would truly notice the quality of art. As these artists followed their instincts, they were most likely to connect with the taste of their true critics. They didn't have to deal with posers pretending to have taste out of vanity, pretense, or boredom. Instead, they appealed to the higher aspects of the human spirit—an innate sensitivity to truth and beauty that needed just the right stimulus to ignite enthusiasm, along with an independent mindset that recognized and encouraged genius amidst ignorance and barbarism. Titian was supported by Charles V., and Count Castiglione was a friend of Raphael. These individuals were genuine patrons and true critics; since there were no others (as most people simply watched and marveled), it’s clear that a period lacking artificial patronage was the most favorable for the full development of the greatest talents and the achievement of the highest excellence.
The diffusion of taste is not the same thing as the improvement of taste; but it is only the former of these objects that is promoted by public institutions and other artificial means. The number of candidates for fame, and of pretenders to criticism, is thus increased beyond all proportion, while the quantity of genius and feeling remains the same; with this difference, that the man of genius is lost in the crowd 164of competitors, who would never have become such but from encouragement and example; and that the opinion of those few persons whom nature intended for judges, is drowned in the noisy suffrages of shallow smatterers in taste. The principle of universal suffrage, however applicable to matters of government, which concern the common feelings and common interests of society, is by no means applicable to matters of taste, which can only be decided upon by the most refined understandings. The highest efforts of genius, in every walk of art, can never be properly understood by the generality of mankind: There are numberless beauties and truths which lie far beyond their comprehension. It is only as refinement and sublimity are blended with other qualities of a more obvious and grosser nature, that they pass current with the world. Taste is the highest degree of sensibility, or the impression made on the most cultivated and sensible of minds, as genius is the result of the highest powers both of feeling and invention. It may be objected, that the public taste is capable of gradual improvement, because, in the end, the public do justice to works of the greatest merit. This is a mistake. The reputation ultimately, and often slowly affixed to works of genius is stamped upon them by authority, not by popular consent or the common sense of the world. We imagine that the admiration of the works of celebrated men has become common, because the admiration of their names has become so. But does not every ignorant connoisseur pretend the same veneration, and talk with the same vapid assurance of Michael Angelo, though he has never seen even a copy of any of his pictures, as if he had studied them accurately,—merely because Sir Joshua Reynolds has praised him? Is Milton more popular now than when the Paradise Lost was first published? Or does he not rather owe his reputation to the judgment of a few persons in every successive period, accumulating in his favour, and overpowering by its weight the public indifference? Why is Shakspeare popular? Not from his refinement of character or sentiment, so much as from his power of telling a story, the variety and invention, the tragic catastrophe and broad farce of his plays. Spenser is not yet understood. Does not Boccaccio pass to this day for a writer of ribaldry, because his jests and lascivious tales were all that caught the vulgar ear, while the story of the Falcon is forgotten!
The spread of taste isn’t the same as the improvement of taste; it’s only the spread that public institutions and other artificial means promote. This increases the number of people seeking fame and pretending to be critics, while the amount of true genius and feeling stays the same. The difference is that true geniuses get lost in the crowd of competitors, many of whom only became that way because of encouragement and examples set for them. Meanwhile, the opinions of the few meant to be the judges get drowned out by the loud opinions of superficial critics. The idea of universal suffrage works for government matters that concern the general feelings and interests of society, but it doesn’t apply to taste, which can only be evaluated by the most refined minds. The greatest works of art can never be fully understood by most people; there are countless beauties and truths that are way beyond their grasp. Only when refinement and depth are mixed with more obvious and simpler qualities do they become accepted by the public. Taste represents the highest level of sensitivity or the impression on the most cultivated and discerning minds, while genius results from the utmost powers of both feeling and creativity. One might argue that public taste can gradually improve, since eventually, the public appreciates works of great merit. This belief is mistaken. The reputation that is eventually, often slowly, applied to works of genius comes from authority, not popular approval or common sense. We think the admiration for celebrated works is widespread because people admire their names. But doesn’t every uninformed critic claim the same veneration and talk with the same empty confidence about Michael Angelo, even if they've never seen any of his artworks, just because Sir Joshua Reynolds praised him? Is Milton more popular now than when Paradise Lost was first released? Or does he owe his reputation to the judgment of a few individuals in each era, which builds up over time and outweighs public indifference? What about Shakespeare? He’s popular not because of his refined characters or sentiments, but because of his storytelling ability, the variety and creativity, the tragic endings, and the broad humor of his plays. Spenser is still not well understood. Doesn’t Boccaccio still pass for a writer of ribaldry, since his jokes and lewd tales are what captured the public's attention, while the story of the Falcon has been forgotten?
CHARACTERS OF SHAKESPEAR’S PLAYS
BIBLIOGRAPHICAL NOTE
The first edition of the Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (5½ in. × 9 in.) was published in 1817. The imprint reads thus:—London: | Printed by C. H. Reynell, 21, Piccadilly, | for R. Hunter, successor to Mr. Johnson, | in St. Paul’s Church-yard; | and C. and J. Ollier, | Welbeck-street, Cavendish-square. | 1817. The second edition was issued in the following year, and the imprint is:—London: | Printed for Taylor and Hessey, | 93, Fleet Street. | 1818. There are several verbal alterations in the second edition, and one curious erratum: ‘In Lear, p. 173 [p. 269 present edition] dele line “Not an hour more nor less.’” In the text of the play these words occur between ‘Fourscore and upward’ and ‘And, to deal plainly.’ The second edition also was printed by C. H. Reynell, Broad-street, Golden-square. No further edition was published in Hazlitt’s lifetime, and the present issue has consequently been printed from a copy of the second edition: the proofs, however, have been read with a copy of the first edition, and one or two misprints thereby corrected. In 1818 a pirated American edition was published at Boston.
The first edition of the Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (5½ in. × 9 in.) was published in 1817. The imprint states:—London: | Printed by C. H. Reynell, 21, Piccadilly, | for R. Hunter, successor to Mr. Johnson, | in St. Paul’s Church-yard; | and C. and J. Ollier, | Welbeck-street, Cavendish-square. | 1817. The second edition came out the following year, with the imprint:—London: | Printed for Taylor and Hessey, | 93, Fleet Street. | 1818. There are several changes in wording in the second edition, and one interesting error: ‘In Lear, p. 173 [p. 269 present edition] delete line “Not an hour more nor less.’” In the play, these words are found between ‘Fourscore and upward’ and ‘And, to deal plainly.’ The second edition was also printed by C. H. Reynell, Broad-street, Golden-square. There were no further editions published during Hazlitt’s lifetime, so the current issue has been printed from a copy of the second edition; however, the proofs were checked against a copy of the first edition, and one or two typos have been corrected as a result. In 1818, a pirated American edition was published in Boston.
A contemporary criticism of the volume may be found in the Edinburgh Review, 1817, by Francis Jeffrey. See also E. L. Bulwer’s Some Thoughts on the Genius of Hazlitt. One hundred pounds was paid to Hazlitt by C. H. Reynell for the copyright, and the first edition, at half a guinea, was sold in six weeks: an adverse criticism by William Gifford in the Quarterly Review (No. 36, January 1818) spoiled the sale of the second edition.
A modern critique of the book can be found in the Edinburgh Review, 1817, by Francis Jeffrey. Also, check out E. L. Bulwer's Some Thoughts on the Genius of Hazlitt. Hazlitt received one hundred pounds from C. H. Reynell for the copyright, and the first edition sold at half a guinea within six weeks. However, a negative review by William Gifford in the Quarterly Review (No. 36, January 1818) hurt the sales of the second edition.
The following announcement appears on the back of the half-title of the second edition:—‘This day is published, Lectures on the English Poets, delivered at the Surry Institution, By William Hazlitt. In one vol. 8vo. price 10s. 6d.’
The following announcement appears on the back of the half-title of the second edition:—‘Today, we are releasing Lectures on the English Poets, delivered at the Surry Institution, by William Hazlitt. In one volume, 8vo. price £10.50.’
CONTENTS
PAGE | |
---|---|
Preface | 171 |
Cymbeline | 179 |
Macbeth | 186 |
Julius Cæsar | 195 |
Othello | 200 |
Timon of Athens | 210 |
Coriolanus | 214 |
Troilus and Cressida | 221 |
Antony and Cleopatra | 228 |
Hamlet | 232 |
The Tempest | 238 |
The Midsummer Night’s Dream | 244 |
Romeo and Juliet | 248 |
Lear | 257 |
Richard II. | 272 |
Henry IV. in Two Parts | 277 |
Henry V. | 285 |
Henry VI. in Three Parts | 292 |
Richard III. | 298 |
Henry VIII. | 303 |
King John | 306 |
Twelfth Night; or, What You Will | 313 |
The Two Gentlemen of Verona | 318 |
The Merchant of Venice | 320 |
The Winter’s Tale | 324 |
All’s Well that Ends Well | 329 |
Love’s Labour’s Lost | 332 |
Much Ado About Nothing | 335 |
170As You Like It | 338 |
The Taming of the Shrew | 341 |
Measure for Measure | 345 |
The Merry Wives of Windsor | 349 |
The Comedy of Errors | 351 |
Doubtful Plays of Shakespear | 353 |
Poems and Sonnets | 357 |
PREFACE
It is observed by Mr. Pope, that
It is noted by Mr. Pope, that
‘If ever any author deserved the name of an original, it was Shakespear. Homer himself drew not his art so immediately from the fountains of nature; it proceeded through Ægyptian strainers and channels, and came to him not without some tincture of the learning, or some cast of the models, of those before him. The poetry of Shakespear was inspiration indeed: he is not so much an imitator, as an instrument of nature; and it is not so just to say that he speaks from her, as that she speaks through him.
‘If any author truly deserves to be called an original, it’s Shakespeare. Even Homer didn’t pull his art directly from the sources of nature; it came to him filtered through Egyptian influences and was influenced by the knowledge and styles of those who came before him. Shakespeare’s poetry is pure inspiration: he’s not just an imitator, but a true instrument of nature; it’s more accurate to say that he doesn’t speak for her, but rather that she speaks through him.
‘His characters are so much nature herself, that it is a sort of injury to call them by so distant a name as copies of her. Those of other poets have a constant resemblance, which shows that they received them from one another, and were but multipliers of the same image: each picture, like a mock-rainbow, is but the reflection of a reflection. But every single character in Shakespear, is as much an individual, as those in life itself; it is as impossible to find any two alike; and such, as from their relation or affinity in any respect appear most to be twins, will, upon comparison, be found remarkably distinct. To this life and variety of character, we must add the wonderful preservation of it; which is such throughout his plays, that had all the speeches been printed without the very names of the persons, I believe one might have applied them with certainty to every speaker.’
‘His characters are so much like nature itself that it feels like an insult to call them just copies of her. The characters from other poets tend to look alike, showing that they borrowed from each other and simply recreated the same image: each portrayal, like a fake rainbow, is just a reflection of a reflection. But every single character in Shakespeare is as unique as real people; it's impossible to find any two that are alike, and those that seem similar based on their relationships or any similarities will, upon closer examination, be remarkably different. To this life and variety of character, we should also add the incredible consistency; so much so that if all the speeches had been printed without the names of the characters, I believe one could accurately match them to every speaker.’
The object of the volume here offered to the public, is to illustrate these remarks in a more particular manner by a reference to each play. A gentleman of the name of Mason, the author of a Treatise on Ornamental Gardening (not Mason the poet), began a work of a similar kind about forty years ago, but he only lived to finish a parallel between the characters of Macbeth and Richard III. which is an exceedingly ingenious piece of analytical criticism. Richardson’s Essays include but a few of Shakespear’s principal characters. The only work which seemed to supersede the necessity of an attempt like the present was Schlegel’s very admirable Lectures on the Drama, which give by far the best account of the plays of Shakespear that has hitherto appeared. The only circumstances in which it was thought not impossible to improve on the manner in which the German critic has executed this part of his design, were in avoiding an appearance 172of mysticism in his style, not very attractive to the English reader, and in bringing illustrations from particular passages of the plays themselves, of which Schlegel’s work, from the extensiveness of his plan, did not admit. We will at the same time confess, that some little jealousy of the character of the national understanding was not without its share in producing the following undertaking, for ‘we were piqued’ that it should be reserved for a foreign critic to give ‘reasons for the faith which we English have in Shakespear.’ Certainly no writer among ourselves has shown either the same enthusiastic admiration of his genius, or the same philosophical acuteness in pointing out his characteristic excellences. As we have pretty well exhausted all we had to say upon this subject in the body of the work, we shall here transcribe Schlegel’s general account of Shakespear, which is in the following words:—
The purpose of this volume being presented to the public is to elaborate on these comments more specifically by referencing each play. A gentleman named Mason, who wrote a Treatise on Ornamental Gardening (not to be confused with Mason the poet), started a similar project about forty years ago, but he only managed to complete a comparison between the characters of Macbeth and Richard III., which is a highly clever piece of analytical criticism. Richardson’s Essays touch on only a few of Shakespeare’s key characters. The only work that seemed to render an endeavor like this unnecessary was Schlegel’s excellent Lectures on the Drama, which offer by far the best analysis of Shakespeare’s plays that has ever been published. The only areas where it was thought possible to improve upon how the German critic approached this part of his work were in avoiding a sense of mysticism in his writing, which isn't very appealing to English readers, and in providing examples from specific passages of the plays themselves, which Schlegel’s extensive plan didn’t allow for. We also admit that a bit of jealousy regarding the national understanding played a role in motivating this project, as 'we were annoyed' that it should be left to a foreign critic to explain 'the reasons for the faith we English have in Shakespeare.' Certainly, no writer among us has shown either the same enthusiastic appreciation for his genius or the same philosophical insight in highlighting his distinctive strengths. Since we have largely covered everything we wanted to say on this topic in the main body of the work, we will now transcribe Schlegel’s general assessment of Shakespeare, which is as follows:—
‘Never, perhaps, was there so comprehensive a talent for the delineation of character as Shakespear’s. It not only grasps the diversities of rank, sex, and age, down to the dawnings of infancy; not only do the king and the beggar, the hero and the pickpocket, the sage and the idiot speak and act with equal truth; not only does he transport himself to distant ages and foreign nations, and pourtray in the most accurate manner, with only a few apparent violations of costume, the spirit of the ancient Romans, of the French in their wars with the English, of the English themselves during a great part of their history, of the Southern Europeans (in the serious part of many comedies) the cultivated society of that time, and the former rude and barbarous state of the North; his human characters have not only such depth and precision that they cannot be arranged under classes, and are inexhaustible, even in conception:—no—this Prometheus not merely forms men, he opens the gates of the magical world of spirits; calls up the midnight ghost; exhibits before us his witches amidst their unhallowed mysteries; peoples the air with sportive fairies and sylphs:—and these beings, existing only in imagination, possess such truth and consistency, that even when deformed monsters like Caliban, he extorts the conviction, that if there should be such beings, they would so conduct themselves. In a word, as he carries with him the most fruitful and daring fancy into the kingdom of nature,—on the other hand, he carries nature into the regions of fancy, lying beyond the confines of reality. We are lost in astonishment at seeing the extraordinary, the wonderful, and the unheard of, in such intimate nearness.
‘Never, perhaps, has there been such a comprehensive talent for character portrayal as Shakespeare’s. He captures the differences of social class, gender, and age, even down to infancy; the king and the beggar, the hero and the thief, the wise person and the fool speak and act with equal authenticity. He transports himself to ancient times and foreign lands, accurately depicting the essence of the ancient Romans, the French during their wars with the English, the English themselves throughout much of their history, the cultured societies of Southern Europeans in the serious aspects of many comedies, and the earlier crude and barbaric state of the North. His human characters are so deep and precise that they defy classification and are endlessly rich in imagination:—no—this Prometheus not only creates men, but he opens the gates to a magical world of spirits; he summons the midnight ghost; he reveals his witches amid their wicked mysteries; he fills the air with playful fairies and sylphs:—and these beings, existing only in our imagination, have such truth and consistency that even distorted monsters like Caliban convince us that if such creatures existed, they would behave as he describes. In short, while he infuses the most inventive and audacious imagination into the realm of nature, he also brings elements of nature into the realms of fantasy, beyond the boundaries of reality. We are left in awe at witnessing the extraordinary, the wondrous, and the unheard of, in such close proximity.
‘If Shakespear deserves our admiration for his characters, he is equally deserving of it for his exhibition of passion, taking this word in its widest signification, as including every mental condition, every tone from indifference or familiar mirth to the wildest rage and despair. He gives us the history of minds; he lays open to us, in a single word, a whole series of preceding conditions. His passions do not at first stand displayed to us in all their height, as is the case with so many tragic poets, who, in the language of Lessing, are thorough masters of the legal style of love. He 173paints, in a most inimitable manner, the gradual progress from the first origin. “He gives,” as Lessing says, “a living picture of all the most minute and secret artifices by which a feeling steals into our souls; of all the imperceptible advantages which it there gains; of all the stratagems by which every other passion is made subservient to it, till it becomes the sole tyrant of our desires and our aversions.” Of all poets, perhaps, he alone has pourtrayed the mental diseases,—melancholy, delirium, lunacy,—with such inexpressible, and, in every respect, definite truth, that the physician may enrich his observations from them in the same manner as from real cases.
If Shakespeare deserves our admiration for his characters, he equally deserves it for his display of passion, taking this word in its broadest sense, which includes every mental state, from indifference or casual laughter to the wildest rage and despair. He tells us the stories of minds; he reveals to us, in just one word, a whole series of previous conditions. His feelings don’t initially show themselves to us in all their intensity, unlike many tragic poets who, in Lessing's words, are complete masters of the legal style of love. He paints, in a truly unique way, the gradual development from the very beginning. “He provides,” as Lessing says, “a living picture of all the most subtle and hidden tricks by which a feeling enters our souls; of all the unnoticed advantages it gains there; of all the strategies through which every other emotion becomes subordinate to it, until it becomes the sole ruler of our desires and our aversions.” Among all poets, perhaps he is the only one who has depicted mental illnesses—melancholy, delirium, madness—with such indescribable, and in every way, precise truth that a physician can enhance his observations from them just as he would from actual cases.
‘And yet Johnson has objected to Shakespear, that his pathos is not always natural and free from affectation. There are, it is true, passages, though, comparatively speaking, very few, where his poetry exceeds the bounds of true dialogue, where a too soaring imagination, a too luxuriant wit, rendered the complete dramatic forgetfulness of himself impossible. With this exception, the censure originates only in a fanciless way of thinking, to which everything appears unnatural that does not suit its own tame insipidity. Hence, an idea has been formed of simple and natural pathos, which consists in exclamations destitute of imagery, and nowise elevated above every-day life. But energetical passions electrify the whole of the mental powers, and will, consequently, in highly favoured natures, express themselves in an ingenious and figurative manner. It has been often remarked, that indignation gives wit; and, as despair occasionally breaks out into laughter, it may sometimes also give vent to itself in antithetical comparisons.
‘Yet Johnson has criticized Shakespeare for having pathos that isn’t always natural and seems affected. It's true that there are a few passages where his poetry goes beyond realistic dialogue, where an overly lofty imagination and an abundance of wit make it impossible for him to fully forget himself in the drama. Aside from this exception, the criticism comes from a lack of imagination, which finds everything unnatural that doesn't fit its own dull blandness. This has led to a notion of simple and natural pathos, characterized by expressions lacking imagery and not rising above everyday life. However, intense emotions electrify all mental faculties and will, therefore, express themselves in creative and figurative ways in particularly gifted individuals. It has often been noted that indignation sparks wit; and just as despair can sometimes break into laughter, it may also find expression in sharp contrasts.
‘Besides, the rights of the poetical form have not been duly weighed. Shakespear, who was always sure of his object, to move in a sufficiently powerful manner when he wished to do so, has occasionally, by indulging in a freer play, purposely moderated the impressions when too painful, and immediately introduced a musical alleviation of our sympathy. He had not those rude ideas of his art which many moderns seem to have, as if the poet, like the clown in the proverb, must strike twice on the same place. An ancient rhetorician delivered a caution against dwelling too long on the excitation of pity; for nothing, he said, dries so soon as tears; and Shakespear acted conformably to this ingenious maxim, without knowing it.
‘Besides, the rights of poetic form haven’t been properly considered. Shakespeare, who always knew what he wanted to achieve, could create powerful effects when he chose to, but sometimes, by indulging in more freedom, he intentionally toned down the impact when it got too intense, immediately introducing a musical relief for our sympathy. He didn’t hold the crude views about his craft that many modern writers seem to have, as if a poet, like the clown in the proverb, must hit the same spot twice. An ancient rhetorician warned against dwelling too long on stirring up pity; he said nothing dries up faster than tears, and Shakespeare practiced this clever principle without even realizing it.
‘The objection, that Shakespear wounds our feelings by the open display of the most disgusting moral odiousness, harrows up the mind unmercifully, and tortures even our senses by the exhibition of the most insupportable and hateful spectacles, is one of much greater importance. He has never, in fact, varnished over wild and bloodthirsty passions with a pleasing exterior,—never clothed crime and want of principle with a false show of greatness of soul; and in that respect he is every way deserving of praise. Twice he has pourtrayed downright villains; and the masterly way in which he has contrived to elude impressions of too painful a nature, may be seen in Iago and Richard the Third. The constant reference to a petty and puny race must cripple the boldness of the poet. Fortunately for his art, Shakespear lived in an age extremely susceptible of noble and tender impressions, but which had still enough of the firmness inherited from a vigorous olden time not to shrink back with dismay from every strong and 174violent picture. We have lived to see tragedies of which the catastrophe consists in the swoon of an enamoured princess. If Shakespear falls occasionally into the opposite extreme, it is a noble error, originating in the fulness of a gigantic strength: and yet this tragical Titan, who storms the heavens, and threatens to tear the world from off its hinges; who, more terrible than Æschylus, makes our hair stand on end, and congeals our blood with horror, possessed, at the same time, the insinuating loveliness of the sweetest poetry. He plays with love like a child; and his songs are breathed out like melting sighs. He unites in his genius the utmost elevation and the utmost depth; and the most foreign, and even apparently irreconcileable properties subsist in him peaceably together. The world of spirits and nature have laid all their treasures at his feet. In strength a demi-god, in profundity of view a prophet, in all-seeing wisdom a protecting spirit of a higher order, he lowers himself to mortals, as if unconscious of his superiority: and is as open and unassuming as a child.
The objection that Shakespeare disturbs our feelings by openly showing the most disgusting moral ugliness, deeply unsettles our minds, and even tortures our senses with unbearable and hateful scenes, is much more significant. He has never, in fact, sugar-coated wild and violent passions with a pleasing facade—never dressed up crime and lack of morals with a false sense of nobility; and for that, he deserves praise. He has depicted outright villains twice; and the skillful way he avoids creating too painful impressions can be seen in Iago and Richard the Third. Constant references to a weak and petty race could hold back the boldness of the poet. Fortunately for his craft, Shakespeare lived in a time that was very receptive to noble and tender emotions, yet still had enough of the strength inherited from a vigorous past not to recoil in horror from every strong and violent image. We’ve seen tragedies where the climax revolves around the fainting of a lovesick princess. If Shakespeare sometimes goes to the opposite extreme, it’s a noble mistake that comes from an abundance of immense strength: and yet this tragic giant, who storms the heavens and threatens to upend the world; who, more terrifying than Aeschylus, makes our hair stand on end and freezes our blood in horror, also possessed the enchanting beauty of the sweetest poetry. He plays with love like a child; his songs flow like melting sighs. In his genius, he combines the highest elevation with the deepest depths; and the most foreign, even seemingly contradictory qualities coexist peacefully in him. The world of spirits and nature has laid all its treasures at his feet. In strength, he is like a demi-god; in depth of insight, a prophet; in all-seeing wisdom, a guiding spirit of a higher order, yet he brings himself down to mortals as if unaware of his superiority, and is as open and humble as a child.
‘Shakespear’s comic talent is equally wonderful with that which he has shown in the pathetic and tragic: it stands on an equal elevation, and possesses equal extent and profundity. All that I before wished was, not to admit that the former preponderated. He is highly inventive in comic situations and motives. It will be hardly possible to show whence he has taken any of them; whereas, in the serious part of his drama, he has generally laid hold of something already known. His comic characters are equally true, various, and profound, with his serious. So little is he disposed to caricature, that we may rather say many of his traits are almost too nice and delicate for the stage, that they can only be properly seized by a great actor, and fully understood by a very acute audience. Not only has he delineated many kinds of folly; he has also contrived to exhibit mere stupidity in a most diverting and entertaining manner.’—Vol. ii. p. 145.
‘Shakespeare’s comic talent is just as amazing as his skills in the sad and tragic; it holds an equal position and has the same range and depth. All I wanted to convey earlier was that I didn’t want to suggest that comedy takes precedence. He is incredibly creative with comic situations and motives. It’s almost impossible to trace where he’s gotten any of them from; meanwhile, in the serious parts of his plays, he often draws from something already familiar. His comic characters are just as real, diverse, and deep as his serious ones. He is so far from being a caricaturist that we might even say many of his details are almost too subtle and refined for the stage, only truly captured by a great actor and fully understood by a very perceptive audience. Not only has he depicted various kinds of foolishness; he has also managed to showcase sheer stupidity in a very amusing and entertaining way.’—Vol. ii. p. 145.
We have the rather availed ourselves of this testimony of a foreign critic in behalf of Shakespear, because our own countryman, Dr. Johnson, has not been so favourable to him. It may be said of Shakespear, that ‘those who are not for him are against him’: for indifference is here the height of injustice. We may sometimes, in order ‘to do a great right, do a little wrong.’ An overstrained enthusiasm is more pardonable with respect to Shakespear than the want of it; for our admiration cannot easily surpass his genius. We have a high respect for Dr. Johnson’s character and understanding, mixed with something like personal attachment: but he was neither a poet nor a judge of poetry. He might in one sense be a judge of poetry as it falls within the limits and rules of prose, but not as it is poetry. Least of all was he qualified to be a judge of Shakespear, who ‘alone is high fantastical.’ Let those who have a prejudice against Johnson read Boswell’s Life of him; as those whom he has prejudiced against Shakespear should read his Irene. We do not say that a man to be a critic must necessarily be a poet: but to be a 175good critic, he ought not to be a bad poet. Such poetry as a man deliberately writes, such, and such only will he like. Dr. Johnson’s Preface to his edition of Shakespear looks like a laborious attempt to bury the characteristic merits of his author under a load of cumbrous phraseology, and to weigh his excellences and defects in equal scales, stuffed full of ‘swelling figures and sonorous epithets.’ Nor could it well be otherwise; Dr. Johnson’s general powers of reasoning overlaid his critical susceptibility. All his ideas were cast in a given mould, in a set form: they were made out by rule and system, by climax, inference, and antithesis:—Shakespear’s were the reverse. Johnson’s understanding dealt only in round numbers: the fractions were lost upon him. He reduced everything to the common standard of conventional propriety; and the most exquisite refinement or sublimity produced an effect on his mind, only as they could be translated into the language of measured prose. To him an excess of beauty was a fault; for it appeared to him like an excrescence; and his imagination was dazzled by the blaze of light. His writings neither shone with the beams of native genius, nor reflected them. The shifting shapes of fancy, the rainbow hues of things, made no impression on him: he seized only on the permanent and tangible. He had no idea of natural objects but ‘such as he could measure with a two-foot rule, or tell upon ten fingers’: he judged of human nature in the same way, by mood and figure: he saw only the definite, the positive, and the practical, the average forms of things, not their striking differences—their classes, not their degrees. He was a man of strong common sense and practical wisdom, rather than of genius or feeling. He retained the regular, habitual impressions of actual objects, but he could not follow the rapid flights of fancy, or the strong movements of passion. That is, he was to the poet what the painter of still life is to the painter of history. Common sense sympathises with the impressions of things on ordinary minds in ordinary circumstances: genius catches the glancing combinations presented to the eye of fancy, under the influence of passion. It is the province of the didactic reasoner to take cognizance of those results of human nature which are constantly repeated and always the same, which follow one another in regular succession, which are acted upon by large classes of men, and embodied in received customs, laws, language, and institutions; and it was in arranging, comparing, and arguing on these kind of general results, that Johnson’s excellence lay. But he could not quit his hold of the common-place and mechanical, and apply the general rule to the particular exception, or shew how the nature of man was modified by the workings of passion, or the infinite fluctuations of thought and accident. Hence he could 176judge neither of the heights nor depths of poetry. Nor is this all; for being conscious of great powers in himself, and those powers of an adverse tendency to those of his author, he would be for setting up a foreign jurisdiction over poetry, and making criticism a kind of Procrustes’ bed of genius, where he might cut down imagination to matter-of-fact, regulate the passions according to reason, and translate the whole into logical diagrams and rhetorical declamation. Thus he says of Shakespear’s characters, in contradiction to what Pope had observed, and to what every one else feels, that each character is a species, instead of being an individual. He in fact found the general species or didactic form in Shakespear’s characters, which was all he sought or cared for; he did not find the individual traits, or the dramatic distinctions which Shakespear has engrafted on this general nature, because he felt no interest in them. Shakespear’s bold and happy flights of imagination were equally thrown away upon our author. He was not only without any particular fineness of organic sensibility, alive to all the ‘mighty world of ear and eye,’ which is necessary to the painter or musician, but without that intenseness of passion, which, seeking to exaggerate whatever excites the feelings of pleasure or power in the mind, and moulding the impressions of natural objects according to the impulses of imagination, produces a genius and a taste for poetry. According to Dr. Johnson, a mountain is sublime, or a rose is beautiful; for that their name and definition imply. But he would no more be able to give the description of Dover cliff in Lear, or the description of flowers in The Winter’s Tale, than to describe the objects of a sixth sense; nor do we think he would have any very profound feeling of the beauty of the passages here referred to. A stately common-place, such as Congreve’s description of a ruin in the Mourning Bride, would have answered Johnson’s purpose just as well, or better than the first; and an indiscriminate profusion of scents and hues would have interfered less with the ordinary routine of his imagination than Perdita’s lines, which seem enamoured of their own sweetness—
We have taken the liberty of referencing a foreign critic's praise for Shakespeare because our own countryman, Dr. Johnson, hasn't been as supportive. One might say about Shakespeare that "if you're not for him, you're against him," as indifference is the worst form of injustice. Sometimes, in order to "do a great right, we might do a little wrong." An extreme enthusiasm for Shakespeare is more forgivable than lacking it; our admiration for him is hard to exceed. We respect Dr. Johnson's character and intellect and even feel a bit personally attached to him, but he was neither a poet nor a good judge of poetry. He could only judge poetry according to the confines of prose, but not as poetry itself. He was certainly not suited to judge Shakespeare, who is "uniquely high in fantasy." Those with a bias against Johnson should read Boswell's biography of him, just as those he has biased against Shakespeare should read his *Irene*. We don't claim that a critic must be a poet; however, to be a good critic, one shouldn't be a bad poet. A writer will only appreciate the kind of poetry they consciously produce. Dr. Johnson’s Preface to his edition of Shakespeare seems like a forced effort to obscure the unique qualities of Shakespeare's work under clumsy language, trying to balance his virtues and faults with "bombastic phrases and grand epithets." It’s no wonder; Johnson's robust reasoning often overpowered his ability to critique. His thoughts were confined to specific molds and structures, articulated through rules and systems such as climax, inference, and opposition—whereas Shakespeare's thoughts were free-flowing. Johnson's reasoning dealt only in whole numbers; he couldn’t grasp the subtleties. He reduced everything to a baseline of conventional standards, viewing intricate beauty as a flaw, as if it were an unwanted growth, and his imagination was blinded by overwhelming brightness. His writings didn’t shine with original genius, nor did they reflect it. The ever-changing ideas and the vibrant colors of things left no mark on him; he only grasped what was solid and clear. He understood natural objects only in terms that could be physically measured, just as he viewed human nature through moods and appearances; he recognized only the definite, the clear, and the practical—he saw averages rather than nuances, classes rather than variations. He was more a person of strong common sense and practical wisdom than a person of genius or deep feeling. He remembered the habitual impressions of real objects, but he couldn't follow the swift movements of imagination or the depth of passion. In essence, he was to a poet what a still-life painter is to a historical painter. Common sense resonates with the impressions ordinary minds encounter in usual situations, while genius captures the fleeting combinations that appeal to the imagination within emotional contexts. The role of a didactic thinker is to acknowledge human behaviors that are continuously similar and always the same, which occur in a predictable order, which are manifest in broad groups of people, and are represented in established customs, laws, language, and institutions. Johnson excelled in organizing, comparing, and reasoning about these general conclusions. However, he couldn’t break free from the everyday and mechanical to apply broader rules to specific exceptions or explain how human nature is influenced by passion or the constant shifts of thought and circumstance. Therefore, he couldn't truly understand the extremes of poetry. Moreover, he was aware of his own considerable abilities, which contrasted with those of Shakespeare; he sought to establish an external standard for poetry, turning criticism into a rigid framework that limited imagination to mere factuality, forced emotions to comply with reason, and translated everything into logical structures and rhetorical presentations. For instance, he argued against Pope’s observation and what everyone else can feel when he claimed that Shakespeare's characters are types rather than individuals. He only found the general types or didactic forms in Shakespeare’s characters, which was all he cared about; he overlooked the distinct personal qualities and dramatic features that Shakespeare infused into his general themes because he had no interest in them. Shakespeare’s bold and imaginative expressions were completely lost on our author. He not only lacked a delicate sensitivity to the "vast world of sound and sight," essential to a painter or musician, but he also missed the deep passion that seeks to amplify whatever stirs feelings of pleasure or power in the mind and shapes the impressions of reality according to the whims of imagination, which leads to a talent and appreciation for poetry. According to Dr. Johnson, a mountain is sublime, and a rose is beautiful simply because that's what their names and definitions suggest. However, he would have been just as incapable of describing the Dover cliff in *Lear* or the depiction of flowers in *The Winter's Tale* as he would be at articulating something beyond the five senses; nor do we believe he would have a deep understanding of the beauty in those referenced passages. A formal description, like Congreve's portrayal of a ruin in *The Mourning Bride*, would have served Johnson's purpose just as well, if not better, than the former; and an arbitrary assortment of scents and colors would have bothered his typical train of thought less than Perdita’s lines, which seem enchanted by their own sweetness.
No one who does not feel the passion which these objects inspire can go along with the imagination which seeks to express that passion and the uneasy sense of delight accompanying it by something still more beautiful, and no one can feel this passionate love of nature 177without quick natural sensibility. To a mere literal and formal apprehension, the inimitably characteristic epithet, ‘violets dim,’ must seem to imply a defect, rather than a beauty; and to any one, not feeling the full force of that epithet, which suggests an image like ‘the sleepy eye of love,’ the allusion to ‘the lids of Juno’s eyes’ must appear extravagant and unmeaning. Shakespear’s fancy lent words and images to the most refined sensibility to nature, struggling for expression: his descriptions are identical with the things themselves, seen through the fine medium of passion: strip them of that connection, and try them by ordinary conceptions and ordinary rules, and they are as grotesque and barbarous as you please!—By thus lowering Shakespear’s genius to the standard of common-place invention, it was easy to show that his faults were as great as his beauties; for the excellence, which consists merely in a conformity to rules, is counterbalanced by the technical violation of them. Another circumstance which led to Dr. Johnson’s indiscriminate praise or censure of Shakespear, is the very structure of his style. Johnson wrote a kind of rhyming prose, in which he was as much compelled to finish the different clauses of his sentences, and to balance one period against another, as the writer of heroic verse is to keep to lines of ten syllables with similar terminations. He no sooner acknowledges the merits of his author in one line than the periodical revolution of his style carries the weight of his opinion completely over to the side of objection, thus keeping up a perpetual alternation of perfections and absurdities. We do not otherwise know how to account for such assertions as the following:—
No one who doesn't feel the passion that these objects inspire can truly engage with the imagination that tries to express that passion and the uneasy delight that comes with it through something even more beautiful. To someone who just sees things literally and formally, the uniquely descriptive phrase "dim violets" might seem to hint at a flaw rather than a beauty. For anyone who doesn't grasp the full meaning of that phrase, which evokes an image like "the sleepy eye of love," the reference to "the lids of Juno’s eyes" might come off as absurd and meaningless. Shakespeare's creativity provided words and images to the most refined sensitivity to nature, trying to find expression: his descriptions are the same as the things themselves, viewed through the delicate lens of passion. Strip them of that connection and assess them against ordinary ideas and typical standards, and they become as ridiculous and crude as you can imagine! By reducing Shakespeare’s genius to the level of common invention, it was easy to argue that his flaws were as significant as his strengths; because the excellence that comes solely from following rules is offset by the technical breaking of them. Another reason for Dr. Johnson’s mixed praise or criticism of Shakespeare lies in the very structure of his style. Johnson wrote a type of rhyming prose, where he was just as required to finish the different parts of his sentences and to balance one part against another as a writer of heroic verse is to stick to lines of ten syllables with similar endings. He would acknowledge his author’s merits in one line, but then the cyclical nature of his style would completely shift his opinion back to the side of criticism, creating a constant back-and-forth between strengths and absurdities. We otherwise can’t explain such claims as the following:—
‘In his tragic scenes, there is always something wanting, but his comedy often surpasses expectation or desire. His comedy pleases by the thoughts and the language, and his tragedy, for the greater part, by incident and action. His tragedy seems to be skill, his comedy to be instinct.’
‘In his tragic scenes, there's always something missing, but his comedy often exceeds expectations or desires. His comedy delights with its ideas and language, while his tragedy, for the most part, relies on situations and actions. His tragedy appears to be crafted skillfully, while his comedy comes from instinct.’
Yet after saying that ‘his tragedy was skill,’ he affirms in the next page,
Yet after saying that "his tragedy was skill," he confirms on the next page,
‘His declamations or set speeches are commonly cold and weak, for his power was the power of nature: when he endeavoured, like other tragic writers, to catch opportunities of amplification, and instead of inquiring what the occasion demanded, to shew how much his stores of knowledge could supply, he seldom escapes without the pity or resentment of his reader.’
‘His speeches are often dull and ineffective, because his strength was a natural one: when he tried, like other tragic writers, to take advantage of moments to elaborate, and instead of focusing on what the situation needed, showed off how much he knew, he rarely avoids leaving his readers feeling pity or irritation.’
Poor Shakespear! Between the charges here brought against him, of want of nature in the first instance, and of want of skill in the second, he could hardly escape being condemned. And again,
Poor Shakespeare! With the accusations against him, first claiming he lacked natural talent and second saying he lacked skill, he could hardly avoid being judged. And again,
‘But the admirers of this great poet have most reason to complain when 178he approaches nearest to his highest excellence, and seems fully resolved to sink them in dejection, or mollify them with tender emotions by the fall of greatness, the danger of innocence, or the crosses of love. What he does best, he soon ceases to do. He no sooner begins to move than he counteracts himself; and terror and pity, as they are rising in the mind, are checked and blasted by sudden frigidity.’
‘But the fans of this great poet have the most reason to complain when 178 he gets closest to his greatest brilliance, and seems determined to either plunge them into sadness or soften them with tender feelings through the downfall of greatness, the peril of innocence, or the struggles of love. What he does best, he quickly stops doing. As soon as he starts to move, he undermines himself; and terror and pity, as they build in the mind, are interrupted and destroyed by a sudden chill.’
In all this, our critic seems more bent on maintaining the equilibrium of his style than the consistency or truth of his opinions.—If Dr. Johnson’s opinion was right, the following observations on Shakespear’s Plays must be greatly exaggerated, if not ridiculous. If he was wrong, what has been said may perhaps account for his being so, without detracting from his ability and judgment in other things.
In all this, our critic seems more focused on keeping his style balanced than on the consistency or truth of his opinions. If Dr. Johnson’s opinion was correct, the following comments on Shakespeare’s plays must be highly exaggerated, if not absurd. If he was wrong, what has been said might explain why he is, without taking away from his skill and judgment in other areas.
It is proper to add, that the account of the Midsummer’s Night’s Dream has appeared in another work.[64]
It is important to note that the story of the Midsummer’s Night’s Dream has been featured in another work.[64]
CYMBELINE
Cymbeline is one of the most delightful of Shakespear’s historical plays. It may be considered as a dramatic romance, in which the most striking parts of the story are thrown into the form of a dialogue, and the intermediate circumstances are explained by the different speakers, as occasion renders it necessary. The action is less concentrated in consequence; but the interest becomes more aerial and refined from the principle of perspective introduced into the subject by the imaginary changes of scene, as well as by the length of time it occupies. The reading of this play is like going a journey with some uncertain object at the end of it, and in which the suspense is kept up and heightened by the long intervals between each action. Though the events are scattered over such an extent of surface, and relate to such a variety of characters, yet the links which bind the different interests of the story together are never entirely broken. The most straggling and seemingly casual incidents are contrived in such a manner as to lead at last to the most complete developement of the catastrophe. The ease and conscious unconcern with which this is effected only makes the skill more wonderful. The business of the plot evidently thickens in the last act: the story moves forward with increasing rapidity at every step; its various ramifications are drawn from the most distant points to the same centre; the principal characters are brought together, and placed in very critical situations; and the fate of almost every person in the drama is made to depend on the solution of a single circumstance—the answer of Iachimo to the question of Imogen respecting the obtaining of the ring from Posthumus. Dr. Johnson is of opinion that Shakespear was generally inattentive to the winding-up of his plots. We think the contrary is true; and we might cite in proof of this remark not only the present play, but the conclusion of Lear, of Romeo and Juliet, of Macbeth, of Othello, even of Hamlet, and of other plays of less moment, in which 180the last act is crowded with decisive events brought about by natural and striking means.
Cymbeline is one of the most enjoyable of Shakespeare’s historical plays. It can be seen as a dramatic romance, where the most compelling parts of the story are presented as dialogue, and the events in between are explained by the different characters as needed. The action is less focused because of this, but the interest becomes lighter and more refined due to the perspective created by the imagined scene changes, as well as the extended timeframe of the plot. Reading this play feels like taking a journey with an uncertain destination, and the suspense builds up during the long breaks between each event. Although the events are spread over a wide range and involve many different characters, the connections that tie the various parts of the story together are never completely lost. Even the most unexpected and seemingly random incidents are arranged in such a way that they ultimately lead to a complete resolution of the story. The ease and confidence with which this is accomplished only heightens the skill involved. The plot clearly intensifies in the final act: the story moves forward with increasing speed at each turn; its various threads are pulled from distant points toward a single conclusion; the main characters are brought together and placed in very critical situations; and the fate of almost everyone in the drama hinges on the resolution of a single detail—the answer from Iachimo to Imogen’s question about obtaining the ring from Posthumus. Dr. Johnson believes that Shakespeare was generally careless with the endings of his plots. We think the opposite is true; we could point to not only this play but also the conclusions of Lear, Romeo and Juliet, Macbeth, Othello, even Hamlet, and other less significant plays, where the last act is packed with decisive events that come about through natural and striking means.
The pathos in Cymbeline is not violent or tragical, but of the most pleasing and amiable kind. A certain tender gloom overspreads the whole. Posthumus is the ostensible hero of the piece, but its greatest charm is the character of Imogen. Posthumus is only interesting from the interest she takes in him; and she is only interesting herself from her tenderness and constancy to her husband. It is the peculiar excellence of Shakespear’s heroines, that they seem to exist only in their attachment to others. They are pure abstractions of the affections. We think as little of their persons as they do themselves, because we are let into the secrets of their hearts, which are more important. We are too much interested in their affairs to stop to look at their faces, except by stealth and at intervals. No one ever hit the true perfection of the female character, the sense of weakness leaning on the strength of its affections for support, so well as Shakespear—no one ever so well painted natural tenderness free from affectation and disguise—no one else ever so well shewed how delicacy and timidity, when driven to extremity, grow romantic and extravagant; for the romance of his heroines (in which they abound) is only an excess of the habitual prejudices of their sex, scrupulous of being false to their vows, truant to their affections, and taught by the force of feeling when to forego the forms of propriety for the essence of it. His women were in this respect exquisite logicians; for there is nothing so logical as passion. They knew their own minds exactly; and only followed up a favourite purpose, which they had sworn to with their tongues, and which was engraven on their hearts, into its untoward consequences. They were the prettiest little set of martyrs and confessors on record.—Cibber, in speaking of the early English stage, accounts for the want of prominence and theatrical display in Shakespear’s female characters from the circumstance, that women in those days were not allowed to play the parts of women, which made it necessary to keep them a good deal in the back-ground. Does not this state of manners itself, which prevented their exhibiting themselves in public, and confined them to the relations and charities of domestic life, afford a truer explanation of the matter? His women are certainly very unlike stage-heroines; the reverse of tragedy-queens.
The emotion in Cymbeline (play title stays the same) isn’t violent or tragic, but rather gentle and endearing. A certain soft sadness blankets the entire story. Posthumus is the main hero, but the real appeal lies in the character of Imogen. Posthumus is interesting only because of her feelings for him, and she only captivates because of her love and loyalty to her husband. One of Shakespeare’s unique strengths is that his heroines seem to thrive through their connections to others. They are pure embodiments of love. We pay little attention to their appearances just as they do themselves because we’re privy to their inner thoughts, which matter more. We are so invested in their stories that we rarely glance at their faces except in secret and at intervals. No one captured the true essence of femininity—this sense of weakness reliant on the strength of love so well as Shakespeare did. No one painted natural tenderness without pretense or disguise quite like him. No one illustrated how delicacy and shyness can become romantic and extravagant when pushed to the limit; the romance of his heroines is just an intensification of what society expects from them—being careful not to betray their promises, maintaining their affections, and learning when to discard societal norms for deeper truths. His women were, in this sense, brilliant logicians; there’s nothing more logical than passion. They understood their own minds perfectly, pursuing a cherished goal that they had committed to with words and which was etched on their hearts, regardless of its challenging outcomes. They are the sweetest little martyrs and confessors recorded. Cibber, discussing the early English stage, explains the lack of visibility and dramatic flair in Shakespeare’s female characters by noting that women weren’t allowed to play women’s roles, so they had to remain largely in the background. Doesn’t this social situation, which kept them from showcasing themselves publicly and limited them to the relationships and kindnesses of home life, provide a more accurate explanation? His women certainly aren’t like typical stage heroines; they’re the opposite of tragic queens.
We have almost as great an affection for Imogen as she had for Posthumus; and she deserves it better. Of all Shakespear’s women she is perhaps the most tender and the most artless. Her incredulity in the opening scene with Iachimo, as to her husband’s infidelity, is much the same as Desdemona’s backwardness to believe Othello’s 181jealousy. Her answer to the most distressing part of the picture is only, ‘My lord, I fear, has forgot Britain.’ Her readiness to pardon Iachimo’s false imputations and his designs against herself, is a good lesson to prudes; and may shew that where there is a real attachment to virtue, it has no need to bolster itself up with an outrageous or affected antipathy to vice. The scene in which Pisanio gives Imogen his master’s letter, accusing her of incontinency on the treacherous suggestions of Iachimo, is as touching as it is possible for anything to be:—
We have nearly as much affection for Imogen as she had for Posthumus, and she deserves it even more. Of all of Shakespeare’s female characters, she is probably the most tender and the most innocent. Her disbelief in the opening scene with Iachimo about her husband's infidelity is similar to Desdemona’s reluctance to believe Othello’s jealousy. Her response to the most troubling part of the situation is simply, ‘My lord, I fear, has forgotten Britain.’ Her willingness to forgive Iachimo’s false accusations and his schemes against her is a valuable lesson for prudes; it shows that when there is a genuine commitment to virtue, there’s no need to reinforce it with an extreme or fake aversion to vice. The scene where Pisanio gives Imogen his master’s letter, accusing her of infidelity based on Iachimo’s deceitful suggestions, is as poignant as anything can be:—
When Pisanio, who had been charged to kill his mistress, puts her in a way to live, she says,
When Pisanio, who had been ordered to kill his mistress, helps her escape, she says,
Yet when he advises her to disguise herself in boy’s clothes, and suggests ‘a course pretty and full in view,’ by which she may ‘happily be near the residence of Posthumus,’ she exclaims—
Yet when he tells her to dress in boy’s clothes, and suggests ‘a course pretty and full in view,’ so that she can ‘happily be near the home of Posthumus,’ she exclaims—
182And when Pisanio, enlarging on the consequences, tells her she must change
182And when Pisanio, discussing the consequences, tells her she must change
she interrupts him hastily—
she cuts him off quickly—
In her journey thus disguised to Milford-Haven, she loses her guide and her way; and unbosoming her complaints, says beautifully—
In her journey, while disguised on her way to Milford Haven, she loses her guide and her path; and expressing her frustrations, she says beautifully—
She afterwards finds, as she thinks, the dead body of Posthumus, and engages herself as a footboy to serve a Roman officer, when she has done all due obsequies to him whom she calls her former master—
She later discovers what she believes to be the dead body of Posthumus and decides to work as a servant for a Roman officer after giving all the proper rituals for someone she refers to as her former master—
Now this is the very religion of love. She all along relies little on her personal charms, which she fears may have been eclipsed by some painted Jay of Italy; she relies on her merit, and her merit is in the depth of her love, her truth and constancy. Our admiration of her beauty is excited with as little consciousness as possible on her part. There are two delicious descriptions given of her, one when she is asleep, and one when she is supposed dead. Arviragus thus addresses her—
Now this is the true religion of love. She doesn’t rely much on her looks, which she worries may have been overshadowed by some flashy person from Italy; she depends on her worth, and her worth lies in the depth of her love, her truth, and her loyalty. Our admiration for her beauty arises with as little awareness as possible on her part. There are two beautiful descriptions of her, one when she’s asleep and another when she’s thought to be dead. Arviragus addresses her like this—
183The yellow Iachimo gives another thus, when he steals into her bedchamber:—
183The yellow Iachimo gives another like this when he sneaks into her bedroom:—
There is a moral sense in the proud beauty of this last image, a rich surfeit of the fancy,—as that well-known passage beginning, ‘Me of my lawful pleasure she restrained, and prayed me oft forbearance,’ sets a keener edge upon it by the inimitable picture of modesty and self-denial.
There’s a moral quality in the proud beauty of this last image, an abundance of imagination—as that famous line starting with, ‘She held back my rightful pleasure, and often asked me to be patient,’ sharpens it with an unmatched portrayal of modesty and self-restraint.
The character of Cloten, the conceited, booby lord, and rejected lover of Imogen, though not very agreeable in itself, and at present obsolete, is drawn with much humour and quaint extravagance. The description which Imogen gives of his unwelcome addresses to her—‘Whose love-suit hath been to me as fearful as a siege’—is enough to cure the most ridiculous lover of his folly. It is remarkable that though Cloten makes so poor a figure in love, he is described as assuming an air of consequence as the Queen’s son in a council of state, and with all the absurdity of his person and manners, is not without shrewdness in his observations. So true is it that folly is as often owing to a want of proper sentiments as to a want of understanding! The exclamation of the ancient critic—Oh Menander and Nature, which of you copied from the other! would not be misapplied to Shakespear.
The character of Cloten, the arrogant, foolish lord and spurned admirer of Imogen, while not very likable in itself and currently outdated, is portrayed with a lot of humor and quirky extravagance. Imogen’s description of his unwanted advances—“Whose love-suit has been to me as fearful as a siege”—is enough to make even the most ridiculous suitor rethink his absurdity. It’s interesting that although Cloten does poorly in love, he carries himself with importance as the Queen’s son in a state council, and despite his ridiculous appearance and behavior, he shows some cleverness in his remarks. It’s so true that folly often stems from a lack of proper feelings as much as from a lack of understanding! The ancient critic's exclamation—Oh Menander and Nature, which of you copied from the other!—would not be misplaced when talking about Shakespeare.
The other characters in this play are represented with great truth and accuracy, and as it happens in most of the author’s works, there is not only the utmost keeping in each separate character; but in the casting of the different parts, and their relation to one another, there is an affinity and harmony, like what we may observe in the gradations of colour in a picture. The striking and powerful contrasts in which Shakespear abounds could not escape observation; but the use he makes of the principle of analogy to reconcile the greatest diversities of character and to maintain a continuity of feeling throughout, has not been sufficiently attended to. In Cymbeline, for instance, the principal interest arises out of the unalterable fidelity of Imogen to 184her husband under the most trying circumstances. Now the other parts of the picture are filled up with subordinate examples of the same feeling, variously modified by different situations, and applied to the purposes of virtue or vice. The plot is aided by the amorous importunities of Cloten, by the persevering determination of Iachimo to conceal the defeat of his project by a daring imposture: the faithful attachment of Pisanio to his mistress is an affecting accompaniment to the whole; the obstinate adherence to his purpose in Bellarius, who keeps the fate of the young princes so long a secret in resentment for the ungrateful return to his former services, the incorrigible wickedness of the Queen, and even the blind uxorious confidence of Cymbeline, are all so many lines of the same story, tending to the same point. The effect of this coincidence is rather felt than observed; and as the impression exists unconsciously in the mind of the reader, so it probably arose in the same manner in the mind of the author, not from design, but from the force of natural association, a particular train of thought suggesting different inflections of the same predominant feeling, melting into, and strengthening one another, like chords in music.
The other characters in this play are depicted with great authenticity and precision, and like many of the author’s works, there’s not only a strong consistency in each character, but also a connection and harmony among the roles and their relationships, similar to the color gradations in a painting. The striking contrasts that Shakespeare is known for certainly stand out, but the way he uses analogy to reconcile the greatest differences in character and maintain a continuous emotional thread throughout has not been fully recognized. In Cymbeline, for instance, the main focus comes from Imogen’s unwavering loyalty to her husband in the most challenging circumstances. The other elements of the story are filled with supporting examples of the same loyalty, each uniquely shaped by different situations and serving the purposes of either virtue or vice. The plot is influenced by Cloten's relentless romantic advances, Iachimo's determination to hide the failure of his scheme through bold deception: Pisanio’s devoted loyalty to his mistress adds an emotional layer to the whole; the stubborn resolve of Bellarius, who keeps the fate of the young princes a secret out of resentment for their ingratitude, the unrepentant wickedness of the Queen, and even Cymbeline’s blind, doting trust are all threads in the same narrative, converging toward a common goal. The effect of this coincidence is more felt than noticed; just as the impression exists unconsciously in the reader’s mind, it likely emerged similarly in the author’s mind, not from intentional design, but from the natural flow of thought, where a specific line of thinking suggests different variations of the same dominant emotion, blending and reinforcing one another, much like musical chords.
The characters of Bellarius, Guiderius, and Arviragus, and the romantic scenes in which they appear, are a fine relief to the intrigues and artificial refinements of the court from which they are banished. Nothing can surpass the wildness and simplicity of the descriptions of the mountain life they lead. They follow the business of huntsmen, not of shepherds; and this is in keeping with the spirit of adventure and uncertainty in the rest of the story, and with the scenes in which they are afterwards called on to act. How admirably the youthful fire and impatience to emerge from their obscurity in the young princes is opposed to the cooler calculations and prudent resignation of their more experienced counsellor! How well the disadvantages of knowledge and of ignorance, of solitude and society, are placed against each other!
The characters Bellarius, Guiderius, and Arviragus, along with the romantic scenes they’re part of, provide a refreshing contrast to the court's intrigues and artificial behaviors from which they’ve been exiled. The wildness and simplicity of their mountain life descriptions are unmatched. They engage in hunting, not shepherding; this aligns perfectly with the adventurous and unpredictable spirit of the rest of the story and the situations they eventually face. The youthful energy and eagerness of the young princes to break free from their obscurity sharply contrasts with the cooler, more calculated advice and patient acceptance of their wiser mentor. It’s striking how the benefits and drawbacks of knowledge versus ignorance, and solitude versus society, are effectively juxtaposed.
The answer of Bellarius to this expostulation is hardly satisfactory; for nothing can be an answer to hope, or the passion of the mind for unknown good, but experience.—The forest of Arden in As You Like It can alone compare with the mountain scenes in Cymbeline: yet how different the contemplative quiet of the one from the enterprising boldness and precarious mode of subsistence in the other! Shakespear not only lets us into the minds of his characters, but gives a tone and colour to the scenes he describes from the feelings of their supposed inhabitants. He at the same time preserves the utmost propriety of action and passion, and gives all their local accompaniments. If he was equal to the greatest things, he was not above an attention to the smallest. Thus the gallant sportsmen in Cymbeline have to encounter the abrupt declivities of hill and valley: Touchstone and Audrey jog along a level path. The deer in Cymbeline are only regarded as objects of prey, ‘The game’s a-foot,’ etc.—with Jaques they are fine subjects to moralise upon at leisure, ‘under the shade of melancholy boughs.’
The response from Bellarius to this objection is hardly satisfying; because nothing can truly answer hope or the desire for unknown good, except for experience. The forest of Arden in As You Like It can only be compared to the mountain scenes in Cymbeline: yet how different the reflective calm of one is from the ambitious daring and uncertain way of life in the other! Shakespeare not only reveals the thoughts of his characters but also gives a tone and color to the scenes he depicts based on the feelings of their imagined inhabitants. He maintains the highest standards of action and emotion while including all their local details. If he excelled at grand ideas, he was also attentive to the smallest details. Thus, the brave hunters in Cymbeline have to navigate the steep slopes of hills and valleys: Touchstone and Audrey stroll along a flat path. The deer in Cymbeline are seen merely as targets for hunting, ‘The game’s afoot,’ etc.—while with Jaques, they become excellent subjects for leisurely reflection, ‘under the shade of melancholy boughs.’
We cannot take leave of this play, which is a favourite with us, without noticing some occasional touches of natural piety and morality. We may allude here to the opening of the scene in which Bellarius instructs the young princes to pay their orisons to heaven:
We can't wrap up this play, which we really like, without mentioning some moments of genuine faith and morality. We can refer to the beginning of the scene where Bellarius teaches the young princes to say their prayers to heaven:
What a grace and unaffected spirit of piety breathes in this passage! In like manner, one of the brothers says to the other, when about to perform the funeral rites to Fidele,
What a graceful and genuine spirit of devotion shines through in this passage! Similarly, one brother says to the other, as they prepare to carry out the funeral rites for Fidele,
—as if some allusion to the doctrines of the Christian faith had been casually dropped in conversation by the old man, and had been no farther inquired into.
—as if the old man had casually mentioned something about the teachings of the Christian faith in conversation, and no one had asked any further questions.
186Shakespear’s morality is introduced in the same simple, unobtrusive manner. Imogen will not let her companions stay away from the chase to attend her when sick, and gives her reason for it—
186Shakespeare’s morality is presented in an equally straightforward, subtle way. Imogen won’t let her friends skip the hunt to care for her when she’s ill, and she explains why—
When the Queen attempts to disguise her motives for procuring the poison from Cornelius, by saying she means to try its effects on ‘creatures not worth the hanging,’ his answer conveys at once a tacit reproof of her hypocrisy, and a useful lesson of humanity—
When the Queen tries to hide her reasons for getting the poison from Cornelius by claiming she wants to test it on "creatures not worth hanging," his response immediately points out her hypocrisy and offers a valuable lesson in humanity—
MACBETH
Macbeth and Lear, Othello and Hamlet, are usually reckoned Shakespear’s four principal tragedies. Lear stands first for the profound intensity of the passion; Macbeth for the wildness of the imagination and the rapidity of the action; Othello for the progressive interest and powerful alternations of feeling; Hamlet for the refined developement of thought and sentiment. If the force of genius shewn in each of these works is astonishing, their variety is not less so. They are like different creations of the same mind, not one of which has the slightest reference to the rest. This distinctness and originality is indeed the necessary consequence of truth and nature. Shakespear’s genius alone appeared to possess the resources of nature. He is ‘your only tragedy-maker.’ His plays have the force of things upon the mind. What he represents is brought home to the bosom as a part of our experience, implanted in the memory as if we had known the places, persons, and things of which he treats. Macbeth is like a record of a preternatural and tragical event. It has the rugged severity of an old chronicle with all that the imagination of the poet can engraft upon traditional belief. The castle of Macbeth, round which ‘the air smells wooingly,’ and where ‘the temple-haunting 187martlet builds,’ has a real subsistence in the mind; the Weïrd Sisters meet us in person on ‘the blasted heath’; the ‘air-drawn dagger’ moves slowly before our eyes; the ‘gracious Duncan,’ the ‘blood-boultered Banquo’ stand before us; all that passed through the mind of Macbeth passes, without the loss of a tittle, through ours. All that could actually take place, and all that is only possible to be conceived, what was said and what was done, the workings of passion, the spells of magic, are brought before us with the same absolute truth and vividness—Shakespear excelled in the openings of his plays: that of Macbeth is the most striking of any. The wildness of the scenery, the sudden shifting of the situations and characters, the bustle, the expectations excited, are equally extraordinary. From the first entrance of the Witches and the description of them when they meet Macbeth,
Macbeth and Lear, Othello, and Hamlet are typically considered Shakespeare’s four main tragedies. Lear takes the top spot for its deep emotional intensity; Macbeth for its wild imagination and fast-paced action; Othello for its escalating intrigue and powerful emotional shifts; and Hamlet for its sophisticated development of thought and feeling. The brilliance displayed in each of these works is astonishing, as is their diversity. They resemble distinct creations from the same mind, with none of them having any direct connection to the others. This uniqueness and originality emerge naturally from truth and reality. Only Shakespeare’s genius seemed to draw from the full resources of nature. He is ‘your only tragedy-maker.’ His plays forcefully impact the mind. What he depicts resonates deeply with us as part of our own experiences, memorable as if we have personally encountered the locations, characters, and events he writes about. Macbeth feels like a record of an otherworldly and tragic event. It has the stern authenticity of an old chronicle, combined with all that a poet’s imagination can add to traditional beliefs. Macbeth’s castle, where ‘the air smells invitingly,’ and the place where ‘the temple-haunting 187 martlet builds,’ exists vividly in our minds; the Weïrd Sisters confront us directly on ‘the blasted heath’; the ‘air-drawn dagger’ hovers slowly before our eyes; ‘gracious Duncan’ and ‘blood-covered Banquo’ appear before us; everything that went through Macbeth’s mind flows through ours without missing a beat. All that could realistically happen, and everything that can only be imagined—what was said and what was done—the struggles of passion and the effects of magic are presented with the same absolute truth and clarity. Shakespeare excelled in the openings of his plays, and the start of Macbeth is the most striking of all. The wildness of the setting, the sudden changes in situations and characters, the excitement and rising tension are all extraordinary. From the first entrance of the Witches and the description of their meeting with Macbeth,
the mind is prepared for all that follows.
the mind is ready for everything that comes next.
This tragedy is alike distinguished for the lofty imagination it displays, and for the tumultuous vehemence of the action; and the one is made the moving principle of the other. The overwhelming pressure of preternatural agency urges on the tide of human passion with redoubled force. Macbeth himself appears driven along by the violence of his fate like a vessel drifting before a storm: he reels to and fro like a drunken man; he staggers under the weight of his own purposes and the suggestions of others; he stands at bay with his situation; and from the superstitious awe and breathless suspense into which the communications of the Weïrd Sisters throw him, is hurried on with daring impatience to verify their predictions, and with impious and bloody hand to tear aside the veil which hides the uncertainty of the future. He is not equal to the struggle with fate and conscience. He now ‘bends up each corporal instrument to the terrible feat’; at other times his heart misgives him, and he is cowed and abashed by his success. ‘The deed, no less than the attempt, confounds him.’ His mind is assailed by the stings of remorse, and full of ‘preternatural solicitings.’ His speeches and soliloquies are dark riddles on human life, baffling solution, and entangling him in their labyrinths. In thought he is absent and perplexed, sudden and desperate in act, from a distrust of his own resolution. His energy springs from the anxiety and agitation of his mind. His blindly rushing forward on the objects of his ambition and revenge, or his 188recoiling from them, equally betrays the harassed state of his feelings.—This part of his character is admirably set off by being brought in connection with that of Lady Macbeth, whose obdurate strength of will and masculine firmness give her the ascendancy over her husband’s faltering virtue. She at once seizes on the opportunity that offers for the accomplishment of all their wished-for greatness, and never flinches from her object till all is over. The magnitude of her resolution almost covers the magnitude of her guilt. She is a great bad woman, whom we hate, but whom we fear more than we hate. She does not excite our loathing and abhorrence like Regan and Gonerill. She is only wicked to gain a great end; and is perhaps more distinguished by her commanding presence of mind and inexorable self-will, which do not suffer her to be diverted from a bad purpose, when once formed, by weak and womanly regrets, than by the hardness of her heart or want of natural affections. The impression which her lofty determination of character makes on the mind of Macbeth is well described where he exclaims,
This tragedy is notable for its grand imagination and intense action, with one driving the other. The overwhelming force of supernatural influence pushes human emotion with increased intensity. Macbeth seems to be swept along by his fate, like a ship being tossed in a storm: he sways back and forth like a drunk person; he struggles under the weight of his own intentions and others' suggestions; he is cornered by his circumstances; and the awe and suspense caused by the Weird Sisters propel him with reckless urgency to prove their prophecies, using violent and bloody means to uncover the uncertainty of the future. He cannot confront the battle with fate and his conscience. He now "gears up every physical tool for the terrible task"; at other times, his heart falters, and he is intimidated and embarrassed by his success. "The act, just as much as the attempt, overwhelms him." His mind is plagued by guilt and filled with "supernatural temptations." His speeches and monologues are dark puzzles about human existence, eluding understanding and trapping him in their complexities. In thought, he is distracted and confused, sudden and desperate in action, from doubting his own resolve. His energy comes from the worry and turmoil in his mind. His reckless pursuit of his ambitions and revenge, or his retreat from them, equally reveals his tormented emotions. This aspect of his character is brilliantly contrasted with Lady Macbeth, whose unyielding strength and masculine resolve give her control over her husband's wavering integrity. She immediately seizes the opportunity to achieve all they desire and never wavers from her goal until everything is done. The enormity of her determination nearly overshadows her guilt. She is a formidable villain, whom we dislike but fear even more. Unlike Regan and Goneril, she does not provoke our disgust and revulsion. She is wicked to achieve a greater purpose and is perhaps defined more by her strong presence of mind and relentless will, which prevent her from being swayed from her dark intentions once decided, rather than by the cruelty of her heart or lack of natural feelings. The impact of her strong character on Macbeth’s mind is well illustrated when he exclaims,
Nor do the pains she is at to ‘screw his courage to the sticking-place,’ the reproach to him, not to be ‘lost so poorly in himself,’ the assurance that ‘a little water clears them of this deed,’ show anything but her greater consistency in depravity. Her strong-nerved ambition furnishes ribs of steel to ‘the sides of his intent’; and she is herself wound up to the execution of her baneful project with the same unshrinking fortitude in crime, that in other circumstances she would probably have shown patience in suffering. The deliberate sacrifice of all other considerations to the gaining ‘for their future days and nights sole sovereign sway and masterdom,’ by the murder of Duncan, is gorgeously expressed in her invocation on hearing of ‘his fatal entrance under her battlements’:—
Nor do her efforts to "pump up his courage," her criticism of him for not being "so weak," or her assurance that "a little water will wash away this act" reveal anything more than her deeper consistency in wickedness. Her strong ambition provides the backbone to "his plans," and she is fully committed to carrying out her harmful scheme with the same unwavering determination in crime that she might have shown in enduring hardship under different circumstances. The calculated sacrifice of all other concerns to achieve "for their future days and nights sole control and power" by murdering Duncan is dramatically expressed in her plea upon hearing of "his fatal arrival at her castle":—
When she first hears that ‘Duncan comes there to sleep’ she is so overcome by the news, which is beyond her utmost expectations, that she answers the messenger, ‘Thou’rt mad to say it’: and on receiving her husband’s account of the predictions of the Witches, conscious of his instability of purpose, and that her presence is necessary to goad him on to the consummation of his promised greatness, she exclaims—
When she first hears that "Duncan comes there to sleep," she is so overwhelmed by the news, which is beyond anything she could have imagined, that she responds to the messenger, "You're crazy to say that." After hearing her husband's account of the Witches' predictions, aware of his wavering resolve and that she needs to push him towards achieving his promised greatness, she exclaims—
This swelling exultation and keen spirit of triumph, this uncontroulable eagerness of anticipation, which seems to dilate her form and take possession of all her faculties, this solid, substantial flesh and blood display of passion, exhibit a striking contrast to the cold, abstracted, gratuitous, servile malignity of the Witches, who are equally instrumental in urging Macbeth to his fate for the mere love of mischief, and from a disinterested delight in deformity and cruelty. They are hags of mischief, obscene panders to iniquity, malicious from their impotence of enjoyment, enamoured of destruction, because they are themselves unreal, abortive, half-existences—who become sublime from their exemption from all human sympathies and contempt for all human affairs, as Lady Macbeth does by the force of passion! Her fault seems to have been an excess of that strong principle of self-interest and family aggrandisement, not amenable to the common feelings of compassion and justice, which is so marked a feature in barbarous nations and times. A passing reflection of this kind, on the resemblance of the sleeping king to her father, alone prevents her from slaying Duncan with her own hand.
This rising exhilaration and intense feeling of triumph, this uncontrollable eagerness of anticipation, which seems to expand her being and take over all her senses, this solid, tangible display of passion, creates a striking contrast to the cold, detached, mindless malice of the Witches, who are equally involved in pushing Macbeth toward his doom just for the sake of chaos, and out of a self-serving pleasure in ugliness and cruelty. They are agents of chaos, vile facilitators of wrongdoing, malicious because they can't enjoy life themselves, obsessed with destruction, as they are hollow, failed, half-beings—who become extraordinary due to their lack of any human empathy and their disdain for human affairs, much like Lady Macbeth does through her intense passion! Her flaw seems to be an overabundance of that powerful drive for self-interest and family advancement, which is indifferent to common feelings of compassion and justice, a trait often seen in savage nations and times. A fleeting thought about how the sleeping king resembles her father is the only thing that stops her from killing Duncan herself.
In speaking of the character of Lady Macbeth, we ought not to pass over Mrs. Siddons’s manner of acting that part. We can conceive of nothing grander. It was something above nature. It seemed almost as if a being of a superior order had dropped from a higher sphere to awe the world with the majesty of her appearance. Power was seated on her brow, passion emanated from her breast as from a shrine; she was tragedy personified. In coming on in the sleeping-scene, 190her eyes were open, but their sense was shut. She was like a person bewildered and unconscious of what she did. Her lips moved involuntarily—all her gestures were involuntary and mechanical. She glided on and off the stage like an apparition. To have seen her in that character was an event in every one’s life, not to be forgotten.
When talking about Lady Macbeth's character, we shouldn't overlook how Mrs. Siddons portrayed that role. It was nothing short of extraordinary. It felt almost like someone from a higher realm had come down to impress the world with her powerful presence. Authority radiated from her forehead, and her passion flowed from her chest like it was a sacred place; she embodied tragedy. In the sleepwalking scene, 190 her eyes were open, but she seemed unaware. She appeared dazed and oblivious to her actions. Her lips moved without her control—every gesture was automatic and robotic. She moved on and off the stage like a ghost. Seeing her in that role was a memorable moment that everyone would carry with them.
The dramatic beauty of the character of Duncan, which excites the respect and pity even of his murderers, has been often pointed out. It forms a picture of itself. An instance of the author’s power of giving a striking effect to a common reflection, by the manner of introducing it, occurs in a speech of Duncan, complaining of his having been deceived in his opinion of the Thane of Cawdor, at the very moment that he is expressing the most unbounded confidence in the loyalty and services of Macbeth.
The powerful beauty of Duncan's character, which earns the respect and pity even from his murderers, has often been noted. It paints a vivid picture itself. One example of the author's skill in making a common thought stand out through how it's presented happens in Duncan's speech, where he laments being misled about the Thane of Cawdor, even as he shows complete trust in Macbeth's loyalty and service.
Another passage to show that Shakespear lost sight of nothing that could in any way give relief or heightening to his subject, is the conversation which takes place between Banquo and Fleance immediately before the murder-scene of Duncan.
Another passage that demonstrates how Shakespeare overlooked nothing that could offer relief or enhance his subject is the conversation between Banquo and Fleance just before the murder scene of Duncan.
In like manner, a fine idea is given of the gloomy coming on of evening, just as Banquo is going to be assassinated.
In a similar way, there's a vivid description of the darkening evening, right when Banquo is about to be murdered.
191Macbeth (generally speaking) is done upon a stronger and more systematic principle of contrast than any other of Shakespear’s plays. It moves upon the verge of an abyss, and is a constant struggle between life and death. The action is desperate and the reaction is dreadful. It is a huddling together of fierce extremes, a war of opposite natures which of them shall destroy the other. There is nothing but what has a violent end or violent beginnings. The lights and shades are laid on with a determined hand; the transitions from triumph to despair, from the height of terror to the repose of death, are sudden and startling; every passion brings in its fellow-contrary, and the thoughts pitch and jostle against each other as in the dark. The whole play is an unruly chaos of strange and forbidden things, where the ground rocks under our feet. Shakespear’s genius here took its full swing, and trod upon the farthest bounds of nature and passion. This circumstance will account for the abruptness and violent antitheses of the style, the throes and labour which run through the expression, and from defects will turn them into beauties. ‘So fair and foul a day I have not seen,’ etc. ‘Such welcome and unwelcome news together.’ ‘Men’s lives are like the flowers in their caps, dying or ere they sicken.’ ‘Look like the innocent flower, but be the serpent under it.’ The scene before the castle-gate follows the appearance of the Witches on the heath, and is followed by a midnight murder. Duncan is cut off betimes by treason leagued with witchcraft, and Macduff is ripped untimely from his mother’s womb to avenge his death. Macbeth, after the death of Banquo, wishes for his presence in extravagant terms, ‘To him and all we thirst,’ and when his ghost appears, cries out, ‘Avaunt and quit my sight,’ and being gone, he is ‘himself again.’ Macbeth resolves to get rid of Macduff, that ‘he may sleep in spite of thunder’; and cheers his wife on the doubtful intelligence of Banquo’s taking-off with the encouragement—‘Then be thou jocund: ere the bat has flown his cloistered flight; ere to black Hecate’s summons the shard-born beetle has rung night’s yawning peal, there shall be done—a deed of dreadful note.’ In Lady Macbeth’s speech ‘Had he not resembled my father as he slept, I had done’t,’ there is murder and filial piety together; and in urging him to fulfil his vengeance against the defenceless king, her thoughts spare the blood neither of infants nor old age. The description of the Witches is full of the same contradictory principle; they ‘rejoice when good kings bleed,’ they are neither of the earth nor the air, but both; ‘they should be women, but their beards forbid it’; they take all the pains possible to lead Macbeth on to the height of his ambition, only to betray him ‘in deeper consequence,’ and after showing him all the pomp of their 192art, discover their malignant delight in his disappointed hopes, by that bitter taunt, ‘Why stands Macbeth thus amazedly?’ We might multiply such instances every where.
191Macbeth is based on a stronger and more systematic principle of contrast than any other of Shakespeare’s plays. It teeters on the edge of a chasm and is a constant struggle between life and death. The action is desperate, and the aftermath is terrifying. It’s a chaotic mix of fierce extremes, a battle between opposing forces trying to destroy each other. Everything ends violently or begins with violence. The contrasts are boldly drawn; the shifts from triumph to despair, from sheer terror to the peace of death, happen suddenly and shockingly; every emotion brings its opposite into play, and thoughts clash against each other in the darkness. The entire play is a wild chaos of strange and forbidden elements, where the ground shakes beneath us. Shakespeare’s genius in this work fully unleashed itself, pushing the boundaries of nature and emotion. This explains the abruptness and stark contrasts in the style, the struggles and intensity that run through the expressions, transforming flaws into beauties. ‘So fair and foul a day I have not seen,’ etc. ‘Such welcome and unwelcome news together.’ ‘Men’s lives are like the flowers in their caps, dying before they even get sick.’ ‘Look like the innocent flower, but be the serpent under it.’ The scene in front of the castle gate follows the witches’ appearance on the moor and is then followed by a midnight murder. Duncan is cut down early by treason allied with witchcraft, and Macduff is ripped untimely from his mother’s womb to avenge his death. After Banquo’s murder, Macbeth yearns for his presence in extravagant terms, ‘To him and all we thirst,’ and when his ghost appears, he shouts, ‘Get out of my sight,’ and once it’s gone, he is ‘himself again.’ Macbeth plans to eliminate Macduff so that ‘he may sleep despite the thunder’; and encourages his wife with Banquo’s uncertain fate by saying, ‘Then be cheerful: before the bat has flown away; before the shard-born beetle has rung the night’s peal for Hecate, there shall be done—a deed of dreadful note.’ In Lady Macbeth’s line ‘Had he not resembled my father as he slept, I would have done it,’ there’s a mix of murder and filial piety; and while pushing him to take his revenge on the defenseless king, her thoughts show no mercy for either infants or the elderly. The description of the witches is filled with the same contradictory nature; they ‘rejoice when good kings bleed,’ they are neither earth nor air, but both; ‘they should be women, but their beards say otherwise’; they strive to push Macbeth to the peak of his ambition, only to betray him later ‘with deeper consequences,’ and after showcasing all their grandeur, they betray their cruel joy in his shattered hopes with the bitter taunt, ‘Why does Macbeth stand there so amazed?’ We could find such examples everywhere. 192
The leading features in the character of Macbeth are striking enough, and they form what may be thought at first only a bold, rude, Gothic outline. By comparing it with other characters of the same author we shall perceive the absolute truth and identity which is observed in the midst of the giddy whirl and rapid career of events. Macbeth in Shakespear no more loses his identity of character in the fluctuations of fortune or the storm of passion, than Macbeth in himself would have lost the identity of his person. Thus he is as distinct a being from Richard III. as it is possible to imagine, though these two characters in common hands, and indeed in the hands of any other poet, would have been a repetition of the same general idea, more or less exaggerated. For both are tyrants, usurpers, murderers, both aspiring and ambitious, both courageous, cruel, treacherous. But Richard is cruel from nature and constitution. Macbeth becomes so from accidental circumstances. Richard is from his birth deformed in body and mind, and naturally incapable of good. Macbeth is full of ‘the milk of human kindness,’ is frank, sociable, generous. He is tempted to the commission of guilt by golden opportunities, by the instigations of his wife, and by prophetic warnings. Fate and metaphysical aid conspire against his virtue and his loyalty. Richard on the contrary needs no prompter, but wades through a series of crimes to the height of his ambition from the ungovernable violence of his temper and a reckless love of mischief. He is never gay but in the prospect or in the success of his villainies: Macbeth is full of horror at the thoughts of the murder of Duncan, which he is with difficulty prevailed on to commit, and of remorse after its perpetration. Richard has no mixture of common humanity in his composition, no regard to kindred or posterity, he owns no fellowship with others, he is ‘himself alone.’ Macbeth is not destitute of feelings of sympathy, is accessible to pity, is even made in some measure the dupe of his uxoriousness, ranks the loss of friends, of the cordial love of his followers, and of his good name, among the causes which have made him weary of life, and regrets that he has ever seized the crown by unjust means, since he cannot transmit it to his posterity—
The standout traits of Macbeth's character are quite striking, initially appearing as a bold, rough, Gothic outline. By comparing him to other characters created by the same author, we can see the absolute truth and consistency that exists even amidst the dizzying chaos and rapid flow of events. Macbeth, in Shakespeare’s work, never loses his sense of self amidst the ups and downs of fortune or the turbulence of emotions, just as Macbeth himself would never lose his personal identity. He is as distinctly different from Richard III. as one could imagine, even though if these two characters were handled by anyone else, they would likely end up as variations on the same general idea, possibly exaggerated. Both are tyrants, usurpers, and murderers; they are ambitious, courageous, cruel, and treacherous. However, Richard’s cruelty is inherent to his nature and disposition, while Macbeth becomes cruel due to circumstances beyond his control. Richard is fundamentally deformed in body and mind from birth, and is naturally incapable of goodness. In contrast, Macbeth is full of "the milk of human kindness," open, friendly, and generous. He is lured into wrongdoing by tempting opportunities, his wife's encouragement, and prophetic hints. Fate and supernatural forces work against his virtue and loyalty. Richard, on the other hand, doesn’t need anyone to push him; he commits a string of crimes to reach his ambitions driven by his uncontrollable temper and reckless enjoyment of mischief. He only feels joyful when anticipating or succeeding in his villainous schemes: Macbeth, however, is horrified at the thought of murdering Duncan, and it takes a great deal of persuasion for him to go through with it, followed by deep remorse afterward. Richard lacks any semblance of basic humanity, showing no care for family or legacy; he is “himself alone.” Macbeth, by contrast, is not devoid of compassion; he can feel pity, and he is somewhat misled by his devotion to his wife. He considers the loss of friends, the genuine affection of his followers, and his good reputation as reasons for his weariness with life, and he regrets seizing the crown through wrongful means since he cannot pass it on to his descendants—
In the agitation of his mind, he envies those whom he has sent to 193peace. ‘Duncan is in his grave; after life’s fitful fever he sleeps well.’—It is true, he becomes more callous as he plunges deeper in guilt, ‘direness is thus rendered familiar to his slaughterous thoughts,’ and he in the end anticipates his wife in the boldness and bloodiness of his enterprises, while she for want of the same stimulus of action, ‘is troubled with thick-coming fancies that rob her of her rest,’ goes mad and dies. Macbeth endeavours to escape from reflection on his crimes by repelling their consequences, and banishes remorse for the past by the meditation of future mischief. This is not the principle of Richard’s cruelty, which displays the wanton malice of a fiend as much as the frailty of human passion. Macbeth is goaded on to acts of violence and retaliation by necessity; to Richard, blood is a pastime.—There are other decisive differences inherent in the two characters. Richard may be regarded as a man of the world, a plotting, hardened knave, wholly regardless of every thing but his own ends, and the means to secure them.—Not so Macbeth. The superstitions of the age, the rude state of society, the local scenery and customs, all give a wildness and imaginary grandeur to his character. From the strangeness of the events that surround him, he is full of amazement and fear; and stands in doubt between the world of reality and the world of fancy. He sees sights not shown to mortal eye, and hears unearthly music. All is tumult and disorder within and without his mind; his purposes recoil upon himself, are broken and disjointed; he is the double thrall of his passions and his evil destiny. Richard is not a character either of imagination or pathos, but of pure self-will. There is no conflict of opposite feelings in his breast. The apparitions which he sees only haunt him in his sleep; nor does he live like Macbeth in a waking dream. Macbeth has considerable energy and manliness of character; but then he is ‘subject to all the skyey influences.’ He is sure of nothing but the present moment. Richard in the busy turbulence of his projects never loses his self-possession, and makes use of every circumstance that happens as an instrument of his long-reaching designs. In his last extremity we can only regard him as a wild beast taken in the toils: while we never entirely lose our concern for Macbeth; and he calls back all our sympathy by that fine close of thoughtful melancholy—
In the turmoil of his mind, he envies those he has sent to peace. ‘Duncan is in his grave; after life’s restless fever, he sleeps well.’ It’s true, he becomes more indifferent as he sinks deeper into guilt, ‘horror is thus made familiar to his murderous thoughts,’ and in the end, he outpaces his wife in the boldness and brutality of his actions, while she, lacking that same drive, ‘is troubled with overwhelming fancies that rob her of sleep,’ goes insane, and dies. Macbeth tries to escape from thinking about his crimes by pushing away their consequences and dismisses guilt for the past by planning future wrongdoing. This isn’t the same as Richard’s cruelty, which shows the wanton malice of a fiend as much as the weakness of human emotion. Macbeth is driven to acts of violence and vengeance by necessity; for Richard, blood is just a game. There are other key differences between the two characters. Richard can be seen as a worldly man, a scheming, hardened rogue, completely indifferent to anything but his own desires and the means to achieve them. Not so with Macbeth. The superstitions of the time, the harsh state of society, the local scenery, and customs all add a wild and grand quality to his character. Because of the unusual events surrounding him, he is full of amazement and fear; he stands conflicted between the real world and the world of imagination. He sees things not visible to the human eye and hears otherworldly music. Everything is chaos and disorder within and around him; his intentions turn back on him, becoming fragmented and disorganized; he is trapped by both his passions and his evil fate. Richard isn’t a character defined by imagination or emotion, but by pure self-will. There’s no clash of opposing feelings in his heart. The apparitions he sees only haunt him in his sleep; unlike Macbeth, he doesn’t live in a waking dream. Macbeth has significant energy and masculinity, but he is ‘subject to all the cosmic influences.’ He is certain of nothing but the present moment. Richard, amid the chaotic frenzy of his schemes, never loses his composure and uses every circumstance as a tool for his far-reaching designs. In his last moments, we can only see him as a wild beast caught in traps; while we never completely lose our empathy for Macbeth, who regains all our sympathy with that poignant ending of thoughtful melancholy—
194We can conceive a common actor to play Richard tolerably well; we can conceive no one to play Macbeth properly, or to look like a man that had encountered the Weïrd Sisters. All the actors that we have ever seen, appear as if they had encountered them on the boards of Covent-garden or Drury-lane, but not on the heath at Fores, and as if they did not believe what they had seen. The Witches of Macbeth indeed are ridiculous on the modern stage, and we doubt if the Furies of Æschylus would be more respected. The progress of manners and knowledge has an influence on the stage, and will in time perhaps destroy both tragedy and comedy. Filch’s picking pockets in the Beggar’s Opera is not so good a jest as it used to be: by the force of the police and of philosophy, Lillo’s murders and the ghosts in Shakespear will become obsolete. At last, there will be nothing left, good nor bad, to be desired or dreaded, on the theatre or in real life.—A question has been started with respect to the originality of Shakespear’s Witches, which has been well answered by Mr. Lamb in his notes to the ‘Specimens of Early Dramatic Poetry.’
194We can imagine a decent actor playing Richard; however, it's hard to find anyone who can truly embody Macbeth or capture what it means to have encountered the Weird Sisters. All the actors we've seen seem like they've met them on the stages of Covent Garden or Drury Lane, rather than out on the heath at Fores, and they seem skeptical about what they’ve witnessed. The Witches of Macbeth look almost silly on today's stage, and we doubt if the Furies of Aeschylus would fare any better. The evolution of social norms and knowledge affects the theater, and it may eventually lead to the downfall of both tragedy and comedy. Filch’s pickpocketing in the Beggar’s Opera isn’t as funny as it once was: thanks to modern policing and philosophy, Lillo’s murders and Shakespeare's ghosts may soon feel outdated. Eventually, there might be nothing left, neither good nor bad, to want or fear, on stage or in real life. — A discussion has arisen regarding the originality of Shakespeare’s Witches, and Mr. Lamb has addressed this well in his notes to the ‘Specimens of Early Dramatic Poetry.’
‘Though some resemblance may be traced between the charms in Macbeth, and the incantations in this play (the Witch of Middleton), which is supposed to have preceded it, this coincidence will not detract much from the originality of Shakespear. His Witches are distinguished from the Witches of Middleton by essential differences. These are creatures to whom man or woman plotting some dire mischief might resort for occasional consultation. Those originate deeds of blood, and begin bad impulses to men. From the moment that their eyes first meet with Macbeth’s, he is spell-bound. That meeting sways his destiny. He can never break the fascination. These Witches can hurt the body; those have power over the soul.—Hecate in Middleton has a son, a low buffoon: the hags of Shakespear have neither child of their own, nor seem to be descended from any parent. They are foul anomalies, of whom we know not whence they are sprung, nor whether they have beginning or ending. As they are without human passions, so they seem to be without human relations. They come with thunder and lightning, and vanish to airy music. This is all we know of them.—Except Hecate, they have no names, which heightens their mysteriousness. The names, and some of the properties which Middleton has given to his hags, excite smiles. The Weïrd Sisters are serious things. Their presence cannot co-exist with mirth. But, in a lesser degree, the Witches of Middleton are fine creations. Their power too is, in some measure, over the mind. They raise jars, jealousies, strifes, like a thick scurf o’er life.’
‘While some similarities can be seen between the spells in Macbeth and the incantations in this play (the Witch of Middleton), which is thought to have come first, this similarity doesn’t really take away from Shakespeare’s originality. His Witches stand out from those in Middleton because of significant differences. These are beings that a man or woman planning some terrible act might consult from time to time. They cause violent acts and inspire bad thoughts in people. The moment Macbeth first encounters them, he is enchanted. That meeting changes his fate. He can never escape their influence. These Witches can harm the body, while those have control over the soul. —Hecate in Middleton has a son who is a foolish character; the hags in Shakespeare don’t have children, nor do they seem to come from any parents. They are disturbing anomalies, with no clear origins or whether they have a beginning or an end. Like they lack human emotions, they also seem to lack human connections. They arrive with thunder and lightning and disappear to ethereal music. That’s all we know about them. —Other than Hecate, they don’t have names, which adds to their enigma. The names and some traits that Middleton has given to his hags are somewhat amusing. The Weird Sisters are a serious presence. Their existence cannot mingle with joy. However, to a lesser extent, the Witches of Middleton are interesting characters. Their influence also extends, to some degree, over the mind. They stir up tensions, jealousy, and conflict, like a thick scurf o’er life.’
JULIUS CÆSAR
Julius Cæsar was one of three principal plays by different authors, pitched upon by the celebrated Earl of Hallifax to be brought out in a splendid manner by subscription, in the year 1707. The other two were the King and No King of Fletcher, and Dryden’s Maiden Queen. There perhaps might be political reasons for this selection, as far as regards our author. Otherwise, Shakespear’s Julius Cæsar is not equal as a whole, to either of his other plays taken from the Roman history. It is inferior in interest to Coriolanus, and both in interest and power to Antony and Cleopatra. It however abounds in admirable and affecting passages, and is remarkable for the profound knowledge of character, in which Shakespear could scarcely fail. If there is any exception to this remark, it is in the hero of the piece himself. We do not much admire the representation here given of Julius Cæsar, nor do we think it answers to the portrait given of him in his Commentaries. He makes several vapouring and rather pedantic speeches, and does nothing. Indeed, he has nothing to do. So far, the fault of the character is the fault of the plot.
Julius Caesar was one of three main plays by different authors, chosen by the famous Earl of Hallifax to be performed in an impressive way through subscriptions in 1707. The other two were Fletcher’s King and No King and Dryden’s Maiden Queen. There may have been political reasons behind this selection regarding our author. Otherwise, Shakespeare’s Julius Caesar isn't as strong overall as either of his other plays based on Roman history. It's less engaging than Coriolanus, and both in excitement and strength compared to Antony and Cleopatra. However, it is filled with excellent and moving passages, showcasing Shakespeare's deep understanding of character, which he rarely missed. If there's any exception to this observation, it's with the main character himself. We don’t really admire the portrayal of Julius Cæsar here, nor do we think it matches the image presented in his Commentaries. He delivers several boastful and somewhat pretentious speeches, and does nothing. In fact, he has nothing to do. Thus, the issue with the character stems from the plot's shortcomings.
The spirit with which the poet has entered at once into the manners of the common people, and the jealousies and heart-burnings of the different factions, is shown in the first scene, where Flavius and Marullus, tribunes of the people, and some citizens of Rome, appear upon the stage.
The way the poet has immediately engaged with the everyday lives of regular people, along with the rivalries and resentments between various groups, is evident in the first scene, where Flavius and Marullus, two tribunes of the people, along with some citizens of Rome, come on stage.
Cobler. Truly, Sir, all that I live by, is the awl. I meddle with no tradesman’s matters, nor woman’s matters, but with-al, I am indeed, Sir, a surgeon to old shoes; when they are in great danger, I recover them.
Cobbler. Honestly, Sir, everything I rely on is the awl. I don’t interfere with anyone else's business, nor with women's issues, but in fact, I am truly, Sir, a surgeon for old shoes; when they’re in serious trouble, I bring them back to life.
Cobler. Truly, Sir, to wear out their shoes, to get myself into more work. But indeed, Sir, we make holiday to see Cæsar, and rejoice in his triumph.’
Cobler. Honestly, Sir, it's just to wear out their shoes and create more work for myself. But really, Sir, we take a break to see Cæsar and celebrate his victory.
To this specimen of quaint low humour immediately follows that unexpected and animated burst of indignant eloquence, put into the mouth of one of the angry tribunes.
To this example of charming low humor immediately follows that surprising and spirited outburst of passionate rhetoric delivered by one of the furious tribunes.
The well-known dialogue between Brutus and Cassius, in which the latter breaks the design of the conspiracy to the former, and partly gains him over to it, is a noble piece of high-minded declamation. Cassius’s insisting on the pretended effeminacy of Cæsar’s character, and his description of their swimming across the Tiber together, ‘once upon a raw and gusty day,’ are among the finest strokes in it. But perhaps the whole is not equal to the short scene which follows, when Cæsar enters with his train:—
The famous conversation between Brutus and Cassius, where Cassius reveals the conspiracy to Brutus and partly convinces him to join, is an impressive display of noble rhetoric. Cassius’s emphasis on Cæsar's supposed weakness and his account of their swimming across the Tiber together, "once on a raw and gusty day," are some of the best parts. However, the entire exchange may not match the impact of the short scene that comes next, when Cæsar enters with his entourage:—
We know hardly any passage more expressive of the genius of Shakespear than this. It is as if he had been actually present, had known the different characters and what they thought of one another, and had taken down what he heard and saw, their looks, words, and gestures, just as they happened.
We hardly know any part that captures Shakespeare's genius better than this. It's as if he was right there, knew the different characters and their thoughts about each other, and recorded what he observed, including their expressions, words, and gestures, exactly as they happened.
The character of Mark Antony is farther speculated upon where the conspirators deliberate whether he shall fall with Cæsar. Brutus is against it—
The character of Mark Antony is further discussed as the conspirators consider whether he should fall alongside Cæsar. Brutus is against it—
They were in the wrong; and Cassius was right.
They were wrong; and Cassius was right.
The honest manliness of Brutus is however sufficient to find out the unfitness of Cicero to be included in their enterprise, from his affected egotism and literary vanity.
The genuine manliness of Brutus is enough to recognize that Cicero is unfit to be part of their endeavor due to his pretentious self-importance and literary arrogance.
198His scepticism as to prodigies and his moralising on the weather—‘This disturbed sky is not to walk in’—are in the same spirit of refined imbecility.
198His doubt about miraculous events and his commentary on the weather—'This chaotic sky isn't for walking in'—reflect a similar kind of pretentious foolishness.
Shakespear has in this play and elsewhere shown the same penetration into political character and the springs of public events as into those of every-day life. For instance, the whole design of the conspirators to liberate their country fails from the generous temper and overweening confidence of Brutus in the goodness of their cause and the assistance of others. Thus it has always been. Those who mean well themselves think well of others, and fall a prey to their security. That humanity and honesty which dispose men to resist injustice and tyranny render them unfit to cope with the cunning and power of those who are opposed to them. The friends of liberty trust to the professions of others, because they are themselves sincere, and endeavour to reconcile the public good with the least possible hurt to its enemies, who have no regard to any thing but their own unprincipled ends, and stick at nothing to accomplish them. Cassius was better cut out for a conspirator. His heart prompted his head. His watchful jealousy made him fear the worst that might happen, and his irritability of temper added to his inveteracy of purpose, and sharpened his patriotism. The mixed nature of his motives made him fitter to contend with bad men. The vices are never so well employed as in combating one another. Tyranny and servility are to be dealt with after their own fashion: otherwise, they will triumph over those who spare them, and finally pronounce their funeral panegyric, as Antony did that of Brutus.
Shakespeare has shown in this play and elsewhere the same insight into political character and the reasons behind public events as he does with daily life. For example, the entire plan of the conspirators to free their country fails because of Brutus's optimism and overconfidence in the righteousness of their cause and the support of others. This has always been the case. Those who have good intentions themselves tend to think well of others and become vulnerable due to their naivety. The compassion and integrity that drive people to fight against injustice and tyranny also make them ill-suited to handle the deception and power of their opponents. Supporters of liberty trust the words of others because they are sincere themselves and try to align the public good with minimal harm to their enemies, who only care about their own ruthless goals and will stop at nothing to achieve them. Cassius was better suited to be a conspirator. His instincts guided his decisions. His constant vigilance made him anticipate the worst outcomes, and his short temper fueled his determination and intensified his patriotism. The complexity of his motives made him more capable of dealing with dishonest people. Vices are best utilized when they’re in conflict with one another. Tyranny and servility must be handled in their own way; otherwise, they will prevail over those who show them mercy and ultimately celebrate their own demise, much like Antony did at Brutus's funeral.
The quarrel between Brutus and Cassius is managed in a masterly way. The dramatic fluctuation of passion, the calmness of Brutus, the heat of Cassius, are admirably described; and the exclamation of Cassius on hearing of the death of Portia, which he does not learn till after their reconciliation, ‘How ‘scaped I killing when I crost you so?’ gives double force to all that has gone before. The scene between Brutus and Portia, where she endeavours to extort the secret of the conspiracy from him, is conceived in the most heroical spirit, and the burst of tenderness in Brutus—
The argument between Brutus and Cassius is handled expertly. The dramatic shifts in emotion, Brutus's calmness, and Cassius's intensity are beautifully captured; and Cassius's reaction upon hearing about Portia's death, which he doesn't learn of until after they've reconciled, "How did I escape killing you when I crossed you like that?" adds even more weight to everything that has come before. The scene between Brutus and Portia, where she tries to get him to reveal the secret of the conspiracy, is imagined in the most heroic way, and Brutus's moment of tenderness—
199is justified by her whole behaviour. Portia’s breathless impatience to learn the event of the conspiracy, in the dialogue with Lucius, is full of passion. The interest which Portia takes in Brutus and that which Calphurnia takes in the fate of Cæsar are discriminated with the nicest precision. Mark Antony’s speech over the dead body of Cæsar has been justly admired for the mixture of pathos and artifice in it: that of Brutus certainly is not so good.
199 is justified by her entire behavior. Portia’s intense eagerness to find out the outcome of the conspiracy, in her conversation with Lucius, is filled with passion. The interest Portia shows in Brutus and the concern Calphurnia has for Cæsar’s fate are distinguished with great precision. Mark Antony’s speech over Cæsar’s dead body has rightly been praised for its blend of emotion and cleverness; Brutus’s speech definitely isn’t as strong.
The entrance of the conspirators to the house of Brutus at midnight is rendered very impressive. In the midst of this scene, we meet with one of those careless and natural digressions which occur so frequently and beautifully in Shakespear. After Cassius has introduced his friends one by one, Brutus says—
The entrance of the conspirators to Brutus's house at midnight is really striking. In the middle of this scene, we come across one of those casual and natural digressions that appear so often and beautifully in Shakespeare. After Cassius has introduced his friends one by one, Brutus says—
We cannot help thinking this graceful familiarity better than all the fustian in the world.—The truth of history in Julius Cæsar is very ably worked up with dramatic effect. The councils of generals, the doubtful turns of battles, are represented to the life. The death of Brutus is worthy of him—it has the dignity of the Roman senator with the firmness of the Stoic philosopher. But what is perhaps better than either, is the little incident of his boy, Lucius, falling asleep over his instrument, as he is playing to his master in his tent, the night before the battle. Nature had played him the same forgetful trick once before on the night of the conspiracy. The humanity of Brutus is the same on both occasions.
We can't help but think this elegant familiarity is better than anything else in the world. The historical truth in Julius Caesar is skillfully crafted with dramatic impact. The meetings of generals and the unpredictable shifts in battles are depicted vividly. Brutus's death is fitting for him—it embodies the dignity of a Roman senator along with the resolve of a Stoic philosopher. But perhaps what stands out even more is the small moment when his boy, Lucius, falls asleep while playing for his master in his tent the night before the battle. Nature had played the same forgetful trick on him once before on the night of the conspiracy. The compassion of Brutus is evident in both situations.
OTHELLO
It has been said that tragedy purifies the affections by terror and pity. That is, it substitutes imaginary sympathy for mere selfishness. It gives us a high and permanent interest, beyond ourselves, in humanity as such. It raises the great, the remote, and the possible to an equality with the real, the little and the near. It makes man a partaker with his kind. It subdues and softens the stubbornness of his will. It teaches him that there are and have been others like himself, by showing him as in a glass what they have felt, thought, and done. It opens the chambers of the human heart. It leaves nothing indifferent to us that can affect our common nature. It excites our sensibility by exhibiting the passions wound up to the utmost pitch by the power of imagination or the temptation of circumstances; and corrects their fatal excesses in ourselves by pointing to the greater extent of sufferings and of crimes to which they have led others. Tragedy creates a balance of the affections. It makes us thoughtful spectators in the lists of life. It is the refiner of the species; a discipline of humanity. The habitual study of poetry and works of imagination is one chief part of a well-grounded education. A taste for liberal art is necessary to complete the character of a gentleman. Science alone is hard and mechanical. It exercises the understanding upon things out of ourselves, while it leaves the affections unemployed, or engrossed with our own immediate, narrow interests.—Othello furnishes an illustration of these remarks. It excites our sympathy in an extraordinary degree. The moral it conveys has a closer application to the concerns of human life than that of almost any other of Shakespear’s plays. ‘It comes directly home to the bosoms and business of men.’ The pathos in Lear is indeed more dreadful and overpowering: but it is less natural, and less of every day’s occurrence. We have not the same degree of sympathy with the passions described in Macbeth. The interest in Hamlet is more remote and reflex. That of Othello is at once equally profound and affecting.
It’s often said that tragedy purifies our feelings through fear and compassion. In other words, it replaces selfishness with imagined empathy. It gives us a deep, ongoing interest in humanity as a whole, beyond our own lives. It elevates the grand, the distant, and the possible to a level with the real, the small, and the immediate. It connects us with our fellow human beings. It calms and softens our stubbornness. It teaches us that there have been others just like us by reflecting back to us what they’ve felt, thought, and done. It opens up the depths of the human heart. It makes us care about anything that affects our shared nature. It stirs our emotions by showing passions pushed to their extremes through imagination or circumstance, while also helping us regulate their harmful extremes in ourselves by highlighting the greater suffering and crimes they have caused in others. Tragedy creates a balance of feelings. It turns us into thoughtful observers in the arena of life. It refines humanity; it’s a crucial part of our education. An appreciation for the arts is essential for shaping a well-rounded gentleman. Science alone is harsh and mechanical. It engages our understanding with things outside ourselves, while leaving our feelings idle or consumed by our own narrow interests. Othello exemplifies these points. It evokes our sympathy to a remarkable degree. The moral it conveys is more relevant to human concerns than almost any other of Shakespeare's plays. It directly relates to the lives and affairs of people. The emotional weight in Lear is indeed more intense and overwhelming, but it feels less natural and less frequent. We don’t have the same level of empathy for the passions portrayed in Macbeth. The interest in Hamlet is more distant and reflective. But the impact of Othello is simultaneously deep and moving.
The picturesque contrasts of character in this play are almost as remarkable as the depth of the passion. The Moor Othello, the gentle Desdemona, the villain Iago, the good-natured Cassio, the fool Roderigo, present a range and variety of character as striking and palpable as that produced by the opposition of costume in a picture. Their distinguishing qualities stand out to the mind’s eye, so that even when we are not thinking of their actions or sentiments, the idea of their persons is still as present to us as ever. These characters and 201the images they stamp upon the mind are the farthest asunder possible, the distance between them is immense: yet the compass of knowledge and invention which the poet has shown in embodying these extreme creations of his genius is only greater than the truth and felicity with which he has identified each character with itself, or blended their different qualities together in the same story. What a contrast the character of Othello forms to that of Iago! At the same time, the force of conception with which these two figures are opposed to each other is rendered still more intense by the complete consistency with which the traits of each character are brought out in a state of the highest finishing. The making one black and the other white, the one unprincipled, the other unfortunate in the extreme, would have answered the common purposes of effect, and satisfied the ambition of an ordinary painter of character. Shakespear has laboured the finer shades of difference in both with as much care and skill as if he had had to depend on the execution alone for the success of his design. On the other hand, Desdemona and Æmilia are not meant to be opposed with anything like strong contrast to each other. Both are, to outward appearance, characters of common life, not more distinguished than women usually are, by difference of rank and situation. The difference of their thoughts and sentiments is however laid open, their minds are separated from each other by signs as plain and as little to be mistaken as the complexions of their husbands.
The striking contrasts in character in this play are nearly as remarkable as the intensity of the passion. The Moor Othello, the gentle Desdemona, the villain Iago, the good-natured Cassio, and the fool Roderigo present a range of characters that is as vivid and clear as the difference in costume in a painting. Their unique traits stand out so clearly that even when we aren’t focused on their actions or feelings, the notion of who they are remains just as vivid. These characters and the impressions they leave on our minds are as far apart as possible, with an immense gap between them; yet the skill and creativity that the poet has displayed in crafting these extreme figures is only surpassed by the truth and precision with which he has made each character true to itself or interwoven their different traits within the same story. What a contrast Othello is to Iago! Additionally, the power of their opposition is heightened by how consistently each character's traits are showcased at their highest resolution. Making one character black and the other white, one unprincipled and the other extremely unfortunate, would have fulfilled the usual aims of effect and satisfied the ambitions of an average character artist. Shakespeare has worked diligently on the subtle differences in both characters with as much care and skill as if he had to rely solely on the execution for the success of his vision. On the other hand, Desdemona and Emilia are not meant to be contrasted strongly with each other. Both appear, on the surface, as common characters, not more distinguished than women typically are, apart from their differences in rank and situation. Yet the differences in their thoughts and feelings are clearly revealed; their minds are as distinctly separated as the complexions of their husbands.
The movement of the passion in Othello is exceedingly different from that of Macbeth. In Macbeth there is a violent struggle between opposite feelings, between ambition and the stings of conscience, almost from first to last: in Othello, the doubtful conflict between contrary passions, though dreadful, continues only for a short time, and the chief interest is excited by the alternate ascendancy of different passions, by the entire and unforeseen change from the fondest love and most unbounded confidence to the tortures of jealousy and the madness of hatred. The revenge of Othello, after it has once taken thorough possession of his mind, never quits it, but grows stronger and stronger at every moment of its delay. The nature of the Moor is noble, confiding, tender, and generous; but his blood is of the most inflammable kind; and being once roused by a sense of his wrongs, he is stopped by no considerations of remorse or pity till he has given a loose to all the dictates of his rage and his despair. It is in working his noble nature up to this extremity through rapid but gradual transitions, in raising passion to its height from the smallest beginnings and in spite of all obstacles, in painting the expiring conflict between love and hatred, tenderness and resentment, jealousy and remorse, in unfolding the strength and the weakness of our nature, 202in uniting sublimity of thought with the anguish of the keenest woe, in putting in motion the various impulses that agitate this our mortal being, and at last blending them in that noble tide of deep and sustained passion, impetuous but majestic, that ‘flows on to the Propontic, and knows no ebb,’ that Shakespear has shown the mastery of his genius and of his power over the human heart. The third act of Othello is his finest display, not of knowledge or passion separately, but of the two combined, of the knowledge of character with the expression of passion, of consummate art in the keeping up of appearances with the profound workings of nature, and the convulsive movements of uncontroulable agony, of the power of inflicting torture and of suffering it. Not only is the tumult of passion in Othello’s mind heaved up from the very bottom of the soul, but every the slightest undulation of feeling is seen on the surface, as it arises from the impulses of imagination or the malicious suggestions of Iago. The progressive preparation for the catastrophe is wonderfully managed from the Moor’s first gallant recital of the story of his love, of ‘the spells and witchcraft he had used,’ from his unlooked-for and romantic success, the fond satisfaction with which he dotes on his own happiness, the unreserved tenderness of Desdemona and her innocent importunities in favour of Cassio, irritating the suspicions instilled into her husband’s mind by the perfidy of Iago, and rankling there to poison, till he loses all command of himself, and his rage can only be appeased by blood. She is introduced, just before Iago begins to put his scheme in practice, pleading for Cassio with all the thoughtless gaiety of friendship and winning confidence in the love of Othello.
The way passion unfolds in Othello is very different from that in Macbeth. In Macbeth, there's a violent clash between conflicting feelings—ambition and a guilty conscience—almost throughout the whole play. In Othello, the uncertain struggle between opposing emotions, although intense, lasts only a short time, and the main interest comes from the shifting dominance of different feelings, from deep love and complete trust to the agony of jealousy and the madness of hatred. Once Othello's desire for revenge takes over his mind, it never leaves; it only gets stronger with each moment it remains unacted upon. The Moor's nature is noble, trusting, tender, and generous, but his blood is easily ignited. When he feels wronged, he’s not held back by remorse or pity until he unleashes all the fury of his rage and despair. Shakespeare brilliantly shows how he elevates Othello's noble nature to this extreme through quick yet gradual changes, raising passion from the smallest sparks and overcoming all obstacles, while portraying the fading struggle between love and hate, tenderness and resentment, jealousy, and guilt. He explores the strengths and weaknesses of our nature, merging profound thoughts with the pain of deep sorrow, capturing the various impulses that move our mortal existence, and ultimately blending them into that noble wave of intense and sustained passion, unstoppable yet grand, that "flows on to the Propontic and knows no ebb." The third act of Othello is his greatest achievement, not just in knowledge or passion alone, but in both combined, showcasing the understanding of character along with passionate expression, brilliant craftsmanship in maintaining appearances while revealing the deep workings of nature and the convulsive movements of uncontrollable agony, demonstrating both the ability to inflict pain and endure it. Not only is the storm of passion in Othello’s mind stirred from the deepest parts of his soul, but every slight ripple of emotion is visible on the surface, emerging from the urges of imagination or the malicious suggestions of Iago. The gradual buildup to the climax is expertly crafted, starting with Othello’s brave recounting of his love story, the "spells and witchcraft he had used," his unexpected romantic success, the deep joy he feels in his happiness, Desdemona's unreserved affection, and her innocent pleas for Cassio—all of which irritate the suspicions that Iago has sown in Othello’s mind, festering until he completely loses control and can only find peace in bloodshed. She is introduced just before Iago begins to execute his plan, advocating for Cassio with all the carefree joy of friendship and complete trust in Othello’s love.
Othello’s confidence, at first only staggered by broken hints and insinuations, recovers itself at sight of Desdemona; and he exclaims
Othello’s confidence, initially shaken by vague hints and suggestions, bounces back when he sees Desdemona; and he exclaims
203But presently after, on brooding over his suspicions by himself, and yielding to his apprehensions of the worst, his smothered jealousy breaks out into open fury, and he returns to demand satisfaction of Iago like a wild beast stung with the envenomed shaft of the hunters. ‘Look where he comes,’ etc. In this state of exasperation and violence, after the first paroxysms of his grief and tenderness have had their vent in that passionate apostrophe, ‘I felt not Cassio’s kisses on her lips,’ Iago, by false aspersions, and by presenting the most revolting images to his mind,[65] easily turns the storm of passion from himself against Desdemona, and works him up into a trembling agony of doubt and fear, in which he abandons all his love and hopes in a breath.
203But soon after, as he reflects on his suspicions alone and gives in to the worst of his fears, his suppressed jealousy explodes into open rage, and he goes back to confront Iago like a wild animal stung by the poisoned arrow of the hunters. ‘Look where he comes,’ etc. In this heightened state of anger and violence, after the initial outbursts of his grief and tenderness have poured out in that passionate declaration, ‘I felt not Cassio’s kisses on her lips,’ Iago, through false accusations and by presenting the most disgusting images to his mind,[65] easily redirects the storm of his emotions away from himself and towards Desdemona, driving him into a trembling agony of doubt and fear, causing him to abandon all his love and hopes in an instant.
From this time, his raging thoughts ‘never look back, ne’er ebb to humble love,’ till his revenge is sure of its object, the painful regrets and involuntary recollections of past circumstances which cross his mind amidst the dim trances of passion, aggravating the sense of his wrongs, but not shaking his purpose. Once indeed, where Iago shows him Cassio with the handkerchief in his hand, and making sport (as he thinks) of his misfortunes, the intolerable bitterness of his feelings, the extreme sense of shame, makes him fall to praising her accomplishments and relapse into a momentary fit of weakness, ‘Yet, oh the pity of it, Iago, the pity of it!’ This returning fondness however only serves, as it is managed by Iago, to whet his revenge, and set his heart more against her. In his conversations with Desdemona, the persuasion of her guilt and the immediate proofs of her duplicity seem to irritate his resentment and aversion to her; but in the scene immediately preceding her death, the recollection of his love returns upon him in all its tenderness and force; and after her death, he all at once forgets his wrongs in the sudden and irreparable sense of his loss.
From this point on, his furious thoughts “never look back, never fade to humble love,” until his revenge is certain of its target. The painful regrets and involuntary memories of past events flood his mind in the haze of passion, intensifying his sense of being wronged, yet not shaking his determination. Indeed, when Iago shows him Cassio holding the handkerchief and mocking (as he believes) his misfortunes, the unbearable bitterness of his emotions and overwhelming shame cause him to start praising her virtues and momentarily weaken, exclaiming, “Yet, oh the pity of it, Iago, the pity of it!” This returning affection, however, only serves, as Iago manipulates it, to sharpen his desire for revenge and turn his heart even more against her. In his conversations with Desdemona, the belief in her guilt and the immediate evidence of her betrayal seem to fuel his anger and hatred toward her; but in the scene just before her death, the memory of his love floods back with all its warmth and intensity; and after her death, he suddenly forgets his grievances in the overwhelming and irreparable realization of his loss.
204This happens before he is assured of her innocence; but afterwards his remorse is as dreadful as his revenge has been, and yields only to fixed and death-like despair. His farewell speech, before he kills himself, in which he conveys his reasons to the senate for the murder of his wife, is equal to the first speech in which he gave them an account of his courtship of her, and ‘his whole course of love.’ Such an ending was alone worthy of such a commencement.
204This happens before he knows for sure that she is innocent; but afterwards, his guilt is as terrible as his revenge has been, and he is left only with deep, lifeless despair. His farewell speech, before he takes his own life, where he explains to the senate why he killed his wife, is just as powerful as the first speech where he shared his courtship with her and ‘his entire journey of love.’ Such an ending is only fitting for such a beginning.
If any thing could add to the force of our sympathy with Othello, or compassion for his fate, it would be the frankness and generosity of his nature, which so little deserve it. When Iago first begins to practise upon his unsuspecting friendship, he answers—
If anything could strengthen our sympathy for Othello or our compassion for his fate, it would be his frankness and generosity, which clearly don’t deserve it. When Iago first starts to manipulate his unsuspecting friendship, he responds—
This character is beautifully (and with affecting simplicity) confirmed by what Desdemona herself says of him to Æmilia after she has lost the handkerchief, the first pledge of his love to her.
This character is beautifully (and with touching simplicity) confirmed by what Desdemona herself says about him to Æmilia after she has lost the handkerchief, the first token of his love for her.
In a short speech of Æmilia’s, there occurs one of those side-intimations of the fluctuations of passion which we seldom meet with but in Shakespear. After Othello has resolved upon the death of his wife, and bids her dismiss her attendant for the night, she answers,
In a brief speech by Æmilia, we see one of those subtle hints about the ups and downs of emotions that we seldom find outside of Shakespeare. After Othello decides to kill his wife and tells her to send her servant away for the night, she responds,
Shakespear has here put into half a line what some authors would have spun out into ten set speeches.
Shakespeare has condensed into half a line what some writers would have stretched into ten lengthy speeches.
The character of Desdemona is inimitable both in itself, and as it appears in contrast with Othello’s groundless jealousy, and with the foul conspiracy of which she is the innocent victim. Her beauty 205and external graces are only indirectly glanced at: we see ‘her visage in her mind’; her character every where predominates over her person.
The character of Desdemona is unique both on its own and in contrast to Othello’s unfounded jealousy, as well as to the despicable plot of which she is an innocent victim. Her beauty 205and outer charm are only briefly mentioned: we perceive ‘her appearance through her thoughts’; her character always overshadows her appearance.
There is one fine compliment paid to her by Cassio, who exclaims triumphantly when she comes ashore at Cyprus after the storm,
There is one great compliment given to her by Cassio, who exclaims triumphantly when she arrives at Cyprus after the storm,
In general, as is the case with most of Shakespear’s females, we lose sight of her personal charms in her attachment and devotedness to her husband. ‘She is subdued even to the very quality of her lord’; and to Othello’s ‘honours and his valiant parts her soul and fortunes consecrates.’ The lady protests so much herself, and she is as good as her word. The truth of conception, with which timidity and boldness are united in the same character, is marvellous. The extravagance of her resolutions, the pertinacity of her affections, may be said to arise out of the gentleness of her nature. They imply an unreserved reliance on the purity of her own intentions, an entire surrender of her fears to her love, a knitting of herself (heart and soul) to the fate of another. Bating the commencement of her passion, which is a little fantastical and headstrong (though even that may perhaps be consistently accounted for from her inability to resist a rising inclination[66]) her whole character consists in having no will of her own, no prompter but her obedience. Her romantic turn is only a consequence of the domestic and practical part of her disposition; and instead of following Othello to the wars, she would gladly have ‘remained at home a moth of peace,’ if her husband could have staid with her. Her resignation and angelic sweetness of temper do not desert her at the last. The scenes in which she laments and tries to account for Othello’s estrangement from her are exquisitely beautiful. After he has struck her, and called her names, she says,
In general, like most of Shakespeare’s female characters, we lose sight of her personal qualities because of her loyalty and devotion to her husband. ‘She is subdued even to the very nature of her lord’; and to Othello’s ‘honors and his brave qualities, her soul and destiny are dedicated.’ The lady insists on this herself, and she lives up to her word. The combination of shyness and boldness in one character is remarkable. The intensity of her decisions and the strength of her feelings seem to stem from her gentle nature. They show her complete trust in the purity of her own intentions, a total surrender of her fears to her love, and a deep connection of her heart and soul to another’s fate. Except for the beginning of her passion, which is a bit fanciful and impulsive (though that can be explained by her inability to resist a growing attraction[66]), her entire character lacks her own will, with no guidance except her obedience. Her romantic nature is just a result of the domestic and practical side of her personality; instead of following Othello to war, she would happily have ‘stayed at home a moth of peace,’ if her husband could have stayed with her. Her patience and gentle temperament remain with her until the end. The scenes where she mourns and tries to understand Othello's distance from her are incredibly beautiful. After he strikes her and insults her, she says,
The scene which follows with Æmilia and the song of the Willow, are equally beautiful, and show the author’s extreme power of varying the expression of passion, in all its moods and in all circumstances.
The scene that comes next with Æmilia and the song of the Willow is equally beautiful and showcases the author's incredible ability to vary the expression of passion in all its moods and situations.
Not the unjust suspicions of Othello, not Iago’s unprovoked treachery, place Desdemona in a more amiable or interesting light than the conversation (half earnest, half jest) between her and Æmilia on the common behaviour of women to their husbands. This dialogue takes place just before the last fatal scene. If Othello had overheard it, it would have prevented the whole catastrophe; but then it would have spoiled the play.
Not the unfounded doubts of Othello, nor Iago’s uncalled-for betrayal, cast Desdemona in a more relatable or engaging way than the conversation (half serious, half joking) between her and Emilia about how women typically act toward their husbands. This dialogue happens right before the tragic final scene. If Othello had overheard it, it could have stopped the entire disaster; but then it would have ruined the play.
The character of Iago is one of the supererogations of Shakespear’s genius. Some persons, more nice than wise, have thought this whole character unnatural, because his villainy is without a sufficient motive. Shakespear, who was as good a philosopher as he was a poet, thought otherwise. He knew that the love of power, which is another name for the love of mischief, is natural to man. He would know this as well or better than if it had been demonstrated to him by a logical diagram, merely from seeing children paddle in the dirt or kill flies for sport. Iago in fact belongs to a class of character, common to Shakespear and at the same time peculiar to him; whose heads are as acute and active as their hearts are hard and callous. Iago is to be sure an extreme instance of the kind; that is to say, of diseased intellectual activity, with the most perfect indifference to moral good or evil, or rather with a decided preference of the latter, because it 207falls more readily in with his favourite propensity, gives greater zest to his thoughts and scope to his actions. He is quite or nearly as indifferent to his own fate as to that of others; he runs all risks for a trifling and doubtful advantage; and is himself the dupe and victim of his ruling passion—an insatiable craving after action of the most difficult and dangerous kind. ‘Our ancient’ is a philosopher, who fancies that a lie that kills has more point in it than an alliteration or an antithesis; who thinks a fatal experiment on the peace of a family a better thing than watching the palpitations in the heart of a flea in a microscope; who plots the ruin of his friends as an exercise for his ingenuity, and stabs men in the dark to prevent ennui. His gaiety, such as it is, arises from the success of his treachery; his ease from the torture he has inflicted on others. He is an amateur of tragedy in real life; and instead of employing his invention on imaginary characters, or long-forgotten incidents, he takes the bolder and more desperate course of getting up his plot at home, casts the principal parts among his nearest friends and connections, and rehearses it in downright earnest, with steady nerves and unabated resolution. We will just give an illustration or two.
The character of Iago is one of the showcases of Shakespeare's genius. Some people, more concerned with detail than understanding, have argued that this character is unrealistic because his villainy is without a sufficient motive. Shakespeare, who was as much a philosopher as he was a poet, disagreed. He understood that the desire for power, which can also mean a desire for chaos, is part of human nature. He would grasp this just as well, if not better, than if someone had shown him a logical diagram, simply by observing children play in the dirt or kill flies for fun. Iago actually belongs to a type of character that is common in Shakespeare but is also uniquely his own; they have sharp, active minds but heartless and cold dispositions. Iago is certainly an extreme example of this type; he showcases excessive intellectual activity, showing complete indifference to moral good or evil, or rather a clear preference for the latter, because it aligns more with his favorite tendency, adds excitement to his thoughts, and expands his actions. He is just as indifferent to his own fate as he is to that of others; he risks everything for a trivial and uncertain gain; and in the end, he is both the fool and victim of his overwhelming desire—an unending hunger for action that is both challenging and dangerous. He is a philosopher who believes that a lie that results in death is more significant than a catchy phrase or a clever contrast; who thinks that disrupting a family’s peace is more valuable than observing the heartbeat of a flea through a microscope; who schemes the downfall of his friends as a test of his cleverness and stabs men in the dark to avoid ennui. His enjoyment, however it manifests, comes from the success of his betrayal; his calmness comes from the suffering he has caused others. He is like an amateur playwright of real-life tragedy; instead of using his imagination on fictional characters or long-forgotten stories, he chooses a bolder and more reckless path by staging his drama at home, assigning the leading roles to his closest friends and family, and rehearsing it in earnest, with a steady nerve and unwavering determination. We will just give an illustration or two.
One of his most characteristic speeches is that immediately after the marriage of Othello.
One of his most notable speeches is the one he gives right after Othello's wedding.
In the next passage, his imagination runs riot in the mischief he is plotting, and breaks out into the wildness and impetuosity of real enthusiasm.
In the next passage, his imagination goes wild with the mischief he’s planning and bursts forth with the excitement and intensity of true enthusiasm.
One of his most favourite topics, on which he is rich indeed, and in descanting on which his spleen serves him for a Muse, is the disproportionate match between Desdemona and the Moor. This is a clue to the character of the lady which he is by no means ready to part with. It is brought forward in the first scene, and he recurs to 208it, when in answer to his insinuations against Desdemona, Roderigo says,
One of his favorite topics, on which he is quite knowledgeable and which sparks his passion, is the mismatch between Desdemona and the Moor. This reveals a lot about her character, which he is reluctant to let go of. It comes up in the first scene, and he brings it up again when, in response to his hints about Desdemona, Roderigo says,
‘I cannot believe that in her—she’s full of most blest conditions.
‘I can’t believe that in her—she's full of so many wonderful qualities.
Iago. Bless’d fig’s end. The wine she drinks is made of grapes. If she had been blest, she would never have married the Moor.’
Iago. A blessed fig's end. The wine she drinks is made from grapes. If she were truly blessed, she would never have married the Moor.
And again with still more spirit and fatal effect afterwards, when he turns this very suggestion arising in Othello’s own breast to her prejudice.
And once again, with even more energy and devastating impact later on, he twists this very idea coming from Othello’s own heart against her.
This is probing to the quick. Iago here turns the character of poor Desdemona, as it were, inside out. It is certain that nothing but the genius of Shakespear could have preserved the entire interest and delicacy of the part, and have even drawn an additional elegance and dignity from the peculiar circumstances in which she is placed.—The habitual licentiousness of Iago’s conversation is not to be traced to the pleasure he takes in gross or lascivious images, but to his desire of finding out the worst side of everything, and of proving himself an over-match for appearances. He has none of ‘the milk of human kindness’ in his composition. His imagination rejects every thing that has not a strong infusion of the most unpalatable ingredients; his mind digests only poisons. Virtue or goodness or whatever has the least ‘relish of salvation in it,’ is, to his depraved appetite, sickly and insipid: and he even resents the good opinion entertained of his own integrity, as if it were an affront cast on the masculine sense and spirit of his character. Thus at the meeting between Othello and Desdemona, he exclaims—‘Oh, you are well tuned now: but I’ll set down the pegs that make this music, as honest as I am‘—his character of bonhomme not sitting at all easy upon him. In the scenes, where he tries to work Othello to his purpose, he is proportionably guarded, insidious, dark, and deliberate. We believe nothing ever came up to the profound dissimulation and dextrous artifice of the well-known dialogue in the third act, where he first enters upon the execution of his design.
This really cuts deep. Iago completely flips Desdemona's character inside out here. It's clear that only Shakespeare’s genius could have maintained the full interest and sensitivity of her role, even adding a touch of elegance and dignity from the unique situation she’s in. Iago's usual lewd talk doesn't stem from a love for crude or sexual images but from his need to uncover the worst in everything and to prove he’s smarter than appearances. He lacks any 'milk of human kindness.' His imagination dismisses everything that doesn’t have a strong blend of the most unpleasant elements; his mind only processes toxins. Anything virtuous or good, or anything with even a hint of 'salvation' is, to his twisted mind, weak and bland. He even resents that people hold a good opinion of his integrity, as if it’s an insult to his masculine nature and spirit. So, during the encounter between Othello and Desdemona, he says, 'Oh, you’re well-tuned now: but I’ll set down the pegs that make this music, as honest as I am'—his characterization of good fellow doesn’t fit him at all. In the scenes where he manipulates Othello, he’s calculated, sneaky, dark, and methodical. I don’t think anything else matches the deep deceit and clever trickery of the famous dialogue in the third act, where he starts to put his plan into action.
The stops and breaks, the deep workings of treachery under the mask of love and honesty, the anxious watchfulness, the cool earnestness, and if we may so say, the passion of hypocrisy, marked in every line, receive their last finishing in that inconceivable burst of pretended indignation at Othello’s doubts of his sincerity.
The pauses and interruptions, the deep levels of betrayal hidden behind a façade of love and honesty, the nervous vigilance, the calm seriousness, and if we can call it that, the passion of hypocrisy, are highlighted in every line, culminating in that unbelievable outburst of fake outrage at Othello’s doubts about his sincerity.
If Iago is detestable enough when he has business on his hands and all his engines at work, he is still worse when he has nothing to do, and we only see into the hollowness of his heart. His indifference when Othello falls into a swoon, is perfectly diabolical.
If Iago is already horrible when he's busy and has all his schemes going, he's even worse when he has nothing to do, and we can really see the emptiness of his heart. His lack of concern when Othello fainted is downright evil.
The part indeed would hardly be tolerated, even as a foil to the virtue and generosity of the other characters in the play, but for its indefatigable industry and inexhaustible resources, which divert the attention of the spectator (as well as his own) from the end he has in view to the means by which it must be accomplished.—Edmund the Bastard in Lear is something of the same character, placed in less prominent circumstances. Zanga is a vulgar caricature of it.
The role would definitely be hard to accept, even as a contrast to the virtue and generosity of the other characters in the play, if not for its relentless energy and endless resources, which shift the spectator's focus (as well as his own) away from the goal he aims to achieve to the methods he uses to get there.—Edmund the Bastard in Lear is somewhat similar, but in less prominent situations. Zanga is a crass version of it.
TIMON OF ATHENS
Timon of Athens always appeared to us to be written with as intense a feeling of his subject as any one play of Shakespear. It is one of the few in which he seems to be in earnest throughout, never to trifle nor go out of his way. He does not relax in his efforts, nor lose sight of the unity of his design. It is the only play of our author in which spleen is the predominant feeling of the mind. It is as much a satire as a play: and contains some of the finest pieces of invective possible to be conceived, both in the snarling, captious answers of the cynic Apemantus, and in the impassioned and more terrible imprecations of Timon. The latter remind the classical reader of the force and swelling impetuosity of the moral declamations in Juvenal, while the former have all the keenness and caustic severity of the old Stoic philosophers. The soul of Diogenes appears to have been seated on the lips of Apemantus. The churlish profession of misanthropy in the cynic is contrasted with the profound feeling of it in Timon, and also with the soldier-like and determined resentment of Alcibiades against his countrymen, who have banished him, though this forms only an incidental episode in the tragedy.
Timon of Athens always seems to be written with as much emotion about its subject as any single play by Shakespeare. It's one of the few where he appears completely sincere, never wasting time or straying from his point. He doesn’t ease up in his efforts or lose sight of the overall purpose. It’s the only play of his where bitterness is the main feeling. It’s as much a satire as it is a play, featuring some of the most impactful invective imaginable, both in the sarcastic and critical responses of the cynic Apemantus and in Timon’s passionate and fierce curses. The latter remind classical readers of the forceful and intense moral speeches found in Juvenal, while the former have all the sharpness and biting harshness of the old Stoic philosophers. The spirit of Diogenes seems to inhabit Apemantus's words. The grumpy display of misanthropy seen in the cynic contrasts with the deep feeling in Timon and the strong and determined anger of Alcibiades toward his fellow citizens who have exiled him, although this is just a side story in the tragedy.
The fable consists of a single event;—of the transition from the highest pomp and profusion of artificial refinement to the most abject state of savage life, and privation of all social intercourse. The change is as rapid as it is complete; nor is the description of the rich and generous Timon, banqueting in gilded palaces, pampered by every luxury, prodigal of his hospitality, courted by crowds of flatterers, poets, painters, lords, ladies, who—
The fable tells a single story: the shift from the height of extravagant luxury to the lowest level of savage existence, losing all social connections. The change happens quickly and completely. The description of the wealthy and generous Timon, feasting in lavish palaces, indulged in every comfort, generous with his hospitality, and surrounded by crowds of admirers, poets, artists, nobles, and ladies who—
more striking than that of the sudden falling off of his friends and fortune, and his naked exposure in a wild forest digging roots from the earth for his sustenance, with a lofty spirit of self-denial, and bitter scorn of the world, which raise him higher in our esteem than the dazzling gloss of prosperity could do. He grudges himself the means of life, and is only busy in preparing his grave. How forcibly is the difference between what he was, and what he is, described in Apemantus’s taunting questions, when he comes to reproach him with the change in his way of life!
more striking than the sudden loss of his friends and fortune, and his bare exposure in a wild forest, digging roots from the earth to survive, with a strong sense of self-denial and a bitter scorn for the world, which makes him more admirable to us than the shiny facade of success ever could. He resents even the necessities of life and is only focused on preparing his grave. The stark contrast between who he was and who he is is powerfully depicted in Apemantus’s mocking questions when he comes to confront him about the drastic change in his lifestyle!
The manners are every where preserved with distinct truth. The poet and painter are very skilfully played off against one another, both affecting great attention to the other, and each taken up with his own vanity, and the superiority of his own art. Shakespear has put into the mouth of the former a very lively description of the genius of poetry and of his own in particular.
The manners are everywhere maintained with clear truth. The poet and painter are skillfully pitted against each other, each pretending to pay great attention to the other while being absorbed in their own vanity and superiority of their own art. Shakespeare has given the former a vivid description of the essence of poetry, especially his own.
The hollow friendship and shuffling evasions of the Athenian lords, their smooth professions and pitiful ingratitude, are very satisfactorily exposed, as well as the different disguises to which the meanness of self-love resorts in such cases to hide a want of generosity and good faith. The lurking selfishness of Apemantus does not pass undetected amidst the grossness of his sarcasms and his contempt for the pretensions of others. Even the two courtezans who accompany Alcibiades to the cave of Timon are very characteristically sketched; and the thieves who come to visit him are also ‘true men’ in their way.—An exception to this general picture of selfish depravity is found in the old and honest steward Flavius, to whom Timon pays a full tribute of tenderness. Shakespear was unwilling to draw a picture ‘ugly all over with hypocrisy.’ He owed this character to the good-natured solicitations of his Muse. His mind might well have been said to be the ‘sphere of humanity.’
The shallow friendships and evasive tactics of the Athenian lords, their smooth talk and despicable ingratitude, are clearly laid bare, as are the various facades that self-interest uses to mask a lack of generosity and honesty. Apemantus's hidden selfishness doesn't go unnoticed despite the sharpness of his sarcasm and his disdain for others' pretensions. Even the two courtesans who accompany Alcibiades to Timon’s cave are described in a distinctly characteristic way; the thieves who come to see him are also 'authentic' in their own way. An exception to this overall image of selfish corruption is represented by the old, honest steward Flavius, to whom Timon shows deep affection. Shakespeare was reluctant to create a portrait that was ‘ugly all over with hypocrisy.’ He was inspired by the good-natured urgings of his Muse. One could say his mind was the ‘sphere of humanity.’
The moral sententiousness of this play equals that of Lord Bacon’s Treatise on the Wisdom of the Ancients, and is indeed seasoned with greater variety. Every topic of contempt or indignation is here exhausted; but while the sordid licentiousness of Apemantus, which turns every thing to gall and bitterness, shews only the natural virulence 212of his temper and antipathy to good or evil alike, Timon does not utter an imprecation without betraying the extravagant workings of disappointed passion, of love altered to hate. Apemantus sees nothing good in any object, and exaggerates whatever is disgusting: Timon is tormented with the perpetual contrast between things and appearances, between the fresh, tempting outside and the rottenness within, and invokes mischiefs on the heads of mankind proportioned to the sense of his wrongs and of their treacheries. He impatiently cries out, when he finds the gold,
The moral depth of this play is on par with Lord Bacon’s Treatise on the Wisdom of the Ancients, and actually has even more variety. Every topic of disdain or anger is covered here; however, while Apemantus's bitter attitude turns everything sour and shows only his natural spite and dislike for both good and evil, Timon doesn’t curse without revealing the intense turmoil of his disappointed feelings, love turned into hate. Apemantus sees nothing good in anything and blows out of proportion whatever is unpleasant: Timon is tortured by the constant contrast between reality and appearances, between the appealing surface and the decay within, and he calls down misfortunes on humanity that match his sense of betrayal and their deceitfulness. He impatiently exclaims when he discovers the gold,
One of his most dreadful imprecations is that which occurs immediately on his leaving Athens.
One of his most terrifying curses happens right after he leaves Athens.
Timon is here just as ideal in his passion for ill as he had been before in his belief of good, Apemantus was satisfied with the mischief existing in the world, and with his own ill-nature. One of the most decisive intimations of Timon’s morbid jealousy of appearances is in his answer to Apemantus, who asks him,
Timon is just as perfect in his hatred for the bad as he was before in his belief in the good. Apemantus was content with the chaos in the world and with his own bad attitude. One of the clearest signs of Timon’s unhealthy jealousy of appearances is in his response to Apemantus, who asks him,
Apemantus, it is said, ‘loved few things better than to abhor himself.’ This is not the case with Timon, who neither loves to abhor himself nor others. All his vehement misanthropy is forced, up-hill work. From the slippery turns of fortune, from the turmoils of passion and adversity, he wishes to sink into the quiet of the grave. On that subject his thoughts are intent, on that he finds time and place to grow romantic. He digs his own grave by the sea-shore; contrives his funeral ceremonies amidst the pomp of desolation, and builds his mausoleum of the elements.
Apemantus is known to "love few things more than hating himself." That's not true for Timon, who doesn’t enjoy hating himself or others. His intense dislike for humanity is a struggle, a tough battle. He wants to escape the ups and downs of life, the chaos of emotions and hardships, and just find peace in death. That's what occupies his mind; he finds the right time and space to romanticize it. He digs his own grave by the beach, plans his funeral with a sense of grandeur amidst the emptiness, and creates his tomb from nature itself.
And again, Alcibiades, after reading his epitaph, says of him,
And once more, Alcibiades, after reading his epitaph, comments on him,
thus making the winds his funeral dirge, his mourner the murmuring ocean; and seeking in the everlasting solemnities of nature oblivion of the transitory splendour of his life-time.
thus making the winds his funeral song, his mourner the gentle ocean; and seeking in the timeless gravity of nature a way to forget the fleeting glory of his life.
CORIOLANUS
Shakespear has in this play shewn himself well versed in history and state-affairs. Coriolanus is a storehouse of political common-places. Any one who studies it may save himself the trouble of reading Burke’s Reflections, or Paine’s Rights of Man, or the Debates in both Houses of Parliament since the French Revolution or our own. The arguments for and against aristocracy or democracy, on the privileges of the few and the claims of the many, on liberty and slavery, power and the abuse of it, peace and war, are here very ably handled, with the spirit of a poet and the acuteness of a philosopher. Shakespear himself seems to have had a leaning to the arbitrary side of the question, perhaps from some feeling of contempt for his own origin; and to have spared no occasion of baiting the rabble. What he says of them is very true: what he says of their betters is also very true, though he dwells less upon it.—The cause of the people is indeed but little calculated as a subject for poetry: it admits of rhetoric, which goes into argument and explanation, but it presents no immediate or distinct images to the mind, ‘no jutting frieze, buttress, or coigne of vantage’ for poetry ‘to make its pendant bed and procreant cradle in.’ The language of poetry naturally falls in with the language of power. The imagination is an exaggerating and exclusive faculty: it takes from one thing to add to another: it accumulates circumstances together to give the greatest possible effect to a favourite object. The understanding is a dividing and measuring faculty: it judges of things not according to their immediate impression on the mind, but according to their relations to one another. The one is a monopolising faculty, which seeks the greatest quantity of present excitement by inequality and disproportion; the other is a distributive faculty, which seeks the greatest quantity of ultimate good, by justice and proportion. The one is an aristocratical, the other a republican faculty. The principle of poetry is a very anti-levelling principle. It aims at effect, it exists by contrast. It admits of no medium. It is every thing by excess. It rises above the ordinary standard of sufferings and crimes. It presents a dazzling appearance. It shows its head turreted, crowned, and crested. Its front is gilt and blood-stained. Before it ‘it carries noise, and behind it leaves tears.’ It has its altars and its victims, sacrifices, human sacrifices. Kings, priests, nobles, are its train-bearers, tyrants and slaves its executioners.—‘Carnage is its daughter.’—Poetry is right-royal. It puts the individual for the species, the one above the 215infinite many, might before right. A lion hunting a flock of sheep or a herd of wild asses is a more poetical object than they; and we even take part with the lordly beast, because our vanity or some other feeling makes us disposed to place ourselves in the situation of the strongest party. So we feel some concern for the poor citizens of Rome when they meet together to compare their wants and grievances, till Coriolanus comes in and with blows and big words drives this set of ‘poor rats,’ this rascal scum, to their homes and beggary before him. There is nothing heroical in a multitude of miserable rogues not wishing to be starved, or complaining that they are like to be so: but when a single man comes forward to brave their cries and to make them submit to the last indignities, from mere pride and self-will, our admiration of his prowess is immediately converted into contempt for their pusillanimity. The insolence of power is stronger than the plea of necessity. The tame submission to usurped authority or even the natural resistance to it has nothing to excite or flatter the imagination: it is the assumption of a right to insult or oppress others that carries an imposing air of superiority with it. We had rather be the oppressor than the oppressed. The love of power in ourselves and the admiration of it in others are both natural to man: the one makes him a tyrant, the other a slave. Wrong dressed out in pride, pomp, and circumstance, has more attraction than abstract right.—Coriolanus complains of the fickleness of the people: yet, the instant he cannot gratify his pride and obstinacy at their expense, he turns his arms against his country. If his country was not worth defending, why did he build his pride on its defence? He is a conqueror and a hero; he conquers other countries, and makes this a plea for enslaving his own; and when he is prevented from doing so, he leagues with its enemies to destroy his country. He rates the people ‘as if he were a God to punish, and not a man of their infirmity.’ He scoffs at one of their tribunes for maintaining their rights and franchises: ‘Mark you his absolute shall?’ not marking his own absolute will to take every thing from them, his impatience of the slightest opposition to his own pretensions being in proportion to their arrogance and absurdity. If the great and powerful had the beneficence and wisdom of Gods, then all this would have been well: if with a greater knowledge of what is good for the people, they had as great a care for their interest as they have themselves, if they were seated above the world, sympathising with the welfare, but not feeling the passions of men, receiving neither good nor hurt from them, but bestowing their benefits as free gifts on them, they might then rule over them like another Providence. But this is not the case. Coriolanus is unwilling that the senate should shew their ‘cares’ 216for the people, lest their ‘cares’ should be construed into ‘fears,’ to the subversion of all due authority; and he is no sooner disappointed in his schemes to deprive the people not only of the cares of the state, but of all power to redress themselves, than Volumnia is made madly to exclaim,
Shakespeare in this play demonstrates that he is well knowledgeable in history and politics. Coriolanus is packed with political clichés. Anyone who studies it can skip reading Burke’s Reflections, Paine’s Rights of Man, or the debates in both Houses of Parliament since the French Revolution or our own. The arguments for and against aristocracy or democracy, regarding the privileges of the few and the claims of the many, about freedom and slavery, power and its abuse, peace and war, are expertly addressed here, combining the spirit of a poet with the insight of a philosopher. Shakespeare himself seems to lean toward the arbitrary side of the debate, possibly out of some disdain for his own background, and he doesn't miss a chance to mock the common people. What he says about them is very true: what he says about their betters is also very true, though he emphasizes it less. The cause of the people doesn’t lend itself well to poetry: it allows for rhetoric, which involves argument and explanation, but it doesn’t evoke immediate or clear images in the mind, ‘no jutting frieze, buttress, or coigne of vantage’ for poetry ‘to make its pendant bed and procreant cradle in.’ The language of poetry typically aligns with the language of power. Imagination is an embellishing and exclusive capability: it takes from one thing to enhance another; it compiles elements to provide the maximum impact on a preferred subject. Understanding is a dividing and measuring ability: it judges things not by their initial impressions on the mind, but by their relationships to each other. One is a monopolizing faculty, seeking the greatest current excitement through inequality and imbalance; the other is a distributive faculty, seeking the most significant amount of lasting good, through justice and fairness. One is an aristocratic faculty, while the other is a republican one. The essence of poetry is inherently anti-egalitarian. It aims for dramatic effect, it exists through contrast. It allows no middle ground. It manifests in excess. It soars above the typical standards of suffering and wrongs. It presents a striking appearance. It shows itself adorned, crowned, and cresting. Its front is gilded and blood-stained. Before it ‘it carries noise, and behind it leaves tears.’ It has its altars and its victims, sacrifices, human sacrifices. Kings, priests, and nobles are its attendants, while tyrants and slaves are its executioners.—‘Carnage is its daughter.’—Poetry is truly royal. It places the individual above the many, might before right. A lion chasing a flock of sheep or a herd of wild asses is a more poetic image than they are; we even sympathize with the powerful beast because our vanity or some other feeling leads us to align ourselves with the stronger party. Thus, we feel some concern for the poor citizens of Rome when they gather to discuss their needs and grievances, until Coriolanus arrives and, with blows and loud words, drives this group of ‘poor rats,’ this rabble, back to their homes and poverty before him. There’s nothing heroic in a crowd of miserable rogues simply trying not to starve or complaining about their situation; however, when one man steps up to face their cries and forces them to endure ultimate humiliation out of sheer pride and stubbornness, our admiration for his strength quickly turns into contempt for their weakness. The arrogance of power overshadows the need for survival. Passive acceptance of usurped authority or even natural resistance to it fails to inspire or flatter the imagination: it is the presumption of a right to insult or oppress others that carries a compelling sense of superiority. We prefer to be the oppressor than the oppressed. The desire for power within ourselves and the admiration for it in others are both natural to humanity: one turns us into tyrants, the other into slaves. Wrong adorned with pride, pomp, and circumstance is more appealing than abstract right.—Coriolanus complains about the unpredictability of the people: yet, the moment he cannot fulfill his pride and stubbornness at their expense, he turns his weapons against his own country. If his country wasn't worth defending, why did he take pride in its defense? He is a conqueror and a hero; he conquers other nations and uses this as an excuse to enslave his own; and when he is prevented from doing so, he allies with its enemies to destroy his homeland. He criticizes the people ‘as if he were a God to punish, not a man of their weaknesses.’ He mocks one of their tribunes for standing up for their rights and privileges: ‘Do you hear his absolute shall?’ while ignoring his own absolute will to strip everything from them, with his impatience for the smallest challenge to his claims being proportional to their arrogance and absurdity. If the powerful and influential had the kindness and wisdom of gods, then all this would be acceptable: if, with a greater understanding of what is best for the people, they also cared for their well-being as much as they do for themselves, if they looked down upon the world, sharing in the welfare yet not feeling the emotions of people, receiving neither benefit nor harm from them, but giving their blessings as free gifts, they might then govern like another Providence. But this is not the reality. Coriolanus is unwilling for the senate to demonstrate their ‘cares’ for the people, fearing that their ‘cares’ would be seen as ‘fears,’ undermining any proper authority; and as soon as he is thwarted in his plans to deprive the people not only of state cares but of all power to advocate for themselves, Volumnia is driven madly to exclaim,
This is but natural: it is but natural for a mother to have more regard for her son than for a whole city; but then the city should be left to take some care of itself. The care of the state cannot, we here see, be safely entrusted to maternal affection, or to the domestic charities of high life. The great have private feelings of their own, to which the interests of humanity and justice must courtesy. Their interests are so far from being the same as those of the community, that they are in direct and necessary opposition to them; their power is at the expense of our weakness; their riches of our poverty; their pride of our degradation; their splendour of our wretchedness; their tyranny of our servitude. If they had the superior knowledge ascribed to them (which they have not) it would only render them so much more formidable; and from Gods would convert them into Devils. The whole dramatic moral of Coriolanus is that those who have little shall have less, and that those who have much shall take all that others have left. The people are poor; therefore they ought to be starved. They are slaves; therefore they ought to be beaten. They work hard; therefore they ought to be treated like beasts of burden. They are ignorant; therefore they ought not to be allowed to feel that they want food, or clothing, or rest, that they are enslaved, oppressed, and miserable. This is the logic of the imagination and the passions; which seek to aggrandize what excites admiration and to heap contempt on misery, to raise power into tyranny, and to make tyranny absolute; to thrust down that which is low still lower, and to make wretches desperate: to exalt magistrates into kings, kings into gods; to degrade subjects to the rank of slaves, and slaves to the condition of brutes. The history of mankind is a romance, a mask, a tragedy, constructed upon the principles of poetical justice; it is a noble or royal hunt, in which what is sport to the few is death to the many, and in which the spectators halloo and encourage the strong to set upon the weak, and cry havoc in the chase though they do not share in the spoil. We may depend upon it that what men delight to read in books, they will put in practice in reality.
This is only natural: it’s only natural for a mother to care more for her son than for an entire city; but then the city should be responsible for taking care of itself. We can see that the care of the state cannot be safely left to maternal affection or the domestic concerns of the elite. Those in power have their own private feelings that must sometimes come before the interests of humanity and justice. Their interests are so far from aligning with those of the community that they are often in direct opposition; their power comes at the expense of our weakness; their wealth is built on our poverty; their pride is founded on our degradation; their glory is derived from our misery; their tyranny thrives on our servitude. Even if they possessed the superior knowledge attributed to them (which they do not), it would only make them more dangerous; and rather than being like Gods, they would turn into Devils. The entire moral lesson of Coriolanus is that those who have little will end up with even less, while those who have much will take everything that others have left. The people are poor; therefore, they should be starved. They are slaves; therefore, they should be beaten. They work hard; therefore, they should be treated like pack animals. They are ignorant; therefore, they shouldn't even be allowed to notice that they need food, clothing, or rest, that they are enslaved, oppressed, and miserable. This is the reasoning of emotions and imagination; it seeks to glorify what inspires admiration and to look down on misery, to elevate power into tyranny, and make tyranny absolute; to push those below even further down and make the unfortunate desperate: to elevate officials into kings, kings into gods; to reduce subjects to the status of slaves, and slaves to the level of beasts. The history of mankind is a story, a facade, a tragedy built on the principles of poetical justice; it is a noble or royal hunt, where what is sport for the few means death for the many, and where the spectators cheer and encourage the strong to attack the weak and shout havoc in the chase, even though they do not share in the spoils. We can be sure that what people enjoy reading in books, they will act out in real life.
One of the most natural traits in this play is the difference of the 217interest taken in the success of Coriolanus by his wife and mother. The one is only anxious for his honour; the other is fearful for his life.
One of the most natural traits in this play is the difference in the interest taken in Coriolanus's success by his wife and mother. The former is solely concerned about his honor, while the latter is worried for his safety.
When she hears the trumpets that proclaim her son’s return, she says in the true spirit of a Roman matron,
When she hears the trumpets announcing her son's return, she speaks in the genuine spirit of a Roman mother,
Coriolanus himself is a complete character: his love of reputation, his contempt of popular opinion, his pride and modesty, are consequences of each other. His pride consists in the inflexible sternness of his will; his love of glory is a determined desire to bear down all opposition, and to extort the admiration both of friends and foes. His contempt for popular favour, his unwillingness to hear his own praises, spring from the same source. He cannot contradict the praises that are bestowed upon him; therefore he is impatient at hearing them. He would enforce the good opinion of others by his actions, but does not want their acknowledgments in words.
Coriolanus is a fully developed character: his desire for reputation, his disregard for public opinion, and his combination of pride and humility all feed into one another. His pride is rooted in the unyielding strength of his will; his desire for glory is a strong drive to overcome all opposition and to earn admiration from both friends and enemies. His disdain for public approval and his reluctance to hear compliments about himself come from the same place. He can't deny the praise he receives, which is why he gets frustrated when he hears it. He wants to earn others' respect through his actions but doesn't care for their verbal acknowledgments.
His magnanimity is of the same kind. He admires in an enemy that courage which he honours in himself; he places himself on the hearth of Aufidius with the same confidence that he would have met him in the field, and feels that by putting himself in his power, he takes from him all temptation for using it against him.
His generosity is just as notable. He respects in an enemy the bravery he values in himself; he approaches Aufidius with the same confidence he would have shown on the battlefield, and believes that by surrendering to him, he removes any urge he might have to harm him.
218In the title-page of Coriolanus, it is said at the bottom of the Dramatis Personæ, ‘The whole history exactly followed, and many of the principal speeches copied from the life of Coriolanus in Plutarch.’ It will be interesting to our readers to see how far this is the case. Two of the principal scenes, those between Coriolanus and Aufidius and between Coriolanus and his mother, are thus given in Sir Thomas North’s Translation of Plutarch, dedicated to Queen Elizabeth, 1579. The first is as follows:—
218On the title page of Coriolanus, it says at the bottom of the Cast of Characters, ‘The entire story is closely followed, and many of the key speeches are taken from the life of Coriolanus in Plutarch.’ It will be interesting for our readers to see how true this is. Two of the main scenes, those between Coriolanus and Aufidius and between Coriolanus and his mother, are presented in Sir Thomas North’s Translation of Plutarch, dedicated to Queen Elizabeth, 1579. The first is as follows:—
‘It was even twilight when he entered the city of Antium, and many people met him in the streets, but no man knew him. So he went directly to Tullus Aufidius’ house, and when he came thither, he got him up straight to the chimney-hearth, and sat him down, and spake not a word to any man, his face all muffled over. They of the house spying him, wondered what he should be, and yet they durst not bid him rise. For ill-favouredly muffled and disguised as he was, yet there appeared a certain majesty in his countenance and in his silence: whereupon they went to Tullus, who was at supper, to tell him of the strange disguising of this man. Tullus rose presently from the board, and coming towards him, asked him what he was, and wherefore he came. Then Martius unmuffled himself, and after he had paused awhile, making no answer, he said unto himself, If thou knowest me not yet, Tullus, and seeing me, dost not perhaps believe me to be the man I am indeed, I must of necessity discover myself to be that I am. “I am Caius Martius, who hath done to thyself particularly, and to all the Volces generally, great hurt and mischief, which I cannot deny for my surname of Coriolanus that I bear. For I never had other benefit nor recompence of the true and painful service I have done, and the extreme dangers I have been in, but this only surname: a good memory and witness of the malice and displeasure thou shouldest bear me. Indeed the name only remaineth with me; for the rest, the envy and cruelty of the people of Rome have taken from me, by the sufferance of the dastardly nobility and magistrates, who have forsaken me, and let me be banished by the people. This extremity hath now driven me to come as a poor suitor, to take thy chimney-hearth, not of any hope I have to save my life thereby. For if I had feared death, I would not have come hither to put myself in hazard; but pricked forward with desire to be revenged of them that thus have banished me, which now I do begin, in putting my person into the hands of their enemies. Wherefore if thou hast any heart to be wrecked of the injuries thy enemies have done thee, speed thee now, and let my misery serve thy turn, and so use it as my service may be a benefit to the Volces: promising thee, that I will fight with better good will for all you, than I did when I was against you, knowing that they fight more valiantly who know the force of the enemy, than such as have never proved it. And if it be so that thou dare not, and that thou art weary to prove fortune any more, then am I also weary to live any longer. And it were no wisdom in thee to save the life of him who hath been heretofore thy mortal enemy, and whose service now can nothing help, nor pleasure thee.” Tullus hearing what he said, was a 219marvellous glad man, and taking him by the hand, he said unto him: “Stand up, O Martius, and be of good cheer, for in proffering thyself unto us, thou doest us great honour: and by this means thou mayest hope also of greater things at all the Volces’ hands.” So he feasted him for that time, and entertained him in the honourablest manner he could, talking with him of no other matter at that present: but within few days after, they fell to consultation together in what sort they should begin their wars.’
It was already twilight when he entered the city of Antium, and many people encountered him in the streets, but no one recognized him. So he went directly to Tullus Aufidius’ house, and when he arrived, he went straight to the hearth, sat down, and didn’t say a word to anyone, his face completely covered. The people in the house noticed him, wondered who he was, but didn’t dare to ask him to get up. Even though he looked rough and disguised, there was a certain majesty in his presence and silence: so they went to Tullus, who was at dinner, to tell him about the strange figure in their home. Tullus quickly got up from the table, approached him, and asked who he was and why he had come. Then Martius uncovered his face, and after pausing for a moment without responding, he thought to himself, If you don’t recognize me yet, Tullus, and don’t believe I am who I truly am, I must reveal my identity. “I am Caius Martius, who has caused you and the Volces great harm and trouble, a fact I cannot deny because of the name Coriolanus that I bear. I have received no other reward or recognition for my true and painful service and the extreme dangers I've faced, other than this name: a lasting reminder of the malice and resentment you should feel toward me. Indeed, the name is all that remains; for the envy and cruelty of the Roman people have stripped everything else from me, with the cowardly nobility and magistrates allowing my banishment by the people. This great adversity has now driven me to come as a humble suitor, seeking refuge, not out of hope for my life. For if I feared death, I wouldn’t have come here to risk it; but driven by the desire for revenge against those who have banished me, I am now starting that journey by putting my life in the hands of their enemies. So if you have any desire to avenge the wrongs your enemies have done to you, act quickly, and let my misery serve your purpose; treat my service as a benefit to the Volces: I promise you that I will fight more willingly for all of you than I did when I opposed you, knowing that those who understand the strength of their enemies fight more courageously than those who have never faced them. But if you are too afraid and tired to test your fate any longer, then I too am weary of living. And it would not be wise for you to save the life of someone who has been your sworn enemy and whose service can no longer help or please you.” Tullus, hearing this, was incredibly pleased, and taking him by the hand, said to him: “Get up, Martius, and be happy, for by offering yourself to us, you bring us great honor: and through this, you may also hope for greater things from all the Volces.” He hosted him that evening and treated him in the best way possible, discussing nothing else at that time; but a few days later, they began to strategize together on how to start their war.
The meeting between Coriolanus and his mother is also nearly the same as in the play.
The meeting between Coriolanus and his mother is pretty much the same as in the play.
‘Now was Martius set then in the chair of state, with all the honours of a general, and when he had spied the women coming afar off, he marvelled what the matter meant: but afterwards knowing his wife which came foremost, he determined at the first to persist in his obstinate and inflexible rancour. But overcome in the end with natural affection, and being altogether altered to see them, his heart would not serve him to tarry their coming to his chair, but coming down in haste, he went to meet them, and first he kissed his mother, and embraced her a pretty while, then his wife and little children. And nature so wrought with him, that the tears fell from his eyes, and he could not keep himself from making much of them, but yielded to the affection of his blood, as if he had been violently carried with the fury of a most swift-running stream. After he had thus lovingly received them, and perceiving that his mother Volumnia would begin to speak to him, he called the chiefest of the council of the Volces to hear what she would say. Then she spake in this sort: “If we held our peace, my son, and determined not to speak, the state of our poor bodies, and present sight of our raiment, would easily betray to thee what life we have led at home, since thy exile and abode abroad; but think now with thyself, how much more unfortunate than all the women living, we are come hither, considering that the sight which should be most pleasant to all others to behold, spiteful fortune had made most fearful to us: making myself to see my son, and my daughter here her husband, besieging the walls of his native country: so as that which is the only comfort to all others in their adversity and misery, to pray unto the Gods, and to call to them for aid, is the only thing which plungeth us into most deep perplexity. For we cannot, alas, together pray, both for victory to our country, and for safety of thy life also: but a world of grievous curses, yea more than any mortal enemy can heap upon us, are forcibly wrapped up in our prayers. For the bitter sop of most hard choice is offered thy wife and children, to forego one of the two: either to lose the person of thyself, or the nurse of their native country. For myself, my son, I am determined not to tarry till fortune in my lifetime do make an end of this war. For if I cannot persuade thee rather to do good unto both parties, than to overthrow and destroy the one, preferring love and nature before the malice and calamity of wars, thou shalt see, my son, and trust unto it, thou shalt no sooner march forward to assault thy country, but thy foot shall tread upon thy mother’s womb, that brought thee first into 220this world. And I may not defer to see the day, either that my son be led prisoner in triumph by his natural countrymen, or that he himself do triumph of them, and of his natural country. For if it were so, that my request tended to save thy country, in destroying the Volces, I must confess, thou wouldest hardly and doubtfully resolve on that. For as to destroy thy natural country, it is altogether unmeet and unlawful, so were it not just and less honourable to betray those that put their trust in thee. But my only demand consisteth, to make a goal delivery of all evils, which delivereth equal benefit and safety, both to the one and the other, but most honourable for the Volces. For it shall appear, that having victory in their hands, they have of special favour granted us singular graces, peace and amity, albeit themselves have no less part of both than we. Of which good, if so it came to pass, thyself is the only author, and so hast thou the only honour. But if it fail, and fall out contrary, thyself alone deservedly shalt carry the shameful reproach and burthen of either party. So, though the end of war be uncertain, yet this notwithstanding is most certain, that if it be thy chance to conquer, this benefit shalt thou reap of thy goodly conquest, to be chronicled the plague and destroyer of thy country. And if fortune overthrow thee, then the world will say, that through desire to revenge thy private injuries, thou hast for ever undone thy good friends, who did most lovingly and courteously receive thee.” Martius gave good ear unto his mother’s words, without interrupting her speech at all, and after she had said what she would, he held his peace a pretty while, and answered not a word. Hereupon she began again to speak unto him, and said: “My son, why dost thou not answer me? Dost thou think it good altogether to give place unto thy choler and desire of revenge, and thinkest thou it not honesty for thee to grant thy mother’s request in so weighty a cause? Dost thou take it honourable for a nobleman to remember the wrongs and injuries done him, and dost not in like case think it an honest nobleman’s part to be thankful for the goodness that parents do shew to their children, acknowledging the duty and reverence they ought to bear unto them? No man living is more bound to shew himself thankful in all parts and respects than thyself; who so universally shewest all ingratitude. Moreover, my son, thou hast sorely taken of thy country, exacting grievous payments upon them, in revenge of the injuries offered thee; besides, thou hast not hitherto shewed thy poor mother any courtesy. And therefore, it is not only honest but due unto me, that without compulsion I should obtain my so just and reasonable request of thee. But since by reason I cannot persuade thee to it, to what purpose do I defer my last hope.” And with these words, herself, his wife and children, fell down upon their knees before him: Martius seeing that, could refrain no longer, but went straight and lifted her up, crying out, “Oh mother, what have you done to me?” And holding her hard by the hand, “Oh mother,” said he, “you have won a happy victory for your country, but mortal and unhappy for your son: for I see myself vanquished by you alone.” These words being spoken openly, he spake a little apart with his mother and wife, and then let them return again to Rome, for so they did request him; and so remaining in the camp that night, the next morning he dislodged, and marched homeward unto the Volces’ country again.’
‘Now Martius was seated in the chair of state, adorned with all the honors of a general. When he noticed the women approaching from a distance, he wondered what was happening. But upon recognizing his wife, who was at the front, he initially resolved to maintain his stubborn and unyielding resentment. However, ultimately overcome by natural affection and entirely moved to see them, he couldn’t wait for them to reach his chair. Instead, he hurried down to meet them, first kissing his mother and embracing her for a while, then his wife and young children. His emotions overwhelmed him so much that tears streamed down his face, and he couldn’t help but express his affection for them, yielding to the love of his blood, as if he were being swept away by a rushing torrent. After embracing them tenderly and noticing that his mother Volumnia was about to speak, he called the council of the Volces to hear her words. Then she spoke: “If we were silent, my son, and chose not to speak, the state of our worn bodies and the sight of our clothing would easily reveal to you what kind of life we’ve led at home since your exile; but consider how much more unfortunate we are than all other women because the sight that should be most joyful for everyone else is, due to cruel fate, most terrifying for us: I, to see my son, and my daughter to see her husband, besieging the walls of his homeland. The very comfort that others seek in times of adversity, praying to the gods for help, is what puts us in the deepest distress, for we cannot, alas, pray both for victory for our country and for your safety. Instead, a mountain of painful curses—more than any enemy could heap upon us—are forced into our prayers. For your wife and children face the bitter dilemma of having to choose between two terrible options: losing you or losing their homeland. As for me, my son, I refuse to wait for fate to end this war during my lifetime. If I cannot persuade you to do good for both sides instead of destroying one, prioritizing love and family over the hatred and tragedies of war, you will see, my son, and trust this: the moment you attack your country, your foot will step on your mother’s womb that brought you into this world. And I cannot bear to see the day when either my son is led in triumph as a prisoner by his own countrymen or when he himself triumphs over them and his homeland. If my request aimed to save your country by destroying the Volces, I have to admit, that would be a hard decision for you. For it is entirely inappropriate and wrong to destroy your homeland, and it would be unjust and dishonorable to betray those who trust you. But all I ask is to find a way out of this predicament that brings equal safety and benefit to both sides, but most honorably for the Volces. It should be clear that, if they achieve victory, they will generously grant us peace and friendship, although they share equally in both. If that good fortune comes to pass, you alone will be its author, and thus, you will take all the honor. But if things go badly, you will bear the shame and burden for both sides. So, although war's outcome is uncertain, this is certain: if you conquer, the benefit you’ll reap from that glorious victory will be that you are labeled the plague and destroyer of your country. And if fortune turns against you, the world will say that in your desire for revenge against personal grievances, you have forever ruined your good friends who received you so lovingly and graciously.” Martius listened closely to his mother without interrupting her at all, and after she finished speaking, he remained silent for a while and didn’t respond. Then she began again, saying, “My son, why don’t you answer me? Do you think it’s wise to completely give in to your anger and thirst for revenge, and do you not find it honorable to grant your mother’s request in such a serious matter? Do you consider it noble for a gentleman to remember the wrongs done to him, yet do not see it as an honorable part of a gentleman to be grateful for the kindness his parents show him, acknowledging the duty and respect he owes them? No one is more obligated to show gratitude in every way than you; yet you show such ingratitude universally. Additionally, my son, you have harshly dealt with your homeland, imposing heavy burdens on them in revenge for the wrongs against you; moreover, you have not shown your poor mother any kindness. Therefore, it is not only honorable but also fair that I should obtain this just and reasonable request of you without coercion. But since reason cannot persuade you, what’s the point of delaying my last hope?” With those words, she, along with his wife and children, fell to their knees before him. Seeing that, Martius could hold back no longer and immediately went to lift her up, exclaiming, “Oh mother, what have you done to me?” Gripping her hand tightly, he said, “Oh mother, you have won a happy victory for your country, but a mortal and unhappy one for your son: for I see I am conquered by you alone.” After saying these words openly, he spoke briefly in private with his mother and wife, then allowed them to return to Rome, as they requested. Remaining in the camp that night, the next morning he left and marched back towards the land of the Volces again.’
221Shakespear has, in giving a dramatic form to this passage, adhered very closely and properly to the text. He did not think it necessary to improve upon the truth of nature. Several of the scenes in Julius Cæsar, particularly Portia’s appeal to the confidence of her husband by shewing him the wound she had given herself, and the appearance of the ghost of Cæsar to Brutus, are in like manner, taken from the history.
221Shakespeare, in transforming this passage into a dramatic form, stayed very true to the text. He didn't feel the need to enhance the reality of nature. Many scenes in Julius Caesar, especially Portia’s plea for her husband’s trust by revealing the wound she inflicted on herself, and the ghost of Caesar appearing to Brutus, are similarly drawn from history.
TROILUS AND CRESSIDA
This is one of the most loose and desultory of our author’s plays: it rambles on just as it happens, but it overtakes, together with some indifferent matter, a prodigious number of fine things in its way. Troilus himself is no character: he is merely a common lover: but Cressida and her uncle Pandarus are hit off with proverbial truth. By the speeches given to the leaders of the Grecian host, Nestor, Ulysses, Agamemnon, Achilles, Shakespear seems to have known them as well as if he had been a spy sent by the Trojans into the enemy’s camp—to say nothing of their affording very lofty examples of didactic eloquence. The following is a very stately and spirited declamation:
This is one of our author’s most meandering and aimless plays; it wanders as it pleases, but along the way, it captures a remarkable number of great moments alongside some less interesting content. Troilus isn’t really a character; he’s just a typical lover. However, Cressida and her uncle Pandarus are portrayed with a striking accuracy. Through the speeches of the Grecian leaders—Nestor, Ulysses, Agamemnon, Achilles—Shakespeare seems to understand them as if he were a spy sent by the Trojans into the enemy camp, not to mention that they provide impressive examples of persuasive speech. The following is a very grand and passionate statement:
It cannot be said of Shakespear, as was said of some one, that he was ‘without o’erflowing full.’ He was full, even to o’erflowing. He gave heaped measure, running over. This was his greatest fault. He was only in danger ‘of losing distinction in his thoughts’ (to borrow his own expression)
It can't be said of Shakespeare, like someone once said, that he was 'without overflowing full.' He was full, even to overflowing. He provided a heaped measure, overflowing. This was his biggest flaw. He was only at risk 'of losing distinction in his thoughts' (to borrow his own words).
There is another passage, the speech of Ulysses to Achilles, shewing him the thankless nature of popularity, which has a still greater depth of moral observation and richness of illustration than the former. It 223is long, but worth the quoting. The sometimes giving an entire argument from the unacted plays of our author may with one class of readers have almost the use of restoring a lost passage; and may serve to convince another class of critics, that the poet’s genius was not confined to the production of stage effect by preternatural means.—
There’s another passage, Ulysses' speech to Achilles, that shows him the ungrateful nature of popularity. It has even more depth of moral insight and richness of examples than the previous one. It’s long, but worth quoting. Sometimes sharing a complete argument from our author's unperformed plays can almost feel like bringing back a lost piece for one group of readers, and might help convince another group of critics that the poet’s talent wasn't just about creating stage effects through supernatural means. 223
The throng of images in the above lines is prodigious; and though they sometimes jostle against one another, they every where raise and 224carry on the feeling, which is intrinsically true and profound. The debates between the Trojan chiefs on the restoring of Helen are full of knowledge of human motives and character. Troilus enters well into the philosophy of war, when he says in answer to something that falls from Hector,
The crowd of images in the lines above is incredible; and although they sometimes clash with each other, they constantly convey a feeling that is genuinely true and deep. The discussions among the Trojan leaders about bringing back Helen are rich in understanding of human motivations and character. Troilus engages deeply with the philosophy of war when he responds to something Hector says,
The character of Hector, in a few slight indications which appear of it, is made very amiable. His death is sublime, and shews in a striking light the mixture of barbarity and heroism of the age. The threats of Achilles are fatal; they carry their own means of execution with them.
The character of Hector, through a few subtle hints that come across, is portrayed as very likable. His death is powerful and highlights the blend of brutality and bravery of the time. Achilles' threats are deadly; they come with their own means to carry them out.
He then finds Hector and slays him, as if he had been hunting down a wild beast. There is something revolting as well as terrific in the ferocious coolness with which he singles out his prey: nor does the splendour of the achievement reconcile us to the cruelty of the means.
He then finds Hector and kills him, like he was hunting a wild animal. There’s something both disgusting and terrifying in the ruthless calm with which he chooses his target: the glory of the accomplishment doesn’t make us feel any better about the brutality involved.
The characters of Cressida and Pandarus are very amusing and instructive. The disinterested willingness of Pandarus to serve his friend in an affair which lies next his heart is immediately brought forward. ‘Go thy way, Troilus, go thy way; had I a sister were a grace, or a daughter were a goddess, he should take his choice. O admirable man! Paris, Paris is dirt to him, and I warrant Helen, to change, would give money to boot.’ This is the language he addresses to his niece: nor is she much behindhand in coming into the plot. Her head is as light and fluttering as her heart. ‘It is the prettiest villain, she fetches her breath so short as a new-ta’en sparrow.’ Both characters are originals, and quite different from what they are in Chaucer. In Chaucer, Cressida is represented as a grave, sober, considerate personage (a widow—he cannot tell her age, nor whether she has children or no) who has an alternate eye to 225her character, her interest, and her pleasure: Shakespear’s Cressida is a giddy girl, an unpractised jilt, who falls in love with Troilus, as she afterwards deserts him, from mere levity and thoughtlessness of temper. She may be wooed and won to any thing and from any thing, at a moment’s warning; the other knows very well what she would be at, and sticks to it, and is more governed by substantial reasons than by caprice or vanity. Pandarus again, in Chaucer’s story, is a friendly sort of go-between, tolerably busy, officious, and forward in bringing matters to bear: but in Shakespear he has ‘a stamp exclusive and professional’: he wears the badge of his trade; he is a regular knight of the game. The difference of the manner in which the subject is treated arises perhaps less from intention, than from the different genius of the two poets. There is no double entendre in the characters of Chaucer: they are either quite serious or quite comic. In Shakespear the ludicrous and ironical are constantly blended with the stately and the impassioned. We see Chaucer’s characters as they saw themselves, not as they appeared to others or might have appeared to the poet. He is as deeply implicated in the affairs of his personages as they could be themselves. He had to go a long journey with each of them, and became a kind of necessary confidant. There is little relief, or light and shade in his pictures. The conscious smile is not seen lurking under the brow of grief or impatience. Every thing with him is intense and continuous—a working out of what went before.—Shakespear never committed himself to his characters. He trifled, laughed, or wept with them as he chose. He has no prejudices for or against them; and it seems a matter of perfect indifference whether he shall be in jest or earnest. According to him ‘the web of our lives is of a mingled yarn, good and ill together.’ His genius was dramatic, as Chaucer’s was historical. He saw both sides of a question, the different views taken of it according to the different interests of the parties concerned, and he was at once an actor and spectator in the scene. If any thing, he is too various and flexible: too full of transitions, of glancing lights, of salient points. If Chaucer followed up his subject too doggedly, perhaps Shakespear was too volatile and heedless. The Muse’s wing too often lifted him from off his feet. He made infinite excursions to the right and the left.
The characters of Cressida and Pandarus are very entertaining and insightful. Pandarus’s selfless eagerness to help his friend in a matter that's close to his heart is immediately evident. “Go on, Troilus, go on; if I had a sister who was graceful, or a daughter who was a goddess, he could choose either. Oh, what a remarkable man! Paris is nothing compared to him, and I bet Helen would pay to change.” This is what he says to his niece, who is quick to join in on the scheme. Her mind is as light and fluttery as her heart. “He’s the prettiest villain; she catches her breath as short as a newly caught sparrow.” Both characters are unique, and quite different from how they are portrayed in Chaucer. In Chaucer, Cressida is depicted as a serious, composed, and thoughtful person (a widow—he doesn’t mention her age or whether she has children) who is mindful of her reputation, interests, and pleasures: Shakespeare’s Cressida is a flighty girl, an inexperienced flirt, who falls in love with Troilus and later abandons him out of sheer silliness and impulsiveness. She can be wooed and won at a moment’s notice; the other knows exactly what she wants and sticks to it, guided more by solid reasons than by whims or vanity. Pandarus, in Chaucer’s story, is a friendly go-between, somewhat busy, meddling, and eager to push things along; but in Shakespeare, he has “a unique and professional stamp”: he shows the signs of his profession; he is a true knight of the game. The difference in how the theme is handled likely stems less from intention and more from each poet’s unique style. Chaucer’s characters have no double meanings: they are either completely serious or completely funny. In Shakespeare, the ridiculous and ironic are consistently woven with the formal and passionate. We experience Chaucer’s characters as they see themselves, not as others saw them or how the poet might have viewed them. He gets deeply involved in their affairs like they do themselves. He had to take a long journey with each of them and became a sort of necessary confidant. His images lack relief or shades of light and dark. The knowing smile is not seen hiding under a brow of grief or impatience. Everything is intense and continuous—building on what came before. Shakespeare, on the other hand, never fully invested himself in his characters. He played, laughed, or cried with them as he chose. He harbors no biases for or against them; it seems entirely indifferent whether he’s joking or serious. For him, “the web of our lives is of a mixed yarn, good and bad together.” His genius was dramatic, while Chaucer’s was historical. He saw both sides of a question, the different perspectives based on the varying interests of the involved parties, and he was both a participant and an observer in the scene. If anything, he is too varied and adaptable: too full of shifts, fleeting lights, and striking points. While Chaucer may have pursued his subject too rigidly, perhaps Shakespeare was too volatile and careless. The Muse’s wing often lifted him right off his feet. He wandered endlessly to the right and the left.
226Chaucer attended chiefly to the real and natural, that is, to the involuntary and inevitable impressions on the mind in given circumstances; Shakespear exhibited also the possible and the fantastical,—not only what things are in themselves, but whatever they might seem to be, their different reflections, their endless combinations. He lent his fancy, wit, invention, to others, and borrowed their feelings in return. Chaucer excelled in the force of habitual sentiment; Shakespear added to it every variety of passion, every suggestion of thought or accident. Chaucer described external objects with the eye of a painter, or he might be said to have embodied them with the hand of a sculptor, every part is so thoroughly made out, and tangible:—Shakespear’s imagination threw over them a lustre
226Chaucer focused mainly on the real and natural, meaning the involuntary and unavoidable impressions on the mind in given situations; Shakespeare explored both the possible and the fantastical—not just what things are, but also how they might appear, their different interpretations, and their endless variations. He infused his creativity, wit, and inventiveness into others’ experiences while absorbing their emotions in return. Chaucer was strong in conveying habitual feelings; Shakespeare enhanced this with a wide range of passions and thoughts. Chaucer depicted external objects like a painter or sculpted them with the precision of a sculptor: every detail is crafted and solid. Shakespeare’s imagination added a shine to them.
Every thing in Chaucer has a downright reality. A simile or a sentiment is as if it were given in upon evidence. In Shakespear the commonest matter-of-fact has a romantic grace about it; or seems to float with the breath of imagination in a freer element. No one could have more depth of feeling or observation than Chaucer, but he wanted resources of invention to lay open the stores of nature or the human heart with the same radiant light that Shakespear has done. However fine or profound the thought, we know what is coming, whereas the effect of reading Shakespear is ‘like the eye of vassalage at unawares encountering majesty.’ Chaucer’s mind was consecutive, rather than discursive. He arrived at truth through a certain process; Shakespear saw every thing by intuition. Chaucer had a great variety of power, but he could do only one thing at once. He set himself to work on a particular subject. His ideas were kept separate, labelled, ticketed and parcelled out in a set form, in pews and compartments by themselves. They did not play into one another’s hands. They did not re-act upon one another, as the blower’s breath moulds the yielding glass. There is something hard and dry in them. What is the most wonderful thing in Shakespear’s faculties is their excessive sociability, and how they gossiped and compared notes together.
Everything in Chaucer has a straightforward reality. A simile or sentiment feels like it’s based on solid evidence. In Shakespeare, the most mundane facts carry a romantic grace; they seem to float within a more imaginative realm. No one had more depth of feeling or observation than Chaucer, but he lacked the imaginative resources to reveal the depths of nature or the human heart with the same brilliant light that Shakespeare did. No matter how fine or profound the thought, we know what to expect, while reading Shakespeare feels like "the eye of vassalage unexpectedly encountering majesty." Chaucer’s thinking was sequential rather than sprawling. He arrived at truth through a specific process; Shakespeare saw everything through intuition. Chaucer had a great variety of talent, but he could only focus on one thing at a time. He dedicated himself to a particular topic. His ideas were kept separate, labeled, organized, and stored like items in separate compartments. They didn’t interact with each other. They didn't influence one another, like the breath of a blower shaping pliable glass. There’s something rigid and dry about them. The most amazing aspect of Shakespeare's abilities is their incredible sociability, how they mingled and exchanged ideas with one another.
We must conclude this criticism; and we will do it with a quotation or two. One of the most beautiful passages in Chaucer’s tale is the description of Cresseide’s first avowal of her love.
We need to wrap up this criticism, and we'll do so with a quote or two. One of the most beautiful parts of Chaucer’s tale is the description of Cresseide’s first declaration of her love.
See also the two next stanzas, and particularly that divine one beginning—
See also the next two stanzas, especially that amazing one starting—
Compare this with the following speech of Troilus to Cressida in the play:—
Compare this with the following speech from Troilus to Cressida in the play:—
These passages may not seem very characteristic at first sight, though we think they are so. We will give two, that cannot be mistaken. Patroclus says to Achilles,
These passages might not seem very typical at first glance, but we believe they are. We will provide two that are unmistakable. Patroclus says to Achilles,
Troilus, addressing the God of Day on the approach of the morning that parts him from Cressida, says with much scorn,
Troilus, speaking to the God of Day as morning arrives and separates him from Cressida, says with a lot of disdain,
If nobody but Shakespear could have written the former, nobody but Chaucer would have thought of the latter.—Chaucer was the most literal of poets, as Richardson was of prose-writers.
If no one but Shakespeare could have written the first, then no one but Chaucer would have thought of the second. —Chaucer was the most straightforward of poets, just as Richardson was of prose writers.
ANTONY AND CLEOPATRA
This is a very noble play. Though not in the first class of Shakespear’s productions, it stands next to them, and is, we think, the finest of his historical plays, that is, of those in which he made poetry the organ of history, and assumed a certain tone of character and sentiment, in conformity to known facts, instead of trusting to his observations of general nature or to the unlimited indulgence of his own fancy. What he has added to the actual story, is upon a par with it. His genius was, as it were, a match for history as well as nature, and could grapple at will with either. The play is full of that pervading comprehensive power by which the poet could always make himself master of time and circumstances. It presents a fine picture of Roman pride and Eastern magnificence: and in the struggle between the two, the empire of the world seems suspended, ‘like the swan’s down-feather,
This is a very noble play. Although it isn't in the absolute top tier of Shakespeare’s works, it comes close and is, in our opinion, the best of his historical plays. In these plays, he crafted poetry to serve history, adopting a tone that aligns with known facts rather than relying solely on his observations of human nature or his boundless imagination. What he added to the actual story is on par with it. His genius was capable of engaging with both history and nature, and he could tackle either at will. The play is filled with that all-encompassing power that allows the poet to command time and circumstances effortlessly. It paints a vivid picture of Roman pride and Eastern splendor, and in their clash, the fate of the world seems to hang in the balance, ‘like the swan’s down-feather.
The characters breathe, move, and live. Shakespear does not stand reasoning on what his characters would do or say, but at once becomes them, and speaks and acts for them. He does not present us with groups of stage-puppets or poetical machines making set speeches on human life, and acting from a calculation of problematical motives, but he brings living men and women on the scene, who speak and act from real feelings, according to the ebbs and flows of passion, without the least tincture of pedantry of logic or rhetoric. Nothing is made out by inference and analogy, by climax and antithesis, but every thing takes place just as it would have done in reality, according to the occasion.—The character of Cleopatra is a master-piece. What an extreme contrast it affords to Imogen! One would think it almost impossible for the same person to have drawn both. She is voluptuous, ostentatious, conscious, boastful of her charms, haughty, tyrannical, fickle. The luxurious pomp and gorgeous extravagance of the Egyptian queen are displayed in all their force and lustre, as well as the irregular grandeur of the soul of Mark Antony. Take only the first four lines that they speak as an example of the regal style of love-making.
The characters breathe, move, and live. Shakespeare doesn’t just think about what his characters would do or say; he instantly becomes them and acts and speaks for them. He doesn't give us groups of stage puppets or poetic machines delivering prepared speeches about human life and calculating questionable motives. Instead, he brings real men and women onto the stage, who speak and act from genuine feelings, responding to the ups and downs of passion, without any hint of pedantry, logic, or rhetoric. Nothing is inferred or drawn analogies from—everything happens just as it would in real life, fitting the situation. The character of Cleopatra is a masterpiece. What a stark contrast she is to Imogen! One might think it’s almost impossible for the same person to have created both. She is sensual, flashy, self-aware, and proud of her beauty, arrogant, demanding, and unreliable. The luxurious grandeur and lavish extravagance of the Egyptian queen shine brightly, as does the irregular nobility of Mark Antony’s spirit. Just look at the first four lines they speak as an example of their royal style of romance.
229The rich and poetical description of her person beginning—
229The vivid and poetic description of her appearance starting—
seems to prepare the way for, and almost to justify the subsequent infatuation of Antony when in the sea-fight at Actium, he leaves the battle, and ‘like a doating mallard’ follows her flying sails.
seems to set the stage for, and almost to justify, Antony's later obsession when, during the naval battle at Actium, he abandons the fight and ‘like a lovesick duck’ chases after her sailing ship.
Few things in Shakespear (and we know of nothing in any other author like them) have more of that local truth of imagination and character than the passage in which Cleopatra is represented conjecturing what were the employments of Antony in his absence—‘He’s speaking now, or murmuring—Where’s my serpent of old Nile?’ Or again, when she says to Antony, after the defeat at Actium, and his summoning up resolution to risk another fight—‘It is my birthday; I had thought to have held it poor; but since my lord is Antony again, I will be Cleopatra.’ Perhaps the finest burst of all is Antony’s rage after his final defeat when he comes in, and surprises the messenger of Cæsar kissing her hand—
Few things in Shakespeare (and we know of nothing in any other author like them) convey local truth in imagination and character more than the scene where Cleopatra imagines what Antony is doing during his absence—‘He’s speaking now, or murmuring—Where’s my serpent of old Nile?’ Or again, when she tells Antony, after the defeat at Actium and his attempt to gather the courage for another fight—‘It’s my birthday; I had thought it would be a sad one; but since my lord is Antony again, I will be Cleopatra.’ Perhaps the most powerful moment is Antony’s anger after his final defeat when he enters and catches the messenger from Caesar kissing her hand—
It is no wonder that he orders him to be whipped; but his low condition is not the true reason: there is another feeling which lies deeper, though Antony’s pride would not let him shew it, except by his rage; he suspects the fellow to be Cæsar’s proxy.
It’s not surprising that he tells him to get whipped; but his low status isn’t the real reason: there’s a deeper feeling, though Antony’s pride won’t let him show it, except through his anger; he suspects the guy may be Cæsar’s stand-in.
Cleopatra’s whole character is the triumph of the voluptuous, of the love of pleasure and the power of giving it, over every other consideration. Octavia is a dull foil to her, and Fulvia a shrew and shrill-tongued. What a picture do those lines give of her—
Cleopatra's entire persona embodies the victory of sensuality, the pursuit of pleasure, and the ability to offer it, overshadowing all other concerns. Octavia serves as a dull contrast to her, while Fulvia comes off as a nagging and loud figure. Those lines paint a vivid picture of her—
What a spirit and fire in her conversation with Antony’s messenger who brings her the unwelcome news of his marriage with Octavia! How all the pride of beauty and of high rank breaks out in her promised reward to him—
What energy and passion she shows in her conversation with Antony’s messenger who brings her the disappointing news of his marriage to Octavia! How all the pride of her beauty and high status comes through in the reward she promises him—
230She had great and unpardonable faults, but the grandeur of her death almost redeems them. She learns from the depth of despair the strength of her affections. She keeps her queen-like state in the last disgrace, and her sense of the pleasurable in the last moments of her life. She tastes a luxury in death. After applying the asp, she says with fondness—
230She had serious and unforgivable flaws, but the magnificence of her death nearly makes up for them. She realizes, through her deep despair, the strength of her feelings. She maintains her regal dignity even in her final disgrace, and she finds enjoyment in the last moments of her life. She experiences a kind of indulgence in death. After using the asp, she says fondly—
It is worth while to observe that Shakespear has contrasted the extreme magnificence of the descriptions in this play with pictures of extreme suffering and physical horror, not less striking—partly perhaps to place the effeminate character of Mark Antony in a more favourable light, and at the same time to preserve a certain balance of feeling in the mind. Cæsar says, hearing of his rival’s conduct at the court of Cleopatra,
It’s interesting to note that Shakespeare contrasts the grand descriptions in this play with vivid images of extreme suffering and physical horror, which are just as striking—perhaps partly to present Mark Antony's less masculine character in a more favorable way, while also maintaining a balance of emotions in the audience's mind. Caesar comments upon hearing about his rival's behavior at Cleopatra's court,
The passage after Antony’s defeat by Augustus, where he is made to say—
The passage after Antony's defeat by Augustus, where he is made to say—
is one of those fine retrospections which show us the winding and eventful march of human life. The jealous attention which has been 231paid to the unities both of time and place has taken away the principle of perspective in the drama, and all the interest which objects derive from distance, from contrast, from privation, from change of fortune, from long-cherished passion; and contrasts our view of life from a strange and romantic dream, long, obscure, and infinite, into a smartly contested, three hours’ inaugural disputation on its merits by the different candidates for theatrical applause.
is one of those insightful reflections that reveal the winding and eventful journey of human life. The obsessive focus on maintaining the unities of time and place has stripped away the element of perspective in drama, along with all the interest that comes from distance, contrast, loss, changes in fortune, and deeply held passions. It transforms our view of life from a strange and romantic dream—long, obscure, and infinite—into a sharply contested, three-hour debate about its merits, held by various contenders for theatrical acclaim.
The latter scenes of Antony and Cleopatra are full of the changes of accident and passion. Success and defeat follow one another with startling rapidity. Fortune sits upon her wheel more blind and giddy than usual. This precarious state and the approaching dissolution of his greatness are strikingly displayed in the dialogue of Antony with Eros.
The latter scenes of Antony and Cleopatra are packed with sudden twists of fate and strong emotions. Success and failure come one after the other at a shocking pace. Fortune is more blind and dizzy than ever on her wheel. This unstable situation and the looming collapse of his power are vividly shown in Antony's conversation with Eros.
This is, without doubt, one of the finest pieces of poetry in Shakespear. The splendour of the imagery, the semblance of reality, the lofty range of picturesque objects hanging over the world, their evanescent nature, the total uncertainty of what is left behind, are just like the mouldering schemes of human greatness. It is finer than Cleopatra’s passionate lamentation over his fallen grandeur, because it is more dim, unstable, unsubstantial. Antony’s headstrong presumption and infatuated determination to yield to Cleopatra’s wishes to fight by sea instead of land, meet a merited punishment; and the extravagance of his resolutions, increasing with the desperateness of his circumstances, is well commented upon by Œnobarbus.
This is definitely one of the best pieces of poetry in Shakespeare. The richness of the imagery, the sense of reality, the impressive range of beautiful objects hovering over the world, their fleeting nature, and the complete uncertainty of what remains behind are just like the decaying plans of human greatness. It’s more powerful than Cleopatra’s heartfelt mourning over his lost splendor because it’s more obscure, unstable, and insubstantial. Antony’s reckless arrogance and foolish determination to give in to Cleopatra’s wishes to fight by sea instead of land receive a deserved punishment; and the extravagance of his decisions, which grows with the desperation of his situation, is well noted by Œnobarbus.
232The repentance of Œnobarbus after his treachery to his master is the most affecting part of the play. He cannot recover from the blow which Antony’s generosity gives him, and he dies broken-hearted, ‘a master-leaver and a fugitive.’
232The regret of Œnobarbus after betraying his master is the most emotional part of the play. He can't get over the hurt that Antony's kindness causes him, and he dies heartbroken, "a master-leaver and a fugitive."
Shakespear’s genius has spread over the whole play a richness like the overflowing of the Nile.
Shakespeare's genius fills the entire play with a richness similar to the overflow of the Nile.
HAMLET
This is that Hamlet the Dane, whom we read of in our youth, and whom we may be said almost to remember in our after-years; he who made that famous soliloquy on life, who gave the advice to the players, who thought ‘this goodly frame, the earth, a steril promontory, and this brave o’er-hanging firmament, the air, this majestical roof fretted with golden fire, a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours’; whom ‘man delighted not, nor woman neither’; he who talked with the grave-diggers, and moralised on Yorick’s skull; the school-fellow of Rosencraus and Guildenstern at Wittenberg; the friend of Horatio; the lover of Ophelia; he that was mad and sent to England; the slow avenger of his father’s death; who lived at the court of Horwendillus five hundred years before we were born, but all whose thoughts we seem to know as well as we do our own, because we have read them in Shakespear.
This is Hamlet the Dane, the character we've read about in our youth and may almost remember in our later years; he who delivered that famous soliloquy about life, who offered advice to the actors, who considered this beautiful world, the earth, a barren promontory, and this grand overhanging sky, the air, this magnificent roof sprinkled with golden fire, a disgusting and pestilent gathering of vapors; to whom ‘man found no delight, nor woman either’; he who conversed with the grave-diggers and reflected on Yorick’s skull; the schoolmate of Rosencrantz and Guildenstern at Wittenberg; the friend of Horatio; the lover of Ophelia; the one who was mad and sent to England; the slow avenger of his father’s death; who lived at Horwendillus's court five hundred years before we were born, yet whose thoughts we seem to understand as well as we do our own because we have read them in Shakespeare.
Hamlet is a name; his speeches and sayings but the idle coinage of the poet’s brain. What then, are they not real? They are as real as our own thoughts. Their reality is in the reader’s mind. It is we who are Hamlet. This play has a prophetic truth, which is above that of history. Whoever has become thoughtful and melancholy through his own mishaps or those of others; whoever has borne about with him the clouded brow of reflection, and thought himself ‘too much i’ th’ sun’; whoever has seen the golden lamp of day dimmed by envious mists rising in his own breast, and could find in the world before him only a dull blank with nothing left remarkable in it; whoever has known ‘the pangs of despised love, the insolence of office, or the spurns which patient merit of the unworthy takes’; he who has felt his mind sink within him, and sadness cling to his heart like a malady, who has had his hopes blighted and his youth staggered by the apparitions of strange things; who cannot be well at ease, while he sees evil hovering near him like a spectre; whose powers of action have been eaten up by thought, he to whom the universe seems infinite, and himself nothing; whose bitterness of soul makes him careless of consequences, and who goes to 233a play as his best resource to shove off, to a second remove, the evils of life by a mock representation of them—this is the true Hamlet.
Hamlet is a name; his speeches and sayings are just the empty creations of the poet’s imagination. So, are they not real? They are as real as our own thoughts. Their reality exists in the reader’s mind. It’s we who are Hamlet. This play holds a deeper truth that goes beyond history. Anyone who has become thoughtful and melancholic through their own experiences or those of others; anyone who carries the heavy burden of reflection, and thinks of themselves as ‘too much i’ th’ sun’; anyone who has watched the bright light of day clouded by jealous shadows rising within themselves, and can only see a dull blank world with nothing meaningful left in it; anyone who has known ‘the pain of unrequited love, the arrogance of power, or the rejections that deserving individuals endure’; anyone who has felt their mind sinking and sadness clinging to their heart like a disease, who has had their hopes crushed and their youth shaken by strange visions; anyone who cannot relax while they see evil lurking nearby like a ghost; anyone whose capacity for action has been consumed by overthinking, who feels that the universe is endless while they are insignificant; whose bitterness makes them disregard the consequences, and who turns to a play as their best way to escape and momentarily distance themselves from the hardships of life through its fictional portrayal—this is the true Hamlet.
We have been so used to this tragedy that we hardly know how to criticise it any more than we should know how to describe our own faces. But we must make such observations as we can. It is the one of Shakespear’s plays that we think of the oftenest, because it abounds most in striking reflections on human life, and because the distresses of Hamlet are transferred, by the turn of his mind, to the general account of humanity. Whatever happens to him we apply to ourselves, because he applies it so himself as a means of general reasoning. He is a great moraliser; and what makes him worth attending to is, that he moralises on his own feelings and experience. He is not a common-place pedant. If Lear is distinguished by the greatest depth of passion, Hamlet is the most remarkable for the ingenuity, originality, and unstudied developement of character. Shakespear had more magnanimity than any other poet, and he has shewn more of it in this play than in any other. There is no attempt to force an interest: every thing is left for time and circumstances to unfold. The attention is excited without effort, the incidents succeed each other as matters of course, the characters think and speak and act just as they might do, if left entirely to themselves. There is no set purpose, no straining at a point. The observations are suggested by the passing scene—the gusts of passion come and go like sounds of music borne on the wind. The whole play is an exact transcript of what might be supposed to have taken place at the court of Denmark, at the remote period of time fixed upon, before the modern refinements in morals and manners were heard of. It would have been interesting enough to have been admitted as a by-stander in such a scene, at such a time, to have heard and witnessed something of what was going on. But here we are more than spectators. We have not only ‘the outward pageants and the signs of grief’; but ‘we have that within which passes shew.’ We read the thoughts of the heart, we catch the passions living as they rise. Other dramatic writers give us very fine versions and paraphrases of nature; but Shakespear, together with his own comments, gives us the original text, that we may judge for ourselves. This is a very great advantage.
We've gotten so used to this tragedy that we barely know how to critique it, just as we might struggle to describe our own faces. But we need to make whatever observations we can. It's one of Shakespeare's plays that we think about the most, because it’s full of powerful reflections on human life, and Hamlet's struggles are, through his perspective, connected to the broader human experience. Whatever happens to him feels applicable to us because he uses it to reason about life in general. He’s a profound moral thinker, and what makes him worth listening to is that he reflects on his own feelings and experiences. He isn’t just a dull academic. While Lear is marked by intense emotion, Hamlet stands out for its cleverness, originality, and natural character development. Shakespeare had more generosity than any other poet, and he shows more of it in this play than in others. There’s no attempt to force an interest; everything unfolds naturally over time and circumstances. The attention is captured effortlessly, events follow one after another as if they’re a natural progression, and the characters think, speak, and act as they would if they were entirely free. There’s no predetermined objective, no straining for a particular point. The insights arise from the unfolding scene—the waves of emotion come and go like music carried by the wind. The entire play is a precise representation of what might have happened at the court of Denmark in that distant time, before modern morals and manners were considered. It would have been fascinating to be a bystander in such a setting, witnessing what was happening. But here, we’re more than just spectators. We experience not only “the outward pageants and the signs of grief,” but also “that within which passes show.” We understand the heart’s thoughts, we capture emotions as they arise. Other playwrights provide fine interpretations and paraphrases of nature, but Shakespeare offers us the original text along with his own commentary, allowing us to form our own judgments. This is a significant advantage.
The character of Hamlet stands quite by itself. It is not a character marked by strength of will or even of passion, but by refinement of thought and sentiment. Hamlet is as little of the hero as a man can well be: but he is a young and princely novice, full of high enthusiasm and quick sensibility—the sport of circumstances, questioning with fortune and refining on his own feelings, and forced 234from the natural bias of his disposition by the strangeness of his situation. He seems incapable of deliberate action, and is only hurried into extremities on the spur of the occasion, when he has no time to reflect, as in the scene where he kills Polonius, and again, where he alters the letters which Rosencraus and Guildenstern are taking with them to England, purporting his death. At other times, when he is most bound to act, he remains puzzled, undecided, and sceptical, dallies with his purposes, till the occasion is lost, and finds out some pretence to relapse into indolence and thoughtfulness again. For this reason he refuses to kill the King when he is at his prayers, and by a refinement in malice, which is in truth only an excuse for his own want of resolution, defers his revenge to a more fatal opportunity, when he shall be engaged in some act ‘that has no relish of salvation in it.’
The character of Hamlet stands alone. He isn’t defined by strength of will or passion, but by deep thought and feeling. Hamlet is as far from a hero as anyone can get: yet he is a young prince, full of high ideals and sensitive emotions—caught up in circumstances, questioning fate and reflecting on his own feelings, pushed away from his natural instincts by the peculiarity of his situation. He seems unable to take deliberate action, only being driven to extremes in the heat of the moment, when he doesn’t have time to think, as seen in the scene where he kills Polonius, and again when he changes the letters that Rosencrantz and Guildenstern are taking to England, which would signal his death. At other times, when he should be acting, he remains confused, indecisive, and skeptical, delaying his intentions until the chance is gone, and finding excuses to slip back into laziness and contemplation. This is why he refuses to kill the King while he is praying, and with a twisted sense of malice, which is really just an excuse for his own lack of resolve, he postpones his revenge for a more consequential moment, when the King is engaged in an act ‘that has no taste of salvation in it.’
He is the prince of philosophical speculators; and because he cannot have his revenge perfect, according to the most refined idea his wish can form, he declines it altogether. So he scruples to trust the suggestions of the ghost, contrives the scene of the play to have surer proof of his uncle’s guilt, and then rests satisfied with this confirmation of his suspicions, and the success of his experiment, instead of acting upon it. Yet he is sensible of his own weakness, taxes himself with it, and tries to reason himself out of it.
He is the prince of philosophical thinkers; and because he can't achieve his revenge perfectly, based on the most refined idea he can come up with, he decides to forgo it entirely. So he hesitates to trust the ghost’s suggestions, sets up the play to get more solid evidence of his uncle’s guilt, and then feels satisfied with this confirmation of his suspicions and the outcome of his plan, instead of taking action on it. Yet he is aware of his own weakness, criticizes himself for it, and tries to talk himself out of it.
Still he does nothing; and this very speculation on his own infirmity only affords him another occasion for indulging it. It is not from any want of attachment to his father or of abhorrence of his murder that Hamlet is thus dilatory, but it is more to his taste to indulge his imagination in reflecting upon the enormity of the crime and refining on his schemes of vengeance, than to put them into immediate practice. His ruling passion is to think, not to act: and any vague pretext that flatters this propensity instantly diverts him from his previous purposes.
Still, he does nothing; and this very reflection on his own weakness only gives him another chance to indulge it. It’s not because he lacks attachment to his father or feels hatred for his murder that Hamlet is so slow to act, but rather because he prefers to indulge his imagination by contemplating the enormity of the crime and perfecting his plans for revenge, rather than putting them into action right away. His main desire is to think, not to act: and any vague excuse that flatters this tendency quickly distracts him from his earlier intentions.
The moral perfection of this character has been called in question, we think, by those who did not understand it. It is more interesting than according to rules; amiable, though not faultless. The ethical delineations of ‘that noble and liberal casuist’ (as Shakespear has been well called) do not exhibit the drab-coloured Quakerism of morality. His plays are not copied either from The Whole Duty of Man, or from The Academy of Compliments! We confess we are a little shocked at the want of refinement in those who are shocked at the want of refinement in Hamlet. The neglect of punctilious exactness in his behaviour either partakes of the ‘licence of the time,’ or else belongs to the very excess of intellectual refinement in the character, which makes the common rules of life, as well as his own purposes, sit loose upon him. He may be said to be amenable only to the tribunal of his own thoughts, and is too much 236taken up with the airy world of contemplation to lay as much stress as he ought on the practical consequences of things. His habitual principles of action are unhinged and out of joint with the time. His conduct to Ophelia is quite natural in his circumstances. It is that of assumed severity only. It is the effect of disappointed hope, of bitter regrets, of affection suspended, not obliterated, by the distractions of the scene around him! Amidst the natural and preternatural horrors of his situation, he might be excused in delicacy from carrying on a regular courtship. When ‘his father’s spirit was in arms,’ it was not a time for the son to make love in. He could neither marry Ophelia, nor wound her mind by explaining the cause of his alienation, which he durst hardly trust himself to think of. It would have taken him years to have come to a direct explanation on the point. In the harassed state of his mind, he could not have done much otherwise than he did. His conduct does not contradict what he says when he sees her funeral,
The moral perfection of this character has been questioned, we believe, by those who didn’t fully grasp it. It’s more fascinating than just following the rules; charming, though not perfect. The ethical portrayals of ‘that noble and liberal thinker’ (as Shakespeare has been aptly called) don’t show the dull, rigid morality of the Quakers. His plays aren’t copied from The Whole Duty of Man or The Academy of Compliments! We admit we’re a bit shocked by the lack of refinement in those who are shocked by Hamlet’s lack of refinement. The disregard for strict decorum in his behavior either reflects the ‘freedom of the time’ or comes from an overwhelming amount of intellectual sophistication that makes the usual rules of life and his own intentions feel loose around him. He can be said to answer only to the judgment of his own thoughts and is too absorbed in the airy world of contemplation to pay enough attention to the practical outcomes of things. His fundamental principles of action are out of sync with the era. His treatment of Ophelia is completely natural given his situation. It’s merely an act of assumed harshness. It springs from lost hope, deep regrets, and affection that is paused, not erased, by the chaos surrounding him! Amidst the natural and supernatural horrors he faces, he could be excused for not engaging in a conventional courtship. When ‘his father’s spirit was in turmoil,’ it wasn’t a time for him to pursue romance. He couldn’t marry Ophelia, nor could he hurt her by explaining why he was distant, a topic he dared hardly think about. It would have taken him years to come to a direct explanation on that matter. Given his troubled state of mind, he couldn’t have acted much differently than he did. His behavior doesn’t contradict what he expresses when he sees her funeral,
Nothing can be more affecting or beautiful than the Queen’s apostrophe to Ophelia on throwing the flowers into the grave.
Nothing can be more touching or beautiful than the Queen’s tribute to Ophelia as she tosses the flowers into the grave.
Shakespear was thoroughly a master of the mixed motives of human character, and he here shews us the Queen, who was so criminal in some respects, not without sensibility and affection in other relations of life.—Ophelia is a character almost too exquisitely touching to be dwelt upon. Oh rose of May, oh flower too soon faded! Her love, her madness, her death, are described with the truest touches of tenderness and pathos. It is a character which nobody but Shakespear could have drawn in the way that he has done, and to the conception of which there is not even the smallest approach, except in some of the old romantic ballads.[67] Her brother, 237Laertes, is a character we do not like so well: he is too hot and choleric, and somewhat rhodomontade. Polonius is a perfect character in its kind; nor is there any foundation for the objections which have been made to the consistency of this part. It is said that he acts very foolishly and talks very sensibly. There is no inconsistency in that. Again, that he talks wisely at one time and foolishly at another; that his advice to Laertes is very excellent, and his advice to the King and Queen on the subject of Hamlet’s madness very ridiculous. But he gives the one as a father, and is sincere in it; he gives the other as a mere courtier, a busy-body, and is accordingly officious, garrulous, and impertinent. In short, Shakespear has been accused of inconsistency in this and other characters, only because he has kept up the distinction which there is in nature, between the understandings and the moral habits of men, between the absurdity of their ideas and the absurdity of their motives. Polonius is not a fool, but he makes himself so. His folly, whether in his actions or speeches, comes under the head of impropriety of intention.
Shakespeare was truly a master of the complex motivations of human character, and he shows us the Queen here, who is so guilty in some ways, but not without sensitivity and love in other aspects of life. Ophelia is a character that is almost too heartbreakingly poignant to discuss. Oh, rose of May, oh flower that faded too soon! Her love, her madness, her death are depicted with the most genuine touches of tenderness and emotion. It’s a character that only Shakespeare could portray in this way, and there’s hardly any similar character, except in some old romantic ballads.[67] Her brother, 237Laertes, is a character we find less appealing: he’s too hot-headed and a bit boastful. Polonius is a flawless character for his type; there’s no basis for the criticism about the consistency of his role. People say he acts very foolishly but speaks very sensibly. There’s no contradiction in that. It’s also said that he speaks wisely sometimes and foolishly at others; that his advice to Laertes is excellent while his advice to the King and Queen about Hamlet’s madness is quite ridiculous. But he offers the first as a father and is sincere about it; he gives the latter as a mere courtier, a meddler, and is thus overly eager, chatty, and intrusive. In short, Shakespeare has been accused of inconsistency in this and other characters simply because he has maintained the distinction that exists in real life, between people’s intellects and their moral behaviors, between the absurdities of their thoughts and the absurdities of their intentions. Polonius isn’t a fool, but he makes himself one. His foolishness, whether in his actions or words, falls into the category of improper intentions.
We do not like to see our author’s plays acted, and least of all, Hamlet. There is no play that suffers so much in being transferred to the stage. Hamlet himself seems hardly capable of being acted. Mr. Kemble unavoidably fails in this character from a want of ease and variety. The character of Hamlet is made up of undulating lines; it has the yielding flexibility of ‘a wave o’ th’ sea.’ Mr. Kemble plays it like a man in armour, with a determined inveteracy of purpose, in one undeviating straight line, which is as remote from the natural grace and refined susceptibility of the character, as the sharp angles and abrupt starts which Mr. Kean introduces into the part. Mr. Kean’s Hamlet is as much too splenetic and rash as Mr. Kemble’s is too deliberate and formal. His manner is too strong and pointed. He throws a severity, approaching to virulence, into the common observations and answers. There is nothing of this in Hamlet. He is, as it were, wrapped up in his reflections, and only thinks aloud. There should therefore be no attempt to impress what he says upon others by a studied exaggeration of emphasis or manner; no talking at his hearers. There should be as much of the gentleman and scholar as possible infused into the part, and as little of the actor. A pensive air of sadness should sit reluctantly upon his brow, but no appearance of fixed and sullen gloom. He is full of weakness and melancholy, but there is no harshness in his nature. He is the most amiable of misanthropes.
We really don't like seeing our author's plays performed, especially not Hamlet. There's no play that loses so much when it's brought to the stage. Hamlet himself seems almost impossible to portray. Mr. Kemble inevitably struggles with this role due to a lack of ease and variety. Hamlet’s character has a flowing, shifting quality; it’s as flexible as a 'wave on the sea.' Mr. Kemble plays it like a man in armor, with a rigid determination, moving in one unchanging line, which is far from the natural grace and subtle sensitivity of the character, just as the sharp angles and sudden shifts Mr. Kean brings to the role are equally misplaced. Mr. Kean’s Hamlet is too moody and impulsive, while Mr. Kemble’s is overly calculated and formal. His approach is too forceful and direct. He injects a harshness, nearing aggression, into the usual lines and responses. But that's not like Hamlet at all. He is, in a sense, lost in his thoughts and merely thinks aloud. So, there shouldn’t be any effort to make an impression with exaggerated emphasis or style; no talking at his listeners. The character should be filled with as much of the gentleman and scholar as possible, and as little of the performer. A thoughtful sadness should sit lightly on his brow, but there shouldn’t be any sign of fixed and ugly gloom. He is filled with vulnerability and melancholy, but there's no cruelty in him. He is the kindest of misanthropes.
THE TEMPEST
There can be little doubt that Shakespear was the most universal genius that ever lived. ‘Either for tragedy, comedy, history, pastoral, pastoral-comical, historical-pastoral, scene individable or poem unlimited, he is the only man. Seneca cannot be too heavy, nor Plautus too light for him.’ He has not only the same absolute command over our laughter and our tears, all the resources of passion, of wit, of thought, of observation, but he has the most unbounded range of fanciful invention, whether terrible or playful, the same insight into the world of imagination that he has into the world of reality; and over all there presides the same truth of character and nature, and the same spirit of humanity. His ideal beings are as true and natural as his real characters; that is, as consistent with themselves, or if we suppose such beings to exist at all, they could not act, speak, or feel otherwise than as he makes them. He has invented for them a language, manners, and sentiments of their own, from the tremendous imprecations of the Witches in Macbeth, when they do ‘a deed without a name,’ to the sylph-like expressions of Ariel, who ‘does his spiriting gently’; the mischievous tricks and gossipping of Robin Goodfellow, or the uncouth gabbling and emphatic gesticulations of Caliban in this play.
There’s no doubt that Shakespeare was the most universal genius to ever live. “Whether for tragedy, comedy, history, pastoral, pastoral-comical, historical-pastoral, indivisible scenes, or unlimited poems, he is the only one. Seneca can’t be too heavy, nor can Plautus be too light for him.” He has absolute control over our laughter and tears, and he harnesses all the resources of passion, wit, thought, and observation. He also has an incredible range of imaginative invention, whether it's dark or playful, with the same depth of insight into the world of imagination as he has into reality. Over everything, there’s an undeniable truth of character and nature, along with a strong spirit of humanity. His ideal characters are just as true and natural as his real ones; that is, as consistent as possible. If we imagine such beings exist, they couldn't act, speak, or feel any differently than he portrays them. He has created a unique language, manners, and sentiments for them, from the powerful curses of the Witches in Macbeth, when they commit “a deed without a name,” to the graceful expressions of Ariel, who “does his spiriting gently”; the playful antics and gossip of Robin Goodfellow, or the strange chatter and intense gestures of Caliban in this play.
The Tempest is one of the most original and perfect of Shakespear’s productions, and he has shewn in it all the variety of his powers. It is full of grace and grandeur. The human and imaginary characters, the dramatic and the grotesque, are blended together with the greatest art, and without any appearance of it. Though he has here given ‘to airy nothing a local habitation and a name,’ yet that part which is only the fantastic creation of his mind, has the same palpable texture, and coheres ‘semblably’ with the rest. As the preternatural part has the air of reality, and almost haunts the imagination with a sense of truth, the real characters and events partake of the wildness of a dream. The stately magician, Prospero, driven from his dukedom, but around whom (so potent is his art) airy spirits throng numberless to do his bidding; his daughter Miranda (‘worthy of that name’) to whom all the power of his art points, and who seems the goddess of the isle; the princely Ferdinand, cast by fate upon the haven of his happiness in this idol of his love; the delicate Ariel; the savage Caliban, half brute, half demon; the drunken ship’s crew—are all connected parts of the story, and can hardly be spared from the place they fill. Even the local scenery is of a piece and character with the subject. Prospero’s enchanted island seems to have risen up out of 239the sea; the airy music, the tempest-tost vessel, the turbulent waves, all have the effect of the landscape background of some fine picture. Shakespear’s pencil is (to use an allusion of his own) ‘like the dyer’s hand, subdued to what it works in.’ Every thing in him, though it partakes of ‘the liberty of wit,’ is also subjected to ‘the law’ of the understanding. For instance, even the drunken sailors, who are made reeling-ripe, share, in the disorder of their minds and bodies, in the tumult of the elements, and seem on shore to be as much at the mercy of chance as they were before at the mercy of the winds and waves. These fellows with their sea-wit are the least to our taste of any part of the play: but they are as like drunken sailors as they can be, and are an indirect foil to Caliban, whose figure acquires a classical dignity in the comparison.
The Storm is one of Shakespeare’s most original and flawless works, showcasing the full range of his talents. It’s filled with both elegance and magnificence. The human and imaginary characters, the dramatic and the bizarre, blend seamlessly and artfully. While he has given “airy nothing a local habitation and a name,” even the purely fantastical creations feel real and connect cohesively with the rest. The supernatural elements possess an air of reality, almost haunting the imagination with a sense of truth, while the real characters and events embrace a dreamlike wildness. The noble magician, Prospero, exiled from his dukedom, commands numerous airy spirits to carry out his wishes; his daughter Miranda (“worthy of that name”) is the focus of all his power and appears to embody the spirit of the island; the royal Ferdinand is fatefully brought to the haven of his dreams in this idol of his love; the delicate Ariel; the brutish Caliban, part beast, part demon; the drunken ship’s crew—are all essential parts of the story and cannot be removed from the roles they play. Even the setting aligns perfectly with the subject. Prospero’s enchanted island seems to have emerged from the sea; the ethereal music, the storm-tossed ship, the churning waves all create a striking landscape background, like a beautiful painting. Shakespeare’s artistry is (to use an expression of his own) “like the dyer’s hand, subdued to what it works in.” Everything in him, while displaying “the liberty of wit,” is also governed by “the law” of reason. For instance, even the drunken sailors, who are thoroughly inebriated, reflect the chaos of both their minds and bodies as well as the uproar of the elements, appearing on land just as vulnerable to chance as they were to the winds and waves. These characters, with their sea wit, are the least appealing part of the play, but they resemble drunken sailors closely enough, and serve as an indirect contrast to Caliban, whose character gains a classical dignity in comparison.
The character of Caliban is generally thought (and justly so) to be one of the author’s master-pieces. It is not indeed pleasant to see this character on the stage any more than it is to see the god Pan personated there. But in itself it is one of the wildest and most abstracted of all Shakespear’s characters, whose deformity whether of body or mind is redeemed by the power and truth of the imagination displayed in it. It is the essence of grossness, but there is not a particle of vulgarity in it. Shakespear has described the brutal mind of Caliban in contact with the pure and original forms of nature; the character grows out of the soil where it is rooted, uncontrouled, uncouth and wild, uncramped by any of the meannesses of custom. It is ‘of the earth, earthy.’ It seems almost to have been dug out of the ground, with a soul instinctively superadded to it answering to its wants and origin. Vulgarity is not natural coarseness, but conventional coarseness, learnt from others, contrary to, or without an entire conformity of natural power and disposition; as fashion is the common-place affectation of what is elegant and refined without any feeling of the essence of it. Schlegel, the admirable German critic on Shakespear, observes that Caliban is a poetical character, and ‘always speaks in blank verse.’ He first comes in thus:
The character of Caliban is widely considered (and rightly so) to be one of the author’s masterpieces. It's not really enjoyable to see this character on stage any more than it is to see the god Pan portrayed. But Caliban is one of the wildest and most abstract of all Shakespeare’s characters, whose deformity, whether physical or mental, is redeemed by the power and truth of the imagination presented in it. It embodies grossness, but there's not a hint of vulgarity in it. Shakespeare has depicted Caliban's brutal mind in contact with the pure and original forms of nature; the character grows directly from the soil where it is rooted, uncontrolled, uncouth, and wild, not restricted by any of the pettiness of convention. It is ‘of the earth, earthy.’ It seems almost to have been dug out of the ground, with a soul instinctively added to it that responds to its needs and origins. Vulgarity is not natural coarseness, but conventional coarseness learned from others, contrasting with, or lacking a complete alignment of natural power and disposition; much like fashion is a commonplace pretension of what is elegant and refined without any understanding of its essence. Schlegel, the remarkable German critic on Shakespeare, notes that Caliban is a poetic character and ‘always speaks in blank verse.’ He first appears like this:
And again, he promises Trinculo his services thus, if he will free him from his drudgery.
And once more, he promises Trinculo his help if he will free him from his hard work.
In conducting Stephano and Trinculo to Prospero’s cell, Caliban shews the superiority of natural capacity over greater knowledge and greater folly; and in a former scene, when Ariel frightens them with his music, Caliban to encourage them accounts for it in the eloquent poetry of the senses.
In leading Stephano and Trinculo to Prospero’s cell, Caliban demonstrates that natural ability can be more valuable than extensive knowledge and foolishness. Earlier, when Ariel scares them with his music, Caliban tries to reassure them by explaining it in a vividly poetic way.
This is not more beautiful than it is true. The poet here shews us the savage with the simplicity of a child, and makes the strange monster amiable. Shakespear had to paint the human animal rude and without choice in its pleasures, but not without the sense of 241pleasure or some germ of the affections. Master Barnardine in Measure for Measure, the savage of civilized life, is an admirable philosophical counterpart to Caliban.
This is not more beautiful than it is true. The poet shows us the savage with the innocence of a child and makes the strange monster likable. Shakespeare had to depict the human being as crude and lacking in choice when it comes to pleasure, but not without the awareness of pleasure or some seed of affection. Master Barnardine in Measure for Measure, the savage of civilized life, is an excellent philosophical counterpart to Caliban.
Shakespear has, as it were by design, drawn off from Caliban the elements of whatever is ethereal and refined, to compound them in the unearthly mould of Ariel. Nothing was ever more finely conceived than this contrast between the material and the spiritual, the gross and delicate. Ariel is imaginary power, the swiftness of thought personified. When told to make good speed by Prospero, he says, ‘I drink the air before me.’ This is something like Puck’s boast on a similar occasion, ‘I’ll put a girdle round about the earth in forty minutes.’ But Ariel differs from Puck in having a fellow feeling in the interests of those he is employed about. How exquisite is the following dialogue between him and Prospero!
Shakespeare has, in a way, intentionally separated the essential, ethereal qualities from Caliban to blend them into the otherworldly form of Ariel. Nothing illustrates the contrast between the material and the spiritual, the coarse and the delicate, more beautifully than this. Ariel represents imagined power, the speed of thought made flesh. When Prospero tells him to hurry, he replies, "I drink the air before me." This is similar to Puck's boast in a comparable situation, "I’ll put a girdle round about the earth in forty minutes." However, Ariel differs from Puck by showing genuine concern for those he serves. How exquisite is the following dialogue between him and Prospero!
It has been observed that there is a peculiar charm in the songs introduced in Shakespear, which, without conveying any distinct images, seem to recall all the feelings connected with them, like snatches of half-forgotten music heard indistinctly and at intervals. There is this effect produced by Ariel’s songs, which (as we are told) seem to sound in the air, and as if the person playing them were invisible. We shall give one instance out of many of this general power.
It has been noted that there's a unique charm in the songs featured in Shakespeare, which, while not presenting any clear images, evoke all the emotions associated with them, like snippets of faintly remembered music heard softly and sporadically. This effect is created by Ariel’s songs, which (as we are told) seem to echo in the air, as if the person playing them were unseen. We'll provide one example among many of this overall impact.
The courtship between Ferdinand and Miranda is one of the chief beauties of this play. It is the very purity of love. The pretended interference of Prospero with it heightens its interest, and is in character with the magician, whose sense of preternatural power makes him arbitrary, tetchy, and impatient of opposition.
The romance between Ferdinand and Miranda is one of the main highlights of this play. It showcases the true purity of love. Prospero's fake meddling in their relationship adds to the drama and fits his character as a magician, whose sense of supernatural power makes him controlling, irritable, and intolerant of resistance.
The Tempest is a finer play than the Midsummer Night’s Dream, which has sometimes been compared with it; but it is not so fine a poem. There are a greater number of beautiful passages in the latter. Two of the most striking in the Tempest are spoken by Prospero. The one is that admirable one when the vision which he has conjured up disappears, beginning ‘The cloud-capp’d towers, the gorgeous palaces,’ etc., which has been so often quoted, that every school-boy knows it by heart; the other is that which Prospero makes in abjuring his art.
The Storm is a better play than Midsummer Night’s Dream, which has often been compared to it; however, it’s not as great a poem. There are more beautiful passages in the latter. Two of the most memorable in the Storm are spoken by Prospero. One is the remarkable moment when the vision he conjured up fades away, starting with ‘The cloud-capped towers, the gorgeous palaces,’ etc., which has been quoted so often that every kid knows it by heart; the other is the speech Prospero makes when he renounces his magic.
We must not forget to mention among other things in this play, that Shakespear has anticipated nearly all the arguments on the Utopian schemes of modern philosophy.
We shouldn't forget to mention in this play that Shakespeare has anticipated almost all the arguments on the Utopian plans of modern philosophy.
THE MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM
Bottom the Weaver is a character that has not had justice done him. He is the most romantic of mechanics. And what a list of companions he has—Quince the Carpenter, Snug the Joiner, Flute the Bellows-mender, Snout the Tinker, Starveling the Tailor; and then again, what a group of fairy attendants, Puck, Peaseblossom, Cobweb, Moth, and Mustard-seed! It has been observed that Shakespear’s characters are constructed upon deep physiological principles; and there is something in this play which looks very like it. Bottom the Weaver, who takes the lead of
Bottom the Weaver is a character who hasn’t been given the credit he deserves. He’s the most romantic of craftsmen. And what a group of friends he has—Quince the Carpenter, Snug the Joiner, Flute the Bellows-mender, Snout the Tinker, Starveling the Tailor; and then there’s a whole bunch of fairy helpers, Puck, Peaseblossom, Cobweb, Moth, and Mustard-seed! It’s been noted that Shakespeare’s characters are created based on profound psychological principles, and there’s something in this play that really reflects that. Bottom the Weaver, who takes the lead in
follows a sedentary trade, and he is accordingly represented as conceited, serious, and fantastical. He is ready to undertake any thing and every thing, as if it was as much a matter of course as the motion of his loom and shuttle. He is for playing the tyrant, the lover, the lady, the lion. ‘He will roar that it shall do any man’s heart good to hear him’; and this being objected to as improper, he still has a resource in his good opinion of himself, and ‘will roar you an ‘twere any nightingale.’ Snug the Joiner is the moral man of the piece, who proceeds by measurement and discretion in all things. You see him with his rule and compasses in his hand. ‘Have you the lion’s part written? Pray you, if it be, give it me, for I am slow of study.’ ‘You may do it extempore,’ says Quince, ‘for it is nothing but roaring.’ Starveling the Tailor keeps the peace, and objects to the lion and the drawn sword. ‘I believe we must leave the killing out when all’s done.’ Starveling, however, does not start the objections himself, but seconds them when made by others, as if he had not spirit to express his fears without encouragement. It is too much to suppose all this intentional: but it very luckily falls out so. Nature includes all that is implied in the most subtle analytical distinctions; and the same distinctions will be found in Shakespear. Bottom, who 245is not only chief actor, but stage-manager for the occasion, has a device to obviate the danger of frightening the ladies: ‘Write me a prologue, and let the prologue seem to say, we will do no harm with our swords, and that Pyramus is not killed indeed; and for better assurance, tell them that I, Pyramus, am not Pyramus, but Bottom the Weaver: this will put them out of fear.’ Bottom seems to have understood the subject of dramatic illusion at least as well as any modern essayist. If our holiday mechanic rules the roast among his fellows, he is no less at home in his new character of an ass, ‘with amiable cheeks, and fair large ears.’ He instinctively acquires a most learned taste, and grows fastidious in the choice of dried peas and bottled hay. He is quite familiar with his new attendants, and assigns them their parts with all due gravity. ‘Monsieur Cobweb, good Monsieur, get your weapon in your hand, and kill me a red-hipt humble bee on the top of a thistle, and, good Monsieur, bring me the honey-bag.’ What an exact knowledge is here shewn of natural history!
follows a sedentary job, and as a result, he comes off as arrogant, serious, and fanciful. He’s eager to take on anything and everything, as if it were as routine as the movement of his loom and shuttle. He’s ready to act like a tyrant, a lover, a lady, or a lion. “He’ll roar so well that it will do anyone's heart good to hear him”; and when someone says that's inappropriate, he still relies on his high opinion of himself, and “will roar as if he were any nightingale.” Snug the Joiner is the moral compass of the group, approaching everything with measurement and discretion. You see him with his ruler and compass in hand. “Do you have the lion's part written? Please, if you do, give it to me because I learn slowly.” “You can improvise,” Quince says, “since it's just roaring.” Starveling the Tailor helps keep the peace and raises concerns about the lion and the drawn sword. “I think we should leave out the killing after all.” However, Starveling doesn’t voice his concerns outright; he backs others’ objections, as if he lacks the courage to express his fears without encouragement. It’s a bit much to assume all of this is deliberate: but it coincidentally turns out that way. Nature encompasses everything implied in the most subtle analytical distinctions; and you’ll find the same distinctions in Shakespeare. Bottom, who is not only the main actor but also the director for the occasion, has a plan to avoid scaring the ladies: “Write me a prologue, and let the prologue say that we mean no harm with our swords and that Pyramus isn’t really dead; and for added assurance, tell them that I, Pyramus, am not Pyramus, but Bottom the Weaver: this will put them at ease.” Bottom seems to grasp the concept of dramatic illusion at least as well as any modern writer. Although our holiday mechanic is in charge among his peers, he’s equally at ease in his new role as an ass, “with charming cheeks and large ears.” He instinctively develops a refined taste and becomes picky about the choice of dried peas and bottled hay. He’s very comfortable with his new companions, assigning them their roles with all due seriousness. “Monsieur Cobweb, good sir, get your weapon ready, and kill me a red-hipped humble bee on top of a thistle, and, dear sir, bring me the honey-bag.” What an impressive knowledge of natural history is shown here!
Puck, or Robin Goodfellow, is the leader of the fairy band. He is the Ariel of the Midsummer Night’s Dream; and yet as unlike as can be to the Ariel in The Tempest. No other poet could have made two such different characters out of the same fanciful materials and situations. Ariel is a minister of retribution, who is touched with the sense of pity at the woes he inflicts. Puck is a mad-cap sprite, full of wantonness and mischief, who laughs at those whom he misleads—‘Lord, what fools these mortals be!’ Ariel cleaves the air, and executes his mission with the zeal of a winged messenger; Puck is borne along on his fairy errand like the light and glittering gossamer before the breeze. He is, indeed, a most Epicurean little gentleman, dealing in quaint devices, and faring in dainty delights. Prospero and his world of spirits are a set of moralists: but with Oberon and his fairies we are launched at once into the empire of the butterflies. How beautifully is this race of beings contrasted with the men and women actors in the scene, by a single epithet which Titania gives to the latter, ‘the human mortals!’ It is astonishing that Shakespear should be considered, not only by foreigners, but by many of our own critics, as a gloomy and heavy writer, who painted nothing but ‘gorgons and hydras, and chimeras dire.’ His subtlety exceeds that of all other dramatic writers, insomuch that a celebrated person of the present day said that he regarded him rather as a metaphysician than a poet. His delicacy and sportive gaiety are infinite. In the Midsummer Night’s Dream alone, we should imagine, there is more sweetness and beauty of description than in the whole range of French poetry put together. What we mean is this, that we will produce 246out of that single play ten passages, to which we do not think any ten passages in the works of the French poets can be opposed, displaying equal fancy and imagery. Shall we mention the remonstrance of Helena to Hermia, or Titania’s description of her fairy train, or her disputes with Oberon about the Indian boy, or Puck’s account of himself and his employments, or the Fairy Queen’s exhortation to the elves to pay due attendance upon her favourite, Bottom; or Hippolita’s description of a chace, or Theseus’s answer? The two last are as heroical and spirited as the others are full of luscious tenderness. The reading of this play is like wandering in a grove by moonlight: the descriptions breathe a sweetness like odours thrown from beds of flowers.
Puck, or Robin Goodfellow, is the leader of the fairy group. He is the Ariel of the A Midsummer Night's Dream; and yet, he couldn't be more different from the Ariel in The Tempest. No other poet could create two such distinct characters from the same whimsical materials and situations. Ariel is a servant of vengeance, who feels a sense of pity for the suffering he causes. Puck is a wild spirit, full of mischief and playfulness, who laughs at those he misleads—‘Lord, what fools these mortals be!’ Ariel soars through the air, completing his mission with the zeal of a winged messenger; Puck drifts on his fairy tasks like shimmering gossamer in the breeze. He is truly a most indulgent little gentleman, engaging in clever tricks and enjoying delightful pleasures. Prospero and his spirits are moralists: but with Oberon and his fairies, we are immediately thrown into a world of butterflies. How beautifully this race of beings contrasts with the human actors in the scene, highlighted by one epithet that Titania gives to the latter, ‘the human mortals!’ It’s surprising that Shakespeare is viewed, not only by outsiders but also by many of our critics, as a gloomy and heavy writer who only depicted ‘gorgons and hydras, and chimeras dire.’ His subtlety surpasses that of all other dramatic writers, to the extent that a well-known figure today stated he sees him more as a metaphysician than a poet. His delicacy and playful joy are boundless. In the A Midsummer Night's Dream alone, we believe there’s more sweetness and beauty in description than in all of French poetry combined. What we’re saying is that we could pull ten passages from that single play that we don’t think can be matched by any ten passages from French poets, showcasing equal imagination and imagery. Should we mention Helena’s plea to Hermia, or Titania’s description of her fairy entourage, or her arguments with Oberon about the Indian boy, or Puck’s account of himself and his responsibilities, or the Fairy Queen’s request for the elves to attend to her favorite, Bottom; or Hippolyta’s description of a hunt, or Theseus’s response? The last two are as heroic and spirited as the others are filled with luscious tenderness. Reading this play is like wandering in a moonlit grove: the descriptions exude a sweetness reminiscent of fragrances wafting from beds of flowers.
Titania’s exhortation to the fairies to wait upon Bottom, which is remarkable for a certain cloying sweetness in the repetition of the rhymes, is as follows:—
Titania’s request to the fairies to attend to Bottom, notable for its sugary charm in the repeated rhymes, is as follows:—
The sounds of the lute and of the trumpet are not more distinct than the poetry of the foregoing passage, and of the conversation between Theseus and Hippolita.
The sounds of the lute and trumpet are no more distinct than the poetry of the passage before this and the conversation between Theseus and Hippolita.
Even Titian never made a hunting-piece of a gusto so fresh and lusty, and so near the first ages of the world as this.—
Even Titian never created a hunting scene with a vibe so fresh and vibrant, and so close to the early ages of the world as this.
It had been suggested to us, that the Midsummer Night’s Dream would do admirably to get up as a Christmas after-piece; and our prompter proposed that Mr. Kean should play the part of Bottom, as worthy of his great talents. He might, in the discharge of his duty, offer to play the lady like any of our actresses that he pleased, the lover or the tyrant like any of our actors that he pleased, and the lion like ‘the most fearful wild-fowl living.’ The carpenter, the tailor, and joiner, it was thought, would hit the galleries. The young ladies in love would interest the side-boxes; and Robin Goodfellow and his companions excite a lively fellow-feeling in the children from school. There would be two courts, an empire within an empire, the Athenian and the Fairy King and Queen, with their attendants, and with all their finery. What an opportunity for processions, for the sound of trumpets and glittering of spears! What a fluttering of urchins’ painted wings; what a delightful profusion of gauze clouds and airy spirits floating on them!
It was suggested to us that A Midsummer Night's Dream would be a great choice for a Christmas after-show; our prompter recommended that Mr. Kean should take on the role of Bottom, as it would showcase his impressive talents. He could, in his performance, choose to play the lady like any of our actresses, the lover or the tyrant like any of our actors, and the lion like “the most terrifying wild beast alive.” The carpenter, tailor, and joiner were thought to appeal to the audience in the upper levels. The young ladies in love would captivate the side-boxes, and Robin Goodfellow and his friends would resonate with the kids coming from school. There would be two courts, an empire within an empire, the Athenian and the Fairy King and Queen, with their attendants and all their splendor. What a chance for processions, for the sound of trumpets and the shine of spears! What a flurry of children's painted wings; what a lovely abundance of gauzy clouds and airy spirits floating among them!
Alas the experiment has been tried, and has failed; not through the fault of Mr. Kean, who did not play the part of Bottom, nor of Mr. Liston, who did, and who played it well, but from the nature of things. The Midsummer Night’s Dream, when acted, is converted from a delightful fiction into a dull pantomime. All that is finest in the play is lost in the representation. The spectacle was grand: but the spirit was evaporated, the genius was fled.—Poetry and the stage do not agree well together. The attempt to reconcile them in this instance fails not only of effect, but of decorum. The ideal can have no place upon the stage, which is a picture without perspective; everything there is in the foreground. That which was merely an airy shape, a dream, a passing thought, immediately becomes an unmanageable reality. Where all is left to the imagination (as is the case in reading) every circumstance, near or remote, has an equal chance of being kept in mind, and tells according to the mixed impression of all that has been suggested. But the imagination cannot 248sufficiently qualify the actual impressions of the senses. Any offence given to the eye is not to be got rid of by explanation. Thus Bottom’s head in the play is a fantastic illusion, produced by magic spells: on the stage it is an ass’s head, and nothing more; certainly a very strange costume for a gentleman to appear in. Fancy cannot be embodied any more than a simile can be painted; and it is as idle to attempt it as to personate Wall or Moonshine. Fairies are not incredible, but fairies six feet high are so. Monsters are not shocking, if they are seen at a proper distance. When ghosts appear at mid-day, when apparitions stalk along Cheapside, then may the Midsummer Night’s Dream be represented without injury at Covent Garden or at Drury Lane. The boards of a theatre and the regions of fancy are not the same thing.
Unfortunately, the experiment has been attempted, and it has failed; not because of Mr. Kean, who didn’t portray Bottom, nor because of Mr. Liston, who did, and did it well, but due to the nature of the situation. When performed, the A Midsummer Night's Dream transforms from a charming story into a dull pantomime. All that’s best in the play gets lost in the performance. The visuals were impressive, but the essence vanished, the creativity was gone. — Poetry and the stage don’t mix well. The effort to bring them together in this case not only misses the mark but also lacks propriety. The ideal has no place on stage, which is like a flat picture; everything is upfront. What was just a whimsical shape, a dream, a fleeting thought, immediately turns into an overwhelming reality. When everything is left to the imagination (as it is in reading), every detail, near or far, has an equal chance of being remembered and contributes to the overall impression based on what has been imagined. But the imagination can't adequately filter the actual sensory experiences. Any offense to the eye can't be erased by explanation. So, Bottom’s head in the play is a fantastical illusion created by magic spells; on stage, it’s just an ass’s head, and nothing more, which is certainly a very odd outfit for a gentleman to wear. Imagination can’t be made physical any more than a simile can be drawn, and it’s just as pointless to try as it is to act like Wall or Moonshine. Fairies aren’t unbelievable, but six-foot-tall fairies are. Monsters aren’t terrifying if viewed from a proper distance. When ghosts appear in broad daylight, when apparitions walk through Cheapside, only then can the A Midsummer Night's Dream be performed without harm at Covent Garden or Drury Lane. The stage and the realm of imagination are not the same.
ROMEO AND JULIET
Romeo and Juliet is the only tragedy which Shakespear has written entirely on a love-story. It is supposed to have been his first play, and it deserves to stand in that proud rank. There is the buoyant spirit of youth in every line, in the rapturous intoxication of hope, and in the bitterness of despair. It has been said of Romeo and Juliet by a great critic, that ‘whatever is most intoxicating in the odour of a southern spring, languishing in the song of the nightingale, or voluptuous in the first opening of the rose, is to be found in this poem.’ The description is true; and yet it does not answer to our idea of the play. For if it has the sweetness of the rose, it has its freshness too; if it has the languor of the nightingale’s song, it has also its giddy transport; if it has the softness of a southern spring, it is as glowing and as bright. There is nothing of a sickly and sentimental cast. Romeo and Juliet are in love, but they are not love-sick. Every thing speaks the very soul of pleasure, the high and healthy pulse of the passions: the heart beats, the blood circulates and mantles throughout. Their courtship is not an insipid interchange of sentiments lip-deep, learnt at second-hand from poems and plays,—made up of beauties of the most shadowy kind, of ‘fancies wan that hang the pensive head,’ of evanescent smiles, and sighs that breathe not, of delicacy that shrinks from the touch, and feebleness that scarce supports itself, an elaborate vacuity of thought, and an artificial dearth of sense, spirit, truth, and nature! It is the reverse of all this. It is Shakespear all over, and Shakespear when he was young.
Romeo & Juliet is the only tragedy that Shakespeare wrote completely based on a love story. It’s believed to be his first play, and it truly deserves that honor. Every line carries the vibrant spirit of youth, filled with the exhilarating thrill of hope and the sharp pain of despair. A prominent critic once said of Romeo & Juliet that ‘whatever is most intoxicating in the scent of a southern spring, languishing in the song of the nightingale, or indulgent in the first bloom of the rose, can be found in this poem.’ This description is accurate, yet it doesn’t capture our perception of the play. While it has the sweetness of the rose, it also retains its freshness; though it possesses the languor of the nightingale’s song, it also includes its dizzying joy; and while it reflects the softness of a southern spring, it is equally vibrant and bright. There’s nothing sickly or overly sentimental about it. Romeo and Juliet are in love, but they aren’t love-struck. Everything conveys pure pleasure, the vigorous and healthy rhythm of passion: the heart beats, the blood flows vigorously. Their courtship isn’t a dull exchange of shallow sentiments, recited from poems and plays—made up of insubstantial beauty, of ‘fancies wan that hang the pensive head,’ of fleeting smiles, and sighs that don’t resonate, of delicacy that recoils from touch, and weakness that barely holds up, a complex emptiness of thought, and an artificial lack of sense, spirit, truth, and nature! It’s the complete opposite of all that. It’s Shakespeare at his finest, and especially a young Shakespeare.
249We have heard it objected to Romeo and Juliet, that it is founded on an idle passion between a boy and a girl, who have scarcely seen and can have but little sympathy or rational esteem for one another, who have had no experience of the good or ills of life, and whose raptures or despair must be therefore equally groundless and fantastical. Whoever objects to the youth of the parties in this play as ‘too unripe and crude’ to pluck the sweets of love, and wishes to see a first-love carried on into a good old age, and the passions taken at the rebound, when their force is spent, may find all this done in the Stranger and in other German plays, where they do things by contraries, and transpose nature to inspire sentiment and create philosophy. Shakespear proceeded in a more strait-forward, and, we think, effectual way. He did not endeavour to extract beauty from wrinkles, or the wild throb of passion from the last expiring sigh of indifference. He did not ‘gather grapes of thorns nor figs of thistles.’ It was not his way. But he has given a picture of human life, such as it is in the order of nature. He has founded the passion of the two lovers not on the pleasures they had experienced, but on all the pleasures they had not experienced. All that was to come of life was theirs. At that untried source of promised happiness they slaked their thirst, and the first eager draught made them drunk with love and joy. They were in full possession of their senses and their affections. Their hopes were of air, their desires of fire. Youth is the season of love, because the heart is then first melted in tenderness from the touch of novelty, and kindled to rapture, for it knows no end of its enjoyments or its wishes. Desire has no limit but itself. Passion, the love and expectation of pleasure, is infinite, extravagant, inexhaustible, till experience comes to check and kill it. Juliet exclaims on her first interview with Romeo—
249 People have criticized Romeo & Juliet for being based on a fleeting infatuation between two young people who barely know each other and lack any real understanding or appreciation for one another. They haven’t experienced life's ups and downs, so their excitement and despair seem unfounded and imaginary. Those who think the lovers are ‘too young and inexperienced’ to fully enjoy love and prefer to see first love evolve into a long-lasting relationship—where feelings are fully formed—might find that in The Stranger and other German plays, which approach things differently and twist nature to evoke emotion and create philosophy. Shakespeare took a more straightforward, and what we believe to be, effective approach. He didn’t try to find beauty in aging nor the intense thrill of passion in the last fading breath of apathy. He didn’t ‘gather grapes from thorns or figs from thistles.’ That wasn’t his style. Instead, he portrayed human life as it is in nature. He based the passion of the two lovers not on what they had experienced, but on everything they had not yet experienced. All of life’s possibilities were ahead of them. At that unexplored well of promised happiness, they quenched their thirst, and the first eager sip intoxicated them with love and joy. They were fully aware of their feelings and desires. Their hopes were as light as air, and their desires were fiery. Youth is the time for love because it’s when the heart is first softened by the newness of experience and ignited by ecstasy, believing there are no limits to its pleasures or wishes. Desire knows no bounds except for itself. Passion, the love and anticipation of pleasure, is infinite, extravagant, and unending until reality comes along to temper and extinguish it. Juliet exclaims during her first meeting with Romeo—
And why should it not? What was to hinder the thrilling tide of pleasure, which had just gushed from her heart, from flowing on without stint or measure, but experience which she was yet without? What was to abate the transport of the first sweet sense of pleasure, which her heart and her senses had just tasted, but indifference which she was yet a stranger to? What was there to check the ardour of hope, of faith, of constancy, just rising in her breast, but disappointment which she had not yet felt! As are the desires and the hopes of youthful passion, such is the keenness of its disappointments, and their baleful effect. Such is the transition in this play from the highest bliss to the lowest despair, from the nuptial couch to an 250untimely grave. The only evil that even in apprehension befalls the two lovers is the loss of the greatest possible felicity; yet this loss is fatal to both, for they had rather part with life than bear the thought of surviving all that had made life dear to them. In all this, Shakespear has but followed nature, which existed in his time, as well as now. The modern philosophy, which reduces the whole theory of the mind to habitual impressions, and leaves the natural impulses of passion and imagination out of the account, had not then been discovered; or if it had, would have been little calculated for the uses of poetry.
And why shouldn't it? What could stop the exciting rush of pleasure that had just surged from her heart from flowing freely, except the experience she still lacked? What could dull the joy of the first sweet taste of pleasure that her heart and senses had just experienced, except indifference, which she was still unfamiliar with? What could hold back the intensity of hope, faith, and commitment that was just rising in her chest, except disappointment, which she hadn’t encountered yet? Just as the desires and hopes of youthful passion are intense, so too are the sharpness of its disappointments and their harmful effects. This play captures the shift from the highest happiness to the lowest despair, from the wedding bed to an 250untimely grave. The only threat that even looms over the two lovers is the loss of the greatest possible happiness; yet this loss is devastating for both, as they would rather give up life than live with the thought of surviving everything that made life precious to them. In all this, Shakespeare simply followed nature, which existed in his time just like it does now. The modern philosophy that reduces the entire theory of the mind to habitual impressions, leaving out the natural impulses of passion and imagination, had not yet been discovered; or if it had, it would hardly have been suited for the purpose of poetry.
It is the inadequacy of the same false system of philosophy to account for the strength of our earliest attachments, which has led Mr. Wordsworth to indulge in the mystical visions of Platonism in his Ode on the Progress of Life. He has very admirably described the vividness of our impressions in youth and childhood, and how ‘they fade by degrees into the light of common day,’ and he ascribes the change to the supposition of a pre-existent state, as if our early thoughts were nearer heaven, reflections of former trails of glory, shadows of our past being. This is idle. It is not from the knowledge of the past that the first impressions of things derive their gloss and splendour, but from our ignorance of the future, which fills the void to come with the warmth of our desires, with our gayest hopes, and brightest fancies. It is the obscurity spread before it that colours the prospect of life with hope, as it is the cloud which reflects the rainbow. There is no occasion to resort to any mystical union and transmission of feeling through different states of being to account for the romantic enthusiasm of youth; nor to plant the root of hope in the grave, nor to derive it from the skies. Its root is in the heart of man: it lifts its head above the stars. Desire and imagination are inmates of the human breast. The heaven ‘that lies about us in our infancy’ is only a new world, of which we know nothing but what we wish it to be, and believe all that we wish. In youth and boyhood, the world we live in is the world of desire, and of fancy: it is experience that brings us down to the world of reality. What is it that in youth sheds a dewy light round the evening star? That makes the daisy look so bright? That perfumes the hyacinth? That embalms the first kiss of love? It is the delight of novelty, and the seeing no end to the pleasure that we fondly believe is still in store for us. The heart revels in the luxury of its own thoughts, and is unable to sustain the weight of hope and love that presses upon it.—The effects of the passion of love alone might have dissipated Mr. Wordsworth’s theory, if he means any thing more by it than an ingenious and poetical allegory. That at least is not a link in the 251chain let down from other worlds; ‘the purple light of love’ is not a dim reflection of the smiles of celestial bliss. It does not appear till the middle of life, and then seems like ‘another morn risen on mid-day.’ In this respect the soul comes into the world ‘in utter nakedness.’ Love waits for the ripening of the youthful blood. The sense of pleasure precedes the love of pleasure, but with the sense of pleasure, as soon as it is felt, come thronging infinite desires and hopes of pleasure, and love is mature as soon as born. It withers and it dies almost as soon!
It’s the failure of the same misleading philosophy to explain the intensity of our earliest attachments that has led Mr. Wordsworth to embrace the mystical ideas of Platonism in his Ode on the Progress of Life. He beautifully describes how intense our impressions are in youth and childhood and how “they fade gradually into the light of everyday life.” He attributes this change to the idea of a pre-existing state, as if our early thoughts were closer to heaven, echoes of past glory, shadows of our former existence. This is nonsense. The first impressions of things don’t derive their richness and shine from knowledge of the past but from our ignorance of the future, which fills the uncertain space ahead with our desires, brightest hopes, and fanciest dreams. It’s the mystery surrounding the future that colors the outlook on life with optimism, just like a cloud reflects a rainbow. There’s no need to look for any mystical connection or transfer of feelings through different states of existence to explain the romantic excitement of youth, nor to bury hope in the grave or pull it from the sky. Its roots are in the human heart: it reaches up beyond the stars. Desire and imagination live in our hearts. The heaven “that lies about us in our infancy” is just a new world, only known through our wishes, and we believe everything we desire. In youth, the world we inhabit is one of desire and imagination: it’s experience that brings us back to reality. What is it that surrounds the evening star with a dewy light in our youth? What makes the daisy shine so bright? What scents the hyacinth? What preserves the first kiss of love? It’s the excitement of novelty, believing in endless pleasure still waiting for us. The heart delights in its own thoughts, struggling to bear the weight of hope and love that press upon it. The effects of love alone could have dismantled Mr. Wordsworth’s theory, if he means anything more by it than a clever and poetic analogy. That at least isn't a link from other worlds; “the purple light of love” isn’t a faint reflection of heavenly joy. It doesn’t appear until mid-life and then feels like “another morning rising at noon.” In this sense, the soul enters the world “in complete nakedness.” Love waits for youth to mature. The sense of pleasure comes before the love of pleasure, and as soon as that sense is felt, a flood of desires and hopes for pleasure rush in, and love is fully formed as soon as it’s born. It wilts and fades almost immediately!
This play presents a beautiful coup-d’œil of the progress of human life. In thought it occupies years, and embraces the circle of the affections from childhood to old age. Juliet has become a great girl, a young woman since we first remember her a little thing in the idle prattle of the nurse. Lady Capulet was about her age when she became a mother, and old Capulet somewhat impatiently tells his younger visitors,
This play offers a striking glimpse into the journey of human life. It spans years in its concept and covers the range of emotions from childhood to old age. Juliet has matured into a young woman since we first saw her as a little girl in the idle chatter of the nurse. Lady Capulet was around Juliet's age when she became a mother, and old Capulet somewhat impatiently tells his younger guests,
Thus one period of life makes way for the following, and one generation pushes another off the stage. One of the most striking passages to show the intense feeling of youth in this play is Capulet’s invitation to Paris to visit his entertainment.
Thus one period of life makes way for the next, and one generation pushes another off the stage. One of the most striking moments that captures the intense emotions of youth in this play is Capulet’s invitation to Paris to come to his event.
The feelings of youth and of the spring are here blended together like the breath of opening flowers. Images of vernal beauty appear to have floated before the author’s mind, in writing this poem, in profusion. Here is another of exquisite beauty, brought in more by accident than by necessity. Montague declares of his son smit with a hopeless passion, which he will not reveal—
The feelings of youth and spring come together here like the scent of blooming flowers. Pictures of springtime beauty seem to have danced in the author's mind while writing this poem, overflowing with abundance. Here’s another one of stunning beauty, introduced more by chance than by need. Montague talks about his son, who is in love beyond hope but won't share it—
252This casual description is as full of passionate beauty as when Romeo dwells in frantic fondness on ‘the white wonder of his Juliet’s hand.’ The reader may, if he pleases, contrast the exquisite pastoral simplicity of the above lines with the gorgeous description of Juliet when Romeo first sees her at her father’s house, surrounded by company and artificial splendour.
252This casual description is just as full of passionate beauty as when Romeo obsessively reflects on “the white wonder of Juliet’s hand.” The reader can, if they want, compare the lovely simple imagery of these lines with the stunning description of Juliet when Romeo first sees her at her father's house, surrounded by guests and artificial glamour.
It would be hard to say which of the two garden scenes is the finest, that where he first converses with his love, or takes leave of her the morning after their marriage. Both are like a heaven upon earth; the blissful bowers of Paradise let down upon this lower world. We will give only one passage of these well known scenes to shew the perfect refinement and delicacy of Shakespear’s conception of the female character. It is wonderful how Collins, who was a critic and a poet of great sensibility, should have encouraged the common error on this subject by saying—‘But stronger Shakespear felt for man alone.’
It’s hard to say which of the two garden scenes is the best: the one where he first talks to his love or the one where he says goodbye to her the morning after they get married. Both are like a piece of heaven on earth; the blissful gardens of Paradise brought down to this world. We will share just one passage from these well-known scenes to show the perfect refinement and delicacy of Shakespeare’s view of the female character. It’s surprising that Collins, a critic and poet of great sensitivity, would have supported the common misunderstanding on this topic by saying—‘But stronger Shakespeare felt for man alone.’
The passage we mean is Juliet’s apology for her maiden boldness.
The passage we're referring to is Juliet’s apology for her boldness.
253In this and all the rest, her heart, fluttering between pleasure, hope, and fear, seems to have dictated to her tongue, and ‘calls true love spoken simple modesty.’ Of the same sort, but bolder in virgin innocence, is her soliloquy after her marriage with Romeo.
253In this and everything else, her heart, racing with pleasure, hope, and fear, seems to have guided her words, declaring that ‘true love speaks with simple modesty.’ Similarly, but more bold in its pure innocence, is her monologue after marrying Romeo.
We the rather insert this passage here, inasmuch as we have no doubt it has been expunged from the Family Shakespear. Such critics do not perceive that the feelings of the heart sanctify, without disguising, the impulses of nature. Without refinement themselves, they confound modesty with hypocrisy. Not so the German critic, Schlegel. Speaking of Romeo and Juliet, he says, ‘It was reserved for Shakespear to unite purity of heart and the glow of imagination, sweetness and dignity of manners and passionate violence, in one ideal picture.’ The character is indeed one of perfect truth and sweetness. It has nothing forward, nothing coy, nothing affected or coquettish 254about it;—it is a pure effusion of nature. It is as frank as it is modest, for it has no thought that it wishes to conceal. It reposes in conscious innocence on the strength of its affections. Its delicacy does not consist in coldness and reserve, but in combining warmth of imagination and tenderness of heart with the most voluptuous sensibility. Love is a gentle flame that rarifies and expands her whole being. What an idea of trembling haste and airy grace, borne upon the thoughts of love, does the Friar’s exclamation give of her, as she approaches his cell to be married—
We are inserting this passage here because we’re sure it has been removed from the Family Shakespeare. Some critics fail to see that the feelings of the heart elevate, without masking, the instincts of nature. Lacking refinement themselves, they confuse modesty with hypocrisy. Not so with the German critic, Schlegel. Referring to Romeo & Juliet, he says, “It was left to Shakespeare to blend purity of heart with vivid imagination, sweetness and dignity in manners with passionate intensity, in one ideal image.” The character truly embodies perfect honesty and sweetness. It’s not forward, neither coy nor affected or flirtatious; it’s a pure outpouring of nature. It is as straightforward as it is modest, as it has no hidden agenda. It rests in the confident innocence of its affections. Its delicacy isn’t about coldness and distance, but about merging imaginative warmth and heartfelt tenderness with intense sensibility. Love is a gentle flame that elevates and expands her entire being. What a sense of eager urgency and ethereal grace, fueled by love, does the Friar’s exclamation capture of her as she approaches his cell to get married—
The tragic part of this character is of a piece with the rest. It is the heroic founded on tenderness and delicacy. Of this kind are her resolution to follow the Friar’s advice, and the conflict in her bosom between apprehension and love when she comes to take the sleeping poison. Shakespear is blamed for the mixture of low characters. If this is a deformity, it is the source of a thousand beauties. One instance is the contrast between the guileless simplicity of Juliet’s attachment to her first love, and the convenient policy of the nurse in advising her to marry Paris, which excites such indignation in her mistress. ‘Ancient damnation! oh most wicked fiend,’ etc.
The tragic aspect of this character fits perfectly with the rest. It’s the heroism based on kindness and sensitivity. This is evident in her decision to follow the Friar’s advice and the internal struggle she faces between fear and love when she prepares to take the sleeping poison. Shakespeare gets criticized for mixing low characters with high ones. If this is a flaw, it leads to a thousand beauties. One example is the contrast between Juliet’s innocent devotion to her first love and the nurse's practical suggestion that she marry Paris, which fills Juliet with outrage. ‘Ancient damnation! oh most wicked fiend,’ etc.
Romeo is Hamlet in love. There is the same rich exuberance of passion and sentiment in the one, that there is of thought and sentiment in the other. Both are absent and self-involved, both live out of themselves in a world of imagination. Hamlet is abstracted from every thing; Romeo is abstracted from every thing but his love, and lost in it. His ‘frail thoughts dally with faint surmise,’ and are fashioned out of the suggestions of hope, ‘the flatteries of sleep.’ He is himself only in his Juliet; she is his only reality, his heart’s true home and idol. The rest of the world is to him a passing dream. How finely is this character pourtrayed where he recollects himself on seeing Paris slain at the tomb of Juliet!—
Romeo is Hamlet in love. There's the same rich exuberance of passion and feeling in one as there is of thought and emotion in the other. Both are distracted and wrapped up in themselves; they both live in a world of imagination. Hamlet is detached from everything; Romeo is detached from everything except his love, and he’s completely lost in it. His "delicate thoughts play with faint guesses," shaped by the suggestions of hope, "the sweet lies of sleep." He is only truly himself when he’s with Juliet; she is his only reality, the true home of his heart and his idol. The rest of the world feels like a fleeting dream to him. How beautifully is this character captured when he recalls himself upon seeing Paris killed at Juliet's tomb!
And again, just before he hears the sudden tidings of her death—
And once more, right before he hears the shocking news of her death—
Romeo’s passion for Juliet is not a first love: it succeeds and drives out his passion for another mistress, Rosaline, as the sun hides the stars. This is perhaps an artifice (not absolutely necessary) to give us a higher opinion of the lady, while the first absolute surrender of her heart to him enhances the richness of the prize. The commencement, progress, and ending of his second passion are however complete in themselves, not injured if they are not bettered by the first. The outline of the play is taken from an Italian novel; but the dramatic arrangement of the different scenes between the lovers, the more than dramatic interest in the progress of the story, the developement of the characters with time and circumstances, just according to the degree and kind of interest excited, are not inferior to the expression of passion and nature. It has been ingeniously remarked among other proofs of skill in the contrivance of the fable, that the improbability of the main incident in the piece, the administering of the sleeping-potion, is softened and obviated from the beginning by the introduction of the Friar on his first appearance culling simples and descanting on their virtues. Of the passionate scenes in this tragedy, that between the Friar and Romeo when he is told of his sentence of banishment, that between Juliet and the Nurse when she hears of it, and of the death of her cousin Tybalt (which bear no proportion in her mind, when passion after the first shock of surprise throws its weight into the scale of her affections) and the last scene at the tomb, are among the most natural and overpowering. In all of these it is not merely the force of any one passion that is given, but the slightest and most unlooked-for transitions from one to another, the mingling currents of every different feeling rising up and prevailing in turn, swayed by the master-mind of the poet, as the waves undulate beneath the gliding storm. Thus when Juliet has by her complaints encouraged the Nurse to say, ‘Shame come to Romeo,’ she instantly repels the wish, which she had herself occasioned, by answering—
Romeo's love for Juliet isn't just a first crush; it overpowers his feelings for Rosaline, just like how the sun hides the stars. This might be a clever way to elevate Juliet's character while emphasizing the value of her love since she completely gives her heart to him, enhancing the reward he gains. The beginning, development, and conclusion of his second love are complete on their own and aren't diminished by the first. The storyline of the play is inspired by an Italian novel, but the way the scenes between the lovers are arranged dramatically, the unique interest in the unfolding story, and the development of characters over time and circumstances—reflecting the intensity and type of feelings stirred—are just as compelling as the portrayal of passion and nature. It's cleverly pointed out, among other signs of skill in crafting the plot, that the improbability of the main event, the use of the sleeping potion, is eased from the start by the introduction of the Friar gathering herbs and discussing their benefits on his initial appearance. Among the intense scenes in this tragedy, the moments between the Friar and Romeo when he learns of his banishment, Juliet and the Nurse when she hears the news, and the reaction to her cousin Tybalt's death (which doesn't initially weigh much in her mind when her passionate feelings take over after the shock) along with the final scene at the tomb are some of the most genuine and impactful. In all these moments, it's not just the strength of a single emotion that shines through, but the unexpected shifts from one feeling to another, the intertwining flows of various emotions that rise and take over one after another, guided by the poet's brilliant mind, like waves rolling beneath a passing storm. So, when Juliet's complaints lead the Nurse to say, "Shame on Romeo," she quickly rejects the sentiment she herself created by responding—
And then follows on the neck of her remorse and returning fondness, that wish treading almost on the brink of impiety, but still held back by the strength of her devotion to her lord, that ‘father, mother, nay, or both were dead,’ rather than Romeo banished. If she requires any other excuse, it is in the manner in which Romeo echoes her frantic grief and disappointment in the next scene at being banished from her.—Perhaps one of the finest pieces of acting that ever was witnessed on the stage, is Mr. Kean’s manner of doing this scene and his repetition of the word, Banished. He treads close indeed upon the genius of his author.
And then comes her regret and lingering affection, a wish that flirts with crossing the line, but is still held back by her deep loyalty to her lord, that ‘father, mother, or even both were dead,’ rather than have Romeo be banished. If she needs any other reason, it’s how Romeo reflects her intense sorrow and disappointment about being separated from her in the next scene. —Perhaps one of the best performances ever seen on stage is Mr. Kean’s portrayal of this scene and his emphasis on the word, Banished. He truly comes close to the genius of his author.
A passage which this celebrated actor and able commentator on Shakespear (actors are the best commentators on the poets) did not give with equal truth or force of feeling was the one which Romeo makes at the tomb of Juliet, before he drinks the poison.
A passage that this famous actor and skilled commentator on Shakespeare (actors are the best commentators on poets) didn’t deliver with the same truth or intensity was the one Romeo speaks at Juliet's tomb before he drinks the poison.
The lines in this speech, describing the loveliness of Juliet, who is supposed to be dead, have been compared to those in which it is said of Cleopatra after her death, that she looked ‘as she would take another Antony in her strong toil of grace’; and a question has been started which is the finest, that we do not pretend to decide. We can more easily decide between Shakespear and any other author, than between him and himself.—Shall we quote any more passages to shew his genius or the beauty of Romeo and Juliet? At that rate, we might quote the whole. The late Mr. Sheridan, on being shewn a volume of the Beauties of Shakespear, very properly asked—‘But where are the other eleven?’ The character of Mercutio in this play is one of the most mercurial and spirited of the productions of Shakespear’s comic muse.
The lines in this speech that describe the beauty of Juliet, who is thought to be dead, have been compared to those that say Cleopatra looked "as if she would take another Antony in her strong grace" after her death. This raises the question of which is more beautiful, but we won’t claim to determine that. It’s easier to choose between Shakespeare and other authors than to pick between him and his own work. Should we quote more passages to show his genius or the beauty of Romeo & Juliet? If we did that, we might end up quoting the whole play. The late Mr. Sheridan, when shown a volume of the Beauties of Shakespeare, rightly asked, "But where are the other eleven?" The character of Mercutio in this play is one of the most lively and spirited creations of Shakespeare's comedic talent.
LEAR
We wish that we could pass this play over, and say nothing about it. All that we can say must fall far short of the subject; or even of what we ourselves conceive of it. To attempt to give a description of the play itself or of its effect upon the mind, is mere impertinence; yet we must say something.—It is then the best of all Shakespear’s plays, for it is the one in which he was the most in earnest. He was here fairly caught in the web of his own imagination. The passion which he has taken as his subject is that which strikes its root deepest into the human heart; of which the bond is 258the hardest to be unloosed; and the cancelling and tearing to pieces of which gives the greatest revulsion to the frame. This depth of nature, this force of passion, this tug and war of the elements of our being, this firm faith in filial piety, and the giddy anarchy and whirling tumult of the thoughts at finding this prop failing it, the contrast between the fixed, immoveable basis of natural affection, and the rapid, irregular starts of imagination, suddenly wrenched from all its accustomed holds and resting-places in the soul, this is what Shakespear has given, and what nobody else but he could give. So we believe.—The mind of Lear, staggering between the weight of attachment and the hurried movements of passion, is like a tall ship driven about by the winds, buffetted by the furious waves, but that still rides above the storm, having its anchor fixed in the bottom of the sea; or it is like the sharp rock circled by the eddying whirlpool that foams and beats against it, or like the solid promontory pushed from its basis by the force of an earthquake.
We wish we could skip talking about this play and say nothing at all. Whatever we do say will never capture the full essence of the subject or even our own understanding of it. Trying to describe the play or its impact on the mind feels pointless, but we have to say something. So, this is the best of all Shakespeare's plays because it's the one where he was the most sincere. He got completely caught up in the web of his own imagination. The theme he chose strikes the deepest roots in the human heart; its ties are the hardest to break, and the process of breaking them causes the greatest upheaval in our being. This deep insight into human nature, this intense passion, the struggle of our inner elements, this strong belief in family loyalty, and the chaotic whirlwind of thoughts when that foundation crumbles—this contrast between the stable ground of natural affection and the sudden, erratic shifts of imagination, wrenched from all its usual anchors in the soul—is what Shakespeare has presented, and no one else could do it like he does. That's our belief. The mind of Lear, caught between the weight of love and the rapid movements of passion, is like a tall ship tossed by the winds, battered by fierce waves, yet still maintaining its position above the storm, anchored deep in the sea; or like a sharp rock surrounded by a swirling whirlpool that crashes against it, or like a solid cliff being uprooted by an earthquake.
The character of Lear itself is very finely conceived for the purpose. It is the only ground on which such a story could be built with the greatest truth and effect. It is his rash haste, his violent impetuosity, his blindness to every thing but the dictates of his passions or affections, that produces all his misfortunes, that aggravates his impatience of them, that enforces our pity for him. The part which Cordelia bears in the scene is extremely beautiful: the story is almost told in the first words she utters. We see at once the precipice on which the poor old king stands from his own extravagant and credulous importunity, the indiscreet simplicity of her love (which, to be sure, has a little of her father’s obstinacy in it) and the hollowness of her sisters’ pretensions. Almost the first burst of that noble tide of passion, which runs through the play, is in the remonstrance of Kent to his royal master on the injustice of his sentence against his youngest daughter—‘Be Kent unmannerly, when Lear is mad!’ This manly plainness, which draws down on him the displeasure of the unadvised king, is worthy of the fidelity with which he adheres to his fallen fortunes. The true character of the two eldest daughters, Regan and Gonerill (they are so thoroughly hateful that we do not even like to repeat their names) breaks out in their answer to Cordelia who desires them to treat their father well—‘Prescribe not us our duties’—their hatred of advice being in proportion to their determination to do wrong, and to their hypocritical pretensions to do right. Their deliberate hypocrisy adds the last finishing to the odiousness of their characters. It is the absence of this detestable quality that is the only relief in the character of Edmund the Bastard, and that at times reconciles us to him. We are not tempted to exaggerate the 259guilt of his conduct, when he himself gives it up as a bad business, and writes himself down ‘plain villain.’ Nothing more can be said about it. His religious honesty in this respect is admirable. One speech of his is worth a million. His father, Gloster, whom he has just deluded with a forged story of his brother Edgar’s designs against his life, accounts for his unnatural behaviour and the strange depravity of the times from the late eclipses in the sun and moon. Edmund, who is in the secret, says when he is gone—‘This is the excellent foppery of the world, that when we are sick in fortune (often the surfeits of our own behaviour) we make guilty of our disasters the sun, the moon, and stars: as if we were villains on necessity; fools by heavenly compulsion; knaves, thieves, and treacherous by spherical predominance; drunkards, liars, and adulterers by an enforced obedience of planetary influence; and all that we are evil in, by a divine thrusting on. An admirable evasion of whore-master man, to lay his goatish disposition on the charge of a star! My father compounded with my mother under the Dragon’s tail, and my nativity was under Ursa Major: so that it follows, I am rough and lecherous. Tut! I should have been what I am, had the maidenliness star in the firmament twinkled on my bastardising.’—The whole character, its careless, light-hearted villainy, contrasted with the sullen, rancorous malignity of Regan and Gonerill, its connection with the conduct of the under-plot, in which Gloster’s persecution of one of his sons and the ingratitude of another, form a counterpart to the mistakes and misfortunes of Lear,—his double amour with the two sisters, and the share which he has in bringing about the fatal catastrophe, are all managed with an uncommon degree of skill and power.
The character of Lear is very well-designed for the story’s purpose. It’s the only foundation on which such a narrative can be built with the greatest truth and impact. His rashness, violent impulsiveness, and his blindness to everything except what his passions or affections dictate lead to all his misfortunes, intensify his impatience with them, and compel our pity for him. Cordelia's role in the scene is extremely beautiful: the story is almost revealed in her first words. We immediately see how near the poor old king is to disaster due to his extravagant and gullible insistence, the naive simplicity of her love (which, admittedly, carries some of her father's stubbornness), and the emptiness of her sisters’ claims. Almost the first surge of that noble wave of passion that runs through the play comes from Kent’s protest to his royal master about the injustice of his sentence against his youngest daughter—‘Be Kent unmannerly, when Lear is mad!’ This straightforward bravery, which brings down the king’s anger on him, reflects the loyalty he shows as he sticks by his fallen fortunes. The true nature of the two oldest daughters, Regan and Gonerill (who are so utterly detestable that we don’t even want to repeat their names), is revealed in their response to Cordelia, who asks them to treat their father well—‘Prescribe not us our duties’—their aversion to advice correlating with their commitment to doing wrong and their hypocritical facade of doing right. Their conscious deceit adds the final touch to the repulsiveness of their characters. The absence of this loathsome trait is the only relief in the character of Edmund the Bastard, and at times makes us more sympathetic to him. We are not inclined to exaggerate the guilt of his actions when he admits it's a losing game and labels himself a ‘plain villain.’ Nothing more can be said about it. His honesty in this regard is commendable. One of his speeches is worth a million. His father, Gloucester, whom he just misled with a fabricated story about his brother Edgar plotting against his life, explains his unnatural behavior and the strange moral decline of the times by attributing it to the recent eclipses of the sun and moon. Edmund, who knows the truth, says after he leaves—‘This is the excellent foolishness of the world, that when we face misfortune (often the result of our own actions), we blame the sun, the moon, and stars for our disasters: as if we were compelled to be villains, fools by heavenly forces; crooks, thieves, and traitors by astrological dominance; drunkards, liars, and adulterers due to planetary influence; and all our evils thrust upon us by a divine push. An impressive escape for a man to shift his goat-like behavior onto the stars! My father hooked up with my mother under the Dragon’s tail, and I was born under Ursa Major: so it follows that I am rough and lecherous. Nonsense! I would have been what I am, even if the maidenly star had twinkled upon my illegitimacy.’—His entire character, with its carefree, light-hearted villainy, contrasts sharply with the brooding, bitter malice of Regan and Gonerill. Its connection to the subplot, where Gloucester's persecution of one son and the ingratitude of another serves as a parallel to Lear's mistakes and misfortunes—his double love for the two sisters, and his role in catalyzing the tragic outcome—all reflects a remarkable degree of skill and power.
It has been said, and we think justly, that the third act of Othello and the three first acts of Lear, are Shakespear’s great master-pieces in the logic of passion: that they contain the highest examples not only of the force of individual passion, but of its dramatic vicissitudes and striking effects arising from the different circumstances and characters of the persons speaking. We see the ebb and flow of the feeling, its pauses and feverish starts, its impatience of opposition, its accumulating force when it has time to recollect itself, the manner in which it avails itself of every passing word or gesture, its haste to repel insinuation, the alternate contraction and dilatation of the soul, and all ‘the dazzling fence of controversy’ in this mortal combat with poisoned weapons, aimed at the heart, where each wound is fatal. We have seen in Othello, how the unsuspecting frankness and impetuous passions of the Moor are played upon and exasperated by the artful dexterity of Iago. In the present play, that which aggravates the sense of sympathy in the reader, and of uncontroulable anguish in the 260swoln heart of Lear, is the petrifying indifference, the cold, calculating, obdurate selfishness of his daughters. His keen passions seem whetted on their stony hearts. The contrast would be too painful, the shock too great, but for the intervention of the Fool, whose well-timed levity comes in to break the continuity of feeling when it can no longer be borne, and to bring into play again the fibres of the heart just as they are growing rigid from overstrained excitement. The imagination is glad to take refuge in the half-comic, half-serious comments of the Fool, just as the mind under the extreme anguish of a surgical operation vents itself in sallies of wit. The character was also a grotesque ornament of the barbarous times, in which alone the tragic ground-work of the story could be laid. In another point of view it is indispensable, inasmuch as while it is a diversion to the too great intensity of our disgust, it carries the pathos to the highest pitch of which it is capable, by shewing the pitiable weakness of the old king’s conduct and its irretrievable consequences in the most familiar point of view. Lear may well ‘beat at the gate which let his folly in,’ after, as the Fool says, ‘he has made his daughters his mothers.’ The character is dropped in the third act to make room for the entrance of Edgar as Mad Tom, which well accords with the increasing bustle and wildness of the incidents; and nothing can be more complete than the distinction between Lear’s real and Edgar’s assumed madness, while the resemblance in the cause of their distresses, from the severing of the nearest ties of natural affection, keeps up a unity of interest. Shakespear’s mastery over his subject, if it was not art, was owing to a knowledge of the connecting links of the passions, and their effect upon the mind, still more wonderful than any systematic adherence to rules, and that anticipated and outdid all the efforts of the most refined art, not inspired and rendered instinctive by genius.
It has been said, and we believe rightfully, that the third act of Othello and the first three acts of Lear are Shakespeare's great masterpieces in the logic of passion. They showcase the strongest examples not only of the power of individual feelings but also of the dramatic shifts and impressive effects that arise from the different circumstances and personalities of the characters involved. We observe the rise and fall of emotions, their pauses and sudden bursts, their impatience with resistance, their building intensity when given time to gather themselves, the way they seize on every passing word or gesture, their rush to counter accusations, the alternation between contraction and expansion of the soul, and all "the dazzling fence of controversy" in this deadly battle with poisoned weapons aimed straight at the heart, where each strike is lethal. In Othello, we see how the unsuspecting honesty and intense emotions of the Moor are manipulated and provoked by Iago's cunning skill. In this play, what heightens the reader's sense of sympathy and the overwhelming agony in Lear's swollen heart is the chilling indifference and cold, calculating selfishness of his daughters. His sharp emotions seem to sharpen against their stony hearts. The contrast would be too painful, the shock too much to bear, if it weren’t for the Fool, whose timely humor interrupts the flow of feeling when it becomes unbearable, bringing back the heartstrings just as they're about to tighten from excessive tension. The imagination eagerly finds refuge in the Fool's half-comic, half-serious remarks, much like someone in extreme pain might resort to witty comments during a surgical procedure. The character was also a grotesque feature of the brutal times when the tragic foundation of the story could exist. From another perspective, it's essential because, while it provides a break from our overwhelming disgust, it also elevates the pathos to its highest potential by exposing the king's pitiable weakness and the irreversible consequences of his actions in a familiar way. Lear can rightly "beat at the gate that let his folly in," after, as the Fool remarks, "he has made his daughters his mothers." The character is set aside in the third act to make room for Edgar to enter as Mad Tom, which fits perfectly with the increasing chaos and wildness of the events; and nothing highlights more clearly the difference between Lear’s genuine madness and Edgar’s feigned insanity, while the similarity in the cause of their suffering—due to the severing of their closest natural bonds—maintains a shared interest. Shakespeare's mastery of his subject, if it wasn't purely art, came from a deep understanding of the connections between passions and their effects on the mind, which was even more remarkable than any systematic adherence to rules, surpassing all the efforts of the most refined techniques inspired and made instinctive by genius.
One of the most perfect displays of dramatic power is the first interview between Lear and his daughter, after the designed affronts upon him, which till one of his knights reminds him of them, his sanguine temperament had led him to overlook. He returns with his train from hunting, and his usual impatience breaks out in his first words, ‘Let me not stay a jot for dinner; go, get it ready.’ He then encounters the faithful Kent in disguise, and retains him in his service; and the first trial of his honest duty is to trip up the heels of the officious Steward who makes so prominent and despicable a figure through the piece. On the entrance of Gonerill the following dialogue takes place:—
One of the clearest examples of dramatic power is the first meeting between Lear and his daughter after the planned insults towards him, which his passionate nature had caused him to overlook until one of his knights reminded him. He returns with his entourage from hunting, and his usual impatience comes through in his first words, “Don’t make me wait even a second for dinner; go, get it ready.” He then meets the loyal Kent in disguise and keeps him in his service; the first test of his honest duty is to trip up the interfering Steward, who stands out as a particularly unpleasant character throughout the story. When Gonerill enters, the following dialogue occurs:—
261Fool. Thou wast a pretty fellow, when thou had’st no need to care for her frowning; now thou art an O without a figure: I am better than thou art now; I am a fool, thou art nothing.——Yes, forsooth, I will hold my tongue; [To Gonerill], so your face bids me, though you say nothing. Mum, mum.
261Fool. You were a charming guy when you didn’t have to worry about her disapproval; now you’re just a hollow shell. I’m better than you are now; I’m a fool, and you’re nothing.——Yes, indeed, I’ll stay quiet; [To Gonerill], your face tells me to, even if you don’t say a word. Mum, mum.
This is certainly fine: no wonder that Lear says after it, ‘O let me not be mad, not mad, sweet heavens,’ feeling its effects by anticipation; but fine as is this burst of rage and indignation at the first blow aimed at his hopes and expectations, it is nothing near so fine as what follows from his double disappointment, and his lingering efforts to see which of them he shall lean upon for support and find comfort in, when both his daughters turn against his age and weakness. It is with some difficulty that Lear gets to speak with his daughter Regan, and her husband, at Gloster’s castle. In concert with Gonerill they have left their own home on purpose to avoid him. His apprehensions are first alarmed by this circumstance, and 264when Gloster, whose guests they are, urges the fiery temper of the Duke of Cornwall as an excuse for not importuning him a second time, Lear breaks out—
This is certainly fine: no wonder Lear says afterward, ‘O let me not be mad, not mad, sweet heavens,’ anticipating its effects; but as powerful as this outburst of rage and indignation is at the first blow to his hopes and expectations, it pales in comparison to what comes next from his double disappointment and his ongoing struggle to decide which of his daughters he can rely on for support and comfort when both turn against his age and weakness. Lear has a hard time getting to speak with his daughter Regan and her husband at Gloucester’s castle. Along with Gonerill, they have intentionally left their own home to avoid him. This situation first raises Lear's apprehensions, and when Gloucester, their host, mentions the fiery temper of the Duke of Cornwall as a reason for not pressing him a second time, Lear erupts— 264
Afterwards, feeling perhaps not well himself, he is inclined to admit their excuse from illness, but then recollecting that they have set his messenger (Kent) in the stocks, all his suspicions are roused again, and he insists on seeing them.
Afterwards, feeling maybe unwell himself, he tends to accept their excuse of illness, but then remembering that they put his messenger (Kent) in the stocks, all his suspicions are stirred up again, and he insists on seeing them.
If there is any thing in any author like this yearning of the heart, these throes of tenderness, this profound expression of all that can be thought and felt in the most heart-rending situations, we are glad of it; but it is in some author that we have not read.
If there’s anything in any author that captures this longing of the heart, these moments of tenderness, this deep expression of everything that can be thought and felt in the most heartbreaking situations, we appreciate it; but it’s in some author we haven’t read.
The scene in the storm, where he is exposed to all the fury of the elements, though grand and terrible, is not so fine, but the moralising scenes with Mad Tom, Kent, and Gloster, are upon a par with the former. His exclamation in the supposed trial-scene of his daughters, ‘See the little dogs and all, Tray, Blanch, and Sweetheart, see they bark at me,’ his issuing his orders, ‘Let them anatomize Regan, see what breeds about her heart,’ and his reflection when he sees the misery of Edgar, ‘Nothing but his unkind daughters could have brought him to this,’ are in a style of pathos, where the extremest resources of the imagination are called in to lay open the deepest movements of the heart, which was peculiar to Shakespear. In the same style and spirit is his interrupting the Fool who asks ‘whether a madman be a gentleman or a yeoman,’ by answering ‘A king, a king.—
The scene in the storm, where he faces the full force of the elements, although both grand and terrifying, isn't as impressive as the emotional moments with Mad Tom, Kent, and Gloster, which match the former in intensity. His cry during the supposed trial of his daughters, ‘Look at the little dogs and all, Tray, Blanch, and Sweetheart, see how they bark at me,’ his commands, ‘Let them examine Regan, see what lurks in her heart,’ and his reflection upon seeing Edgar's suffering, ‘Only his cruel daughters could have brought him to this,’ all carry a sense of deep emotion, drawing on the fullest capabilities of the imagination to reveal the most profound feelings of the heart, which was a hallmark of Shakespeare. In a similar style and spirit, he interrupts the Fool, who asks ‘whether a madman is a gentleman or a yeoman,’ by responding, ‘A king, a king.’
The indirect part that Gloster takes in these scenes where his generosity leads him to relieve Lear and resent the cruelty of his daughters, at the very time that he is himself instigated to seek the life of his son, and suffering under the sting of his supposed ingratitude, is a striking accompaniment to the situation of Lear. Indeed, the manner in which the threads of the story are woven together is almost as wonderful in the way of art as the carrying on the tide of passion, still varying and unimpaired, is on the score of nature. Among the remarkable instances of this kind are Edgar’s meeting with his old blind father; the deception he practises upon him when he pretends to lead him to the top of Dover-cliff—‘Come on, sir, here’s the place,’ to prevent his ending his life and miseries together; his encounter with the perfidious Steward whom he kills, and his finding the letter from Gonerill to his brother upon him which leads to the final catastrophe, and brings the wheel of Justice ‘full circle home’ to the guilty parties. The bustle and rapid succession of events in the last scenes is surprising. But the meeting between Lear and Cordelia is by far the most affecting part of them. It has all the wildness of poetry, and all the heart-felt truth of nature. The 269previous account of her reception of the news of his unkind treatment, her involuntary reproaches to her sisters, ‘Shame, ladies, shame,’ Lear’s backwardness to see his daughter, the picture of the desolate state to which he is reduced, ‘Alack, ’tis he; why he was met even now, as mad as the vex’d sea, singing aloud,’ only prepare the way for and heighten our expectation of what follows, and assuredly this expectation is not disappointed when through the tender care of Cordelia he revives and recollects her.
The indirect role that Gloucester plays in these scenes, where his generosity drives him to help Lear and resent the cruelty of his daughters, even while he is being pushed to take his son's life and suffering from what he believes is his son's ingratitude, is a striking addition to Lear’s situation. In fact, the way the story threads are interwoven is almost as impressive in terms of artistry as the way the flow of emotion remains consistent and untouched in terms of nature. Notable examples include Edgar’s reunion with his blind father; the trick he plays on him by pretending to lead him to the edge of Dover cliff—‘Come on, sir, here’s the place,’ to prevent him from ending his life and suffering; his encounter with the treacherous steward whom he kills, and his discovery of the letter from Goneril to his brother on the steward's body, which leads to the ultimate catastrophe, bringing justice ‘full circle home’ to the guilty parties. The chaos and quick succession of events in the final scenes are astonishing. But the reunion between Lear and Cordelia is by far the most emotional part. It has all the intensity of poetry and all the heartfelt truth of reality. The earlier depiction of her reaction to the news of his mistreatment, her involuntary accusations toward her sisters, ‘Shame, ladies, shame,’ Lear’s hesitation to see his daughter, and the picture of his desolate state, ‘Alack, ’tis he; why, he was met just now, as mad as the vexed sea, singing aloud,’ only set the stage for and intensify our anticipation of what follows, and this anticipation is certainly fulfilled when, through Cordelia’s tender care, he revives and remembers her.
Almost equal to this in awful beauty is their consolation of each other when, after the triumph of their enemies, they are led to prison.
Almost equal to this in terrible beauty is how they comfort each other when, after their enemies' victory, they are taken to prison.
The concluding events are sad, painfully sad; but their pathos is extreme. The oppression of the feelings is relieved by the very interest we take in the misfortunes of others, and by the reflections to which they give birth. Cordelia is hanged in prison by the orders of the bastard Edmund, which are known too late to be countermanded, and Lear dies broken-hearted, lamenting over her.
The final events are sorrowful, deeply sorrowful; but their emotional weight is intense. The heaviness of our feelings is eased by the genuine concern we have for the misfortunes of others, and by the thoughts they provoke. Cordelia is hanged in prison on the orders of the illegitimate Edmund, and this is discovered too late to be stopped, while Lear dies heartbroken, mourning for her.
He dies, and indeed we feel the truth of what Kent says on the occasion—
He dies, and we really feel the truth of what Kent says at that moment—
Yet a happy ending has been contrived for this play, which is approved of by Dr. Johnson and condemned by Schlegel. A better authority than either, on any subject in which poetry and feeling are concerned, has given it in favour of Shakespear, in some remarks on the acting of Lear, with which we shall conclude this account:
Yet a happy ending has been crafted for this play, which is endorsed by Dr. Johnson and criticized by Schlegel. A more reliable authority than either, on any topic related to poetry and emotion, has supported Shakespear in some comments on the performance of Lear, with which we will finish this account:
‘The Lear of Shakespear cannot be acted. The contemptible machinery with which they mimic the storm which he goes out in, is not more inadequate to represent the horrors of the real elements than any actor can 271be to represent Lear. The greatness of Lear is not in corporal dimension, but in intellectual; the explosions of his passions are terrible as a volcano: they are storms turning up and disclosing to the bottom that rich sea, his mind, with all its vast riches. It is his mind which is laid bare. This case of flesh and blood seems too insignificant to be thought on; even as he himself neglects it. On the stage we see nothing but corporal infirmities and weakness, the impotence of rage—while we read it, we see not Lear, but we are Lear;—we are in his mind; we are sustained by a grandeur, which baffles the malice of daughters and storms; in the aberrations of his reason, we discover a mighty irregular power of reasoning, immethodised from the ordinary purposes of life, but exerting its powers, as the wind blows where it listeth, at will on the corruptions and abuses of mankind. What have looks or tones to do with that sublime identification of his age with that of the heavens themselves, when in his reproaches to them for conniving at the injustice of his children, he reminds them that “they themselves are old!” What gesture shall we appropriate to this? What has the voice or the eye to do with such things? But the play is beyond all art, as the tamperings with it shew: it is too hard and stony: it must have love-scenes, and a happy ending. It is not enough that Cordelia is a daughter, she must shine as a lover too. Tate has put his hook in the nostrils of this Leviathan, for Garrick and his followers, the shew-men of the scene, to draw it about more easily. A happy ending!—as if the living martyrdom that Lear had gone through,—the flaying of his feelings alive, did not make a fair dismissal from the stage of life the only decorous thing for him. If he is to live and be happy after, if he could sustain this world’s burden after, why all this pudder and preparation—why torment us with all this unnecessary sympathy? As if the childish pleasure of getting his gilt robes and sceptre again could tempt him to act over again his misused station,—as if at his years and with his experience, any thing was left but to die.’[68]
‘The Lear of Shakespeare cannot be performed. The clumsy effects used to imitate the storm he goes out into are as inadequate to convey the real horrors of nature as any actor can be to portray Lear. Lear's greatness isn't physical; it's intellectual. The eruptions of his emotions are as terrifying as a volcano: they are storms that reveal the depths of his mind, showcasing its vast wealth. It’s his mind that is exposed. This body of flesh and blood seems too insignificant to consider; even he overlooks it. On stage, we see only physical frailties and weakness, the powerlessness of rage—while we read it, we don't just see Lear; we become Lear;—we are in his mind; we are lifted by a magnificence that defies the cruelty of his daughters and the storms around him; in the distortions of his reasoning, we discover an incredible, untamed intelligence, diverging from life's common purposes but exerting its influence, like the wind that blows wherever it wants, upon the corruption and injustices of humanity. What do looks or voices have to do with that profound merging of his age with that of the heavens themselves when in his accusations against them for allowing his children's injustices, he reminds them that “they themselves are old!” What gesture can we assign to this? What do voice or sight matter in such matters? But the play transcends all artistic efforts, as the attempts to alter it reveal: it is too rigid and unyielding; it must include romantic scenes and a happy ending. It’s not enough that Cordelia is a daughter; she must also shine as a lover. Tate has pulled at the nostrils of this massive creature for Garrick and his followers, the showmen of the stage, to steer it more easily. A happy ending!—as if the real martyrdom Lear endured—the raw devastation of his feelings—doesn’t make a dignified exit from life the only suitable resolution for him. If he is to survive and be happy afterward, if he could endure this world’s burdens again, then why all this fuss and buildup—why bother us with all this unnecessary sympathy? As if the childish joy of regaining his gilded robes and scepter could persuade him to relive his wronged position—as if, at his age and with his experiences, anything remains but to die.’[68]
Four things have struck us in reading Lear:
Four things have stood out to us while reading Lear:
1. That poetry is an interesting study, for this reason, that it relates to whatever is most interesting in human life. Whoever therefore has a contempt for poetry, has a contempt for himself and humanity.
1. Poetry is an interesting subject because it connects to the most captivating aspects of human life. So, anyone who looks down on poetry is really looking down on themselves and humanity.
2. That the language of poetry is superior to the language of painting; because the strongest of our recollections relate to feelings, not to faces.
2. That the language of poetry is better than the language of painting; because our most vivid memories are tied to emotions, not to appearances.
3. That the greatest strength of genius is shewn in describing the strongest passions: for the power of the imagination, in works of invention, must be in proportion to the force of the natural impressions, which are the subject of them.
3. The greatest strength of genius is shown in describing the strongest emotions: because the power of imagination in creative works must match the intensity of the natural feelings they are based on.
4. That the circumstance which balances the pleasure against the 272pain in tragedy is, that in proportion to the greatness of the evil, is our sense and desire of the opposite good excited; and that our sympathy with actual suffering is lost in the strong impulse given to our natural affections, and carried away with the swelling tide of passion, that gushes from and relieves the heart.
4. The factor that balances pleasure against pain in tragedy is that as the severity of the evil increases, our awareness and yearning for the opposite good also heighten. Our sympathy for real suffering gets overwhelmed by the intense emotions that arise from and soothe the heart.
RICHARD II.
Richard II. is a play little known compared with Richard III. which last is a play that every unfledged candidate for theatrical fame chuses to strut and fret his hour upon the stage in; yet we confess that we prefer the nature and feeling of the one to the noise and bustle of the other; at least, as we are so often forced to see it acted. In Richard II. the weakness of the king leaves us leisure to take a greater interest in the misfortunes of the man. After the first act, in which the arbitrariness of his behaviour only proves his want of resolution, we see him staggering under the unlooked-for blows of fortune, bewailing his loss of kingly power, not preventing it, sinking under the aspiring genius of Bolingbroke, his authority trampled on, his hopes failing him, and his pride crushed and broken down under insults and injuries, which his own misconduct had provoked, but which he has not courage or manliness to resent. The change of tone and behaviour in the two competitors for the throne according to their change of fortune, from the capricious sentence of banishment passed by Richard upon Bolingbroke, the suppliant offers and modest pretensions of the latter on his return to the high and haughty tone with which he accepts Richard’s resignation of the crown after the loss of all his power, the use which he makes of the deposed king to grace his triumphal progress through the streets of London, and the final intimation of his wish for his death, which immediately finds a servile executioner, is marked throughout with complete effect and without the slightest appearance of effort. The steps by which Bolingbroke mounts the throne are those by which Richard sinks into the grave. We feel neither respect nor love for the deposed monarch; for he is as wanting in energy as in principle: but we pity him, for he pities himself. His heart is by no means hardened against himself, but bleeds afresh at every new stroke of mischance, and his sensibility, absorbed in his own person, and unused to misfortune, is not only tenderly alive to its own sufferings, but without the fortitude to bear them. He is, however, human in his distresses; for to feel pain, and sorrow, weakness, disappointment, remorse and 273anguish, is the lot of humanity, and we sympathize with him accordingly. The sufferings of the man make us forget that he ever was a king.
Richard II. is a play that's not as well-known compared to Richard III. which is a play that every aspiring actor wants to perform in; however, we admit that we prefer the nature and emotions of the former over the noise and chaos of the latter, at least in the performances we often see. In Richard II., the king's weakness allows us to take a deeper interest in the man's misfortunes. After the first act, where his arbitrary behavior only shows his lack of determination, we watch him struggle under the unexpected blows of fate, lamenting his loss of royal authority, unable to stop it, collapsing under Bolingbroke's ambition, his power trampled, his hopes dashed, and his pride shattered by insults and injuries provoked by his own actions, which he lacks the courage or masculinity to confront. The shift in tone and behavior between the two rivals for the throne reflects their changing fortunes—from Richard’s whimsical banishment of Bolingbroke, to Bolingbroke’s humble requests and modest claims upon his return, to his high and arrogant demeanor as he accepts Richard’s abdication after Richard has lost everything, to his use of the deposed king as a trophy in his triumphant march through London, culminating in his hints at wanting Richard dead, which immediately finds a willing executioner. Bolingbroke's path to the throne mirrors Richard’s descent into despair. We feel neither respect nor affection for the ousted king; he lacks both energy and principles. Yet, we feel pity for him because he feels pity for himself. His heart is not hardened; it aches with every new misfortune, and his sensitivity, fixated on his own experiences and unaccustomed to adversity, is not only painfully aware of its own suffering but also lacks the strength to endure it. However, he remains human in his suffering; to experience pain, sorrow, weakness, disappointment, remorse, and anguish is part of being human, and we empathize with him for that. The man's suffering makes us forget that he was ever a king.
The right assumed by sovereign power to trifle at its will with the happiness of others as a matter of course, or to remit its exercise as a matter of favour, is strikingly shewn in the sentence of banishment so unjustly pronounced on Bolingbroke and Mowbray, and in what Bolingbroke says when four years of his banishment are taken off, with as little reason.
The authority claimed by those in power to casually interfere with the happiness of others, or to choose not to exercise that power as an act of kindness, is clearly illustrated in the unfair banishment of Bolingbroke and Mowbray, and in what Bolingbroke says when four years of his exile are removed with just as little justification.
A more affecting image of the loneliness of a state of exile can hardly be given than by what Bolingbroke afterwards observes of his having ‘sighed his English breath in foreign clouds’; or than that conveyed in Mowbray’s complaint at being banished for life.
A more powerful depiction of the loneliness of being in exile can hardly be found than what Bolingbroke later says about having ‘sighed his English breath in foreign clouds’; or in Mowbray’s lament about being banished for life.
How very beautiful is all this, and at the same time how very English too!
How beautiful all of this is, and at the same time how very English too!
Richard II. may be considered as the first of that series of English historical plays, in which ‘is hung armour of the invincible knights of old,’ in which their hearts seem to strike against their coats of mail, where their blood tingles for the fight, and words are but the harbingers of blows. Of this state of accomplished barbarism the appeal of Bolingbroke and Mowbray is an admirable specimen. Another of these ‘keen encounters of their wits,’ which serve to whet the talkers’ swords, is where Aumerle answers in the presence of Bolingbroke to the charge which Bagot brings against him of being an accessory in Gloster’s death.
Richard II. can be seen as the first in a series of English historical plays, where the "invincible knights of old" are depicted in their armor, their hearts pounding against their mail, their blood eager for battle, and words that serve as only preambles to the fight. Bolingbroke and Mowbray’s confrontation is a great example of this raw, intense state. Another example of these "sharp exchanges of wit," which sharpen the speakers' verbal swords, occurs when Aumerle responds in front of Bolingbroke to the accusation from Bagot about his involvement in Gloster's death.
The truth is, that there is neither truth nor honour in all these noble persons: they answer words with words, as they do blows with blows, in mere self defence: nor have they any principle whatever but that of courage in maintaining any wrong they dare commit, or any falsehood which they find it useful to assert. How different were these noble knights and ‘barons bold’ from their more refined descendants in the present day, who, instead of deciding questions of right by brute force, refer everything to convenience, 275fashion, and good breeding! In point of any abstract love of truth or justice, they are just the same now that they were then.
The truth is, there’s no truth or honor among these so-called noble people: they respond to words with words, just as they do to blows with blows, purely out of self-defense. They have no principles except for the courage to defend any wrongdoing they’re willing to commit or any lie they find convenient to tell. How different these noble knights and ‘bold barons’ are from their more polished descendants today, who, instead of resolving issues through brute force, rely on convenience, trends, and good manners! In terms of any genuine love for truth or justice, they’re exactly the same now as they were back then. 275
The characters of old John of Gaunt and of his brother York, uncles to the King, the one stern and foreboding, the other honest, good-natured, doing all for the best, and therefore doing nothing, are well kept up. The speech of the former, in praise of England, is one of the most eloquent that ever was penned. We should perhaps hardly be disposed to feed the pampered egotism of our countrymen by quoting this description, were it not that the conclusion of it (which looks prophetic) may qualify any improper degree of exultation.
The characters of old John of Gaunt and his brother York, who are the King’s uncles—one being stern and gloomy, the other honest and good-natured, always trying to do what’s best yet achieving little—are well portrayed. The speech of the former, praising England, is one of the most eloquent ever written. We might hesitate to indulge the selfish pride of our countrymen by quoting this description if it weren't for the prophetic ending, which might temper any excessive sense of pride.
The character of Bolingbroke, afterwards Henry IV. is drawn with a masterly hand:—patient for occasion, and then steadily availing himself of it, seeing his advantage afar off, but only seizing on it when he has it within his reach, humble, crafty, bold, and aspiring, encroaching by regular but slow degrees, building power on opinion, and cementing opinion by power. His disposition is first unfolded 276by Richard himself, who however is too self-willed and secure to make a proper use of his knowledge.
The character of Bolingbroke, later known as Henry IV., is depicted with great skill: he patiently waits for the right moment and then confidently takes advantage of it, recognizing opportunities from a distance but only acting when they are within his grasp. He is humble, clever, daring, and ambitious, gradually making his way up and building power through public opinion while reinforcing that opinion with actual power. His true nature is first revealed by Richard, who, however, is too stubborn and complacent to use this insight wisely. 276
Afterwards, he gives his own character to Percy, in these words:
Afterward, he describes Percy’s character in these terms:
We know how he afterwards kept his promise. His bold assertion of his own rights, his pretended submission to the king, and the ascendancy which he tacitly assumes over him without openly claiming it, as soon as he has him in his power, are characteristic traits of this ambitious and politic usurper. But the part of Richard himself gives the chief interest to the play. His folly, his vices, his misfortunes, his reluctance to part with the crown, his fear to keep it, his weak and womanish regrets, his starting tears, his fits of hectic passion, his smothered majesty, pass in succession before us, and make a picture as natural as it is affecting. Among the most striking touches of pathos are his wish ‘O that I were a mockery king of snow to melt away before the sun of Bolingbroke,’ and the incident of the poor groom who comes to visit him in prison, and tells him how ‘it yearned his heart that Bolingbroke upon his coronation-day rode on Roan Barbary.’ We shall have occasion to return hereafter to the character of Richard II. in speaking of Henry VI. There is only one passage more, the description of his entrance into London with Bolingbroke, which we should like to quote here, if it had not been so used and worn out, so thumbed and got by rote, so praised and painted; but its beauty surmounts all these considerations.
We know how he later kept his promise. His bold claim to his own rights, his fake submission to the king, and the control he quietly assumes over him without openly claiming it, as soon as he has power, are hallmark traits of this ambitious and calculating usurper. But Richard's part is what really drives the play. His foolishness, his flaws, his downfalls, his unwillingness to give up the crown, his fear of keeping it, his weak and emotional regrets, his sudden tears, his fits of intense passion, and his stifled majesty pass before us one after another, creating a picture that is as genuine as it is moving. Some of the most impactful moments are his wish, ‘O that I were a mockery king of snow to melt away before the sun of Bolingbroke,’ and the scene with the poor groom who visits him in prison and tells him how ‘it yearned his heart that Bolingbroke upon his coronation-day rode on Roan Barbary.’ We will have the opportunity to revisit Richard II. when we talk about Henry VI. There's only one more passage, the description of his entrance into London with Bolingbroke, that we would like to quote here, if it hadn't been so frequently used, so over-familiar, so memorized, so praised and depicted; but its beauty transcends all those considerations.
HENRY IV
IN TWO PARTS
If Shakespear’s fondness for the ludicrous sometimes led to faults in his tragedies (which was not often the case) he has made us amends by the character of Falstaff. This is perhaps the most substantial comic character that ever was invented. Sir John carries a most portly presence in the mind’s eye; and in him, not to speak it 278profanely, ‘we behold the fulness of the spirit of wit and humour bodily.’ We are as well acquainted with his person as his mind, and his jokes come upon us with double force and relish from the quantity of flesh through which they make their way, as he shakes his fat sides with laughter, or ‘lards the lean earth as he walks along.’ Other comic characters seem, if we approach and handle them, to resolve themselves into air, ‘into thin air’; but this is embodied and palpable to the grossest apprehension: it lies ‘three fingers deep upon the ribs,’ it plays about the lungs and the diaphragm with all the force of animal enjoyment. His body is like a good estate to his mind, from which he receives rents and revenues of profit and pleasure in kind, according to its extent, and the richness of the soil. Wit is often a meagre substitute for pleasurable sensation; an effusion of spleen and petty spite at the comforts of others, from feeling none in itself. Falstaff’s wit is an emanation of a fine constitution; an exuberance of good-humour and good-nature; an overflowing of his love of laughter and good-fellowship; a giving vent to his heart’s ease, and over-contentment with himself and others. He would not be in character, if he were not so fat as he is; for there is the greatest keeping in the boundless luxury of his imagination and the pampered self-indulgence of his physical appetites. He manures and nourishes his mind with jests, as he does his body with sack and sugar. He carves out his jokes, as he would a capon or a haunch of venison, where there is cut and come again; and pours out upon them the oil of gladness. His tongue drops fatness, and in the chambers of his brain ‘it snows of meat and drink.’ He keeps up perpetual holiday and open house, and we live with him in a round of invitations to a rump and dozen.—Yet we are not to suppose that he was a mere sensualist. All this is as much in imagination as in reality. His sensuality does not engross and stupify his other faculties, but ‘ascends me into the brain, clears away all the dull, crude vapours that environ it, and makes it full of nimble, fiery, and delectable shapes.’ His imagination keeps up the ball after his senses have done with it. He seems to have even a greater enjoyment of the freedom from restraint, of good cheer, of his ease, of his vanity, in the ideal exaggerated description which he gives of them, than in fact. He never fails to enrich his discourse with allusions to eating and drinking, but we never see him at table. He carries his own larder about with him, and he is himself ‘a tun of man.’ His pulling out the bottle in the field of battle is a joke to shew his contempt for glory accompanied with danger, his systematic adherence to his Epicurean philosophy in the most trying circumstances. Again, such is his deliberate exaggeration of his own vices, that it 279does not seem quite certain whether the account of his hostess’s bill, found in his pocket, with such an out-of-the-way charge for capons and sack with only one halfpenny-worth of bread, was not put there by himself as a trick to humour the jest upon his favourite propensities, and as a conscious caricature of himself. He is represented as a liar, a braggart, a coward, a glutton, etc. and yet we are not offended but delighted with him; for he is all these as much to amuse others as to gratify himself. He openly assumes all these characters to shew the humourous part of them. The unrestrained indulgence of his own ease, appetites, and convenience, has neither malice nor hypocrisy in it. In a word, he is an actor in himself almost as much as upon the stage, and we no more object to the character of Falstaff in a moral point of view than we should think of bringing an excellent comedian, who should represent him to the life, before one of the police offices. We only consider the number of pleasant lights in which he puts certain foibles (the more pleasant as they are opposed to the received rules and necessary restraints of society) and do not trouble ourselves about the consequences resulting from them, for no mischievous consequences do result. Sir John is old as well as fat, which gives a melancholy retrospective tinge to the character; and by the disparity between his inclinations and his capacity for enjoyment, makes it still more ludicrous and fantastical.
If Shakespeare’s love for the ridiculous sometimes led to flaws in his tragedies (which wasn’t usually the case), he more than made up for it with the character of Falstaff. This is probably the most substantial comic character ever created. Sir John has a very noticeable presence in our minds; and in him, not to say it irreverently, ‘we see the fullness of wit and humor in physical form.’ We're as familiar with his appearance as we are with his personality, and his jokes hit us with double impact and delight due to the ample flesh through which they come, as he laughs heartily or ‘covers the lean earth as he walks.’ Other comic characters seem to dissolve into nothingness if we get too close, 'into thin air'; but Falstaff is solid and tangible, playing on our senses with all the joy of physical enjoyment. His body is like a well-maintained estate for his mind, providing him with profits and pleasures depending on its size and the richness of its resources. Wit often serves as a poor substitute for genuine enjoyment; it can be an outpouring of bitterness and petty jealousy at the happiness of others, simply because one has none themselves. Falstaff’s wit, however, comes from his robust constitution; it’s an overflow of good cheer and goodwill, a release of his love for laughter and camaraderie; it expresses his contentment and satisfaction with himself and others. He wouldn’t be true to his character without being so overweight, as there’s a perfect balance in the limitless luxury of his imagination and his indulgent appetites. He feeds his mind with jokes, just as he feeds his body with wine and sweets. He crafts his jokes like he would a rich meal, where there’s always plenty to go around, and he douses them with joy. His words are full of richness, and in his mind, ‘it snows food and drink.’ He lives in a perpetual state of celebration and hospitality, inviting us to join him in endless feasts.—Yet we shouldn’t think of him as just a hedonist. All this is as much in his imagination as it is in reality. His enjoyment of life's pleasures doesn't dull his other senses; instead, it ‘lifts me up to my brain, clears away all the dull, crude vapors surrounding it, and fills it with quick, fiery, and delightful images.’ His imagination keeps the party going even after his senses are done. He seems to take even more joy in his unrestrained freedom, good food, leisure, and vanity in the exaggerated tales he tells than in the actual experience. He frequently spices up his conversations with references to food and drink, but we never see him at the dinner table. He carries his own pantry with him, and he embodies ‘a cask of a man.’ When he pulls out a bottle on the battlefield, it’s a comedic statement about his disregard for honor in the face of danger and his loyalty to his hedonistic philosophy even in tough situations. Also, the way he exaggerates his own faults makes it unclear if the bill from his landlady, found in his pocket, with its bizarre charges for capons and wine with just a tiny amount for bread, was actually planted there by him as a joke to poke fun at his own indulgences and as a self-aware caricature. He’s depicted as a liar, a braggart, a coward, a glutton, and so on, yet we find him endearing rather than offensive; he embodies these traits more for the amusement of others than for his own gratification. He fully embraces these characteristics to highlight the humorous aspects of them. His complete surrender to his own pleasures, desires, and convenience is free of malice or deceit. In short, he is a performer in his own right just as much as on stage, and we don’t view Falstaff’s character through a moral lens any more than we would criticize an excellent actor who portrayed him authentically in front of the police. We focus on the various humorous ways he showcases certain shortcomings (even more humorous as they challenge accepted social norms and necessary rules) and don't concern ourselves with any resulting consequences, as none actually follow. Sir John is both old and fat, which adds a touch of melancholy to his character; and the gap between his desires and his ability to enjoy life makes him even more amusing and whimsical.
The secret of Falstaff’s wit is for the most part a masterly presence of mind, an absolute self-possession, which nothing can disturb. His repartees are involuntary suggestions of his self-love; instinctive evasions of every thing that threatens to interrupt the career of his triumphant jollity and self-complacency. His very size floats him out of all his difficulties in a sea of rich conceits; and he turns round on the pivot of his convenience, with every occasion and at a moment’s warning. His natural repugnance to every unpleasant thought or circumstance, of itself makes light of objections, and provokes the most extravagant and licentious answers in his own justification. His indifference to truth puts no check upon his invention, and the more improbable and unexpected his contrivances are, the more happily does he seem to be delivered of them, the anticipation of their effect acting as a stimulus to the gaiety of his fancy. The success of one adventurous sally gives him spirits to undertake another: he deals always in round numbers, and his exaggerations and excuses are ‘open, palpable, monstrous as the father that begets them.’ His dissolute carelessness of what he says discovers itself in the first dialogue with the Prince.
The key to Falstaff’s humor is mainly his strong presence of mind and complete self-control, which nothing can shake. His witty comebacks are just instinctive reflections of his self-love; he cleverly sidesteps anything that threatens to disrupt his carefree joy and self-satisfaction. His large size helps him glide through challenges in a sea of clever ideas, and he can quickly adapt to any situation on a whim. His natural aversion to unpleasant thoughts or situations makes it easy for him to dismiss objections, leading to wildly exaggerated and outrageous justifications for himself. His indifference to the truth doesn’t limit his creativity; in fact, the more absurd and unexpected his ideas are, the happier he seems when he comes up with them, the thought of their impact fueling the joy of his imagination. The success of one bold remark boosts his confidence for the next: he always works in broad strokes, and his exaggerations and excuses are as clear and outrageous as the very origins of those stories. His careless attitude toward his words is evident right from his first conversation with the Prince.
‘Falstaff. By the lord, thou say’st true, lad; and is not mine hostess of the tavern a most sweet wench?
‘Falstaff. By golly, you’re right, kid; and isn’t the tavern hostess a really nice woman?
280P. Henry. As the honey of Hibla, my old lad of the castle; and is not a buff-jerkin a most sweet robe of durance?
280P. Henry. Like the honey from Hibla, my old friend in the castle; and isn’t a buff jacket a really nice garment to wear while in captivity?
Falstaff. How now, how now, mad wag, what in thy quips and thy quiddities? what a plague have I to do with a buff-jerkin?
Falstaff. What's up now, you crazy joker? What's with all your jokes and nonsense? Why on earth should I care about a padded jacket?
P. Henry. Why, what a pox have I to do with mine hostess of the tavern?’
P. Henry. Why on earth should I care about the tavern owner?
In the same scene he afterwards affects melancholy, from pure satisfaction of heart, and professes reform, because it is the farthest thing in the world from his thoughts. He has no qualms of conscience, and therefore would as soon talk of them as of anything else when the humour takes him.
In the same scene, he later pretends to be sad, simply out of pure satisfaction, and claims he wants to change, because that’s the last thing on his mind. He feels no guilt, so he’d just as easily talk about it as anything else when he’s in the mood.
‘Falstaff. But Hal, I pr’ythee trouble me no more with vanity. I would to God thou and I knew where a commodity of good names were to be bought: an old lord of council rated me the other day in the street about you, sir; but I mark’d him not, and yet he talked very wisely, and in the street too.
‘Falstaff. But Hal, please don’t bother me anymore with nonsense. I wish to God you and I knew where we could get some good names: an old council lord scolded me the other day in the street about you, sir; but I ignored him, and even so, he spoke quite wisely, and right there on the street.
P. Henry. Thou didst well, for wisdom cries out in the street, and no man regards it.
P. Henry. You did well, because wisdom calls out in the street, and no one pays attention to it.
Falstaff. O, thou hast damnable iteration, and art indeed able to corrupt a saint. Thou hast done much harm unto me, Hal; God forgive thee for it. Before I knew thee, Hal, I knew nothing, and now I am, if a man should speak truly, little better than one of the wicked. I must give over this life, and I will give it over, by the lord; an I do not, I am a villain. I’ll be damn’d for never a king’s son in Christendom.
Falstaff. Oh, you have a terrible way of repeating yourself, and you really can lead a saint astray. You've caused me a lot of trouble, Hal; I hope God forgives you for it. Before I met you, Hal, I was clueless, and now, if we're being honest, I'm hardly any better than one of the wicked. I have to stop living this way, and I will stop, I swear; if I don't, I’ll be a scoundrel. I’ll be damned for not being a king’s son in all of Christendom.
P. Henry. Where shall we take a purse to-morrow, Jack?
P. Henry. Where should we grab a purse tomorrow, Jack?
Falstaff. Where thou wilt, lad, I’ll make one; an I do not, call me villain, and baffle me.
Falstaff. Wherever you want, kid, I’ll create one; if I don’t, call me a villain and mess me up.
P. Henry. I see good amendment of life in thee, from praying to purse-taking.
P. Henry. I see a positive change in you, going from praying to actually taking action.
Falstaff. Why, Hal, ’tis my vocation, Hal. ’Tis no sin for a man to labour in his vocation.’
Falstaff. Why, Hal, it’s my calling, Hal. It’s not a sin for a man to work in his calling.
Of the other prominent passages, his account of his pretended resistance to the robbers, ‘who grew from four men in buckram into eleven’ as the imagination of his own valour increased with his relating it, his getting off when the truth is discovered by pretending he knew the Prince, the scene in which in the person of the old king he lectures the prince and gives himself a good character, the soliloquy on honour, and description of his new-raised recruits, his meeting with the chief justice, his abuse of the Prince and Poins, who overhear him, to Doll Tearsheet, his reconciliation with Mrs. Quickly who has arrested him for an old debt, and whom he persuades to pawn her plate to lend him ten pounds more, and the scenes with Shallow and Silence, are all inimitable. Of all of them, the scene in which 281Falstaff plays the part, first, of the King, and then of Prince Henry, is the one that has been the most often quoted. We must quote it once more in illustration of our remarks.
Of the other notable moments, his story about pretending to resist the robbers, "who grew from four men in costumes to eleven" as his own bravery expanded with each telling, his escape when the truth comes out by claiming he knew the Prince, the part where he lectures the Prince as the old king while boosting his own reputation, the monologue on honor, the description of his newly recruited soldiers, his encounter with the chief justice, his insults toward the Prince and Poins, who overhear him, to Doll Tearsheet, his making amends with Mrs. Quickly who arrested him for an old debt, convincing her to pawn her silver to lend him ten more pounds, and the interactions with Shallow and Silence, are all unmatched. Of all these, the scene where 281Falstaff plays both the King and Prince Henry is the most frequently quoted. We should quote it again to illustrate our points.
‘Falstaff. Harry, I do not only marvel where thou spendest thy time, but also how thou art accompanied: for though the camomile, the more it is trodden on, the faster it grows, yet youth, the more it is wasted, the sooner it wears. That thou art my son, I have partly thy mother’s word, partly my own opinion; but chiefly, a villainous trick of thine eye, and a foolish hanging of thy nether lip, that doth warrant me. If then thou be son to me, here lies the point;——Why, being son to me, art thou so pointed at? Shall the blessed sun of heaven prove a micher, and eat blackberries? A question not to be ask’d. Shall the son of England prove a thief, and take purses? a question not to be ask’d. There is a thing, Harry, which thou hast often heard of, and it is known to many in our land by the name of pitch: this pitch, as ancient writers do report, doth defile; so doth the company thou keepest: for, Harry, now I do not speak to thee in drink, but in tears; not in pleasure, but in passion; not in words only, but in woes also:—and yet there is a virtuous man, whom I have often noted in thy company, but I know not his name.
‘Falstaff. Harry, I not only wonder where you're spending your time, but also who you’re hanging out with. Because while chamomile grows faster the more it’s walked on, youth wears out quicker the more it’s wasted. That you’re my son, I have partly your mother’s word and partly my own opinion; but mainly, it’s that sneaky look in your eye and that silly way you hang your lower lip that convince me. If you are indeed my son, here’s the issue:—Why, being my son, are you so criticized? Should the blessed sun of heaven be a slacker, and munch on blackberries? That’s not a question to ask. Should the son of England be a thief and pick pockets? That’s also not a question to ask. There’s something, Harry, that you’ve heard of, and many in our land know it as pitch: this pitch, as ancient writers claim, is corrupting; and so is the company you keep. For, Harry, I’m not speaking to you while drunk, but with tears; not in enjoyment, but in sincerity; not just in words, but in genuine sorrow as well:—and yet, there’s a virtuous man I’ve often seen in your company, but I don’t know his name.
P. Henry. What manner of man, an it like your majesty?
P. Henry. What kind of man is he, if it pleases your majesty?
Falstaff. A goodly portly man, i’faith, and a corpulent; of a cheerful look, a pleasing eye, and a most noble carriage; and, as I think, his age some fifty, or, by’r-lady, inclining to threescore; and now I do remember me, his name is Falstaff: if that man should be lewdly given, he deceiveth me; for, Harry, I see virtue in his looks. If then the fruit may be known by the tree, as the tree by the fruit, then peremptorily I speak it, there is virtue in that Falstaff: him keep with, the rest banish. And tell me now, thou naughty varlet, tell me, where hast thou been this month?
Falstaff. A jolly, hefty man, indeed, and quite plump; with a cheerful face, a pleasant eye, and a most dignified presence; and, if I recall correctly, he’s around fifty, or maybe even close to sixty; and now that I think about it, his name is Falstaff: if that man were morally corrupt, he would fool me; because, Harry, I see goodness in his appearance. If the fruit can be judged by the tree, just as the tree can be judged by its fruit, then I confidently say, there is goodness in that Falstaff: keep him close and banish the rest. And now tell me, you mischievous rascal, where have you been this month?
P. Henry. Dost thou speak like a king? Do thou stand for me, and I’ll play my father.
P. Henry. Do you talk like a king? You take my place, and I’ll be my father.
Falstaff. Depose me? if thou dost it half so gravely, so majestically, both in word and matter, hang me up by the heels for a rabbit-sucker, or a poulterer’s hare.
Falstaff. Depose me? If you do it even half as seriously and grandly, both in words and meaning, then hang me upside down like a rabbit's foot or a butcher’s hare.
P. Henry. Well, here I am set.
P. Henry. Well, here I am, all set.
Falstaff. And here I stand:—judge, my masters.
Falstaff. And here I am:—you decide, my friends.
P. Henry. Now, Harry, whence come you?
P. Henry. Now, Harry, where are you coming from?
Falstaff. My noble lord, from Eastcheap.
Falstaff. My lord, from Eastcheap.
P. Henry. The complaints I hear of thee are grievous.
P. Henry. The complaints I hear about you are serious.
Falstaff. S’blood, my lord, they are false:—nay, I ‘ll tickle ye for a young prince, i’faith.
Falstaff. Damn it, my lord, they’re lying:—I’ll mess with you for a young prince, I swear.
P. Henry. Swearest thou, ungracious boy? henceforth ne’er look on me. Thou art violently carried away from grace: there is a devil haunts thee, in the likeness of a fat old man; a tun of man is thy companion. Why dost thou converse with that trunk of humours, that bolting-hutch of beastliness, that swoln parcel of dropsies, that huge bombard of sack, that stuft cloak-bag of guts, that roasted Manning-tree ox with the pudding in his belly, that reverend vice, that grey iniquity, that father ruffian, that vanity in years? wherein is he good, but to taste sack and drink it? wherein neat 282and cleanly, but to carve a capon and eat it? wherein cunning, but in craft? wherein crafty, but in villainy? wherein villainous, but in all things? wherein worthy, but in nothing?
P. Henry. Are you serious, disrespectful kid? From now on, don’t look at me. You’re completely lost from grace; a devil is haunting you in the form of a fat old man; a big guy is your companion. Why do you hang out with that lump of nonsense, that barrel of filth, that swollen mess of excess, that huge drunkard, that stuffed bag of guts, that roasted ox with pudding in its belly, that despicable old man, that gray villain, that father of all ruffians, that foolishness with age? What is he good for, except to taste wine and drink it? What is he neat and tidy at, except carving a capon to eat? What is he clever at, except being crafty? What is he crafty at, except being a crook? What is he villainous at, except everything? What is he worthy of, except nothing?
Falstaff. I would, your grace would take me with you; whom means your grace?
Falstaff. I wish you would take me with you; who do you mean, your grace?
P. Henry. That villainous, abominable mis-leader of youth, Falstaff, that old white-bearded Satan.
P. Henry. That wicked, horrible misguidance of youth, Falstaff, that old white-bearded devil.
Falstaff. My lord, the man I know.
Falstaff. My lord, I know the guy.
P. Henry. I know thou dost.
P. Henry. I know you do.
Falstaff. But to say, I know more harm in him than in myself, were to say more than I know. That he is old (the more the pity) his white hairs do witness it: but that he is (saving your reverence) a whore-master, that I utterly deny. If sack and sugar be a fault, God help the wicked! if to be old and merry be a sin, then many an old host that I know is damned: if to be fat be to be hated, then Pharaoh’s lean kine are to be loved. No, my good lord; banish Peto, banish Bardolph, banish Poins: but for sweet Jack Falstaff, kind Jack Falstaff, true Jack Falstaff, valiant Jack Falstaff, and therefore more valiant, being as he is, old Jack Falstaff, banish not him thy Harry’s company; banish plump Jack, and banish all the world.
Falstaff. But to say I know more bad things about him than about myself would be to say more than I actually know. He is old (what a shame), and his white hair shows it: but that he is, with all due respect, a womanizer, I completely deny. If drinking too much wine and eating sweets is a crime, then God help the sinners! If being old and happy is a sin, then many an old innkeeper I know is doomed: if being fat is something to be despised, then Pharaoh’s skinny cows should be adored. No, my good lord; banish Peto, banish Bardolph, banish Poins: but don’t banish sweet Jack Falstaff, kind Jack Falstaff, true Jack Falstaff, valiant Jack Falstaff, and therefore even more valiant because he is, as he is, old Jack Falstaff, from your Harry’s company; if you banish plump Jack, you might as well banish the whole world.
P. Henry. I do, I will.
I do, I will.
Bardolph. O, my lord, my lord; the sheriff, with a most monstrous watch, is at the door.
Bardolph. Oh, my lord, my lord; the sheriff, with a huge group of guards, is at the door.
Falstaff. Out, you rogue! play out the play: I have much to say in the behalf of that Falstaff.’
Falstaff. Get lost, you trickster! Finish the performance: I have a lot to say on behalf of that Falstaff.
One of the most characteristic descriptions of Sir John is that which Mrs. Quickly gives of him when he asks her ‘What is the gross sum that I owe thee?’
One of the most distinctive descriptions of Sir John is the one Mrs. Quickly gives him when he asks her, "What's the total amount I owe you?"
‘Hostess. Marry, if thou wert an honest man, thyself, and the money too. Thou didst swear to me upon a parcel-gilt goblet, sitting in my Dolphin-chamber, at the round table, by a sea-coal fire on Wednesday in Whitsun-week, when the prince broke thy head for likening his father to a singing man of Windsor; thou didst swear to me then, as I was washing thy wound, to marry me, and make me my lady thy wife. Canst thou deny it? Did not goodwife Keech, the butcher’s wife, come in then, and call me gossip Quickly? coming in to borrow a mess of vinegar; telling us, she had a good dish of prawns; whereby thou didst desire to eat some; whereby I told thee, they were ill for a green wound? And didst thou not, when she was gone down stairs, desire me to be no more so familiarity with such poor people; saying, that ere long they should call me madam? And didst thou not kiss me, and bid me fetch thee thirty shillings? I put thee now to thy book-oath; deny it, if thou canst.’
Hostess. Seriously, if you were an honest man, you'd own up to it and to the money too. You swore to me on a fancy cup, sitting in my Dolphin room, at the round table, by a coal fire on Wednesday of Whitsun week, when the prince smashed your head for comparing his father to a singer from Windsor. You swore to me then, while I was cleaning your wound, that you would marry me and make me your lady. Can you deny it? Didn’t goodwife Keech, the butcher’s wife, come in then and call me gossip Quickly? She came in to borrow some vinegar, telling us she had a good dish of prawns, which made you want to eat some; I told you that they weren't good for a fresh wound. And didn’t you, when she went downstairs, ask me to not be so familiar with such poor people, saying that soon they'd call me madam? And didn’t you kiss me and tell me to get you thirty shillings? I challenge you now to deny it, if you can.
This scene is to us the most convincing proof of Falstaff’s power of gaining over the good will of those he was familiar with, except indeed 283Bardolph’s somewhat profane exclamation on hearing the account of his death, ‘Would I were with him, wheresoe’er he is, whether in heaven or hell.’
This scene is, for us, the strongest evidence of Falstaff's ability to win the favor of those he knew, except for Bardolph’s rather crude comment upon hearing about his death, ‘I wish I were with him, wherever he is, whether in heaven or hell.’
One of the topics of exulting superiority over others most common in Sir John’s mouth is his corpulence and the exterior marks of good living which he carries about him, thus ‘turning his vices into commodity.’ He accounts for the friendship between the Prince and Poins, from ‘their legs being both of a bigness’; and compares Justice Shallow to ‘a man made after supper of a cheese-paring.’ There cannot be a more striking gradation of character than that between Falstaff and Shallow, and Shallow and Silence. It seems difficult at first to fall lower than the squire; but this fool, great as he is, finds an admirer and humble foil in his cousin Silence. Vain of his acquaintance with Sir John, who makes a butt of him, he exclaims, ‘Would, cousin Silence, that thou had’st seen that which this knight and I have seen!’—‘Aye, Master Shallow, we have heard the chimes at midnight,’ says Sir John. To Falstaff’s observation ‘I did not think Master Silence had been a man of this mettle,’ Silence answers, ‘Who, I? I have been merry twice and once ere now.’ What an idea is here conveyed of a prodigality of living? What good husbandry and economical self-denial in his pleasures? What a stock of lively recollections? It is curious that Shakespear has ridiculed in Justice Shallow, who was ‘in some authority under the king,’ that disposition to unmeaning tautology which is the regal infirmity of later times, and which, it may be supposed, he acquired from talking to his cousin Silence, and receiving no answers.
One of the things Sir John loves to brag about is his size and the clear signs of his good living that he carries with him, essentially ‘turning his faults into advantages.’ He explains the friendship between the Prince and Poins by noting ‘they’re both built the same way’; and he compares Justice Shallow to ‘a guy who looks like he was made after a dinner of cheese scraps.’ There’s no clearer difference in character than between Falstaff and Shallow, and Shallow and Silence. At first, it seems hard to find someone lower than the squire; but this big fool, as grand as he is, has an admirer and humble counterpart in his cousin Silence. Proud of knowing Sir John, who teases him, he says, ‘I wish, cousin Silence, you could’ve seen what this knight and I have seen!’—‘Yeah, Master Shallow, we’ve heard the chimes at midnight,’ Sir John replies. To Falstaff’s comment, ‘I didn’t think Master Silence was this type of guy,’ Silence responds, ‘Me? I’ve been merry twice and once before.’ What an impression this gives of a life lived to the fullest! What carefulness and self-restraint in his pleasures! What a wealth of funny memories! It’s interesting that Shakespeare mocked Justice Shallow, who was ‘in some authority under the king,’ for that tendency toward pointless repetition, which is a royal flaw that appears more in later times, and which he likely picked up from talking to his cousin Silence and getting no response.
‘Falstaff. You have here a goodly dwelling, and a rich.
‘Falstaff. You have a beautiful home here, and it's well-off.’
Shallow. Barren, barren, barren; beggars all, beggars all, Sir John: marry, good air. Spread Davy, spread Davy. Well said, Davy.
Shallow. Empty, empty, empty; all beggars, all beggars, Sir John: well, nice weather. Spread it out, Davy, spread it out, Davy. Well done, Davy.
Falstaff. This Davy serves you for good uses.
Falstaff. This Davy is really useful for you.
Shallow. A good varlet, a good varlet, a very good varlet. By the mass, I have drank too much sack at supper. A good varlet. Now sit down, now sit down. Come, cousin.’
Shallow. A good guy, a good guy, a really good guy. Wow, I drank too much wine at dinner. A good guy. Now sit down, now sit down. Come on, cousin.
The true spirit of humanity, the thorough knowledge of the stuff we are made of, the practical wisdom with the seeming fooleries in the whole of the garden-scene at Shallow’s country-seat, and just before in the exquisite dialogue between him and Silence on the death of old Double, have no parallel any where else. In one point of view, they are laughable in the extreme; in another they are equally affecting, if it is affecting to shew what a little thing is human life, what a poor forked creature man is!
The true essence of humanity, the deep understanding of what we're made of, the practical wisdom mixed with the apparent nonsense in the entire garden scene at Shallow’s country house, along with the beautiful exchange between him and Silence about old Double's death, is unmatched anywhere else. From one perspective, they are extremely funny; from another, they are just as touching, especially in showing how insignificant human life is, how limited and flawed mankind can be!
The heroic and serious part of these two plays founded on the story 284of Henry IV. is not inferior to the comic and farcical. The characters of Hotspur and Prince Henry are two of the most beautiful and dramatic, both in themselves and from contrast, that ever were drawn. They are the essence of chivalry. We like Hotspur the best upon the whole, perhaps because he was unfortunate.—The characters of their fathers, Henry IV. and old Northumberland, are kept up equally well. Henry naturally succeeds by his prudence and caution in keeping what he has got; Northumberland fails in his enterprise from an excess of the same quality, and is caught in the web of his own cold, dilatory policy. Owen Glendower is a masterly character. It as bold and original as it is intelligible and thoroughly natural. The disputes between him and Hotspur are managed with infinite address and insight into nature. We cannot help pointing out here some very beautiful lines, where Hotspur describes the fight between Glendower and Mortimer.
The serious and heroic aspects of these two plays based on the story of Henry IV are just as strong as the comedic and ridiculous parts. The characters of Hotspur and Prince Henry are two of the most compelling and dramatic figures ever created, both individually and in contrast to each other. They embody the spirit of chivalry. We tend to favor Hotspur overall, perhaps because he faced misfortune. The characters of their fathers, Henry IV and old Northumberland, are also well-developed. Henry succeeds through his wisdom and caution in maintaining what he has, while Northumberland fails in his endeavors due to an excess of the same qualities, getting caught in the trap of his own cold, slow-moving strategies. Owen Glendower is a brilliantly crafted character. He is as bold and original as he is clear and completely believable. The conflicts between him and Hotspur are handled with incredible skill and deep understanding of human nature. We can't help but highlight some truly beautiful lines where Hotspur describes the fight between Glendower and Mortimer.
The peculiarity and the excellence of Shakespear’s poetry is, that it seems as if he made his imagination the hand-maid of nature, and nature the plaything of his imagination. He appears to have been all the characters, and in all the situations he describes. It is as if either he had had all their feelings, or had lent them all his genius to express themselves. There cannot be stronger instances of this than Hotspur’s rage when Henry IV. forbids him to speak of Mortimer, his insensibility to all that his father and uncle urge to calm him, and his fine abstracted apostrophe to honour, ‘By heaven methinks it were an easy leap to pluck bright honour from the moon,’ etc. After all, notwithstanding the gallantry, generosity, good temper, and idle freaks of the mad-cap Prince of Wales, we should not have been sorry, if Northumberland’s force had come up in time to decide the fate of the battle at Shrewsbury; at least, we always heartily sympathise with Lady Percy’s grief, when she exclaims,
The uniqueness and brilliance of Shakespeare’s poetry lie in how it feels like he used his imagination as a servant of nature, while making nature a plaything of his creativity. He seems to embody all the characters and situations he portrays. It’s as if he truly experienced all their feelings or lent them his genius to articulate themselves. There are no clearer examples of this than Hotspur’s fury when Henry IV. prevents him from talking about Mortimer, his inability to heed his father and uncle’s attempts to calm him, and his powerful, detached expression about honor: ‘By heaven, I think it would be an easy leap to grab bright honor from the moon,’ etc. In the end, despite the bravery, kindness, good humor, and reckless antics of the wild Prince of Wales, we wouldn’t have minded if Northumberland’s forces had arrived in time to tip the scales of the battle at Shrewsbury; at least, we genuinely feel for Lady Percy’s sorrow when she cries,
285The truth is, that we never could forgive the Prince’s treatment of Falstaff; though perhaps Shakespear knew what was best, according to the history, the nature of the times, and of the man. We speak only as dramatic critics. Whatever terror the French in those days might have of Henry V. yet, to the readers of poetry at present, Falstaff is the better man of the two. We think of him and quote him oftener.
285The truth is, we could never forgive the Prince for how he treated Falstaff; although maybe Shakespeare understood what made sense given the history, the nature of the times, and the character of the man. We are speaking just as critics of drama. No matter how much fear the French might have had of Henry V. back then, to today's poetry readers, Falstaff is the better man. We think about him and quote him more often.
HENRY V.
Henry V. is a very favourite monarch with the English nation, and he appears to have been also a favourite with Shakespear, who labours hard to apologise for the actions of the king, by shewing us the character of the man, as ‘the king of good fellows.’ He scarcely deserves this honour. He was fond of war and low company:—we know little else of him. He was careless, dissolute, and ambitious;—idle, or doing mischief. In private, he seemed to have no idea of the common decencies of life, which he subjected to a kind of regal licence; in public affairs, he seemed to have no idea of any rule of right or wrong, but brute force, glossed over with a little religious hypocrisy and archiepiscopal advice. His principles did not change with his situation and professions. His adventure on Gadshill was a prelude to the affair of Agincourt, only a bloodless one; Falstaff was a puny prompter of violence and outrage, compared with the pious and politic Archbishop of Canterbury, who gave the king carte blanche, in a genealogical tree of his family, to rob and murder in circles of latitude and longitude abroad—to save the possessions of the church at home. This appears in the speeches in Shakespear, where the hidden motives that actuate princes and their advisers in war and policy are better laid open than in speeches from the throne or woolsack. Henry, because he did not know how to govern his own kingdom, determined to make war upon his neighbours. Because his own title to the crown was doubtful, he laid claim to that of France. Because he did not know how to exercise the enormous power, which had just dropped into his hands, to any one good purpose, he immediately undertook (a cheap and obvious resource of sovereignty) to do all the mischief he could. Even if absolute monarchs had the wit to find out objects of laudable ambition, they could only ‘plume up their wills’ in adhering to the more sacred formula of the royal prerogative, ‘the right divine of kings to govern wrong,’ because will is only then triumphant when it is opposed to the will of others, because the pride of power is only 286then shewn, not when it consults the rights and interests of others, but when it insults and tramples on all justice and all humanity. Henry declares his resolution ‘when France is his, to bend it to his awe, or break it all to pieces’—a resolution worthy of a conqueror, to destroy all that he cannot enslave; and what adds to the joke, he lays all the blame of the consequences of his ambition on those who will not submit tamely to his tyranny. Such is the history of kingly power, from the beginning to the end of the world;—with this difference, that the object of war formerly, when the people adhered to their allegiance, was to depose kings; the object latterly, since the people swerved from their allegiance, has been to restore kings, and to make common cause against mankind. The object of our late invasion and conquest of France was to restore the legitimate monarch, the descendant of Hugh Capet, to the throne: Henry V. in his time made war on and deposed the descendant of this very Hugh Capet, on the plea that he was a usurper and illegitimate. What would the great modern catspaw of legitimacy and restorer of divine right have said to the claim of Henry and the title of the descendants of Hugh Capet? Henry V. it is true, was a hero, a King of England, and the conqueror of the king of France. Yet we feel little love or admiration for him. He was a hero, that is, he was ready to sacrifice his own life for the pleasure of destroying thousands of other lives: he was a king of England, but not a constitutional one, and we only like kings according to the law; lastly, he was a conqueror of the French king, and for this we dislike him less than if he had conquered the French people. How then do we like him? We like him in the play. There he is a very amiable monster, a very splendid pageant. As we like to gaze at a panther or a young lion in their cages in the Tower, and catch a pleasing horror from their glistening eyes, their velvet paws, and dreadless roar, so we take a very romantic, heroic, patriotic, and poetical delight in the boasts and feats of our younger Harry, as they appear on the stage and are confined to lines of ten syllables; where no blood follows the stroke that wounds our ears, where no harvest bends beneath horses’ hoofs, no city flames, no little child is butchered, no dead men’s bodies are found piled on heaps and festering the next morning—in the orchestra!
Henry V. is a very popular king with the English people, and he also seems to have been a favorite of Shakespeare, who works hard to justify the king’s actions by showing us the character of the man as "the king of good fellows." He hardly deserves this reputation. He enjoyed war and low company; we know little else about him. He was careless, indulgent, and ambitious—either idle or causing trouble. In private, he seemed to have no grasp of basic decency, which he treated with a sort of royal license; in public matters, he seemed to know no rule of right or wrong other than brute force, cloaked with a bit of religious hypocrisy and advice from the archbishop. His principles didn’t change with his circumstances or claims. His escapade at Gadshill was just a precursor to the battle of Agincourt, only without the bloodshed; Falstaff was a weak instigator of violence and chaos, especially compared to the pious and strategic Archbishop of Canterbury, who gave the king full freedom, allowing him to pillage and kill in various places internationally—to protect the church’s assets at home. This is evident in Shakespeare’s speeches, where the hidden motives driving princes and their advisors in war and policy are more openly revealed than in speeches from the throne or the House of Lords. Henry, not knowing how to manage his own kingdom, decided to wage war on his neighbors. Because his claim to the crown was shaky, he asserted his right to the French crown. And since he didn’t know how to wield the immense power that had just fallen into his lap for any good purpose, he quickly resorted (a cheap and obvious royal tactic) to causing as much havoc as he could. Even if absolute monarchs had the insight to identify worthy ambitions, they could only "puff up their wills" by sticking to the more sacred principle of the royal prerogative, "the divine right of kings to govern wrongly," since will only triumphs when it goes against the will of others; the pride of power is only displayed, not when it takes others' rights and interests into account, but when it insults and tramples on all justice and humanity. Henry declares his plan "when France is his, to bend it to his will, or shatter it to pieces"—a conqueror's ambition to destroy all that he cannot dominate; and what adds to the irony is that he blames the consequences of his ambition on those who refuse to submit meekly to his tyranny. Such is the history of royal power, from beginning to end; with one difference: the aim of war in the past, when people held onto their loyalty, was to depose kings; recently, since the people strayed from their loyalty, the goal has been to restore kings and unite against mankind. Our recent invasion and conquest of France aimed to restore the legitimate monarch, the descendant of Hugh Capet, to the throne: Henry V. in his time waged war against and deposed the very descendant of Hugh Capet, claiming he was a usurper and illegitimate. What would the modern champion of legitimacy and restorer of divine right have said about Henry’s claims and the title of Hugh Capet's descendants? It is true that Henry V. was a hero, a King of England, and the conqueror of the king of France. Yet we feel little love or admiration for him. He was a hero, meaning he was willing to risk his own life to enjoy the destruction of thousands of others’ lives; he was a king of England, but not a constitutional one, and we only respect kings who rule by law; finally, he conquered the French king, and for this, we dislike him less than if he had conquered the French people. So how do we feel about him? We like him in the play. There, he is a charming monster, a regal spectacle. Like we enjoy watching a panther or a young lion in their cages at the Tower, feeling a thrilling fear from their shining eyes, soft paws, and fearless roar, we find a romantic, heroic, patriotic, and poetic delight in the boasts and achievements of our younger Harry, as they unfold on stage and are bound to lines of ten syllables; where no blood follows the blow that strikes our ears, where no crops bend under hooves, no city burns, no innocent child is slaughtered, no dead bodies are found piled up and rotting the next morning—in the pit!
So much for the politics of this play; now for the poetry. Perhaps one of the most striking images in all Shakespear is that given of war in the first lines of the Prologue.
So much for the politics of this play; now let’s talk about the poetry. Maybe one of the most memorable images in all of Shakespeare is the depiction of war in the opening lines of the Prologue.
Rubens, if he had painted it, would not have improved upon this simile.
Rubens, if he had painted it, wouldn't have done any better than this simile.
The conversation between the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of Ely, relating to the sudden change in the manners of Henry V. is among the well-known Beauties of Shakespear. It is indeed admirable both for strength and grace. It has sometimes occurred to us that Shakespear, in describing ‘the reformation’ of the Prince, might have had an eye to himself—
The talk between the Archbishop of Canterbury and the Bishop of Ely about the sudden change in Henry V.'s behavior is one of the most famous Beauties of Shakespeare. It's truly impressive for its strength and elegance. We've sometimes thought that Shakespeare, in portraying ‘the reformation’ of the Prince, might have been reflecting on his own situation—
This at least is as probable an account of the progress of the poet’s mind as we have met with in any of the Essays on the Learning of Shakespear.
This is at least as likely an explanation of the poet’s thoughts as we’ve come across in any of the Essays on the Learning of Shakespeare.
Nothing can be better managed than the caution which the king gives the meddling Archbishop, not to advise him rashly to engage in the war with France, his scrupulous dread of the consequences of that advice, and his eager desire to hear and follow it.
Nothing is managed better than the warning the king gives to the interfering Archbishop, advising him not to rashly push for a war with France, his careful fear of what might happen because of that advice, and his strong urge to hear and follow it.
Another characteristic instance of the blindness of human nature to every thing but its own interests, is the complaint made by the king of ‘the ill neighbourhood’ of the Scot in attacking England when she was attacking France.
Another clear example of how blind human nature is to everything except its own interests is the complaint made by the king about 'the bad neighborhood' of the Scot attacking England while it was attacking France.
It is worth observing that in all these plays, which give an admirable picture of the spirit of the good old times, the moral inference does not at all depend upon the nature of the actions, but on the dignity or meanness of the persons committing them. ‘The eagle England’ has a right ‘to be in prey,’ but ‘the weazel Scot’ has none ‘to come sneaking to her nest,’ which she has left to pounce upon others. Might was right, without equivocation or disguise, in that heroic and chivalrous age. The substitution of right for might, even in theory, is among the refinements and abuses of modern philosophy.
It’s interesting to note that in all these plays, which beautifully capture the essence of the good old times, the moral lesson doesn’t really come from the actions themselves, but from the nobility or lowliness of the people involved. 'The eagle England' has every right 'to be in prey,' but 'the weasel Scot' has no right 'to sneak into her nest,' which she has abandoned to attack others. Might was right, without any ambiguity or pretense, in that heroic and chivalrous era. Replacing might with right, even in theory, is one of the complexities and pitfalls of modern philosophy.
A more beautiful rhetorical delineation of the effects of subordination in a commonwealth can hardly be conceived than the following:—
A more compelling way to describe the effects of subordination in a society is hard to imagine than the following:—
Henry V. is but one of Shakespear’s second-rate plays. Yet by quoting passages, like this, from his second-rate plays alone, we might make a volume ‘rich with his praise,’
Henry V. is just one of Shakespeare's lesser plays. However, by quoting passages from his lesser plays alone, we could create a volume "rich with his praise,"
Of this sort are the king’s remonstrance to Scroop, Grey, and Cambridge, on the detection of their treason, his address to the soldiers at the siege of Harfleur, and the still finer one before the battle of Agincourt, the description of the night before the battle, and the reflections on ceremony put into the mouth of the king.
Of this kind are the king’s protest to Scroop, Grey, and Cambridge after their treason was discovered, his speech to the soldiers during the siege of Harfleur, and the even better one before the battle of Agincourt, the description of the night before the battle, and the thoughts on ceremony expressed by the king.
Most of these passages are well known: there is one, which we do not remember to have seen noticed, and yet it is no whit inferior to the rest in heroic beauty. It is the account of the deaths of York and Suffolk.
Most of these passages are well known: there is one that we don’t recall seeing mentioned, and yet it is just as impressive as the others in its heroic beauty. It is the description of the deaths of York and Suffolk.
But we must have done with splendid quotations. The behaviour of the king, in the difficult and doubtful circumstances in which he is placed, is as patient and modest as it is spirited and lofty in his prosperous fortune. The character of the French nobles is also very admirably depicted; and the Dauphin’s praise of his horse shews the vanity of that class of persons in a very striking point of view. Shakespear always accompanies a foolish prince with a satirical courtier, as we see in this instance. The comic parts of Henry V. are very inferior to those of Henry IV. Falstaff is dead, and without him, Pistol, Nym, and Bardolph, are satellites without a sun. Fluellen the Welchman is the most entertaining character in the piece. He is good-natured, brave, choleric, and pedantic. His parallel between Alexander and Harry of Monmouth, and his desire to have ‘some disputations’ with Captain Macmorris on the discipline of the Roman wars, in the heat of the battle, are never to be forgotten. His treatment of Pistol is as good as Pistol’s treatment of his French prisoner. There are two other remarkable prose passages in this play: the conversation of Henry in disguise with the three centinels on the duties of a soldier, and his courtship of Katherine in broken French. We like them both exceedingly, though the first savours perhaps too much of the king, and the last too little of the lover.
But we have to move on from grand quotes. The king's behavior, given the tough and uncertain situation he's in, is as patient and humble as it is spirited and noble when he's successful. The French nobles are portrayed very well, and the Dauphin's praise of his horse highlights the vanity of that social class in a striking way. Shakespeare always pairs a foolish prince with a satirical courtier, as seen here. The comic elements of Henry V. are far less impressive than those in Henry IV. Falstaff is dead, and without him, Pistol, Nym, and Bardolph are just shadows without a sun. Fluellen the Welshman is the most entertaining character in the play. He is good-natured, brave, hot-tempered, and pedantic. His comparison between Alexander and Harry of Monmouth, along with his wish for "some disputations" with Captain Macmorris about Roman war tactics right in the middle of battle, are unforgettable. His treatment of Pistol is on par with Pistol’s treatment of his French prisoner. There are two other notable prose passages in this play: Henry’s disguised conversation with the three sentinels about a soldier's duties, and his courtship of Katherine in broken French. We enjoy both very much, although the first may lean a bit too much toward the king, and the last may lean too little toward the lover.
HENRY VI.
In Three Parts
During the time of the civil wars of York and Lancaster, England was a perfect bear-garden, and Shakespear has given us a very lively picture of the scene. The three parts of Henry VI. convey a picture of very little else; and are inferior to the other historical plays. They have brilliant passages; but the general ground-work is comparatively poor and meagre, the style ‘flat and unraised.’ There are few lines like the following:—
During the civil wars between York and Lancaster, England was like a chaotic arena, and Shakespeare painted a vivid picture of the situation. The three parts of Henry VI portray little beyond that and are not as strong as his other historical plays. They feature some brilliant moments, but the overall foundation is relatively weak and lacking, with a style that feels dull and flat. There are few lines like the following:—
The first part relates to the wars in France after the death of Henry V. and the story of the Maid of Orleans. She is here almost as scurvily treated as in Voltaire’s Pucelle. Talbot is a very magnificent sketch: there is something as formidable in this portrait of him, as there would be in a monumental figure of him or in the sight of the armour which he wore. The scene in which he visits the Countess of Auvergne, who seeks to entrap him, is a very spirited one, and his description of his own treatment while a prisoner to the French not less remarkable.
The first part deals with the wars in France after Henry V. died and the story of the Maid of Orleans. She's treated here almost as poorly as in Voltaire’s Pucelle. Talbot is a striking character; there's something as intimidating about this portrayal of him as there would be in a statue of him or in the sight of the armor he wore. The scene where he visits the Countess of Auvergne, who tries to trap him, is very lively, and his account of how he was treated while a prisoner by the French is equally notable.
293The second part relates chiefly to the contests between the nobles during the minority of Henry, and the death of Gloucester, the good Duke Humphrey. The character of Cardinal Beaufort is the most prominent in the group: the account of his death is one of our author’s master-pieces. So is the speech of Gloucester to the nobles on the loss of the provinces of France by the King’s marriage with Margaret of Anjou. The pretensions and growing ambition of the Duke of York, the father of Richard III. are also very ably developed. Among the episodes, the tragi-comedy of Jack Cade, and the detection of the impostor Simcox are truly edifying.
293The second part mainly focuses on the conflicts among the nobles during Henry's minority and the death of Gloucester, the good Duke Humphrey. Cardinal Beaufort stands out the most in this group: the account of his death is one of the author's highlights. So is Gloucester’s speech to the nobles about the loss of the territories in France due to the King’s marriage to Margaret of Anjou. The ambitions and rising power of the Duke of York, the father of Richard III., are also developed very effectively. Among the events, Jack Cade's tragi-comedy and the exposure of the impostor Simcox are genuinely instructive.
The third part describes Henry’s loss of his crown: his death takes place in the last act, which is usually thrust into the common acting play of Richard III. The character of Gloucester, afterwards King Richard, is here very powerfully commenced, and his dangerous designs and long-reaching ambition are fully described in his soliloquy in the third act, beginning, ‘Aye, Edward will use women honourably.’ Henry VI. is drawn as distinctly as his high-spirited Queen, and notwithstanding the very mean figure which Henry makes as a King, we still feel more respect for him than for his wife.
The third part describes Henry’s loss of his crown: his death happens in the last act, which is often included in the regular performance of Richard III. The character of Gloucester, who becomes King Richard, is introduced very powerfully here, and his dangerous plots and far-reaching ambition are fully expressed in his soliloquy in the third act, starting with, ‘Yes, Edward will treat women honorably.’ Henry VI. is presented as clearly as his spirited Queen, and despite Henry's rather unremarkable presence as a King, we still feel more respect for him than for his wife.
We have already observed that Shakespear was scarcely more remarkable for the force and marked contrasts of his characters than for the truth and subtlety with which he has distinguished those which approached the nearest to each other. For instance, the soul of Othello is hardly more distinct from that of Iago than that of Desdemona is shewn to be from Æmilia’s; the ambition of Macbeth is as distinct from the ambition of Richard III. as it is from the meekness of Duncan; the real madness of Lear is as different from the feigned madness of Edgar[69] as from the babbling of the fool; the contrast between wit and folly in Falstaff and Shallow is not more characteristic though more obvious than the gradations of folly, loquacious or reserved, in Shallow and Silence; and again, the gallantry of Prince Henry is as little confounded with that of Hotspur as with the cowardice of Falstaff, or as the sensual and philosophic cowardice of the Knight is with the pitiful and cringing cowardice of Parolles. All these several personages were as different in Shakespear as they would have been in themselves: his imagination borrowed from the life, and every circumstance, object, motive, passion, operated there as it would in reality, and produced a world of men and women as distinct, as true and as various as those that 294exist in nature. The peculiar property of Shakespear’s imagination was this truth, accompanied with the unconsciousness of nature: indeed, imagination to be perfect must be unconscious, at least in production; for nature is so.—We shall attempt one example more in the characters of Richard II. and Henry VI.
We have already seen that Shakespeare was just as notable for the strength and clear differences in his characters as he was for the truth and subtlety with which he defined those that were closest to each other. For example, Othello's soul is hardly more different from Iago's than Desdemona's is from Emilia's; Macbeth's ambition is as distinct from Richard III's ambition as it is from Duncan's meekness; Lear's real madness is as different from Edgar's feigned madness as it is from the fool's babbling; the difference between wit and foolishness in Falstaff and Shallow is just as characteristic, though more obvious, than the varying degrees of foolishness, whether talkative or reserved, in Shallow and Silence; and again, Prince Henry's gallantry is not confused with Hotspur's nor with Falstaff's cowardice, just as the cowardice of the Knight, which is both sensual and philosophical, is different from Parolles' pitiful and cringing cowardice. All these characters were as distinct in Shakespeare's works as they would be in real life: his imagination drew from reality, and every circumstance, object, motive, and passion operated as it would in actuality, creating a world of men and women as distinct, true, and varied as those that 294exist in nature. The unique quality of Shakespeare's imagination was this truth, accompanied by the natural unconsciousness: in fact, for imagination to be perfect, it must be unconscious, at least in its creation; for that is how nature is. We will attempt one more example with the characters of Richard II and Henry VI.
The characters and situations of both these persons were so nearly alike, that they would have been completely confounded by a common-place poet. Yet they are kept quite distinct in Shakespear. Both were kings, and both unfortunate. Both lost their crowns owing to their mismanagement and imbecility; the one from a thoughtless, wilful abuse of power, the other from an indifference to it. The manner in which they bear their misfortunes corresponds exactly to the causes which led to them. The one is always lamenting the loss of his power which he has not the spirit to regain; the other seems only to regret that he had ever been king, and is glad to be rid of the power, with the trouble; the effeminacy of the one is that of a voluptuary, proud, revengeful, impatient of contradiction, and inconsolable in his misfortunes; the effeminacy of the other is that of an indolent, good-natured mind, naturally averse to the turmoils of ambition and the cares of greatness, and who wishes to pass his time in monkish indolence and contemplation.—Richard bewails the loss of the kingly power only as it was the means of gratifying his pride and luxury; Henry regards it only as a means of doing right, and is less desirous of the advantages to be derived from possessing it than afraid of exercising it wrong. In knighting a young soldier, he gives him ghostly advice—
The characters and situations of both these individuals were so similar that a typical poet would have completely confused them. Yet Shakespeare keeps them distinctly separate. Both were kings and both faced misfortune. Both lost their crowns due to their poor judgment and incompetence; one because of a careless, willful abuse of power, the other due to a lack of concern for it. The way they handle their misfortunes directly reflects the reasons for them. One constantly mourns the loss of his power, which he lacks the courage to reclaim; the other only seems to regret having ever been a king and is relieved to be free of the power and the associated troubles. The first’s weakness comes from being indulgent, proud, vengeful, impatient with disagreement, and inconsolable in his misfortunes; while the other’s weakness stems from a lazy, good-natured disposition, naturally disinterested in the chaos of ambition and the burdens of greatness, wishing instead to spend his time in peaceful idleness and reflection. Richard laments the loss of kingly power only because it satisfied his pride and luxury; Henry sees it merely as a tool for doing what is right and is more concerned about misusing it than about the benefits of having it. When he knights a young soldier, he offers him spiritual advice—
Richard II. in the first speeches of the play betrays his real character. In the first alarm of his pride, on hearing of Bolingbroke’s rebellion, before his presumption has met with any check, he exclaims—
Richard II. in the first speeches of the play reveals his true character. In the initial surge of his pride, upon hearing about Bolingbroke’s rebellion, before his arrogance faces any challenge, he exclaims—
Yet, notwithstanding this royal confession of faith, on the very first news of actual disaster, all his conceit of himself as the peculiar favourite of Providence vanishes into air.
Yet, despite this royal declaration of faith, at the very first sign of real disaster, all his self-importance as the special favorite of Providence disappears into thin air.
Immediately after, however, recollecting that ‘cheap defence’ of the divinity of kings which is to be found in opinion, he is for arming his name against his enemies.
Immediately after, however, remembering that ‘cheap defense’ of the divinity of kings that exists in opinion, he is ready to arm his name against his enemies.
King Henry does not make any such vapouring resistance to the loss of his crown, but lets it slip from off his head as a weight which he is neither able nor willing to bear; stands quietly by to see the issue of the contest for his kingdom, as if it were a game at push-pin, and is pleased when the odds prove against him.
King Henry doesn’t put up a big fight over losing his crown; he lets it fall off his head like a burden he can’t or doesn’t want to carry. He stands by calmly to watch how the struggle for his kingdom unfolds, as if it were just a game, and feels satisfied when the odds are stacked against him.
When Richard first hears of the death of his favourites, Bushy, Bagot, and the rest, he indignantly rejects all idea of any further efforts, and only indulges in the extravagant impatience of his grief and his despair, in that fine speech which has been so often quoted:—
When Richard first learns about the death of his favorites, Bushy, Bagot, and the others, he angrily dismisses any thought of making further efforts and instead indulges in the intense impatience of his grief and despair, delivering that famous speech that has been quoted so many times:—
There is as little sincerity afterwards in his affected resignation to his fate, as there is fortitude in this exaggerated picture of his misfortunes before they have happened.
There is just as little sincerity in his feigned acceptance of his fate afterwards as there is strength in this inflated portrayal of his misfortunes before they occur.
When Northumberland comes back with the message from Bolingbroke, he exclaims, anticipating the result,—
When Northumberland returns with Bolingbroke's message, he exclaims, expecting the outcome,—
How differently is all this expressed in King Henry’s soliloquy, during the battle with Edward’s party:—
How differently is all this expressed in King Henry’s soliloquy during the battle with Edward’s group:—
This is a true and beautiful description of a naturally quiet and contented disposition, and not, like the former, the splenetic effusion of disappointed ambition.
This is a genuine and lovely description of a naturally calm and satisfied nature, and not, like the previous one, the bitter outpouring of frustrated ambition.
In the last scene of Richard II. his despair lends him courage: he beats the keeper, slays two of his assassins, and dies with imprecations in his mouth against Sir Pierce Exton, who ‘had staggered his royal 298person.’ Henry, when he is seized by the deer-stealers, only reads them a moral lecture on the duty of allegiance and the sanctity of an oath; and when stabbed by Gloucester in the tower, reproaches him with his crimes, but pardons him his own death.
In the final scene of Richard II., his despair gives him strength: he fights off the guard, kills two of his attackers, and dies cursing Sir Pierce Exton, who 'had shaken his royal 298person.' Henry, when he’s caught by the deer thieves, simply delivers a moral speech about loyalty and the importance of an oath; and when Gloucester stabs him in the tower, he accuses him of his wrongdoings but forgives him for his own death.
RICHARD III.
Richard III. may be considered as properly a stage-play: it belongs to the theatre, rather than to the closet. We shall therefore criticise it chiefly with a reference to the manner in which we have seen it performed. It is the character in which Garrick came out: it was the second character in which Mr. Kean appeared, and in which he acquired his fame. Shakespear we have always with us: actors we have only for a few seasons; and therefore some account of them may be acceptable, if not to our cotemporaries, to those who come after us, if ‘that rich and idle personage, Posterity,’ should deign to look into our writings.
Richard III. can be regarded as a true stage play: it’s meant for the theater, not just for reading. So, we’ll mainly critique it based on how we’ve seen it performed. It was the role that launched Garrick’s career; it was the second role for Mr. Kean where he made his name. Shakespeare is always present in our lives, but actors are only around for a few seasons; so, a little insight about them might be interesting, not just for our peers, but also for those who come after us, if "that rich and idle figure, Posterity," decides to check out our writings.
It is possible to form a higher conception of the character of Richard than that given by Mr. Kean: but we cannot imagine any character represented with greater distinctness and precision, more perfectly articulated in every part. Perhaps indeed there is too much of what is technically called execution. When we first saw this celebrated actor in the part, we thought he sometimes failed from an exuberance of manner, and dissipated the impression of the general character by the variety of his resources. To be complete, his delineation of it should have more solidity, depth, sustained and impassioned feeling, with somewhat less brilliancy, with fewer glancing lights, pointed transitions, and pantomimic evolutions.
It’s possible to have a deeper understanding of Richard’s character than what Mr. Kean presented, but we can’t think of any portrayal that is more clearly and accurately delivered, with every part perfectly articulated. However, there might be too much focus on what’s technically called execution. When we first saw this famous actor in the role, we felt he sometimes overdid it, which diluted the overall impression of the character because of the variety of his techniques. To be complete, his portrayal should have more depth, emotional intensity, and sustained passion, with a bit less flashiness, fewer quick changes, and dramatic gestures.
The Richard of Shakespear is towering and lofty; equally impetuous and commanding; haughty, violent, and subtle; bold and treacherous; confident in his strength as well as in his cunning; raised high by his birth, and higher by his talents and his crimes; a royal usurper, a princely hypocrite, a tyrant, and a murderer of the house of Plantagenet.
The Richard of Shakespeare is impressive and grand; both rash and authoritative; proud, brutal, and sly; daring and deceitful; sure of his physical power as well as his cleverness; elevated by his lineage, and even more so by his abilities and his wrongdoings; a royal thief, a noble fraud, a dictator, and a killer of the Plantagenet family.
The idea conveyed in these lines (which are indeed omitted in the miserable medley acted for Richard III.) is never lost sight of by Shakespear, and should not be out of the actor’s mind for a moment. 299The restless and sanguinary Richard is not a man striving to be great, but to be greater than he is; conscious of his strength of will, his power of intellect, his daring courage, his elevated station; and making use of these advantages to commit unheard-of crimes, and to shield himself from remorse and infamy.
The idea presented in these lines (which are unfortunately missing from the terrible performance of Rich III.) is always in Shakespeare's mind and should never be forgotten by the actor. 299The restless and violent Richard is not just a man trying to be great, but to be even greater than he already is; aware of his strong will, his sharp intellect, his bold courage, and his high status; using these advantages to commit unimaginable crimes and to protect himself from guilt and disgrace.
If Mr. Kean does not entirely succeed in concentrating all the lines of the character, as drawn by Shakespear, he gives an animation, vigour, and relief to the part which we have not seen equalled. He is more refined than Cooke; more bold, varied, and original than Kemble in the same character. In some parts he is deficient in dignity, and particularly in the scenes of state business, he has by no means an air of artificial authority. There is at times an aspiring elevation, an enthusiastic rapture in his expectations of attaining the crown, and at others a gloating expression of sullen delight, as if he already clenched the bauble, and held it in his grasp. The courtship scene with Lady Anne is an admirable exhibition of smooth and smiling villainy. The progress of wily adulation, of encroaching humility, is finely marked by his action, voice and eye. He seems, like the first Tempter, to approach his prey, secure of the event, and as if success had smoothed his way before him. The late Mr. Cooke’s manner of representing this scene was more vehement, hurried, and full of anxious uncertainty. This, though more natural in general, was less in character in this particular instance. Richard should woo less as a lover than as an actor—to shew his mental superiority, and power of making others the playthings of his purposes. Mr. Kean’s attitude in leaning against the side of the stage before he comes forward to address Lady Anne, is one of the most graceful and striking ever witnessed on the stage. It would do for Titian to paint. The frequent and rapid transition of his voice from the expression of the fiercest passion to the most familiar tones of conversation was that which gave a peculiar grace of novelty to his acting on his first appearance. This has been since imitated and caricatured by others, and he himself uses the artifice more sparingly than he did. His bye-play is excellent. His manner of bidding his friends ‘Good night,’ after pausing with the point of his sword, drawn slowly backward and forward on the ground, as if considering the plan of the battle next day, is a particularly happy and natural thought. He gives to the two last acts of the play the greatest animation and effect. He fills every part of the stage; and makes up for the deficiency of his person by what has been sometimes objected to as an excess of action. The concluding scene in which he is killed by Richmond is the most brilliant of the whole. He fights at last like one drunk with wounds; and the attitude in which he stands with his hands stretched out, after 300his sword is wrested from him, has a preternatural and terrific grandeur, as if his will could not be disarmed, and the very phantoms of his despair had power to kill.—Mr. Kean has since in a great measure effaced the impression of his Richard III. by the superior efforts of his genius in Othello (his master-piece), in the murder-scene in Macbeth, in Richard II., in Sir Giles Overreach, and lastly in Oroonoko; but we still like to look back to his first performance of this part, both because it first assured his admirers of his future success, and because we bore our feeble but, at that time, not useless testimony to the merits of this very original actor, on which the town was considerably divided for no other reason than because they were original.
If Mr. Kean doesn’t completely nail the character as Shakespear envisioned it, he still brings an energy, intensity, and depth to the role that we haven't seen matched. He’s more sophisticated than Cooke; more daring, varied, and unique than Kemble in the same role. In some parts, he lacks dignity, especially in scenes involving state affairs, where he definitely doesn’t project an air of forced authority. At times, there’s an uplifting ambition and passionate excitement in his hopes of claiming the crown, and at other times, there’s a smirk of gloomy satisfaction, as if he’s already grasping the trinket. The courtship scene with Lady Anne is a brilliant display of charming yet sinister manipulation. The way he subtly flatters and displays growing humility is beautifully conveyed through his movement, voice, and gaze. He seems, like the first Tempter, to approach his target, confident of success, as if fate has cleared his path. The late Mr. Cooke’s portrayal of this scene was more intense, rushed, and filled with nervous uncertainty. While this was more natural overall, it was less consistent with the character in this instance. Richard should pursue Lady Anne less like a lover and more like an actor—showing his mental superiority and his ability to make others pawns in his plans. Mr. Kean’s posture, leaning against the side of the stage before he steps forward to speak to Lady Anne, is one of the most elegant and striking ever seen on stage. It would be a perfect subject for Titian to paint. The frequent and quick shifts in his voice, from the height of passion to the casual tones of conversation, added a unique charm and freshness to his performance at his debut. This has since been imitated and exaggerated by others, and he himself now uses this technique more sparingly than before. His subtle gestures are excellent. The way he bids his friends ‘Good night,’ pausing with the tip of his sword slowly moving back and forth on the ground as if planning the next day’s battle, is a particularly clever and natural idea. He brings tremendous energy and impact to the last two acts of the play. He fills every part of the stage; and compensates for the shortcomings of his physical presence with what some have critiqued as an overabundance of action. The final scene, where he’s killed by Richmond, is the most spectacular of all. He fights in the end like a man intoxicated by his wounds; and the pose he strikes with his hands outstretched after his sword is taken from him has a supernatural and fearsome grandeur, as if his will cannot be subdued, and the very shadows of his despair could kill. Mr. Kean has largely overshadowed his performance as Richard III with his exceptional portrayals in Othello (his masterwork), the murder scene in Macbeth, Richard II, Sir Giles Overreach, and Oroonoko; but we still enjoy reflecting on his first portrayal of this role, both because it initially won over his supporters for his future success, and because we provided our weak yet, at that time, nonetheless valuable endorsement of this very original actor, on which public opinion was notably split simply because they *were* original.
The manner in which Shakespear’s plays have been generally altered or rather mangled by modern mechanists, is a disgrace to the English stage. The patch-work Richard III. which is acted under the sanction of his name, and which was manufactured by Cibber, is a striking example of this remark.
The way Shakespeare’s plays have been altered or rather butchered by modern adaptations is a shame for the English stage. The haphazard Richard III. that is performed under his name, which was created by Cibber, is a clear example of this.
The play itself is undoubtedly a very powerful effusion of Shakespear’s genius. The ground-work of the character of Richard, that mixture of intellectual vigour with moral depravity, in which Shakespear delighted to shew his strength—gave full scope as well as temptation to the exercise of his imagination. The character of his hero is almost every where predominant, and marks its lurid track throughout. The original play is however too long for representation, and there are some few scenes which might be better spared than preserved, and by omitting which it would remain a complete whole. The only rule, indeed, for altering Shakespear is to retrench certain passages which may be considered either as superfluous or obsolete, but not to add or transpose any thing. The arrangement and developement of the story, and the mutual contrast and combination of the dramatis personæ, are in general as finely managed as the developement of the characters or the expression of the passions.
The play is certainly a powerful expression of Shakespeare’s genius. The foundation of Richard's character, that blend of intellectual strength and moral corruption, showcases where Shakespeare excelled—allowing his imagination to thrive. The hero’s character is prominently featured everywhere, leaving a dark mark throughout. However, the original play is too long for performance, and there are a few scenes that could be cut without losing its essence. The only guideline for changing Shakespeare is to trim passages that seem unnecessary or outdated, without adding or rearranging anything. The story’s structure and the way the characters contrast and combine are generally as skillfully crafted as the development of the characters themselves or the portrayal of their emotions.
This rule has not been adhered to in the present instance. Some of the most important and striking passages in the principal character have been omitted, to make room for idle and misplaced extracts from other plays; the only intention of which seems to have been to make the character of Richard as odious and disgusting as possible. It is apparently for no other purpose than to make Gloucester stab King Henry on the stage, that the fine abrupt introduction of the character in the opening of the play is lost in the tedious whining morality of the uxorious king (taken from another play);—we say tedious, because it interrupts the business of the scene, and loses its beauty and effect by having no intelligible connection with the previous 301character of the mild, well-meaning monarch. The passages which the unfortunate Henry has to recite are beautiful and pathetic in themselves, but they have nothing to do with the world that Richard has to ‘bustle in.’ In the same spirit of vulgar caricature is the scene between Richard and Lady Anne (when his wife) interpolated without any authority, merely to gratify this favourite propensity to disgust and loathing. With the same perverse consistency, Richard, after his last fatal struggle, is raised up by some Galvanic process, to utter the imprecation, without any motive but pure malignity, which Shakespear has so properly put into the mouth of Northumberland on hearing of Percy’s death. To make room for these worse than needless additions, many of the most striking passages in the real play have been omitted by the foppery and ignorance of the prompt-book critics. We do not mean to insist merely on passages which are fine as poetry and to the reader, such as Clarence’s dream, etc. but on those which are important to the understanding of the character, and peculiarly adapted for stage-effect. We will give the following as instances among several others. The first is the scene where Richard enters abruptly to the queen and her friends to defend himself:—
This rule hasn't been followed in this instance. Some of the most important and striking moments of the main character have been left out to make space for irrelevant and misplaced excerpts from other plays; the only intention seems to be to portray Richard as as repulsive and contemptible as possible. It appears that the only reason for Gloucester to stab King Henry on stage is because the powerful and sudden introduction of the character at the beginning of the play is drowned out by the boring moralizing of the devoted king (taken from another play);—we call it boring because it disrupts the flow of the scene and diminishes its beauty and impact as it has no clear connection to the earlier character of the gentle, well-meaning monarch. The lines that the unfortunate Henry has to deliver are beautiful and poignant on their own, but they have nothing to do with the world that Richard has to navigate. Similarly, the scene between Richard and Lady Anne (when she was his wife) is inserted without any authority, just to satisfy this tendency for disgust and revulsion. With the same misguided consistency, Richard, after his final desperate struggle, is raised magically to utter a curse, driven by nothing but pure malice, which Shakespeare has rightly given to Northumberland upon hearing of Percy’s death. To make space for these unnecessary additions, many of the most powerful moments in the actual play have been cut out due to the pretentiousness and ignorance of the prompt-book critics. We're not just focusing on lines that are good poetry or appealing to readers, like Clarence’s dream, etc., but rather those that are crucial for understanding the character and particularly effective on stage. Here are a few examples among many others. The first is the scene where Richard enters suddenly to confront the queen and her friends to defend himself:—
Nothing can be more characteristic than the turbulent pretensions to meekness and simplicity in this address. Again, the versatility and adroitness of Richard is admirably described in the following ironical conversation with Brakenbury:—
Nothing is more typical than the chaotic claims of humility and straightforwardness in this speech. Once again, Richard's adaptability and skill are brilliantly depicted in the following sarcastic exchange with Brakenbury:—
The feigned reconciliation of Gloucester with the queen’s kinsmen is also a master-piece. One of the finest strokes in the play, and which serves to shew as much as any thing the deep, plausible manners of Richard, is the unsuspecting security of Hastings, at the very time when the former is plotting his death, and when that very appearance of cordiality and good-humour on which Hastings builds his confidence arises from Richard’s consciousness of having betrayed him to his ruin. This, with the whole character of Hastings, is omitted.
The fake reconciliation of Gloucester with the queen’s relatives is also a masterpiece. One of the best moments in the play, which shows Richard’s deep, convincing nature, is Hastings’ unsuspecting trust at the very moment Richard is planning his death. Hastings relies on Richard’s false friendliness and good humor, completely unaware that it stems from Richard’s knowledge of having set him up for his downfall. This, along with Hastings’ entire character, is left out.
Perhaps the two most beautiful passages in the original play are the farewell apostrophe of the queen to the Tower, where the children are shut up from her, and Tyrrel’s description of their death. We will finish our quotations with them.
Perhaps the two most beautiful sections in the original play are the queen's farewell to the Tower, where her children are locked away from her, and Tyrrel’s account of their death. We'll conclude our quotes with these.
The other passage is the account of their death by Tyrrel:—
The other passage is the account of their death by Tyrrel:—
These are some of those wonderful bursts of feeling, done to the life, to the very height of fancy and nature, which our Shakespear alone could give. We do not insist on the repetition of these last passages as proper for the stage: we should indeed be loth to trust them in the mouth of almost any actor: but we should wish them to be retained in preference at least to the fantoccini exhibition of the young princes, Edward and York, bandying childish wit with their uncle.
These are some of those amazing bursts of emotion, brought to life, reaching the height of imagination and nature, that only our Shakespeare could create. We don’t argue that these last passages are suitable for the stage: we would actually hesitate to trust them to almost any actor. However, we would prefer them to be kept instead of the puppet show featuring the young princes, Edward and York, exchanging childish banter with their uncle.
HENRY VIII.
This play contains little action or violence of passion, yet it has considerable interest of a more mild and thoughtful cast, and some of the most striking passages in the author’s works. The character of Queen Katherine is the most perfect delineation of matronly dignity, sweetness, and resignation, that can be conceived. Her appeals to the protection of the king, her remonstrances to the cardinals, her conversations with her women, shew a noble and generous spirit accompanied with the utmost gentleness of nature. What can be more affecting than her answer to Campeius and Wolsey, who come to visit her as pretended friends.
This play isn’t filled with a lot of action or intense emotions, but it offers a significant amount of interest that’s more gentle and reflective, along with some of the most impactful passages in the author’s works. The character of Queen Katherine is the ultimate portrayal of maternal dignity, kindness, and acceptance possible. Her pleas for the king’s protection, her protests to the cardinals, and her conversations with her ladies display a noble and generous spirit combined with the utmost kindness. What could be more moving than her response to Campeius and Wolsey, who come to see her under the guise of friendship?
Dr. Johnson observes of this play, that ‘the meek sorrows and virtuous distress of Katherine have furnished some scenes, which may be justly numbered among the greatest efforts of tragedy. But the genius of Shakespear comes in and goes out with Katherine. Every other part may be easily conceived and easily written.’ This is easily said; but with all due deference to so great a reputed authority as that of Johnson, it is not true. For instance, the scene of Buckingham led to execution is one of the most affecting and natural 304in Shakespear, and one to which there is hardly an approach in any other author. Again, the character of Wolsey, the description of his pride and of his fall, are inimitable, and have, besides their gorgeousness of effect, a pathos, which only the genius of Shakespear could lend to the distresses of a proud, bad man, like Wolsey. There is a sort of child-like simplicity in the very helplessness of his situation, arising from the recollection of his past overbearing ambition. After the cutting sarcasms of his enemies on his disgrace, against which he bears up with a spirit conscious of his own superiority, he breaks out into that fine apostrophe—
Dr. Johnson remarks about this play that “the gentle sorrows and virtuous suffering of Katherine have created some scenes that can rightly be counted among the greatest achievements of tragedy. However, the brilliance of Shakespeare comes and goes with Katherine. Every other part can be easily imagined and easily written.” This is easy to say; but with all due respect to such a highly regarded authority as Johnson, it isn’t true. For example, the scene of Buckingham being led to execution is one of the most moving and authentic in Shakespeare, and there’s hardly anything comparable in any other author. Additionally, the character of Wolsey, the portrayal of his pride and downfall, is unrivaled and has, besides its stunning impact, a pathos that only Shakespeare's genius could give to the woes of a proud, unethical man like Wolsey. There’s a kind of child-like simplicity in the utter helplessness of his situation, stemming from the memory of his past overwhelming ambition. After the biting taunts of his enemies about his disgrace, which he endures with a spirit aware of his own superiority, he bursts into that beautiful apostrophe—
There is in this passage, as well as in the well-known dialogue with Cromwell which follows, something which stretches beyond commonplace; nor is the account which Griffiths gives of Wolsey’s death less Shakespearian; and the candour with which Queen Katherine listens to the praise of ‘him whom of all men while living she hated most’ adds the last graceful finishing to her character.
There’s something in this passage, as well as in the famous dialogue with Cromwell that follows, that goes beyond the ordinary; the way Griffiths describes Wolsey’s death is also very Shakespearian; and the honesty with which Queen Katherine hears praise for ‘the man she hated most while he was alive’ adds a final graceful touch to her character.
Among other images of great individual beauty might be mentioned the description of the effect of Ann Boleyn’s presenting herself to the crowd at her coronation.
Among other images of great individual beauty, we can mention the description of the impact of Ann Boleyn showing herself to the crowd at her coronation.
The character of Henry VIII. is drawn with great truth and spirit. It is like a very disagreeable portrait, sketched by the hand of a master. His gross appearance, his blustering demeanour, his vulgarity, his arrogance, his sensuality, his cruelty, his hypocrisy, his want of common decency and common humanity, are marked in strong lines. His traditional peculiarities of expression complete the reality of the picture. The authoritative expletive, ‘Ha!’ with which he intimates his indignation or surprise, has an effect like the first startling sound that breaks from a thunder-cloud. He is of all the monarchs in our history the most disgusting: for he unites in himself all the vices of barbarism and refinement, without their virtues. Other kings before him (such as Richard III.) were tyrants and murderers out of ambition or necessity: they gained or established unjust power by violent means: they destroyed their enemies, or those who barred their access to the throne or made its tenure insecure. But Henry VIII.‘s power is most fatal to those whom he loves: he is cruel and remorseless to pamper his luxurious appetites: bloody and voluptuous; an amorous murderer; an uxorious debauchee. His hardened insensibility to the feelings of others is strengthened by the most profligate self-indulgence. The religious hypocrisy, under which he masks his cruelty and his lust, is admirably displayed in the speech in which he describes the first misgivings of his conscience and its increasing throes and terrors, which have induced him to divorce his queen. The only thing in his favour in this play is his treatment of Cranmer: there is also another circumstance in his favour, which is his patronage of Hans Holbein.—It has been said of Shakespear—‘No maid could live near such a man.’ It might with as good reason be said—‘No king could live near such a man.’ His eye would have penetrated through the pomp of circumstance and the veil of opinion. As it is, he has represented such persons to the life—his plays are in this respect the glass of history—he has done them the same justice as if he had been a privy counsellor all his life, and in each successive reign. Kings ought never to be seen upon the stage. In the abstract, they are very disagreeable characters: it is only while living that they are ‘the best of kings.’ It is their power, their splendour, it is the apprehension of the personal consequences of their favour or their hatred that dazzles the imagination and suspends the judgment of their 306favourites or their vassals; but death cancels the bond of allegiance and of interest; and seen as they were, their power and their pretensions look monstrous and ridiculous. The charge brought against modern philosophy as inimical to loyalty is unjust, because it might as well be brought against other things. No reader of history can be a lover of kings. We have often wondered that Henry VIII. as he is drawn by Shakespear, and as we have seen him represented in all the bloated deformity of mind and person, is not hooted from the English stage.
The character of Henry VIII. is depicted with remarkable accuracy and energy. It’s like a very unpleasant portrait, crafted by a master’s hand. His crude appearance, loud demeanor, vulgarity, arrogance, sensuality, cruelty, hypocrisy, and lack of basic decency and humanity are all clearly defined. His trademark expressions add to the authenticity of the portrayal. The authoritative exclamation, ‘Ha!’ that he uses to express his anger or surprise is as jarring as the first crack of thunder. Among all the kings in our history, he is the most repulsive, combining all the vices of both barbarism and refinement, without any of their virtues. Other kings before him (like Richard III.) were tyrants and murderers out of ambition or necessity: they acquired or solidified unjust power through violence, destroying their enemies or anyone who threatened their claim to the throne. But Henry VIII.’s power is most dangerous to those he loves; he is cruel and relentless in satisfying his indulgent desires: bloody and indulgent; a passionate murderer; an overly devoted libertine. His hardened insensitivity to others’ feelings is reinforced by extreme self-indulgence. The religious hypocrisy he uses to conceal his cruelty and lust is vividly highlighted in the speech where he describes his initial pangs of conscience and the growing agony and fear that drive him to divorce his queen. The only redeeming aspect of his character in this play is how he treats Cranmer; there’s also the fact that he supports Hans Holbein. It has been said of Shakespeare—‘No maid could live near such a man.’ It could be equally said—‘No king could live near such a man.’ His gaze would have seen through the façade of power and the veil of public opinion. As it stands, he has captured the essence of such characters; his plays serve as a reflection of history—he portrays them as fairly as if he had been a close advisor throughout his life and across different reigns. Kings shouldn’t appear on stage. In the abstract, they’re often very unpleasant figures: it’s only when they are alive that they are ‘the best of kings.’ Their power, their grandeur, and the fear of personal consequences from their favor or disdain captivate the imagination and cloud the judgment of their followers or subordinates; but after death, the bonds of loyalty and self-interest dissolve, and seen as they were, their power and their claims seem grotesque and absurd. The criticism against modern philosophy as being against loyalty is unfair, as it could just as easily be directed at other things. No history reader can truly admire kings. We often question why Henry VIII., as portrayed by Shakespeare and shown in all his bloated mental and physical deformities, isn’t booed off the English stage.
KING JOHN
King John is the last of the historical plays we shall have to speak of; and we are not sorry that it is. If we are to indulge our imaginations, we had rather do it upon an imaginary theme; if we are to find subjects for the exercise of our pity and terror, we prefer seeking them in fictitious danger and fictitious distress. It gives a soreness to our feelings of indignation or sympathy, when we know that in tracing the progress of sufferings and crimes, we are treading upon real ground, and recollect that the poet’s dream ‘denoted a foregone conclusion‘—irrevocable ills, not conjured up by fancy, but placed beyond the reach of poetical justice. That the treachery of King John, the death of Arthur, the grief of Constance, had a real truth in history, sharpens the sense of pain, while it hangs a leaden weight on the heart and the imagination. Something whispers us that we have no right to make a mock of calamities like these, or to turn the truth of things into the puppet and plaything of our fancies. ‘To consider thus’ may be ‘to consider too curiously’; but still we think that the actual truth of the particular events, in proportion as we are conscious of it, is a drawback on the pleasure as well as the dignity of tragedy.
King John is the last of the historical plays we'll discuss, and we're honestly glad it is. If we’re going to let our imaginations run wild, we’d rather do it with an imaginary story; if we’re looking for subjects that evoke pity and terror, we prefer to find them in fabricated danger and fictional distress. It adds a certain sting to our feelings of anger or sympathy when we realize that while exploring the progression of suffering and crime, we’re standing on actual ground, recalling that the poet’s dream ‘denoted a foregone conclusion‘—permanent tragedies, not created by imagination, but beyond the reach of poetic justice. The betrayal of King John, the death of Arthur, the sorrow of Constance, all rooted in real events, intensifies the sense of pain and weighs heavily on both the heart and the imagination. Something tells us we shouldn’t make a joke out of calamities like these or turn the truth into just a toy for our fantasies. ‘To consider thus’ may be ‘to consider too curiously’; but still, we believe that the actual truth of these events, as much as we’re aware of it, undermines both the pleasure and the dignity of tragedy.
King John has all the beauties of language and all the richness of the imagination to relieve the painfulness of the subject. The character of King John himself is kept pretty much in the background; it is only marked in by comparatively slight indications. The crimes he is tempted to commit are such as are thrust upon him rather by circumstances and opportunity than of his own seeking: he is here represented as more cowardly than cruel, and as more contemptible than odious. The play embraces only a part of his history. There are however few characters on the stage that excite more disgust and loathing. He has no intellectual grandeur or strength of character to shield him from the indignation which his immediate conduct 307provokes: he stands naked and defenceless, in that respect, to the worst we can think of him: and besides, we are impelled to put the very worst construction on his meanness and cruelty by the tender picture of the beauty and helplessness of the object of it, as well as by the frantic and heart-rending pleadings of maternal despair. We do not forgive him the death of Arthur, because he had too late revoked his doom and tried to prevent it; and perhaps because he has himself repented of his black design, our moral sense gains courage to hate him the more for it. We take him at his word, and think his purposes must be odious indeed, when he himself shrinks back from them. The scene in which King John suggests to Hubert the design of murdering his nephew is a master-piece of dramatic skill, but it is still inferior, very inferior to the scene between Hubert and Arthur, when the latter learns the orders to put out his eyes. If any thing ever was penned, heart-piercing, mixing the extremes of terror and pity, of that which shocks and that which soothes the mind, it is this scene. We will give it entire, though perhaps it is tasking the reader’s sympathy too much.
King John has all the beauty of language and the richness of imagination to ease the pain of the subject. King John's character remains mostly in the background; it's only hinted at through subtle indications. The crimes he is tempted to commit are more thrust upon him by circumstances and opportunities than by his own desires: he appears more cowardly than cruel, and more pitiful than detestable. The play covers only part of his story. However, few characters on stage evoke more disgust and loathing. He lacks any intellectual greatness or strength of character to protect himself from the anger that his actions cause; he stands exposed and vulnerable, in that regard, to our worst thoughts about him. Moreover, we are compelled to think the worst of his meanness and cruelty because of the tender portrayal of the beauty and helplessness of his victim, as well as the frantic and heart-wrenching pleas of a mother in despair. We do not forgive him for Arthur's death, even though he tried too late to revoke his orders and prevent it; and perhaps because he himself has regretted his terrible plan, our moral sense feels even more justified in hating him. We believe him when he says he is remorseful and think his intentions must be truly despicable if even he recoils from them. The scene where King John suggests to Hubert the idea of killing his nephew is a masterpiece of dramatic skill, but it's still far inferior to the scene between Hubert and Arthur, when the latter learns about the orders to blind him. If anything ever captured the soul, mixing the extremes of terror and pity, the shocking and the soothing, it is this scene. We'll present it in full, even though it might be demanding too much of the reader's sympathy.
His death afterwards, when he throws himself from his prison walls, excites the utmost pity for his innocence and friendless situation, and well justifies the exaggerated denunciations of Falconbridge to Hubert, whom he suspects wrongfully of the deed.
His death later, when he jumps from the prison walls, stirs deep sympathy for his innocence and lonely circumstances, and clearly supports Falconbridge's extreme accusations against Hubert, whom he wrongly suspects of the act.
The excess of maternal tenderness, rendered desperate by the fickleness of friends and the injustice of fortune, and made stronger in will, in proportion to the want of all other power, was never more finely expressed than in Constance. The dignity of her answer to King Philip, when she refuses to accompany his messenger, ‘To me and to the state of my great grief, let kings assemble,’ her indignant reproach to Austria for deserting her cause, her invocation to death, ‘that love of misery,’ however fine and spirited, all yield to the beauty of the passage, where, her passion subsiding into tenderness, she addresses the Cardinal in these words:—
The overwhelming maternal love, made desperate by the unpredictability of friends and the unfairness of fate, and growing stronger in its determination despite a lack of other power, was never more beautifully expressed than in Constance. The dignity of her response to King Philip when she refuses to accompany his messenger, "For me and for the state of my great grief, let kings assemble," her furious rebuke to Austria for abandoning her cause, her call for death, "that love of misery," no matter how eloquent and spirited, all pale in comparison to the beauty of the moment when, her passion calming into tenderness, she addresses the Cardinal in these words:—
The contrast between the mild resignation of Queen Katherine to her own wrongs, and the wild, uncontroulable affliction of Constance for the wrongs which she sustains as a mother, is no less naturally conceived than it is ably sustained throughout these two wonderful characters.
The difference between Queen Katherine's calm acceptance of her own troubles and Constance's intense, uncontrollable grief for the suffering she endures as a mother is just as naturally imagined as it is skillfully portrayed in these two remarkable characters.
The accompaniment of the comic character of the Bastard was well chosen to relieve the poignant agony of suffering, and the cold cowardly policy of behaviour in the principal characters of this play. Its spirit, invention, volubility of tongue and forwardness in action, are unbounded. Aliquando sufflaminandus erat, says Ben Jonson of Shakespear. But we should be sorry if Ben Jonson had been his licenser. We prefer the heedless magnanimity of his wit infinitely to all Jonson’s laborious caution. The character of the Bastard’s comic humour is the same in essence as that of other comic characters in Shakespear; they always run on with good things and are never exhausted; they are always daring and successful. They have words at will, and a flow of wit like a flow of animal spirits. The difference between Falconbridge and the others is that he is a soldier, and brings his wit to bear upon action, is courageous with his sword as well as tongue, and stimulates his gallantry by his jokes, his enemies feeling the sharpness of his blows and the sting of his sarcasms at the same time. Among his happiest sallies are his descanting on the composition of his own person, his invective against ‘commodity, tickling commodity,’ and his expression of contempt for the Archduke of Austria, who had killed his father, which begins in jest but ends in serious earnest. His conduct at the siege of Angiers shews that his resources were not confined to verbal retorts.—The same exposure of the policy of courts and camps, of kings, nobles, priests, and cardinals, takes place here as in the other plays we have gone through, and we shall not go into a disgusting repetition.
The addition of the comic character of the Bastard was a smart choice to ease the intense pain of suffering and the cowardly tactics of the main characters in this play. His energy, creativity, quick speaking, and bold actions are limitless. Sometimes it needed support, says Ben Jonson of Shakespeare. But we'd be disappointed if Ben Jonson had been his censor. We much prefer the carefree boldness of his wit over all of Jonson's careful deliberation. The Bastard’s comedic energy is essentially the same as that of other comic characters in Shakespeare; they always have a wealth of clever lines and never run out of ideas; they are consistently audacious and successful. They have words at their fingertips and a stream of wit that flows effortlessly. The main difference between Falconbridge and the others is that he’s a soldier who applies his cleverness to action, fighting bravely with both his sword and his tongue, energizing his bravery with his jokes, leaving his enemies to feel both the sting of his attacks and his sharp sarcasm at the same time. Some of his best moments include his comments on the nature of his own appearance, his tirade against "commodity, tickling commodity," and his disdain for the Archduke of Austria, who killed his father, starting off as a joke but turning serious in the end. His behavior at the siege of Angiers shows that his skills go beyond just verbal jabs. —The same critique of the strategies used by courts and armies, by kings, nobles, priests, and cardinals, occurs here as in the other plays we’ve examined, and we won’t go into a tiresome repetition of it.
This, like the other plays taken from English history, is written in a remarkably smooth and flowing style, very different from some of the tragedies, Macbeth, for instance. The passages consist of a 312series of single lines, not running into one another. This peculiarity in the versification, which is most common in the three parts of Henry VI. has been assigned as a reason why those plays were not written by Shakespear. But the same structure of verse occurs in his other undoubted plays, as in Richard II. and in King John. The following are instances:—
This, like the other plays based on English history, is written in a very smooth and flowing style, which is quite different from some of the tragedies, like Macbeth, for example. The passages consist of a 312 series of single lines that don't run into each other. This unique feature of the verse, which is most common in the three parts of Henry VI., has been cited as a reason why those plays weren't written by Shakespeare. However, the same verse structure appears in his other confirmed works, such as Richard II. and in King John. Here are some examples:—
Another instance, which is certainly very happy as an example of the simple enumeration of a number of particulars, is Salisbury’s remonstrance against the second crowning of the king.
Another example, which is definitely a great illustration of simply listing a number of details, is Salisbury’s protest against the king's second coronation.
TWELFTH NIGHT; OR, WHAT YOU WILL
This is justly considered as one of the most delightful of Shakespear’s comedies. It is full of sweetness and pleasantry. It is perhaps too good-natured for comedy. It has little satire, and no spleen. It aims at the ludicrous rather than the ridiculous. It makes us laugh at the follies of mankind, not despise them, and still less bear any ill-will towards them. Shakespear’s comic genius resembles the bee rather in its power of extracting sweets from weeds or poisons, than in leaving a sting behind it. He gives the most amusing exaggeration of the prevailing foibles of his characters, but in a way that they themselves, instead of being offended at, would almost join in to humour; he rather contrives opportunities for them to shew themselves off in the happiest lights, than renders them contemptible in the perverse construction of the wit or malice of others.—There is a certain stage of society in which people become conscious of their peculiarities and absurdities, affect to disguise what they are, and set up pretensions to what they are not. This gives rise to a corresponding style of comedy, the object of which is to detect the disguises of self-love, and to make reprisals on these preposterous assumptions of vanity, by marking the contrast between the real and the affected character as severely as possible, and denying to those, who would impose on us for what they are not, even the merit which they have. This is the comedy of artificial life, of wit and satire, such as we see it in Congreve, Wycherley, Vanbrugh, etc. To this succeeds a state of society from which the same sort of affectation and pretence are banished by a greater knowledge of the world or by their successful exposure on the stage; and which by neutralising the materials of comic character, both natural and artificial, leaves no comedy at all—but the sentimental. Such is our modern comedy. There is a period in the progress of manners anterior to both these, in which the foibles and follies of individuals are of nature’s planting, not the growth of art or study; in which they are therefore unconscious of them themselves, or care not who knows them, if they can but have their whim out; and in which, as there is no attempt at imposition, the spectators rather receive pleasure from humouring the inclinations of the persons they laugh at, than wish to give them pain by exposing their absurdity. This may be called the comedy of nature, and it is the comedy which we generally find in Shakespear.—Whether the analysis here given be just or not, the spirit of his comedies is evidently 314quite distinct from that of the authors above mentioned, as it is in its essence the same with that of Cervantes, and also very frequently of Molière, though he was more systematic in his extravagance than Shakespear. Shakespear’s comedy is of a pastoral and poetical cast. Folly is indigenous to the soil, and shoots out with native, happy, unchecked luxuriance. Absurdity has every encouragement afforded it; and nonsense has room to flourish in. Nothing is stunted by the churlish, icy hand of indifference or severity. The poet runs riot in a conceit, and idolises a quibble. His whole object is to turn the meanest or rudest objects to a pleasurable account. The relish which he has of a pun, or of the quaint humour of a low character, does not interfere with the delight with which he describes a beautiful image, or the most refined love. The clown’s forced jests do not spoil the sweetness of the character of Viola; the same house is big enough to hold Malvolio, the Countess, Maria, Sir Toby, and Sir Andrew Ague-cheek. For instance, nothing can fall much lower than this last character in intellect or morals: yet how are his weaknesses nursed and dandled by Sir Toby into something ‘high fantastical,’ when on Sir Andrew’s commendation of himself for dancing and fencing, Sir Toby answers—‘Wherefore are these things hid? Wherefore have these gifts a curtain before them? Are they like to take dust like mistress Moll’s picture? Why dost thou not go to church in a galliard, and come home in a coranto? My very walk should be a jig! I would not so much as make water but in a cinque-pace. What dost thou mean? Is this a world to hide virtues in? I did think by the excellent constitution of thy leg, it was framed under the star of a galliard!’—How Sir Toby, Sir Andrew, and the Clown afterwards chirp over their cups, how they ‘rouse the night-owl in a catch, able to draw three souls out of one weaver!’ What can be better than Sir Toby’s unanswerable answer to Malvolio, ‘Dost thou think, because thou art virtuous, there shall be no more cakes and ale?’—In a word, the best turn is given to every thing, instead of the worst. There is a constant infusion of the romantic and enthusiastic, in proportion as the characters are natural and sincere: whereas, in the more artificial style of comedy, every thing gives way to ridicule and indifference, there being nothing left but affectation on one side, and incredulity on the other.—Much as we like Shakespear’s comedies, we cannot agree with Dr. Johnson that they are better than his tragedies; nor do we like them half so well. If his inclination to comedy sometimes led him to trifle with the seriousness of tragedy, the poetical and impassioned passages are the best parts of his comedies. The great and secret charm of Twelfth Night is the character of Viola. Much as we like catches and cakes 315and ale, there is something that we like better. We have a friendship for Sir Toby; we patronise Sir Andrew; we have an understanding with the Clown, a sneaking kindness for Maria and her rogueries; we feel a regard for Malvolio, and sympathise with his gravity, his smiles, his cross garters, his yellow stockings, and imprisonment in the stocks. But there is something that excites in us a stronger feeling than all this—it is Viola’s confession of her love.
This is rightly seen as one of Shakespeare's most enjoyable comedies. It’s full of charm and humor, perhaps too kind-hearted for traditional comedy. It has little satire and no bitterness. It aims for the funny rather than the absurd. It makes us laugh at human follies without despising them or holding any grudges. Shakespeare’s comic brilliance is more like a bee extracting sweetness from weeds than leaving a sting behind. He exaggerates the quirks of his characters in a way that makes them more appealing, allowing them to show off their best sides rather than making them seem ridiculous due to the wit or malice of others. There's a certain stage in society where people become aware of their quirks and absurdities, pretend to be someone they’re not, and strive for things that aren’t true to them. This leads to a style of comedy aimed at uncovering these disguises of self-importance and poking fun at the absurd claims of vanity, highlighting the contrast between genuine and pretended character, and denying even the merit of those trying to mislead us. This is the comedy of an artificial world, rich in wit and satire, much like what we see with Congreve, Wycherley, Vanbrugh, and others. Following this is a societal phase where the same kind of pretense fades away due to a greater understanding of the world or its successful exposure on stage, neutralizing comic elements—both natural and artificial—leaving us only with the sentimental. This defines our modern comedy. There exists a stage in manners that predates both these phases, characterized by individual foibles arising naturally rather than from art or study; people in this phase are either unaware of their quirks or don’t care who knows, as long as they can express themselves. In this time, there’s no attempt at deception, and spectators find joy in indulging the whims of the characters they laugh at, rather than seeking to expose their absurdity. This can be called the comedy of nature, and it is the type of comedy we often find in Shakespeare. Whether this analysis is accurate or not, the spirit of his comedies is clearly different from those of the aforementioned authors, sharing essence with Cervantes and often with Molière, though Molière was more structured in his extravagances than Shakespeare. Shakespeare’s comedy is pastoral and poetic. Folly naturally grows and thrives unchecked. Absurdity is freely encouraged, and nonsense has plenty of space to flourish. Nothing is stifled by the cold, harsh hand of indifference or severity. The poet revels in clever wordplay and celebrates puns. His goal is to turn even the simplest or roughest objects into sources of amusement. His appreciation for a pun or the quirky humor of a low character does not detract from the beauty he describes or the most refined love. The clumsy jokes of the fool don’t spoil the charm of Viola's character; the same space can comfortably fit Malvolio, the Countess, Maria, Sir Toby, and Sir Andrew Aguecheek. For instance, nothing can sink lower than Sir Andrew’s intellect or morals: yet how Sir Toby nurtures and uplifts his weaknesses into something "highly fantastical" when Sir Andrew boasts about his dancing and fencing skills. Sir Toby responds, "Why are these things hidden? Why do these gifts have a curtain drawn over them? Are they gathering dust like Mistress Moll’s portrait? Why don’t you go to church in a lively dance and come back in a lively step? My every walk should be a jig! I wouldn’t even relieve myself without doing it in style. What do you mean? Is this a world to hide virtues in? I thought with your excellent leg, it was made under the star of a lively dance!"—How Sir Toby, Sir Andrew, and the Clown then chirp over their drinks, how they "wake the night-owl with a song, able to draw three souls out of one weaver!" What could be better than Sir Toby’s brilliant comeback to Malvolio, "Do you think that just because you’re virtuous, there won’t be any more cakes and ale?"—In summary, every situation receives the best interpretation rather than the worst. There’s a constant blend of the romantic and enthusiastic in proportion to how natural and sincere the characters are, while in a more artificial style of comedy, everything yields to ridicule and indifference, dominated by pretense on one side and skepticism on the other. As much as we enjoy Shakespeare’s comedies, we don’t agree with Dr. Johnson that they surpass his tragedies; nor do we enjoy them as much. If his tendency toward comedy sometimes led him to trivialize the seriousness of tragedy, the best parts of his comedies are the poetic and passionate passages. The great and secret charm of Twelfth Night lies in Viola's character. As much as we enjoy songs and drinks, there’s something we value even more. We have affection for Sir Toby; we support Sir Andrew; we relate to the Clown, feel a sneaky fondness for Maria and her mischief; we hold compassion for Malvolio, sympathizing with his seriousness, his smiles, his cross-gartered leggings, his yellow stockings, and his time spent in the stocks. Yet there’s something that stirs in us a stronger feeling than all of that—it’s Viola’s confession of her love.
Shakespear alone could describe the effect of his own poetry.
Shakespeare alone could capture the impact of his own poetry.
What we so much admire here is not the image of Patience on a monument, which has been generally quoted, but the lines before and after it. ‘They give a very echo to the seat where love is throned.’ How long ago it is since we first learnt to repeat them; and still, still they vibrate on the heart, like the sounds which the passing wind draws from the trembling strings of a harp left on some desert shore! There are other passages of not less impassioned sweetness. Such is Olivia’s address to Sebastian, whom she supposes to have already deceived her in a promise of marriage.
What we really admire here isn’t the image of Patience on a monument, which is often quoted, but the lines that come before and after it. ‘They give a very echo to the seat where love is throned.’ It feels like ages since we first learned to say them; yet, they still resonate in our hearts, like the sounds the wind pulls from the trembling strings of a harp left on a deserted shore! There are other lines that are just as deeply sweet. One example is Olivia’s speech to Sebastian, who she believes has already tricked her with a promise of marriage.
We have already said something of Shakespear’s songs. One of 316the most beautiful of them occurs in this play, with a preface of his own to it.
We have already mentioned some of Shakespeare’s songs. One of the most beautiful ones appears in this play, along with an introduction from him.
Who after this will say that Shakespear’s genius was only fitted for comedy? Yet after reading other parts of this play, and particularly the garden-scene where Malvolio picks up the letter, if we were to say that his genius for comedy was less than his genius for tragedy, it would perhaps only prove that our own taste in such matters is more saturnine than mercurial.
Who would say after this that Shakespeare's talent was only meant for comedy? Yet, after reading other parts of this play, especially the garden scene where Malvolio finds the letter, if we were to claim that his talent for comedy was less than his talent for tragedy, it might just show that our own taste in these things is more gloomy than light-hearted.
Sir Toby. Here comes the little villain:—How now, my nettle of India?
Sir Toby. Here comes the little troublemaker:—What's up, my Indian nettle?
Maria. Get ye all three into the box-tree: Malvolio’s coming down this walk: he has been yonder i’ the sun, practising behaviour to his own shadow this half hour: observe him, for the love of mockery; for I know this letter will make a contemplative idiot of him. Close, in the name of jesting! Lie thou there; for here come’s the trout that must be caught with tickling.
Maria. You three, get into the box-tree: Malvolio's coming down this path. He's been over there in the sun, practicing his behavior in front of his own shadow for the last half hour. Watch him for the sake of a good laugh, because I know this letter will turn him into a thoughtful fool. Quick, for the sake of a joke! Lie there; here comes the fish that needs to be caught with some teasing.
Malvolio. ’Tis but fortune; all is fortune. Maria once told me, she did affect me; and I have heard herself come thus near, that, should she fancy, it should be one of my complexion. Besides, she uses me with a more exalted respect than any one else that follows her. What should I think on’t?
Malvolio. It’s just luck; everything is about luck. Maria once told me that she liked me; I’ve even heard her say that if she were to fall for someone, it would be someone like me. Plus, she treats me with more respect than anyone else who’s around her. What should I make of that?
Sir Toby. Here’s an over-weening rogue!
Sir Toby. Here’s an arrogant rogue!
Fabian. O, peace! Contemplation makes a rare turkey-cock of him; how he jets under his advanced plumes!
Fabian. Oh, come on! Just thinking about it makes him strut around like a proud peacock; look at him flaunt those fancy feathers!
Sir Andrew. ‘Slight, I could so beat the rogue:—
Sir Andrew. ‘Honestly, I could totally take that jerk down:—
Sir Toby. Peace, I say.
Sir Toby. Chill, I say.
Malvolio. To be count Malvolio;—
Malvolio. To be Count Malvolio;—
Sir Toby. Ah, rogue!
Sir Toby. Ah, troublemaker!
Sir Andrew. Pistol him, pistol him.
Sir Andrew. Shoot him, shoot him.
Sir Toby. Peace, peace!
Sir Toby. Calm down!
Malvolio. There is example for’t; the lady of the Strachy married the yeoman of the wardrobe.
Malvolio. There’s a precedent for that; the lady of the Strachy married the guy who worked in the wardrobe.
Sir Andrew. Fie on him, Jezebel!
Sir Andrew. Shame on him, Jezebel!
Fabian. O, peace! now he’s deeply in; look, how imagination blows him.
Fabian. Oh, come on! Now he’s really into it; look how his imagination is running wild.
Malvolio. Having been three months married to her, sitting in my chair of state,——
Malvolio. After being married to her for three months, sitting in my seat of authority,——
Sir Toby. O for a stone bow, to hit him in the eye!
Sir Toby. Oh, I wish I had a slingshot to hit him in the eye!
Malvolio. Calling my officers about me, in my branch’d velvet gown; having come from a day-bed, where I have left Olivia sleeping.
Malvolio. Summoning my attendants, dressed in my tailored velvet gown; having just gotten up from a daybed, where I left Olivia sleeping.
Sir Toby. Fire and brimstone!
Sir Toby. Hellfire!
Fabian. O peace, peace!
Fabian. Oh peace, peace!
Malvolio. And then to have the humour of state: and after a demure travel of regard,——telling them, I know my place, as I would they should do theirs,—to ask for my kinsman Toby.——
Malvolio. And then to have the demeanor of authority: and after a composed gaze,——telling them I recognize my position, just as I wish they would recognize theirs,—to ask for my relative Toby.——
Sir Toby. Bolts and shackles!
Sir Toby. Handcuffs and chains!
Fabian. O, peace, peace, peace! now, now.
Fabian. Oh, calm down, calm down, calm down! Right now.
Malvolio. Seven of my people, with an obedient start, make out for him; I frown the while; and, perchance, wind up my watch, or play with some rich jewel. Toby approaches; curtsies there to me.
Malvolio. Seven of my people, eager to please, head towards him; I frown in the meantime, and maybe I'll wind my watch or fiddle with some expensive jewel. Toby comes over and curtsies to me.
Sir Toby. Shall this fellow live?
Sir Toby. Should this guy live?
Fabian. Though our silence be drawn from us with cares, yet peace.
Fabian. Even though our silence comes from our worries, there is still peace.
Malvolio. I extend my hand to him thus, quenching my familiar smile with an austere regard to controul.
Malvolio. I reach out my hand to him like this, suppressing my friendly smile with a serious look to take control.
Sir Toby. And does not Toby take you a blow o’ the lips then?
Sir Toby. So, doesn’t Toby give you a kiss on the lips then?
Malvolio. Saying—Cousin Toby, my fortunes having cast me on your niece, give me this prerogative of speech;—
Malvolio. So, Cousin Toby, since my luck has brought me to your niece, let me have this chance to speak;—
Sir Toby. What, what?
Sir Toby. What’s up?
Malvolio. You must amend your drunkenness.
Malvolio. You need to stop drinking.
Fabian. Nay, patience, or we break the sinews of our plot.
Fabian. No, let’s be patient, or we’ll ruin the foundation of our plan.
Malvolio. Besides, you waste the treasure of your time with a foolish knight—
Malvolio. Plus, you’re wasting your time on a silly knight—
Sir Andrew. That’s me, I warrant you.
Sir Andrew. That's me, I guarantee it.
Malvolio. One Sir Andrew——
Malvolio. One Sir Andrew—
Sir Andrew. I knew, ’twas I; for many do call me fool.
Sir Andrew. I knew it was me; because many call me a fool.
Malvolio. What employment have we here? |[Taking up the letter.’|
Malvolio. What job do we have here? Picking up the letter.
318The letter and his comments on it are equally good. If poor Malvolio’s treatment afterwards is a little hard, poetical justice is done in the uneasiness which Olivia suffers on account of her mistaken attachment to Cesario, as her insensibility to the violence of the Duke’s passion is atoned for by the discovery of Viola’s concealed love of him.
318The letter and his comments on it are both excellent. If poor Malvolio is treated a bit harshly later on, poetic justice comes into play with Olivia’s discomfort caused by her wrong feelings for Cesario, just as her insensitivity to the Duke’s intense feelings is balanced out by Viola’s hidden love for him being revealed.
THE TWO GENTLEMEN OF VERONA
This is little more than the first outlines of a comedy loosely sketched in. It is the story of a novel dramatised with very little labour or pretension; yet there are passages of high poetical spirit, and of inimitable quaintness of humour, which are undoubtedly Shakespear’s, and there is throughout the conduct of the fable a careless grace and felicity which marks it for his. One of the editors (we believe Mr. Pope) remarks in a marginal note to the Two Gentlemen of Verona—
This is just a rough sketch of a comedy. It’s a story taken from a novel and dramatized with minimal effort or pretense; however, there are parts full of high poetic spirit and unique humor that are definitely Shakespeare’s. Throughout the narrative, there’s an effortless charm and happiness that makes it unmistakably his. One of the editors (we think it’s Mr. Pope) notes in the margins of the Two Guys from Verona—
‘It is observable (I know not for what cause) that the style of this comedy is less figurative, and more natural and unaffected than the greater part of this author’s, though supposed to be one of the first he wrote.’
‘It’s noticeable (I’m not sure why) that the style of this comedy is less figurative and more natural and straightforward than most of this author’s work, even though it’s thought to be one of the first he wrote.’
Yet so little does the editor appear to have made up his mind upon this subject, that we find the following note to the very next (the second) scene.
Yet the editor seems to be so uncertain about this topic that we come across the following note in the very next (the second) scene.
‘This whole scene, like many others in these plays (some of which I believe were written by Shakespear, and others interpolated by the players) is composed of the lowest and most trifling conceits, to be accounted for only by the gross taste of the age he lived in: Populo ut placerent. I wish I had authority to leave them out, but I have done all I could, set a mark of reprobation upon them, throughout this edition.’
‘This entire scene, like many others in these plays (some of which I think were written by Shakespeare, and others added by the actors), is filled with the most trivial and absurd ideas, which can only be explained by the poor taste of the time he lived in: Populace to please. I wish I had the power to remove them, but I’ve done everything I can to mark them for criticism throughout this edition.’
It is strange that our fastidious critic should fall so soon from praising to reprobating. The style of the familiar parts of this comedy is indeed made up of conceits—low they may be for what we know, but then they are not poor, but rich ones. The scene of Launce with his dog (not that in the second, but that in the fourth act) is a perfect treat in the way of farcical drollery and invention; nor do we think Speed’s manner of proving his master to be in love deficient in wit or sense, though the style may be criticised as not simple enough for the modern taste.
It's odd that our picky critic should go from praising to criticizing so quickly. The style of the more casual parts of this comedy is definitely filled with clever ideas—while they might seem lowbrow, they’re actually quite rich. The scene with Launce and his dog (not the one in the second act, but the one in the fourth) is a real delight in terms of silly humor and creativity; and we don’t think Speed’s way of showing that his master is in love lacks wit or intelligence, even if the style might be seen as too complicated for modern tastes.
‘Valentine. Why, how know you that I am in love?
‘Valentine. How do you know I'm in love?
Speed. Marry, by these special marks: first, you have learned, like Sir Protheus, to wreathe your arms like a malcontent, to relish a love-song 319like a robin-red-breast, to walk alone like one that had the pestilence, to sigh like a school-boy that had lost his ABC, to weep like a young wench that had buried her grandam, to fast like one that takes diet, to watch like one that fears robbing, to speak puling like a beggar at Hallowmas. You were wont, when you laughed, to crow like a cock; when you walked, to walk like one of the lions; when you fasted, it was presently after dinner; when you looked sadly, it was for want of money; and now you are metamorphosed with a mistress, that when I look on you, I can hardly think you my master.’
Speed. Well, by these special signs: first, you've learned, like Sir Protheus, to cross your arms like a moody person, to enjoy a love song like a robin, to walk alone like someone who's sick, to sigh like a boy who lost his alphabet, to cry like a young girl who lost her grandmother, to go without food like someone on a diet, to stay awake like someone who's afraid of being robbed, to whine like a beggar at Halloween. You used to laugh and crow like a rooster; when you walked, you moved like one of the lions; when you skipped meals, it was right after dinner; and when you looked sad, it was because you were low on cash; and now you've changed so much with a girlfriend that when I look at you, I can barely believe you’re my master.
The tender scenes in this play, though not so highly wrought as in some others, have often much sweetness of sentiment and expression. There is something pretty and playful in the conversation of Julia with her maid, when she shews such a disposition to coquetry about receiving the letter from Protheus; and her behaviour afterwards and her disappointment, when she finds him faithless to his vows, remind us at a distance of Imogen’s tender constancy. Her answer to Lucetta, who advises her against following her lover in disguise, is a beautiful piece of poetry.
The tender moments in this play, while not as elaborate as in some others, often have a lot of sweetness in sentiment and expression. Julia's playful conversation with her maid, where she shows a flirty attitude about getting the letter from Protheus, is quite charming. Her reactions later and her disappointment when she discovers he has been unfaithful remind us, in a way, of Imogen’s devoted love. Her reply to Lucetta, who advises her not to follow her lover in disguise, is a beautifully poetic response.
If Shakespear indeed had written only this and other passages in the Two Gentlemen of Verona, he would almost have deserved Milton’s praise of him—
If Shakespeare really had written just this and other parts in the Two Guys from Verona, he would almost deserve Milton’s praise.
But as it is, he deserves rather more praise than this.
But as it is, he deserves a bit more praise than this.
THE MERCHANT OF VENICE
This is a play that in spite of the change of manners and prejudices still holds undisputed possession of the stage. Shakespear’s malignant has outlived Mr. Cumberland’s benevolent Jew. In proportion as Shylock has ceased to be a popular bugbear, ‘baited with the rabble’s curse,’ he becomes a half-favourite with the philosophical part of the audience, who are disposed to think that Jewish revenge is at least as good as Christian injuries. Shylock is a good hater; ‘a man no less sinned against than sinning.’ If he carries his revenge too far, yet he has strong grounds for ‘the lodged hate he bears Anthonio,’ which he explains with equal force of eloquence and reason. He seems the depositary of the vengeance of his race; and though the long habit of brooding over daily insults and injuries has crusted over his temper with inveterate misanthropy, and hardened him against the contempt of mankind, this adds but little to the triumphant pretensions of his enemies. There is a strong, quick, and deep sense of justice mixed up with the gall and bitterness of his resentment. The constant apprehension of being burnt alive, plundered, banished, reviled, and trampled on, might be supposed to sour the most forbearing nature, and to take something from that ‘milk of human kindness,’ with which his persecutors contemplated his indignities. The desire of revenge is almost inseparable from the sense of wrong; and we can hardly help sympathising with the proud spirit, hid beneath his ‘Jewish gaberdine,’ stung to madness by repeated undeserved provocations, and labouring to throw off the load of obloquy and oppression heaped upon him and all his tribe by one desperate act of ‘lawful’ revenge, till the ferociousness of the means by which he is to execute his purpose, and the pertinacity with which he adheres to it, turn us against him; but even at last, when disappointed of the sanguinary revenge with which he had glutted his hopes, and exposed to beggary and contempt by the letter of the law on which he had insisted with so little remorse, we pity him, and think him hardly dealt with by his judges. In all his answers and retorts upon his adversaries, he has the best not only of the argument but of the question, reasoning on their own principles and practice. They are so far from allowing of any measure of equal dealing, of common justice or humanity between themselves and the Jew, that even when they come to ask a favour of him, and Shylock reminds them that ‘on such a day they spit upon him, another spurned him, another called him dog, and for these curtesies request he’ll lend them so much monies’—Anthonio, 321his old enemy, instead of any acknowledgment of the shrewdness and justice of his remonstrance, which would have been preposterous in a respectable Catholic merchant in those times, threatens him with a repetition of the same treatment—
This is a play that, despite evolving social norms and biases, still firmly holds its place on stage. Shakespeare's malicious character has outlasted Mr. Cumberland's kind-hearted Jew. As Shylock has stopped being a popular figure of fear, ‘tormented by the crowd's curse,’ he becomes a sort of anti-hero for the more philosophical audience members, who believe that Jewish vengeance is at least as valid as Christian wrongs. Shylock is a good hater; ‘a man who has been wronged as much as he has wronged others.’ If he goes too far in his quest for revenge, he still has solid reasons for ‘the deep-seated hatred he feels for Antonio,’ which he explains with both eloquence and logic. He seems to embody the vengeance of his people; and although years of reflecting on constant insults and injuries have hardened his temperament with deep misanthropy and made him immune to the disdain of humanity, this does little to bolster the lofty claims of his enemies. There is a strong, quick, and profound sense of justice intertwined with the bitterness of his anger. The constant fear of being burned alive, robbed, exiled, insulted, and trampled upon could sour even the most tolerant soul and diminish that ‘milk of human kindness’ with which his persecutors viewed his humiliations. The desire for revenge is nearly inseparable from the feeling of being wronged; and we can't help but sympathize with the proud spirit hidden beneath his ‘Jewish gaberdine,’ driven to madness by repeated unjust provocations, striving to rid himself of the burden of scorn and oppression piled onto him and his entire community by one desperate act of ‘lawful’ revenge, until the brutal means he chooses and his stubbornness in pursuing it turn us against him; yet even at the end, when he fails to achieve the bloody vengeance he had hoped for and faces poverty and scorn due to the very law he insisted on with little remorse, we feel pity for him and think he was treated unfairly by his judges. In all his responses and comebacks to his opponents, he not only argues well but also understands the core issue, reasoning based on their own principles and practices. They are so far from allowing any form of fair treatment, common justice, or humanity between themselves and the Jew that even when they come to seek a favor from him, and Shylock reminds them that ‘on such a day they spat on him, another kicked him, another called him a dog, and now for these courtesies they request he’ll lend them some money’—Antonio, 321his former enemy, instead of acknowledging the sharpness and fairness of Shylock’s complaint—something that would have been outrageous for a respectable Catholic merchant in those times—threatens him with the same treatment again—
After this, the appeal to the Jew’s mercy, as if there were any common principle of right and wrong between them, is the rankest hypocrisy, or the blindest prejudice; and the Jew’s answer to one of Anthonio’s friends, who asks him what his pound of forfeit flesh is good for, is irresistible—
After this, the appeal to the Jew’s mercy, as if there were any shared understanding of right and wrong between them, is the worst kind of hypocrisy, or pure ignorance; and the Jew’s response to one of Antonio’s friends, who asks him what his pound of forfeit flesh is good for, is compelling—
To bait fish withal; if it will feed nothing else, it will feed my revenge. He hath disgrac’d me, and hinder’d me of half a million, laughed at my losses, mock’d at my gains, scorn’d my nation, thwarted my bargains, cool’d my friends, heated mine enemies; and what’s his reason? I am a Jew. Hath not a Jew eyes; hath not a Jew hands, organs, dimensions, senses, affections, passions; fed with the same food, hurt with the same weapons, subject to the same diseases, healed by the same means, warmed and cooled by the same winter and summer that a Christian is? If you prick us, do we not bleed? If you tickle us, do we not laugh? If you poison us, do we not die? And if you wrong us, shall we not revenge? If we are like you in the rest, we will resemble you in that. If a Jew wrong a Christian, what is his humility? revenge. If a Christian wrong a Jew, what should his sufferance be by Christian example? why revenge. The villainy you teach me I will execute, and it shall go hard but I will better the instruction.’
To bait fish with it; if it won't feed anything else, it'll feed my revenge. He's disgraced me and cost me half a million, laughed at my losses, mocked my gains, scorned my people, sabotaged my deals, cooled my friends, and heated my enemies; and what's his reason? I’m a Jew. Doesn’t a Jew have eyes? Doesn’t a Jew have hands, organs, dimensions, senses, feelings, passions? Fed with the same food, hurt with the same weapons, subject to the same diseases, healed by the same means, warmed and cooled by the same winters and summers as a Christian? If you prick us, do we not bleed? If you tickle us, do we not laugh? If you poison us, do we not die? And if you wrong us, will we not seek revenge? If we’re like you in other ways, we’ll be the same in that. If a Jew wrongs a Christian, what’s his humility? Revenge. If a Christian wrongs a Jew, what should his suffering be by Christian example? Why, revenge. The villainy you teach me, I will carry out, and it will be tough, but I will improve on the lesson.
The whole of the trial-scene, both before and after the entrance of Portia, is a master-piece of dramatic skill. The legal acuteness, the passionate declamations, the sound maxims of jurisprudence, the wit and irony interspersed in it, the fluctuations of hope and fear in the different persons, and the completeness and suddenness of the catastrophe, cannot be surpassed. Shylock, who is his own counsel, defends himself well, and is triumphant on all the general topics that are urged against him, and only fails through a legal flaw. Take the following as an instance:—
The entire trial scene, both before and after Portia's arrival, is a masterpiece of dramatic skill. The legal sharpness, the passionate speeches, the solid principles of law, the wit and irony woven throughout, the shifts between hope and fear in the characters, and the totality and abruptness of the outcome are unmatched. Shylock, acting as his own lawyer, defends himself effectively and triumphs on all the general points made against him, only to falter due to a legal technicality. Consider the following as an example:—
The keenness of his revenge awakes all his faculties; and he beats back all opposition to his purpose, whether grave or gay, whether of wit or argument, with an equal degree of earnestness and self-possession. His character is displayed as distinctly in other less prominent parts of the play, and we may collect from a few sentences the history of his life—his descent and origin, his thrift and domestic economy, his affection for his daughter, whom he loves next to his wealth, his courtship and his first present to Leah, his wife! ‘I would not have parted with it’ (the ring which he first gave her) ‘for a wilderness of monkies!’ What a fine Hebraism is implied in this expression!
The intensity of his desire for revenge sharpens all his abilities; he pushes back against any opposition to his goals, whether it's serious or playful, whether it involves clever remarks or logic, with equal determination and composure. His character is revealed clearly in other less obvious parts of the play, and we can gather from a few lines the story of his life—his background and origins, his frugality and management of household affairs, his love for his daughter, whom he cherishes just after his wealth, his pursuit of love, and his first gift to Leah, his wife! ‘I wouldn’t have given it up’ (the ring he first gave her) ‘for a whole jungle of monkeys!’ What a great Hebraism is suggested in this phrase!
Portia is not a very great favourite with us; neither are we in love with her maid, Nerissa. Portia has a certain degree of affectation and pedantry about her, which is very unusual in Shakespear’s women, but which perhaps was a proper qualification for the office of a ‘civil doctor,’ which she undertakes and executes so successfully. The speech about Mercy is very well; but there are a thousand finer ones in Shakespear. We do not admire the scene of the caskets: and object entirely to the Black Prince, Morocchius. We should like Jessica better if she had not deceived and robbed her father, and Lorenzo, if he had not married a Jewess, though he thinks he has a right to wrong a Jew. The dialogue between this newly-married couple by moonlight, beginning ‘On such a night,’ etc. is a collection of classical elegancies. Launcelot, the Jew’s man, is an honest fellow. The dilemma in which he describes himself placed between his ‘conscience and the fiend,’ the one of which advises him to run away from his master’s service and the other to stay in it, is exquisitely humourous.
Portia isn't really a favorite of ours, and neither is her maid, Nerissa. Portia has a bit of pretentiousness and seriousness about her, which is quite unusual for Shakespeare's female characters, but maybe it's what she needs to be a good 'civil doctor,' a role she takes on and handles very well. Her speech about mercy is nice, but there are plenty of better ones in Shakespeare's works. We're not fans of the casket scene, and we completely object to the Black Prince, Morocco. We would like Jessica more if she hadn't deceived and robbed her father, and Lorenzo would be better in our eyes if he hadn't married a Jewish woman, even though he thinks he has a right to wrong a Jew. The dialogue between this newly married couple by moonlight, starting with ‘On such a night,’ etc., is filled with classical elegance. Launcelot, the Jew’s servant, is a genuinely good guy. The dilemma he finds himself in, caught between his ‘conscience and the fiend’—one telling him to leave his master’s service and the other urging him to stay—is incredibly humorous.
Gratiano is a very admirable subordinate character. He is the jester of the piece: yet one speech of his, in his own defence, contains a whole volume of wisdom.
Gratiano is a really admirable supporting character. He plays the role of the jester in the story: however, one speech of his, in his own defense, holds a wealth of wisdom.
Gratiano’s speech on the philosophy of love, and the effect of habit in taking off the force of passion, is as full of spirit and good sense. The graceful winding up of this play in the fifth act, after the tragic business is despatched, is one of the happiest instances of Shakespear’s knowledge of the principles of the drama. We do not mean the pretended quarrel between Portia and Nerissa and their husbands about the rings, which is amusing enough, but the conversation just before and after the return of Portia to her own house, beginning ‘How sweet the moonlight sleeps upon this bank,’ and ending ‘Peace! how the moon sleeps with Endymion, and would not be awaked.’ There is a number of beautiful thoughts crowded into that short space, and linked together by the most natural transitions.
Gratiano’s speech about the philosophy of love and how habit reduces the intensity of passion is full of life and common sense. The graceful conclusion of this play in the fifth act, after the serious events are resolved, is one of the best examples of Shakespeare’s understanding of dramatic principles. We’re not talking about the fake argument between Portia and Nerissa and their husbands over the rings, which is entertaining enough, but the conversation just before and after Portia returns to her house, starting with ‘How sweet the moonlight sleeps upon this bank,’ and ending with ‘Peace! how the moon sleeps with Endymion, and would not be awaked.’ There are many beautiful ideas packed into that brief moment, seamlessly connected by the most natural transitions.
When we first went to see Mr. Kean in Shylock, we expected to see, what we had been used to see, a decrepid old man, bent with age and ugly with mental deformity, grinning with deadly malice, with the venom of his heart congealed in the expression of his countenance, sullen, morose, gloomy, inflexible, brooding over one idea, that of his hatred, and fixed on one unalterable purpose, that of his revenge. We were disappointed, because we had taken our idea from other actors, not from the play. There is no proof there that Shylock is old, but a single line, ‘Bassanio and old Shylock, both stand forth,’—which does not imply that he is infirm with age—and the circumstance that he has a daughter marriageable, which does 324not imply that he is old at all. It would be too much to say that his body should be made crooked and deformed to answer to his mind, which is bowed down and warped with prejudices and passion. That he has but one idea, is not true; he has more ideas than any other person in the piece; and if he is intense and inveterate in the pursuit of his purpose, he shews the utmost elasticity, vigour, and presence of mind, in the means of attaining it. But so rooted was our habitual impression of the part from seeing it caricatured in the representation, that it was only from a careful perusal of the play itself that we saw our error. The stage is not in general the best place to study our author’s characters in. It is too often filled with traditional common-place conceptions of the part, handed down from sire to son, and suited to the taste of the great vulgar and the small.—‘’Tis an unweeded garden: things rank and gross do merely gender in it!’ If a man of genius comes once in an age to clear away the rubbish, to make it fruitful and wholesome, they cry, ‘’Tis a bad school: it may be like nature, it may be like Shakespear, but it is not like us.’ Admirable critics!
When we first went to see Mr. Kean as Shylock, we expected to see, like we had before, a frail old man, hunched with age and twisted by bitterness, grinning with malevolence, his heart’s venom showing on his gloomy face, sullen, moody, brooding over one idea: his hatred, and focused on one fixed goal: his revenge. We were let down because we based our expectations on other actors, not the play itself. There’s no evidence that Shylock is old, just one line, ‘Bassanio and old Shylock, both stand forth,’ which doesn’t necessarily mean he’s frail with age, and the fact that he has a daughter who is of marrying age doesn’t imply that he’s old either. It would be too much to say that his body should be crooked and deformed to match his mind, which is weighed down and twisted by biases and passion. It's not true that he has only one idea; he actually has more ideas than anyone else in the play, and while he is intense and relentless in pursuing his goal, he shows remarkable flexibility, energy, and quick-thinking in how he goes about it. But we were so set in our usual impression of the role from watching it caricatured in performances that it took a careful reading of the play itself for us to realize our mistake. The stage isn’t usually the best place to understand the author’s characters. It’s often filled with clichéd interpretations of the role, passed down from generation to generation, catering to the tastes of the great vulgar and the small.—‘’Tis an unweeded garden: things rank and gross do merely gender in it!’ If a genius comes along once in a while to clear away the junk and make it fruitful and healthy, people say, ‘’Tis a bad school: it may be like nature, it may be like Shakespeare, but it’s not like us.’ Great critics!
THE WINTER’S TALE
We wonder that Mr. Pope should have entertained doubts of the genuineness of this play. He was, we suppose, shocked (as a certain critic suggests) at the Chorus, Time, leaping over sixteen years with his crutch between the third and fourth act, and at Antigonus’s landing with the infant Perdita on the sea-coast of Bohemia. These slips or blemishes however do not prove it not to be Shakespear’s; for he was as likely to fall into them as any body; but we do not know any body but himself who could produce the beauties. The stuff of which the tragic passion is composed, the romantic sweetness, the comic humour, are evidently his. Even the crabbed and tortuous style of the speeches of Leontes, reasoning on his own jealousy, beset with doubts and fears, and entangled more and more in the thorny labyrinth, bears every mark of Shakespear’s peculiar manner of conveying the painful struggle of different thoughts and feelings, labouring for utterance, and almost strangled in the birth. For instance:—
We find it surprising that Mr. Pope questioned the authenticity of this play. We assume he was taken aback (as a certain critic suggests) by the Chorus, Time, jumping forward sixteen years with his crutch between the third and fourth acts, and by Antigonus arriving with the baby Perdita on the coast of Bohemia. However, these mistakes or flaws don’t prove it's not Shakespeare's work; he could easily make those errors just like anyone else. But we don't know anyone other than him who could create the beauty in this play. The essence of the tragic passion, the romantic sweetness, and the comic humor are clearly his. Even the complex and twisting style of Leontes' speeches, as he wrestles with his own jealousy, filled with doubts and fears, and getting more and more tangled in this thorny maze, shows all the signs of Shakespeare’s unique way of expressing the painful conflict of different thoughts and feelings, struggling for voice, and almost choked in the process of being expressed. For example:—
Here Leontes is confounded with his passion, and does not know which way to turn himself, to give words to the anguish, rage, and apprehension, which tug at his breast. It is only as he is worked up into a clearer conviction of his wrongs by insisting on the grounds of his unjust suspicions to Camillo, who irritates him by his opposition, that he bursts out into the following vehement strain of bitter indignation: yet even here his passion staggers, and is as it were oppressed with its own intensity.
Here, Leontes is overwhelmed by his emotions and doesn't know what to do to express the anguish, rage, and fear that pull at his chest. It’s only when he becomes more convinced of his wrongs by insisting on the reasons for his unjust suspicions to Camillo, who annoys him with his disagreement, that he erupts into a powerful outburst of bitter anger. Yet even then, his emotions falter, almost crushed by their own intensity.
The character of Hermione is as much distinguished by its saintlike resignation and patient forbearance, as that of Paulina is by her zealous and spirited remonstrances against the injustice done to the queen, and by her devoted attachment to her misfortunes. Hermione’s restoration to her husband and her child, after her long separation from them, is as affecting in itself as it is striking in the representation. Camillo, and the old shepherd and his son, are subordinate but not uninteresting instruments in the developement of the plot, and though last, not least, comes Autolycus, a very pleasant, thriving rogue; and (what is the best feather in the cap of all knavery) he escapes with impunity in the end.
The character of Hermione is marked by her saintly patience and calm endurance, while Paulina is defined by her passionate and spirited protests against the injustice toward the queen and her unwavering loyalty to her struggles. Hermione’s reunion with her husband and child after their long separation is as moving as it is powerful in its portrayal. Camillo, along with the old shepherd and his son, plays supporting yet interesting roles in the unfolding of the plot, and last but not least, there's Autolycus, a charming and successful scoundrel; and (which is the best part of all cunning) he gets away with everything in the end.
The Winter’s Tale is one of the best-acting of our author’s plays. We remember seeing it with great pleasure many years ago. It was on the night that King took leave of the stage, when he and Mrs. Jordan played together in the after-piece of the Wedding-day. Nothing could go off with more éclat, with more spirit, and grandeur of effect. Mrs. Siddons played Hermione, and in the last scene acted the painted statue to the life—with true monumental dignity and noble passion; Mr. Kemble, in Leontes, worked himself up into 326a very fine classical phrensy; and Bannister, as Autolycus, roared as loud for pity as a sturdy beggar could do who felt none of the pain he counterfeited, and was sound of wind and limb. We shall never see these parts so acted again; or if we did, it would be in vain. Actors grow old, or no longer surprise us by their novelty. But true poetry, like nature, is always young; and we still read the courtship of Florizel and Perdita, as we welcome the return of spring, with the same feelings as ever.
The Winter's Tale is one of the best performances of our author's plays. We remember watching it with great pleasure many years ago. It was on the night that King took his final bow on stage, when he and Mrs. Jordan performed together in the after-piece of the Wedding-day. Nothing could have gone off with more brilliance, more energy, and a greater impact. Mrs. Siddons played Hermione, and in the last scene, she portrayed the painted statue with true monumental dignity and noble passion; Mr. Kemble, as Leontes, worked himself into a fine classical frenzy; and Bannister, as Autolycus, shouted for pity as loudly as a robust beggar might who felt none of the pain he pretended, and was fit and healthy. We will never see these roles performed so well again; or if we did, it would be in vain. Actors age, or they no longer surprise us with their novelty. But true poetry, like nature, is always young; and we still read the courtship of Florizel and Perdita, welcoming the return of spring, with the same feelings as ever.
This delicious scene is interrupted by the father of the prince discovering himself to Florizel, and haughtily breaking off the intended match between his son and Perdita. When Polixenes goes out, Perdita says,
This enjoyable moment is interrupted when the prince's father reveals himself to Florizel and arrogantly ends the planned engagement between his son and Perdita. After Polixenes leaves, Perdita says,
As Perdita, the supposed shepherdess, turns out to be the daughter of Hermione, and a princess in disguise, both feelings of the pride of birth and the claims of nature are satisfied by the fortunate event of the story, and the fine romance of poetry is reconciled to the strictest court-etiquette.
As Perdita, who appears to be a simple shepherdess, is actually the daughter of Hermione and a princess in disguise, both the pride of her noble birth and the bonds of family are fulfilled by this fortunate twist in the story, blending the beautiful romance of poetry with the strict rules of court etiquette.
ALL’S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
All’s Well that Ends Well is one of the most pleasing of our author’s comedies. The interest is however more of a serious than of a comic nature. The character of Helen is one of great sweetness and delicacy. She is placed in circumstances of the most critical kind, and has to court her husband both as a virgin and a wife: yet the most scrupulous nicety of female modesty is not once violated. There is not one thought or action that ought to bring a blush into her cheeks, or that for a moment lessens her in our esteem. Perhaps the romantic attachment of a beautiful and virtuous girl to one placed above her hopes by the circumstances of birth and fortune, was never so exquisitely expressed as in the reflections which she utters when 330young Roussillon leaves his mother’s house, under whose protection she has been brought up with him, to repair to the French king’s court.
All's well that ends well is one of the most enjoyable comedies by our author. The interest here is more serious than comedic. Helen’s character is filled with sweetness and delicacy. She finds herself in critical situations and has to win over her husband both as a virgin and a wife; yet, she never compromises her modesty. There isn’t a single thought or action that would cause her to blush or diminish our respect for her. The romantic devotion of a beautiful and virtuous girl to a man who is socially superior due to his birth and wealth has perhaps never been expressed as beautifully as in her reflections when 330 young Roussillon leaves his mother’s house, where she has grown up alongside him, to go to the French king’s court.
The interest excited by this beautiful picture of a fond and innocent heart is kept up afterwards by her resolution to follow him to France, the success of her experiment in restoring the king’s health, her demanding Bertram in marriage as a recompense, his leaving her in disdain, her interview with him afterwards disguised as Diana, a young lady whom he importunes with his secret addresses, and their final reconciliation when the consequences of her stratagem and the proofs of her love are fully made known. The persevering gratitude of the French king to his benefactress, who cures him of a languishing distemper by a prescription hereditary in her family, the indulgent kindness of the Countess, whose pride of birth yields, almost without a struggle, to her affection for Helen, the honesty and uprightness of the good old lord Lafeu, make very interesting parts of the picture. The wilful stubbornness and youthful petulance of Bertram are also very admirably described. The comic part of the play turns on the folly, boasting, and cowardice of Parolles, a parasite and hanger-on of Bertram’s, the detection of whose false pretensions to bravery and honour forms a very amusing episode. He is first found out by the old lord Lafeu, who says, ‘The soul of this man is in his clothes’; and it is proved afterwards that his heart is in his tongue, and that both are false and hollow. The adventure of ‘the bringing off of his drum’ has become proverbial as a satire on all ridiculous and blustering 331undertakings which the person never means to perform: nor can any thing be more severe than what one of the bye-standers remarks upon what Parolles says of himself, ‘Is it possible he should know what he is, and be that he is?’ Yet Parolles himself gives the best solution of the difficulty afterwards when he is thankful to escape with his life and the loss of character; for, so that he can live on, he is by no means squeamish about the loss of pretensions, to which he had sense enough to know he had no real claim, and which he had assumed only as a means to live.
The interest sparked by this beautiful story of a loving and innocent heart continues with her decision to follow him to France, her success in restoring the king’s health, her demand for Bertram’s hand in marriage as a reward, his rejection of her in disdain, her meeting with him later while disguised as Diana, a young woman he courts with secret affection, and their eventual reconciliation when the outcomes of her clever plan and her proofs of love are fully revealed. The persistent gratitude of the French king toward his benefactor, who heals him from a lingering illness with a remedy passed down in her family, the caring kindness of the Countess, who lets go of her pride for Helen, and the honesty of the good old lord Lafeu add great interest to the story. Bertram’s willful stubbornness and youthful impulsiveness are also very well portrayed. The comedic aspect of the play revolves around the foolishness, bragging, and cowardice of Parolles, a sycophant and follower of Bertram, whose exposure for his false claims to bravery and honor creates a very entertaining episode. He is first discovered by old lord Lafeu, who says, “The soul of this man is in his clothes”; and it’s later shown that his heart is in his words, and that both are false and empty. The incident of “the bringing off of his drum” has become a saying that mocks all ridiculous and blustering efforts that the person never intends to carry out; nor can anything be more cutting than what one of the bystanders remarks about what Parolles says concerning himself, “Is it possible he should know what he is, and be what he is?” Yet Parolles himself provides the best answer to this confusion later when he is grateful to escape with his life and the loss of reputation; for, as long as he can survive, he isn’t at all picky about losing pretenses, which he was savvy enough to realize he had no real claim to, and which he had only adopted as a way to get by.
The story of All’s Well that Ends Well, and of several others of Shakespear’s plays, is taken from Boccacio. The poet has dramatised the original novel with great skill and comic spirit, and has preserved all the beauty of character and sentiment without improving upon it, which was impossible. There is indeed in Boccacio’s serious pieces a truth, a pathos, and an exquisite refinement of sentiment, which is hardly to be met with in any other prose writer whatever. Justice has not been done him by the world. He has in general passed for a mere narrator of lascivious tales or idle jests. This character probably originated in his obnoxious attacks on the monks, and has been kept up by the grossness of mankind, who revenged their own want of refinement on Boccacio, and only saw in his writings what suited the coarseness of their own tastes. But the truth is, that he has carried sentiment of every kind to its very highest purity and perfection. By sentiment we would here understand the habitual workings of some one powerful feeling, where the heart reposes almost entirely upon itself, without the violent excitement of opposing duties or untoward circumstances. In this way, nothing ever came up to the story of Frederigo Alberigi and his Falcon. The perseverance in attachment, the spirit of gallantry and generosity displayed in it, has no parallel in the history of heroical sacrifices. The feeling is so unconscious too, and involuntary, is brought out in such small, unlooked-for, and unostentatious circumstances, as to show it to 332have been woven into the very nature and soul of the author. The story of Isabella is scarcely less fine, and is more affecting in the circumstances and in the catastrophe. Dryden has done justice to the impassioned eloquence of the Tancred and Sigismunda; but has not given an adequate idea of the wild preternatural interest of the story of Honoria. Cimon and Iphigene is by no means one of the best, notwithstanding the popularity of the subject. The proof of unalterable affection given in the story of Jeronymo, and the simple touches of nature and picturesque beauty in the story of the two holiday lovers, who were poisoned by tasting of a leaf in the garden at Florence, are perfect master-pieces. The epithet of Divine was well bestowed on this great painter of the human heart. The invention implied in his different tales is immense: but we are not to infer that it is all his own. He probably availed himself of all the common traditions which were floating in his time, and which he was the first to appropriate. Homer appears the most original of all authors—probably for no other reason than that we can trace the plagiarism no farther. Boccacio has furnished subjects to numberless writers since his time, both dramatic and narrative. The story of Griselda is borrowed from his Decameron by Chaucer; as is the Knight’s Tale (Palamon and Arcite) from his poem of the Theseid.
The story of All's well that ends well. and several other plays by Shakespeare is inspired by Boccaccio. The poet has skillfully and humorously adapted the original novel while retaining all the beauty of character and emotion without improving upon it, which was impossible. In Boccaccio’s serious works, there is a truth, a poignancy, and an exquisite refinement of sentiment that’s rarely found in any other prose writer. The world hasn’t given him the recognition he deserves. He is often seen as just a teller of lascivious stories or silly jokes. This reputation likely arose from his biting critiques of monks and has been maintained by the coarseness of people who projected their own lack of refinement onto Boccaccio, only seeing in his writings what matched their own crude tastes. The reality is that he has elevated sentiment of all kinds to its highest purity and perfection. By sentiment, we mean the ongoing exploration of a powerful feeling, where the heart rests almost entirely within itself, free from the intense turmoil of conflicting duties or unfortunate situations. In this respect, nothing compares to the story of Frederigo Alberigi and his Falcon. The dedication, gallantry, and generosity shown in it have no equal in the annals of heroic sacrifice. The feeling is so subconscious and natural, revealed in such small, unexpected, and subtle moments, that it seems woven into the very essence and soul of the author. The story of Isabella is nearly as exquisite and is even more moving in its circumstances and conclusion. Dryden has captured the passionate eloquence of Tancred and Sigismunda but hasn’t adequately conveyed the intense, otherworldly intrigue of the story of Honoria. Cimon and Iphigene is by no means among the best, despite the popularity of its theme. The undeniable love demonstrated in the story of Jeronymo, along with the simple touches of nature and picturesque beauty in the tale of the two holiday lovers who were poisoned by tasting a leaf in a garden in Florence, are masterpieces. The title of Divine is rightly attributed to this great observer of the human heart. The creativity in his tales is immense, but we shouldn’t assume it’s all original. He likely drew on common traditions that existed during his time, which he was the first to adapt. Homer is seen as the most original of authors—probably only because we can’t trace the plagiarism any further. Boccaccio has inspired countless writers since his time, both in drama and narrative. The story of Griselda, for example, was taken from his Decameron by Chaucer, as was the Knight’s Tale (Palamon and Arcite) from his poem the Theseid.
LOVE’S LABOUR’S LOST
If we were to part with any of the author’s comedies, it should be this. Yet we should be loth to part with Don Adriano de Armado, that mighty potentate of nonsense, or his page, that handful of wit; with Nathaniel the curate, or Holofernes the schoolmaster, and their dispute after dinner on ‘the golden cadences of poesy’; with Costard the clown, or Dull the constable. Biron is too accomplished a character to be lost to the world, and yet he could not appear without his fellow courtiers and the king: and if we were to leave out the ladies, the gentlemen would have no mistresses. So that we believe we may let the whole play stand as it is, and we shall hardly venture to ‘set a mark of reprobation on it.’ Still we have some objections to the style, which we think savours more of the pedantic spirit of Shakespear’s time than of his own genius; more of controversial divinity, and the logic of Peter Lombard, than of the inspiration of the Muse. It transports us quite as much to the manners of the court, and the quirks of courts of law, as to the scenes of nature or the fairy-land of his own imagination. Shakespear has 333set himself to imitate the tone of polite conversation then prevailing among the fair, the witty, and the learned, and he has imitated it but too faithfully. It is as if the hand of Titian had been employed to give grace to the curls of a full-bottomed periwig, or Raphael had attempted to give expression to the tapestry figures in the House of Lords. Shakespear has put an excellent description of this fashionable jargon into the mouth of the critical Holofernes ‘as too picked, too spruce, too affected, too odd, as it were, too peregrinate, as I may call it’; and nothing can be more marked than the difference when he breaks loose from the trammels he had imposed on himself, ‘as light as bird from brake,’ and speaks in his own person. We think, for instance, that in the following soliloquy the poet has fairly got the start of Queen Elizabeth and her maids of honour:—
If we had to let go of any of the author’s comedies, it should be this one. However, we would be reluctant to part with Don Adriano de Armado, that great ruler of nonsense, or his witty page; with Nathaniel the curate, or Holofernes the schoolmaster, and their debate after dinner about ‘the golden rhythms of poetry’; with Costard the clown, or Dull the constable. Biron is too skilled a character to lose, but he wouldn't be the same without his fellow courtiers and the king: and if we were to leave out the ladies, the gentlemen would have no romantic interests. Thus, we believe the whole play should stay as it is, and we would hardly dare to ‘mark it as unacceptable.’ Still, we have some issues with the style, which seems more reflective of the pedantic spirit of Shakespeare’s time than of his true genius; more about controversial theology and the logic of Peter Lombard than about the inspiration of the Muse. It reminds us as much of court manners and legal quirks as it does of nature scenes or the fairy-tale realms of his imagination. Shakespeare has attempted to mimic the style of polite conversation that was popular at the time among the elegant, the witty, and the educated, and he has done so a bit too accurately. It’s as if Titian were tasked with beautifying the curls of a large periwig or Raphael tried to animate the figures in the House of Lords tapestry. Shakespeare has provided a great description of this trendy jargon through the critical Holofernes: ‘too polished, too neat, too pretentious, too peculiar, as it were, too wandering, if I may say so’; and nothing highlights the difference more than when he breaks free from the constraints he placed on himself, ‘as light as a bird from a thicket,’ and speaks in his own voice. For instance, we think in the following soliloquy, the poet has truly outdone Queen Elizabeth and her ladies-in-waiting:—
334The character of Biron drawn by Rosaline and that which Biron gives of Boyet are equally happy. The observations on the use and abuse of study, and on the power of beauty to quicken the understanding as well as the senses, are excellent. The scene which has the greatest dramatic effect is that in which Biron, the king, Longaville, and Dumain, successively detect each other and are detected in their breach of their vow and in their profession of attachment to their several mistresses, in which they suppose themselves to be overheard by no one. The reconciliation between these lovers and their sweethearts is also very good, and the penance which Rosaline imposes on Biron, before he can expect to gain her consent to marry him, full of propriety and beauty.
334The character of Biron portrayed by Rosaline and his depiction of Boyet are equally well done. The insights on the use and misuse of studying, along with how beauty can stimulate both the mind and the senses, are excellent. The scene with the most dramatic impact is when Biron, the king, Longaville, and Dumain each discover and reveal their broken vows and their declarations of love for their respective partners, all while thinking they're not being overheard. The reconciliation between these lovers and their girlfriends is also very well done, and the penance that Rosaline places on Biron before he can hope for her agreement to marry him is full of dignity and charm.
The famous cuckoo-song closes the play: but we shall add no more criticisms: ‘the words of Mercury are harsh after the songs of Apollo.’
The famous cuckoo song wraps up the play, but we won’t add any more critique: ‘the words of Mercury sound harsh after the songs of Apollo.’
MUCH ADO ABOUT NOTHING
This admirable comedy used to be frequently acted till of late years. Mr. Garrick’s Benedick was one of his most celebrated characters; and Mrs. Jordan, we have understood, played Beatrice very delightfully. The serious part is still the most prominent here, as in other instances that we have noticed. Hero is the principal figure in the piece, and leaves an indelible impression on the mind by her beauty, her tenderness, and the hard trial of her love. The passage in which Claudio first makes a confession of his affection towards her, conveys as pleasing an image of the entrance of love into a youthful bosom as can well be imagined.
This amazing comedy used to be performed often until recent years. Mr. Garrick's Benedick was one of his most famous roles, and Mrs. Jordan, as we’ve heard, portrayed Beatrice wonderfully. The serious elements still stand out the most here, just like in other examples we've mentioned. Hero is the main character in the play and leaves a lasting impression with her beauty, her kindness, and the tough challenge of her love. The moment when Claudio first confesses his feelings for her captures a beautiful image of love blossoming in a young heart, as wonderfully as one could imagine.
In the scene at the altar, when Claudio, urged on by the villain Don John, brings the charge of incontinence against her, and as it were divorces her in the very marriage-ceremony, her appeals to her own conscious innocence and honour are made with the most affecting simplicity.
In the scene at the altar, when Claudio, pushed by the villain Don John, accuses her of infidelity and essentially divorces her during the wedding ceremony, her pleas of her own innocence and honor are expressed with the most touching simplicity.
336The justification of Hero in the end, and her restoration to the confidence and arms of her lover, is brought about by one of those temporary consignments to the grave of which Shakespear seems to have been fond. He has perhaps explained the theory of this predilection in the following lines:—
336The justification of Hero in the end, and her return to the trust and embrace of her lover, is achieved through one of those temporary deaths that Shakespeare seems to have favored. He may have articulated the reasoning behind this preference in the following lines:—
The principal comic characters in Much Ado about Nothing, Benedick and Beatrice, are both essences in their kind. His character as a woman-hater is admirably supported, and his conversion to matrimony is no less happily effected by the pretended story of Beatrice’s love for him. It is hard to say which of the two scenes is the best, that of the trick which is thus practised on Benedick, or that in which Beatrice is prevailed on to take pity on him by overhearing her cousin and her maid declare (which they do on purpose) that he is dying of love for her. There is something delightfully picturesque in the manner in which Beatrice is described as coming to hear the plot which is contrived against herself—
The main comic characters in Much Ado About Nothing, Benedick and Beatrice, are truly unique in their own way. Benedick's image as a woman-hater is brilliantly portrayed, and his shift towards marriage is cleverly brought about by the fake story of Beatrice’s feelings for him. It's tough to decide which scene is better: the one where Benedick is tricked, or the one where Beatrice is convinced to feel sorry for him after overhearing her cousin and her maid say (which they do on purpose) that he’s dying of love for her. There’s something wonderfully vivid about how Beatrice is depicted as uncovering the scheme that’s been set up against her—
In consequence of what she hears (not a word of which is true) she exclaims when these good-natured informants are gone,
In response to what she hears (none of which is true), she exclaims after these well-meaning informants leave,
And Benedick, on his part, is equally sincere in his repentance with equal reason, after he has heard the grey-beard, Leonato, and his friend, ‘Monsieur Love,’ discourse of the desperate state of his supposed inamorata.
And Benedick, for his part, is just as genuine in his regret for good reason after he hears the old man, Leonato, and his friend, 'Monsieur Love,' talk about the dire situation of his supposed lover.
‘This can be no trick; the conference was sadly borne.—They have the truth of this from Hero. They seem to pity the lady; it seems her affections have the full bent. Love me! why, it must be requited. I hear how I am censur’d: they say, I will bear myself proudly, if I perceive the love come from her; they say too, that she will rather die than give any sign of affection.—I did never think to marry: I must not seem proud:—happy are they that hear their detractions, and can put them to mending. They say, the lady is fair; ’tis a truth, I can bear them witness: and virtuous;—’tis so, I cannot reprove it: and wise—but for loving me:—by my troth it is no addition to her wit;—nor no great argument of her folly, for I will be horribly in love with her.—I may chance to have some odd quirks and remnants of wit broken on me, because I have rail’d so long against marriage: but doth not the appetite alter? A man loves the meat in his youth, that he cannot endure in his age.—Shall quips, and sentences, and these paper bullets of the brain, awe a man from the career of his humour? No: the world must be peopled. When I said, I would die a bachelor, I did not think I should live till I were marry’d.—Here comes Beatrice: by this day, she’s a fair lady: I do spy some marks of love in her.
‘This can’t be a trick; the meeting was serious. They heard the truth about this from Hero. They seem to feel sorry for the lady; it looks like her feelings are fully engaged. Love me! Well, it has to be returned. I hear what people say about me: they claim I’ll act proudly if I realize her love is genuine; they also say she’d rather die than show any sign of affection. I never thought I’d get married: I shouldn’t seem proud:—happy are those who hear their criticisms and can fix them. They say the lady is beautiful; that’s true, I can confirm it: and virtuous;—that’s also true, I can’t deny it: and wise—but not for loving me:—I swear that doesn’t add to her intelligence;—nor is it a huge evidence of her foolishness, because I will be deeply in love with her. I might end up with some strange quirks and remnants of wit thrown at me because I’ve complained for so long about marriage: but doesn’t desire change? A man enjoys the food in his youth that he can’t stand in his old age. Shall jokes, and clever sayings, and these mental jabs keep a man from following his heart? No: the world needs to be populated. When I said I would die a bachelor, I didn’t think I’d still be alive by the time I got married.—Here comes Beatrice: by today, she’s a beautiful lady: I can see some signs of love in her.
The beauty of all this arises from the characters of the persons so entrapped. Benedick is a professed and staunch enemy to marriage, and gives very plausible reasons for the faith that is in him. And as to Beatrice, she persecutes him all day with her jests (so that he could hardly think of being troubled with them at night) she not only turns him but all other things into jest, and is proof against everything serious.
The charm of all this comes from the personalities of the people involved. Benedick is a declared and strong opponent of marriage and offers very convincing reasons for his beliefs. As for Beatrice, she teases him all day with her jokes (so much that he can barely think about them at night). She not only makes a joke out of him but everything else as well, and is completely resistant to anything serious.
These were happy materials for Shakespear to work on, and he has made a happy use of them. Perhaps that middle point of comedy was never more nicely hit in which the ludicrous blends with the tender, and our follies, turning round against themselves in support of our affections, retain nothing but their humanity.
These were great materials for Shakespeare to work with, and he's made great use of them. Maybe that perfect point of comedy was never found so beautifully where the ridiculous mixes with the tender, and our mistakes, turning back on themselves to support our feelings, keep nothing but their humanity.
Dogberry and Verges in this play are inimitable specimens of quaint blundering and misprisions of meaning; and are a standing record of that formal gravity of pretension and total want of common understanding, which Shakespear no doubt copied from real life, and which in the course of two hundred years appear to have ascended from the lowest to the highest offices in the state.
Dogberry and Verges in this play are unique examples of charming blunders and misunderstandings; they represent that serious pretentiousness and complete lack of common sense, which Shakespeare clearly drew from real life. Over the course of two hundred years, this seems to have risen from the lowest to the highest ranks in the government.
AS YOU LIKE IT
Shakespear has here converted the forest of Arden into another Arcadia, where they ‘fleet the time carelessly, as they did in the golden world.’ It is the most ideal of any of this author’s plays. It is a pastoral drama, in which the interest arises more out of the sentiments and characters than out of the actions or situations. It is not what is done, but what is said, that claims our attention. Nursed in solitude, ‘under the shade of melancholy boughs,’ the imagination grows soft and delicate, and the wit runs riot in idleness, like a spoiled child, that is never sent to school. Caprice and fancy reign and revel here, and stern necessity is banished to the court. The mild sentiments of humanity are strengthened with thought and leisure; the echo of the cares and noise of the world strikes upon the ear of those ‘who have felt them knowingly,’ softened by time and distance. ‘They hear the tumult, and are still.’ The very air of the place seems to breathe a spirit of philosophical poetry: to stir the thoughts, to touch the heart with pity, as the drowsy forest rustles 339to the sighing gale. Never was there such beautiful moralising, equally free from pedantry or petulance.
Shakespeare has transformed the forest of Arden into a new Arcadia, where people "pass the time carelessly, just like in the golden age." This is the most ideal of all this author's plays. It's a pastoral drama, where the interest comes more from the feelings and characters than from the actions or situations. It's not about what happens, but what is said that captures our attention. Raised in solitude, "under the shade of melancholy branches," the imagination becomes soft and delicate, and wit flourishes in idleness, like a spoiled child who never goes to school. Whimsy and fantasy dominate here, while harsh reality is sent away to the court. Gentle feelings of humanity are deepened by thought and leisure; the echoes of the world’s worries and noise reach the ears of those "who have felt them personally," softened by time and distance. "They hear the chaos, and remain calm." The very atmosphere of the place seems to exude a spirit of philosophical poetry: to provoke thoughts and touch the heart with compassion as the sleepy forest stirs with the gentle breeze. Never has there been such beautiful moral reflection, perfectly free from pretentiousness or irritation.
Jaques is the only purely contemplative character in Shakespear. He thinks, and does nothing. His whole occupation is to amuse his mind, and he is totally regardless of his body and his fortunes. He is the prince of philosophical idlers; his only passion is thought; he sets no value upon any thing but as it serves as food for reflection. He can ‘suck melancholy out of a song, as a weasel sucks eggs’; the motley fool, ‘who morals on the time,’ is the greatest prize he meets with in the forest. He resents Orlando’s passion for Rosalind as some disparagement of his own passion for abstract truth; and leaves the Duke, as soon as he is restored to his sovereignty, to seek his brother out who has quitted it, and turned hermit.
Jaques is the only truly reflective character in Shakespeare. He thinks, but doesn’t take action. His entire focus is on entertaining his mind, and he completely ignores his body and his circumstances. He is the king of philosophical dreamers; his only passion is thought; he values nothing except as it provides food for reflection. He can “suck melancholy out of a song, like a weasel sucks eggs”; the motley fool, “who comments on the times,” is the best company he finds in the forest. He envies Orlando’s love for Rosalind as a slight to his own passion for abstract truth; and he leaves the Duke, as soon as he regains his power, to find his brother, who has abandoned it and become a hermit.
Within the sequestered and romantic glades of the forest of Arden, they find leisure to be good and wise, or to play the fool and fall in love. Rosalind’s character is made up of sportive gaiety and natural tenderness: her tongue runs the faster to conceal the pressure at her heart. She talks herself out of breath, only to get deeper in love. The coquetry with which she plays with her lover in the double character which she has to support is managed with the nicest address. How full of voluble, laughing grace is all her conversation with Orlando—
Within the secluded and enchanting clearings of the forest of Arden, they have the chance to be wise and enjoy themselves, or to act foolishly and fall in love. Rosalind’s character is a mix of playful joy and genuine tenderness: she talks quickly to hide the feelings in her heart. She chatters herself out of breath, just to fall more deeply in love. The playful teasing with which she interacts with her lover in the two roles she has to play is handled with exceptional skill. Her conversations with Orlando are filled with lively, joyful grace—
How full of real fondness and pretended cruelty is her answer to him when he promises to love her ‘For ever and a day!’
How full of genuine affection and feigned harshness is her response to him when he promises to love her ‘For ever and a day!’
‘Say a day without the ever: no, no, Orlando, men are April when they woo, December when they wed: maids are May when they are maids, but the sky changes when they are wives: I will be more jealous of thee than a Barbary cock-pigeon over his hen; more clamorous than a parrot against rain; more new-fangled than an ape; more giddy in my desires than a monkey; I will weep for nothing like Diana in the fountain, and I will do that when you are disposed to be merry; I will laugh like a hyen, and that when you are inclined to sleep.
‘Imagine a day without the usual: no, no, Orlando, men are like April when they’re trying to win you over, and like December when they marry: girls are like May when they’re single, but the mood changes when they become wives: I will be more jealous of you than a male pigeon is of his mate; louder than a parrot complaining about rain; more quirky than an ape; more dizzy in my desires than a monkey; I will cry for no reason like Diana at the fountain, and I’ll do it when you’re in a good mood; I’ll laugh like a hyena, and that will be when you’re ready to rest.
Orlando. But will my Rosalind do so?
Orlando. But will my Rosalind really do that?
Rosalind. By my life she will do as I do.’
Rosalind. I swear she will act just like I do.
340The silent and retired character of Celia is a necessary relief to the provoking loquacity of Rosalind, nor can anything be better conceived or more beautifully described than the mutual affection between the two cousins:—
340Celia’s quiet and reserved nature offers a needed contrast to Rosalind’s irritating chatter, and nothing can be imagined or expressed more beautifully than the bond of love between the two cousins:—
The unrequited love of Silvius for Phebe shews the perversity of this passion in the commonest scenes of life, and the rubs and stops which nature throws in its way, where fortune has placed none. Touchstone is not in love, but he will have a mistress as a subject for the exercise of his grotesque humour, and to shew his contempt for the passion, by his indifference about the person. He is a rare fellow. He is a mixture of the ancient cynic philosopher with the modern buffoon, and turns folly into wit, and wit into folly, just as the fit takes him. His courtship of Audrey not only throws a degree of ridicule on the state of wedlock itself, but he is equally an enemy to the prejudices of opinion in other respects. The lofty tone of enthusiasm, which the Duke and his companions in exile spread over the stillness and solitude of a country life, receives a pleasant shock from Touchstone’s sceptical determination of the question.
The unrequited love Silvius feels for Phebe shows the tricky nature of this passion in everyday life, along with the obstacles that nature puts in its path, even when fortune doesn't. Touchstone isn't in love, but he wants a girlfriend to serve as a target for his outrageous humor and to show his disdain for love by being indifferent to the person. He's a unique character, blending the old-school cynical philosopher with the modern jester, flipping folly into wit and wit into folly whenever he feels like it. His courtship of Audrey not only ridicules the institution of marriage itself, but he also challenges societal prejudices in other ways. The grand enthusiasm that the Duke and his fellow exiles bring to the quiet and solitude of country life gets a refreshing jolt from Touchstone’s skeptical take on things.
‘Corin. And how like you this shepherd’s life, Mr. Touchstone?
Corin. So, what do you think of this shepherd's life, Mr. Touchstone?
Clown. Truly, shepherd, in respect of itself, it is a good life; but in respect that it is a shepherd’s life, it is naught. In respect that it is solitary, I like it very well; but in respect that it is private, it is a very vile life. Now in respect it is in the fields, it pleaseth me well; but in respect it is not in the court, it is tedious. As it is a spare life, look you, it fits my humour; but as there is no more plenty in it, it goes much against my stomach.’
Clown. Honestly, shepherd, in its own way, it's a good life; but considering that it's a shepherd's life, it's pretty bad. I like it because it's solitary, but being private makes it really unpleasant. I enjoy it because it's in the fields, but the fact that it's not in the court makes it dull. Since it's a simple life, it suits my mood; but the lack of abundance really doesn't sit well with me.
Zimmerman’s celebrated work on Solitude discovers only half the sense of this passage.
Zimmerman's renowned work on Solitude reveals only half the meaning of this passage.
There is hardly any of Shakespear’s plays that contains a greater number of passages that have been quoted in books of extracts, or a greater number of phrases that have become in a manner proverbial. If we were to give all the striking passages, we should give half the play. We will only recall a few of the most delightful to the reader’s recollection. Such are the meeting between Orlando and Adam, the exquisite appeal of Orlando to the humanity of the Duke and his company to supply him with food for the old man, and their answer, the Duke’s description of a country life, and the account of Jaques 341moralising on the wounded deer, his meeting with Touchstone in the forest, his apology for his own melancholy and his satirical vein, and the well-known speech on the stages of human life, the old song of ‘Blow, blow, thou winter’s wind,’ Rosalind’s description of the marks of a lover and of the progress of time with different persons, the picture of the snake wreathed round Oliver’s neck while the lioness watches her sleeping prey, and Touchstone’s lecture to the shepherd, his defence of cuckolds, and panegyric on the virtues of ‘an If.’—All of these are familiar to the reader: there is one passage of equal delicacy and beauty which may have escaped him, and with it we shall close our account of As You Like It. It is Phebe’s description of Ganimed at the end of the third act.
There are hardly any of Shakespeare’s plays that have a greater number of lines quoted in anthologies or phrases that have become somewhat proverbial. If we were to list all the memorable moments, we’d end up quoting half the play. We'll just highlight a few of the most delightful for the reader's memory. These include the meeting between Orlando and Adam, Orlando’s heartfelt appeal to the Duke and his companions to provide food for the old man, and their response, the Duke’s portrayal of country life, and Jaques’ reflections on the wounded deer, his encounter with Touchstone in the forest, his explanation of his own sadness and humor, and the famous speech about the stages of life, the old song ‘Blow, blow, thou winter’s wind,’ Rosalind’s depiction of the signs of a lover and how time affects different people, the image of the snake wrapped around Oliver’s neck while the lioness watches her sleeping prey, and Touchstone’s talk with the shepherd, his defense of cuckolds, and praise for the virtues of ‘an If.’—All of these are familiar to readers: however, there’s one passage of equal delicacy and beauty that might have been overlooked, and with that, we’ll wrap up our discussion of As You Like It. It’s Phebe’s description of Ganimed at the end of the third act.
THE TAMING OF THE SHREW
The Taming of the Shrew is almost the only one of Shakespear’s comedies that has a regular plot, and downright moral. It is full of bustle, animation, and rapidity of action. It shews admirably how self-will is only to be got the better of by stronger will, and how one degree of ridiculous perversity is only to be driven out by another still greater. Petruchio is a madman in his senses; a very honest 342fellow, who hardly speaks a word of truth, and succeeds in all his tricks and impostures. He acts his assumed character to the life, with the most fantastical extravagance, with complete presence of mind, with untired animal spirits, and without a particle of ill humour from beginning to end.—The situation of poor Katherine, worn out by his incessant persecutions, becomes at last almost as pitiable as it is ludicrous, and it is difficult to say which to admire most, the unaccountableness of his actions, or the unalterableness of his resolutions. It is a character which most husbands ought to study, unless perhaps the very audacity of Petruchio’s attempt might alarm them more than his success would encourage them. What a sound must the following speech carry to some married ears!
The Taming of the Shrew is nearly the only one of Shakespeare’s comedies that has a clear plot and a straightforward message. It’s full of energy, excitement, and fast-paced action. It brilliantly shows how stubbornness can only be overcome by a stronger will, and how one kind of ridiculous stubbornness can only be pushed out by an even greater one. Petruchio is someone who seems crazy but is actually quite sane; he’s a genuinely honest guy who hardly tells a single truth and gets away with all his tricks and deceptions. He fully embodies his role with the most outrageous energy, complete confidence, boundless enthusiasm, and without a trace of bad mood from start to finish. The situation of poor Katherine, who is exhausted by his relentless torment, becomes almost as sad as it is funny, and it's hard to tell whether to admire the absurdity of his actions or the firmness of his determination the most. It’s a character that most husbands should study, unless the sheer boldness of Petruchio’s actions might scare them more than his success would inspire them. What kind of impact do you think the following speech would have on some married couples?
Not all Petruchio’s rhetoric would persuade more than ‘some dozen followers’ to be of this heretical way of thinking. He unfolds his scheme for the Taming of the Shrew, on a principle of contradiction, thus:—
Not all of Petruchio’s arguments would convince more than a few dozen followers to adopt this unconventional way of thinking. He reveals his plan for the Taming of the Shrew based on a principle of contradiction, like this:—
He accordingly gains her consent to the match, by telling her father that he has got it; disappoints her by not returning at the time he has promised to wed her, and when he returns, creates no small consternation by the oddity of his dress and equipage. This, however, 343is nothing to the astonishment excited by his mad-brained behaviour at the marriage. Here is the account of it by an eye-witness:—
He gets her father's approval for their engagement by claiming he has her consent; he disappoints her by not showing up when he said he would marry her, and when he finally does return, he causes quite a stir with his unusual outfit and carriage. However, this is nothing compared to the shock caused by his erratic behavior during the wedding. Here’s what an eyewitness had to say about it:—
The most striking and at the same time laughable feature in the character of Petruchio throughout, is the studied approximation to the intractable character of real madness, his apparent insensibility to all external considerations, and utter indifference to every thing but the wild and extravagant freaks of his own self-will. There is no contending with a person on whom nothing makes any impression but his own purposes, and who is bent on his own whims just in proportion as they seem to want common sense. With him a thing’s being plain and reasonable is a reason against it. The airs he gives himself are infinite, and his caprices as sudden as they are groundless. The whole of his treatment of his wife at home is in the same spirit of ironical attention and inverted gallantry. Every thing flies before his will, like a conjuror’s wand, and he only metamorphoses his wife’s temper by metamorphosing her senses and all the objects she sees, at a word’s speaking. Such are his insisting that it is the moon and not the sun which they see, etc. This extravagance reaches its most pleasant and poetical height in the scene where, on their return 344to her father’s, they meet old Vincentio, whom Petruchio immediately addresses as a young lady:—
The most striking and also laughable aspect of Petruchio's character throughout is his studied mimicry of the unpredictable nature of real madness, his apparent insensitivity to everything around him, and his complete indifference to anything except the wild and extravagant whims of his own will. There's no arguing with someone to whom nothing matters except for their own goals, and who pursues their whims just as they seem to lack common sense. For him, the fact that something is straightforward and reasonable makes it a reason to reject it. The airs he puts on are endless, and his mood swings are as sudden as they are baseless. His entire treatment of his wife at home reflects a similar spirit of ironic attention and twisted chivalry. Everything bends to his will like a magician's wand, and he transforms his wife's moods by altering her perceptions and everything she sees with just a word. For instance, he insists that they are looking at the moon and not the sun, etc. This absurdity reaches its most delightful and poetic peak in the scene where, on their way back to her father's, they encounter old Vincentio, whom Petruchio promptly addresses as a young lady:—
The whole is carried off with equal spirit, as if the poet’s comic Muse had wings of fire. It is strange how one man could be so many things; but so it is. The concluding scene, in which trial is made of the obedience of the new-married wives (so triumphantly for Petruchio) is a very happy one.—In some parts of this play there is a little too much about music-masters and masters of philosophy. They were things of greater rarity in those days than they are now. Nothing however can be better than the advice which Tranio gives his master for the prosecution of his studies:—
The entire piece is delivered with just as much energy, as if the poet’s comic Muse had fiery wings. It's surprising how one person can embody so many roles; yet that's the reality. The final scene, where the obedience of the newly married wives is tested (to Petruchio's great success), is very well-written. In some parts of this play, there’s perhaps a bit too much about music teachers and philosophy instructors. They were much rarer in those days than they are now. However, nothing could be better than the advice Tranio gives his master for his studies:—
We have heard the Honey-Moon called ‘an elegant Katherine and Petruchio.’ We suspect we do not understand this word elegant in the sense that many people do. But in our sense of the word, we should call Lucentio’s description of his mistress elegant.
We’ve heard the Honey-Moon referred to as 'an elegant Katherine and Petruchio.' We think we don’t quite get what people mean by the word elegant. However, in our opinion, we would describe Lucentio’s portrayal of his mistress as elegant.
345When Biondello tells the same Lucentio for his encouragement, ‘I knew a wench married in an afternoon as she went to the garden for parsley to stuff a rabbit, and so may you, sir’—there is nothing elegant in this, and yet we hardly know which of the two passages is the best.
345When Biondello tells Lucentio to encourage him, ‘I knew a girl who got married in one afternoon while she was out getting parsley to stuff a rabbit, and you could do the same, sir’—there's nothing fancy about this, and yet it’s hard to tell which of the two passages is better.
The Taming of the Shrew is a play within a play. It is supposed to be a play acted for the benefit of Sly the tinker, who is made to believe himself a lord, when he wakes after a drunken brawl. The character of Sly and the remarks with which he accompanies the play are as good as the play itself. His answer when he is asked how he likes it, ‘Indifferent well; ’tis a good piece of work, would ‘twere done,’ is in good keeping, as if he were thinking of his Saturday night’s job. Sly does not change his tastes with his new situation, but in the midst of splendour and luxury still calls out lustily and repeatedly ‘for a pot o’ the smallest ale.’ He is very slow in giving up his personal identity in his sudden advancement.—‘I am Christophero Sly, call not me honour nor lordship. I ne’er drank sack in my life: and if you give me any conserves, give me conserves of beef: ne’er ask me what raiment I’ll wear, for I have no more doublets than backs, no more stockings than legs, nor no more shoes than feet, nay, sometimes more feet than shoes, or such shoes as my toes look through the over-leather.—What, would you make me mad? Am not I Christophero Sly, old Sly’s son of Burton-heath, by birth a pedlar, by education a card-maker, by transmutation a bear-herd, and now by present profession a tinker? Ask Marian Hacket, the fat alewife of Wincot, if she know me not; if she say I am not fourteen-pence on the score for sheer ale, score me up for the lying’st knave in Christendom.’
The Taming of the Shrew is a play within a play. It's meant to be a performance for Sly the tinker, who is tricked into believing he's a lord when he wakes up after a drunken brawl. The character of Sly and his comments during the play are just as entertaining as the play itself. His response when asked how he likes it, ‘Indifferent well; ’tis a good piece of work, would ‘twere done,’ fits perfectly, as if he were thinking about his Saturday night job. Sly doesn't change his preferences with his new status; even amidst luxury, he keeps shouting loudly and repeatedly ‘for a pot o’ the smallest ale.’ He is very reluctant to let go of his identity despite his sudden elevation. —‘I am Christophero Sly, call me neither honor nor lordship. I’ve never had sack in my life: and if you offer me any sweets, give me sweets of beef: never ask me what clothes I’ll wear, for I have no more doublets than backs, no more stockings than legs, nor more shoes than feet, sometimes even more feet than shoes, or such shoes that my toes poke through the leather. —What, would you make me insane? Am I not Christophero Sly, old Sly’s son from Burton-heath, born a pedlar, trained as a card-maker, turned into a bear-herd, and now a tinker by trade? Ask Marian Hacket, the hefty alewife of Wincot, if she knows me; if she says I don't owe fourteen pence for plain ale, label me the biggest liar in Christendom.’
This is honest. ‘The Slies are no rogues,’ as he says of himself. We have a great predilection for this representative of the family; and what makes us like him the better is, that we take him to be of kin (not many degrees removed) to Sancho Panza.
This is honest. ‘The Slies are no rogues,’ as he says about himself. We have a strong liking for this member of the family; and what makes us like him even more is that we consider him to be closely related (not many degrees removed) to Sancho Panza.
MEASURE FOR MEASURE
This is a play as full of genius as it is of wisdom. Yet there is an original sin in the nature of the subject, which prevents us from taking a cordial interest in it. ‘The height of moral argument’ which the author has maintained in the intervals of passion or blended with the more powerful impulses of nature, is hardly surpassed in any of his plays. But there is in general a want of passion; the affections 346are at a stand; our sympathies are repulsed and defeated in all directions. The only passion which influences the story is that of Angelo; and yet he seems to have a much greater passion for hypocrisy than for his mistress. Neither are we greatly enamoured of Isabella’s rigid chastity, though she could not act otherwise than she did. We do not feel the same confidence in the virtue that is ‘sublimely good’ at another’s expense, as if it had been put to some less disinterested trial. As to the Duke, who makes a very imposing and mysterious stage-character, he is more absorbed in his own plots and gravity than anxious for the welfare of the state; more tenacious of his own character than attentive to the feelings and apprehensions of others. Claudio is the only person who feels naturally; and yet he is placed in circumstances of distress which almost preclude the wish for his deliverance. Mariana is also in love with Angelo, whom we hate. In this respect, there may be said to be a general system of cross-purposes between the feelings of the different characters and the sympathy of the reader or the audience. This principle of repugnance seems to have reached its height in the character of Master Barnardine, who not only sets at defiance the opinions of others, but has even thrown off all self-regard,—‘one that apprehends death no more dreadfully but as a drunken sleep; careless, reckless, and fearless of what’s past, present, and to come.’ He is a fine antithesis to the morality and the hypocrisy of the other characters of the play. Barnardine is Caliban transported from Prospero’s wizard island to the forests of Bohemia or the prisons of Vienna. He is the creature of bad habits as Caliban is of gross instincts. He has however a strong notion of the natural fitness of things, according to his own sensations—‘He has been drinking hard all night, and he will not be hanged that day’—and Shakespear has let him off at last. We do not understand why the philosophical German critic, Schlegel, should be so severe on those pleasant persons, Lucio, Pompey, and Master Froth, as to call them ‘wretches.’ They appear all mighty comfortable in their occupations, and determined to pursue them, ‘as the flesh and fortune should serve.’ A very good exposure of the want of self-knowledge and contempt for others, which is so common in the world, is put into the mouth of Abhorson, the jailor, when the Provost proposes to associate Pompey with him in his office—‘A bawd, sir? Fie upon him, he will discredit our mystery.’ And the same answer will serve in nine instances out of ten to the same kind of remark, ‘Go to, sir, you weigh equally; a feather will turn the scale.’ Shakespear was in one sense the least moral of all writers; for morality (commonly so called) is made up of antipathies; and his talent consisted 347in sympathy with human nature, in all its shapes, degrees, depressions, and elevations. The object of the pedantic moralist is to find out the bad in everything: his was to shew that ‘there is some soul of goodness in things evil.’ Even Master Barnardine is not left to the mercy of what others think of him; but when he comes in, speaks for himself, and pleads his own cause, as well as if counsel had been assigned him. In one sense, Shakespear was no moralist at all: in another, he was the greatest of all moralists. He was a moralist in the same sense in which nature is one. He taught what he had learnt from her. He shewed the greatest knowledge of humanity with the greatest fellow-feeling for it.
This play is filled with both genius and wisdom. However, there's a flaw in the subject matter that keeps us from fully engaging with it. The “height of moral argument” that the author presents amidst the passion or mixed with stronger natural impulses is hard to find in any of his other works. But overall, there's a lack of passion; the emotions are stagnant; our sympathies are pushed away and defeated in every direction. The only character driven by passion is Angelo, who seems to care more about his hypocrisy than his mistress. We’re also not really drawn to Isabella’s strict chastity, even though she couldn’t act any differently. We don’t have the same trust in a virtue that's “sublimely good” at someone else’s expense, as if it had been tested in a more selfless way. As for the Duke, who presents a very impressive and mysterious character on stage, he’s more focused on his own schemes and seriousness than on the well-being of the state; he’s more concerned about his own reputation than the feelings and fears of others. Claudio is the only one who feels authentically, yet he’s in such distressing circumstances that it almost makes us wish for his downfall. Mariana is also in love with Angelo, whom we dislike. In this way, there’s a general disconnect between the different characters’ feelings and the audience's sympathies. This sense of aversion really peaks with Master Barnardine, who not only disregards others' opinions but has also cast aside any self-respect—“one who fears death no more than a drunken sleep; careless, reckless, and unbothered about what’s past, present, and future.” He serves as a strong contrast to the morality and hypocrisy of the other characters. Barnardine is like Caliban relocated from Prospero’s magical island to the forests of Bohemia or the prisons of Vienna. He embodies bad habits just as Caliban embodies crude instincts. However, he has a clear idea of what is naturally fitting, based on his sensations—“He’s been drinking hard all night, and he won't be hanged today”—and Shakespeare ultimately lets him go. We don't understand why the philosophical German critic, Schlegel, should be so harsh toward the jovial characters, Lucio, Pompey, and Master Froth, calling them “wretches.” They seem quite comfortable in their roles and determined to keep going, “as long as the flesh and fortune allow.” Abhorson, the jailer, expresses a good illustration of the lack of self-awareness and disdain for others that’s so common in society when the Provost suggests partnering Pompey with him—“A bawd, sir? Fie upon him, he will discredit our trade.” The same response could apply in many similar instances—“Come on, sir, you weigh the same; a feather will tip the balance.” Shakespeare was in one sense the least moral of all writers because morality (as it’s typically understood) is made of oppositions; his gift lay in connecting with human nature in all its forms, levels, struggles, and joys. The goal of a pedantic moralist is to find the bad in everything; his was to show that “there is some soul of goodness in things evil.” Even Master Barnardine isn’t left at the mercy of others' opinions; when he appears, he speaks for himself and defends his own case, just as if he had legal representation. In one way, Shakespeare wasn’t a moralist at all; in another, he was the greatest of all moralists. He was a moralist in the same way that nature is one. He taught what he learned from her. He displayed the greatest understanding of humanity along with a deep empathy for it.
One of the most dramatic passages in the present play is the interview between Claudio and his sister, when she comes to inform him of the conditions on which Angelo will spare his life.
One of the most intense moments in the current play is the conversation between Claudio and his sister when she arrives to tell him the terms under which Angelo will save his life.
What adds to the dramatic beauty of this scene and the effect of Claudio’s passionate attachment to life is, that it immediately follows the Duke’s lecture to him, in the character of the Friar, recommending an absolute indifference to it.
What makes this scene even more dramatic and highlights Claudio’s intense love for life is that it comes right after the Duke, posing as the Friar, gives him a speech about being completely indifferent to life.
THE MERRY WIVES OF WINDSOR
The Merry Wives of Windsor is no doubt a very amusing play, with a great deal of humour, character, and nature in it: but we should have liked it much better, if any one else had been the hero of it, instead of Falstaff. We could have been contented if Shakespear had not been ‘commanded to shew the knight in love.’ Wits and philosophers, for the most part, do not shine in that character; and Sir John himself, by no means, comes off with flying colours. Many people complain of the degradation and insults to which Don Quixote is so frequently exposed in his various adventures. But what are the unconscious indignities which he suffers, compared with the sensible mortifications which Falstaff is made to bring upon himself? 350What are the blows and buffetings which the Don receives from the staves of the Yanguesian carriers or from Sancho Panza’s more hard-hearted hands, compared with the contamination of the buck-basket, the disguise of the fat woman of Brentford, and the horns of Herne the hunter, which are discovered on Sir John’s head? In reading the play, we indeed wish him well through all these discomfitures, but it would have been as well if he had not got into them. Falstaff in the Merry Wives of Windsor is not the man he was in the two parts of Henry IV. His wit and eloquence have left him. Instead of making a butt of others, he is made a butt of by them. Neither is there a single particle of love in him to excuse his follies: he is merely a designing, bare-faced knave, and an unsuccessful one. The scene with Ford as Master Brook, and that with Simple, Slender’s man, who comes to ask after the Wise Woman, are almost the only ones in which his old intellectual ascendancy appears. He is like a person recalled to the stage to perform an unaccustomed and ungracious part; and in which we perceive only ‘some faint sparks of those flashes of merriment, that were wont to set the hearers in a roar.’ But the single scene with Doll Tearsheet, or Mrs. Quickly’s account of his desiring ‘to eat some of housewife Reach’s prawns,’ and telling her ‘to be no more so familiarity with such people,’ is worth the whole of the Merry Wives of Windsor put together. Ford’s jealousy, which is the main spring of the comic incidents, is certainly very well managed. Page, on the contrary, appears to be somewhat uxorious in his disposition; and we have pretty plain indications of the effect of the characters of the husbands on the different degrees of fidelity in their wives. Mrs. Quickly makes a very lively go-between, both between Falstaff and his Dulcineas, and Anne Page and her lovers, and seems in the latter case so intent on her own interest as totally to overlook the intentions of her employers. Her master, Dr. Caius, the Frenchman, and her fellow-servant Jack Rugby, are very completely described. This last-mentioned person is rather quaintly commended by Mrs. Quickly as ‘an honest, willing, kind fellow, as ever servant shall come in house withal, and I warrant you, no tell-tale, nor no breed-bate; his worst fault is, that he is given to prayer; he is something peevish that way; but nobody but has his fault.’ The Welch Parson, Sir Hugh Evans (a title which in those days was given to the clergy) is an excellent character in all respects. He is as respectable as he is laughable. He has ‘very good discretions, and very odd humours.’ The duel-scene with Caius gives him an opportunity to shew his ‘cholers and his tremblings of mind,’ his valour and his melancholy, in an irresistible manner. In the dialogue, 351which at his mother’s request he holds with his pupil, William Page, to shew his progress in learning, it is hard to say whether the simplicity of the master or the scholar is the greatest. Nym, Bardolph, and Pistol, are but the shadows of what they were; and Justice Shallow himself has little of his consequence left. But his cousin, Slender, makes up for the deficiency. He is a very potent piece of imbecility. In him the pretensions of the worthy Gloucestershire family are well kept up, and immortalised. He and his friend Sackerson and his book of songs and his love of Anne Page and his having nothing to say to her can never be forgotten. It is the only first-rate character in the play: but it is in that class. Shakespear is the only writer who was as great in describing weakness as strength.
The Merry Wives of Windsor is definitely a really funny play, filled with a lot of humor, character, and realism: but we would have enjoyed it much more if someone else had been the main character instead of Falstaff. We could have accepted if Shakespeare hadn’t been ‘asked to show the knight in love.’ Wits and philosophers, for the most part, don’t shine in that role; and Sir John himself, by no means, comes across looking great. Many people complain about the humiliations and insults that Don Quixote faces throughout his adventures. But what are the unwitting indignities he suffers compared to the very real mortifications Falstaff inflicts on himself? 350 What are the blows and beatings that Don receives from the sticks of the Yanguesian carriers or from Sancho Panza’s more merciless hands, compared to the shame of the buck-basket, the disguise of the fat woman of Brentford, and the horns of Herne the hunter that are discovered on Sir John’s head? As we read the play, we genuinely hope he fares well through all these mishaps, but it would have been better if he hadn’t gotten into them. Falstaff in the The Merry Wives of Windsor isn’t the man he was in the two parts of Henry IV. His wit and charm are gone. Instead of making others the target of his jokes, he becomes a target for them. There’s not a single ounce of love in him to justify his foolishness: he’s merely a scheming, bold fraud, and an unsuccessful one at that. The scene with Ford as Master Brook and that with Simple, Slender’s servant who comes to inquire about the Wise Woman, are almost the only moments where his old intellectual dominance shines through. He seems like someone called back on stage to perform an uncharacteristic and unpleasant role; here we see only ‘some faint sparks of those flashes of mirth that used to make the audience roar.’ But the brief scene with Doll Tearsheet or Mrs. Quickly’s description of his desire ‘to eat some of housewife Reach’s prawns,’ and telling her ‘to be no more so familiar with such people,’ makes it all worthwhile. Ford’s jealousy, which is the driving force behind the comic incidents, is certainly very well handled. Page, on the other hand, seems somewhat henpecked; and we can clearly see how the characters of the husbands influence the varying levels of fidelity in their wives. Mrs. Quickly acts as a lively intermediary, both between Falstaff and his love interests, and between Anne Page and her suitors, appearing to be so focused on her own interests that she completely ignores those of her employers. Her master, Dr. Caius, the Frenchman, and her fellow servant Jack Rugby, are characterized very well. This last-mentioned person is rather amusingly praised by Mrs. Quickly as ‘an honest, willing, kind fellow, as ever any servant will come into the house with, and I assure you, no gossip or troublemaker; his worst fault is that he’s a bit too prayerful; he can be a little irritable about that; but nobody’s without faults.’ The Welsh Parson, Sir Hugh Evans (a title that was given to clergy back then) is an excellent character in every way. He is as respectable as he is funny. He has ‘very good judgment and very quirky habits.’ The duel scene with Caius gives him the chance to display his ‘anger and his mental tremors,’ his bravery, and his sadness in a way that’s hard to resist. In the dialogue, 351 which he holds with his pupil, William Page, at his mother’s request, to show how well he’s learning, it’s tough to determine whether the simplicity of the teacher or the student is more remarkable. Nym, Bardolph, and Pistol are but shadows of what they used to be; and Justice Shallow himself has lost much of his significance. But his cousin, Slender, makes up for this shortcoming. He’s a very potent example of foolishness. Through him, the claims of the worthy Gloucestershire family are well upheld and immortalized. He, along with his mate Sackerson, his book of songs, his affection for Anne Page, and his lack of conversation with her can never be forgotten. It’s the only first-rate character in the play: but it belongs to that category. Shakespeare is the only writer who was as brilliant at portraying weakness as he was at portraying strength.
THE COMEDY OF ERRORS
This comedy is taken very much from the Menæchmi of Plautus, and is not an improvement on it. Shakespear appears to have bestowed no great pains on it, and there are but a few passages which bear the decided stamp of his genius. He seems to have relied on his author, and on the interest arising out of the intricacy of the plot. The curiosity excited is certainly very considerable, though not of the most pleasing kind. We are teazed as with a riddle, which notwithstanding we try to solve. In reading the play, from the sameness of the names of the two Antipholises and the two Dromios, as well from their being constantly taken for each other by those who see them, it is difficult, without a painful effort of attention, to keep the characters distinct in the mind. And again, on the stage, either the complete similarity of their persons and dress must produce the same perplexity whenever they first enter, or the identity of appearance which the story supposes, will be destroyed. We still, however, having a clue to the difficulty, can tell which is which, merely from the practical contradictions which arise, as soon as the different parties begin to speak; and we are indemnified for the perplexity and blunders into which we are thrown by seeing others thrown into greater and almost inextricable ones.—This play (among other considerations) leads us not to feel much regret that Shakespear was not what is called a classical scholar. We do not think his forte would ever have lain in imitating or improving on what others invented, so much as in inventing for himself, and perfecting what he invented,—not perhaps by the omission of faults, but by the addition of the highest excellencies. His own genius was strong 352enough to bear him up, and he soared longest and best on unborrowed plumes.—The only passage of a very Shakespearian cast in this comedy is the one in which the Abbess, with admirable characteristic artifice, makes Adriana confess her own misconduct in driving her husband mad.
This comedy is heavily based on Plautus's *Menæchmi*, and it doesn't really improve on it. Shakespeare seems to have put in minimal effort, with only a few parts showing his genius. He appears to have depended on the original work and the intrigue created by the complicated plot. The curiosity it stirs is certainly significant, although not necessarily enjoyable. It feels like a riddle that we keep trying to solve. While reading the play, the similarity of the names of the two Antipholuses and the two Dromios, along with the constant mix-ups by those who see them, makes it challenging to keep the characters straight without a lot of focus. On stage, the actors' identical appearances and costumes can create confusion when they first show up, or it could disrupt the story's premise of them looking the same. However, with a bit of guidance, we can tell them apart just by the practical contradictions that arise as soon as the different characters start speaking; watching others get tangled in even bigger and more confusing situations makes up for our own mix-ups. This play (among other reasons) makes us less regretful that Shakespeare wasn't what you'd call a classical scholar. We believe his strength wasn't in just copying or building on what others created but in inventing his own ideas and perfecting them—perhaps not by removing flaws but by adding exceptional qualities. His own talent was strong enough to elevate him, and he thrived best using original ideas. The only part of this comedy that feels truly Shakespearean is when the Abbess cleverly gets Adriana to admit her own failings in driving her husband insane.
Pinch the conjuror is also an excrescence not to be found in Plautus. He is indeed a very formidable anachronism.
Pinch the conjuror is also a growth you won't find in Plautus. He is truly a very intimidating anachronism.
This is exactly like some of the Puritanical portraits to be met with in Hogarth.
This is just like some of the Puritanical paintings you'll find in Hogarth.
DOUBTFUL PLAYS OF SHAKESPEAR
We shall give for the satisfaction of the reader what the celebrated German critic, Schlegel, says on this subject, and then add a very few remarks of our own.
We will share what the famous German critic, Schlegel, has to say on this topic, and then add just a few comments of our own.
‘All the editors, with the exception of Capell, are unanimous in rejecting Titus Andronicus as unworthy of Shakespear, though they always allow it to be printed with the other pieces, as the scape-goat, as it were, of their abusive criticism. The correct method in such an investigation is first to examine into the external grounds, evidences, etc. and to weigh their worth; and then to adduce the internal reasons derived from the quality of the work. The critics of Shakespear follow a course directly the reverse of this; they set out with a preconceived opinion against a piece, and seek, in justification of this opinion, to render the historical grounds suspicious, and to set them aside. Titus Andronicus is to be found in the first folio edition of Shakespear’s works, which it was known was conducted by Heminge and Condell, for many years his friends and fellow-managers of the same theatre. Is it possible to persuade ourselves that they would not have known if a piece in their repertory did or did not actually belong to Shakespear? And are we to lay to the charge of these honourable men a designed fraud in this single case, when we know that they did not shew themselves so very desirous of scraping everything together which went by the name of Shakespear, but, as it appears, merely gave those plays of which they had manuscripts in hand? Yet the following circumstance is still stronger: George Meres, a contemporary and admirer of Shakespear, mentions Titus Andronicus in an enumeration of his works, in the year 1598. Meres was personally acquainted with the poet, and so very intimately, that 354the latter read over to him his Sonnets before they were printed. I cannot conceive that all the critical scepticism in the world would be sufficient to get over such a testimony.
‘All the editors, except Capell, agree in rejecting Titus Andronicus as unworthy of Shakespeare, although they still allow it to be printed alongside the other works, almost as a scapegoat for their harsh criticism. The right approach in such an investigation is to first look into the external evidence and assess its value, and then to present the internal reasons based on the quality of the work. The critics of Shakespeare, however, follow a completely opposite path; they start with a biased opinion against a play and look for ways to discredit the historical evidence in order to support that opinion. Titus Andronicus is included in the first folio edition of Shakespeare’s works, which was known to be prepared by Heminge and Condell, who were friends of his for many years and co-managers of the same theater. Can we really convince ourselves that they wouldn’t have known whether a piece in their collection truly belonged to Shakespeare? Should we accuse these respectable men of intentionally misleading in this one case, when we see they weren’t eager to include everything that went by the name of Shakespeare and seemingly only included those plays for which they had manuscripts? Yet there’s an even stronger point: George Meres, a contemporary and admirer of Shakespeare, mentions Titus Andronicus in a list of his works in 1598. Meres was personally close to the poet, so much so that Shakespeare read his Sonnets to him before they were published. I can’t imagine that any amount of critical doubt could undermine such strong testimony.
‘This tragedy, it is true, is framed according to a false idea of the tragic, which by an accumulation of cruelties and enormities degenerates into the horrible, and yet leaves no deep impression behind: the story of Tereus and Philomela is heightened and overcharged under other names, and mixed up with the repast of Atreus and Thyestes, and many other incidents. In detail there is no want of beautiful lines, bold images, nay, even features which betray the peculiar conception of Shakespear. Among these we may reckon the joy of the treacherous Moor at the blackness and ugliness of his child begot in adultery; and in the compassion of Titus Andronicus, grown childish through grief, for a fly which had been struck dead, and his rage afterwards when he imagines he discovers in it his black enemy, we recognize the future poet of Lear. Are the critics afraid that Shakespear’s fame would be injured, were it established that in his early youth he ushered into the world a feeble and immature work? Was Rome the less the conqueror of the world because Remus could leap over its first walls? Let any one place himself in Shakespear’s situation at the commencement of his career. He found only a few indifferent models, and yet these met with the most favourable reception, because men are never difficult to please in the novelty of an art before their taste has become fastidious from choice and abundance. Must not this situation have had its influence on him before he learned to make higher demands on himself, and, by digging deeper in his own mind, discovered the richest veins of a noble metal? It is even highly probable that he must have made several failures before getting into the right path. Genius is in a certain sense infallible, and has nothing to learn; but art is to be learned, and must be acquired by practice and experience. In Shakespear’s acknowledged works we find hardly any traces of his apprenticeship, and yet an apprenticeship he certainly had. This every artist must have, and especially in a period where he has not before him the example of a school already formed. I consider it as extremely probable, that Shakespear began to write for the theatre at a much earlier period than the one which is generally stated, namely, not till after the year 1590. It appears that, as early as the year 1584, when only twenty years of age, he had left his paternal home and repaired to London. Can we imagine that such an active head would remain idle for six whole years without making any attempt to emerge by his talents from an uncongenial situation? That in the dedication of the poem of Venus and Adonis he calls it, ‘the first heir of his invention,’ proves nothing against the supposition. It was the first which he printed; he might have composed it at an earlier period; perhaps, also, he did not include theatrical labours, as they then possessed but little literary dignity. The earlier Shakespear began to compose for the theatre, the less are we enabled to consider the immaturity and imperfection of a work as a proof of its spuriousness in opposition to historical evidence, if we only find in it prominent features of his mind. Several of the works rejected as spurious, may still have been produced in the period betwixt Titus Andronicus, and the earliest of the acknowledged pieces.
‘This tragedy, it’s true, is built around a mistaken idea of what tragedy is, which, through a series of brutalities and horrors, degenerates into something shocking, yet leaves no lasting impact. The story of Tereus and Philomela is intensified and overloaded under different names and mixed with the tales of Atreus and Thyestes, along with many other incidents. There is no shortage of beautiful lines, bold images, and even elements that reveal Shakespeare's unique vision. We can include the treacherous Moor’s joy at the darkness and ugliness of his child conceived through adultery; and in Titus Andronicus’s childish compassion for a fly that was killed, and his subsequent rage when he thinks he sees his black enemy in it, we recognize the future poet of Lear. Are critics worried that Shakespeare’s reputation would suffer if it were shown that in his youthful days he produced a weak and immature work? Was Rome any less of a conqueror because Remus could leap over its initial walls? Anyone should consider Shakespeare’s situation at the start of his career. He encountered only a few uninspired models, yet these were received very well, since people are often easy to please when an art is new before their tastes become refined out of choice and excess. Could this situation not have influenced him before he learned to hold himself to higher standards and, by exploring deeper within himself, unearthed the richest veins of artistic value? It’s even quite likely that he experienced several failures before finding the right direction. Genius, in a way, is infallible and has nothing to learn; however, art must be learned and acquired through practice and experience. In Shakespeare’s recognized works, there are hardly any signs of his apprenticeship, and yet he definitely had one. Every artist has to go through this, especially in a time when there’s no established school to learn from. I believe it’s very likely that Shakespeare started writing for the theater much earlier than generally thought, specifically not just after 1590. It seems that by 1584, when he was only twenty, he had left his family home and gone to London. Can we imagine that such an active mind would remain idle for six whole years without trying to use his talents to improve his situation? His claim in the dedication of the poem Venus and Adonis that it is ‘the first heir of his invention’ does not debunk this theory; it's just the first one he printed. He could have written it earlier; perhaps he also didn’t count theatrical work, which at the time had little literary prestige. The earlier Shakespeare began composing for the theater, the less we can regard the flaws and immaturity of a work as evidence of its inauthenticity in light of historical facts, if we can identify notable traits of his mind within it. Several works dismissed as inauthentic might still have been created between Titus Andronicus and the earliest of his recognized pieces.
355‘At last, Steevens published seven pieces ascribed to Shakespear in two supplementary volumes. It is to be remarked, that they all appeared in print in Shakespear’s life-time, with his name prefixed at full length. They are the following:—
355Finally, Steevens published seven works attributed to Shakespeare in two extra volumes. It's worth noting that all of them were printed during Shakespeare's lifetime, with his full name included. They are as follows:—
‘1. Locrine. The proofs of the genuineness of this piece are not altogether unambiguous; the grounds for doubt, on the other hand, are entitled to attention. However, this question is immediately connected with that respecting Titus Andronicus, and must be at the same time resolved in the affirmative or negative.
‘1. Locrine. The evidence of the authenticity of this work isn’t completely clear; the reasons for skepticism, on the other hand, deserve consideration. However, this issue is directly related to the one concerning Titus Andronicus, and must therefore be addressed either affirmatively or negatively at the same time.
‘2. Pericles, Prince of Tyre. This piece was acknowledged by Dryden, but as a youthful work of Shakespear. It is most undoubtedly his, and it has been admitted into several of the late editions. The supposed imperfections originate in the circumstance, that Shakespear here handled a childish and extravagant romance of the old poet Gower, and was unwilling to drag the subject out of its proper sphere. Hence he even introduces Gower himself, and makes him deliver a prologue entirely in his antiquated language and versification. This power of assuming so foreign a manner is at least no proof of helplessness.
‘2. Pericles, Prince of Tyre. Dryden recognized this work, but he saw it as a youthful piece by Shakespeare. It is definitely his, and it has been included in several recent editions. The supposed flaws come from the fact that Shakespeare adapted a childish and over-the-top romance by the old poet Gower and was hesitant to pull the story out of its original context. That’s why he even brings in Gower himself and has him present a prologue completely in his old-fashioned language and style. This ability to adopt such a different manner is at least not a sign of ineptitude.
‘3. The London Prodigal. If we are not mistaken, Lessing pronounced this piece to be Shakespear’s, and wished to bring it on the German stage.
‘3. The London Prodigal. If we’re not wrong, Lessing claimed this work was by Shakespeare and wanted to bring it to the German stage.
‘4. The Puritan; or, the Widows of Watling Street. One of my literary friends, intimately acquainted with Shakespear, was of opinion that the poet must have wished to write a play for once in the style of Ben Jonson, and that in this way we must account for the difference between the present piece and his usual manner. To follow out this idea however would lead to a very nice critical investigation.
‘4. The Puritan; or, the Widows of Watling Street. One of my literary friends, who knew Shakespeare well, believed that the poet must have wanted to write a play in the style of Ben Jonson for once, and that this is how we can explain the difference between this piece and his usual style. Exploring this idea, however, would require a detailed critical analysis.
‘5. Thomas, Lord Cromwell.
‘5. Thomas, Lord Cromwell.
‘6. Sir John Oldcastle—First Part.
‘6. Sir John Oldcastle—Part One.
‘7. A Yorkshire Tragedy.
‘7. A Yorkshire Tragedy.
‘The three last pieces are not only unquestionably Shakespear’s, but in my opinion they deserve to be classed among his best and maturest works.—Steevens admits at last, in some degree, that they are Shakespear’s, as well as the others, excepting Locrine, but he speaks of all of them with great contempt, as quite worthless productions. This condemnatory sentence is not however in the slightest degree convincing, nor is it supported by critical acumen. I should like to see how such a critic would, of his own natural suggestion, have decided on Shakespear’s acknowledged master-pieces, and what he would have thought of praising in them, had the public opinion not imposed on him the duty of admiration. Thomas, Lord Cromwell, and Sir John Oldcastle, are biographical dramas, and models in this species: the first is linked, from its subject, to Henry the Eighth, and the second to Henry the Fifth. The second part of Oldcastle is wanting; I know not whether a copy of the old edition has been discovered in England, or whether it is lost. The Yorkshire Tragedy is a tragedy in one act, a dramatised tale of murder: the tragical effect is overpowering, and it is extremely important to see how poetically Shakespear could handle such a subject.
‘The last three pieces are not only definitely Shakespeare’s, but in my opinion, they should be considered among his best and most mature works. Steevens finally admits, to some extent, that they are Shakespeare’s, along with the others, except for Locrine, but he talks about all of them with great disdain, describing them as completely worthless. However, this harsh judgment is not at all convincing, nor does it show any critical insight. I would like to see how such a critic would have naturally come to terms with Shakespeare’s acknowledged masterpieces, and what he would have said about praising them if public opinion hadn’t pressured him into admiration. Thomas, Lord Cromwell and Sir John Oldcastle are biographical dramas and examples of this genre: the first is connected by its subject to Henry the Eighth, and the second to Henry the Fifth. The second part of Oldcastle is missing; I don't know if a copy of the old edition has been found in England or if it is lost. The Yorkshire Tragedy is a one-act tragedy, a dramatized tale of murder: the tragic effect is overwhelming, and it’s crucial to see how poetically Shakespeare could tackle such a subject.
‘There have been still farther ascribed to him:—1st. The Merry Devil of Edmonton, a comedy in one act, printed in Dodsley’s old plays. This 356has certainly some appearances in its favour. It contains a merry landlord, who bears a great similarity to the one in the Merry Wives of Windsor. However, at all events, though an ingenious, it is but a hasty sketch. 2d. The Accusation of Paris. 3d. The Birth of Merlin. 4th. Edward the Third. 5th. The Fair Emma. 6th. Mucedorus. 7th. Arden of Feversham. I have never seen any of these, and cannot therefore say anything respecting them. From the passages cited, I am led to conjecture that the subject of Mucedorus is the popular story of Valentine and Orson; a beautiful subject which Lope de Vega has also taken for a play. Arden of Feversham is said to be a tragedy on the story of a man, from whom the poet was descended by the mother’s side. If the quality of the piece is not too directly at variance with this claim, the circumstance would afford an additional probability in its favour. For such motives were not foreign to Shakespear: he treated Henry the Seventh, who bestowed lands on his forefathers for services performed by them, with a visible partiality.
‘There have been even more works attributed to him:—1st. The Merry Devil of Edmonton, a one-act comedy, printed in Dodsley’s old plays. This 356 does have some strengths in its favor. It features a cheerful landlord who closely resembles the one in The Merry Wives of Windsor. However, despite being clever, it's just a quick sketch. 2nd. The Accusation of Paris. 3rd. The Birth of Merlin. 4th. Edward the Third. 5th. The Fair Emma. 6th. Mucedorus. 7th. Arden of Feversham. I have never seen any of these and therefore can't comment on them. Based on the cited excerpts, I suspect that the story of Mucedorus is the popular tale of Valentine and Orson; a lovely subject that Lope de Vega also used for a play. Arden of Feversham is said to be a tragedy about a man from whom the poet is descended on his mother’s side. If the quality of the play aligns with this claim, it would provide additional support for its authenticity. Such motives weren't unusual for Shakespeare; he had a noticeable favoritism for Henry the Seventh, who granted lands to his ancestors for their services.’
‘Whoever takes from Shakespear a play early ascribed to him, and confessedly belonging to his time, is unquestionably bound to answer, with some degree of probability, this question: who has then written it? Shakespear’s competitors in the dramatic walk are pretty well known, and if those of them who have even acquired a considerable name, a Lilly, a Marlow, a Heywood, are still so very far below him, we can hardly imagine that the author of a work, which rises so high beyond theirs, would have remained unknown.’—Lectures on Dramatic Literature, vol. ii. page 252.
‘Anyone who takes a play early credited to Shakespeare and clearly belongs to his era is definitely obligated to answer, with some level of likelihood, this question: who wrote it then? Shakespeare’s competitors in drama are fairly well known, and considering that those who have made a notable name for themselves, like Lily, Marlow, and Heywood, are still so far beneath him, it's hard to believe that the author of a work that surpasses theirs would go unrecognized.’—Lectures on Dramatic Literature, vol. ii. page 252.
We agree to the truth of this last observation, but not to the justice of its application to some of the plays here mentioned. It is true that Shakespear’s best works are very superior to those of Marlow, or Heywood, but it is not true that the best of the doubtful plays above enumerated are superior or even equal to the best of theirs. The Yorkshire Tragedy, which Schlegel speaks of as an undoubted production of our author’s, is much more in the manner of Heywood than of Shakespear. The effect is indeed overpowering, but the mode of producing it is by no means poetical. The praise which Schlegel gives to Thomas, Lord Cromwell, and to Sir John Oldcastle, is altogether exaggerated. They are very indifferent compositions, which have not the slightest pretensions to rank with Henry V. or Henry VIII. We suspect that the German critic was not very well acquainted with the dramatic contemporaries of Shakespear, or aware of their general merits; and that he accordingly mistakes a resemblance in style and manner for an equal degree of excellence. Shakespear differed from the other writers of his age not in the mode of treating his subjects, but in the grace and power which he displayed in them. The reason assigned by a literary friend of Schlegel’s for supposing The Puritan; or, the Widow of Watling Street, to be Shakespear’s, viz. that it is in the style of Ben Jonson, that is to say, in a style just the reverse of his own, is not very satisfactory to a 357plain English understanding. Locrine, and The London Prodigal, if they were Shakespear’s at all, must have been among the sins of his youth. Arden of Feversham contains several striking passages, but the passion which they express is rather that of a sanguine temperament than of a lofty imagination; and in this respect they approximate more nearly to the style of other writers of the time than to Shakespear’s. Titus Andronicus is certainly as unlike Shakespear’s usual style as it is possible. It is an accumulation of vulgar physical horrors, in which the power exercised by the poet bears no proportion to the repugnance excited by the subject. The character of Aaron the Moor is the only thing which shews any originality of conception; and the scene in which he expresses his joy ‘at the blackness and ugliness of his child begot in adultery,’ the only one worthy of Shakespear. Even this is worthy of him only in the display of power, for it gives no pleasure. Shakespear managed these things differently. Nor do we think it a sufficient answer to say that this was an embryo or crude production of the author. In its kind it is full grown, and its features decided and overcharged. It is not like a first imperfect essay, but shews a confirmed habit, a systematic preference of violent effect to everything else. There are occasional detached images of great beauty and delicacy, but these were not beyond the powers of other writers then living. The circumstance which inclines us to reject the external evidence in favour of this play being Shakespear’s is, that the grammatical construction is constantly false and mixed up with vulgar abbreviations, a fault that never occurs in any of his genuine plays. A similar defect, and the halting measure of the verse are the chief objections to Pericles of Tyre, if we except the far-fetched and complicated absurdity of the story. The movement of the thoughts and passions has something in it not unlike Shakespear, and several of the descriptions are either the original hints of passages which Shakespear has ingrafted on his other plays, or are imitations of them by some contemporary poet. The most memorable idea in it is in Marina’s speech, where she compares the world to ‘a lasting storm, hurrying her from her friends.’
We agree with the truth of this last observation, but not with how it’s applied to some of the plays mentioned here. It’s true that Shakespeare’s best works are much better than those of Marlowe or Heywood, but it’s not true that the best of the questionable plays listed above are better or even equal to their best works. The Yorkshire Tragedy, which Schlegel claims is definitely by our author, resembles Heywood much more than Shakespeare. The impact is indeed intense, but the way it achieves this is far from poetic. The praise Schlegel gives to Thomas, Lord Cromwell, and Sir John Oldcastle, is completely exaggerated. They are rather mediocre pieces that have no claim to be ranked alongside Henry V. or Henry VIII. We suspect that the German critic wasn’t very familiar with Shakespeare’s dramatic contemporaries or their overall merits; he mistakenly perceives a similarity in style and manner as an equal level of excellence. Shakespeare stood apart from other writers of his time not in how he treated his themes, but in the grace and power he brought to them. The reason given by a literary friend of Schlegel for thinking The Puritan; or, the Widow of Watling Street is Shakespeare’s—that it mimics Ben Jonson's style, which is completely opposite to Shakespeare's own—is not very convincing to a straightforward English reader. Locrine and The London Prodigal, if they were even by Shakespeare, must have been written in his youth. Arden of Feversham has several striking moments, but the emotion they convey is more that of a hot-blooded temperament than a lofty imagination; in this regard, they are closer to the style of other writers from the time than to Shakespeare’s. Titus Andronicus is certainly as different from Shakespeare’s usual style as possible. It’s an assortment of crude physical horrors, where the power the poet wields doesn’t match the disgust evoked by the subject. The character of Aaron the Moor is the only aspect that displays any originality, and the scene where he shows joy at the darkness and ugliness of his child born from adultery is the only one worthy of Shakespeare. Even this is only commendable for its display of power, as it brings no pleasure. Shakespeare handled these things differently. We don’t think it’s sufficient to argue that this is a rough draft of the author’s work. In its category, it’s fully developed, with marked and exaggerated features. It doesn’t resemble a first imperfect attempt; it shows a set habit, a systematic preference for violent effects over everything else. There are occasional isolated images of great beauty and sensitivity, but these were within the capabilities of other writers at the time. The reason we lean towards rejecting the external evidence supporting this play as being by Shakespeare is that its grammatical structure is consistently flawed and mixed with vulgar abbreviations, a mistake that doesn’t occur in any of his real plays. A similar flaw, along with the uneven rhythm of the verse, are the main issues with Pericles of Tyre, aside from the far-fetched and complicated absurdity of the plot. The flow of thoughts and emotions does have some resemblance to Shakespeare, and several descriptions either hint at passages he incorporated into his other plays, or are imitations by some contemporary poet. The most memorable idea is in Marina’s speech, where she compares the world to ‘a lasting storm, hurrying her from her friends.’
POEMS AND SONNETS
Our idolatry of Shakespear (not to say our admiration) ceases with his plays. In his other productions, he was a mere author, though not a common author. It was only by representing others, that he became himself. He could go out of himself, and express the soul of Cleopatra; but in his own person, he appeared to be always 358waiting for the prompter’s cue. In expressing the thoughts of others, he seemed inspired; in expressing his own, he was a mechanic. The licence of an assumed character was necessary to restore his genius to the privileges of nature, and to give him courage to break through the tyranny of fashion, the trammels of custom. In his plays, he was ‘as broad and casing as the general air’: in his poems, on the contrary, he appears to be ‘cooped, and cabined in’ by all the technicalities of art, by all the petty intricacies of thought and language, which poetry had learned from the controversial jargon of the schools, where words had been made a substitute for things. There was, if we mistake not, something of modesty, and a painful sense of personal propriety at the bottom of this. Shakespear’s imagination, by identifying itself with the strongest characters in the most trying circumstances, grappled at once with nature, and trampled the littleness of art under his feet: the rapid changes of situation, the wide range of the universe, gave him life and spirit, and afforded full scope to his genius; but returned into his closet again, and having assumed the badge of his profession, he could only labour in his vocation, and conform himself to existing models. The thoughts, the passions, the words which the poet’s pen, ‘glancing from heaven to earth, from earth to heaven,’ lent to others, shook off the fetters of pedantry and affectation; while his own thoughts and feelings, standing by themselves, were seized upon as lawful prey, and tortured to death according to the established rules and practice of the day. In a word, we do not like Shakespear’s poems, because we like his plays: the one, in all their excellencies, are just the reverse of the other. It has been the fashion of late to cry up our author’s poems, as equal to his plays: this is the desperate cant of modern criticism. We would ask, was there the slightest comparison between Shakespear, and either Chaucer or Spenser, as mere poets? Not any.—The two poems of Venus and Adonis and of Tarquin and Lucrece appear to us like a couple of ice-houses. They are about as hard, as glittering, and as cold. The author seems all the time to be thinking of his verses, and not of his subject,—not of what his characters would feel, but of what he shall say; and as it must happen in all such cases, he always puts into their mouths those things which they would be the last to think of, and which it shews the greatest ingenuity in him to find out. The whole is laboured, up-hill work. The poet is perpetually singling out the difficulties of the art to make an exhibition of his strength and skill in wrestling with them. He is making perpetual trials of them as if his mastery over them were doubted. The images, which are often striking, are generally applied to things which they are the least like: so that they 359do not blend with the poem, but seem stuck upon it, like splendid patch-work, or remain quite distinct from it, like detached substances, painted and varnished over. A beautiful thought is sure to be lost in an endless commentary upon it. The speakers are like persons who have both leisure and inclination to make riddles on their own situation, and to twist and turn every object or incident into acrostics and anagrams. Everything is spun out into allegory; and a digression is always preferred to the main story. Sentiment is built up upon plays of words; the hero or heroine feels, not from the impulse of passion, but from the force of dialectics. There is besides a strange attempt to substitute the language of painting for that of poetry, to make us see their feelings in the faces of the persons; and again, consistently with this, in the description of the picture in Tarquin and Lucrece, those circumstances are chiefly insisted on, which it would be impossible to convey except by words. The invocation to opportunity in the Tarquin and Lucrece is full of thoughts and images, but at the same time it is overloaded by them. The concluding stanza expresses all our objections to this kind of poetry:—
Our idolization of Shakespeare (not to say our admiration) stops with his plays. In his other works, he was just an author, albeit an exceptional one. He only truly became himself by portraying others. He could step outside of himself and capture the essence of Cleopatra; however, in his own voice, he always seemed to be waiting for a prompt. When expressing the thoughts of others, he appeared inspired; when sharing his own, he felt mechanical. The freedom of adopting a character was necessary to allow his genius to be authentic and give him the courage to break free from the constraints of fashion and tradition. In his plays, he was "as broad and sweeping as the general air"; in his poems, on the other hand, he feels "cooped and confined" by all the technicalities of art, all the trivial complexities of thought and language that poetry borrowed from the academic debates of the time, where words replaced real meanings. There seems to be, if we are not mistaken, a touch of modesty and an acute awareness of personal propriety underlying this. Shakespeare's imagination, by merging with the strongest characters in the most challenging situations, engaged directly with nature and crushed the limitations of art beneath him: the swift shifts of circumstance and the vastness of the universe invigorated him and gave full expression to his genius; but when retreating to his writing space, donning the mantle of his profession, he could only work within established frameworks and mimic existing styles. The thoughts, passions, and expressions that the poet's pen captured, "glancing from heaven to earth, from earth to heaven," broke free from the chains of pedantry and pretension; while his own thoughts and feelings, standing alone, were seen as fair game, twisted to fit the conventions of the time. To put it simply, we don't appreciate Shakespeare's poems because we admire his plays: the former, for all their merits, are essentially the opposite of the latter. Recently, it has become fashionable to praise our author's poems as being on par with his plays: this is just the desperate refrain of modern criticism. We would ask, was there any real comparison between Shakespeare and either Chaucer or Spenser as poets? Not at all. The two poems, "Venus and Adonis" and "Tarquin and Lucrece," come off to us like a couple of ice-cold structures. They feel just as hard, shiny, and cold. The author seems to be constantly focused on his verses instead of his subject—more concerned with what he will say than with what his characters would genuinely feel; and as often happens in such cases, he ends up giving his characters lines they would be least inclined to think, showcasing his cleverness in pinning them down. The entire effort feels labored and uphill. The poet is continuously isolating the difficulties of the craft to display his strength and skill in tackling them. He keeps testing them, as if his command over them were in question. The vivid images, though often striking, are usually used in contexts they least fit, making them feel more like embellishments stuck onto the poem rather than blending with it, akin to ornate patches or remaining as separate elements, painted and polished over. A beautiful thought is sure to get lost in an endless commentary. The speakers seem like people who both have the time and the inclination to create riddles about their situation, twisting and bending every detail or incident into wordplay and puzzles. Everything gets drawn out into allegory; digressions always take priority over the main storyline. Sentiment is crafted from clever wordplay; the hero or heroine feels, not from genuine passion, but from the weight of dialectics. Additionally, there’s a peculiar attempt to replace the language of poetry with that of painting, trying to make us see their emotions in the characters’ faces; and consistently with this approach, in the description of the painting in "Tarquin and Lucrece," the focus is on aspects that cannot be expressed through words alone. The invocation to opportunity in "Tarquin and Lucrece" is filled with thoughts and images, yet it’s weighed down by them. The final stanza encapsulates all our objections to this type of poetry:—
The description of the horse in Venus and Adonis has been particularly admired, and not without reason:—
The description of the horse in Venus and Adonis has been especially praised, and for good reason:—
Now this inventory of perfections shews great knowledge of the horse; and is good matter-of-fact poetry. Let the reader but compare it with a speech in the Midsummer Night’s Dream where Theseus describes his hounds—
Now this list of qualities shows a deep understanding of horses and is solid, straightforward poetry. The reader just needs to compare it with a speech in the Midsummer Night’s Dream where Theseus talks about his hounds—
and he will perceive at once what we mean by the difference between Shakespear’s own poetry, and that of his plays. We prefer the 360Passionate Pilgrim very much to the Lover’s Complaint. It has been doubted whether the latter poem is Shakespear’s.
and he will immediately understand the difference between Shakespear’s own poetry and that of his plays. We much prefer the 360Passionate Pilgrim to the Lover’s Complaint. There has been some doubt about whether the latter poem is actually by Shakespear.
Of the Sonnets we do not well know what to say. The subject of them seems to be somewhat equivocal; but many of them are highly beautiful in themselves, and interesting as they relate to the state of the personal feelings of the author. The following are some of the most striking:—
Of the Sonnets, we’re not really sure what to say. The topic seems a bit unclear, but many of them are really beautiful on their own and interesting because they reflect the author’s personal feelings. Here are some of the most striking ones:—
CONSTANCY
LOVE’S CONSOLATION
NOVELTY
LIFE’S DECAY
In all these, as well as in many others, there is a mild tone of sentiment, deep, mellow, and sustained, very different from the crudeness of his earlier poems.
In all these, as well as in many others, there is a gentle tone of feeling, deep, smooth, and enduring, very different from the rawness of his earlier poems.
A LETTER TO WILLIAM GIFFORD, ESQ.
364[The title-page of the original edition is as follows: A Letter to William Gifford, Esq. From William Hazlitt, Esq. ‘Fit pugil, et medicum urget.’ London: Printed for John Miller, Burlington Arcade, Piccadilly. 1819. Price Three Shillings. A so-called ‘second edition’ of 1820 consisted of the unsold copies with a fresh title-page: London: Printed for Robert Stodart, 81 Strand. 1820.]
364[The title page of the original edition is as follows: A Letter to William Gifford, Esq. From William Hazlitt, Esq. ‘Fit fighter, and the doctor pushes.’ London: Printed for John Miller, Burlington Arcade, Piccadilly. 1819. Price Three Shillings. A so-called ‘second edition’ of 1820 consisted of the unsold copies with a fresh title page: London: Printed for Robert Stodart, 81 Strand. 1820.]
Sir,—You have an ugly trick of saying what is not true of any one you do not like; and it will be the object of this letter to cure you of it. You say what you please of others: it is time you were told what you are. In doing this, give me leave to borrow the familiarity of your style:—for the fidelity of the picture I shall be answerable.
Sir,—You have a nasty habit of saying things that aren’t true about anyone you don’t like; and this letter aims to put an end to that. You talk freely about others: it’s time you hear the truth about yourself. In doing this, let me adopt your style:—I’ll take responsibility for the accuracy of the portrayal.
You are a little person, but a considerable cat’s-paw; and so far worthy of notice. Your clandestine connexion with persons high in office constantly influences your opinions, and alone gives importance to them. You are the Government Critic, a character nicely differing from that of a government spy—the invisible link, that connects literature with the police. It is your business to keep a strict eye over all writers who differ in opinion with his Majesty’s Ministers, and to measure their talents and attainments by the standard of their servility and meanness. For this office you are well qualified. Besides being the Editor of the Quarterly Review, you are also paymaster of the band of Gentlemen Pensioners; and when an author comes before you in the one capacity, with whom you are not acquainted in the other, you know how to deal with him. You have your cue beforehand. The distinction between truth and falsehood you make no account of: you mind only the distinction between Whig and Tory. Accustomed to the indulgence of your mercenary virulence and party-spite, you have lost all relish as well as capacity for the unperverted exercises of the understanding, and make up for the obvious want of ability by a bare-faced want of principle. The same set of thread-bare common-places, the same second-hand assortment of abusive nicknames, the same assumption of little magisterial airs of superiority, are regularly repeated; and the ready convenient lie comes in aid of the dearth of other resources, and passes off, with impunity, in the garb of religion and loyalty. If no one finds it out, why then there is no harm done, snug’s the word; or if it should be detected, it is a good joke, shews spirit and invention in proportion to its grossness and impudence, and it is only a pity that what was so well meant in so good a cause, should miscarry! The end sanctifies the means; and you keep no faith with heretics in religion or government. 366You are under the protection of the Court; and your zeal for your king and country entitles you to say what you chuse of every public writer who does not do all in his power to pamper the one into a tyrant, and to trample the other into a herd of slaves. You derive your weight with the great and powerful from the very circumstance that takes away all real weight from your authority, viz. that it is avowedly, and upon every occasion, exerted for no one purpose but to hold up to hatred and contempt whatever opposes in the slightest degree and in the most flagrant instances of abuse their pride and passions. You dictate your opinions to a party, because not one of your opinions is formed upon an honest conviction of the truth or justice of the case, but by collusion with the prejudices, caprice, interest or vanity of your employers. The mob of well-dressed readers who consult the Quarterly Review, know that there is no offence in it. They put faith in it because they are aware that it is ‘false and hollow, but will please the ear’; that it will tell them nothing but what they would wish to believe. Your reasoning comes under the head of Court-news; your taste is a standard of the prevailing ton in certain circles, like Ackerman’s dresses for May. When you damn an author, one knows that he is not a favourite at Carlton House. When you say that an author cannot write common sense or English, you mean that he does not believe in the doctrine of divine right. Of course, the clergy and gentry will not read such an author. Your praise or blame has nothing to do with the merits of a work, but with the party to which the writer belongs, or is in the inverse ratio of its merits. The dingy cover that wraps the pages of the Quarterly Review does not contain a concentrated essence of taste and knowledge, but is a receptacle for the scum and sediment of all the prejudice, bigotry, ill-will, ignorance, and rancour, afloat in the kingdom. This the fools and knaves who pin their faith on you know, and it is on this account they pin their faith on you. They come to you for a scale not of literary talent but of political subserviency. They want you to set your mark of approbation on a writer as a thorough-paced tool, or of reprobation as an honest man. Your fashionable readers, Sir, are hypocrites as well as knaves and fools; and the watch-word, the practical intelligence they want, must be conveyed to them without implied offence to their candour and liberality, in the patois and gibberish of fraud of which you are a master. When you begin to jabber about common sense and English, they know what to be at, shut up the book, and wonder that any respectable publisher can be found to let it lie on his counter, as much as if it were a Petition for Reform. Do you suppose, Sir, that such persons as the Rev. Gerard Valerian Wellesley and the Rev. Weeden Butler would not be glad 367to ruin what they call a Jacobin author as well as a Jacobin stationer?[72] Or that they will not thank you for persuading them that their doing so in the former case is a proof of their taste and good sense, as well as loyalty and religion? You know very well that if a particle of truth or fairness were to find its way into a single number of your publication, another Quarterly Review would be set up to-morrow for the express purpose of depriving every author, in prose or verse, of his reputation and livelihood, who is not a regular hack of the vilest cabal that ever disgraced this or any other country.
You’re a small person, but you play a significant role as a pawn; and you’re definitely worth noticing. Your secret connections with people in power constantly shape your opinions, and they’re what give you any importance. You are the Government Critic, a role that is very different from that of a government spy—the invisible link between literature and law enforcement. It’s your job to keep a close watch on all writers who disagree with the King’s Ministers, judging their abilities based on their submissiveness and lack of integrity. You’re well-suited for this role. Besides being the Editor of the Quarterly Review, you also manage the Gentlemen Pensioners; and when an author comes to you in one capacity while you don’t know him in the other, you know exactly how to handle him. You’ve got your cues set in advance. The line between truth and falsehood doesn’t concern you; you focus only on the difference between Whig and Tory. Used to indulging your paid spite and biased anger, you have lost all taste and ability for honest thinking, compensating for your apparent lack of skill with an outright disregard for principles. The same old clichés, the same recycled petty insults, the same little airs of superiority, get repeated over and over; and the convenient lie steps in to fill the gaps where other resources lack, slipping by without consequence under the covers of religion and loyalty. If no one catches it, then there’s no harm done, snug’s the word; or if it does get noticed, it’s a good laugh, showing creativity and spirit proportional to its crudeness and audacity, and it’s just unfortunate that something so well-intentioned in such a good cause should fail! The end justifies the means, and you have no loyalty to heretics in religion or government. 366You're under the protection of the Court; your enthusiasm for your king and country allows you to say whatever you want about any public writer who doesn’t do everything in his power to turn the one into a tyrant and stampede the other into a group of slaves. You gain your influence with the powerful by the very factor that takes away all real authority from you, namely that it is openly, and at all times, used solely to promote hatred and contempt towards anyone who opposes their pride and emotions, no matter how minor the disagreement or how blatant the abuse. You dictate your opinions to a party because none of your views are based on a genuine belief in the truth or justice of the situation, but rather through collusion with the biases, whims, interests, or vanity of your backers. The crowd of well-dressed readers who check out the Quarterly Review know that there is no offence in it. They believe in it because they realize it’s ‘false and hollow, but will please their ears’; that it will only tell them what they want to hear. Your reasoning falls under the category of Court news; your taste sets the tone in certain social circles, like Ackerman’s fashionable dresses for May. When you criticize an author, it’s clear that he’s not in favor at Carlton House. When you claim that an author can’t write common sense or English, you mean that he doesn’t subscribe to the doctrine of divine right. Naturally, the clergy and gentry won't read such an author. Your praise or criticism has nothing to do with the quality of the work, but relates instead to the political party the writer belongs to, or it’s inversely proportional to its quality. The dull cover that wraps the pages of the Quarterly Review doesn’t hold a concentrated essence of taste and knowledge, but is a container for all the prejudice, bigotry, malice, ignorance, and bitterness floating around in the kingdom. The fools and knaves who put their faith in you know this, which is why they put their faith in you. They come to you for a measure not of literary talent, but of political loyalty. They want you to stamp your approval on a writer as a complete lackey, or condemn him as an honest man. Your fashionable readers, Sir, are hypocrites as well as dupes and fools; and the cues, the practical guidance they desire, must be delivered without offending their supposed openness and fairness, in the dialect and nonsense of deceit that you master so well. When you start babbling about common sense and English, they know what to do, close the book, and wonder how any respectable publisher would let it sit on his counter, as if it were a Petition for Reform. Do you think, Sir, that the Rev. Gerard Valerian Wellesley and the Rev. Weeden Butler wouldn’t be eager to ruin what they call a Jacobin author as well as a Jacobin publisher?[72] Or that they won’t appreciate that doing so in the first case shows off their taste and good sense, along with their loyalty and faith? You know very well that if even a hint of truth or fairness made its way into a single issue of your publication, another Quarterly Review would be launched tomorrow solely to strip every author, in prose or verse, of his reputation and livelihood, who isn't a regular hack of the most despicable cabal that ever disgraced this country or any other.
There is something in your nature and habits that fits you for the situation into which your good fortune has thrown you. In the first place, you are in no danger of exciting the jealousy of your patrons by a mortifying display of extraordinary talents, while your sordid devotion to their will and to your own interest at once ensures their gratitude and contempt. To crawl and lick the dust is all they expect of you, and all you can do. Otherwise they might fear your power, for they could have no dependence on your fidelity: but they take you with safety and fondness to their bosoms; for they know that if you cease to be a tool, you cease to be anything. If you had an exuberance of wit, the unguarded use of it might sometimes glance at your employers; if you were sincere yourself, you might respect the motives of others; if you had sufficient understanding, you might attempt an argument, and fail in it. But luckily for yourself and your admirers, you are but the dull echo, ‘the tenth transmitter’ of some hackneyed jest: the want of all manly and candid feeling in yourself only excites your suspicion and antipathy to it in others, as something at which your nature recoils: your slowness to understand makes you quick to misrepresent; and you infallibly make nonsense of what you cannot possibly conceive. What seem your wilful blunders are often the felicity of natural parts, and your want of penetration has all the appearance of an affected petulance!
There’s something about your nature and habits that makes you suited for the situation your good fortune has placed you in. First of all, you won’t stir up the jealousy of those who support you with a show of exceptional talent, while your self-serving loyalty to their will and your own interests guarantees their gratitude and disdain. Crawling and licking the dust is all they expect from you, and it’s all you’re capable of. Otherwise, they might fear your power, as they can’t rely on your loyalty; but they embrace you safely and fondly because they know that if you stop being a tool, you stop being anything. If you had an abundance of wit, your unguarded expressions might sometimes hit close to home for your employers; if you were sincere, you might respect their motives; if you had enough understanding, you might try to argue and fail. But fortunately for you and your admirers, you’re just a dull echo, ‘the tenth transmitter’ of some overused joke: your lack of manly and honest feeling makes you suspicious and antagonistic toward it in others, as if it’s something you instinctively recoil from; your slowness to understand makes you quick to misrepresent; and you inevitably bungle what you can’t comprehend. What look like your intentional mistakes often reveal a natural simplicity, and your lack of insight appears to be an artificial irritability!
Again, of an humble origin yourself, you recommend your performances to persons of fashion by always abusing low people, with the smartness of a lady’s waiting woman, and the independent spirit of a travelling tutor. Raised from the lowest rank to your present despicable eminence in the world of letters, you are indignant that any one should attempt to rise into notice, except by the same regular trammels and servile gradations, or should go about to separate the stamp of merit from the badge of sycophancy. The silent listener in select circles, and menial tool of noble families, you have become the oracle of Church and State. The purveyor to the prejudices or passions of 368a private patron succeeds, by no other title, to regulate the public taste. You have felt the inconveniences of poverty, and look up with base and groveling admiration to the advantages of wealth and power: you have had to contend with the mechanical difficulties of a want of education, and you see nothing in learning but its mechanical uses. A self-taught man naturally becomes a pedant, and mistakes the means of knowledge for the end, unless he is a man of genius; and you, Sir, are not a man of genius. From having known nothing originally, you think it a great acquisition to know anything now, no matter what or how small it is—nay, the smaller and more insignificant it is, the more curious you seem to think it, as it is farther removed from common sense and human nature. The collating of points and commas is the highest game your literary ambition can reach to, and the squabbles of editors are to you infinitely more important than the meaning of an author. You think more of the letter than the spirit of a passage; and in your eagerness to show your minute superiority over those who have gone before you, generally miss both. In comparing yourself with others, you make a considerable mistake. You suppose the common advantages of a liberal education to be something peculiar to yourself, and calculate your progress beyond the rest of the world from the obscure point at which you first set out. Yet your overweening self-complacency is never easy but in the expression of your contempt for others; like a conceited mechanic in a village ale-house, you would set down every one who differs from you as an ignorant blockhead; and very fairly infer that any one who is beneath yourself must be nothing. You have been well called an Ultra-Crepidarian critic. From the difficulty you yourself have in constructing a sentence of common grammar, and your frequent failures, you instinctively presume that no author who comes under the lash of your pen can understand his mother-tongue: and again, you suspect every one who is not your ‘very good friend’ of knowing nothing of the Greek or Latin, because you are surprised to think how you came by your own knowledge of them. There is an innate littleness and vulgarity in all you do. In combating an opinion, you never take a broad and liberal ground, state it fairly, allow what there is of truth or an appearance of truth, and then assert your own judgment by exposing what is deficient in it, and giving a more masterly view of the subject. No: this would be committing your powers and pretensions where you dare not trust them. You know yourself better. You deny the meaning altogether, misquote or misapply, and then plume yourself on your own superiority to the absurdity you have created. Your triumph over your antagonists is the triumph of your cunning and mean-spiritedness over some nonentity of your own making; and your wary 369self-knowledge shrinks from a comparison with any but the most puny pretensions, as the spider retreats from the caterpillar into its web.
Once again, coming from a humble background yourself, you promote your work to fashionable people by constantly putting down ordinary folks, acting with the sharpness of a lady’s maid and the independence of a traveling tutor. Having risen from the lowest ranks to your current pathetic status in the literary world, you’re outraged that anyone else should try to gain recognition, except through the same rigid pathways and submissive steps, or attempt to distinguish true merit from sycophantic labels. As the silent listener in elite circles and a servile tool for noble families, you’ve become the go-to person for Church and State matters. The provider of the biases or feelings of a private patron manages to influence public taste through no other title. You’ve experienced the struggles of poverty and gaze up with base and servile admiration at the benefits of wealth and power: you’ve had to deal with the mechanical difficulties of lacking education, seeing nothing in learning except its practical applications. A self-taught individual tends to become a pedant, mistaking the tools of knowledge for the goal, unless he’s a person of genius; and you, sir, are not a genius. Having originated from ignorance, you view any new knowledge as a significant gain, regardless of how trivial; indeed, the more trivial and meaningless it is, the more fascinated you seem to be, as it strays further from common sense and human nature. The arrangement of points and commas represents the highest level of literary ambition you can achieve, and the disputes among editors matter infinitely more to you than an author’s intended meaning. You prioritize the letter over the spirit of a passage; and in your eagerness to demonstrate your minor superiority over those before you, you usually overlook both. In comparing yourself to others, you make a significant error. You believe the common advantages of a good education are unique to you and measure your progress beyond the rest of the world from the obscure starting point where you began. Yet your excessive self-satisfaction only appears when expressing contempt for others; like a braggart tradesman in a village pub, you dismiss anyone who disagrees with you as an ignorant fool; and quite rightly conclude that anyone beneath you must be nothing. You have aptly been called an Ultra-Crepidarian critic. From the trouble you have with forming a sentence in basic grammar, along with your frequent mistakes, you instinctively assume that no author subjected to your criticism can grasp his own language: further, you suspect everyone who isn’t your ‘very good friend’ knows nothing of Greek or Latin, baffled that you have any grasp of them yourself. There’s a deep-seated pettiness and coarseness in everything you do. When countering an opinion, you never take a broad and open-minded approach, presenting it honestly, acknowledging its truth or semblance of truth, and then stating your own viewpoint by highlighting its shortcomings and offering a more skillful perspective on the topic. No: this would require you to commit your abilities and pretensions where you dare not rely on them. You know yourself better. You deny the meaning entirely, misquote or misinterpret, and then congratulate yourself on your superiority over the absurdity you’ve created. Your victory over your opponents is a triumph of your cunning and small-mindedness over some nobody of your own making; and your cautious self-awareness shies away from comparison with anyone but the most trivial pretensions, like a spider recoiling from a caterpillar back to its web.
There cannot be a greater nuisance than a dull, envious, pragmatical, low-bred man, who is placed as you are in the situation of the Editor of such a work as the Quarterly Review. Conscious that his reputation stands on very slender and narrow grounds, he is naturally jealous of that of others. He insults over unsuccessful authors; he hates successful ones. He is angry at the faults of a work; more angry at its excellences. If an opinion is old, he treats it with supercilious indifference; if it is new, it provokes his rage. Everything beyond his limited range of inquiry, appears to him a paradox and an absurdity: and he resents every suggestion of the kind as an imposition on the public, and an imputation on his own sagacity. He cavils at what he does not comprehend, and misrepresents what he knows to be true. Bound to go through the nauseous task of abusing all those who are not like himself the abject tools of power, his irritation increases with the number of obstacles he encounters, and the number of sacrifices he is obliged to make of common sense and decency to his interest and self-conceit. Every instance of prevarication he wilfully commits makes him more in love with hypocrisy, and every indulgence of his hired malignity makes him more disposed to repeat the insult and the injury. His understanding becomes daily more distorted, and his feelings more and more callous. Grown old in the service of corruption, he drivels on to the last with prostituted impotence and shameless effrontery; salves a meagre reputation for wit, by venting the driblets of his spleen and impertinence on others; answers their arguments by confuting himself; mistakes habitual obtuseness of intellect for a particular acuteness, not to be imposed upon by shallow appearances; unprincipled rancour for zealous loyalty; and the irritable, discontented, vindictive, peevish effusions of bodily pain and mental imbecility for proofs of refinement of taste and strength of understanding.
There’s nothing more annoying than a dull, envious, practical, low-class person in a position like yours as the Editor of a publication like the Quarterly Review. Aware that his reputation rests on very fragile and narrow foundations, he’s naturally jealous of others. He looks down on unsuccessful authors and despises the successful ones. He gets upset about the flaws in a work, but he’s even more annoyed by its strengths. If an idea is old, he dismisses it with arrogant indifference; if it’s new, it makes him furious. Everything outside his limited understanding seems to him like a paradox or nonsense, and he resents every suggestion of the sort as an unfair burden on the public and an attack on his own intelligence. He nitpicks what he doesn’t understand and distorts what he knows to be true. Dealing with the disgusting task of attacking anyone who isn’t a submissive tool of power, his irritation grows with each obstacle he faces, and each sacrifice he has to make of common sense and decency for the sake of his interests and arrogance. Every lie he tells makes him more addicted to hypocrisy, and each time he indulges his hired hatred makes him more likely to repeat the insult and harm. His understanding gets more warped every day, and his feelings become increasingly numb. After spending a lifetime in the service of corruption, he rambles on to the end with useless impotence and shameless boldness; he tries to maintain a meager reputation for wit by letting out the bits of his bitterness and rudeness at the expense of others; he refutes their arguments by contradicting himself; confuses his usual dullness of mind for unique sharpness, believing he can’t be fooled by superficial appearances; mistakes unprincipled bitterness for passionate loyalty; and the irritable, discontented, vindictive, cranky outbursts of physical pain and mental weakness for signs of refined taste and strong understanding.
Such, Sir, is the picture of which you have sat for the outline:—all that remains is to fill up the little, mean, crooked, dirty details. The task is to me no very pleasant one; for I can feel very little ambition to follow you through your ordinary routine of pettifogging objections and barefaced assertions, the only difficulty of making which is to throw aside all regard to truth and decency, and the only difficulty in answering them is to overcome one’s contempt for the writer. But you are a nuisance, and should be abated.
Such is the picture of which you’ve posed for the outline:—all that’s left is to fill in the small, petty, twisted, and dirty details. This task is not very enjoyable for me; I don’t have much desire to go through your usual routine of trivial complaints and shameless claims, which only require disregarding truth and decency to make, and the only challenge in responding to them is to push past my disdain for the author. But you are a nuisance and need to be dealt with.
I shall proceed to shew, first, your want of common honesty, in speaking of particular persons; and, secondly, your want of common capacity, in treating of any general question. It is this double negation of understanding and principle that makes you all that you are.—As 370an instance of the summary manner in which you dispose of any author who is not to your taste, you began your account of the first work of mine you thought proper to notice (the Round Table), with a paltry and deliberate falsehood. I need not be at much pains to shew that your opinion on the merits of a work is not of much value, after I have shewn that your word is not to be taken with respect to the author. The charges which you brought against me as the writer of that work, were chiefly these four:—1st, That I pretended to have written a work in the manner of the Spectator; I answer, this is a falsehood. The Advertisement to that work is written expressly to disclaim any such idea, and to apologise for the work’s having fallen short of the original intention of the projector (Mr. Leigh Hunt), from its execution having devolved almost entirely upon me, who had undertaken merely to furnish a set of essays and criticisms, which essays and criticisms were here collected together.—2. That I was not only a professed imitator of Addison, but a great coiner of new words and phrases: I answer, this is also a deliberate and contemptible falsehood. You have filled a paragraph with a catalogue of these new words and phrases, which you attribute to me, and single out as the particular characteristics of my style, not any one of which I have used. This you knew.—3. You say I write eternally about washerwomen. I answer, no such thing. There is indeed one paper in the Round Table on this subject, and I think a very agreeable one. I may say so, for it is not my writing.—4. You say that ‘I praise my own chivalrous eloquence’: and I answer, that’s a falsehood; and that you knew that I had not applied these words to myself, because you knew that it was not I who had used them. The last paragraph of the article in question is true: for as if to obviate the detection of this tissue of little, lying, loyal, catchpenny frauds, it contains a cunning, tacit acknowledgment of them; but says, with equal candour and modesty, that it is not the business of the writer to distinguish (in such trifling cases) between truth and falsehood. That may be; but I cannot think that for the editor of the Quarterly Review to want common veracity, is any disgrace to me. It is necessary, Sir, to go into the details of this fraudulent transaction, this Albemarle-street hoax, that the public may know, once for all, what to think of you and me. The first paragraph of the Review is couched in the following terms.
I will show, first, your lack of basic honesty when speaking about individuals, and second, your lack of basic understanding when discussing any general issue. It’s this double absence of comprehension and principle that defines who you are. As 370 an example of the hasty way you dismiss any author who doesn’t suit your taste, you started your review of the first work of mine you chose to discuss (the Round Table) with a pathetic and intentional lie. I don't need to put in much effort to prove that your opinion on a work's value is not significant once I’ve shown that your word cannot be trusted regarding the author. The accusations you made against me as the writer of that work were mainly four: 1st, that I claimed to have written a work in the style of the Spectator; my response is that this is a lie. The introduction to that work clearly states that there’s no such claim and apologizes for the work not meeting the original intention of the project creator (Mr. Leigh Hunt), since its execution fell almost entirely on me, who merely agreed to provide a set of essays and critiques, which were collected here. 2nd, that I was not only a blatant imitator of Addison but also a heavy creator of new words and phrases; I respond that this is also a deliberate and despicable lie. You filled a paragraph with a list of these supposedly new terms and phrases you attribute to me, claiming they are hallmarks of my style, yet I’ve never used a single one of them. You knew this. 3rd, you claim I constantly write about washerwomen; I counter that this is not true. There is indeed one piece in the Round Table on this topic, and I find it quite enjoyable. I can say this because it’s not my writing. 4th, you say that I "praise my own chivalrous eloquence"; I respond that this is a lie and that you knew I hadn’t used those words about myself because you were aware it wasn’t me who said them. The final paragraph of the article in question is accurate: as if to avoid the detection of this web of small, lying, loyal, money-making frauds, it contains a crafty, unspoken acknowledgment of them; but states, with equal frankness and humility, that it’s not the writer's job to differentiate (in such trivial cases) between truth and falsehood. That may be, but I cannot believe that the editor of the Quarterly Review lacking basic honesty reflects poorly on me. It is necessary, Sir, to delve into the details of this fraudulent exchange, this Albemarle-street trick, so the public will know, once and for all, what to think of you and me. The first paragraph of the Review is expressed in the following terms.
‘Whatever may have been the preponderating feelings with which we closed these volumes, we will not refuse our acknowledgments to Mr. Hazlitt for a few mirthful sensations,’ (that they were very few, I can easily believe,) ‘which he has enabled us to mingle with the rest, by the hint that his Essays were meant to be “in the manner of 371the Spectator and Tatler.” The passage in which this is conveyed, happened to be nearly the last to which we turned; and we were about to rise from the Round Table, heavily oppressed with a recollection of vulgar descriptions, silly paradoxes, flat truisms, misty sophistry, broken English, ill humour, and rancorous abuse, when we were first informed of the modest pretensions of our host. Our thoughts then reverted with an eager impulse to the urbanity of Addison, his unassuming tone, and clear simplicity; to the ease and softness of his style, to the chearful benevolence of his heart. The playful gaiety too, and the tender feelings of his coadjutor, poor Steele, came forcibly to our memory. The effect of the ludicrous contrast thus presented to us, it would be somewhat difficult to describe. We think that it was akin to what we have felt from the admirable nonchalance with which Liston, in the complex character of a weaver and an ass, seems to throw away all doubt of his being the most accomplished lover in the universe, and receives, as if they were merely his due, the caresses of the fairy queen.’—Quarterly Review, No. xxxiii. p. 154.
‘No matter what feelings we had when we finished these volumes, we won’t hesitate to thank Mr. Hazlitt for a few moments of laughter,’ (and I can believe they were very few) ‘which he allowed us to mix in with everything else by suggesting that his Essays were meant to be “in the manner of the Spectator and Tatler.” The part where this is mentioned happened to be almost the last one we looked at; and we were about to leave the Round Table, weighed down by memories of crude descriptions, silly paradoxes, boring truisms, unclear reasoning, poor language, bad humor, and bitter insults, when we first learned of our host's humble intentions. Our thoughts then eagerly returned to the politeness of Addison, his modest tone, and clear simplicity; to the ease and smoothness of his writing, and the cheerful kindness of his heart. The playful joy, too, and tender emotions of his partner, poor Steele, struck us vividly. The effect of this amusing contrast is somewhat difficult to explain. We think it was similar to what we feel when we see the wonderful nonchalance with which Liston, in the complex role of a weaver and an ass, seems to cast aside any doubt about being the most charming lover in the world, and accepts, as if they were simply his due, the affection of the fairy queen.’—Quarterly Review, No. xxxiii. p. 154.
The advertisement prefixed to the Round Table, in which the hint is conveyed which afforded you ‘a few mirthful sensations,’ stood thus.—
The ad at the beginning of the Round Table, which gave you 'a few funny feelings,' went like this.—
‘The following work falls somewhat short of its title and original intention. It was proposed by my friend Mr. Hunt, to publish a series of papers in the Examiner, in the manner of the early periodical essayists, the Spectator and Tatler. These papers were to be contributed by various persons on a variety of subjects; and Mr. Hunt, as the editor, was to take the characteristic or dramatic part of the work upon himself. I undertook to furnish occasional essays and criticisms; one or two other friends promised their assistance; but the essence of the work was to be miscellaneous. The next thing was to fix upon a title for it. After much doubtful consultation, that of The Round Table was agreed upon, as most descriptive of its nature and design. But our plan had been no sooner arranged and entered upon, than Buonaparte landed at Frejus, et voila la Table Ronde dissoute. Our little Congress was broken up as well as the great one. Politics called off the attention of the Editor from the belles lettres; and the task of continuing the work fell chiefly upon the person who was least able to give life and spirit to the original design. A want of variety in the subjects, and mode of treating them, is, perhaps, the least disadvantage resulting from this circumstance. All the papers in the two volumes here offered to the public, were written by myself and Mr. Hunt, except a letter communicated by a friend in the sixteenth number. Out of the fifty-two numbers, 372twelve are Mr. Hunt’s, with the signatures L. H. or H. T. For all the rest I am answerable. W. Hazlitt.’
‘The following work doesn’t completely match its title and original intention. My friend Mr. Hunt suggested publishing a series of articles in the Examiner, similar to the early periodical essayists, the Spectator and Tatler. These pieces were meant to be contributed by various people on different topics, with Mr. Hunt taking on the editorial and dramatic role. I agreed to write occasional essays and critiques; a couple of other friends offered their help, but the core of the work was intended to be miscellaneous. Next, we needed to come up with a title. After much uncertain discussion, we decided on The Round Table, as it best described the nature and aim of the work. However, as soon as our plan was set and underway, Buonaparte landed at Frejus, And there you have it, the Round Table is dissolved.. Our little Congress fell apart just like the bigger one. Politics shifted the Editor's focus away from literature, and the responsibility to keep the work going largely fell to the person least capable of bringing life and spirit to the original idea. A lack of variety in the topics and the way they were handled is perhaps the least unfortunate outcome of this situation. All the papers in the two volumes offered to the public were written by myself and Mr. Hunt, except for a letter contributed by a friend in the sixteenth issue. Out of the fifty-two issues, 372 twelve are Mr. Hunt’s, signed L. H. or H. T. I am responsible for all the rest. W. Hazlitt’
Such, Sir, is the passage to which you allude, with so much hysterical satisfaction, as having let you into the secret that I fancied myself to have produced a work ‘in the manner of the Spectator and Tatler’; and as having relieved you from the extreme uneasiness you had felt in reading through the ‘vulgar descriptions, silly paradoxes, flat truisms, misty sophistry, broken English, ill humour, and rancorous abuse,’ contained in the Round Table. If I had indeed given myself out for a second Steele or Addison, I should have made a very ludicrous mistake. As it is, it is you have made a wilful misstatement. Your oppression, Sir, in rising from the Round Table, must have been great to put you upon so desperate an expedient to divert your chagrin, as that of affecting to suppose that I had said just the contrary of what I did say, in order that you might affect ‘a few mirthful sensations’ at my expence. I cannot say that I envy you the little voluntary revulsion which your feelings underwent, at the ludicrous comparison which you fancy me to make between myself and Addison, on purpose to indulge the suggestions of your spleen and prejudice. These are among the last refinements, the menus plaisirs of hypocrisy, of which I must remain in ignorance. I will not require you to retract the assertion you have made, but I will take care before I have done, that any assertion you may make with respect to me shall not be taken as current. As to your praise of the Tatler and Spectator, I must at all times agree to it: but as far as it was meant as a tacit reproof to my vanity in comparing myself with these authors, it appears to have been unnecessary. You say elsewhere, speaking of some passage of mine—‘Addison never wrote anything so fine!’—and again that I fancy myself a finer writer than Addison. By your uneasy jealousy of the self-conceit of other people, it should seem that you are in the habit of drawing comparisons, ‘secret, sweet, and precious,’ between yourself and your ‘illustrious predecessors’ not much to their advantage. As you have here thought proper to tell me what I do not think, I will tell you what I do think, which is, that you could not have written the passage in question, On the Progress of Arts, because you never felt half the enthusiasm for what is fine.
So, Sir, here’s the part you’re referring to with such exaggerated delight, as if it reveals that I thought I’d created something in the style of the Spectator and Tatler. You seem relieved from the intense discomfort you felt reading through the “vulgar descriptions, silly paradoxes, flat truisms, hazy reasoning, broken English, bad humor, and spiteful criticism” found in the Round Table. If I had really claimed to be a second Steele or Addison, I would have made a ridiculous error. Instead, it’s you who have made a willful misstatement. Your distress, Sir, upon finishing the Round Table must have been severe to make you resort to such a desperate move to distract from your frustration, namely pretending that I said the opposite of what I actually said, just so you could create “a few amusing moments” at my expense. I can't say I envy you the little twist in feelings you experienced from the absurd comparison you believe I made between myself and Addison, meant just to cater to your bitterness and bias. These are among the last refinements, the pleasure menus of hypocrisy, which I must remain unaware of. I won’t ask you to take back your statement, but I will ensure that any claim you make about me won’t be taken at face value. As for your praise of the Tatler and Spectator, I’ll always agree with that, but if it was meant as a subtle dig at my vanity for comparing myself with those authors, it seems unnecessary. You’ve said elsewhere, regarding one of my passages, “Addison never wrote anything so great!” — and also that I think I’m a better writer than Addison. Given your restless jealousy towards other people’s self-confidence, it seems you often make “secret, sweet, and precious” comparisons between yourself and your “illustrious predecessors,” not much to their benefit. Since you’ve chosen to tell me what I don’t believe, I will now tell you what I do believe: that you couldn’t have written the passage in question, On the Progress of Arts, because you've never felt even half the enthusiasm for what is truly excellent.
2. After stating the pretensions of the work, you proceed to the style in which it is written.—‘There is one merit which this author possesses besides that of successful imitation—he is a very eminent creator of words and phrases. Amongst a vast variety which have newly started up we notice “firesider”—“kitcheny”—“to smooth up”—“to do off”—and “to tiptoe down.” To this we add a few 373of the author’s new-born phrases, which bear sufficient marks of a kindred origin to entitle them to a place by their side. Such is the assertion that Spenser “was dipt in poetic luxury”; the description of “a minute coil which clicks in the baking coal”—of “a numerousness scattering an individual gusto”—and of “curls that are ripe with sun shine.” Our readers are perhaps by this time as much acquainted with the style of this author as they have any desire to be,’ etc.
2. After outlining the claims of the work, you move on to the style in which it’s written.—‘There’s one notable quality this author has apart from just successful imitation—he’s a very talented creator of new words and phrases. Among a wide range that have recently emerged, we notice “firesider”—“kitcheny”—“to smooth up”—“to do off”—and “to tiptoe down.” To this, we add a few of the author’s newly coined phrases, which show enough resemblance to deserve a spot alongside their companions. For instance, the statement that Spenser “was dipped in poetic luxury”; the description of “a tiny coil that clicks in the baking coal”—of “a multitude scattering a unique taste”—and of “curls that are ripe with sunshine.” By now, our readers are probably as familiar with this author’s style as they wish to be,’ etc.
I have nothing to do at present with the merits of the words or phrases, which you here attribute to me, and make the test of my general style, as if your readers truly if they persisted would find only a constant repetition of them in my writings. I say that they are not mine at all; that they are not characteristic of my style, that you knew this perfectly, and also that there were reasons which prevented me from pointing out this petty piece of chicanery; and farther, I say that I am so far from being ‘a very eminent creator of words and phrases,’ that I do not believe you can refer to an instance in anything I have written in which there is a single new word or phrase. In fact, I am as tenacious on this score of never employing any new words to express my ideas, as you, Sir, are of never expressing any ideas that are not perfectly thread-bare and commonplace. My style is as old as your matter. This is the fault you at other times find with it, mistaking the common idiom of the language for ‘broken English.’
I have nothing to do with the value of the words or phrases you attribute to me, which you use to judge my overall style, as if your readers would truly find only a constant repetition of them in my writing if they kept looking. I say that they are not mine at all; they’re not typical of my style, and you knew that very well. There were also reasons that stopped me from pointing out this little trick. Furthermore, I claim that I'm far from being "a very eminent creator of words and phrases." I don't think you can find a single instance in anything I’ve written where I've used a completely new word or phrase. In fact, I’m as determined not to use any new words to express my ideas as you, Sir, are to avoid expressing any ideas that aren’t completely worn out and ordinary. My style is as old as your content. That’s the issue you sometimes have with it, mistaking the common idiom of the language for "broken English."
3. You say that ‘I write eternally about washerwomen’; and pray, if I did, what is that to you, Sir? There is a littleness in your objections which makes even the answers to them ridiculous, and which would make it impossible to notice them, were you not the Government-Critic. You say yourself indeed afterwards that ‘It is he’ (Mr. Hunt) ‘who devotes ten or twelve pages to a dissertation on washerwomen.’ Good: what you say on this subject is a fair specimen of your mind and manners. The playing at fast-and-loose with the matter-of-fact may be passed over as a matter of course in your hypercritical lucubrations. There is but one half paper on this interdicted subject in the Round Table:—you have filled one page out of five of the article in the Review with a ridicule of this paper on account of the vulgarity of the subject, which offends you exceedingly; you recur to it twice afterwards en passant, and end your performance (somewhat in the style of a quack-doctor aping his own merry-andrew) with ‘two or three conclusive digs in the side at it.’ There is something in the subject that makes a strong impression on your mind. You seem ‘to hate it with a perfect hatred.’[73] 374Now I would ask where is the harm of this dissertation on washerwomen inserted in the Round Table, any more than those of Dutch and Flemish kitchen-pieces, the glossy brilliancy and high finishing of which must have become familiar to your eye in the collections of Earl Grosvenor, Lord Mulgrave, and the Marquis of Stafford? What has Mr. Hunt done in this never-to-be forgiven paper to betray the lowness of his breeding or sentiments, or to shew that he who wrote it is ‘the droll or merry fellow of the piece,’ and that I who did not write it am ‘a sour Jacobin, who hate everything but washerwomen’? Would Addison or Steele, ‘poor Steele’ as you call him, have brought this as a capital charge against their ‘imitators’? Did they instinctively direct their speculations or limit their views of human life to ‘remarks on gentlemen and gentlewomen’? They often enough treated of low people and familiar life without any consciousness of degradation. ‘Their gorge did not rise’ at the humble worth or homely enjoyments of their fellow-creatures, like your’s. A coronet or a mitre were not the only things that caught their jaundiced eye, or soothed their rising gall. They who are always talking of high and low people are generally of a vulgar origin themselves, and of an inherent meanness of disposition which nothing can overcome. Besides, there is a want of good faith, as well as of good taste, in your affected fastidiousness on this point. ‘You assume a vice, though you have it not,’ or not to the degree, which your petulance and servility would have us suppose. A short time before you wrote this uncalled-for tirade against Mr. Hunt as an exclusive patroniser of that class of females, ycleped ‘washerwomen,’ he had quoted with praise in the Examiner, and as a mark of tender and humane feelings in the author, in spite of appearances to the contrary, the following epitaph from the Gentleman’s Magazine.
3. You claim that "I write endlessly about washerwomen"; and honestly, if I did, what’s it to you, Sir? There’s a pettiness in your criticisms that makes even responding to them absurd, and it would be pointless to acknowledge them if you weren’t the Government-Critic. You actually say later that "It is he" (Mr. Hunt) "who spends ten or twelve pages on a dissertation about washerwomen." Great, what you say on this topic is a perfect example of your mindset and manners. The way you manipulate facts can be overlooked as just part of your overly critical ramblings. There’s only one half-paper on this forbidden subject in the Round Table: you’ve filled one page out of five of the article in the Review with mockery of this paper because the subject offends you greatly; you bring it up twice afterward en passant, and finish your piece (somewhat like a quack-doctor prancing around) with “a couple of conclusive jabs at it.” There’s something about the topic that has clearly made a strong impact on you. You seem “to hate it with a perfect hatred.”[73] 374So I’d like to know what’s wrong with this dissertation on washerwomen being included in the Round Table, any more than those Dutch and Flemish kitchen pieces, the shiny brilliance and high quality of which you must have grown accustomed to in the collections of Earl Grosvenor, Lord Mulgrave, and the Marquis of Stafford? What has Mr. Hunt done in this unforgivable paper to reveal any low breeding or feelings, or to show that he who wrote it is "the jester or fun guy of the piece," and that I who did not write it am "a bitter Jacobin who hates everything but washerwomen"? Would Addison or Steele, "poor Steele" as you call him, have used this as a major accusation against their "imitators"? Did they instinctively focus their thoughts or narrow their views of human life to "remarks on gentlemen and gentlewomen"? They often discussed common people and everyday life without feeling degraded. "Their stomachs didn't churn" at the humble worth or simple joys of their fellow humans, unlike yours. A crown or a bishop's hat weren’t the only things that caught their critical eye or calmed their rising anger. Those who are always discussing the high and low are often of a common origin themselves, and possess an inherent meanness that nothing can change. Moreover, there’s a lack of both good faith and good taste in your pretended fastidiousness about this issue. "You affect a vice that you don't truly have," or not to the extent that your irritation and servility would have us believe. Not long before you wrote this unwarranted attack on Mr. Hunt as an exclusive supporter of a certain class of women, called "washerwomen," he had praised the following epitaph from the Gentleman’s Magazine in the Examiner, admiring it as a reflection of the author’s tender and humane feelings, despite what it might seem.
‘We are no friends, publicly speaking, to the author of the following epitaph. We differ much with his politics, and with the cast of his satire; and do not think him, properly speaking, a poet, as many do. But we always admired the spirit that looked forth from his account of his own life, and the touching copy of verses on a departed friend, that are to be found in the notes to one of his satires; and there are feelings and circumstances in this world, before which politics and 375satire, and poetry, are of little importance’—(How little knew’st thou of Calista!)—‘feelings, that triumph over infirmity and distaste of every sort, and only render us anxious, in our respect for them, to be thought capable of appreciating them ourselves. The world, with all its hubbub, slides away from before one on such occasions; and we only see humanity in all its better weakness, and let us add, in all its beauty.
‘We are not friends, to put it simply, with the author of the following epitaph. We strongly disagree with his politics and his style of satire, and we don’t consider him a true poet, as many do. However, we have always admired the spirit that comes through in his account of his own life and the heartfelt poem about a departed friend found in the notes to one of his satires. There are feelings and situations in this world that make politics, satire, and poetry seem insignificant—(How little knew’st thou of Calista!)—feelings that overcome any weakness or dislike we might have, making us eager to show that we can appreciate them ourselves. In such moments, the noise of the world fades away, and we can see humanity in all its better vulnerability, and let’s add, in all its beauty.
‘The author will think what he pleases of this effusion of ours. It is an interval in the battle, during which we only wish to show ourselves fellow-men with him. Afterwards, he may resume his hostilities, if he has any, and we will draw our swords as before.
‘The author can think whatever he wants about this outpouring of ours. This is just a break in the fight, where we want to show that we are all human together. After this, he can go back to being hostile, if he chooses, and we’ll pick up our swords again, just like before.
‘Mr. Urban,—I am one of those who love to contemplate the “frail memorials” of the dead, and do not, therefore, count the solitary hours, occasionally spent in a church-yard, among the most melancholy ones of my life. But in London, this is a gratification rarely to be found; for, either through caution, or some less worthy motive, the cemeteries are closed against the stranger. I have been in the practice of passing by the chapel in South Audley Street, Grosvenor Square, almost every day, for several weeks, yet never saw the door of the burying-ground open till yesterday. I did not neglect the opportunity thus offered, but walked in. I found it far more spacious and airy than I expected; but I met with nothing very novel or interesting till I came to a low tomb, plain but neat, where I was both pleased and surprised by the following inscription, which, I believe, has never yet appeared in print, and which seems not unworthy of your miscellany.
‘Mr. Urban,—I’m one of those people who enjoy reflecting on the “fragile memorials” of the dead, so I don’t consider the solitary hours I sometimes spend in a graveyard to be some of the saddest of my life. However, in London, this is a pleasure that’s hard to come by; either out of caution or some less admirable reason, the cemeteries are closed off to outsiders. For several weeks, I’ve been passing by the chapel on South Audley Street, Grosvenor Square almost daily, but I never saw the graveyard door open until yesterday. I didn’t miss the chance this time and walked in. I found it much more spacious and airy than I had expected; however, I didn’t encounter anything particularly new or interesting until I came across a low tomb, simple but tidy, where I was both pleased and surprised by the following inscription, which I believe hasn’t been published anywhere yet and seems worthy of your collection.
It seems then, you can extract the pathetic though not the humorous, out of persons who are not ‘gentlemen or gentlewomen.’ It was the amiable weakness thus noticed, that made you take such pains to do away the suspicion of a particular partiality for low people. You could not afford ‘the frail memorial’ of your private virtues to get beyond the inscription on a tomb-stone, or the poet’s corner of the Gentleman’s Magazine. The natural sympathies of the undoubted translator of Juvenal might be a prejudice to the official character of the anonymous editor of the Quarterly Review. You were determined to hear no more of this epitaph, and ‘other such dulcet diseases’[76] of yours.—You perhaps recollect, Sir, that the columns of the Examiner newspaper, which gave you such a premature or posthumous credit for some ‘compunctious visitings of nature,’ also contained the first specimen of the Story of Rimini. You seem to have said on that occasion with Iago, ‘You are well tuned now,—but I’ll set down the pegs that make this music, as honest as I am.’—That Mr. Hunt should have supposed it possible for a moment, that a government automaton was accessible to anything like a liberal concession, is one of those deplorable mistakes which constantly put men who are ‘made of penetrable stuff,’ at the mercy of those who are not. The amiable and elegant author of Rimini thought he was appealing to something human in your breast, in the recollection of your ‘Dear Ann Davies’; he touched the springs, and found them ‘stuffed with paltry blurred sheets’ of the Quarterly Review, with notes from Mr. Murray, and directions how to proceed with the 377author, from the Admiralty Scribe. You retorted his sympathy with ‘one whom earth could never pay,’ by laughing to scorn his honest laborious ‘tub-tumbling viragos,’ whose red elbows and coarse fists prevented so inelegant a contrast to the pining and sickly form whose loss you deplore. Is there anything in your nature and disposition that draws to it only the infirm in body and oppressed in mind; or that, while it clings to power for support, seeks consolation in the daily soothing spectacle of physical malady or morbid sensibility? The air you breathe seems to infect; and your friendship to be a canker-worm that blights its objects with unwholesome and premature decay. You are enamoured of suffering, and are at peace only with the dead.—Even if you had been accessible to remorse as a political critic, Mr. Hunt had committed himself with you (past forgiveness) in your character of a pretender to poetry about town. The following lines in his Feast of the Poets, must have occasioned you ‘a few mirthful sensations,’ which you have not yet acknowledged, except by deeds.—
It seems that you can pull the sad, though not the funny, from people who aren't 'gentlemen or gentlewomen.' It was this likable weakness that made you go to great lengths to dispel any suspicion of favoritism for lower-class individuals. You couldn't let 'the fragile memory' of your personal virtues go beyond the inscription on a tombstone or the poet’s corner of the Gentleman’s Magazine. The natural sympathies of the clear translator of Juvenal might prejudice the official role of the anonymous editor of the Quarterly Review. You were set on not hearing any more about this epitaph and 'other such sweet troubles' of yours.—You may recall, Sir, that the columns of the Examiner newspaper, which gave you premature or posthumous credit for some 'guilty pangs of conscience,' also included the first example of the Story of Rimini. You seemed to echo Iago's words, 'You are well tuned now,—but I’ll set down the pegs that make this music, as honest as I am.'—That Mr. Hunt could think for even a moment that a government machine was open to any kind of generous concession is one of those unfortunate mistakes that often leave people who are 'made of sensitive stuff' at the mercy of those who are not. The charming and refined author of Rimini believed he was appealing to something human in you, recalling your 'Dear Ann Davies'; he touched the right buttons but found them 'stuffed with cheap, blurred pages' of the Quarterly Review, along with notes from Mr. Murray and directions on how to deal with the 377author, from the Admiralty Scribe. You responded to his sympathy for 'one whom earth could never repay' by mocking his hardworking 'tub-tumbling viragos,' whose red elbows and rough hands created such an ugly contrast to the frail and sickly figure whose loss you lament. Is there something in your character and makeup that only attracts the weak in body and oppressed in mind? Or does it cling to power for support while seeking comfort in the daily soothing image of physical illness or emotional distress? The air you breathe seems to be contagious, and your friendship acts as a kind of parasite that damages its recipients with unhealthy and premature decline. You are in love with suffering, and you find peace only with the dead.—Even if you were capable of feeling guilt as a political critic, Mr. Hunt had already made a serious mistake with you (beyond forgiveness) in your role as a supposed poet in town. The following lines in his Feast of the Poets must have given you 'a few humorous sensations,' which you have yet to acknowledge, except through your actions.—
378Thus painters write their names at Co. For this passage and the temperate and judicious note which accompanies it, it is no wonder that you put the author—of Rimini, in Newgate, without the Sheriff’s warrant. In order to give as favourable an impression of that poem as you could, you began your account of it by saying that it had been composed in Newgate, though you knew that it had not; but you also knew that the name of Newgate would sound more grateful to certain ears, to pour flattering poison into which is the height of your abject ambition. In this courtly inuendo which ushered in your wretched verbal criticism (it is the more disgusting to see such gross and impudent prevarication combined with such petty captiousness) you were guided not by a regard to truth, but to your own ends; and yet you say somewhere, very oracularly, out of contradiction to me, that ‘not to prefer the true to the agreeable, where they are inconsistent, is folly.’ You have mistaken the word: it is not folly, but knavery.[78]
378This is why painters sign their names at Co. Given this passage and the measured, thoughtful note that goes with it, it's no surprise you placed the author—from Rimini—in Newgate without the Sheriff's permission. To make that poem seem better than it is, you started your review by claiming it was written in Newgate, even though you knew it wasn’t; but you also knew that mentioning Newgate would sound nicer to certain people, which is the peak of your pathetic ambition to flatter them. In this snobby suggestion that preceded your pathetic criticism (it's even more repulsive to see such blatant and shameless dishonesty mixed with such petty nitpicking), you were driven not by a sense of truth, but by your own interests; and yet you claim somewhere, rather pompously, in contradiction to me, that ‘to prefer the true to the agreeable, when they conflict, is foolishness.’ You’ve misunderstood the term: it’s not foolishness, it’s deceit.[78]
4. You say you have no objection to my ‘praising my own chivalrous eloquence’; and I say that the insinuation is impertinent and untrue. The paper in which that phrase occurs is written by Mr. Hunt, as you know, and is an answer to some observations of mine on the poetical temperament in a preceding number On the Causes of Methodism. Mr. Hunt’s having taken upon him ‘to praise my chivalrous eloquence,’ without consulting you, appeared no doubt a great piece of presumption; and you punished me by magnifying this indiscretion into the enormity of my having praised myself. I might as well say that Mr. Canning had made a fulsome eulogy on his own private virtues and public principles in your dedication of the edition of Ben Jonson to him.—You say indeed in the last paragraph of your criticism that ‘you understand some of the papers to be by Mr. Hunt; that it is he who is the droll or merry fellow of the piece; who has shocked you by writing eternally about washerwomen, etc. but that you cannot stay to distinguish between us, and that we must divide our respective share of merit between ourselves.’ The share of merit in that work may indeed be so small that it is of little consequence who has the reversion of any part of it, but I will take care that a cat’s-paw shall not be put on the pannel of my quantum meruit, nor take measure of my capacity with a mechanic 379rule, marked by ignorance and servility, nor turn the scale of public opinion by throwing in false weights as he pleases, nor make both of us ridiculous, by attributing to each the peculiarities of the other, with whatever exaggerated interpretation he chuses to put upon them. By this transposition of persons, which is not a matter of indifference as you pretend, you gain this advantage which you have no right to gain. You can at any time apply to me or Mr. Hunt the obnoxious points in your account of either, and improve upon them, as it suits your purpose. By combining the extremes of individual character, you make a very strange and wilful compound of your own. It is the same person, and yet it is not one person but two persons, according to the critical creed you would establish, who is a merry fellow, and a sour Jacobin; who is all gaiety and all gloom; a person who rails at poets, and yet is himself a poet; a hater of cats, and of cat’s-paws;[79] a reviler of Mr. Pitt, and a panegyrist upon washerwomen. If, Sir, your friend, Mr. Hoppner, of whom, as you tell us[80] you discreetly said nothing, while he was struggling with obscurity, lest it should be imputed to the partiality of friendship, but whom you praised and dedicated to, as soon as he became popular, to shew your disinterestedness and deference to public opinion, if even this artist, whom you celebrate as a painter of flattering likenesses, had undertaken to unite in one piece the most striking features and characteristic expression of his and your common friends, had improved your lurking archness of look into Mr. Murray’s gentle, downcast obliquity of vision; had joined Mr. Canning’s drooping nose to Mr. Croker’s aspiring chin, the clear complexion (the splendida bilis) of the one, to the candid self-complacent aspect of the other; had forced into the same preposterous medley, the invincible hauteur and satanic pride of Mr. Pitt’s physiognomy, with the dormant meaning and admirable nonchalance of Lord Castlereagh’s features, the manly sleekness of Charles Long, and the monumental outline of John Kemble—what mortal would have owned the likeness!—I too, Sir, must claim the privilege of the principium individuationis, for myself as well as my neighbours; I will sit for no man’s picture but my own, and not to you for that; I am not desirous to play so many parts as Bottom, and as to his 380ass’s head which you would put upon my shoulders, it will do for you to wear the next time you shew yourself in Mr. Murray’s shop, or for your friend Mr. Southey to take with him, whenever he appears at Court.
4. You say you have no problem with my ‘praising my own chivalrous eloquence’; but I think that suggestion is rude and untrue. The piece where that phrase appears was written by Mr. Hunt, as you know, and it responds to some comments I made about the poetic temperament in a previous issue On the Causes of Methodism. Mr. Hunt presuming to ‘praise my chivalrous eloquence’ without your approval must have seemed a significant overstep; and you punished me by exaggerating this mistake into a claim that I praised myself. I could just as easily argue that Mr. Canning made an over-the-top tribute to his own personal virtues and public principles in your dedication of the edition of Ben Jonson to him.—You do say in the last paragraph of your criticism that ‘you understand some of the papers to be by Mr. Hunt; that he is the funny or merry character of the piece; who has shocked you by endlessly writing about washerwomen, etc. but that you can’t take the time to tell us apart, and that we must share whatever credit there is between us.’ The amount of credit in that work might be so minimal that it hardly matters who gets any part of it, but I will ensure that no one else will take advantage of my fair value of services, nor measure my abilities with a basic ruler defined by ignorance and servitude, nor tip the scales of public opinion by adding false weights whenever he likes, nor make both of us look foolish by attributing the distinct traits of one to the other, with whatever overblown interpretation he chooses to put on them. By mixing us up like this, which is not trivial as you suggest, you gain an advantage you have no right to. At any point, you can assign the undesirable aspects from your description of either of us and play off those issues as it fits your agenda. By combining the extremes of individual character, you create a bizarre and willful blend of your own. It’s the same person, yet it’s not one person but two, based on the critical standard you want to set, who is a merry fellow and a sour Jacobin; who is all joy and all despair; a person who criticizes poets, yet is a poet himself; someone who despises cats and cat’s-paws; a person who denounces Mr. Pitt and praises washerwomen. If, Sir, your friend, Mr. Hoppner, about whom, as you mention[80], you wisely said nothing while he was struggling in obscurity to avoid the appearance of favoritism, but whom you praised and dedicated to once he became popular to demonstrate your impartiality and respect for public opinion—if even this artist, whom you describe as a painter of flattering likenesses, had tried to unite in one piece the most striking features and typical expressions of his and your mutual friends, improving your hidden mischief into Mr. Murray’s gentle, downcast gaze; joining Mr. Canning’s drooping nose to Mr. Croker’s ambitious chin, the clear complexion (the splendid bile) of one to the honestly self-satisfied look of the other; forcing the invincible arrogance and devilish pride of Mr. Pitt’s face together with the restrained meaning and admirable calm of Lord Castlereagh’s features, along with the manly smoothness of Charles Long and the monumental outline of John Kemble—what mortal would recognize the likeness? I, too, Sir, must claim the right to my own identity as well as that of my neighbors; I won’t sit for anyone’s portrait but my own, and certainly not for yours; I don’t wish to play as many roles as Bottom, and as for the ass’s head you would place on my shoulders, it can be worn by you the next time you show yourself in Mr. Murray’s shop, or be taken by your friend Mr. Southey whenever he appears at Court.
As to the difference of political sentiment between the writer of the Round Table and the writer of the article in the Review, which forms the heavy burthen of your flippant censure, I cannot consider that as an accusation. You have many other objections to make: such as that, because Mr. Addison wrote some very pleasing papers on the Pleasures of the Imagination, I am not willing to fall short of ‘my illustrious predecessor’; and ‘accordingly,’ you say, ‘we hear much of poetry and of painting, and of music and of gusto.’ Is this the only reason you can conceive why any one should take an interest in such things; or did you write your Baviad and Mæviad that you might not fall short of Pope, your translation of Juvenal that you might surpass Dryden, or did you turn commentator on the poets, that you might be on a par with ‘your illustrious predecessors’—‘from slashing Bentley down to piddling Theobalds’? Of Hogarth you make me say, quoting from your favourite treatise on washerwomen, that ‘he is too apt to perk morals and sentiments in your face.’ You cannot comprehend my definition of gusto, which you do not ascribe to any defect in yourself. My account of Titian and Vandyke’s colouring, appears to you very odd, because it is like the things described, and you have no idea of the things described. If I had described the style of these two painters in terms applicable to them both, and to all other painters, you would have thought the precision of the style equal to the justness of the sentiment. A distinction without a difference satisfies you, for you can understand or repeat a common-place. It is the pointing out the real differences of things that offends you, for you have no idea of what is meant; and a writer who gets at all below the surface of a question, necessarily gets beyond your depth, and you can hardly contain your wonder at his presumption and shallowness. You quote half a dozen detached sentences of mine, as ‘convincing instances of affectation and paradox,’ (such as, The definition of a true patriot is a good hater—He who speaks two languages has no country, etc.) and which taken from the context to which they belong, and of which they are brought as extreme illustrations, may be so, but which you cannot answer in the connection in which they stand, and which you detach from the general speculation with which you dare not cope, to bring them more into the focus of your microscopic vision, and that you may deal with them more at ease and in safety on your old ground of literal and verbal quibbling.
Regarding the difference in political views between the writer of the Round Table and the author of the article in the Review, which you criticize so casually, I don’t see that as an accusation. You have plenty of other complaints: like the idea that because Mr. Addison wrote some delightful pieces about the Pleasures of the Imagination, I don’t want to fall short of ‘my illustrious predecessor’; and you claim that ‘as a result,’ we hear a lot about poetry, painting, music, and enthusiasm. Is that really the only reason you can think of for someone to show interest in these subjects? Or did you write your Baviad and Mæviad just so you wouldn’t be overshadowed by Pope, your translation of Juvenal to outdo Dryden, or did you take on the role of commentator on the poets to be on par with ‘your illustrious predecessors’—‘from slashing Bentley to piddling Theobalds’? You make me say, quoting from your favorite piece on washerwomen, that ‘Hogarth is too likely to push morals and opinions in your face.’ You can’t grasp my definition of enthusiasm, which you don’t attribute to any flaw in yourself. My description of Titian and Vandyke’s coloring seems strange to you because it relates to the actual subjects, and you have no knowledge of what’s being described. If I had explained the styles of these two artists using terms that applied to them and all other painters, you would have thought the clarity of my description matched the accuracy of the idea. You’re satisfied with a distinction that doesn’t really differentiate because you can understand or repeat a cliché. It’s pointing out the true differences that bothers you since you have no clue what’s being discussed; and a writer who goes deeper than the surface of a question inevitably exceeds your understanding, leaving you astonished at his supposed arrogance and superficiality. You cite a few isolated statements of mine as ‘clear examples of affectation and paradox’ (like, The definition of a true patriot is a good hater—He who speaks two languages has no country, etc.), which, taken out of context, could seem that way, but you can’t respond to them in the context in which they belong. You pull them away from the broader discussion you’re afraid to engage with so you can examine them under your microscope, allowing you to handle them more comfortably and safely on your familiar turf of literal and verbal arguments.
381You do not like the subjects of my Essays in general. You complain in particular of ‘my eager vituperation of good nature and good-natured people’; and yet with this you have, as I should take it, nought to do: you object to my sweeping abuse of poets, as (with the exception of Milton) dishonest men,[81] with which you have as little to do; you are no poet, and of course, honest! You do not like my abuse of the Scotch at which the Irish were delighted, nor my abuse of the Irish at which the Scotch were not displeased, nor my abuse of the English, which I can understand; but I wonder you should not like my abuse of the French. You say indeed that ‘no abuse which is directed against whole classes of men is of much importance,’ and yet you and your Anti-Jacobin friends have been living upon this sort of abuse for the last twenty years. You add with characteristic ‘no meaning’—‘If undeserved, it is utterly impotent and may be well utterly despised.’ The last part of the proposition may be true, but abuse is not without effect, because undeserved, nor is a thing utterly impotent because it is thoroughly despicable. You, Sir, have power which is considerable, in proportion as it is despicable!
381You generally aren't a fan of the topics I cover in my Essays. You specifically complain about "my eager criticism of good nature and good-natured people"; yet, it seems to me, you have nothing to do with it. You dislike my harsh words for poets, who I see as dishonest men—except for Milton, of course—which also doesn’t involve you; you aren’t a poet, and obviously, you're honest! You don’t like my critiques of the Scots, which the Irish enjoyed, nor my criticisms of the Irish, which the Scots weren’t bothered by, nor my criticism of the English, which I can understand. But I’m surprised you don’t mind my criticism of the French. You say that “no insults directed at whole groups of people really matter,” yet you and your Anti-Jacobin friends have thrived on this kind of criticism for the last twenty years. You add, in your usual meaningless way, “If undeserved, it is completely powerless and can be safely ignored.” The latter part might be true, but insults aren’t without impact just because they’re undeserved, nor is something completely powerless just because it’s fully contemptible. You, Sir, have considerable power, in direct proportion to how contemptible it is!
I confess, Sir, the Round Table did not take; ‘it was Caveare to the multitude,’ but the reason, I think, was not that the abuse in it was undeserved, but that I have there spoken the truth of too many persons and things. In writing it, I preferred the true to the agreeable, which I find to be an unpardonable fault. Yet I am not aware of any sentiment in the work which ought to give offence to an honest and inquiring mind, for I think there is none that does not evidently proceed from a conviction of its truth and a bias to what is right. My object in writing it was to set down such observations as had occurred to me from time to time on different subjects, and as appeared to be any ways worth preserving. I wished to make a sort of Liber Veritatis, a set of studies from human life. As my object was not to flatter, neither was it to offend or contradict others, but to state my own feelings or opinions such as they really were, but more particularly of course when this had not been done before, and where I thought I could throw any new light upon a subject. In doing so, I endeavoured to fix my attention only on the thing I was writing about, and which had struck me in some particular manner, which I wished to point out to others, with the best reasons or explanations I could give. I was not the slave of prejudices; nor do I think I was the dupe of my own vanity. To repeat what has been said a thousand times is 382common-place: to contradict it because it has been so said, is not originality. A truth is, however, not the worse but the better for being new. I did not try to think with the multitude nor to differ with them, but to think for myself; and the having done this with some boldness and some effect is the height of my offending. I wrote to the public with the same sincerity and want of disguise as if I had been making a register of my private thoughts; and this has been construed by some into a breach of decorum. The affectation I have been accused of was merely my sometimes stating a thing in an extreme point of view for fear of not being understood; and my love of paradox may, I think, be accounted for from the necessity of counteracting the obstinacy of prejudice. If I have been led to carry a remark too far, it was because others would not allow it to have any force at all. My object was to shew the latent operation of some unsuspected principle, and I therefore took only some one view of that particular subject. I was chiefly anxious that the germ of thought should be true and original; that I should put others in possession of what I meant, and then left it to find its level in the operation of common sense, and to have its excesses corrected by other causes. The principle will be found true, even where the application is extravagant or partial. I have not been wedded to my particular speculations with the spirit of a partisan. I wrote for instance an Essay on Pedantry, to qualify the extreme contempt into which it has fallen, and to shew the necessary advantages of an absorption of the whole mind in some favourite study, and I wrote an Essay on the Ignorance of the Learned to lessen the undue admiration of Learning, and to shew that it is not everything. I gained very few converts to either of these opinions. You reproach me with the cynical turn of many of my Essays, which are in fact prose-satires; but when you say I hate every thing but washerwomen, you forget what you had before said that I was a great imitator of Addison, and wrote much about ‘poetry and painting, and music and gusto.’ You make no mention of my character of Rousseau, or of the paper on Actors and Acting. You also forget my praise of John Buncle! As to my style, I thought little about it. I only used the word which seemed to me to signify the idea I wanted to convey, and I did not rest till I had got it. In seeking for truth, I sometimes found beauty. As to the facility of which you, Sir, and others accuse me, it has not been acquired at once nor without pains. I was eight years in writing eight pages, under circumstances of inconceivable and ridiculous discouragement. As to my figurative and gaudy phraseology, you reproach me with it because you never heard of what I had written in my first dry 383manner. I afterwards found a popular mode of writing necessary to convey subtle and difficult trains of reasoning, and something more than your meagre vapid style, to force attention to original observations, which did not restrict themselves to making a parade of the discovery of a worm-eaten date, or the repetition of an obsolete prejudice. You say that it is impossible to remember what I write after reading it:—One remembers to have read what you write—before! In that you have the advantage of me, to be sure. You in vain endeavour to account for the popularity of some of my writings, from the trick of arranging words in a variety of forms without any correspondent ideas, like the newly-invented optical toy. You have not hit upon the secret, nor will you be able to avail yourself of it when I tell you. It is the old story—that I think what I please, and say what I think. This accounts, Sir, for the difference between you and me in so many respects. I think only of the argument I am defending; you are only thinking whether you write grammar. My opinions are founded on reasons which I try to give; yours are governed by motives which you keep to yourself. It has been my business all my life to get at the truth as well as I could, merely to satisfy my own mind: it has been yours to suppress the evidence of your senses and the dictates of your understanding, if you ever found them at variance with your convenience or the caprices of others. I do not suppose you ever in your life took an interest in any abstract question for its own sake, or have a conception of the possibility of any one else doing so. If you had, you would hardly insist on my changing characters with you. Yet you make this the condition of my receiving any favour or lenity at your hands. It is no matter, Sir: I will try to do without it.
I admit, Sir, the Round Table didn't take off; it was too "caveat emptor" for the masses. I believe the issue wasn't that the criticism was unwarranted, but that I spoke the truth about too many people and things. When I wrote it, I chose honesty over niceness, which I know is often seen as an unforgivable mistake. Still, I don't think there's anything in the work that should offend a genuine and curious mind. I believe everything comes from a strong conviction in its truth and a desire for what is right. My aim in writing it was to record the observations I gathered over time on various topics, which I thought were worth saving. I wanted to create a kind of "Liber Veritatis," a collection of studies from human life. I wasn't trying to flatter anyone, nor did I want to offend or contradict others; I just wanted to express my own feelings or views as they truly were, especially where I thought I could shed new light on a topic. While doing that, I focused solely on the specific subject that caught my attention and that I wanted to highlight for others, offering the best explanations I could. I wasn't bound by prejudices, nor do I think I was tricked by my own ego. Restating what has been said countless times is boring; contradicting it just because it's been said isn't original. A truth doesn't become less true because it's new. I didn't aim to think like everyone else or intentionally oppose them, but rather to think for myself; and doing that with some boldness and impact seems to be my biggest offense. I wrote to the public with the same honesty and transparency as if I were writing down my personal thoughts, and some have interpreted that as a breach of decorum. The pretentiousness I've been accused of mainly stems from occasionally framing my points too harshly to be understood; my love of paradox, I think, arises from needing to counteract stubborn prejudice. If I pushed a statement too far, it was because others wouldn't acknowledge its significance. My goal was to reveal deeper insights of some hidden principles, and thus I only focused on one perspective of that particular issue. I primarily cared that the foundation of my thoughts was true and original, that I communicated my ideas clearly, and then I let that idea find its own place through common sense, allowing its extremes to be balanced by other factors. The principle will hold true even if the application is excessive or selective. I haven't clung to my specific ideas like a zealot. For example, I wrote an Essay on Pedantry to show the valuable benefits of immersing oneself completely in a favorite study, and I wrote an Essay on the Ignorance of the Learned to dial down the overwhelming admiration for Learning and to show that it's not everything. I didn't win many supporters for either of those views. You criticize the cynical tone in many of my Essays, which are actually prose satires; but when you claim I hate everything except for washerwomen, you overlook what you've previously said about my being a great imitator of Addison, often writing about "poetry and painting, and music and gusto." You don't mention my take on Rousseau or the article on Actors and Acting. You also forget my praise for John Buncle! As for my style, I hardly thought about it. I just picked the words that seemed to express the idea I wanted to convey, and I wouldn't stop until I found them. In my quest for truth, I occasionally stumbled upon beauty. Regarding the ease with which you and others accuse me of writing, that wasn't gained overnight nor without effort. I spent eight years writing eight pages, amidst unbelievable and ridiculous challenges. As for my colorful and elaborate style, you criticize me for it because you've never seen my early dry writing. I later found that a more engaging style was necessary to convey complex and difficult ideas, something beyond your bland, uninspired approach, to draw attention to original observations that didn’t merely parade tired discoveries or outdated prejudices. You say it's impossible to remember what I write after reading it: you certainly remember having read your work—before! In that, you've got the upper hand, for sure. You futilely try to explain the popularity of some of my writings by saying it's just about arranging words in various forms without any real ideas, like a new optical illusion toy. You haven’t figured out the secret, nor will you be able to benefit from it even when I reveal it. It’s the same old story—that I think what I want, and I say what I think. That, Sir, explains the differences between us in so many ways. I only focus on the argument I’m defending; you only think about whether your grammar is correct. My opinions are based on reasons I try to express; yours are governed by motives you keep to yourself. It’s been my mission throughout my life to seek truth as best as I can, purely to satisfy my own mind; yours seems to be to ignore evidence from your senses and the judgments of your understanding whenever they conflict with your comfort or the whims of others. I don’t believe you've ever taken an interest in any abstract issue for its own sake, nor can you imagine anyone else doing so. If you had, you wouldn’t insist I swap roles with you. Yet, you make that a condition for me to receive any favor or leniency from you. It doesn’t matter, Sir: I’ll manage without it.
It appears by your own account, that all the other offences of the Round Table would hardly have roused your resentment, had it not been that I have spoken of Mr. Pitt and Mr. Burke, not in the hackneyed terms of a treasury underling. It was this that filled up the measure of my iniquity, and the storm burst on my devoted head. After quoting one or two half sentences from the character of Mr. Pitt,[82] in which I ascribe the influence of his oratory almost entirely to a felicitous and imposing arrangement of words, and the whole of a short note on Mr. Burke’s political apostacy, which I had fancifully ascribed to his jealousy of Rousseau, you add with great sincerity:—‘We are far from intending to write a single word in answer to this 384loathsome trash’—(it would have been well if you had made and kept the same resolution in other cases,) ‘but we confess that these passages chiefly excited us to take the trouble of noticing the work. The author might have described washerwomen for ever; complimented himself unceasingly on his own “chivalrous eloquence”; prosed interminably about Chaucer; written, if possible, in a more affected, silly, confused, ungrammatical style, and believed, as he now believes, that he was surpassing Addison, we should not have meddled with him; but if the creature, in his endeavours to crawl into the light, must take his way over the tombs of illustrious men, disfiguring the records of their greatness with the slime and filth which marks his track, it is right to point him out that he may be flung back to the situation in which nature designed that he should grovel’ p. 159. And this, Sir, from you who wrote or procured to be inserted in the Quarterly Review, that nefarious attack on the character of Mr. Fox, which was distinguished and is still remembered among the slime and filth which has marked its track into day, over the characters and feelings of the living and the dead. If I, Sir, had written that ‘foul and vulgar invective’ against an individual whom you did not choose to let ‘rest in his grave,’ if I had been ‘such a thing’ as the writer of that article, I might, (as you say,) have described washerwomen for ever, and have fancied myself a better writer than ‘the courtly Addison,’ and you, Sir, would have encouraged me in the delusion, for I should have been a court-tool, your tool. But you state the thing clearly and unanswerably. I was not a court-tool, your tool, and therefore I was to be made your victim. There is a difference of political opinion between you and me; therefore you undertake not only to condemn that opinion, but to proscribe the writer. Do you do this on your own authority, or on Mr. Croker’s, or on whose? As I did not consider it as sacrilege to criticise the style and the opinions of the two great men who have contributed to make this country what it is, a fief held by a junto, of which men like you are the organs, in trust and for the benefit of the common cause of despotism throughout Europe, I, and every other writer like me, professing or maintaining anything like independence of spirit or consistency of opinion, is ‘to be flung back into his original obscurity, and stifled in the filth and slime’ of the Quarterly Review, or its drain, Blackwood’s Edinburgh Magazine. You began the experiment upon the Round Table; you have tried it twice since, and for the last time.
It seems from what you say that none of the other issues with the Round Table would have upset you if I hadn’t mentioned Mr. Pitt and Mr. Burke in a way that doesn’t mirror the usual phrases of a treasury underling. That was the last straw, and the storm broke over me. After quoting a couple of half-sentences about Mr. Pitt,[82] where I attribute the power of his speeches mainly to a clever arrangement of words, and a brief note on Mr. Burke’s political betrayal, which I fancifully blamed on his jealousy of Rousseau, you sincerely add:—‘We don’t intend to respond to this 384 disgusting nonsense’—(it would have been better if you had made and stuck to the same decision in other instances), ‘but we admit that these excerpts motivated us to bother with the work. The author could have endlessly described washerwomen; praised his own “chivalrous eloquence” over and over; rambled on endlessly about Chaucer; written, if possible, in an even more pretentious, absurd, confused, ungrammatical style, and believed, as he does now, that he was better than Addison; we still wouldn’t have engaged with him. But if this individual, in his attempts to step into the spotlight, insists on trampling over the graves of great men, marring their legacies with the muck and filth he leaves behind, it’s only right to call him out so he can be tossed back to the spot where nature intended him to wallow’ p. 159. And this comes from you, who either wrote or allowed that vile attack on Mr. Fox’s character to be published in the Quarterly Review, an attack that stands out and is still remembered amidst the muck and filth that has characterized its passage, affecting both the living and the dead. If I, Sir, had penned that ‘foul and vulgar insult’ aimed at someone you didn’t want to let ‘rest in his grave,’ if I had been ‘such a thing’ as the writer of that piece, I might, as you say, have spent forever describing washerwomen, believed I was a better writer than ‘the courtly Addison,’ and you, Sir, would have encouraged me in that delusion because I would have been a court tool, your tool. But you put it plainly and irrefutably. I was not a court tool, your tool, and because of that, I was to be made your scapegoat. There’s a difference in political views between us, so you’re not just condemning that viewpoint but also trying to silence the writer. Are you doing this on your own authority, or on Mr. Croker’s, or someone else’s? Since I didn’t see it as sacrilege to critique the style and ideas of the two great men who helped shape this country into what it is, a fief held by a group of which people like you are the mouthpieces, in trust for the benefit of the shared cause of despotism across Europe, I, along with every other writer like me who values independence of spirit or consistency in opinion, am ‘to be tossed back into obscurity and smothered in the muck and filth’ of the Quarterly Review, or its equivalent, Blackwood’s Edinburgh Magazine. You initiated the experiment with the Round Table; you’ve tried it twice since, and this will be the last time.
If any doubts could ever have been entertained on the subject of your motives and views, you have taken care to remove them. Thus you conclude your account of the characters of Shakespear’s plays 385with saying, that you should not have condescended to notice the senseless and wicked sophistry of the work at all, but that ‘you conceived it might not be unprofitable to shew how small a portion of talent and literature is necessary to carry on the trade of sedition.’ I should think it requires as much talent and literature to carry on my trade as yours. This acknowledgment of yours is ‘remarkable for its truth and naiveté.’ It is a pledge from your own mouth of your impartiality and candour. With this object in view, ‘you have selected a few specimens of my ethics and criticism,’ (they are very few, and of course you would select no others,) just sufficient, (with your garbling and additions,) to prove ‘that my knowledge of Shakespear and the English language is exactly on a par with the purity of my morals, and the depth of my understanding.’ But did it not occur to you in making this officious declaration, or would it not occur to any one else in reading it, that this undertaking of yours might be no less ‘profitable’ and acceptable, even supposing the portion of talent displayed by the author not to be small but great? Would it not be more necessary in this case to do away the scandal that there was any talent or literature on the side of ‘sedition’? The greater the shock given to the complacency of servility and corruption, by an opinion getting abroad that there was any knowledge of Shakespear or the English language except on the minister’s side of the question, would it not be the more absolutely incumbent on you as the head of the literary police, to arrest such an opinion in the outset, to crush it before it gathered strength, and to produce the article in question as your warrant? Why, what a disgrace to literature and to loyalty, if owing to the neglect and supineness of the editor of the Quarterly Review, a work written without an atom of cant or hypocrisy, and of course with a very small portion of talent and literature, should, in the space of three months get into a second edition, and be fast advancing to a third, be noticed in the Edinburgh Review, and be talked of by persons who never looked into the Examiner; and how necessary without loss of time, to counteract the mischievous inference from all this, restore the taste of the public to its legitimate tone, and satisfy the courteous reader, who ‘was well affected to the constitution in church and state as now established,’ that in future he must look for a knowledge of Shakespear only in the editor of Ben Jonson, of the English language in the private tutor of Lord Grosvenor, for purity of morals in the translator of Juvenal, and for depth of understanding in the notes to the Baviad and Mæviad! Your employers, Mr. Gifford, do not pay their hirelings for nothing—for condescending to notice weak and wicked sophistry; for pointing out to contempt what excites no admiration; for cautiously 386selecting a few specimens of bad taste and bad grammar, where nothing else is to be found. They want your invincible pertness, your mercenary malice, your impenetrable dulness, your barefaced impudence, your pragmatical self-sufficiency, your hypocritical zeal, your pious frauds to stand in the gap of their prejudices and pretensions, to fly-blow and taint public opinion, to defeat independent efforts, to apply not the sting of the scorpion but the touch of the torpedo to youthful hopes, to crawl and leave the slimy track of sophistry and lies over every work that does not ‘dedicate its sweet leaves’ to some luminary of the Treasury Bench, or is not fostered in the hot-bed of corruption. This is your office; ‘this is what is looked for at your hands, and this you do not baulk’—to sacrifice what little honesty, and prostitute what little intellect you possess to any dirty job you are commissioned to execute. ‘They keep you as an ape does an apple, in the corner of his jaw, first mouthed to be last swallowed.’ You are, by appointment, literary toad-eater to greatness, and taster to the court. You have a natural aversion to whatever differs from your own pretensions, and an acquired one for what gives offence to your superiors. Your vanity panders to your interest, and your malice truckles only to your love of power. If your instinctive or premeditated abuse of your enviable trust were found wanting in a single instance; if you were to make a single slip in getting up your select Committee of Inquiry and Green Bag Report of the State of Letters, your occupation would be gone. You would never after obtain a squeeze of the hand from a great man, or a smile from a punk of quality. The great and powerful (whom you call the wise and good) do not like to have the privacy of their self-love startled by the obtrusive and unmanageable claims of literature and philosophy, except through the intervention of persons like you, whom, if they have common penetration, they soon find out to be without any superiority of intellect; or, if they do not, whom they can despise for their meanness of soul. You ‘have the office opposite to St. Peter.’ You ‘keep a corner in the public mind, for foul prejudice and corrupt power to knot and gender in’; you volunteer your services to people of quality to ease scruples of mind and qualms of conscience; you ‘lay the flattering unction’ of venal prose and laurelled verse to their souls. You persuade them that there is neither purity of morals, nor depth of understanding, except in themselves and their hangers-on; and would prevent the unhallowed names of liberty and humanity from being ever whispered in ears polite! You, Sir, do you not do all this? I cry you mercy then: I took you for the Editor of the Quarterly Review!
If there were ever any doubts about your motives and views, you've made sure to clear them up. In your final thoughts on the characters in Shakespeare’s plays, you state that you wouldn’t have bothered to address the senseless and wicked arguments in the work at all, but you thought it might be useful to show how little talent and knowledge it takes to engage in sedition. I believe it takes just as much talent and knowledge to pursue my work as it does to pursue yours. Your acknowledgment is "notable for its truth and naiveté." It’s a promise from you about your impartiality and openness. With this goal in mind, you’ve chosen a few examples of my ethics and criticism—very few since, of course, you wouldn’t choose any others—just enough, with your editing and additions, to prove “that my knowledge of Shakespeare and the English language matches the purity of my morals and the depth of my understanding.” But didn’t it occur to you while making this self-important statement, or wouldn’t it occur to anyone else reading it, that your endeavor could be just as “valuable” and appealing, even if the talent shown by the author were not minimal but enormous? Wouldn’t it be more important in that case to eliminate the scandal that there was any talent or knowledge on the side of “sedition”? The greater the threat to the complacency of subservience and corruption by an opinion spreading that there was any understanding of Shakespeare or the English language outside the minister’s perspective, wouldn’t it be even more essential for you, as the head of the literary police, to squash such an opinion right away, to crush it before it gained momentum, and to present your own work as evidence? What a disgrace for literature and loyalty if, due to the negligence and laziness of the editor of the Quarterly Review, a piece written without a hint of pretentiousness or hypocrisy, and surely with a very minimal amount of talent and literature, were to get a second edition within three months and be quickly moving toward a third, be mentioned in the Edinburgh Review, and be discussed by people who have never opened the Examiner; and how urgent it is to counteract the harmful inferences from all this, restore the public’s taste to its rightful state, and reassure the polite reader, who “was well-affected to the constitution in church and state as now established,” that going forward he must look for a knowledge of Shakespeare only in the editor of Ben Jonson, of the English language in the private tutor of Lord Grosvenor, for purity of morals in the translator of Juvenal, and for depth of understanding in the notes to the Baviad and Mæviad! Your employers, Mr. Gifford, don’t pay their lackeys for nothing—for stooping to address weak and wicked arguments; for pointing out to scorn what inspires no admiration; for carefully choosing a few examples of bad taste and bad grammar where nothing else exists. They want your relentless arrogance, your mercenary spite, your unyielding dullness, your shameless impudence, your self-righteousness, your hypocritical zeal, your pious frauds to fill the gap of their biases and pretensions, to corrupt and pollute public opinion, to undermine independent efforts, to apply not the sting of the scorpion but the touch of the torpedo to youthful hopes, to crawl and leave a slick trail of sophistry and lies over every work that doesn’t “dedicate its sweet leaves” to some luminary of the Treasury Bench or isn’t nurtured in the hotbed of corruption. This is your role; “this is what is expected of you, and this you do not evade”—to sacrifice whatever little honesty you have and exploit whatever little intellect you possess for any dirty job you’ve been ordered to perform. “They keep you as an ape does an apple, first chewed to be last swallowed.” You are, by appointment, a literary sycophant to greatness, and a taster to the court. You have a natural dislike for anything that differs from your own pretensions, and an acquired one for whatever offends your superiors. Your vanity serves your interests, and your spite only bends to your desire for power. If your instinctive or premeditated misuse of your enviable position were found lacking even once; if you made a single mistake in compiling your select Committee of Inquiry and Green Bag Report on the State of Letters, your job would be gone. You would never again receive a friendly handshake from a great man or a smile from an aristocrat. The great and powerful (whom you call the wise and good) don’t like to have the privacy of their self-esteem disturbed by the intrusive and unmanageable demands of literature and philosophy, except through the mediation of people like you, whom, if they have any common sense, they soon realize lack any intellectual superiority; or, if they don’t, whom they can belittle for their lack of integrity. You “have the office opposite to St. Peter.” You “keep a space in the public consciousness for foul prejudice and corrupt power to breed and thrive”; you volunteer your services to wealthy individuals to ease their mental scruples and moral dilemmas; you “lay the flattering unction” of corrupt prose and celebrated verse on their souls. You convince them that there’s no purity of morals or depth of understanding except in themselves and their sycophants; and would prevent the unsanctioned names of liberty and humanity from ever being whispered in polite circles! You, Sir, are you not doing all this? I beg your pardon then: I mistook you for the Editor of the Quarterly Review!
In general, you wisely avoid committing yourself upon any question, 387farther than to hint a difference of opinion, and to assume an air of self-importance upon it. Thus you say, after quoting some remarks of mine, not very respectful to Henry VIII. ‘We need not answer this gabble,’ as if you were offended at its absurdity, not at its truth; and were yourself ready to assert (were it worth while) that Henry VIII. was an estimable character, or that he had not his minions and creatures about him in his life-time, who were proud to hail him as the best of kings. If so, you have the authority of Mr. Burke against you, who indulges himself in a very Jacobinical strain of invective against this bloated pattern of royalty, and brute-image of the Divinity. Do you mean to say, that the circumstances of external pomp and unbridled power, which I have pointed out in ‘the gabble you will not answer’ as determining the character of kings, do not make them what for the most part they are, feared in their life-time and scorned by after-ages? If so, you must think Quevedo a libeller and incendiary, who makes his guide to the infernal regions, on being asked ‘if there were no more kings,’ answer emphatically—‘Here are all that ever lived!’ You say that ‘the mention of a court or of a king always throws me into a fit of raving.’ Do you then really admire those plague spots of history, and scourges of human nature, Richard II., Richard III., King John, and Henry VIII.? Do you with Mr. Coleridge, in his late Lectures, contend that not to fall down in prostration of soul before the abstract majesty of kings as it is seen in the diminished perspective of centuries, argues an inherent littleness of mind? Or do you extend the moral of your maxim—‘Speak not of the imputed weaknesses of the Great’—beyond the living to the dead, thus passing an attainder on history, and proving ‘truth to be a liar’ from the beginning? ‘Speak out, Grildrig!’
In general, you smartly avoid taking a strong stance on any issue, 387 only hinting at your disagreement and acting as if your opinion is more important. You say, after quoting some of my comments that weren’t very respectful toward Henry VIII., “We don’t need to respond to this nonsense,” as if you’re offended by its ridiculousness rather than its accuracy; and you could claim (if it were worth it) that Henry VIII. was a great guy or that he didn’t have followers in his lifetime who proudly called him the best king. If that’s the case, you stand in opposition to Mr. Burke, who is very critical of this inflated example of royalty, and this brutish portrayal of the divine. Are you really saying that the showy glamour and unchecked power I’ve pointed out in ‘the nonsense you won’t address’ don’t mostly define kings as being feared in their lifetime and looked down upon by future generations? If so, you must consider Quevedo a slanderer and troublemaker, who has his guide to hell, when asked ‘if there were no more kings,’ emphatically answer—‘Here are all that ever lived!’ You claim that ‘the mention of a court or a king always makes me go on a rant.’ Do you actually admire those blemishes of history and scourges of humanity, Richard II., Richard III., King John, and Henry VIII.? Do you agree with Mr. Coleridge, in his recent lectures, that not bowing down in reverence to the abstract majesty of kings, as we see it through the lens of history, indicates a fundamental small-mindedness? Or do you apply your principle—‘Don’t speak of the alleged weaknesses of the Great’—beyond the living to the dead, essentially passing a sentence on history and making ‘truth out to be a liar’ from the very start? ‘Speak out, Grildrig!’
You do well to confine yourself to the hypocrite; for you have too little talent for the sophist. Yet in two instances you have attempted an answer to an opinion I had expressed; and in both you have shewn how little you can understand the commonest question. The first is as follows:—‘In his remarks upon Coriolanus, which contain the concentrated venom of his malignity, he has libelled our great poet as a friend of arbitrary power, in order that he may introduce an invective against human nature. “Shakspeare himself seems to have had a leaning to the arbitrary side of the question, perhaps from some feeling of contempt for his own origin; and to have spared no occasion of baiting the rabble.”’
You’re right to stick to being a hypocrite; you really don’t have enough skill to be a sophist. However, in two instances, you’ve tried to respond to an opinion I shared, and both times, you’ve shown how little you grasp even the simplest question. The first is as follows:—‘In his comments on Coriolanus, which are filled with the worst of his spite, he has slandered our great poet as a supporter of absolute power, just so he can launch an attack on human nature. “Shakespeare himself seems to have favored the side of arbitrary power, maybe because he looked down on his own background; and he didn’t miss a chance to criticize the common people.”’
How do you prove that he did not? By shewing with a little delicate insinuation how he would have done just what I say he did.—‘Shall we not be dishonouring the gentle Shakspeare by answering 388such calumny, when every page of his works supplies its refutation?’[83]—‘Who has painted with more cordial feelings the tranquil innocence of humble life?’ [True.] ‘Who has furnished more instructive lessons to the great upon “the insolence of office”—“the oppressor’s wrong”—or the abuses of brief authority’—[which you would hallow through all time]—‘or who has more severely stigmatised those “who crook the pregnant hinges of the knee where thrift may follow fawning?”’ [Granted, none better.] ‘It is true he was not actuated by an envious hatred of greatness’—[so that to stigmatise servility and corruption does not always proceed from envy and a love of mischief]—‘he was not at all likely, had he lived in our time, to be an orator in Spa-fields or the editor of a seditious Sunday newspaper’—[To have delivered Mr. Coleridge’s Conciones ad Populum, or to have written Mr. Southey’s Wat Tyler]—‘he knew what discord would follow if degree were taken away’—[As it did in France from the taking away the degree between the tyrant and the slave, and those little convenient steps and props of it, the Bastile, Lettres de Cachet, and Louis XV.‘s Palais aux cerfs]—‘And therefore, with the wise and good of every age, he pointed out the injuries that must arise to society from a turbulent rabble instigated to mischief by men not much more enlightened, and infinitely more worthless than themselves.’
How can you prove that he didn’t? By subtly suggesting how he would have done exactly what I claim he did.—‘Aren’t we dishonoring the great Shakespeare by responding to such slander, especially when every page of his works defends him?’388[83]—‘Who has captured the peaceful innocence of ordinary life with warmer feelings?’ [True.] ‘Who has taught the powerful more about “the arrogance of power”—“the wrongs of the oppressor”—or the abuses of short-lived authority’—[which you would sanctify for all time]—‘or who has condemned more harshly those “who bend the knee to gain favor?”’ [Granted, none do it better.] ‘It is true he wasn’t driven by jealous hatred of greatness’—[so criticizing servility and corruption doesn’t always come from envy or a desire for chaos]—‘he would likely not have been a speaker at Spa-fields or the editor of a rebellious Sunday newspaper if he lived today’—[To have delivered Mr. Coleridge’s Conciones ad Populum, or to have written Mr. Southey’s Wat Tyler]—‘he understood the chaos that would ensue if distinctions were abolished’—[As it did in France when the distinction between the tyrant and the slave was removed, along with such supportive structures as the Bastille, Letters of Cachet, and Louis XV.‘s Palace of the deer]—‘And therefore, like the wise and good from every era, he highlighted the harm that must arise to society from a restless crowd incited to trouble by individuals who are not much more enlightened and infinitely more worthless than they are.’
So that it would appear by your own account that Shakspeare had a discreet leaning to the arbitrary side of the question, and, had he lived in our time, would probably have been a writer in the Courier, or a contributor to the Quarterly Review! It is difficult to know which to admire most in this, the weakness or the cunning. I have said that Shakspeare has described both sides of the question, and you ask me very wisely, ‘Did he confine himself to one?’ No, I say that he did not: but I suspect that he had a leaning to one side, and has given it more quarter than it deserved. My words are: ‘Coriolanus is a storehouse of political common-places. The arguments for and against aristocracy and democracy, on the privileges of the few and the claims of the many, on liberty and slavery, power and the abuse of it, peace and war, are here very ably handled, with the spirit of a poet and the acuteness of a philosopher. Shakspeare himself seems to have had a leaning to the arbitrary side of the question, perhaps from some feeling of contempt for his own origin, and to have spared no occasion of baiting the rabble. What he says 389of them is very true: what he says of their betters is also very true, though he dwells less upon it.’
So it seems from your own account that Shakespeare had a clear preference for the more arbitrary side of the debate, and if he were around today, he’d likely be a writer for the Courier or a contributor to the Quarterly Review! It’s hard to decide which is more admirable here, the weakness or the cleverness. I mentioned that Shakespeare portrayed both sides of the issue, and you wisely ask, ‘Did he stick to just one side?’ No, I don’t think he did: but I suspect he tended to favor one side and gave it more support than it actually warranted. My words are: ‘Coriolanus is a collection of political clichés. The arguments for and against aristocracy and democracy, the privileges of the few versus the claims of the many, liberty and slavery, power and its abuse, peace and war, are all discussed here very skillfully, blending the passion of a poet with the insight of a philosopher. Shakespeare himself seems to have leaned toward the more arbitrary side of the debate, perhaps out of some contempt for his own background, and he took every chance to criticize the common people. What he says about them is very true: what he says about their superiors is also very true, though he focuses less on that.’
I then proceed to account for this by shewing how it is that ‘the cause of the people is but little calculated for a subject for poetry; or that the language of poetry naturally falls in with the language of power.’ I affirm, Sir, that poetry, that the imagination, generally speaking, delights in power, in strong excitement, as well as in truth, in good, in right, whereas, pure reason and the moral sense approve only of the true and good. I proceed to shew that this general love or tendency to immediate excitement or theatrical effect, no matter how produced, gives a bias to the imagination often inconsistent with the greatest good, that in poetry it triumphs over principle, and bribes the passions to make a sacrifice of common humanity. You say that it does not, that there is no such original sin in poetry, that it makes no such sacrifice or unworthy compromise between poetical effect and the still small voice of reason. And how do you prove that there is no such principle giving a bias to the imagination, and a false colouring to poetry? Why by asking in reply to the instances where this principle operates, and where no other can, with much modesty and simplicity—‘But are these the only topics that afford delight in poetry, etc.’ No; but these objects do afford delight in poetry, and they afford it in proportion to their strong and often tragical effect, and not in proportion to the good produced, or their desirableness in a moral point of view. ‘Do we read with more pleasure of the ravages of a beast of prey, than of the shepherd’s pipe upon the mountain?’ No; but we do read with pleasure of the ravages of a beast of prey, and we do so on the principle I have stated, namely, from the sense of power abstracted from the sense of good; and it is the same principle that makes us read with admiration and reconciles us in fact to the triumphant progress of the conquerors and mighty hunters of mankind, who come to stop the shepherd’s pipe upon the mountains, and sweep away his listening flock. Do you mean to deny that there is anything imposing to the imagination in power, in grandeur, in outward shew, in the accumulation of individual wealth and luxury, at the expense of equal justice and the common weal? Do you deny that there is anything in ‘the pride, pomp, and circumstance of glorious war, that makes ambition virtue,’ in the eyes of admiring multitudes? Is this a new theory of the Pleasures of the Imagination, which says that the pleasures of the imagination do not take rise solely in the calculations of the understanding? Is it a paradox of my making, that ‘one murder makes a villain, millions a hero!’ Or is it not true that here, as in other cases, the enormity of the evil overpowers and makes a convert of the imagination by 390its very magnitude? You contradict my reasoning, because you know nothing of the question, and you think that no one has a right to understand what you do not. My offence against purity in the passage alluded to, ‘which contains the concentrated venom of my malignity,’ is, that I have admitted that there are tyrants and slaves abroad in the world; and you would hush the matter up, and pretend that there is no such thing, in order that there may be nothing else. Farther, I have explained the cause, the subtle sophistry of the human mind, that tolerates and pampers the evil, in order to guard against its approaches; you would conceal the cause in order to prevent the cure, and to leave the proud flesh about the heart to harden and ossify into one impenetrable mass of selfishness and hypocrisy, that we may not ‘sympathise in the distresses of suffering virtue’ in any case, in which they come in competition with the factitious wants and ‘imputed weaknesses of the great.’ You ask ‘are we gratified by the cruelties of Domitian or Nero?’ No, not we—they were too petty and cowardly to strike the imagination at a distance; but the Roman Senate tolerated them, addressed their perpetrators, exalted them into Gods, the Fathers of their people; they had pimps and scribblers of all sorts in their pay, their Senecas, etc. till a turbulent rabble thinking that there were no injuries to society greater than the endurance of unlimited and wanton oppression, put an end to the farce, and abated the nuisance as well as they could. Had you and I lived in those times, we should have been what we are now, I ‘a sour mal-content,’ and you ‘a sweet courtier.’ Your reasoning is ill put together; it wants sincerity, it wants ingenuity. To prove that I am wrong in saying that the love of power and heartless submission to it extend beyond the tragic stage to real life, to prove that there has been nothing heard but the shepherd’s pipe upon the mountain, and that the still sad music of humanity has never filled up the pauses to the thoughtful ear, you bring in illustration the cruelties of Domitian and Nero, whom you suppose to have been without flatterers, train-bearers, or executioners, and ‘the crimes of revolutionary France of a still blacker die,’ (a sentence which alone would have entitled you to a post of honour and secrecy under Sejanus,) which you suppose to have been without aiders or abettors. You speak of the horrors of Robespierre’s reign; (there you tread on velvet;) do you mean that these atrocities excited nothing but horror in revolutionary France, in undelivered France, in Paris, the centre and focus of anarchy and crime; or that the enthusiasm and madness with which they were acted and applauded, was owing to nothing but a long-deferred desire for truth and justice, and the collected vengeance of the 391human race? You do not mean this, for you never mean anything that has even an approximation to unfashionable truth in it. You add, ‘We cannot recollect, however, that these crimes were heard of with much satisfaction in this country.’ Then you have forgotten the years 1793 and 94, you have forgotten the addresses against republicans and levellers, you have forgotten Mr. Burke and his 80,000 incorrigible Jacobins.—‘Nor had we the misfortune to know any individual, (though we will not take upon us to deny that Mr. Hazlitt may have been of that description,)’ (I will take upon me to deny that) ‘who cried havoc, and enjoyed the atrocities of Robespierre and Carnot.’ Then at that time, Sir, you had not the good fortune to know Mr. Southey.[84]
I then proceed to explain why “the people's cause is not exactly the best subject for poetry; or how the language of poetry naturally aligns with the language of power.” I assert, Sir, that poetry, that imagination, generally thrives on power, on strong excitement, as well as on truth, goodness, and righteousness, while pure reason and moral judgment only value what is true and good. I continue to show that this general desire for immediate excitement or dramatic effect, regardless of how it’s achieved, often skews the imagination in ways that conflict with the greatest good, allowing poetry to overshadow principles and sway emotions to sacrifice common humanity. You argue that this isn't true, that there’s no such original flaw in poetry, that it makes no such sacrifices or unworthy compromises between poetic effect and the quiet call of reason. And how do you prove that there isn't a principle skewing the imagination and distorting poetry? By asking in response to examples where this principle plays a role, with great modesty and simplicity—“But are these the only themes that bring delight in poetry, etc.” No; these subjects do offer enjoyment in poetry, and they do so in proportion to their strong and often tragic effects, not in relation to the good they produce or their desirability from a moral perspective. “Do we find more pleasure in reading about the devastation caused by a predator than in the shepherd's pipe on the mountain?” No; but we do enjoy reading about the devastation caused by a predator, and we do so based on the sense of power detached from the sense of good; and this same principle causes us to read with admiration and even accept the victorious march of conquerors and powerful hunters of mankind, who come to silence the shepherd's pipe and sweep away his attentive flock. Do you really deny that there’s something captivating about power, grandeur, external display, and the accumulation of personal wealth and luxury that comes at the expense of equal justice and the common good? Do you deny that there’s anything in “the pride, pomp, and circumstance of glorious war, that makes ambition seem virtuous” in the eyes of awestruck crowds? Is this a new theory about the Pleasures of the Imagination, which proposes that the pleasures of imagination don’t solely stem from calculations of understanding? Is it my paradox that “one murder makes a villain, but millions make a hero!”? Or is it true that here, as in many instances, the magnitude of evil overwhelms and converts the imagination by its sheer size? You challenge my reasoning because you are unfamiliar with the topic, and you believe no one has the right to understand what you do not. My transgression against purity in the mentioned passage, “which contains the concentrated venom of my malignity,” is that I acknowledged the existence of tyrants and slaves in the world; and you would prefer to cover it up, pretending there’s nothing like it, to ensure there’s nothing else. Furthermore, I have explained the cause, the subtle deception of the human mind, which allows and coddles evil to guard against its encroachments; you would hide the cause to prevent the cure and let the proud flesh in the heart harden into an impenetrable mass of selfishness and hypocrisy so that we do not “sympathize with the sufferings of virtuous individuals” whenever they conflict with the artificial needs and “imputed weaknesses of the powerful.” You ask, “Are we gratified by the cruelties of Domitian or Nero?” No, not we—they were too small and cowardly to engage the imagination from a distance; yet the Roman Senate tolerated them, honored their perpetrators, elevating them to godhood, the Fathers of their people; they had all sorts of sycophants and scribblers in their employ, their Senecas, until a restless mob, believing no greater harm existed than the acceptance of unchecked and senseless oppression, ended the farce and attempted to mitigate the nuisance as best they could. Had you and I lived in those times, we would have been who we are now, I “a sour malcontent,” and you “a sweet courtier.” Your reasoning is poorly structured; it lacks sincerity and creativity. To show that I am wrong in claiming that the love of power and heartless submission to it extend beyond the tragic stage to real life, to argue that we have only heard the shepherd’s pipe on the mountain, and that the persistent, sad music of humanity has never filled the silences for the reflective, you reference the atrocities of Domitian and Nero, whom you assume had no flatterers, bearers of their burdens, or executioners, and “the crimes of revolutionary France of a still darker nature,” (a statement that alone would have earned you a position of respect and secrecy under Sejanus,) which you also believe occurred without supporters or encouragers. You mention the horrors of Robespierre’s rule; (there you tread lightly); do you suggest that these atrocities elicited only horror in revolutionary France, in a France yet to recover, in Paris, the epicenter of chaos and crime; or that the zeal and madness with which they were enacted and celebrated arose solely from a long-suppressed desire for truth and justice, and the accumulated retribution of the human race? You do not mean this, for you never mean anything that approaches unpopular truth. You add, “We cannot recall, however, that these crimes were met with much satisfaction in this country.” Then you have forgotten the years 1793 and 1794, you have forgotten the addresses against republicans and levellers, you have forgotten Mr. Burke and his 80,000 incorrigible Jacobins.—“Nor had we the misfortune to know any individual, (though we won't deny that Mr. Hazlitt may have been of that sort,)(I will deny that) “who cried havoc and relished the atrocities of Robespierre and Carnot.” Then at that time, Sir, you had not had the good fortune to know Mr. Southey.[84]
To return, you find fault with my toleration of those pleasant persons, Lucio, Pompey, and Master Froth, in Measure for Measure, and with my use of the word ‘natural morality.’ And yet, ‘the word is a good word, being whereby a man may be accommodated.’ If Pompey was a common bawd, you, Sir, are a court pimp. That is artificial morality. ‘Go to, a feather turns the scale of your avoir-du-pois.’ I have also, it seems, erred in using the term moral in a way not familiar to you, as opposed to physical; and in that sense have applied it to the description of the mole on Imogen’s neck, ‘cinque-spotted, like the crimson drops i’ th’ bottom of a cowslip.’ I have stated that there is more than a physical—there is a moral beauty in this image, and I think so still, though you may not comprehend how.
To go back, you criticize my acceptance of those charming individuals, Lucio, Pompey, and Master Froth, in Measure for Measure, as well as my use of the phrase “natural morality.” Yet, “the word is a good word, as it allows a person to fit in.” If Pompey was a common pimp, you, Sir, are a high-class one. That’s artificial morality. “Come now, a feather can tip the scales of your weight.” I’ve also apparently made a mistake by using the term moral in a way you're not used to, as opposed to physical; and in that sense, I’ve described the mole on Imogen’s neck as “cinque-spotted, like the crimson drops at the bottom of a cowslip.” I’ve argued that there’s more than just physical beauty—there’s a moral beauty in this imagery, and I still believe that, even if you don’t understand how.
You assert roundly that there is no such person as the black prince Morocchius,[85] in the Merchant of Venice. ‘He, (Mr. Hazlitt,) objects entirely to a personage of whom we never heard before, the black Prince Marocchius. With this piece of blundering ignorance, which, with a thousand similar instances of his intimate acquaintance with the poet, clearly prove that his enthusiasm for Shakespear is all affected, we conclude what we have to say of his folly; it remains to say a few words of his mischief.’ Vol. xxxiv. p. 463. I could not at first, Sir, comprehend your drift in this passage, and I can scarcely believe it yet. But I perceive that in Chalmers’s edition, the tawny suitor of Portia, who is called Morocchius in my common edition, goes by the style and title of Morocco. This important discovery proves, according to you, that my admiration of Shakespear 392is all affected, and that I can know nothing of the poet or his characters. So that the only title to admiration in Shakespear, not only in the Merchant of Venice, but in his other plays, all knowledge of his beauties, or proof of an intimate acquaintance with his genius, is confined to the alteration which Mr. Chalmers has adopted in the termination of the two last syllables of the name of this blackamoor, and his reading Morocco for Morocchius. Admirable grammarian, excellent critic! I do not wonder you think nothing of my Characters of Shakespear’s Plays, when I see what it is that you really admire and think worth the study in them. No, no, Mr. Gifford, you shall not persuade me by your broken English and ‘red-lattice phrases,’ that the only thing in Shakespear worth knowing, was the baptismal name of this Prince of Morocco, or that no one can admire the author’s plays out of Mr Chalmers’s edition, or find anything to admire even there, except the new nomenclature of the dramatis personæ. If this is not your meaning in the passage here quoted, I do not know what it is; if it is not, I have done you great injustice in supposing that it is, for I am sure it cannot mean anything else so foolish and contemptible. You had begun this curious paragraph by saying, that ‘I had run through my set of phrases, and was completely at a stand’; and you bring as a damning proof of this, a repetition of two phrases. Do you believe that I had filled 300 pages with the repetition of two phrases? ‘Go, go, you’re a censorious ill man.’
You strongly claim that there’s no such character as the black prince Morocchius,[85] in the Merchant of Venice. “He, (Mr. Hazlitt,) completely objects to a character we’ve never heard of before, the black Prince Marocchius. With this piece of foolish ignorance, which, along with a thousand similar examples of his supposed familiarity with the poet, clearly proves that his enthusiasm for Shakespeare is all an act, we summarize what we have to say about his foolishness; now let's say a few words about his damage.” Vol. xxxiv. p. 463. At first, Sir, I couldn’t grasp your point in this part, and I can hardly believe it still. But I notice that in Chalmers’s edition, the dark suitor of Portia, referred to as Morocchius in my common edition, is named Morocco. This significant finding demonstrates, according to you, that my admiration for Shakespeare is all a facade, and that I know nothing about the poet or his characters. So, the only basis for admiration in Shakespeare, not just in the Merchant of Venice but in his other plays, lies in the change that Mr. Chalmers made in the last two syllables of this blackamoor's name, replacing Morocchius with Morocco. What a brilliant grammarian, what an exceptional critic! I’m not surprised you think nothing of my Characters of Shakespeare’s Plays when I see what you actually admire and consider worth studying in them. No, no, Mr. Gifford, you won't convince me with your broken English and ‘red-lattice phrases’ that the only thing in Shakespeare worth knowing is the first name of this Prince of Morocco, or that no one can appreciate the author’s plays outside of Mr. Chalmers’s edition, or find anything to admire even there, except the new names of the cast of characters. If this isn’t your point in the quoted passage, I don’t know what it is; if it’s not, I’ve done you a great disservice by assuming it is, because I can't imagine it meaning anything else so foolish and contemptible. You started this interesting paragraph by saying that ‘I had exhausted my set of phrases and was completely stalled’; and you present as a damning piece of evidence a repetition of two phrases. Do you really think I filled 300 pages with just the repetition of two phrases? ‘Go on, you’re a harsh, ill-hearted man.’
The deliberate hypocrisy of Regan and Gonerill, of which I spoke, I had explained in the sentence before by a periphrasis to mean their ‘hypocritical pretensions to virtue.’ If I had no right to use the word hastily in this absolute sense, you had still less to confound the meaning of a whole passage. Edmund is indeed ‘a hypocrite to his father; he is a hypocrite to his brother, and to Regan and Gonerill’; but he is not a hypocrite to himself. This is that consummation of hypocrisy of which I spoke, and of which you ought to know something.
The intentional dishonesty of Regan and Goneril that I mentioned earlier, I had clarified in the previous sentence as their 'false claims to virtue.' If I hadn’t had the right to use the word so freely in this complete sense, you had even less reason to misinterpret the meaning of an entire passage. Edmund is indeed 'a hypocrite to his father; he is a hypocrite to his brother, and to Regan and Goneril'; but he is not a hypocrite to himself. This is the ultimate form of hypocrisy that I referred to, and you should understand something about it.
I have commenced my observations on Lear, you say, with ‘an acknowledgment remarkable for its naiveté and its truth’; the import of which remarkable acknowledgment is, that I find myself incompetent to do justice to this tragedy, by any criticism upon it. This you construe into a ‘determination on my part to write nonsense’; you seem, Sir, to have sat down with a determination to write something worse than nonsense. As a proof of my having fulfilled the promise, (which I had not made,) you cite these words, ‘It is then the best of all Shakespear’s plays, for it is the one in which he was most in earnest‘; and add significantly, ‘Macbeth and 393Othello were mere jeux d’esprit, we presume.’ You may presume so, but not from what I have said. You only aim at being a word-catcher, and fail even in that. In like manner, you say, ‘If this means that we sympathise so much with the feelings and sentiments of Hamlet, that we identify ourselves with the character, we have to accuse Mr. Hazlitt of strangely misleading us a few pages back. “The moral of Othello comes directly home to the business and bosoms of men; the interest in Hamlet is more remote and reflex.” And yet it is we who are Hamlet.’—Yes, because we sympathise with Hamlet, in the way I have explained, and which you ought to have endeavoured at least to understand, as reflecting and moralising on the general distresses of human life, and not as particularly affected by those which come home to himself, as we see in Othello. You accuse me of stringing words together without meaning, and it is you who cannot connect two ideas together.
I’ve started my thoughts on Lear, you say, with ‘an acknowledgment that’s striking for its naiveté and its truth’; what that acknowledgment means is that I feel incapable of doing this tragedy justice through any criticism. You interpret this as my ‘decision to write nonsense’; it seems, sir, that you’ve set out to write something worse than nonsense. As proof that I’ve kept the promise (which I did not make), you quote these words, ‘It is then the best of all Shakespeare’s plays, for it is the one in which he was most in earnest‘; and you add, with significance, ‘Macbeth and 393 Othello were mere mind games, we presume.’ You may presume that, but not from what I’ve said. You’re just trying to catch my words and even fail at that. Similarly, you claim, ‘If this means that we sympathize so much with the feelings and sentiments of Hamlet that we identify with the character, we have to accuse Mr. Hazlitt of strangely misleading us a few pages back. “The moral of Othello comes directly home to the business and bosoms of men; the interest in Hamlet is more remote and reflex.” And yet it is we who are Hamlet.’—Yes, because we empathize with Hamlet, in the way I’ve explained, and which you should have at least tried to understand, as reflecting and moralizing on the general sufferings of human life, and not as being particularly affected by those that are close to him, as we see in Othello. You accuse me of stringing words together without meaning, yet it’s you who can’t connect two ideas.
You call me ‘a poor cankered creature,’ ‘a trader in sedition,’ ‘a wicked sophist,’ and yet you would have it believed that I am ‘principally distinguished by an indestructible love of flowers and odours, and dews and clear waters, and soft airs and sounds and bright skies, and woodland solitudes and moonlight bowers.’[86] I do not understand how you reconcile such ‘welcome and unwelcome things,’ but anything will do to feed your spleen at another’s expence, when it is the person and not the thing you dislike. Thus you complain of my style, that it is at times figurative, at times poetical, at times familiar, not always the same flat dull thing that you would have it. You point out the omission of a line in a quotation from a well-known passage in Shakespear. You do not however think the detection of this omission is a sufficient proof of your sagacity, but you proceed to assign as a motive for it, ‘That I do it to improve the metre,’ which is ridiculous. You say I conjure up objections to Shakespear which nobody ever thought of, in order to answer them. The objection to Romeo and Juliet, which I have answered, was made by the late Mr. Curran, as well as the objection to the want of interest and action in Paradise Lost, which I have answered in another place.—‘Thus he endeavours to convince one class of critics, that the poet’s genius was not confined to the production of stage effect by supernatural means. In another place he expresses his astonishment that Shakespear should be considered as a gloomy writer, who painted nothing but gorgons, hydras, and chimeras dire.’ One of these classes of critics which, you say, ‘are phantoms of my own creating,’ comprehends the whole French nation, and the other the 394greatest part of the English with Dr. Johnson at their head, who in his Preface, ‘one of the most perfect pieces of criticism since the days of Quintilian’ (and which might have been written in the days of Quintilian just as well as in ours) has neglected to expatiate on Shakespear’s ‘indestructible love of flowers and odours, and woodland solitudes and moonlight bowers.’ You know nothing of Shakespear, nor of what is thought about him: you mind only the text of the commentators. With respect to Mr. Wordsworth’s Ode, which I have dragged into my account of Romeo and Juliet, I did not quarrel with the poetical conceit, but with the metaphysical doctrine founded upon it by his school. There is a difference between ‘ends of verse and sayings of philosophers.’ If Shakespear had been a great German transcendental philosopher (either at the first or second hand) his talking of the music of the spheres might have rendered him suspected. You compare my account of Hamlet to the dashing style of a showman: I think the showman’s speech is proper to a show, and mine to Hamlet. You, Sir, have no sympathy in common with Hamlet; nothing to make him seem ever ‘present to your mind’s eye’; no feeling to produce such an hallucination in your mind, nor to make you tolerate it in others. You are an Ultra-Crepidarian critic.
You call me “a poor cankered creature,” “a trader in sedition,” “a wicked sophist,” and yet you want people to believe I am “mainly characterized by an indestructible love of flowers and scents, morning dew and clear waters, gentle breezes and sounds, bright skies, peaceful woods, and moonlit groves.”[86] I don’t understand how you justify holding onto such “welcome and unwelcome things,” but anything will do to vent your frustration at someone else's expense, as it’s the person you dislike, not the thing. Thus, you complain about my writing style being at times figurative, poetic, and casual, rather than the same boring flat thing that you’d prefer. You point out that I left out a line from a famous Shakespeare quote. However, you don’t believe that identifying this omission proves your cleverness; instead, you claim it’s because “I do it to improve the meter,” which is absurd. You say I bring up objections to Shakespeare that no one has ever thought of just to address them. The objection to Romeo and Juliet that I answered was stated by the late Mr. Curran, and the complaint about the lack of interest and action in Paradise Lost was addressed by me in another piece. “Thus he tries to persuade one group of critics that the poet’s talent wasn’t limited to creating stage effects through supernatural means. Elsewhere, he expresses his surprise that Shakespeare is seen as a gloomy writer who depicts nothing but monsters, dragons, and terrible chimeras.” One of these groups of critics that you say “are phantoms of my own making” includes the entire French nation, while the other includes most of the English, led by Dr. Johnson, who in his Preface, “one of the most perfect pieces of criticism since the days of Quintilian” (and which could have been written in Quintilian’s time just as easily as in ours) notably failed to elaborate on Shakespeare’s “indestructible love of flowers and scents, peaceful woods, and moonlit groves.” You know nothing about Shakespeare or the opinions about him; you only focus on the text from the commentators. Regarding Mr. Wordsworth’s Ode, which I mentioned in my discussion of Romeo and Juliet, I did not criticize the poetic idea, but the metaphysical doctrine that his school built on it. There’s a difference between “lines of poetry and philosophies.” If Shakespeare had been a great German transcendental philosopher (in either the first or second hand), his references to the music of the spheres might have made him seem suspect. You compare my interpretation of Hamlet to the flashy style of a showman; I believe a showman's speech is fit for a performance, while mine suits Hamlet. You, Sir, have no shared sentiment with Hamlet; nothing to make him feel “present to your mind’s eye”; no emotions strong enough to create such an illusion in your mind, nor to allow it in others. You are an Ultra-Crepidarian critic.
You laugh at my theory, that ‘Filch’s picking of pockets has ceased to be so good a jest as formerly,’ from the degeneracy of the age, that is, from the diminution of the practice, as at variance with the Police Report. Shortly after I had hazarded this piece of conjectural criticism, the Beggar’s Opera was hooted off the stage in America—because they have no Police Report there. I may have been premature in applying this conclusion from a highly advanced state of civilization, or from the degeneracy of the age we live in, to our own country.
You laugh at my theory that “Filch’s pickpocketing isn’t as funny as it used to be,” due to the decline of the times, which means there’s been less of it, as opposed to what the Police Report shows. Not long after I suggested this kind of analysis, the Beggar's Opera was booed off the stage in America—because they don’t have a Police Report there. I might have jumped the gun in applying this conclusion from a very advanced civilization, or from the decline of our current age, to our own country.
What you say of my remarks on the use which Shakespear makes of the principal analogy in Cymbeline, and of contrast in Macbeth is beneath an answer. You should confine yourself to mere matters of verbal criticism. Thus you object to my use of the term ‘logical diagrams’ as unprecedented and barbarous: yet we talk of syllogising in mode and figure, and besides, the word has been made pretty malleable by Mr. Burke. What do you say to his talking of ‘the geometricians and chemists of France, bringing the one from the dry bones of their diagrams, and the other from the soot of their furnaces, dispositions worse than indifferent to common feelings and habitudes.’ Would you call this ‘slip-slop absurdity’? But to talk of the dry bones of diagrams, and escape with impunity from the censure of small critics, a man must assert that the king of this country ‘holds his crown in contempt of the choice of the people.’
What you say about my comments on how Shakespeare uses the main analogy in Cymbeline and contrasts in Macbeth doesn’t deserve a response. You should stick to just nitpicking about words. You criticize my use of the term 'logical diagrams' as unfamiliar and crude, yet we often discuss syllogizing in terms of mode and figure, and besides, Mr. Burke has made the word quite flexible. What do you think about him referring to 'the geometricians and chemists of France, bringing the one from the dry bones of their diagrams and the other from the soot of their furnaces, dispositions worse than indifferent to common feelings and habits'? Would you label this 'slip-shod absurdity'? But to mention the dry bones of diagrams and avoid criticism from petty critics, a person has to claim that the king of this country ‘holds his crown in contempt of the choice of the people.’
395I am obliged to you for informing me of the real name of the person who wrote the ingenious parallel between Richard the Third and Macbeth.
395Thank you for letting me know the actual name of the person who created the clever comparison between Richard III and Macbeth.
The article in the last Review on my Lectures on English Poetry, requires a very short notice.—You would gladly retract what you have said, but you dare not. You are a coward to public opinion and to your own. You begin by observing, ‘Mr. Hazlitt seems to have bound himself like Hannibal to wage everlasting war, not indeed against Rome, but against accurate reasoning, just observation, and precise, or even intelligible language.’ This might be true, if the opinion of the Quarterly Review were synonymous with accurate reasoning, just observation, and knowledge of language. ‘We have traced him in his two former predatory excursions on taste and common sense. Had he written on any other subject, we should scarcely have thought of watching his movements.’ You were ‘principally excited to notice’ the Round Table by some political heresies which had crept into it: you ‘condescended to notice’ the Characters of Shakespear’s Plays, ‘to shew how small a portion of talent and literature was necessary to carry on the trade of sedition.’ You have been tempted to watch my movements in the present work to shew how little talent and literature is necessary to write a popular work on poetry. ‘But though his book is dull, his theme is pleasing, and interests in spite of the author. As we read, we forget Mr. Hazlitt, to think of those concerning whom he writes.’ Do you think, Sir, that a higher compliment could come from you?
The article in the latest Review about my Lectures on English Poetry needs a brief response. You would love to take back what you said, but you won’t. You’re afraid of public opinion and your own. You start by stating, ‘Mr. Hazlitt seems to have committed himself, like Hannibal, to a never-ending battle, not against Rome, but against accurate reasoning, fair observation, and clear, or even understandable, language.’ This might hold some truth if the opinion of the Quarterly Review were equivalent to accurate reasoning, fair observation, and a solid grasp of language. ‘We have followed him in his two previous attacks on taste and common sense. If he had written on any other topic, we would hardly have bothered to watch his actions.’ You were ‘primarily motivated to comment’ on the Round Table because of some political mistakes that had slipped in: you ‘grudgingly acknowledged’ the Characters of Shakespeare's Plays, ‘to illustrate how little talent and knowledge of literature is needed to engage in the business of sedition.’ You’ve been tempted to observe my work here to show how little talent and literature it takes to write a popular book on poetry. ‘But even though his book is boring, his subject is enjoyable and captivates us despite the author. As we read, we forget Mr. Hazlitt and focus on those he writes about.’ Do you truly believe, Sir, that a greater compliment could come from you?
It would neither be for my credit nor your own, that I should follow you in detail through your abortive attempts to deny me exactly those qualifications which you feel conscious that I possess, or afraid that others will ascribe to me. You are already bankrupt of your word, nor can I be admitted as an evidence in my own case. You say that I am utterly without originality, without a power of illustration, or language to make myself understood!—I shall leave it to the public to judge between us. There is one objection however which you make to me which is singular enough: viz. that I quote Shakespear. I can only answer, that ‘I would not change that vice for your best virtue.’ ‘If a trifling thing is to be told, he will not mention it in common language: he must give it, if possible, in words which the Bard of Avon has somewhere used. Were the beauty of the applications conspicuous, we might forget or at least forgive, the deformity produced by the constant stitching in of these patches‘—[i.e. by the beauty of the applications]. ‘Unfortunately, however, the phrases thus obtruded upon us seem to be selected, not on account of any intrinsic beauty, but merely because they are fantastic and unlike 396what would naturally occur to an ordinary writer.’ Certainly, Sir, your style is very different from Shakespear’s. I observe in your notes to the Baviad and Mæviad, you diversify your matter by frequently quoting Greek.—Now it appears to me that these quotations of your’s add to the wit only by varying the type. If these learned patches ‘plagued the Cruscas and Lauras,’ my quotations have given other people ‘the horrors’!
It wouldn’t help either of us if I went through your failed attempts to deny me the very qualifications that you know I have or that you're worried others will recognize. You've already lost your credibility, and I can’t be a witness in my own case. You claim I lack originality, that I have no ability to illustrate my points or use language effectively!—I’ll let the public decide who is right. There is, however, one unique criticism you have leveled at me: that I quote Shakespeare. To that, I can only say, ‘I wouldn’t trade that flaw for your best quality.’ ‘If something trivial needs to be conveyed, I won’t just say it plainly: I have to express it using words that the Bard of Avon has somewhere used. If the beauty of the applications stood out, we could perhaps overlook or at least forgive the awkwardness that arises from constantly patching in these quotes’—[i.e. through the beauty of the applications]. ‘Unfortunately, the phrases you force upon us seem chosen not for any inherent beauty, but simply because they are odd and unlike what an ordinary writer would think of.’ Clearly, Sir, your style is very different from Shakespeare’s. I see in your notes to the Baviad and Mæviad, you mix things up by frequently quoting Greek.—It seems to me that your quotes only add to the wit by changing the appearance. If those learned interpolations ‘annoyed the Cruscas and Lauras,’ my quotes have given others ‘the chills’!
You quote my definition of poetry, and say that it is not a definition of anything, because it is completely unintelligible. To prove this, you take one word which occurs in it, and is no way important, the word sympathy, which you tell us has two significations, one anatomical, and the other moral; and poetry, according to you, ‘has no skill in surgery or ethics.’ I do not think this shews a want of clearness in my definition, but a want of good faith or understanding in you.
You reference my definition of poetry and argue that it doesn't define anything because it's entirely unclear. To support this, you focus on one word in it, which isn't significant, the word sympathy, claiming it has two meanings: one related to anatomy and the other to morality; and you say poetry "lacks expertise in surgery or ethics." I don't believe this demonstrates a lack of clarity in my definition, but rather a lack of good faith or understanding on your part.
You say that I get at a number of extravagant conclusions ‘by means sufficiently simple and common. He employs the term poetry in three distinct meanings, and his legerdemain consists in substituting one of these for the other. Sometimes it is the general appellation of a certain class of compositions, as when he says that poetry is graver than history. Secondly, it denotes the talent by which these compositions are produced; and it is in this sense that he calls poetry that fine particle within us, which produces in our being rarefaction, expansion, elevation and purification.’ [This is Mr. Gifford’s academic style, not mine.] ‘Thirdly, it denotes the subjects of which these compositions treat. It is in this meaning that he uses the term, when he says that all that is worth remembering in life is the poetry of it; that fear is poetry, that hope is poetry, that love is poetry; and in the very same sense he might assert that fear is sculpture and painting and music; that the crimes of Verres are the eloquence of Cicero, and the poetry of Milton the criticism of Mr. Hazlitt.’ It is true I have used the word poetry in the three senses above imputed to me, and I have done so, because the word has these three distinct meanings in the English language, that is, it signifies the composition produced, the state of mind or faculty producing it, and, in certain cases, the subject-matter proper to call forth that state of mind. Your objection amounts to this, that in reasoning on a difficult question I write common English, and this is the whole secret of my extravagance and obscurity.—Do you mean that the distinguishing between the compositions of poetry, the talent for poetry, or the subject-matter of poetry, would have told us what poetry is? This is what you would say, or you have no meaning at all. I have expressly treated the subject according to this very division, and I have endeavoured to define that common something 397which belongs to these several views of it, and determines us in the application of the same common name, viz. an unusual vividness in external objects or in our immediate impressions, exciting a movement of imagination in the mind, and leading by natural association or sympathy to harmony of sound and the modulation of verse in expressing it. This is what you, Sir, cannot understand. I could not ‘assert in the same sense that fear is sculpture and painting, etc.’ because this would be an abuse of the English language: we talk of the poetry of painting, etc. which could not be, if poetry was confined to the technical sense of ‘lines in ten syllables.’ The crimes of Verres, I also grant, were not the same thing as the eloquence of Cicero, though I suspect you confound the crimes of revolutionary France with Mr. Pitt’s speeches; and as to Milton’s poetry and my criticisms, there is almost as much difference between them as between Milton’s poetry and your verses. You say, ‘the principal subjects of which poetry treats, are the passions and affections of mankind; we are all under the influence of our passions and affections, that is, in Mr. Hazlitt’s new language, we all act on the principles of poetry, and are in truth all poets. We all exert our muscles and limbs, therefore we are anatomists and surgeons; we have teeth which we employ in chewing, therefore we are dentists,’ etc. Not at all; we are all poets, inasmuch as we are under the influence of the passions and imagination, that is, as we have certain common feelings, and undergo the same process of mind with the poet, who only expresses in a particular manner what he and all feel alike; but in exerting our muscles, we do not dissect them; in chewing with our teeth, we do not perform the part of dentists, etc. There is nothing parallel in the two cases. ‘You anticipate,’ you say, ‘these brilliant conclusions for me’; and do not perceive the difference between the extension of a logical principle, and an abuse of common language.—You proceed, ‘As another specimen of his definitions, we may take the following. “Poetry does not define the limits of sense, nor analyse the distinctions of the understanding, but signifies the excess of the imagination beyond the actual or ordinary impression of any object or feeling.” Poetry was at the beginning of the book asserted to be an impression; it is now the excess of the imagination beyond an impression; what this excess is we cannot tell, but at least it must be something very unlike an impression.’ Poetry at the beginning of the book was asserted to be not simply an impression, ‘but an impression by its vividness exciting an involuntary movement of the imagination: now, you say it is the excess of the imagination beyond an impression; and you bring this as a proof of a contradiction in terms. An impression, by its vividness exciting a 398movement of the imagination, you discover, must be something very unlike an impression, and as to the imagination itself, you cannot tell what it is; it is an unknown power in your poetical creed. What is most extraordinary is, that you had quoted the very passage which you here represent as a total contradiction to the latter, only two pages before. What, Sir, do you think of your readers? What must they think of you!—‘Though the total want of meaning,’ you add, ‘is the weightiest objection to such writing, yet the abuse which it involves of particular words and phrases’ (in addition to a total want of meaning) ‘is very remarkable,’ (it must be so,) ‘and will not be overlooked by those who are aware of the inseparable connexion between justness of thought and precision of language.’ (You are not aware that there is no precise measure of thought or expression.) ‘What, in strict reasoning, can be meant by the impression of a feeling?’ (The impression which it makes on the mind, as distinct from some other to which it gives birth, is what I meant.) ‘How can actual and ordinary be used as synonymous?’ (They are not.) ‘Every impression must be an actual impression’; (there is then no such thing as an imaginary impression;) ‘and the use of that epithet annihilates the limitations which Mr. Hazlitt meant’ (in the total want of all meaning,) ‘to guard his proposition.’ We must speak by the card, or equivocation will undo us. You say, ‘you have not the faintest conception of what I mean by the heavenly bodies returning on the squares of the distances or on Dr. Chalmers’s Discourses.’ Nor will I tell you what I meant. A knavish speech sleeps in a fool’s ear. ‘As to the assertion that there can never be another Jacob’s dream, we see no reason why dreams should be scientific.’ Shakespear says, that dreams ‘denote a foregone conclusion.’ You quote what I say of Swift, and misrepresent it. ‘Mr. Hazlitt’s doctrine, therefore, is, that the inability to become mad, is very likely to drive a man mad.’ My doctrine is, that the inability to get rid of a favourite idea, when constantly thwarted, or of the impression of any object, however painful, merely because it is true, is likely to drive a man mad. It is this tenaciousness on a particular point that almost always destroys the general coherence of the understanding. I do not say that the inability to get rid of the distinction between right and wrong continued in Swift’s mind after he was mad—I say it contributed to drive him mad. I mean that a sense of great injustice often produces madness in individual cases, and that a strong sense of general injustice, and an abstracted view of human nature such as it is, compared with what it ought to be, is likely to produce the same effect in a mind like that of the author of Gulliver’s Travels. Do you understand yet? You do not go into 399my general character of Swift, which might have drawn you into something of a wider field of speculation; and you pick out a straggling sentence or two to cavil at in my account of Pope, of Chaucer, of Milton, and Shakespear, on which you are glad to discharge the gall that has been accumulating in your mind for several pages. If you think by this means, to put me or the public out of conceit with my writings, you have mistaken the matter entirely. You can only put down my arguments by meeting them fairly, or my style, by writing better than you do.
You claim that I reach a number of extravagant conclusions using "sufficiently simple and common" means. He uses the term poetry in three different ways, and his trick is to swap one meaning for another. Sometimes it refers to a broad category of works, like when he states that poetry is more serious than history. Second, it signifies the ability to create these works, and in this sense, he describes poetry as that fine part within us that creates a sense of lightness, expansion, elevation, and purification. [This is Mr. Gifford’s academic style, not mine.] Third, it refers to the topics these works address. He uses the term in this way when he says that everything worth remembering in life is its poetry; that fear is poetry, that hope is poetry, that love is poetry; and in the same way, he might claim that fear is sculpture and painting and music; that Verres' crimes are Cicero's eloquence, and Milton's poetry is Mr. Hazlitt’s criticism. True, I have used the word poetry in the three senses you've attributed to me because it has these three distinct meanings in English, meaning the work produced, the mindset or ability that creates it, and, sometimes, the subject that evokes that mindset. Your objection boils down to the claim that when reasoning about a complex issue, I write in plain English, and that this is the secret behind my supposed extravagance and confusion. Do you really think that distinguishing between the various forms of poetry, the talent for poetry, or the subject matter of poetry would clarify what poetry is? This is your argument, or else you have no argument at all. I've specifically addressed the topic according to this very division, aiming to define the common thread that connects these different interpretations and guides us in using the same common term, which is an unusual vividness in external objects or in our immediate impressions, triggering imaginative movement in the mind and naturally leading to harmony of sound and meter in expressing that. This is something you, Sir, cannot grasp. I couldn't "assert in the same sense that fear is sculpture and painting," because that would misuse the English language: we discuss the poetry of painting, etc., which wouldn't be the case if poetry were limited to the technical definition of "lines in ten syllables." While I agree that Verres' crimes aren't the same as Cicero's eloquence, I suspect you confuse the crimes of revolutionary France with Mr. Pitt’s speeches; and regarding Milton’s poetry and my criticisms, there’s almost as much difference between them as there is between Milton’s poetry and your verses. You state, "the main subjects of poetry are the passions and feelings of people; we're all influenced by our passions and feelings, meaning, in Mr. Hazlitt’s new terminology, we all operate based on the principles of poetry, and in truth, we're all poets. We all use our muscles and limbs, so we are anatomists and surgeons; we have teeth that we use for chewing, so we are dentists," etc. Not at all; we are all poets in that we are influenced by our passions and imagination, meaning we share certain common feelings and go through the same cognitive processes as the poet, who merely articulates in a unique way what all of us feel; however, by using our muscles, we don't dissect them; and in chewing with our teeth, we don't act as dentists, etc. There's nothing comparable in these cases. "You anticipate," you say, "these brilliant conclusions for me," while failing to see the distinction between extending a logical principle and misusing everyday language. You continue, "As another example of his definitions, we can take the following. 'Poetry does not define the boundaries of sense, nor does it analyze the distinctions of understanding, but signifies the excess of the imagination beyond the actual or ordinary impression of any object or feeling.'" Poetry was initially defined in the book as an impression; now it is described as the excess of imagination beyond an impression; we don’t know what this excess is, but it must be something very different from an impression. Poetry was established at the beginning of the book not merely as an impression, "but an impression that excites an involuntary imaginative movement through its vividness": now you claim it is the "excess of the imagination beyond an impression"; you present this as proof of a contradiction. An impression, by its vividness provoking an imaginative movement, you assert, must be something very unlike an impression, and regarding the imagination itself, you can’t figure out what it is; to you, it’s an unknown force in your poetic belief system. What’s most surprising is that you quoted the very passage that you now say contradicts the latter, just two pages earlier. What, Sir, do you think of your readers? What must they think of you?—"Though the total lack of meaning," you add, "is the most significant issue with such writing, still the abuse of particular words and phrases" (in addition to the total lack of meaning) "is very notable," (and it must be,) "and will not be overlooked by those who recognize the essential link between clarity of thought and precision of language." (You’re not aware that there’s no exact measure for thought or expression.) "What, in strict reasoning, can be meant by the impression of a feeling?" (I meant the impression it leaves on the mind, distinct from another it creates.) "How can actual and ordinary be used interchangeably?" (They can’t.) "Every impression must be an actual impression"; (therefore, there’s no such thing as an imaginary impression;) "and using that term negates the limits Mr. Hazlitt intended" (in the total lack of any meaning) "to protect his proposition." We must speak clearly, or ambiguity will trip us up. You state, "you have no idea what I mean by the heavenly bodies returning on the squares of the distances or Dr. Chalmers’s Discourses." Nor will I explain what I meant. A deceptive speech sounds foolish to a fool. "Regarding the claim that there can never be another Jacob’s dream, I see no reason why dreams shouldn’t be scientific." Shakespeare states that dreams "indicate a foregone conclusion." You quote my remarks about Swift and misrepresent them. "Mr. Hazlitt's doctrine, therefore, is that the inability to go insane is very likely to drive a man insane." My stance is that the inability to rid oneself of a persistent idea, especially when consistently opposed, or of the impression of any object, no matter how distressing, just because it's true, is likely to drive a person mad. This stubbornness on a single issue usually disrupts the overall coherence of understanding. I don’t say that not being able to distinguish between right and wrong remained in Swift's mind after he became mad—I state it contributed to his madness. I mean that a strong sense of injustice often leads to madness in individual cases, and that a deep sense of general injustice, along with an abstract perspective of human nature as it is, compared to what it should be, is likely to have the same effect on a mind like that of the author of Gulliver’s Travels. Do you understand now? You fail to consider my broader characterization of Swift, which could have opened up a wider field of exploration; instead, you cherry-pick a couple of sentences to criticize in my reviews of Pope, Chaucer, Milton, and Shakespeare, where you happily release the resentment that has been building in your mind for several pages. If you think this will make either me or the public lose faith in my writing, you’ve completely misunderstood. You can only dismiss my arguments by confronting them directly, or criticize my style by writing better than you do.
‘We occasionally,’ you proceed, ‘discover a faint semblance of connected thinking in Mr. Hazlitt’s pages; but wherever this is the case, his reasoning is for the most part incorrect.’ This is a curious inference. ‘This faint semblance of connected thinking,’ is, it appears, when I maintain some opinion, which is ‘a sprout from some popular doctrine’; but if I push it a little farther than you were aware of, my reasoning becomes incorrect. Thus it has been a popular doctrine with some critics, (which yet you do not admit)—‘That the progress of science is unfavourable to the culture of the imagination. It is no doubt true, that the individual who devotes his labour to the investigation of abstract truth, must acquire habits of thought very different from those which the exercise of the fancy demands.’ You add in italics, ‘the cause lies in the exclusive appropriation of his time to reasoning, and not in the logical accuracy with which he reasons.’ Whenever I have any discovery to communicate, which I think you cannot comprehend, I will in future put it in italics, to make it equally profound and clear. It appears by you, that the incompatibility between the successful pursuit of different studies does not arise from anything incompatible in the studies themselves, but from the time devoted to each. The mind is equally incapacitated from passing from one to the other, whether they are the most opposite or the most alike. The dreams of alchemy, and the schemes of astrology, the traditional belief in the doctrine of ghosts and fairies, though made up almost entirely of imagination, self-will, superstition and romance, were not a jot more favourable to the caprices and fanciful exaggerations of poetry, either in the public mind, or in that of individuals, than the modern system which excludes (both by the logical accuracy with which it proceeds, and a constant appeal to demonstrable facts), every alloy of passion, and all exercise of the imagination. You should never put your thoughts in italics. If I were to attempt a character of verbal critics, I should be apt to say, that their habits of mind disqualify them for general reasoning or fair discussion: that they are furious about trifles, because they have nothing else to interest them; that they have no way of giving 400dignity to their insignificant discoveries, but by treating those who have missed them with contempt; that they are dogmatical and conceited, in proportion as they have little else to guide them in their quaint researches but caprice and accident; that the want of intellectual excitement gives birth to increasing personal irritability, and endless petty altercation. You, Sir, would make all this self-evident, by the help of italics, and say, that the cause lies not in anything in the nature of verbal criticism, but the exclusive appropriation of their time to it.
‘Sometimes,’ you continue, ‘we find a slight hint of connected thinking in Mr. Hazlitt’s writing; but wherever this happens, his reasoning is mostly wrong.’ That’s an interesting conclusion. ‘This slight hint of connected thinking,’ seems to occur when I hold some opinion that stems from a popular idea; but if I take it a step further than you expected, my reasoning turns out to be incorrect. There’s a common view among some critics, which you don’t accept—‘That the advancement of science hinders the development of imagination. It’s certainly true that someone who dedicates their effort to uncovering abstract truths will develop thought patterns very different from those required for creativity.’ You emphasize, ‘the cause lies in the exclusive use of their time for reasoning, and not in the logical accuracy of their reasoning.’ Whenever I have a discovery to share that I think you might not grasp, I will now put it in italics to make it seem both deep and clear. According to you, the inability to successfully balance different studies doesn’t come from any conflict within the studies themselves, but from the time spent on each one. The mind struggles to switch from one to the other, whether they are totally different or quite similar. The pursuits of alchemy and astrology, along with the traditional beliefs in ghosts and fairies, while largely based on imagination, stubbornness, superstition, and fantasy, had no greater influence on the whims and exaggerated creativity of poetry—either in the public perception or in individuals—than the modern systems that, through logical precision and a reliance on verifiable facts, remove any element of passion and all expressions of imagination. You should never italicize your thoughts. If I were to characterize verbal critics, I might say that their mindset disqualifies them from general reasoning or fair debate: they obsess over trivial matters because they lack anything else to engage them; they have no way to elevate their trivial findings except by looking down on those who overlook them; they are dogmatic and arrogant, especially when their peculiar research relies largely on randomness and personal whims; and the lack of intellectual stimulation leads to rising personal irritability and endless minor disputes. You, Sir, would make all this obvious, using italics, and claim that the cause lies not in the nature of verbal criticism itself, but in the exclusive dedication of their time to it.
You next run foul of my account of the pleasure derived from tragedy. You are afraid to understand what I say on any subject, and it is not therefore likely you should ever detect what is erroneous in it. I have shewn by a reference to facts, and to the authority of Mr. Burke (whom you would rather contradict than believe me) that the objects which are supposed to please only in fiction, please in reality; that ‘if there were known to be a public execution of some state criminal in the next street, the theatre would soon be empty’—that therefore the pleasure derived from tragedy is not anything peculiar to it, as poetry or fiction; but has its ground in the common love of strong excitement. You say, I have misstated the fact, to give a false view of the question, which, according to you, is ‘why that which is painful in itself, pleases in works of fiction.’ I answer, I have shewn that this is not a fair statement of the question, by stating the fact, that what is painful in itself, pleases not the sufferer indeed, but the spectator, in reality as well as in works of fiction. The common proverb proves it—‘What is sport to one, is death to another.’
You next run into my explanation of the pleasure we get from tragedy. You’re hesitant to really understand what I say about anything, so it’s unlikely you’ll ever catch what’s wrong with it. I’ve shown, by referring to facts and to the authority of Mr. Burke (whom you’d prefer to contradict rather than believe), that things believed to be enjoyable only in fiction can also be enjoyable in real life; that ‘if there were a public execution of a state criminal in the next street, the theater would quickly be empty’—therefore, the pleasure from tragedy isn’t something unique to it, like poetry or fiction; it’s rooted in our shared love of intense excitement. You say I’ve misrepresented the fact to create a misleading view of the issue, which you say is ‘why something painful in itself brings pleasure in works of fiction.’ I respond that I’ve shown this isn’t a fair representation of the question by pointing out that what’s painful for the suffering person doesn’t please them, but pleases the onlooker, both in reality and in fiction. The common saying proves it—‘What is sport to one, is death to another.’
You observe, that ‘Some lines I have quoted from Chaucer, are very pleasing—
You notice that "Some lines I've quoted from Chaucer are really nice—
‘But surely the beauty does not lie in the last line, though it is with this that Mr. Hazlitt is chiefly struck. “This scrupulousness” he observes, “about the literal preference, as if some question of matter of fact were at issue, is remarkable.”’
‘But surely the beauty isn't found in the last line, even if that’s what Mr. Hazlitt focuses on the most. “This attention to detail” he notes, “about the literal preference, as if some matter of fact were at stake, is noteworthy.”’
That is, I am not chiefly struck with the beauty of the last line, but with its peculiarity as characteristic of Chaucer. The beauty of the former lines might be in Spenser: the scrupulous exactness of the latter could be found nowhere but in Chaucer. I had said just before, that this poet ‘introduces a sentiment or a simile, as if it were 401given in upon evidence.’ I bring this simile as an instance in point, and you say I have not brought it to prove something else.
I'm not primarily impressed by the beauty of the last line, but by its uniqueness that reflects Chaucer. The beauty of the earlier lines could belong to Spenser, but the meticulous precision of the last line is something you would only find in Chaucer. I mentioned earlier that this poet "introduces a sentiment or a simile as if it were based on evidence." I use this simile as an example, and you argue that I haven't used it to prove something else.
You charge me with misrepresenting Longinus, and prove that I have not. The word ἐναγώνιον signifies not as you are pleased to paraphrase it ‘vehemently energetic,’ but simply ‘full of contests.’ Must the Greek language be new-fangled, to prove that I am ignorant of it?
You accuse me of misrepresenting Longinus, but you haven't proved that I have. The word trial does not mean, as you like to paraphrase it, ‘vehemently energetic,’ but rather just ‘full of contests.’ Does the Greek language need to be trendy for you to prove that I lack knowledge of it?
The only mistake you are able to point out, is a slip of the pen, which you will find to have been corrected long ago in the second edition.—Your pretending to say that Dr. Johnson was an admirer of Milton’s blank verse, is not a slip of the pen—you know he was not. There is as little sincerity in your concluding paragraph. You would ascribe what little appearance of thought there is in my writings to a confusion of images, and what appearance there is of imagination to a gaudy phraseology. If I had neither words nor ideas, I should be a profound philosopher and critic. How fond you are of reducing every one else to your own standard of excellence!
The only mistake you can point out is just a typo, which has already been corrected in the second edition. Saying that Dr. Johnson admired Milton’s blank verse isn’t a typo—you know he didn’t. There’s just as little honesty in your final paragraph. You would attribute what little thought there is in my writing to a mix-up of images, and any hint of imagination to flashy language. If I had neither words nor ideas, I’d be a deep philosopher and critic. You’re so eager to make everyone else meet your own standard of excellence!
I have done what I promised. You complain of the difficulty of remembering what I write; possibly this Letter will prove an exception. There is a train of thought in your own mind, which will connect the links together: and before you again undertake to run down a writer for no other reason, than that he is of an opposite party to yourself, you will perhaps recollect that your wilful artifices and shallow cunning, though they pass undetected, will hardly screen you from your own contempt, nor, when once exposed, will the gratitude of your employers save you from public scorn.
I’ve done what I said I would. You keep saying it’s hard to remember what I write; maybe this letter will be different. There’s a line of thought in your own mind that will connect the pieces: and before you go after a writer just because he’s on the opposite side of the political spectrum, you might remember that your deliberate tricks and shallow cleverness, even if they go unnoticed, won’t really protect you from your own disdain, and once it’s revealed, the gratitude of your employers won’t shield you from public ridicule.
Your conduct to me is no new thing: it is part of a system which has been regularly followed up for many years. Mr. Coleridge, in his Literary Life, has the following passage to shew the treatment which he and his friends received from your predecessor, the editor of the Anti-Jacobin Review.—‘I subjoin part of a note from the Beauties of the Anti-Jacobin, in which having previously informed the public that I had been dishonoured at Cambridge for preaching Deism, at a time when for my youthful ardour in defence of Christianity I was decried as a bigot by the proselytes of French philosophy, the writer concludes with these words—“Since this time he has left his native country, commenced citizen of the world, left his poor children fatherless, and his wife destitute. Ex hoc disce his friends, Lamb and Southey.” With severest truth,’ continues Mr. Coleridge, ‘it may be asserted that it would not be easy to select two men more exemplary in their domestic affections than those whose names were thus printed at full length, as in the same rank of morals with a denounced infidel and fugitive, who had left his children fatherless, and his wife 402destitute! Is it surprising that many good men remained longer than perhaps they otherwise would have done, adverse to a party which encouraged and openly rewarded the authors of such atrocious calumnies?’
Your behavior towards me is nothing new; it's part of a pattern that's been consistently followed for many years. Mr. Coleridge, in his Literary Life, includes this passage to highlight the treatment he and his friends received from your predecessor, the editor of the Anti-Jacobin Review. —‘I add a part of a note from the Beauties of the Anti-Jacobin, where the writer mentions that I had been disgraced at Cambridge for preaching Deism, during a time when my youthful enthusiasm in defending Christianity led me to be labeled a bigot by the followers of French philosophy. The writer concludes with these words—“Since this time he has left his native country, become a citizen of the world, left his poor children fatherless, and his wife destitute. From this, learn. his friends, Lamb and Southey.” With the utmost truth,’ Mr. Coleridge continues, ‘it is not easy to find two men more devoted to their families than those whose names were printed alongside a condemned infidel and fugitive, who abandoned his children and left his wife 402 destitute! Is it surprising that many good men stayed loyal to a party that supported and openly rewarded the authors of such vicious lies?’
With me, I confess, the wonder does not lie there:—all I am surprised at is, that the objects of these atrocious calumnies were ever reconciled to the authors of them and their patrons. Doubtless, they had powerful arts of conversion in their hands, who could with impunity and in triumph take away by atrocious calumnies the characters of all who disdained to be their tools; and rewarded with honours, places, and pensions all those who were. It is in this manner, Sir, that some of my old friends have become your new allies and associates.—They have changed sides, not I; and the proof that I have been true to the original ground of quarrel is, that I have you against me. Your consistency is the undeniable pledge of their tergiversation. The instinct of self-interest and meanness of servility are infallible and safe; it is speculative enthusiasm and disinterested love of public good, that being the highest strain of humanity, are apt to falter, and ‘dying, make a swan-like end.’ This tendency to change was, in the case of our poetical reformists, precipitated by another cause. The spirit of poetry is, as I believe, favourable to liberty and humanity, but not when its aid is most wanted, in encountering the shocks and disappointments of the world. Poetry may be described as having the range of the universe; it traverses the empyrean, and looks down on nature from a higher sphere. When it lights upon the earth, it loses some of its dignity and its use. Its strength is in its wings; its element is the air. Standing on its feet, jostling with the crowd, it is liable to be overthrown, trampled on, and defaced; for its wings are of a dazzling brightness, ‘sky-tinctured,’ and the least soil upon them shews to disadvantage. Sullied, degraded as I have seen it, I shall not here insult over it, but leave it to Time to take out the stains, seeing it is a thing immortal as itself. ‘Being so majestical, I should do it wrong to offer it but the shew of violence.’—The reason why I have not changed my principles with some of the persons here alluded to, is, that I had a natural inveteracy of understanding which did not bend to fortune or circumstances. I was not a poet, but a metaphysician; and I suspect that the conviction of an abstract principle is alone a match for the prejudices of absolute power. The love of truth is the best foundation for the love of liberty. In this sense, I might have repeated—
With me, I admit, the surprise isn’t really there: what amazes me is that the targets of these terrible slanders ever made peace with their creators and supporters. Surely, they had powerful methods of persuasion, able to take down the reputations of anyone who refused to be their puppets, while rewarding those who complied with honors, positions, and pensions. This is how some of my old friends have turned into your new allies and partners. They have switched sides, not me; and the evidence that I have remained true to the original cause for our disagreement is that I have you opposing me. Your consistency is the undeniable proof of their flip-flopping. The drive for self-interest and the weakness of servility are reliable and safe; it’s speculative passion and an unselfish love for the public good—being the highest form of humanity—that tend to waver and “dying, make a swan-like end.” This tendency to shift was, in the case of our poetic reformers, accelerated by another reason. The spirit of poetry, I believe, supports liberty and humanity, but not when it is most needed, facing the shocks and letdowns of the world. Poetry can be seen as having the capacity of the universe; it navigates the heavens and gazes down on nature from a higher place. When it touches the earth, it loses some of its dignity and purpose. Its power lies in its wings; its natural environment is the air. When it stands on its feet, mixing with the crowd, it risks being knocked over, trampled, and damaged; for its wings are dazzlingly bright, “sky-tinted,” and even the slightest blemish shows up poorly. Soiled and degraded as I’ve seen it, I won’t deride it now, but leave it to Time to remove the stains, since it is as immortal as itself. “Being so majestic, I would wrong it to subject it to mere violence.” The reason I haven’t changed my principles like some of the people mentioned here is that I possess an inherent stubbornness of understanding that doesn’t yield to luck or circumstances. I’m not a poet, but a metaphysician; and I believe that the conviction of an abstract principle is the only thing that can stand up to the prejudices of absolute power. The love of truth is the best basis for the love of liberty. In this sense, I could have repeated—
403Besides, I had another reason. I owed something to truth, for she had done something for me. Early in life I had made (what I thought) a metaphysical discovery; and after that, it was too late to think of retracting. My pride forbad it: my understanding revolted at it. I could not do better than go on as I had begun. I too, worshipped at no unhallowed shrine, and served in no mean presence. I had laid my hand on the ark, and could not turn back! I have been called ‘a writer of third-rate books.’ For myself, there is no work of mine which I should rate so high, except one, which I dare say you never heard of—An Essay on the Principles of Human Action. I do not think the worse of it on that account; nor though you might not be able to understand it, could you attribute this to the gaudiness of the phraseology, nor the want of thought. I will here, Sir, explain the nature of the argument as clearly and in as few words as I can.
403 Besides, I had another reason. I owed something to the truth, because it had done something for me. Early in life, I made what I thought was a metaphysical discovery; and after that, it was too late to backtrack. My pride wouldn't allow it, and my understanding rejected the idea. I couldn't do anything better than continue as I had started. I too, didn't worship at any disrespectful shrine, and I served in no unworthy presence. I had touched the ark, and I couldn’t turn back! I've been called ‘a writer of third-rate books.’ Personally, I don't think any of my works are that high, except for one, which I bet you've never heard of—An Essay on the Principles of Human Action. I don't think less of it for that, and even if you can't grasp it, you couldn't blame that on the flashy wording or a lack of thought. Here, Sir, I will explain the nature of the argument as clearly and concisely as I can.
The object of that Essay (and I have written this Letter partly to introduce it through you to the notice of the reader) is to leave free play to the social affections, and to the cultivation of the more disinterested and generous principles of our nature, by removing a stumbling-block which has been thrown in their way, and which turns the very idea of virtue or humanity into a fable, viz. the metaphysical doctrine of the innate and necessary selfishness of the human mind. Do you understand so far? The question I propose to examine is not the practical question, how far man is more or less selfish or social in the actual sum-total of his habits and affections, nor the moral or political question, to what degree of perfection he can be advanced still further in the one, or weaned from the other; but my intention is to state and answer the previous question, whether there is, as it has been contended, a total incapacity and physical impossibility in the human mind, of feeling an interest in anything beyond itself, so that both the common feelings of compassion, natural affection, friendship, etc. and the more refined and abstracted ones of the love of justice, of country, or of kind, are, and must be a delusion, believed in only by fools, and turned to their advantage by knaves. This doctrine which has been sedulously and confidently maintained by the French and English metaphysicians of the two last centuries, by Hobbes, Mandeville, Rochefoucault, Helvetius and others, and is a principal corner-stone of what is called the modern philosophy, I think tends to, and has done a great deal of mischief, and I believe I have found out a view of the subject, which gets rid of it unanswerably and for ever, in manner and form following. I conceive, that to establish the doctrine of exclusive and absolute selfishness on a metaphysical basis, that is to say, on the original and impassable distinction of the faculties of the human 404mind, it is necessary to make it appear, that there is some peculiar and abstracted principle which gives it an immediate, mechanical, and irresistible interest in whatever relates to itself, and which by the same rule shuts out and is a bar to the very possibility of our feeling not an equal, but any kind or degree of interest whatever, at any moment of our lives, in the history and fate of others. This is so far from being true, that the contrary is demonstrable. Thus, Sir, My self-interest in anything signifies (by the statement) the particular manner in which whatever relates to myself affects me, so as to create an anxiety about it, and be a motive to action. Now the same word, self, is indifferently applied to the whole of my being, past, present, and to come; and it is supposed from the use of language and the habitual association of ideas, that this self is one thing as well as one word, and my interest in it all along the same necessary, identical interest. That a man must love himself as such, seems a self-evident and simple proposition. The idea appears like an absolute truth, and resists every attempt at analysis, like an element in nature. Some persons, who formerly took the pains to read this work, imagined (do not be alarmed, Sir!) that I wanted to argue them out of their own existence, merely because I endeavoured to define the nature and meaning of this word, self; to take in pieces, by metaphysical aid, this fine illusion of the brain and forgery of language, and to shew what there is real, and what false in it. The word denotes, by common consent, three different selves, my past, my present, and my future self. Now it is taken for granted by some, and insisted upon by others, that I must have the same unavoidable interest in all these, because they are all equally myself. But that is impossible; for in truth my personal identity is founded only on my personal consciousness, and that does not extend beyond the present moment.—It must be maintained, on the other side of the question, that my past, my present, and my future self are inseparably linked together, equally identified by an intimate communion of transferable thoughts and feelings in one metaphysical principle of self-interest, before they can be equally myself, the same identical thing, to any purpose of sentiment or for any motive of action. It will easily be seen how far this is the case, and how far it is not. I have a peculiar, exclusive self-interest or sympathy (never mind the word, Sir,) with my present self, by means of sensation (or consciousness), and with my past self, by means of memory, which I have not, and cannot have with the past or present feelings or interests of others; for this reason that these faculties are exclusive, peculiar, and confined to myself. But I have no exclusive, or peculiar, or independent faculty, like sensation or memory, giving me the same absolute, 405unavoidable, instinctive interest in my own future sensations, and none at all in those of others. This ideal self is then nominally the same, but strictly different; composed of distinct and unequal parts; bound together by laws and principles which have no parity of relation to each other. By shewing how personal identity produces self-interest as far as it goes, we shall see exactly when and how it ceases.—If I touch a burning coal, this gives me a present sensation differing in kind and degree from any impression I can receive from the same sensation being inflicted on another: there is no communication between another’s nerves and my brain producing a correspondent jar and magnetic sympathy of frame. Again, if I have suffered a pain of this sort in time past, this leaves traces in my mind, by my continued identity with myself, or by means of memory, of a kind totally distinct from any conception I can form of the same pain inflicted a year ago (for instance) on another. These two important faculties then give me an appropriate and exclusive interest only in what happens or has happened to myself. So far as the operation of these two faculties goes, I am strictly a selfish being, I am necessarily cut off from all knowledge of or sympathy with the feelings of any one but myself. But if I am to undergo a certain pain at a future time, the next year or the next moment, however near or remote, I have no faculty impressing this feeling intuitively and with mechanical force and certainty on my mind beforehand, as my present or past impressions are stamped upon it by means of sensation and memory. I have no principle of thought or sentiment in the original conformation of my mind, projecting me forward into my future being, giving me a present unavoidable consciousness of it, and removed from all cognisance of what happens to others; I have no faculty identifying my future interests inseparably with my present feelings, and therefore I have no exclusive, mechanical and proper self-interest in them, merely because they are mine: for that which is mine, is that which touches me by secret springs, and in a way in which what relates to others can take no hold of me. The only faculty by which I can anticipate what is to befal myself in future, is the same common and disposable faculty in kind and in mode of operation, by which I can, I do, and must anticipate in degree, and more or less according to circumstances, the feelings and thoughts of others, and take a proportionable interest in them, viz. the Imagination. To suppose that there is a principle of self-interest in the mind, without a faculty of self-interest, is an absurdity and a contradiction. This idea of an abstract, exclusive, metaphysical self-interest in my own being generally, is taken (by a gross and blind prejudice) from the manner in which the faculties of sensation and memory affect me, and applied 406to a part of my being, where I have no such interest in myself, because I have no such faculty giving it me. What proves that there is no mechanical sympathy identifying my future with my present being, is, that I am for the most part, indifferent to, ignorant of what is to happen to myself hereafter. There is no presentiment in the case. If the house is about to fall on my head, this occasions no uneasiness to my self-love, unless there are circumstances to alarm my imagination beforehand. To suppose, that besides the ideal or rational interest I have in the event, I have another real metaphysical interest in it, without object or consciousness, is as if I should say, that I have a particular interest in the past, without remembering it, or in the present without feeling it.—But the future is the only subject of action, that is, of a practical or rational interest at all, either of self-love or benevolence. All voluntary action, that is, all action undertaken with a view to produce a certain event or the contrary, must relate to the future. The primary, essential motive of the volition of anything must be the idea of that thing, and the idea solely. For the thing itself, which is the object of desire and pursuit, is by the supposition a nonentity. It is willed for that very reason, that it is supposed not to exist. If it did exist, or had existed, it would be absurd to will it to exist or not to exist; and as a thing which does not exist, but which we will to be or not to be, it is a mere fiction of the mind, and can exert no power over the thoughts, nor influence the will or the affections in any way, except through the imagination. The future, whether as it relates to myself or others, exists only in the mind; and in the mind, not by memory, not by sensation, which are exclusive and selfish faculties, but by the imagination, which is not a limited, narrow faculty, but common, discursive, and social. If my sympathy with others is not a sensible substantial mechanical interest, neither is my self-interest anything but an imaginary and ideal one, I am bound to my future interest only by the same fine links of fancy and reason, which give that of others a hold on my affections. As a voluntary agent, I am necessarily, and in the first instance, that is, in the metaphysical sense of the question, a disinterested one. I could not love myself, if I were not so formed, as to be capable of loving others. I have no solid, material, gross, actual self-interest in my own future welfare, and I therefore can only have the same airy, notional, hypothetical interest in it, which I must have in kind, though not in degree, in the pleasures and pains of others, which I get at the knowledge of and sympathise with in the same way. There is then no exclusive ground of self-interest, incompatible with sympathy, and rendering it a chimera; self-love and sympathy both rest on the same general ground of reason, of 407imagination, and of common sense.—It may be said, that my own future interests have a reality beyond the mere idea. So have the interests of others, and the only question is, whether the sympathy, the motive to action, is not equally imaginary in both cases. It may be said, that I shall become my future self, but that is no reason why I should take a particular interest in it till I do. If a pin pricks me in any part of my body, I am instantly apprised of it, and feel an interest in removing it; but my future self does not find any means of apprising me of its sensations, in which I can feel no interest, except from previous apprehension. Lastly, it may be said that I do feel an interest in myself and my future welfare, which I do not, and cannot feel in that of others. This I grant; but that does not prove a metaphysical antecedent self-interest, precluding the possibility of all interest in others, (for the social affections are as much a matter of fact, as the influence of self-love) but a practical self-interest, arising out of habit and circumstances, and more or less consistent with other disinterested and humane feelings, according to habit, opinion, and circumstances. I love myself better than my neighbour, for the same reason (and for no other) that I love my child better than a stranger’s—from having my thoughts more fixed upon its welfare, my time more taken up in providing for it, and from my knowing better by experience, what its wants and wishes are. People have accounted for natural affection as an innate idea, as they have for self-love. According to the metaphysical doctrine of selfishness, my own child or a stranger’s, and every one else, are equally and perfectly indifferent to me, as much as if they were mere machines. As to a paramount universal abstract notion of personal identity, impelling and overruling all my actions, thoughts, feelings, etc. to one sole object, and centre of self-interest, there is no such thing in nature. It requires almost as much pains and discipline, to make us attentive to our own real and permanent happiness, as to that of others. Is it not the constant theme of moralists and divines, that man is the sport of impulse, and the creature of habit? I would ask, whether the convivialist is deterred from indulging in his love of the bottle, by any consideration of the ruin of his health or business? Is the debauchee restrained in the career of his passions, any more by reflecting on the disgrace or probable diseases he is bringing on himself, than on the injury he does to others? It would be as hard a task to make the spendthrift prudent, as the miser generous. Man is governed by his passions, and not by his interest.—The selfish theory is founded on mixing up vulgar prejudices, and scholastic distinctions; and by being insisted on, tends to debase the mind, and not at all promote the cause of truth.
The purpose of that essay (and I'm writing this letter partly to share it with you for the reader's attention) is to allow the social feelings to flourish and to nurture the more selfless and generous aspects of our nature by removing an obstacle that's been placed in their path, which turns the very concept of virtue or humanity into a myth: the metaphysical idea of inherent and necessary selfishness in the human mind. Do you understand so far? The question I plan to explore is not the practical matter of how selfish or social a person is in terms of their overall habits and feelings, nor the moral or political concern about how much further someone can be pushed toward one or the other; rather, I aim to address the prior question of whether there is, as claimed, a complete incapacity and physical impossibility in the human mind to feel interested in anything beyond itself. This would mean that both everyday feelings of compassion, natural affection, friendship, and more refined, abstract feelings like love of justice, country, or kind are merely illusions, believed only by fools and taken advantage of by tricksters. This idea, which has been confidently pushed by French and English philosophers over the last two centuries, including Hobbes, Mandeville, Rochefoucauld, Helvetius, and others, serves as a fundamental basis of what is called modern philosophy. I believe it leads to and has caused a lot of harm, and I think I've developed a perspective on the subject that effectively dismantles it once and for all, as follows. To establish the idea of exclusive and absolute selfishness on a metaphysical level, it must be shown that there is some unique and abstract principle that gives it an immediate, mechanical, and undeniable interest in anything relating to itself, while simultaneously blocking any possibility of feeling even an equal interest, let alone any kind or degree of interest, in the history and fate of others at any moment in our lives. This is far from true; the opposite can be proven. Thus, my self-interest in anything basically reflects how what relates to me affects me, creating a concern about it, which serves as a motivation for action. The same word, "self," is used interchangeably for all of my being—past, present, and future—and it’s assumed based on language use and associations of ideas that this self is "one thing," as well as one word, with my interest in it being consistently the same necessary, identical interest. It seems self-evident that a person must love themselves, which appears as an absolute truth that resists any attempts at analysis, much like a fundamental element in nature. Some individuals who once took the time to read this work (don't worry, sir!) thought I was trying to argue them out of their own existence simply by attempting to define the nature and meaning of the term "self," breaking down this clever illusion of the mind and forgery of language to show what is real and what is false. The word denotes, by common agreement, three different selves: my past, my present, and my future self. Some people assume, and insist, that I must have the same unavoidable interest in all these selves because they are all equally me. But that's impossible; my personal identity is truly founded only on my personal awareness, which doesn’t extend beyond the present moment. On the other hand, it must be argued that my past, present, and future selves are inseparably linked together, identified by a close connection of transferable thoughts and feelings within a metaphysical principle of self-interest, before they can be considered equally me, the same identical thing, in terms of sentiment or motives for action. It will be easy to see how far this is the case, and how far it is not. I have a unique, exclusive self-interest or sympathy (don’t worry about the term, sir) with my present self, through sensation (or awareness), and with my past self, through memory, which I do not have—and cannot have—with the past or present feelings or interests of others, because these faculties are exclusive, unique, and limited to myself. However, I lack any exclusive, unique, or independent faculty, like sensation or memory, that gives me the same absolute, unavoidable, instinctive interest in my own future sensations, and none at all in those of others. This ideal self may nominally be the same, but it's strictly different; composed of distinct and unequal parts, held together by laws and principles that share no comparative relation to one another. By demonstrating how personal identity fosters self-interest where it applies, we will clearly see when and how it stops. If I touch a hot coal, that creates a present sensation that is different in kind and degree from any impression I might receive from the same sensation if it happened to someone else; there is no connection between someone else's nerves and my brain that produces a corresponding shock and magnetic sympathy in my body. Additionally, if I experienced pain of that sort in the past, it leaves traces in my mind—due to my ongoing identity with myself or through memory—of a type that is totally distinct from any conception I can form of the same pain inflicted a year ago (for instance) on someone else. These two significant faculties provide me with a designated and exclusive interest only in what happens or has happened to me. As far as the operation of these two faculties goes, I am strictly a selfish being, necessarily cut off from any knowledge or empathy with anyone's feelings but my own. However, if I’m set to experience a certain pain at some point in the future, whether it's next year or the next moment, regardless of how near or far away it is, I have no faculty that impresses this feeling intuitively and with mechanical force and certainty into my mind beforehand, as my current or past impressions are recorded through sensation and memory. I have no principle of thought or feeling in the original formation of my mind that projects me forward into my future being, providing me with an unavoidable present awareness of it while excluding any knowledge of what happens to others. I have no faculty that connects my future interests inseparably with my present feelings, so I thus have no exclusive, mechanical, and proper self-interest in them just because they are mine; what is "mine" touches me in profound ways that what relates to others simply cannot. The only faculty allowing me to anticipate what is going to happen to me in the future is the same general and flexible faculty, both in nature and in operation, that also allows me to anticipate to varying degrees, according to circumstances, the feelings and thoughts of others, granting me a proportional interest in them, which is the imagination. It is absurd to propose that there is a principle of self-interest in the mind without a corresponding faculty of self-interest. This notion of an abstract, exclusive, metaphysical self-interest in my being overall is taken—from a gross and blind bias—from the way that the faculties of sensation and memory impact me and is wrongly applied to a part of my being where I have no such interest in myself, simply because I lack a faculty that provides me with it. What proves that there is no mechanical connection linking my future with my present being is that, for the most part, I am indifferent to and unaware of what will happen to myself down the line. There is no premonition in this regard. If a house is about to collapse on me, it does not provoke any anxiety regarding my self-love unless some factors alarm my imagination first. To assume that, besides the ideal or rational interest I have in the event, I have another "real" metaphysical interest in it, without object or awareness, is as illogical as claiming that I have a specific interest in the past without remembering it or in the present without experiencing it. But the future is the only subject of action, meaning it holds the only practical or rational interest at all, whether that’s self-love or benevolence. All voluntary action—every action taken with the intention of creating a specific outcome or the opposite—must relate to the future. The primary, essential motive for wanting anything must be the "idea" of that thing, and only that idea. The thing itself, which is desired and sought after, is by definition nonexistent. It is wanted precisely because it’s presumed not to exist. If it existed or had existed, it would make no sense to want it to exist or not exist; and as something that does not exist, but is desired to be or not to be, it is merely a fiction of the mind, which can exert no influence over thoughts, nor affect the will or feelings in any way, except via the imagination. The future, whether it concerns myself or others, exists solely in the mind; and in the mind, not through memory or sensation—which are both exclusive and selfish faculties—but through the imagination, which is not a narrow, limited faculty, but rather a common, discursive, and social one. If my sympathy with others is not a tangible, substantial mechanical interest, neither is my self-interest anything but an imaginary and ideal one; I am connected to my future interests only through the same fine threads of imagination and reason that also give others a grip on my feelings. As a voluntary agent, I am necessarily, at least initially, in the metaphysical sense of the question, a disinterested one. I could not love myself if I were not also formed in a way that allows me to love others. I have no solid, material, actual self-interest in my future well-being, and thus I can only possess a similarly vague, theoretical, hypothetical interest in it, which I must also have, in kind but not degree, in the pleasures and pains of others that I perceive and empathize with in the same way. Therefore, there’s no exclusive foundation of self-interest that conflicts with sympathy, rendering it an illusion; both self-love and sympathy rest on the same general ground of reason, imagination, and common sense. It might be argued that my future interests have a reality beyond mere ideas. So do the interests of others, and the only question is whether the sympathy and motivations for action are equally fabricated in both situations. It might be argued that I will become my future self, but that doesn’t justify why I should take a special interest in it until I do. If a pin pricks me anywhere on my body, I’m immediately aware of it and feel the urge to remove it, but my future self has no way of alerting me to its feelings, in which I feel no interest except based on prior apprehension. Lastly, someone might say that I care about myself and my future well-being in a way that I don’t and can’t for others. I concede that; however, that does not establish a metaphysical self-interest that eliminates any opportunity for interest in others (because the social feelings are just as real as the effects of self-love) but rather indicates a practical self-interest that arises from habits and circumstances and is more or less compatible with other selfless and humane feelings depending on habits, opinions, and circumstances. I care for myself more than my neighbor for the same reason (and for no other) that I care more for my child than a stranger's—because I fixate my thoughts more intensely on its well-being, spend more time ensuring its needs are met, and know better, through experience, what it wants and needs. People have rationalized natural affection as an innate idea, just like they have for self-love. According to the philosophical doctrine of selfishness, my own child and a stranger, and everyone else, are equally and perfectly indifferent to me, as if they were mere machines. As for some supreme universal abstract concept of personal identity that drives and governs all my actions, thoughts, feelings, etc. toward one single objective and center of self-interest, such a thing does not exist in nature. It takes nearly as much effort and discipline to focus on our actual, lasting happiness as it does on that of others. Isn’t it often stated by moralists and clerics that humans are at the mercy of impulse and governed by habit? I would ask whether the social drinker is deterred from indulging in their passion for drinking by any thought of ruining their health or business? Is the debauched individual held back from pursuing their passions by the shame or possible diseases they may bring upon themselves any more than by the harm inflicted upon others? It would be just as hard to make the spendthrift wise as it would be to transform the miser into a generous person. Humans are driven by their passions, not by their interests. The selfish theory is founded on confusion between common prejudices and academic distinctions; its insistence tends to degrade the mind and does not promote the cause of truth at all.
408I do not think I should illustrate the foregoing reasoning so well by anything I could add on the subject, as by relating the manner in which it first struck me. I remember I had been reading a speech which Mirabaud (the author of the work, called the System of Nature) has put into the mouth of a supposed infidel at the day of Judgment; and was afterwards led on by some means or other, to consider the question, whether it could properly be said to be an act of virtue in any one to sacrifice his own final happiness to that of any other person, or number of persons, if it were possible for the one ever to be made the price of the other. Suppose it be my own case—that it were in my power to save twenty other persons, by voluntarily consenting to suffer for them, why should I not do a generous thing, and never trouble myself about what might be the consequences to myself thousands of years hence? Now the reason, I thought, why a man should prefer his own future welfare to that of others, was, that he has a necessary, or abstract interest in the one, which he cannot have in the other, and this again is the consequence of his being always the same individual, of his continued identity with himself. The distinction is this, that however insensible I may be to my own interest at any future period, yet when the time comes, I shall feel very differently about it. I shall then judge of it from the actual impression of the object, that is, truly and certainly; and as I shall still be conscious of my past feelings, and shall bitterly repent my own folly and insensibility, I ought, as a rational agent, to be determined now by what I shall then wish I had done, when I shall feel the consequences of my actions most deeply and sensibly. It is this continued consciousness of my own feelings which gives me an immediate interest in whatever relates to my future welfare, and makes me at all times accountable to myself for my own conduct. As therefore this consciousness will be renewed in me after death, if I exist again at all—But stop——As I must be conscious of my past feelings to be myself, and as this conscious being will be myself, how, if that consciousness should be transferred to some other being? How am I to know that I am not imposed upon by a false claim of identity? But that is impossible, because I shall have no other self than that which arises from this very consciousness. Why then, if so, this self may be multiplied in as many different beings as the Deity may think proper to endue with the same consciousness, which, if it can be renewed by an act of omnipotence in any one instance, may clearly be so in a hundred others. Am I to regard all these as equally myself? Am I equally interested in the fate of all? Or if I must fix upon some one of them in particular as my representative and other self, how am I to be determined in my choice?——Here then I 409saw an end to my speculations about absolute self-interest and personal identity. I saw plainly, that the consciousness of my own feelings, which is made the foundation of my continued interest in them, could not extend to what had never been, and might never be, that my identity with myself must be confined to the connection between my past and present being, that with respect to my future feelings and interests they could have no communication with, or influence over my present feelings and interests, merely because they were future, that I shall be hereafter affected by the recollection of my former feelings and actions, and my remorse be equally heightened by reflecting on my past folly, and late-earned wisdom, whether I am really the same thinking being, or have only the same consciousness renewed in me; but that to suppose that this remorse can re-act in the reverse order on my present feelings, or create an immediate interest in my future feelings before it exists, is an express contradiction. For, how can this pretended unity of consciousness which is only reflected from the past, which makes me so little acquainted with the future, that I cannot even tell for a moment how long it will be continued, whether it will be entirely interrupted by, or renewed in me after death, and which might be multiplied in I don’t know how many different beings, and prolonged by complicated sufferings, without my being any the wiser for it; how, I ask, can a principle of this sort transfuse my present into my future being, and make me as much a participator in what does not at all affect me as if it were actually impressed upon my senses? I cannot, therefore, have a principle of active self-interest arising out of the connexion between my future and present being, for no such connexion exists or is possible. I am what I am in spite of the future. My feelings, actions, and interests are determined by causes already existing and acting, and cannot depend on anything else, without a complete transposition of the order in which effects follow one another in nature.
408 I don’t think I can explain the reasoning I’ve shared better than by telling you how it first came to me. I remember I had been reading a speech written by Mirabaud (the author of the work called the System of Nature) that features a hypothetical non-believer at Judgment Day. This led me to think about whether it’s truly virtuous for someone to sacrifice their own happiness for that of another person—or multiple people—if it’s possible for one to be the price of the other. Take my own situation as an example: if I could save twenty other people by willingly suffering for them, why shouldn’t I do something generous and not worry about the consequences for myself thousands of years later? The reasoning I came across was that a person might prefer their own future well-being over that of others because they have a personal, inherent interest in their own welfare that doesn’t apply to anyone else. This comes from being the same individual and maintaining a continuous identity. The key distinction is that, even if I’m indifferent to my own future interests now, I will feel very differently when the time comes. At that point, I’ll evaluate my situation based on the real, immediate impact of the situation, which is objective and certain. I’ll still remember my past feelings and likely regret my previous foolishness and lack of awareness. Therefore, as a rational being, I should make decisions now based on what I will later wish I had done, particularly when I’ll feel the consequences of my choices most deeply. This ongoing awareness of my own feelings gives me a direct interest in my future well-being and holds me accountable for my actions at all times. Since this awareness will still be present in me after death, if I exist again—But wait— Since I have to be aware of my past feelings to be myself, and this awareness will indeed be me, what happens if that awareness is transferred to someone else? How can I be sure I’m not being deceived about my identity? But that can’t happen because I won’t have any self other than the one rooted in this very consciousness. So then, if that's true, this self could be duplicated in as many different beings as the Deity might choose to create with the same consciousness, and if this consciousness can be renewed by an act of omnipotence in one instance, it could certainly be done in countless others. Should I consider all of these as equally me? Am I equally concerned about the fate of them all? Or if I have to choose one of them as my representative and other self, how do I decide which one?—At this point, I saw the limits of my thoughts on absolute self-interest and personal identity. I recognized that my awareness of my own feelings, which underpins my ongoing interest in them, couldn’t extend to what never was or might never be; my identity must be tied to the connection between my past and present self, meaning my future feelings and interests couldn’t influence my present feelings and interests simply because they are in the future. I will reflect on my past feelings and actions later, and my regret will be equally intensified by thinking about my past foolishness and newly acquired wisdom, regardless of whether I truly am the same thinking being or merely have the same awareness revived in me; however, to think that this regret could impact my current feelings or create an immediate interest in my future feelings before they actually exist is a contradiction. For how can this supposed unity of consciousness—which is only a reflection of the past, making me so unaware of the future that I can’t even tell how long it will last, whether it will be completely interrupted or renewed after death, and which could be multiplied into who knows how many different beings, enduring through complicated sufferings without my knowledge—how can it possibly transfer my present self into my future self and make me as much a part of what doesn’t directly affect me as if it were truly registered by my senses? Therefore, I can’t have a principle of active self-interest based on a connection between my future and present self, as no such connection exists or is possible. I am who I am despite the future. My feelings, actions, and interests are determined by causes that are already in play, and they can’t depend on anything else without completely reversing the natural order of cause and effect.
In this manner, Sir, may a man learn to distinguish the limits which circumscribe his identity with himself, and the frail tenure on which he holds his fleeting existence. Here indeed, ‘on this bank and shoal of time,’ we give ourselves credit for a few years, and so far make sure of our continued identity—as far as we can see the horizon before us, while the same busy scene exists, while the same objects, passions, and pursuits engross our attention, we seem to grasp the realities of things; they are incorporated with our imagination and take hold of our affections, and we cannot doubt of our interest in them. Farther than this, we do not go with the same confidence; the indistinctness of another state of being takes away its reality, and we lose the abstract idea of self for want of objects to attach it to. But 410the reasoning is the same in both cases. The next year, the next hour, the next moment is but a creation of the mind; in all that we hope or fear, love or hate, in all that is nearest and dearest to us, we but mistake the strength of illusion for certainty, and follow the mimic shews of things and catch at a shadow and live in a waking dream. Everything before us exists in an ideal world. The future is a blank and dreary void, like sleep or death, till the imagination brooding over it with wings outspread, impregnates it with life and motion. The forms and colours it assumes are but the pictures reflected on the eye of fancy, the unreal mockeries of future events. The solid fabric of time and nature moves on, but the future always flies before it. The present moment stands on the brink of nothing. We cannot pass the dread abyss, or make a broad and beaten way over it, or construct a real interest in it, or identify ourselves with what is not, or have a being, sense, and motion, where there are none. Our interest in the future, our identity with it, cannot be substantial; that self which we project before us into it is like a shadow in the water, a bubble of the brain. In becoming the blind and servile drudges of self-interest, we bow down before an idol of our own making, and are spell-bound by a name. Those objects to which we are most attached, make no part of our present sensations or real existence; they are fashioned out of nothing, and rivetted to our self-love by the force of a reasoning imagination, (the privilege of our intellectual nature)—and it is the same faculty that carries us out of ourselves as well as beyond the present moment, that pictures the thoughts, passions and feelings of others to us, and interests us in them, that clothes the whole possible world with a borrowed reality, that breathes into all other forms the breath of life, and endows our sympathies with vital warmth, and diffuses the soul of morality through all the relations and sentiments of our social being.
In this way, Sir, a person can learn to recognize the boundaries that define their identity and the fragile hold they have on their fleeting existence. Here, truly, ‘on this bank and shoal of time,’ we give ourselves credit for a few years, and for as long as we can see the horizon ahead of us, while the same busy scene persists, while the same objects, passions, and pursuits capture our attention, we seem to grasp reality; they become part of our imagination and grip our emotions, and we have no doubt about our connection to them. Beyond this point, we lack the same confidence; the uncertainty of another state of being diminishes its reality, and we lose the abstract concept of self due to the absence of objects to connect it to. But 410 the reasoning is the same in both scenarios. The next year, the next hour, the next moment is merely a creation of the mind; in all our hopes or fears, loves or hates, in everything that is closest and dearest to us, we mistake the strength of illusion for certainty and follow the mere appearances of things, grasping at shadows and living in a waking dream. Everything in front of us exists in an ideal world. The future is a blank and desolate void, like sleep or death, until imagination, spreading its wings, fills it with life and motion. The shapes and colors it takes on are just images reflected in the eye of our fancy, the unreal mockeries of future events. The solid structure of time and nature moves on, but the future always eludes it. The present moment teeters on the edge of nothingness. We cannot cross the terrifying abyss, create a broad and clear path over it, or establish a real interest in it, or connect ourselves with what doesn't exist, or have being, feeling, and motion where there are none. Our interest in the future, our connection to it, cannot be genuine; that self we project into it is like a shadow in water, a bubble of thought. By becoming the blind and submissive servants of self-interest, we bow before an idol of our own creation, entranced by a name. The things we are most attached to are not part of our current sensations or true existence; they are made out of nothing and tethered to our self-love by the force of a reasoning imagination, (the privilege of our intellectual nature)—and it's the same ability that takes us out of ourselves as well as beyond the present moment, that imagines the thoughts, passions, and feelings of others, engaging us with them, that gives the entire possible world a borrowed reality, that breathes life into all other forms, enlivens our sympathies with warmth, and spreads the essence of morality through all the connections and feelings of our social existence.
Such, Sir, is the metaphysical discovery of which I spoke; and which I made many years ago. From that time I felt a certain weight and tightness about my heart taken off, and cheerful and confident thoughts springing up in the place of anxious fears and sad forebodings. The plant I had sown and watered with my tears, grew under my eye; and the air about it was wholesome and pleasant. For this cause it is, that I have gone on little discomposed by other things, by good or adverse fortune, by good or ill report, more hurt by public disappointments than my own, and not thrown into the hot or cold fits of a tertian ague; as the Edinburgh or Quarterly Review damps or raises the opinion of the town in my favour. I have some love of fame, of the fame of a Pascal, a Leibnitz, or a 411Berkeley (none at all of popularity) and would rather that a single inquirer after truth should pronounce my name, after I am dead, with the same feelings that I have thought of theirs, than be puffed in all the newspapers, and praised in all the reviews, while I am living. I myself have been a thinker; and I cannot but believe that there are and will be others, like me. If the few and scattered sparks of truth, which I have been at so much pains to collect, should still be kept alive in the minds of such persons, and not entirely die with me, I shall be satisfied.
Here’s the metaphysical insight I mentioned, which I discovered many years ago. Since then, I’ve felt a certain weight lift from my heart, replaced by cheerful and confident thoughts instead of anxious fears and gloomy predictions. The idea I nurtured and tended with my tears flourished before me; the atmosphere around it was fresh and enjoyable. Because of this, I've remained relatively unbothered by other issues, whether good or bad fortune, or favorable or unfavorable opinions—more affected by public disappointments than my own—and not thrown into the hot or cold fits of a recurring fever, depending on whether the Edinburgh or Quarterly Review boosts or dampens public sentiment about me. I have a desire for fame, the kind akin to that of Pascal, Leibnitz, or Berkeley (not at all for popularity), and I would prefer that a single seeker of truth recalls my name after I’ve passed, with the same respect I have for theirs, rather than being celebrated in newspapers and praised in reviews while I’m still alive. I’ve been a thinker, and I can’t help but believe there are and will be others like me. If the few and scattered insights I’ve worked hard to gather remain alive in the minds of such individuals and don’t completely vanish with me, I’ll be content.
NOTES
THE ROUND TABLE
ON THE LOVE OF LIFE
This essay formed No. 3 of the Round Table series, the first two having been contributed by Leigh Hunt. To numbers 2, 3, 4 the following motto was prefixed: ‘Sociali fœdere mensa. Milton. A Table in a social compact joined.’
This essay was No. 3 in the Round Table series, with the first two written by Leigh Hunt. The following motto was added to numbers 2, 3, 4: ‘Social gathering table. Milton. A Table in a social compact joined.’
- PAGE
- 1.
- That sage. Hazlitt perhaps refers to Bacon’s lines—
‘What then remains, but that we still should cryFor being born, or being born, to die?’
- which are taken from an epigram in the Greek Anthology.
- 2.
- ‘The school-boy,’ says Addison. See The Spectator, No. 93.
- ‘Hope and fantastic expectations,’ etc. Jeremy Taylor’s Holy Dying, Chap. i. § 3, par. 4.
- ‘An ounce of sweet,’ etc. ‘A dram of sweete is worth a pound of sowre.’ The Faerie Queene, Book I. Canto iii. 30. This line formed the motto of Leigh Hunt’s Indicator.
- 3.
- ‘And that must end us,’ etc. Paradise Lost, II. 145–151. In The Examiner Hazlitt publishes the following passage as a note to this quotation: ‘Many persons have wondered how Bonaparte was able to survive the shock of that tremendous height of power from which he fell. But it was that very height which still rivetted his backward gaze, and made it impossible for him to take his eye from it, more than from a hideous spectre. The sun of Austerlitz still rose upon his imagination, and could not set. The huge fabric of glory which he had raised, still “mocked his eyes with air.”[87] He who had felt his existence so intensely could not consent to lose it!’
- 4.
- ‘Are made desperate,’ etc. Wordsworth’s Excursion, Book VI. The following note is appended to this essay in The Examiner: ‘It is proper to notice that an extract from this article formerly appeared in another publication. A series of Criticisms on the principal English Poets will shortly be commenced, and till concluded, will appear alternately with the other subjects of the Round Table.’ The publication referred to was The Morning Chronicle for September 4, 1813, where, under the heading ‘Common Places,’ the substance of the paragraph beginning ‘The love of life is, in general, the effect,’ and the following paragraph will be found. The plan for criticisms of the English Poets was not adhered to. Hazlitt shortly afterwards (1818) delivered a course of Lectures on the English Poets which was published in the same year.
ON CLASSICAL EDUCATION
This essay formed the greater part of No. 7 of the Round Table series. The first three paragraphs are from one of Hazlitt’s ‘Common Places’ in The Morning Chronicle, September 25, 1813.
This essay made up most of No. 7 in the Round Table series. The first three paragraphs are from one of Hazlitt’s ‘Common Places’ in The Morning Chronicle, September 25, 1813.
- PAGE
- 4.
- ‘A discipline of humanity.’ Bacon’s Essays, Of Marriage and Single Life.
- ‘Still green with bays,’ etc. Pope’s Essay on Criticism, 181–188.
- 5.
- A celebrated political writer. Probably Cobbett, of whom Hazlitt says in another place: ‘He is a self-taught man, and has the faults as well as excellences of that class of persons in their most striking and glaring excess.’ (Table Talk, Character of Cobbett.)
- 6.
- ‘The world is too much with us,’ etc. Misquoted from Wordsworth’s Sonnet.
- Falstaff’s reasoning about honour. See 1 Henry IV. Act V. Scene 1.
- ‘They that are whole,’ etc. St. Matthew, ix. 12.
- In The Examiner this essay concluded with the following passage: ‘We do not
think a classical education proper for women. It may pervert their minds, but it cannot
elevate them. It has been asked, Why a woman should not learn the dead languages as well
as the modern ones? For this plain reason, that the one are still spoken, and have
immediate associations connected with them, and the other not. A woman may have a lover
who is a Frenchman, or an Italian, or a Spaniard; and it is well to be provided against
every contingency in that way. But what possible interest can she feel in those
old-fashioned persons, the Greeks and Romans, or in what was done two thousand years ago?
A modern widow would doubtless prefer Signor Tramezzani[88] to Æneas, and Mr. Conway would be a
formidable rival to Paris. No young lady in our days, in conceiving an idea of Apollo,
can go a step beyond the image of her favourite poet: nor do we wonder that our old
friend, the Prince Regent, passes for a perfect Adonis in the circles of beauty and
fashion. Women in general have no ideas, except personal ones. They are mere egotists.
They have no passion for truth, nor any love of what is purely ideal. They hate to think,
and they hate every one who seems to think of anything but themselves. Everything is to
them a perfect nonentity which does not touch their senses, their vanity, or their
interest. Their poetry, their criticism, their politics, their morality, and their
divinity, are downright affectation. That line in Milton is very striking—
“He for God only, she for God in him.”[89]
- 417Such is the order of nature and providence; and we should be sorry to see any fantastic improvements on it. Women are what they were meant to be; and we wish for no alteration in their bodies or their minds. They are the creatures of the circumstances in which they are placed, of sense, of sympathy and habit. They are exquisitely susceptible of the passive impressions of things: but to form an idea of pure understanding or imagination, to feel an interest in the true and the good beyond themselves, requires an effort of which they are incapable. They want principle, except that which consists in an adherence to established custom; and this is the reason of the severe laws which have been set up as a barrier against every infringement of decorum and propriety in women. It has been observed by an ingenious writer of the present day, that women want imagination. This requires explanation. They have less of that imagination which depends on intensity of passion, on the accumulation of ideas and feelings round one object, on bringing all nature and all art to bear on a particular purpose, on continuity and comprehension of mind; but for the same reason, they have more fancy, that is greater flexibility of mind, and can more readily vary and separate their ideas at pleasure. The reason of that greater presence of mind which has been remarked in women is, that they are less in the habit of speculating on what is best to be done, and the first suggestion is decisive. The writer of this article confesses that he never met with any woman who could reason, and with but one reasonable woman. There is no instance of a woman having been a great mathematician or metaphysician or poet or painter: but they can dance and sing and act and write novels and fall in love, which last quality alone makes more than angels of them. Women are no judges of the characters of men, except as men. They have no real respect for men, or they never respect them for those qualities, for which they are respected by men. They in fact regard all such qualities as interfering with their own pretensions, and creating a jurisdiction different from their own. Women naturally wish to have their favourites all to themselves, and flatter their weaknesses to make them more dependent on their own good opinion, which, they think, is all that they want. We have, indeed, seen instances of men, equally respectable and amiable, equally admired by the women and esteemed by the men, but who have been ruined by an excess of virtues and accomplishments.’ Leigh Hunt replied to these remarks in the following number of the Round Table series (February 19, 1815), where he makes interesting reference to Hazlitt’s appearance and powers.
ON THE TATLER
This essay formed No. 10 of the Round Table series. The substance of it was repeated by Hazlitt in his volume of Lectures on the English Comic Writers (1819). (See the Lecture on ‘The Periodical Essayists.’)
This essay was No. 10 in the Round Table series. Hazlitt restated its main points in his book Lectures on the English Comic Writers (1819). (See the Lecture on ‘The Periodical Essayists.’)
- PAGE
- 7.
- ‘The disastrous strokes which his youth suffered.’ ‘Some distressful stroke that my youth suffered.’ Othello, Act I. Scene 3.
- He dwells with a secret satisfaction. The Tatler, No. 107.
- The club at the ‘Trumpet.’ The Tatler, No. 132.
- The cavalcade of the justice, etc. The Tatler, No. 86.
- The upholsterer and his companions. See The Tatler, Nos. 155, 160, and 178.
- A burlesque copy of verses. The Tatler, No. 238. The verses are by Swift.
- 8.
- Betterton and Mrs. Oldfield. See p. 157. Betterton is frequently mentioned in The Tatler. See especially No. 167.
- Mr. Penkethman and Mr. Bullock. See The Tatler, No. 88, and p. 157 of this volume.
- ‘The first sprightly runnings.’ Dryden’s Aurengzebe, Act IV. Scene 1.
- 9.
- The Court of Honour. Addison, in The Tatler, No. 250, created the Court of Honour. He and Steele together wrote the later papers (Nos. 253, 256, 259, 262, 265) in which the proceedings of the Court are recorded.
- The Personification of Musical Instruments. The Spectator, Nos. 153 and 157.
- Note. This note is by Leigh Hunt. The authorship of the anonymous paper (The Spectator, No. 95) is uncertain.
- The account of the two sisters. The Tatler, No. 151.
- The married lady. The Tatler, No. 104.
418
- 9.
- The lover and his mistress. The Tatler, No. 94.
- The bridegroom. The Tatler, No. 82.
- Mr. Eustace and his wife. The Tatler, No. 172.
- The fine dream. The Tatler, No. 117.
- Mandeville’s sarcasm. Bernard Mandeville (d. 1733), author of The Fable of the Bees.
- Westminster Abbey. The Spectator, No. 26.
- Royal Exchange. The Spectator, No. 69.
- The best criticism. The Spectator, No. 226.
- 10.
- Note. An original copy of the ‘Tatler.’ The octavo edition of 1710–11.
ON MODERN COMEDY
This essay did not form one of the Round Table series, but was published in The Examiner for August 20, 1815, under the heading ‘Theatrical Examiner.’ It was substantially repeated in the Lectures on the English Comic Writers (Lecture VIII., ‘on the Comic Writers of the Last Century’), and was republished verbatim in the posthumous volume entitled Criticisms and Dramatic Essays on the English Stage (1851). The essay is practically a reprint of the first of two letters which Hazlitt wrote to The Morning Chronicle (September 25 and October 15, 1813). The second of these letters has not been republished.
This essay wasn't part of the Round Table series but was published in The Examiner on August 20, 1815, with the title ‘Theatrical Examiner.’ It was largely repeated in the Lectures on the English Comic Writers (Lecture VIII., ‘on the Comic Writers of the Last Century’) and was republished verbatim in the posthumous collection called Criticisms and Dramatic Essays on the English Stage (1851). Essentially, the essay is a reprint of the first of two letters that Hazlitt sent to The Morning Chronicle (September 25 and October 15, 1813). The second letter has not been republished.
- PAGE
- 10.
- ‘Where it must live, or have no life at all.’ Othello, Act. II. Scene 4.
- 11.
- ‘See ourselves as others see us.’ Burns, ‘To a Louse.’
- Wart. He means Shadow. See 2 Henry IV., Act III. Scene 2.
- 12.
- Lovelace, etc. Nearly all these characters are discussed in the English Comic Writers. Sparkish is in Wycherley’s Country Wife, Lord Foppington in Vanbrugh’s Relapse, Millamant in Congreve’s Way of the World, Sir Sampson Legend in Congreve’s Love for Love.
- We cannot expect, etc. This paragraph appeared originally in The Morning Chronicle, October 15, 1813.
- 13.
- ‘That sevenfold fence.’ ‘The seven-fold shield of Ajax cannot keep the battery from my heart.’ Antony and Cleopatra, Act IV. Scene 14. This passage is taken by Hazlitt from his own Reply to Malthus (1807).
- ‘Mr. Smirk, you are a brisk man.’ Foote’s Minor, Act II.
- Aristotle. In the Poetics.
- ‘Warm hearts of flesh and blood,’ etc. Quoted, with omissions and variations, from a passage in Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 101).
- 14.
- ‘Men’s minds are parcel of their fortunes.’ Antony and Cleopatra, Act III. Scene 13.
ON MR. KEAN’S IAGO
Republished with a few variations from The Examiner of July 24, 1814. Hazlitt afterwards published the original article in A View of the English Stage (1818), and borrowed from it in Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (See ante, pp. 206–7).
Republished with some changes from The Examiner dated July 24, 1814. Hazlitt later published the original article in A View of the English Stage (1818) and referenced it in Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (See ante, pp. 206–7).
- PAGE
- 14.
- A contemporary critic. This was Hazlitt himself who made this criticism of Kean in an article in The Morning Chronicle (May 9, 1814), reprinted in A View of the English Stage.
- ‘Hedged in with the divinity of kings.’ From Hamlet, Act IV. Scene 5.
- 15.
- Play the dog, etc. 3 Henry VI., Act V. Scene 6.
- 16.
- ‘His cue is villainous melancholy,’ etc. King Lear, Act I. Scene 2.
ON THE LOVE OF THE COUNTRY
This essay was one of a series called Common-places (No. III.) and appeared in The Examiner on November 27, 1814, before the Round Table series commenced. It was not, therefore, addressed, as it purports to be, ‘to the editor of the “Round Table.”’ The greater part of it was repeated in the Lectures on the English Poets (1818) at the end of Lecture V. on Thomson and Cowper.
This essay was part of a series called Common-places (No. III.) and was published in The Examiner on November 27, 1814, before the Round Table series began. It wasn't actually directed, as it claims to be, ‘to the editor of the “Round Table.”’ Most of it was later included in the Lectures on the English Poets (1818) at the end of Lecture V. on Thomson and Cowper.
- PAGE
- 17.
- Rousseau in his ‘Confessions.’ Partie I. Livre III.
- 18.
- The minstrel. See Beattie’s Minstrel, Book I. st. 9.
- 20.
- ‘A farewell sweet.’
‘If chance the radiant sun, with farewell sweet,Extend his evening beam,’ etc.Paradise Lost, II. 492.
- ‘To me the meanest flower,’ etc. Wordsworth’s Ode, Intimations of Immortality.
- ‘Nature did ne’er betray,’ etc. Wordsworth’s Lines composed a few miles above Tintern Abbey.
- 21.
- ‘Or from the mountain’s sides.’ Collins’s Ode to Evening, stanzas 9 and 10.
ON POSTHUMOUS FAME
This essay is not one of the Round Table series. It appeared in The Examiner on May 22, 1814.
This essay is not part of the Round Table series. It was published in The Examiner on May 22, 1814.
- PAGE
- 22.
- ‘Blessings be with them’ etc. Wordsworth’s Personal Talk, stanza 4.
- ‘Nor sometimes forget,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 33 et seq.
- Note. A part of the passage here referred to (from The Reason of Church Government urged against Prelacy) is quoted by Hazlitt in his Lectures on the English Poets (on Shakspeare and Milton).
- 23.
- ‘Famous poets’ wit.’ See The Faerie Queene, Verses addressed by the author, No. 2. ‘Have not the poems of Homer,’ etc. The Advancement of Learning, First Book, VIII. 6.
- ‘Because on Earth,’ etc. See Dante’s Inferno, Canto iv. Cf. ‘On Fames eternall beadroll worthie to be fyled.’ The Faerie Queene, Book IV. Canto ii. st. 32.
- ‘Every variety of untried being.’
‘Through what variety of untried being,Through what new scenes and changes must we pass!’Addison’s Cato, Act V. Scene 1.
- 24.
- Note. ‘Oh! for my sake,’ etc. Sonnet No. III. ‘Desiring this man’s art,’ etc. Sonnet No. 29.
ON HOGARTH’S ‘Modern Marriage’
This essay (from The Examiner, June 5, 1814) and the next one (June 19, 1814) continuing the same subject, were (in substance) republished in the English Comic Writers (see the Lecture VII. on the works of Hogarth) and also in Sketches of the Principal Picture-Galleries in England, etc. (1824).
This essay (from The Examiner, June 5, 1814) and the following one (June 19, 1814) that continues the same topic were (in essence) republished in the English Comic Writers (see Lecture VII. on Hogarth's works) and also in Sketches of the Principal Picture-Galleries in England, etc. (1824).
- PAGE
- 25.
- The late collection. In 1814.
- ‘Of amber-lidded snuff-box.’ Pope’s Rape of the Lock, IV. 123.
420
- 26.
- ‘A person, and a smooth dispose,’ etc. Othello, Act I. Scene 3.
- ‘Vice loses half its evil in losing all its grossness.’ Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 89).
THE SUBJECT CONTINUED
- 28.
- What Fielding says. See Tom Jones, Book IV. Chap. i.
- 30.
- ‘All the mutually reflected charities.’ Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 40).
- ‘Frequent and full,’ etc. See Paradise Lost, III. 795–797.
- 31.
- Note. The ‘Reflector.’ For 1811. The essay is included in Poems, Plays and Miscellaneous Essays of Charles Lamb (ed. Ainger).
ON MILTON’S LYCIDAS
No. 15 of the Round Table series.
No. 15 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 31.
- ‘At last he rose,’ etc. Lycidas, 192–193.
- Dr. Johnson. See his Life of Milton (Works, Oxford ed., vii. 119).
- ‘Most musical, most melancholy.’ The Thoughtful One, l. 62.
- ‘With eager thought warbling his Doric lay.’ Lycidas, l. 189.
- 32.
- ‘Together both,’ etc. Lycidas, ll. 25 et seq.
- ‘Oh fountain Arethuse,’ etc. Lycidas, ll. 85 et seq.
- 33.
- ‘Like one that had been led astray,’ etc. The Thinker, ll. 69–70.
- ‘Next Camus,’ etc. Lycidas, ll. 103 et seq.
- Has been found fault with. By Dr. Johnson in his Life of Milton (Works, Oxford ed., vii. 120).
- Camoens, who, in his ‘Lusiad.’ See The Lusiads, Canto ii. stanzas 56 et seq.
- 34.
- ‘The muses in a ring,’ etc. The Thinker, ll. 47–48.
- ‘Have sight of Proteus,’ etc. Wordsworth’s Sonnet, ‘The world is too much with us.’
- ‘Return, Alphaeus,’ etc. Lycidas, ll. 132 et seq.
- 35.
- Dr. Johnson. Johnson does not seem to have been offended by the dolphins in particular.
- The picture by Barry. ‘The triumph of the Thames,’ number 4 of the six pictures painted by James Barry (1741–1806) for the Society of Arts. Johnson’s friend, Dr. Charles Burney (1726–1814) figures as one of the renowned dead.
- ‘Here’s flowers for you’ etc. Winter’s Tale, Act. IV. Scene 4.
- 36.
- Dr. Johnson’s ‘general remark,’ etc. See his Life of Milton (Works, Oxford ed., vii. 119, 131), and Boswell’s Life of Johnson (ed. G. B. Hill), iv. 305.
ON MILTON’S VERSIFICATION
No. 16 of the Round Table series. Hazlitt drew largely on this essay for his lecture on Shakspeare and Milton. See Lectures on the English Poets.
No. 16 of the Round Table series. Hazlitt relied heavily on this essay for his lecture on Shakespeare and Milton. See Lectures on the English Poets.
- PAGE
- 37.
- ‘Makes Ossa like a wart.’ Hamlet, Act V. Scene 1.
- ‘Sad task, yet argument,’ etc. Quoted, with omissions, from
Paradise Lost, IX. 13–45.
421
- 37.
- ‘Him followed Rimmon,’ etc. Paradise Lost, I. 467–469.
- ‘As when a vulture,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 431–439.
- 38.
- It has been said, etc. Hazlitt probably refers to Coleridge. See his Lectures on Shakspeare (Bell’s ed., p. 526).
- ‘He soon saw within ken,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 621–634.
- 39.
- Dr. Johnson. Hazlitt somewhat exaggerates Johnson’s strictures on Milton. See The Rambler, Nos. 86, 88, and 90.
- ‘His hand was known,’ etc. Paradise Lost, I. 732–747.
- ‘But chief the spacious hall,’ etc. Paradise Lost, I. 762–788. In The Examiner Hazlitt has a note to the words ‘brush’d with the hiss of rustling wings,’ pointing out that it was one of Dr. Johnson’s speculations, that all imitative sound is merely fanciful. He refers probably to The Rambler, No. 94.
- 40.
- ‘Round he surveys,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 555–567.
- ‘In many a winding bout,’ etc. L'Allegro, ll. 139–140.
- 41.
- ‘The hidden soul of harmony.’ L'Allegro, l. 144.
- Note. Hazlitt quoted these couplets again in his Lectures on the English Poets. See Lecture IV. on Dryden and Pope.
ON MANNER
This essay is compounded of two papers in the Round Table series, Nos. 17 and 18.| Hazlitt, however, omitted the greater part of No. 18, at the beginning of which he discussed Dryden’s version of The Flower and the Leaf. No. 18 was published in Winterslow (1839) under the title of Matter and Manner.
This essay consists of two papers from the Round Table series, Nos. 17 and 18. Hazlitt, however, left out most of No. 18, which starts with his discussion of Dryden’s version of The Flower and the Leaf. No. 18 was published in Winterslow (1839) under the title Matter and Manner.
- PAGE
- 42.
- Says Lord Chesterfield. ‘Observe the looks and countenances of those who speak, which is often a surer way of discovering the truth than what they say.’ Letters to his Son, No. cxxx.
- Than his sentiments. In The Examiner appears the following note on this passage: ‘We find persons who write what may be called an impracticable style; and their ideas are just as impracticable. They have as little tact of what is going on in the world as of the habitual meaning of words. Other writers betray their natural disposition by affectation, dryness, or levity of style. Style is the adaptation of words to things. Dr. Johnson had no style, that is, no scale of words answering to the differences of his subject. He always translated his ideas into the highest and most imposing form of expression, or more properly, into Latin words with English terminations. Goldsmith said to him, “If you had to write a fable, and to introduce little fishes speaking, you would make them talk like great whales.” It is a satire on this kind of taste that the most ignorant pretenders are in general what is generally understood by the finest writers. Women generally write a good style, because they express themselves according to the impression which things make upon them, without the affectation of authorship. They have besides more sense of propriety than men.’ For the story of Goldsmith see Boswell’s Life of Johnson (ed. G. B. Hill), ii. 231.
- 43.
- One of the most pleasant, etc. It is evident from a passage in Table Talk (on Coffee-House Politicians) that this friend is Leigh Hunt, and that ‘another friend’ is Lamb.
- ‘As dry as the remainder biscuit,’ etc. As You Like It, Act II. Scene 7.
- ‘Learning is often,’ etc. 2 Henry IV., Act IV. Scene 3.
- 44.
- Lord Chesterfield’s character of the Duke of Marlborough. Letters to his
Son, No. clxviii.
422
- 45.
- Note 1. It appears from a Ms. note in a copy of the 1817 edition that Hazlitt here refers to Lord Castlereagh.
- The greatest man, etc. Napoleon. Cf. Table Talk (on Great and Little Things) and Life of Napoleon, Chap. lvii.
- Note 2. A sonnet to the King. This must be the sonnet beginning—
‘Now that all hearts are glad, all faces bright’
- to which Hazlitt referred again in Political Essays (‘Illustrations of The Times Newspaper’). Wordsworth’s attack on a set of gipsies was in the poem entitled ‘Gipsies’ (1807).
- ‘In a wise passiveness.’ Expostulation and Reply (1798).
- In the ‘Excursion’. Book VIII.
- ‘They are a grotesque ornament,’ etc. ‘Nobility is a graceful ornament to the civil order.’ Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 164).
- This is enough. In The Examiner Hazlitt adds: ‘We really have a very great contempt for any one who differs from us on this point.’
- 46.
- The Story of the glass-man. The Barber’s story of his Fifth Brother.
- That manner is everything. ‘Sheer impudence answers almost the same purpose.
“Those impenetrable whiskers have confronted flames.” Many persons, by looking big and
talking loud, make their way through the world without any one good quality. We have here
said nothing of mere personal qualifications, which are another set-off against sterling
merit. Fielding was of opinion that “the more solid pretensions of virtue and
understanding vanish before perfect beauty.” “A certain lady of a manor” (says Don
Quixote[90] in defence of his attachment to Dulcinea, which however
was quite of the Platonic kind), “had cast the eyes of affection on a certain squat,
brawny lay-brother of a neighbouring monastery, to whom she was lavish of her favours.
The head of the order remonstrated with her on this preference shown to one whom he
represented as a very low, ignorant fellow, and set forth the superior pretensions of
himself, and his more learned brethren. The lady having heard him to an end made answer:
All that you have said may be very true; but know, that in those points which I admire,
Brother Chrysostom is as great a philosopher, nay greater than Aristotle himself!” So the
Wife of Bath:[91]—
“To church was mine husband borne on the morrowWith neighbours that for him maden sorrow,And Jenkin our clerk was one of tho:As help me God, when that I saw him goAfter the bier, methought he had a pairOf legs and feet, so clean and fair,That all my heart I gave unto his hold.”
- “All which, though we most potently believe, yet we hold it not honesty to have it thus set down.”’[92]—Note by Hazlitt in The Examiner, September 3, 1815.
- Note. Sir Roger de Coverley. The Spectator, No. 130.
- 47.
- The successful experiment. See Peregrine Pickle, Chap, lxxxvii.
ON THE TENDENCY OF SECTS
No. 19 of the Round Table series.
No. 19 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 49.
- Note 1. The Freedom of the Will of Jonathan Edwards (1703–1758) was published in 1754. Edwards was, of course, an American, as Flower reminded Hazlitt in his letter referred to below (49, note 2).
- ‘Hid from ages.’ Colossians, i. 26.
- Note 2. Benjamin Flower, in a reply which he wrote to this essay (The Examiner, October 8, 1815), pointed out the ‘phenomenon’ of a Quaker poet ‘appeared about thirty years since, Mr. Scott of Amwell, whose volume of poetry obtained the marked approbation of our acknowledged best critics.’ Johnson said of John Scott of Amwell’s (1730–1783) Elegies, ‘they are very well; but such as twenty people might write’ (Boswell’s Life of Johnson, ed. G. B. Hill, ii. 351). Another correspondent, signing himself ‘B. B.,’ wrote a letter to The Examiner (September 24, 1815), protesting against Hazlitt’s sketch of Quakerism. This was no doubt Bernard Barton (1784–1849), another Quaker poet, and afterwards the friend of Lamb.
- 50.
- ‘There is some soul of goodness,’ etc. Henry V., Act IV. Scene 1.
- ‘Evil communications,’ etc. 1 Corinthians, xv. 33.
ON JOHN BUNCLE
No. 20 of the Round Table series.
No. 20 of the Round Table series.
The Life of John Buncle, Esq., by Thomas (not John) Amory (1691?-1788), was published in two volumes, 1756–1766. A new edition in three volumes was published in 1825, very likely on Hazlitt’s recommendation. See Memoirs of William Hazlitt, ii. 198. A quotation from the present essay faces the title-page of the new edition (vol. i.). A volume containing the most readable parts of the book, and happily entitled ‘The Spirit of Buncle,’ was published in 1823. The book was a great favourite of Lamb’s as well as of Hazlitt’s.
The Life of John Buncle, Esq., by Thomas (not John) Amory (1691?-1788), was published in two volumes, 1756–1766. A new edition in three volumes was published in 1825, probably on Hazlitt’s recommendation. See Memoirs of William Hazlitt, ii. 198. A quote from this essay appears on the title page of the new edition (vol. i.). A volume featuring the most enjoyable parts of the book, aptly titled ‘The Spirit of Buncle,’ was released in 1823. The book was a favorite of both Lamb and Hazlitt.
- PAGE
- 52.
- Botargos. ‘Hard roes of mullet called botargos.’ Urquhart’s Rabelais, I. xxi.
- 53.
- ‘Man was made to mourn.’
‘Who breathes, must suffer; and who thinks, must mourn.’Prior, Solomon on the Vanity of the World, III. 240.
- He danced the Hays.
‘I will play on the tabor to the worthies, and let them dance the hay.’Love’s Labour’s Lost, Act V. Scene 1.
- A mistress and a saint in every grove. Goldsmith’s Traveller, 152.
- ‘Most dolphin-like.’ Antony and Cleopatra, Act V. Scene 2.
- ‘And there the antic sits,’ etc. Richard II., Act III. Scene 2.
- 56.
- Philips’s. The Pastorals of Pope and Ambrose Philips (1675?-1749) appeared in Tonson’s Miscellany (1709).
- Sannazarius. An English translation of the Piscatory Eclogues of Jacopo Sannazario was published in 1726.
- ‘What he beautifully calls,’ etc. See The Complete Angler, Part I. Chap. i.
- ‘We accompany them,’ and so on. The Complete Angler, Part I. Chap. iv. The milkmaid sang ‘Come live with me, and be my love.’ That ‘smooth song’ (says Walton) ‘which was made by Kit Marlowe, now at least fifty years ago.
- 424And the milkmaid’s mother sung an answer to it, which was made by Sir Walter Raleigh in his younger days.’
- 57.
- Tottenham Cross. The subject of one of the prints.
- Note. His friendship for Cotton. Charles Cotton (1630–1687), the translator of Montaigne (1685).
- Note. Dr. Johnson said. See Mrs. Piozzi’s Anecdotes (Johnsonian Miscellanies, ed. G. B. Hill, i. 332).
ON THE CAUSES OF METHODISM
No. 22 of the Round Table series. Leigh Hunt discussed this article in No. 24 of the series, republished in the 1817 edition of the Round Table, and entitled ‘On the Poetical Character.’ On the subject of Methodism Hunt had already spoken his mind in a series of articles in The Examiner, which he republished in 1809 under the title of An Attempt to shew the folly and danger of Methodism.
No. 22 of the Round Table series. Leigh Hunt talked about this article in No. 24 of the series, which was republished in the 1817 edition of the Round Table, called ‘On the Poetical Character.’ Regarding Methodism, Hunt had already expressed his views in a series of articles in The Examiner, which he republished in 1809 under the title An Attempt to show the folly and danger of Methodism.
- PAGE
- 58.
- ‘To sinner it or saint it.’ Pope’s Moral Essays, Ep. II. l. 15.
- ‘The whole need not a physician.’ St. Matthew, ix. 12.
- ‘Conceit in weakest,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
- 59.
- Mawworm. In Isaac Bickerstaffe’s Hypocrite, altered from Colley Cibber’s Nonjuror, which was itself ‘a comedy threshed out of Molière’s Tartuffe.’ See the Lecture on the Comic Writers of the Last Century in English Comic Writers. For Oxberry’s acting of the part see A View of the English Stage.
- ‘With sound of bell,’ etc. As You Like It, Act II. Scene 7.
- ‘Round fat oily men of God,’ etc. Thomson’s Castle of Indolence, stanza 69.
- ‘That burning and shining light.’ St. John, v. 35.
- Note. ‘And filled up all the mighty void of sense.’ Pope’s Essay on Criticism, l. 210.
- 60.
- ‘The vice,’ etc. Hebrews, xii. 1.
- ‘The Society for the Suppression of Vice.’ Founded in 1802. Sydney Smith criticised its methods in one of his Edinburgh Review articles (Jan. 1809). Hazlitt refers to it again. See antes, p. 139.
- ‘And sweet religion,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
- ‘Numbers without number.’ Paradise Lost, III. 346.
- 61.
- ‘Dissolves them,’ etc. The Thoughtful One, ll. 165–166.
ON THE MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM
No. 26 of the Round Table series. The essay was in substance republished in Characters of Shakespear’s Plays. See ante, pp. 244–248, and the notes thereon.
No. 26 of the Round Table series. The essay was essentially republished in Characters of Shakespear’s Plays. See ante, pp. 244–248, and the notes there.
- PAGE
- 64.
- ‘Age cannot wither,’ etc. Antony and Cleopatra, Act II. Scene 2.
- ‘’Tis a good piece of work,’ etc. The Taming of the Shrew, Act I. Scene 2.
- ‘Would, cousin Silence,’ etc. 2 Henry IV., Act III. Scene 2. The dialogue on the death of old Double occurs earlier in the same scene.
- ‘The most fearful wild-fowl living.’ Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act III. Scene 1.
- 425At the end of this essay in The Examiner Hazlitt added the following ‘Note Extraordinary’: ‘We had just concluded our ramble with Puck and Bottom, and were beginning to indulge in some less airy recreations, when in came the last week’s Cobbett,[93] and with one blow overset our Round Table, and marred all our good things. If while Mr. C. and his lady are sitting in their garden at Botley, like Adam and Eve in Paradise, the delight of one another, the envy of their neighbours, and the admiration of the rest of the world, suddenly a large fat hog from the wilds of Hampshire should bolt right through the hedge, and with snorting menaces and foaming tusks, proceed to lay waste the flower-pots and root up the potatoes, such as the surprise and indignation of so economical a couple would be on this occasion, was the consternation at our Table when Mr. Cobbett himself made his appearance among us, vowing vengeance against Milton and Shakespear, Sir Hugh Evans and Justice Shallow, and all the delights of human life. We were not prepared for such an onset. More barbarous than Mr. Wordsworth’s calling Voltaire dull,[94] or than Voltaire’s calling Cato the only English tragedy;[95] more barbarous than Mr. Locke’s admiration of Sir Richard Blackmore; more barbarous than the declaration of a German Elector—afterwards made into an English king—that he hated poets and painters; more barbarous than the Duke of Wellington’s letter to Lord Castlereagh,[96] or than the Catalog Raisonné of the Flemish Masters published in the Morning Chronicle,[97] or than the Latin style of the second Greek scholar[98] of the age, or the English style of the first:—more barbarous than any or all of these is Mr. Cobbett’s attack on our two great poets. As to Milton, except the fine egotism of the situation of Adam and Eve, which Mr. Cobbett has applied to himself, there is not much in him to touch our politician: but we cannot understand his attack upon Shakespear, which is cutting his own throat. If Mr. Cobbett is for getting rid of his kings and queens, his fops and his courtiers, if he is for pelting Sir Hugh and Falstaff off the stage, yet what will he say to Jack Cade and First and Second Mob? If we are to scout the Roman rabble, where will the Register find English readers? Has the author never found himself out in Shakespear? He may depend upon it he is there, for all the people that ever lived are there! Has he never been struck with the valour of Ancient Pistol, who “would not swagger in any shew of resistance to a Barbary-hen”?[99] Can he not, upon occasion, “aggravate his voice”[100] like Bottom in the play? In absolute insensibility, he is a fool to Master Barnardine; and there is enough of gross animal instinct in Calyban to make a whole herd of Cobbetts. Mr. Cobbett admires Bonaparte; and yet there is nothing finer in any of his addresses to the French people than what Coriolanus says to the Romans when they banish him. He abuses the Allies in good set terms; yet one speech of Constance describes them and their magnanimity better than all the columns of the Political Register. Mr. Cobbett’s address to the people of England[101] on the alarm of an invasion, which was stuck on all the church-doors in Great Britain, was not more eloquent than Henry V.’s address to his soldiers before the battle of Agincourt; nor do we think Mr. Cobbett was ever a better specimen of the common English character than the two soldiers in the same play. After all, there is something so droll in his falling foul of Shakespear for want of delicacy, with his desperate lounges and bear-garden dexterity, snorting, fuming, and grunting, that we cannot help laughing at the affair, now that our surprise is over; as we suppose Mr. Cobbett does, if he can only keep him out of his premises by hallooing and hooting or dry blows, to see his old friend, Grill,[102] trudging along the highroad in search of his acorns and pig-nuts.’
THE BEGGAR’S OPERA
One of Hazlitt’s ‘Theatrical Examiners,’ and published in The Examiner on June 18, 1815.
One of Hazlitt’s ‘Theatrical Examiners,’ published in The Examiner on June 18, 1815.
- PAGE
- 65.
- The Beggar’s Opera was produced at Lincoln’s Inn Fields on January 29, 1728.
- ‘Happy alchemy of mind,’ etc. Cf. Boswell (Life of Johnson, ed. G. B. Hill, iii. 65): ‘I have ever delighted in that intellectual chymistry, which can separate good qualities from evil in the same person.’
- ‘O’erstepping the modesty of nature.’ Hamlet, Act III. Scene 2.
- ‘Woman is like,’ etc. Beggar’s Opera, Act I.
- Taken from Tibullus. Hazlitt probably means Catullus and refers to the lines
(Carm. 62)
‘Just like a flower secretly grows in enclosed gardens,’ etc.
- ‘I see him sweeter,’ etc. Act I.
- ‘There is some soul of goodness in things evil.’ Henry V., Act IV. Scene 1.
- 66.
- ‘Hussey, hussey,’ etc. Beggar’s Opera, Act I.
- Miss Hannah More’s laboured invectives. Such as Thoughts on the Importance of the Manners of the Great to General Society (1788) and An Estimate of the Religion of the Fashionable World (1790). See ante, p. 154, for another expression of Hazlitt’s belief in the disciplinary value of The Beggar’s Opera.
- Note. For further reference to Baron Grimm’s Correspondance (1812–14) see before, p. 131, the essay ‘On the Literary Character.’ Claude Pierre Patu (1729–1757) published Selection of translated pieces from English (by Robert Dodsley and John Gay) in 1756. The collected works of Jean Joseph Vadé (1720–1757) were published in 1775.
ON PATRIOTISM—A FRAGMENT
This fragment is taken from one of the ‘Illustrations of Vetus’ which appeared originally in The Morning Chronicle and were republished in Political Essays.
This excerpt is from one of the 'Illustrations of Vetus' that first appeared in The Morning Chronicle and was later republished in Political Essays.
- PAGE
- 67.
- ‘The love of mankind‘, etc. Rousseau’s Emile, Liv. IV. p. 279 (edit. Garnier): a favourite quotation of Hazlitt’s.
ON BEAUTY
No. 29 of the Round Table series, and signed in The Examiner—‘An Amateur.’
No. 29 of the Round Table series, and signed in The Examiner—‘An Amateur.’
- PAGE
- 68.
- Three Papers, etc. Reynolds’s papers in the Idler are
Nos. 76, 79, and 82. It is to the last, On the true idea of Beauty, that
Hazlitt particularly refers.
427
- 69.
- Spenser’s description of Belphœbe. The Faerie Queene, Book II. Canto iii. st. 21 et seq.
- 70.
- ‘Her full dark eyes,’ etc. The reference seems to be to The Sorrows of Young Werther (December 6).
- 71.
- Pope’s translation. Homer’s Odyssey, V. 56–67.
- Note. A classical friend. Leigh Hunt.
- Note. ‘That was Arion crown’d,’ etc. The Faerie Queene, Book IV. Canto xi. st. 23 and 24.
- Note. A striking description. Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 89).
- Note. The idea is in ‘Don Quixote.’ Part II. Chap,
xlviii. In The Examiner this note was concluded as follows: ‘Much the same
impression which the sight of the Queen of France made on Mr. Burke’s brain sixteen years
before the French Revolution, did the reading of the New Eloise make on mine at the
commencement of it. “Such is the stuff of which our dreams are made!”[103] This man (Burke), who
was a half poet and a half philosopher, has done more mischief than perhaps any other
person in the world. His understanding was not competent to the discovery of any truth,
but it was sufficient to palliate a lie; his reasons, of little weight in themselves,
thrown into the scale of power, were dreadful. Without genius to adorn the beautiful, he
had the art to throw a dazzling veil over the deformed and disgusting, and to strew the
flowers of imagination over the rotten carcase of corruption, not to prevent, but to
communicate the infection. His jealousy of Rousseau[104] was one chief cause of his
opposition to the French Revolution. The writings of the one had changed the institutions
of a kingdom; while the speeches of the other, with the intrigues of his whole party, had
changed nothing but the turnspit of the King’s kitchen.[105] He would have blotted
out the broad, pure light of Heaven, because it did not first shine in upon the narrow,
crooked passages of St. Stephen’s Chapel. The genius of Rousseau had levelled the towers
of the Bastile with the dust; our zealous reformist, who would rather be doing mischief
than nothing, tried therefore to patch them up again, by calling that loathsome dungeon
the King’s Castle, and by fulsome adulation of the virtues of a Court Strumpet. This man
had the impudence to say[106] that an Elector of Hanover was raised to the throne of these
kingdoms, “in contempt of the will of the people,” while the hereditary successor was
still alive. He was at once a liar, a coward, and a slave; a liar to his own heart, a
coward to the success of his own cause, a slave to the power he despised. See his Letter
about the Duke of Bedford, in which the man gets the better of the sycophant, and he
belabours the Duke in good earnest. It is not a source of regret to reflect that he
closed his eyes on the ruin of liberty, which he had been the principal means of
effecting, and of his own projects, at the same time. He did not live to see that
deliverance of mankind, bound hand and foot into the absolute, lasting, inexorable power
of Kings and Priests, which the author of Joan of Arc[107] has so triumphantly celebrated. He
did not live to see the sending of the Liberales of Spain to the gallies, and the
liberating the Afrancesadoes from prison, for which our romantic Laureate, who sees so
much farther into futurity than the Edinburgh Reviewers,[108] thanks God. He did not live to read
that Sonnet[109] to the King which Mr. Wordsworth has written, in imitation of
Milton’s Sonnet to Cromwell. There is a species of literary prostitution which has sprung
up and spread wide in these days, more nauseous and despicable than any recorded in
Juvenal. It proves, however, one thing, that is, the force which knowledge and opinion
have acquired, and which makes it worth while for power to court and pervert those
faculties which were intended to enlighten and reform the world, in order to plunge it
into a darkness that may be felt; and slavery, that can only cease by putting a stop to
the propagation of the species.’ Hazlitt used a part of this passage as a note to his
essay ‘On Good-Nature.’ See post, p. 105 note.
428
- 72.
- Mr. Burke, etc. See his Essay on the Sublime and Beautiful, Part III. Sect. xv.
- Which describe pleasant motions. ‘It has been conjectured that the pleasure derived from visible form, might be always resolved into the absence of every thing disagreeable to the touch or difficult in motion.’ Note by Hazlitt in The Examiner.
- ‘He hath set his bow,’ etc. Ecclesiasticus, xliii. 11, 12.
- Titian’s ‘Bath of Diana.’ Diana and Actaeon, now the property of the Earl of Ellesmere, in Bridgewater House. Hazlitt described this picture at length in his Sketches of the Principal Picture Galleries in England (The Marquis of Stafford’s Gallery).
ON IMITATION
No. 30 of the Round Table series.
No. 30 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 73.
- The new Spurzheim principles. See Hazlitt’s essays ‘On Dreams’ and ‘On Dr. Spurzheim’s Theory’ in The Plain Speaker.
- 74.
- Note. Vanhuysum. Jan van Huysum (1682–1749).
- 75.
- Pansy freak’d with jet. Lycidas, l. 144.
- 76.
- ‘A pleasure in art,’ etc.
‘There is a pleasure in poetic pains,Which only poets know.’Cowper’s Task, The Timepiece, ll. 285–286.
- Cf. Table Talk (‘On the Pleasure of Painting’): ‘There is a pleasure in painting which none but painters know.’ The original of the expression seems to be Dryden’s ‘There is a pleasure, sure, in being mad, which none but madmen know’ (Spanish Friar, Act II. Scene 1).
- Titian’s ‘Schoolmaster.’ For an account of this picture see Hazlitt’s Sketches of the Principal Picture Galleries in England (the Marquis of Stafford’s Gallery).
ON GUSTO
No. 40 of the Round Table series.
No. 40 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 77.
- Albano’s. Francesco Albani (1578–1660), a pupil of Ludovico Caracci.
429
- 78.
- To touch them. In The Examiner Hazlitt gives the following note to this passage: ‘This may seem obscure. We will therefore avail ourselves of our privilege to explain as Members of Parliament do, when they let fall any thing too paradoxical, novel, or abstruse, to be immediately apprehended by the other side of the House. When the Widow Wadman[110] looked over my Uncle Toby’s map of the Siege of Namur with him, and as he pointed out the approaches of his battalion in a transverse line across the plain to the gate of St. Nicholas, kept her hand constantly pressed against his, if my Uncle Toby had then “been an artist and could paint,” (as Mr. Fox wished himself to be,[111] that “he might draw Bonaparte’s conduct to the King of Prussia in the blackest colours”) my Uncle Toby would have drawn the hand of his fair enemy in the manner we have above described. We have heard a good story of this same Bonaparte playing off a very ludicrous parody of the Widow Wadman’s stratagem upon as great a commander by sea as my Uncle Toby was by land. Now, when Sir Isaac Newton, who was sitting smoking with his mistress’s hand in his, took her little finger and made use of it as a tobacco-pipe stopper, there was here a total absence of mind, or a great want of gusto.’
- Mr. West. Benjamin West (1738–1820), historical painter, succeeded Sir J. Reynolds as President of the Royal Academy in 1792.
- 80.
- ‘Or where Chineses,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 438–439.
- ‘Wild above rule,’ etc. Ib. V. 297.
ON PEDANTRY
No. 32 of the Round Table series. See ante, p. 382, for a reference by Hazlitt to this essay.
No. 32 of the Round Table series. See ante, p. 382, for a reference by Hazlitt to this essay.
- PAGE
- 80.
- The pedantry of Parson Adams. See Joseph Andrews, Book III. Chap. v.
- Scotch Pedagogue. Roderick Random, Chap. xiv.
- Seeing ourselves, etc. Burns, To a Louse, st. 8.
- 81.
- Monsieur Jourdain. In The Bourgeois Gentleman.
- Note. ‘Not to admire anything.’
‘Don't be surprised, it's almost a fact, Numici.Only that which can create and maintain happiness.’—Horace, Ep. I. vi. I.
- 82.
- In the Library, etc. At his father’s house at Wem. See Memoirs of William Hazlitt, i. 33. The Polish Brothers' Library, etc., was published in eight volumes folio, 1656.
- ‘From all this world’s,’ etc. ‘From worldly cares himselfe he did esloyne.’ The Faerie Queene, Book I. Canto iv. st. 20. In The Examiner Hazlitt published the following note: ‘Mr. Wordsworth has on a late occasion humorously applied this line of Spenser to persons holding sinecure places under government. He seems to intend adding to the list of such places that of Poet Laureate. This we think a decided improvement on the system.’ The reference is to Wordsworth’s sonnet, ‘Occasioned by the Battle of Waterloo,’ beginning ‘The bard whose soul is meek as dawning day.’
- 83.
- ‘Mitigated authors,’ etc. ‘It was this opinion which mitigated kings into companions, and raised private men to be fellows with kings. Without force, or opposition, it subdued the fierceness of pride and power; it obliged sovereigns to submit to the soft collar of social esteem,’ etc. Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 90).
- The Spectator. See The Spectator, No. 131.
THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED
No. 33 the Round Table series.
No. 33 the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 84.
- A poetical enthusiast. Wordsworth presumably.
- ‘A clerk ther was,’ etc. Canterbury Tales, Prologue, ll. 285 et seq.
- 85.
- ‘Chemist, statesman,’ etc. Dryden’s Absalom and Achitophel, l. 550.
- ‘Tongues in the trees,’ etc. As You Like It, Act II. Scene 1.
- 86.
- Vestris was so far right, etc. Vestris (1729–1808), ‘The God of Dance,’ said that Europe contained only three great men, himself, Voltaire, and Frederick of Prussia.
- We do not see, etc. Johnson and Wordsworth were of the opposite opinion. See Boswell’s Life, ed. G. B. Hill, iv. 114, and Rogers’s Table-Talk, p. 234.
- 87.
- In Froissart’s ‘Chronicles.’ Book IV. chapter 14 (Literary Pantheon). The man was not a monk at all.
- 88.
- ‘The sovereign’st thing on earth.’ 1 Henry IV., Act I. Scene 3.
- Uneasy and insecure. In The Examiner the following note is appended: ‘It has been found necessary to cement them with blood. “Plus de belles paroles, messieurs, je veux du sang,” is the language of all absolute sovereigns to their subjects, when the film drops from their eyes which leads mankind to suppose themselves the property of tyrants. If men are to be treated like slaves, it is best that they should think themselves born to be so. No more empty words. The French Revolution was the necessary consequence of our English Revolution and of the Reformation. A crusade once more to re-establish the infallibility of the Pope all over the Continent would be a logical inference from the late crusade to restore divine right.’
ON THE CHARACTER OF ROUSSEAU
No. 36 of the Round Table series.
No. 36 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 89.
- Note. In The Examiner this note was continued as follows: ‘He was the founder of Jacobinism, which disclaims the division of the species into two classes, the one the property of the others. It was of the disciples of his school, where principle is converted into passion, that Mr. Burke said and said truly,—“Once a Jacobin, and always a Jacobin!” The adept in this school does not so much consider the political injury as the personal insult. This is the way to put the case, to set the true revolutionary leaven, the self-love which is at the bottom of every heart, at work, and this was the way in which Rousseau put it. It then becomes a question between man and man, which there is but one way of deciding.’
- 90.
- ‘Va Zanetto,’ etc. Part II. liv. 7.
- ‘Louise Eleonore,’ etc. Part I. liv. 2.
- 91.
- ‘As fast,’ etc. Othello, Act V. Scene 2.
- There are, indeed, impressions, etc. A quotation from Rousseau’s Confessions. See Hazlitt’s essay entitled ‘My first Acquaintance with Poets.’
- 92.
- ‘Ah, there’s the myrtle!’ Confessions, Part I. liv. 6.
- Mr. Wordsworth’s discovery. The reference appears to be to Wordsworth’s poem, ‘The Sparrow’s Nest.’
ON DIFFERENT SORTS OF FAME
No. 37 of the Round Table series.
No. 37 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 93.
- Fitzosborne’s Letters, by William Melmoth the younger (1710–1799), were published in two vols. in 1742–1747. Hazlitt’s quotation seems to be merely a summary of a passage in Letter X. (p. 35, edit. 1748) which is itself quoted from Wollaston’s Religion of Nature Delineated.
- Note. Burns. See his autobiographical letter to Dr. John Moore, 2nd August 1787. (Works, ed. Chambers and Wallace, i. 20).
- 94.
- ‘Bitter bad judges.’ Beggar’s Opera, Act I. Scene 1.
- ‘Makes ambition virtue.’ Othello, Act III. Scene 3.
- Dr. Johnson. See his Life of Milton (Works, vii. 108).
- ‘Fame is the spur,’ etc. Lycidas, ll. 70–77.
- Pluck its fruits, unripe and crude. Lycidas, l. 3.
- 95.
- Hogarth’s ‘Distressed Poet.’ The map of the gold-mines of Peru was substituted in the impression of 1740 for a print of Pope thrashing Curll in the original impression of 1736.
- A man of genius and eloquence. Coleridge presumably.
- 96.
- Elphinstone. James Elphinston (1721–1809), who superintended an Edinburgh edition of The Rambler, in which he gave English translations of most of the mottoes. This, however, was far from being his only literary enterprise, and it is strange that Hazlitt should ‘know nothing more of him.’ He published many translations, one of which, A Specimen of the Translations of Epigrams of Martial (1778), achieved notoriety from its extreme badness. In his later life he devoted himself to the invention of a kind of phonetic spelling, which he explained in Propriety ascertained in her Picture, or English Speech and Spelling under Mutual Guides (1787), and other works.
- Yorick and the Frenchman. Sterne’s Sentimental Journey. The Passport.
CHARACTER OF JOHN BULL
No. 39 of the Round Table series.
No. 39 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 97.
- A respectable publication. Edinburgh Review, xxvi. p. 96 (Feb. 1816). The passage quoted is from a review by Hazlitt himself of Schlegel’s Lectures on Dramatic Literature.
ON GOOD NATURE
No. 41 of the Round Table series.
No. 41 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 100.
- Says Froissart. This well-known saying is wrongly attributed to Froissart. See Notes and Queries for 1863 and subsequent years.
- 102.
- An Englishman, who would be thought a profound one. Wordsworth. See p. 116.
- 103.
- Forge the seal of the realm, etc. The allusion seems to be to the events of the spring of 1804 when Lord Eldon, during the king’s illness, affixed the great seal to a commission giving the royal assent to certain bills.
- 104.
- Good digestion wait on appetite. Macbeth, Act III. Scene 4.
- 432Without control. In The Examiner Hazlitt appended as a note: ‘Henry VIII. was a good-natured monarch. He cut off his wives’ heads with as little ceremony as if they had been eels. This character ought, as Mr. Cobbett says, to be hooted off the stage, as a disgrace to human nature. Shakspeare represented kings as they were in his time.’
- 104.
- Mr. Vansittart. Nicholas Vansittart (1766–1851), created Baron Bexley in 1823, was Chancellor of the Exchequer from 1812 till 1822.
- Everything by starts and nothing long. Absalom and Achitophel, Part I. l. 548.
- 105.
- Note. This note is part of the note on Burke, which in The Examiner appeared at the foot of the essay ‘On Beauty.’ See ante, p. 71.
ON THE CHARACTER OF MILTON’S EVE
No. 42 of the Round Table series, with occasional passages from No. 43, on Shakspeare’s female characters, the substance of which was published in Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (Cymbeline, Othello, and Winter’s Tale).
No. 42 of the Round Table series, with some excerpts from No. 43, focuses on Shakespeare’s female characters, part of which was published in Characters of Shakespeare’s Plays (Cymbeline, Othello, and Winter’s Tale).
- PAGE
- 105.
- ‘As the vine curls her tendrils.’ Paradise Lost, IV. 307.
- 106.
- ‘Two of far nobler shape,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 288–311.
- 107.
- ‘That day I oft remember,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 449–465.
- ‘So spake our general mother,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 492–501.
- ‘So much the more,’ etc. Paradise Lost, V. 8–20.
- 108.
- ‘When Adam thus to Eve,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 610–611.
- ‘To whom thus Eve,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 634.
- ‘To whom our general ancestor,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 659–660.
- ‘Methought close at mine ear,’ etc. Paradise Lost, V. 35–47.
- ‘So talked the spirited sly snake.’ Paradise Lost, IX. 613.
- ‘So cheered he his fair spouse,’ etc. Paradise Lost, V. 129–135.
- 109.
- ‘Under his forming hands,’ etc. Paradise Lost, VIII. 470–477.
- ‘In shadier bower,’ etc. Paradise Lost, IV. 705–719.
- ‘Meanwhile at table Eve,’ etc. Paradise Lost, V. 443–450.
- 110.
- ‘Yet not more sweet,’ etc. Southey’s Carmen Nuptiale, Proem, stanza 18.
- ‘O unexpected stroke,’ etc. Paradise Lost, XI. 268–285.
- 111.
- ‘This most afflicts me,’ etc. Paradise Lost, XI. 315–333.
OBSERVATIONS ON MR. WORDSWORTH’S POEM ‘THE EXCURSION’
This essay is composed of two papers by Hazlitt which appeared in The Examiner on August 21 and August 28, 1814.
This essay contains two papers by Hazlitt that were published in The Examiner on August 21 and August 28, 1814.
- PAGE
- 112.
- ‘Without form and void.’ Genesis, i. 2.
- 113.
- ‘The bare trees and mountains bare.’ Wordsworth, ‘To my Sister.’
- ‘Exchange the shepherd’s flock.’ Excursion, Book VI.
- 114.
- ‘The sad historian of the pensive vale.’ Goldsmith’s The Deserted Village, l. 136.
- ‘Our system is not fashioned,’ etc. Excursion, Book VI.
- ‘Such as the meeting soul may pierce.’ L'Allegro, l. 138.
- ‘In that fair clime,’ etc. Excursion, Book IV.
433
- 115.
- ‘Now shall our great discoverers obtain,’ etc. Excursion, Book IV.
- 116.
- ‘Poor gentleman,’ etc. Wycherley’s Love in a Wood, Act III. Scene 1.
- Dull. Wordsworth speaks of Candide as ‘this dull product of a
scoffer’s pen’ (Excursion, Book II.) and refers to
it again in Book IV.:—
‘Him I meanWho penned, to ridicule confiding faith,This sorry Legend.’
- See ante, p. 102.
- 117.
- Every thoughtful man, etc. See, "I can almost assure you that the state of reflection is an unnatural state, and that a man who meditates is a depraved animal." Rousseau’s Discourse on the Origin of Inequality Among Men (ed. Firmin-Didot, p. 52).
- ‘From that abstraction I was roused,’ etc. Excursion, Book III.
- 118.
- ‘For that other loss,’ etc. Excursion, Book IV.
- 119.
- ‘What though the radiance,’ etc. Intimations of Immortality, stanza 10.
THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED
From The Examiner, October 2, 1814.
From The Examiner, October 2, 1814.
- PAGE
- 120.
- ‘With glistering spires,’ etc. Paradise Lost, III. 550.
- ‘The great vision of the guarded mount.’ Lycidas, l. 161.
- 121.
- ‘A sudden illness,’ etc. Excursion, Book VI.
- 123.
- Aristotle observed. In The Poetics.
- Bells or Lancaster’s. Andrew Bell (1753–1832) founder of the Madras system of education, and Joseph Lancaster (1770–1838). For an account of these two rival reformers of education see Leslie Stephen’s The English Utilitarians, II. 17–19.
- Guzman d’Alfarache. Hazlitt discussed this novel by Mateo Aleman, published in 1599, in his English Comic Writers (Lecture on the English Novelists).
- A discipline of humanity. Bacon’s Essays, ‘Of Marriage and Single Life.’
- 124.
- The Whig and Jacobite friends. Excursion, Book VI.
- Sir Alfred Irthing. Excursion, Book VII.
- ‘Have proved a monument.’ From the sonnet in which Wordsworth dedicated The Excursion to Lord Lonsdale.
CHARACTER OF THE LATE MR. PITT
This ‘character’ originally appeared in Free Thoughts on Public Affairs, etc. (1806). It must have been a favourite with the author, for he afterwards reprinted it in The Eloquence of the British Senate, etc. (1807), in The Round Table (1817), and in Political Essays (1819). It also appeared in the posthumous Winterslow (1839). See note on p. 383, ante.
This ‘character’ first appeared in Free Thoughts on Public Affairs, etc. (1806). It must have been a favorite of the author, as he later reprinted it in The Eloquence of the British Senate, etc. (1807), in The Round Table (1817), and in Political Essays (1819). It also showed up in the posthumous Winterslow (1839). See note on p. 383, before.
- PAGE
- 127.
- ‘They had learned the trick,’ etc. Hobbes’s Behemoth (Works, ed. Molesworth, vi. 240).
- 128.
- ‘Not matchless,’ etc. Paradise Lost, VI. 341–2.
- And in its liquid texture, etc. Paradise Lost, VI. 148–149.
ON RELIGIOUS HYPOCRISY
From The Examiner, October 9, 1814, ‘Common-places,’ No. 1.
From The Examiner, October 9, 1814, ‘Common-places,’ No. 1.
- PAGE
- 129.
- ‘But ’tis not so above.’ Hamlet, Act III. Scene 3.
- ‘Compelled to give in evidence,’ etc. Ibid.
- 130.
- ‘Open and apparent shame.’ 1 Henry IV., Act II. Scene 4.
- 131.
- Elymas the sorcerer. See Sketches of the Principal Picture Galleries in England (the Pictures at Hampton Court) where Hazlitt describes this cartoon.
ON THE LITERARY CHARACTER
Reprinted with some omissions from a letter which appeared in The Morning Chronicle for October 28, 1813, entitled ‘Baron Grimm and the Edinburgh Reviewers.’
Reprinted with some omissions from a letter that was published in The Morning Chronicle on October 28, 1813, titled ‘Baron Grimm and the Edinburgh Reviewers.’
- PAGE
- 131.
- A late number, etc. Edinburgh Review, vol. xxi. July
1813. The Correspondance of Friedrich Melchior, Baron Grimm (1723–1807) was
published in 1812–14. The article in the Edinburgh is by Jeffrey. Hazlitt,
in The Examiner, quotes from it at greater length, and proceeds: ‘These
remarks, however shrewd and ingenious in themselves, are somewhat irrelevant to the
literary and philosophical character of Mr. Grimm and his friends. There seems to have
been an odd transposition of ideas in the writer’s mind; for the whole of his reasoning
relates to the manners of fashionable life, or the tendency of mixed and agreeable
society in general, to produce levity and insensibility, and does not at all apply to the
peculiar defects of the literary character, or account for that hard-heartedness, which
Mr. Burke attributes, by way of emphasis, to the thorough-bred metaphysician.[112] The two
characters are evidently distinct, and proceed from very different and even opposite
causes, which ought not to have been confounded. It would have been a task worthy of the
Edinburgh Reviewers to have pointed out the sources of each, and to have shewn how both
appear to have united in the present instance with the natural levity of the French
character, to produce that “faultless monster which the world ne’er saw” before.[113] Much is
undoubtedly to be given to accidental and local circumstances. Boswell’s Life of Johnson
presents a very different picture of men and manners from Grimm’s Memoirs, though in the
circle described by the former there were men who at least rivalled M. Grimm in
literature, and in politeness and knowledge of mankind might vie with Baron d’Holbach.
The profligacy of the French court, and the mummeries of the established religion might
naturally produce an almost satiric license and impudence among the enlightened partisans
of the new order of things, and lead them to regard all religion as a barefaced cheat,
and every pretension to virtue as hypocrisy. The peculiar intelligible features of the
philosophical and literary character are, however, stamped on every page of M. Grimm’s
correspondence; and as they do not seem to have been very well distinguished by the
Reviewer, I shall venture to throw out a few hints on the subject, in the hope that they
may be taken up and embodied in an authentic form in some future supplementary volume.’
435
- 133.
- Multiplicity of persons and things. Hazlitt quotes with characteristic inaccuracy the Edinburgh article on Grimm (see p. 131). A few lines further on he speaks of a ‘succession of persons and things.’
- Rocks of Meillerie. La Nouvelle Héloïse, Part IV. 17.
- 135.
- Mr. Shandy. Tristram Shandy, V. Chap, iii., where Sterne tells the story of Cicero and his daughter referred to in the text.
- ‘Hæret lateri,’ etc. Virgil, Aeneid, V. 73.
- ‘Clad in flesh and blood.’ From Burke, Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 101).
- The ghosts of Homer’s heroes. Odyssey, Book XI.
- ‘Play round the head, but never reach the heart.’
‘All fame is foreign, but of true desert;Plays round the head, but comes not to the heart.’Pope’s Essay on Man, IV. 254.
- Hazlitt’s letter in The Morning Chronicle concluded as follows: ‘There is another very striking distinction between the indifference and insensibility to moral good and evil, to be met with in the philosopher or the man of the world, which the Reviewer has not pointed out. In the one, it is the effect of “frivolity, dissipation, and familiarity with vice”; in the other, it is oftener the effect of disappointed hope and early enthusiasm. The aversion of the philosopher to moral speculations has almost always the same source as the exclamation of Brutus, “Oh Virtue! I embraced thee as a substance, and I find thou art a shadow!” There is hardly any one of the persons who figure in these memoirs who did not set out with some panacea for the salvation of mankind, with as much sanguine extravagance as ever knight-errants indulged to conquer giants and rescue distressed damsels. The wounds received in the conflict might close, but the scar would remain. Indeed, the practical knowledge of vice and misery makes a stronger impression on the mind, when it has once imbibed a habit of abstract reasoning. Evil thus becomes embodied in a general principle, and shews its happy form in all things. It is a fatal, inevitable necessity hanging over us. It follows us wherever we go—if we fly into the uttermost parts of the earth, it is there; whether we turn to the right or the left, we cannot escape from it.
- ‘This, it is true, is the disease of philosophy; but it is one to which it is liable in minds of a certain cast, after the first ardour of expectation has been disabused by experience, and the finer feelings have received an irrecoverable shock from the jarring of the world.
- ‘There seems a peculiar tenaciousness in the French character in this respect, an unfortunate aptitude to cling to every vice and catch at every folly, or else a want of freshness of feeling, of that elastic force about the heart which repels the approach of moral or intellectual depravity.
- ‘What is said of the tone of the literary society of Paris, is equally misunderstood. The Reviewers hardly mean to represent the exclusion of tediousness and pertinacious wrangling, as the general character of assemblies of wits, and philosophers in all ages and nations. If so, their opinion differs from that of the Sage. The fact is, that the men of letters at this period, by mixing in the fashionable circles, took the tone of good company, as the people of fashion, by their familiarity with men of letters, received the tincture of philosophy. The two characters were blended together in real life, and are confounded in the Edinburgh Review.’
- 135.
- Note. Plato’s Cave. Republic, Book VII.
ON COMMON-PLACE CRITICS
No. 47 of the Round Table series.
No. 47 of the Round Table series.
- PAGE
- 136.
- Every thoughtful person, etc. See note to p. 117.
- ‘Nor can I think what thoughts they can conceive.’ Dryden, The Hind and the Panther, Part I. l. 315.
- We have already. In a paper (by Leigh Hunt) On Commonplace People (Examiner, March 19, 1815).
- 138.
- The music which has been since introduced, etc. The famous ‘Macbeth music’ written for D’Avenant’s version produced, according to Genest, in 1672. This music, traditionally assigned to Matthew Locke, is now attributed to Purcell.
- 139.
- Mr. Westall’s drawings. Richard Westall (1765–1836).
- Horne Tooke’s account, etc. See The Diversions of Purley and Hazlitt’s essay on Horne Tooke in The Spirit of the Age.
- ‘For true no-meaning puzzles more than wit.’ Pope’s Moral Essays, II. 114.
- The new Schools for all. For the famous educational schemes of Andrew Bell and Joseph Lancaster and for Bentham’s Panopticon, see Leslie Stephen’s English Utilitarians.
- The Penitentiary. Millbank Prison, formerly known as the Penitentiary, was the ultimate result of Bentham’s Panopticon scheme and was opened in 1816.
- The new Bedlam. The new Bedlam Hospital was opened in 1815.
- The new steamboats. The first steamboat had been launched on the Clyde in 1812.
- The gaslights. The Chartered Gas Company obtained its Act of Parliament in 1810.
- The Bible Society. The British and Foreign Bible Society was established in 1804.
- The Society for the Suppression of Vice. See ante, note to p. 60.
ON THE CATALOGUE RAISONNÉ OF THE BRITISH INSTITUTION
These two papers are taken (with considerable variations) from the two last of three ‘Literary Notices,’ dealing with the Catalogue, which Hazlitt contributed to The Examiner on Nov. 3, Nov. 10, and Nov. 17, 1816. The first of these ‘Literary Notices’ was never republished by Hazlitt. All three were republished in their Examiner form in the second volume of Criticisms on Art, etc. (2 vols., 1843–44), edited by the author’s son, who omitted from his edition of The Round Table the two essays in the present text. All three essays will be included in a later volume of the present edition.
These two papers are taken (with significant changes) from the last two of three ‘Literary Notices’ about the Catalogue, which Hazlitt wrote for The Examiner on November 3, November 10, and November 17, 1816. The first of these ‘Literary Notices’ was never republished by Hazlitt. All three were reprinted in their Examiner form in the second volume of Criticisms on Art, etc. (2 vols., 1843–44), edited by the author’s son, who left out the two essays in the current text from his edition of The Round Table. All three essays will be included in a later volume of this edition.
- PAGE
- 140.
- Our former remarks. In The Examiner, Nov. 3, 1816.
- 141.
- The Prince Regent’s new sewer. Presumably the Regent’s Canal, part of which was opened in 1814.
- 142.
- ‘The scale by which,’ etc. Paradise Lost, VIII. 591.
- Mrs. Peachum’s coloured handkerchiefs. Beggar’s Opera, Act 1.
- 143.
- ‘A name great above all names.’ Philippians, ii. 9.
437
- 143.
- Mr. Payne Knight. Richard Payne Knight gave evidence in 1816 before a Select Committee of the House of Commons upon the value of the Elgin Marbles. He placed them in the second rank of art, and valued them at £25,000. They were bought by the nation for £35,000. Haydon the artist wrote a long letter to The Examiner (March 17, 1816) on the subject, entitled ‘On the Judgment of Connoisseurs being preferred to that of Professional Men, Elgin Marbles, etc.’
- 144.
- Mr. Soane. John Soane (1753–1837), knighted in 1831. His house and its contents, presented by him to the nation in 1833, now form the Soane Museum.
- ‘With riches fineless.’ Othello, Act III. Scene 3.
- ‘Beastly; subtle as the fox,’ etc. Cymbeline, Act. III. Scene 3.
- ‘The link,’ etc. Troilus and Cressida, Act I. Scene 3.
- It is many years ago, etc. Apparently, says Mr. W. C. Hazlitt, about 1798, at St. Neot’s, Huntingdonshire. See The English Comic Writers, where this passage is repeated in the Lecture on the Works of Hogarth.
- 145.
- ‘How were we then uplifted.’ Troilus and Cressida, Act III. Scene 2.
- ‘Temples not made with hands‘, etc. Acts, vii. 48.
- E. O. Tables. A new game introduced shortly before 1782, when a Bill was brought in prohibiting it under severe penalties. The Bill was lost in the House of Lords. See Parl. Hist., vol. xxiii. pp. 110–113.
- ‘Cutpurses of the art,’ etc.
‘A cutpurse of the empire and the rule,That from a shelf the precious diadem stoleAnd put it in his pocket!’Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED
- 146.
- ‘That a great man’s memory,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 2.
- Their late President. Sir Joshua Reynolds.
- 147.
- ‘Feel the future in the instant.’ Macbeth, Act I. Scene 5.
- 148.
- ‘Depend upon it,’ etc. This letter was not avowed by Burke, but was attributed to him by Barry himself and by Sir James Prior in his Life of Burke, (Bohn, p. 227).
- 149.
- ‘Playing at will,’ etc.
‘——and played at willHer virgin fancies, pouring forth more sweet,Wild above rule or art, enormous bliss.’Paradise Lost, v. 294–296.
- Highmore, etc. Joseph Highmore (1692–1780); Francis Hayman (1708–1776), one of the founders of the Royal Academy; Thomas Hudson (1701–1779), portrait painter; Sir Godfrey Kneller (1646–1723).
- ‘Like flowers in men’s caps,’ etc. Macbeth, Act IV. Scene 3.
- Hoppner, etc. John Hoppner (1758–1810), the portrait painter; John
Opie (1761–1807); Sir Martin Archer Shee (1769–1850), President of the Royal Academy from
1830 to 1845; Philip James Loutherbourg (1740–1812), scene painter to Garrick; John
Francis Rigaud (1742–1810); George Romney (1734–1802). Alderman John Boydell’s
(1719–1804) famous Shakespeare Gallery comprised one hundred and seventy pictures. The
engravings were published in 1802.
438
- 150.
- ‘Gone to the vault,’ etc. A favourite quotation of Burke’s from the
lines in Shakespeare:—
‘To that same ancient vaultWhere all the kindred of the Capulets lie.’Romeo and Juliet, Act IV. Scene 1.
- The picture ... of Charles I. In Hazlitt’s time this picture was at Blenheim, and he referred to it in his Sketches of the Principal Picture Galleries in England (Pictures at Oxford and Blenheim). It was bought by Parliament from the Duke of Marlborough in 1885, and is now in the National Gallery.
- The Waterloo Exhibition. The Waterloo Museum in Pall Mall ‘which now (according to the advertisement) presents to public view upwards of 1000 mementos of the late extraordinary events upon the Continent.’
- ‘From this time forth,’ etc. Othello, Act V. Scene 2.
- The English are a shopkeeping nation. Hazlitt probably refers to the exclamation of Barère said to have been repeated by Napoleon. The expression seems to have been first used by Dean Tucker of Gloucester in a Tract of 1766.
- ‘Balm of hurt minds,’ etc. Macbeth, Act II. Scene 2.
- 151.
- ‘Smoothing the raven down,’ etc. Comus, 251–252.
ON POETICAL VERSATILITY
This fragment is taken from the third of a series of four ‘Illustrations of the Times Newspaper,’ which Hazlitt contributed to The Examiner under the heading of ‘Literary Notices.’ The first of these four papers (Dec. 1, 1816) has not been republished; the other three, dated respectively December 15, 1816, December 22, 1816, and January 12, 1817, were published in Political Essays.
This excerpt is from the third of a series of four ‘Illustrations of the Times Newspaper,’ which Hazlitt contributed to The Examiner under the title ‘Literary Notices.’ The first of these four pieces (Dec. 1, 1816) has not been republished; the other three, dated December 15, 1816, December 22, 1816, and January 12, 1817, were included in Political Essays.
- PAGE
- 151.
- ‘Heaven’s own tinct.’ Cymbeline, Act II. Scene 2.
- ‘Being so majestical,’ etc. Hamlet, Act I. Scene 1.
- 152.
- Poets, it has been said. See Political Essays (Mr. Southey’s New Year’s Ode).
- They do not like, etc. The reference is to Southey, Poet Laureate, and Wordsworth, distributor of stamps for the county of Westmoreland.
ON ACTORS AND ACTING
This essay and the next are based upon the last (No. 48) of the Round Table series, which appeared in The Examiner for Jan. 5, 1817. Hazlitt has, however, interpolated into both essays various passages from former theatrical criticisms. The paper in the Round Table appears to have been inspired by Colley Cibber’s Apology for his Life. A general reference may here be made to that work, to the volume in the present edition containing Hazlitt’s dramatic criticisms, and to Lamb’s and Leigh Hunt’s essays on the stage.
This essay and the next are based on the last (No. 48) of the Round Table series, which was published in The Examiner on January 5, 1817. Hazlitt has, however, included various excerpts from previous theatrical critiques in both essays. The article in the Round Table seems to have been influenced by Colley Cibber’s Apology for his Life. A general reference can be made to that work, to the volume in this edition that includes Hazlitt’s dramatic critiques, and to Lamb’s and Leigh Hunt’s essays on the theater.
- PAGE
- 153.
- ‘The abstracts,’ etc. Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
- 154.
- George Barnwell. By George Lillo (1693–1739), produced at Drury Lane Theatre on June 22, 1731. The play was frequently revived, and was in some places acted annually as a moral lesson to apprentices.
- The Inconstant. Farquhar’s comedy (1702). Orinda should be Oriana.
- Mr. Liston. John Liston (1776?-1846),the comic actor, who made his first
appearance in 1805 and retired in 1837.
439
- 155.
- Sir George Etherege (1635?-1691), the dramatist. See English Comic Writers, where a part of this passage is repeated.
- John Kemble. John Philip Kemble (1757–1823). Hazlitt wrote an account of his retirement from the stage, which took place at Covent Garden on June 23, 1817.
- Pierre. In Otway’s Venice Preserved (1682), ‘one of the happiest and most spirited of all Mr. Kemble’s performances’ (A View of the English Stage).
- The Stranger. Benjamin Thompson’s (1776?-1816) play, ‘The Stranger,’ translated from Kotzebue, was produced in 1798, Kemble playing the title-rôle. See Hazlitt’s essay on ‘Mr. Kemble’s Retirement.’
- ‘A tale of other times.’ ‘A tale of the times of old!’ the opening words of Macpherson’s Ossian.
- One of the most affecting things, etc. This paragraph is taken from a ‘Theatrical Examiner’ (June 4, 1815) on the retirement of John Bannister (1760–1836) from the stage. For Bannister and Richard Suett (1755–1805) see Hazlitt’s essay ‘On Play-Going and on Some of our old Actors,’ and Lamb’s ‘On Some of the old Actors.’
- The Prize. By Prince Hoare (1755–1834), originally produced in 1793.
- Mrs. Storace. Anna Selina Storace or Storache (1766–1817), the singer and actress, played in ‘The Prize’ in 1793.
- My Grandmother. By Prince Hoare, produced in 1793.
- The Son-in-Law. A comic opera by John O’Keeffe (1747–1833), produced in 1779.
- Scrub. In The Beaux’ Stratagem of Farquhar.
- Thomas King (1730–1805), the original Sir Peter Teazle; William Parsons (1736–1795); James William Dodd (1740–1796); John Quick (1748–1831), who made his last appearance in 1813; and John Edwin the elder (1749–1790). See Hazlitt’s essay ‘On Play-Going and Some of our old Actors.’
- 156.
- ‘All the world’s a stage’ etc. As You Like It, Act II. Scene 7.
THE SAME SUBJECT CONTINUED
A large part of the first paragraph of this essay appeared originally in a notice of Kean’s Sir Giles Overreach (‘Theatrical Examiner,’ Jan. 14, 1816). See A View of the English Stage.
A large part of the first paragraph of this essay originally appeared in a review of Kean’s Sir Giles Overreach (‘Theatrical Examiner,’ Jan. 14, 1816). See A View of the English Stage.
- PAGE
- 156.
- ‘Leaving the world no copy.’ Twelfth Night, Act I. Scene 5.
- Colley Cibber’s account. See Chap. iv. of Cibber’s Apology.
- Miss O’Neill. Eliza O’Neill (1791–1872) made her last appearance on the stage on July 13, 1819, shortly before her marriage with Mr. Becher, who afterwards became a baronet. Hazlitt in an article on her retirement (see A View of the English Stage) said that ‘her excellence (unrivalled by any actress since Mrs. Siddons) consisted in truth of nature and force of passion.’
- Mrs. Siddons. Sarah Siddons (1755–1831) appeared without success in London in
1775 and 1776, gained a great reputation in Manchester and Bath, and reappeared in London
on October 10, 1782 in Garrick’s Isabella, a version of Southerne’s
Fatal Marriage. After a long series of triumphs she made her farewell
appearance on June 29, 1812, as Lady Macbeth. Hazlitt’s notices of her are confined to
two of the occasional benefit performances which she gave before she finally retired in
June 1819. See A View of the English Stage (June 15, 1816, and June 7, 1817).
440
- 157.
- ‘We have seen what a ferment,’ etc. See the essays above, ‘On the Catalogue Raisonné of the British Institution.’
- Betterton, etc. Thomas Betterton (1635?-1710); Barton Booth (1681–1733); Robert Wilks (1665?-1732); Samuel Sandford, a well-known actor on the Restoration stage, who died early in the eighteenth century; James Nokes (d. 1692); Anthony Leigh (d. 1692); William Pinkethman (d. 1724); William Bullock (d. 1740?); Richard Estcourt (1668–1712); Thomas Dogget (d. 1721): Elizabeth Barry (1658–1713); Susanna Mountfort, the daughter of William Mountfort, the actor and dramatist, who was murdered by Captain Hill and Lord Mohun in 1692; Anne Oldfield (1683–1730); Anne Bracegirdle (1663?-1748), who retired from the stage in 1707 after being defeated in a competition with Mrs. Oldfield; Susannah Maria Cibber (1714–1766), sister of Arne the composer, and wife of Theophilus Cibber, famous first as a singer (especially of Handel’s music), and later as an actress of tragedy.
- Cibber himself. Colley Cibber (1671–1757), actor and dramatist, Poet Laureate from 1730 till his death. For a very entertaining account of himself and of nearly all the well-known actors and actresses whose names appear in the preceding note see his Apology for his Life (1740).
- Macklin, etc. Charles Macklin (1697?-1797), actor and dramatist, whose great part was Shylock; James Quin (1693–1766); John Rich (1682–1761), the originator of pantomime in England (his name is substituted by Hazlitt for that of Peg Woffington, which appeared in the original Round Table paper); Catherine or Kitty Clive (1711–1785), whose acting and ‘sprightliness of humour’ were admired by Dr. Johnson, and Hannah Pritchard (1711–1768), who created the part of Irene in Johnson’s play, and Frances Abington (1737–1815), well-known members of Garrick’s company; Thomas Weston (1737–1776), and Edward Shuter (1728–1776), two of the best comic actors of their time.
- ‘Gladdened life,’ etc. A composite quotation from Johnson’s well-known reference to Garrick (Lives of the Poets, Edmund Smith). See Boswell’s Life of Johnson, ed. G. B. Hill, iii. 387.
- Our hundred days. The reference is a characteristic one to Buonaparte’s hundred days in Europe in 1815.
- Betterton’s Hamlet or his Brutus, etc. Colley Cibber (Apology, Chap, iv.) refers particularly to these two impersonations, describes (Chap. xiv.) Booth’s performance of Cato in 1713, and specially eulogises Mrs. Barry’s Monimia and Belvidera in Otway’s plays, The Orphan and Venice Preserved. (Chap. v.). See Hazlitt’s lecture ‘On the Spirit of Ancient and Modern Literature’ in his Lectures on the Literature of the Age of Elizabeth for a criticism of these plays. He saw and reviewed Miss O’Neill’s performances in both these characters. See A View of the English Stage.
- Penkethman’s manner, etc. See The Tatler, No. 188.
- Dowton. Hazlitt spoke of William Dowton (1764–1851) as ‘a genuine and excellent
comedian’ (‘On Play-Going and on Some of the old Actors’). There are frequent notices of
him in A View of the English Stage.
441
- 157.
- Note. Marriage in style. By Dryden, first produced in 1672. In The Examiner this note forms part of the text. At the end of the passage quoted Hazlitt proceeds: ‘The whole of Colley Cibber’s work is very amusing to a dramatic amateur. It gives an interesting account of the progress of the stage, which in his time appears to have been in a state militant. Two actors, Kynaston and Montfort were run through the body in disputes with gentlemen, with impunity; and the Master of the Revels arrested any of the two companies who was refractory to the managers, at his pleasure. Dogget was brought up in this manner from Norwich, by two constables: but Dogget being a whig, and a surly fellow, got a Habeas Corpus, and the Master of the Revels was driven from the field.’ Edward Kynaston (1640–1706) was beaten more than once at the instance of Sir Charles Sedley whom he impersonated on the stage. For the story of the Lord Chamberlain and Dogget, see Cibber’s Apology (Chap. x.).
- 158.
- Sir Harry Wildair. Farquhar’s Sir Harry Wildair, a continuation of The Constant Couple, was produced in 1701.
- ‘The Jew that Shakespeare drew.’ This is an exclamation (attributed to Pope) overheard at one of Macklin’s representations of Shylock.
- As often as we are pleased. The following passage from The Examiner is omitted by Hazlitt: ‘We have no curiosity about things or persons that we never heard of. Mr. Coleridge professes in his Lay Sermon to have discovered a new faculty, by which he can divine the future. This is lucky for himself and his friends, who seem to have lost all recollection of the past.’ Hazlitt here refers to The Statesman’s Manual; or, The Bible the best guide to political skill and foresight: A Lay Sermon, addressed to the Higher Classes of Society (1816), known as the first Lay Sermon. Hazlitt wrote two notices of it in The Examiner, one of which (September 8, 1816) was based merely on newspaper announcements of its forthcoming appearance (see Political Essays); and probably, as Coleridge believed, reviewed it in the Edinburgh Review for December 1816.
- Players, after all, etc. This passage to the end of the paragraph is from a ‘Theatrical Examiner,’ January 14, 1816.
- Actors have been accused, etc. The whole of this paragraph is taken from a ‘Theatrical Examiner,’ March 31, 1816.
- ‘The web of our life,’ etc. All’s Well that Ends Well, Act IV. Scene 3.
- 159.
- ‘Like the giddy sailor,’ etc. Richard III., Act III. Scene 4.
- A neighbouring country. Hazlitt probably refers to France where the disqualifications of actors had only recently been removed by the Revolution government. For an account of ecclesiastical intolerance towards actors, especially in France, see Lecky’s The Rise and Influence of Rationalism in Europe, II. 316 et seq.
- ‘A consummation,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 1.
- ‘The wine of life,’ etc. Macbeth, Act II. Scene 3.
- 160.
- ‘Hurried from fierce extremes,’ etc.
‘——and feel by turns the bitter changeOf fierce extremes, extremes by change more fierce,’ etc.Paradise Lost, II. 599 et seq.
- The strolling player in ‘Gil Blas.’ Gil Blas, Liv. II. Chap. viii.
WHY THE ARTS ARE NOT PROGRESSIVE: A FRAGMENT
In The Morning Chronicle for January 11 and 15, 1814, Hazlitt published two papers entitled ‘Fragments on Art. Why the Arts are not progressive?’ Later in the year he contributed two papers to The Champion (August 28, 1814, and September 11, 1814) under the heading ‘Fine Arts. Whether they are promoted by Academies and Public Institutions?’ and in a letter (October 2) replied to the criticisms of a correspondent. The present ‘Fragment’ is composed of (1) the first of the articles in The Morning Chronicle and part of the second, and (2) part of the second article in The Champion. Much of the matter of the present essay is embodied in Hazlitt’s article on the Fine Arts, contributed to the Encyclopædia Britannica.
In The Morning Chronicle on January 11 and 15, 1814, Hazlitt published two articles titled ‘Fragments on Art. Why the Arts are not progressive?’ Later that year, he contributed two articles to The Champion (August 28, 1814, and September 11, 1814) under the title ‘Fine Arts. Whether they are promoted by Academies and Public Institutions?’ In a letter dated October 2, he responded to the criticisms from a correspondent. The current ‘Fragment’ consists of (1) the first article from The Morning Chronicle and part of the second, and (2) part of the second article in The Champion. Much of the content in the present essay is included in Hazlitt’s article on the Fine Arts, contributed to the Encyclopædia Britannica.
- PAGE442
- 160.
- ‘It is often made a subject,’ etc. The first three paragraphs are taken from The Morning Chronicle, January 11, 1814. In The Champion for August 28, 1814, the first two paragraphs appear as a quotation from a ‘contemporary critic.’
- Antæus. The story of Antæus the giant is referred to by Milton (Paradise Regained, IV. 563 et seq.).
- 161.
- Nothing is more contrary, etc. This paragraph and part of the next are repeated at the beginning of the Lecture on Shakspeare and Milton in Lectures on the English Poets.
- 162.
- Guido. Substituted for Claude Lorraine, upon whom, in The Morning Chronicle, Hazlitt has the following note: ‘In speaking thus of Claude, we yield rather to common opinion than to our own. However inferior the style of his best landscapes may be, there is something in the execution that redeems all defects. In taste and grace nothing can ever go beyond them. He might be called, if not the perfect, the faultless painter. Sir Joshua Reynolds used to say, that there would be another Raphael, before there was another Claude. In Mr. Northcote’s Dream of a Painter (see his Memoirs of Sir Joshua Reynolds), there is an account of Claude Lorraine, so full of feeling, so picturesque, so truly classical, so like Claude, that we cannot resist this opportunity of copying it out.’ The passage quoted from Northcote is the paragraph beginning, ‘Now tired with pomp and splendid shew.’ See Northcote’s Varieties on Art (The Dream of a Painter) in his Memoirs of Sir Joshua Reynolds, etc. (1813–1815) p. xvi.
- ‘The human face divine.’ Paradise Lost, III. 44.
- ‘Circled Una’s angel face,’ etc. The Faerie Queene, Book I. Canto iii. st. 4.
- Griselda. See The Canterbury Tales (The Clerk’s Tale).
- The Flower and the Leaf. This poem, a great favourite of Hazlitt’s, is not now attributed to Chaucer.
- 163.
- The divine story of the Hawk. The Decameron (Fifth Day, Novel IX.). Hazlitt continually refers to the story.
- Isabella. The Decameron (Fourth Day, Novel V.).
- So Lear, etc. King Lear, Act II. Scene 4.
- Titian. The picture referred to is one of those which Hazlitt copied while he was studying in the Louvre in 1802. See Memoirs of William Hazlitt, I. 88. He frequently mentions it.
- Nicolas Poussin. ‘But, above all, who shall celebrate, in terms of fit praise, his picture of the shepherds in the Vale of Tempe going out in a fine morning of the spring, and coming to a tomb with this inscription:—And I lived in Arcadia!’ (Table Talk, ‘On a Landscape of Nicolas Poussin.’)
- In general, it must happen, etc. The two concluding paragraphs are taken from The Champion, September 11, 1814.
- Current with the world. The following passage in The Champion is here omitted: ‘Common sense, which has been sometimes appealed to as the criterion of taste, is nothing but the common capacity, applied to common facts and feelings; but it neither is nor pretends to be, the judge of anything else. To suppose that it can really appreciate the excellence of works of high art, is as absurd as to suppose that it could produce them.’
- Count Castiglione. Baldassare Count Castiglione (1478–1529), whose famous Il Cortegiano was translated into English by Sir Thomas Hoby under the title of ‘The Courtyer’ (1561).
CHARACTERS OF SHAKESPEAR’S PLAYS
- PAGE
- 171.
- It is observed by Mr. Pope. Ed. Elwin and Courthope, vol. X. pp. 534–535.
- A gentleman of the name of Mason. Neither George Mason (1735–1806), author of An Essay on Design in Gardening, 1768, nor John Monck Mason (1726–1809), Shakespearian commentator, is the author of the work alluded to by Hazlitt, but Thomas Whately (d. 1772) whose Remarks on some of the Characters of Shakespere was published after Thomas Whately’s death by his brother, the Rev. Jos. Whately, in 1785, as ‘by the author of Observations on Modern Gardening’ [1770]; a second edition was published in 1808 with the author’s name on the title-page, and a third in 1839, edited by Archbishop Whately, Thomas Whately’s nephew.
- Richardson’s Essays. Essays on Shakespeare’s Dramatic Characters. 1774–1812. By William Richardson (1743–1814).
- Schlegel’s Lectures on the Drama. A Course of Lectures on Dramatic Art and Literature. By A. W. von Schlegel. Delivered at Vienna in 1808. English translation, by John Black, in 1815. The quotation which follows will be found in Bohn’s one vol. edition, 1846, pp. 363–371, and the further references given in these notes are to the same edition.
- 174.
- ‘to do a great right.’ Mer. Ven. IV. 1.
- ‘alone is high fantastical.’ Twelfth Night, I. 1.
- 175.
- Dr. Johnson’s Preface to his Edition of Shakespear. 1765.
- ‘swelling figures.’ Dr. Johnson’s Preface. See Malone’s Shakespeare, 1821, vol. i. p. 75.
- 176.
- Dover cliff in Lear, Act IV. 6.
- flowers in The Winter's Tale, Act IV. 4.
- Congreve’s description of a ruin in the Mourning Bride, Act II. 1.
- 177.
- the sleepy eye of love. Cf. ‘The sleepy eye that spoke the melting soul.’ Pope, Imit. 1st Epis. 2nd. Bk. Horace, l. 150.
- In his tragic scenes. Dr. Johnson’s Preface, p. 71.
- His declamations, etc. Same source., p. 75.
- But the admirers, etc. Ibid., p. 75.
- 178.
- in another work, The Round Table. See pp. 61–64.
CYMBELINE
When the name of the Play is not given it is to be understood that the reference is to the Play under discussion. Differences between the text quoted by Hazlitt and the text of the Globe Shakespeare which seem worth pointing out are indicated in square brackets.
When the name of the play isn't mentioned, it should be understood that the reference is to the play being discussed. Differences between the text quoted by Hazlitt and the text of the Globe Shakespeare that are worth noting are indicated in square brackets.
- PAGE
- 179.
- Dr. Johnson is of opinion. Dr. Johnson’s Preface, p. 73.
- 180.
- Cibber, in speaking of the early English stage. Apology for the Life of Mr. Colley Cibber (1740), vol. i. chap. iv.
- 181.
- My lord, Act I. 6.
- What cheer, Act III. 4. The six following quotations in the text are in the same scene.
- 182.
- My dear lord, Act III. 6.
- And when with wild wood-leaves and with fairest flowers, Act IV. 2.
- 183.
- Cytherea, how bravely, Act II. 2.
- Me of my lawful pleasure, Act II. 5.
- 444Whose love-suit, Act III. 4.
- the ancient critic, Aristophanes of Byzantium.
- 184.
- Out of your proof, Act III. 3.
- 185.
- The game’s a-foot [is up], Act III. 3.
- under the shade. As You Like It, Act II. 7.
- See, boys! Act III. 3.
- Nay, Cadwell, Act IV. 2.
- 186.
- Stick to your journal course, Act IV. 2.
- creatures and Your Highness, Act I. 5.
MACBETH
- 186.
- The poet’s eye. A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act V. 1.
- your only tragedy-maker. It would be better to italicise only ‘tragedy’; the reference is probably to Hamlet, III. 2, ‘your only jig-maker.’
- the air [heaven’s breath] smells wooingly and the temple-haunting martlet builds [does approve by his loved mansionry], Act I. 6.
- 187.
- the blasted heath, Act I. 3.
- air-drawn dagger, Act III. 4.
- gracious Duncan, Act III. 1.
- blood-boultered Banquo, Act IV. 1.
- What are these, Act I. 3.
- bends up, Act I. 7.
- The deed [The attempt and not the deed confounds us], Act II. 2.
- preter [super] natural solicitings, Act I. 3.
- 188.
- Bring forth and screw his courage, Act I. 7.
- lost so poorly and a little water, Act II. 2.
- the sides of his intent, Act I. 7.
- for their future days and his fatal entrance, Act I. 5.
- Come all you spirits, Act I. 5.
- 189.
- Duncan comes there, Act I. 5. The two following quotations in the text are in the same scene.
- Mrs. Siddons. Sarah Siddons (1755–1831). It was as Lady Macbeth that Mrs. Siddons made her ‘last’ appearance on the stage, June 29, 1812. She returned occasionally, and Hazlitt saw her act the part at Covent Garden, June 7, 1817. See note to p. 156, and also Hazlitt’s A View of the English Stage.
- 190.
- There is no art, Act I. 4.
- How goes the night, Act II. 1.
- Light thickens, Act III. 2–3.
- 191.
- So fair and foul, Act I. 3.
- Such welcome and unwelcome news together [things at once] and Men’s lives, Act IV. 3.
- Look like the innocent flower, Act I. 5.
- To him and all [all and him], Avaunt, and himself again, Act III. 4.
- he may sleep, Act IV. 1.
- Then be thou jocund, Act III. 2.
- Had he not resembled, Act II. 2.
- they should be women, and in deeper consequence, Act I. 3.
- 192.
- Why stands Macbeth, Act IV. 1.
- the milk of human kindness, Act I. 5.
- himself alone. The Third Part of King Henry VI., Act V. 6.
- For Banquo’s issue, Act III. 1.
445
- 193.
- Duncan is in his grave, Act III. 2.
- direness is thus rendered familiar, Act V. 5.
- is troubled, Act V. 3.
- subject [servile] to all the skyey influences. Measure for Measure, Act III. 1.
- My way of life, Act V. 3.
- 194.
- the ‘Beggar’s Opera,’ by John Gay (1685–1732), first acted January 29, 1728. See The Round Table, pp. 65–66.
- Lillo’s murders. George Lillo, dramatist (1693–1739), author of Fatal Curiosity and George Barnwell. See note to p. 154.
- Lamb’s Specimens of Early [English] Dramatic Poets, 1808. See Gollancz’s edition, 2 vols., 1893, vol. I. pp. 271–272.
- the Witch of Middleton. Thomas Middleton (?1570–1627). It is not known whether the date of the Witch is earlier or later than that of Macbeth.
JULIUS CÆSAR
- 195.
- the celebrated Earl of Hallifax. Charles Montague, Earl of Halifax (1661–1715), poet and statesman. King and no King, licensed 1611, printed 1619; Secret Love, or, the Maiden Queen, first acted 1667, printed the following year.
- Thou art a cobler [but with awl. I] and Wherefore rejoice, Act I. 1.
- 196.
- once upon a raw and The games are done, Act I. 2.
- 197.
- And for Mark Antony, and O, name him not, Act II. 1.
- 198.
- This disturbed sky, Act I. 3.
- All the conspirators, Act V. 5.
- How ‘scaped I killing, Act IV. 3.
- You are my true, Act II. 1.
- 199.
- They are all welcome and It is no matter, Act II. 1.
OTHELLO
- 200.
- tragedy purifies the affections by terror and pity, Aristotle’s Poetics.
- It comes directly home, Dedication to Bacon’s Essays.
- The picturesque contrasts. The germ of this paragraph may be found in The Examiner (The Round Table, No. 38), May 12th, 1816. The paper there indexed as Shakespeare’s exact discrimination of nearly similar characters was used in the preparation of Othello, Henry IV. and Henry VI. in the Characters of Shakespear’s Plays.
- 202.
- flows on to the Propontic, Act III. 3.
- the spells, Act I. 3.
- What! Michael Cassio? and If she be false, Act III. 3.
- 203.
- Look where he comes, Act III. 3. The four following
quotations in the text and footnote are in the same scene.
[I found not Cassio’s kisses... thy hollow cell.]
- Yet, oh the pity of it, Act IV. 2.
- My wife! Act V. 2.
- 204.
- his whole course of love, Act I. 3.
- ’Tis not to make me jealous, Act III. 3.
- Believe me, Act III. 4.
- I will, my Lord, Act IV. 3.
- 205.
- her visage. Cf. ‘I saw Othello’s visage in his mind,’ Act I. 3.
- A maiden never bold, Act I. 3.
- Tempests themselves, Act II. 1.
446
- 205.
- She is subdued and honours and his valiant parts, Act I. 3.
- Ay, too gentle, Act IV. 1.
- remained at home, Act I. 3.
- Alas, Iago, Act IV. 2.
- 206.
- Would you had never seen him, Act IV. 3.
- Some persons. See The Round Table, p. 15.
- 207.
- Our ancient, Dram. Per. ‘Iago, his ancient.’
- What a full fortune, and Here is her father’s house, Act I. 1.
- 208.
- I cannot believe, Act II. 1.
- And yet how nature, Act III. 3.
- the milk of human kindness. Macbeth, Act I. 5.
- relish of salvation. Hamlet, Act III. 3.
- Oh, you are well tuned now, Act II. 1.
- My noble lord, Act III. 3.
- 209.
- O grace! O Heaven forgive [defend] me, Act III. 3.
- How is it, General, Act IV. 1.
- Zanga. See The Revenge, by Edward Young (1683–1765), first acted 1721.
TIMON OF ATHENS
- 210.
- Follow his strides, Act I. 1.
- 211.
- What, think’st thou, Act IV. 3 [moss’d trees].
- A thing slipt, Act I. 1.
- Ugly all over with hypocrisy. Cf. ‘He is ugly all over with the affectation of the fine gentleman.’ Quoted by Steele from Wycherley, The Tatler, No. 38.
- 212.
- This yellow slave, Act IV. 3.
- Let me look, Act IV. 1.
- 213.
- What things in the world, Act IV. 3.
- loved few things better, Act I. 1.
- Come not to me, Act V. 1.
- These well express, Act V. 4.
CORIOLANUS
- 214.
- no jutting frieze and to make its pendant bed. Macbeth, Act I. 6.
- it carries noise, Act II. 1.
- Carnage is its daughter. See Wordsworth’s Ode, No. XLV. of Poems dedicated to National Independence and Liberty, ed. Hutchinson, 1895. The line was altered by Wordsworth in 1845. See also Byron’s Don Juan, Canto viii. Stanza 9.
- 215.
- poor [these] rats, Act I. 1.
- as if he were a God, Act II. 1.
- Mark you and cares, Act III. 1.
- 216.
- Now the red pestilence, Act IV. 1.
- 217.
- Methinks I hither hear, Act I. 3 [At Grecian sword, contemning].
- These are the ushers, Act II. 1.
- Pray now, no more, Act I. 9.
- 218.
- The whole history. The sentence quoted is by Pope. See Malone’s Shakespeare, 1821, vol. xiv.
TROILUS AND CRESSIDA
- 221.
- Troy, yet upon her basis, Act I. 3.
- 222.
- without o’erflowing full. Said of the Thames in Cooper’s Hill, by
Sir John Denham (1615–1669).
447
- 222.
- of losing distinction in his thoughts [joys] and As doth a battle, Act III. 2.
- 223.
- Time hath, my lord, Act. III. 3.
- 224.
- Why there you touch’d, Act II. 2.
- Come here about me, Act V. 7.
- Go thy way, Act I. 2.
- It is the prettiest villain, Act III. 2.
- 225.
- the web of our lives. All’s Well that Ends Well, Act IV. 3.
- He hath done, Act V. 5.
- 226.
- Prouder than when, Act I. 3.
- like the eye of vassalage, Act III. 2 [like vassalage at unawares encountering the eye of majesty].
- And as the new abashed nightingale, Chaucer’s Troilus and Criseyde, Book III. 177.
- 227.
- Her armes small. Ibid., 179.
- O that I thought, Act III. 2.
- Rouse yourself, Act III. 3.
- What proffer’st thou, Chaucer’s Troilus and Criseyde, Book III. 209.
ANTONY AND CLEOPATRA
- 228.
- like the swan’s down-feather, Act III. 2.
- If it be love indeed, Act I. 1.
- 229.
- The barge she sat in, Act II. 2.
- like a doating mallard, Act III. 10.
- He’s speaking now, Act I. 5.
- It is my birthday and To let a fellow, Act. III. 13.
- Age cannot wither, Act. II. 2 [stale].
- There’s gold, Act. II. 5.
- 230.
- Dost thou not see, Act V. 2.
- Antony, leave thy lascivious wassels, Act I. 4. [For Mutina read Modena.]
- Yes, yes, Act III. 11.
- 231.
- Eros, thou yet behold’st me, Act IV. 14.
- I see men’s judgments, Act III. 13.
- 232.
- a master-leaver, Act IV. 9.
HAMLET
- 232.
- this goodly frame and man delighted not, Act II. 2.
- too much i’ th’ sun. Cf. Act II. 2.
- the pangs of despised love, Act III. 1.
- 233.
- the outward pageants. Cf. the trappings and the suits of woe, Act I. 2.
- we have that within, Act I. 2.
- 234.
- that has no relish of salvation and He kneels and prays [now might I do it pat, now he is praying], Act III. 3.
- How all occasions, Act IV. 4 [fust in us].
- 235.
- Whole Duty of Man, 1659, a once-popular ethical treatise of unknown authorship.
- Academy of Compliments, or the whole Art of Courtship, being the rarest and most
exact way of wooing a Maid or Widow, by the way of Dialogue or complimental
Expressions. London, 12mo. Academies of Compliments were also published in 1655
and 1669.
448
- 236.
- his father’s spirit, Act I. 2.
- I loved Ophelia and Sweets to the sweet, Act V. 1.
- Oh rose of May, Act IV. 5.
- There is a willow, Act IV. 7 [grows aslant].
- 237.
- a wave o’ th’ sea. The Winter’s Tale, Act IV. 4.
THE TEMPEST
- 238.
- Either for tragedy. Hamlet, Act II. 2. Hazlitt alters the words of Polonius to apply them to Shakespeare.
- a deed without a name. Macbeth, Act IV. 1.
- does his spiriting gently, Act I. 2.
- to airy nothing. A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act V. 1.
- semblably. The Second Part of King Henry VI., Act V. 1.
- worthy of that name. Cf. Act III. 1.
- 239.
- like the dyer’s hand. Sonnet CXI.
- ‘the liberty of wit’ ... ‘the law’ of the understanding. Cf. Hamlet, Act II. 2 [the law of writ and the liberty].
- of the earth, earthy. St. John, iii. 31.
- always speaks in blank verse, Schlegel, p. 395.
- As wicked dew, Act I. 2.
- 240.
- I’ll shew thee, Act II. 2.
- Be not afraid, Act III. 2.
- 241.
- I drink the air, Act V. 1.
- I’ll put a girdle, A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act II. 2.
- Your charm, Act V. 1.
- Come unto these yellow sands, Act I. 2.
- 242.
- The cloud-capp’d towers, Act IV. 1.
- Ye elves of hills, Act V. 1.
- 243.
- Shakespear has anticipated. The passage quoted is based on Florio’s translation of Montaigne. See Chapter XXX. Book 1. Of the Caniballes.
- Had I the plantation, Act II. 1.
THE MIDSUMMER NIGHT’S DREAM
See The Round Table, pp. 61–64.
See The Round Table, pp. 61–64.
- 244.
- This crew of patches, Act III. 2.
- He will roar, Act I. 2. The two following quotations in the text are in the same scene.
- I believe we must leave, Act III. 1.
- 245.
- Write me a prologue, Act III. 1.
- with amiable cheeks and Monsieur Cobweb, Act IV. 1.
- Lord, what fools, Act III. 2.
- the human mortals, Act II. 1.
- gorgons and hydras. Paradise Lost, Book II. l. 628.
- regarded him rather as a metaphysician. Cf. ‘No man was ever yet a great poet, without being at the same time a profound philosopher.’ Coleridge’s Biographia Literaria, Chap. XV.
- 246.
- Be kind, Act III. 1.
- Go, one of you, Act IV. 1.
- 247.
- the most fearful wild-fowl, Act III. 1.
449
- 247.
- Liston acted in A Midsummer Night’s Dream at Covent Garden, January 17, 1816. See Genest’s Some Account of the English Stage, VIII. 545–549. See also Hazlitt’s A View of the English Stage, where a few of the same sentences used here also occur.
ROMEO AND JULIET
- 248.
- whatever is most intoxicating, Schlegel, p. 400.
- fancies [cowslips] wan. Lycidas, l. 147.
- 249.
- We have heard it objected. By Curran. See post, p. 393.
- too unripe and crude. Cf. Lycidas, l. 3, ‘harsh and crude.’
- the Outsider. Hate for humanity and regret, by A.F.F. von Kotzebue (1761–1819), adapted for the English stage under the title of The Stranger. See note to p. 155.
- gather grapes. St. Matthew, vii. 16.
- My bounty, Act II. 2.
- 250.
- they fade by degrees, Wordsworth’s Ode, Intimations of Immortality from Recollections of early Childhood, V. [fade into the light].
- that lies about us. Ibid.
- 251.
- the purple light of love, Gray’s Progress of Poesy, l. 41.
- another morn risen on mid-day [mid-noon], Paradise Lost, V. 310–311.
- in utter nakedness, Wordsworth’s Ode (see above), V.
- I’ve seen the day, Act I. 5.
- At my poor house, Act I. 2.
- But he, Act I. 1.
- 252.
- the white wonder, Act III. 3.
- What lady’s that, Act I. 5.
- But stronger Shakespear felt for man alone, Collins’s Epistle to Sir Thomas Hanmer.
- Thou know’st the mask, Act II. 2.
- 253.
- calls [think] true love spoken [acted] and Gallop apace, Act III. 2.
- It was reserved, Schlegel, p. 400.
- 254.
- Here comes the lady, Act II. 6.
- Ancient damnation, Act III. 5.
- frail thoughts. Lycidas, 153 [false surmise].
- the flatteries, Act V. 1.
- What said my man, Act V. 3.
- If I may trust, Act V. 1 [flattering truth of sleep].
- 255.
- Shame come to Romeo and Blister’d be thy tongue, Act III. 2.
- 256.
- father, mother, Act III. 2.
- Let me peruse, Act V. 3.
- 257.
- as she would take [catch]. Antony and Cleopatra, Act V. 2.
- The Beauties of Shakespear. By Dr. Wm. Dodd (1729–1777), 1753.
LEAR
- 258.
- Be Kent unmannerly and Prescribe not, Act I. 1.
- 259.
- This is the excellent foppery, Act I. 2.
- the dazzling fence of controversy. Cf. the ‘dazzling fence’ of rhetoric, Comus, 790–791.
- 260.
- beat at the gate, he has made and Let me not stay, Act I. 4.
- How now, daughter. Ibid. [much o’ the savour].
- 263.
- O let me not be mad, Act I. 5.
450
- 264.
- Vengeance and Good-morrow to you both, Act II. 4 [how this becomes the house].
- 268.
- See the little dogs, Act III. 6.
- Let them anatomise Regan, Act III. 6.
- Nothing but his unkind daughters, Act III. 4.
- whether a madman, Act III. 6.
- Come on, sir, Act IV. 6.
- full circle home, Act V. 3.
- 269.
- Shame, ladies, Act IV. 3.
- Alack, ’tis he, Act IV. 4.
- How does my royal lord, Act IV. 7.
- We are not the first, Act V. 3.
- 270.
- And my poor fool, Act V. 3.
- Vex not his ghost, Act V. 3 [this tough world].
- Approved of by Dr. Johnson. See Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. X. p. 290.
- condemned by Schlegel. See Schlegel, p. 413.
- The Lear of Shakespear. See Lamb’s Miscellaneous Essays, ed. Ainger, 1884, p. 233.
- 271.
- [For that rich sea read that sea.]
RICHARD II.
- 273.
- How long a time, Act I. 3.
- sighed his English breath, Act III. 1.
- The language I have learnt, Act I. 3.
- is hung armour, Wordsworth’s Sonnet, It is not to be thought of (1802).
- keen encounters. King Richard III., Act I. 2.
- If that thy valour, Act IV. 1 [Till thou the lie-giver and that lie do lie].
- 275.
- This royal throne of kings, Act II. 1 [fear’d by their breed and famous by their birth ... the envious siege].
- 276.
- Ourself and Bushy, Act I. 4.
- I thank thee, Act II. 3.
- O that I were a mockery king, Act IV. 1.
- it yearned his heart, Act V. 5.
- My lord, you told me, Act V. 2 [scowl on gentle Richard].
HENRY IV.
- 278.
- we behold the fulness. Cf. Col. ii. 9.
- lards the lean earth. 1 King Henry IV., Act II. 2.
- into thin air. The Tempest, Act IV. 1.
- three fingers [omit deep], Act IV. 2.
- it snows of meat and drink. Canterbury Tales, Prologue, 345.
- ascends me into the brain, Part II. Act IV. 3.
- a sun of man, Part I. Act II. 4.
- 279.
- open, palpable, Part I. Act II. 4 [like their father that begets them; gross as a mountain, open, palpable].
- By the lord, Part I. Act I. 2.
- 280.
- But Hal, Part I. Act I. 2.
- who grew from four [two] men, Part I. Act II. 4.
- 281.
- Harry, I do not only marvel, Part I. Act II. 4 [purses?
a question to be asked].
451
- 282.
- What is the gross sum and Marry, if thou wert an honest man, Part II. Act II. 1.
- 283.
- Would I were with him. Henry V., Act II. 3.
- turning his vices [diseases], Part II. Act I. 2.
- their legs, Part II. Act II. 4.
- a man made after supper and Would, cousin Silence, Part II. Act III. 2.
- I did not think Master Silence, in some authority, and You have here, Part II. Act V. 3.
- 284.
- When on the gentle Severn’s sedgy bank and By heaven [honour from the pale-faced moon], Part I. Act I. 3.
- Had my sweet Harry, Part II. Act II. 3.
HENRY V.
- PAGE
- 285.
- the [best] king of good fellows, Act V. 2.
- plume up their wills. Othello, Act I. 3.
- the right divine, Pope’s Dunciad, Book IV. 1. 188.
- 286.
- when France is his, Act I. 2.
- O for a muse of fire, Prologue.
- 287.
- the reformation and which is a wonder, Act I. 1.
- And God forbid, Act I. 2.
- 288.
- the ill neighbourhood, For once the eagle England, and For government [the act of order], Act I. 2.
- 289.
- rich with [omit his] praise, Act I. 2.
- O hard condition, Act IV. 1.
- 290.
- The Duke of York, Act IV. 6.
- 291.
- some disputations, Act III. 2.
HENRY VI.
- 292.
- flat and unraised. King Henry V., Act I., Chorus.
- Glory is like a circle, Part I. Act I. 2.
- yet tell’st thou not, Part I. Act I. 4.
- 293.
- Aye, Edward will use women honourably, Part III. Act III. 2.
- We have already observed. See note to p. 200 for the source of this paragraph.
- 294.
- The characters and situations. The material between these words and disappointed ambition (p. 297) formed part of an article by Hazlitt in The Examiner (see note to p. 200).
- Edward Plantagenet, Part III. Act II. 2.
- mock not my senseless conjuration. Richard II., Act III. 2 [foul rebellion’s arms ... lift shrewd steel ... God for his Richard].
- 295.
- But now the blood. Richard II., Act III. 2.
- cheap defence. Cf. Burke: Reflections on the Revolution in France, ‘the cheap defence of nations.’
- Awake, thou coward majesty [twenty thousand names] and Where is the duke. Richard II., Act III. 2.
- 296.
- what must the king do now. Richard II., Act III. 3.
- This battle fares, Part III. Act II. 5.
- 297.
- had staggered his royal person. Richard II., Act V. 5.
RICHARD III.
- PAGE
- 298.
- the character in which Garrick came out. David Garrick (1717–1779) appeared, October 19, 1741, at the theatre in Goodman’s Fields.
- the second character in which Mr. Kean appeared. Edmund Kean (1787–1833) appeared at Drury Lane as Shylock, January 26, 1814, on February 1st as Shylock, on February 12th as Gloster in Richard III. See Some Account of the English Stage, Genest, vol. viii. pp. 407–408, 1832. See also Hazlitt’s A View of the English Stage.
- But I was born, Act I. 3.
- 299.
- Cooke. George Frederick Cooke (1756–1811) acted Richard III. at Covent Garden on September 20, 1809. See Genest’s Some Account of the English Stage, viii. p. 178.
- 300.
- Sir Giles Overreach, in Massinger’s A New Way to Pay Old Debts (1620–33). For Hazlitt’s criticism of Kean’s acting in this and the other characters referred to in the same paragraph see his A View of the English Stage.
- Oroonoko, or the Royal Slave. A play (1696) by Thomas Southerne (1660/1–1746) founded on a novel of Aphra Behn’s (1640–1689).
- Cibber. See note to p. 157.
- 301.
- bustle in, Act I. 1.
- they do me wrong, Act I. 3 [speak fair].
- I beseech your graces, Act I. 1.
- 302.
- Stay, yet look, Act IV. 1 [rude, ragged nurse].
- Dighton and Forrest, Act IV. 3.
HENRY VIII.
- 303.
- Nay, forsooth, Act III. 1.
- Dr. Johnson observes, Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. xix. p. 498.
- 304.
- Farewell, a long farewell, Act III. 2.
- him whom of all men, Act IV. 2.
- while her grace sat down, Act IV. 1.
- 305.
- No maid could live near such a man. Mr. P. A. Daniel suggests that by a slip this remark has been said of Shakespeare instead of Henry VIII. The emendation would make the paragraph read thus: ‘It has been said of him [i.e. Henry VIII.]—“No maid could live near such a man.” It might with as good reason be said of Shakespear—“No king could live near such a man.”’
- the best of kings. A phrase applied to Ferdinand VII. of Spain in official documents. See The Examiner, September 25, 1814, where the words are ironically italicised.
KING JOHN
- 306.
- denoted a foregone conclusion. Othello, Act III. 3.
- To consider thus. Hamlet, Act V. 1.
- 307.
- Heat me these irons, Act IV. 1.
- 310.
- There is not yet, Act IV. 3.
- To me, Act III. 1.
- that love of misery and Oh father Cardinal, Act III. 4.
- 311.
- Aliquando. Ben Jonson’s Discoveries, LXIV., De Shakespeare Nostrati.
- 453commodity, tickling commodity, Act II. 1.
- 312.
- That daughter there, Act II. 1 [niece to England].
- Therefore to be possessed, Act IV. 2.
TWELFTH NIGHT
- 314.
- high fantastical, Act I. 1.
- Wherefore are these things hid, Act I. 3.
- rouse the night-owl and Dost thou think, Act II. 3.
- we cannot agree with Dr. Johnson. See Dr. Johnson’s Preface, before cited, p. 71.
- 315.
- What’s her history, Act II. 4.
- Oh, it came o’er the ear, Act I., 1 [the sweet sound].
- They give a very echo, Act II. 4.
- Blame not this haste, Act IV. 3.
- 316.
- O fellow, come, Act II. 4.
- Here comes the little villain, Act II. 5 [drawn from us with cars].
THE TWO GENTLEMEN OF VERONA
- 318.
- It is observable. The note is by Pope. See Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. iv. p. 3.
- This whole scene. Pope’s note is to Act I. 1. See Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. iv. p. 13.
- Why, how know you, Act II. 1.
- 319.
- I do not seek, Act II. 7.
- The river wanders [glideth] at its [his] own sweet will. Sonnet composed upon Westminster Bridge, September 3, 1802.
- And sweetest Shakespear. The Happy Man, lines 133–134.
[Or sweetest Shakespeare ...Warble....]
THE MERCHANT OF VENICE
- 320.
- Mr. Cumberland. Richard Cumberland (1732–1811), dramatist.
- baited with the rabble’s curse. Macbeth, Act V. 8.
- a man no less sinned against. Cf. King Lear, Act III. 2.
- the lodged hate, Act IV. 1.
- milk of human kindness. Macbeth, Act I. 5.
- Jewish gaberdine, Act I. 3.
- lawful, Act IV. 1.
- on such a day, Act I. 3.
- 321.
- I am as like, Act I. 3.
- To bait fish withal, Act III. 1.
- What judgment, Act IV. 1.
- 322.
- I would not have parted, Act III. 1.
- civil doctor and On such a night, Act V. 1.
- conscience and the fiend, Act II. 2.
- I hold the world, Act I. 1.
454
- 323.
- How sweet the moonlight, Act V. 1.
- Bassanio and old Shylock, Act IV. 1.
- 324.
- ’Tis an unweeded garden. Hamlet, Act I. 2 [things rank, and gross in nature, possess it merely].
THE WINTER’S TALE
- 324.
- We wonder that Mr. Pope. See Pope’s Preface, Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. i. p. 15.
- Ha’ not you seen, Act I. 2.
- 325.
- Is whispering nothing? Act I. 2.
- 326.
- Thou dearest Perdita, Act IV. 4.
- 329.
- Even here undone, Act IV. 4.
ALL’S WELL THAT ENDS WELL
- 330.
- Oh, were that all, Act I. 1.
- The soul of this man, Act II. 5.
- the bringing off of his drum, Act III. 6 and Act IV. 1.
- 331.
- Is it possible, Act IV. 1.
- Yet I am thankful, Act IV. 3.
- Frederigo Alberigi and his Falcon, Boccaccio’s Decameron, 5th day, 9th story.
- 332.
- the story of Isabella. Id., 4th day, 5th story.
- Tancred and Sigismunda. Id., 4th day, 1st story. See also Dryden’s Sigismonda and Guiscardo.
- Honoria. Id., 5th day, 8th story. See also Dryden’s Theodore and Honoria.
- Cimon and Iphigene. Id., 5th day, 1st story. See also Dryden’s Cimon and Iphigenia.
- Jeronymo. Id., 4th day, 8th story.
- the two holiday lovers. Id., 4th day, 7th story.
- Griselda. Id., 10th day, 10th story.
LOVE’S LABOUR’S LOST
- 332.
- the golden cadences of poesy, Act IV. 2.
- set a mark of reprobation, Pope’s note to The Two Gentlemen of Verona. Malone’s Shakespeare, vol. iv. p. 13.
- 333.
- as too picked, Act V. 1.
- as light as bird from brake [brier]. A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act V. 1.
- O! and I forsooth, Act III. 1 [a humorous sigh ... This senior-junior].
- 334.
- Oft have I heard, Act V. 2 [your fruitful brain].
- the words of Mercury, Act V. 2.
MUCH ADO ABOUT NOTHING
- 335.
- Oh, my lord, Act I. 1.
- No, Leonato, Act. IV. 1.
- 336.
- She dying, Act IV. 1 [the idea of her life].
- For look where Beatrice and What fire is in mine ears, Act III. 1.
455
- 337.
- Monsieur Love ... This can be no trick, Act II. 3.
- Disdain and scorn, Act III. 1.
AS YOU LIKE IT
- 338.
- fleet the time, Act I. 1.
- under the shade, Act II. 7.
- who have felt, Cymbeline, Act III. 2.
- They hear the tumult, Cowper’s Task, IV. 99–100, ‘I behold the tumult, and am still.’
- 339.
- And this their life, Act II. 1.
- suck melancholy, Act II. 5.
- who morals on the time, Act II. 7.
- Out of these convertites, Act V. 4.
- In heedless mazes. L’Allegro, 141–142.
[With wanton heed and giddy cunning,The melting voice through mazes running.]
- For ever and a day, Act IV. 1.
- 340.
- We still have slept together, Act I. 3.
- And how like you, Act III. 2.
- 341.
- Blow, blow, Act II. 7.
- an If, Act V. 4.
- Think not I love him, Act III. 5.
THE TAMING OF THE SHREW
- 342.
- Think you a little din, Act I. 2.
- I’ll woo her, Act II. 1.
- 343.
- Tut, she’s a lamb, Act III. 2.
- 344.
- Good morrow, gentle mistress, Act IV. 5.
- The mathematics, Act I. 1.
- The Honey-Moon. A successful play by John Tobin (1770–1804) with a plot similar to that of The Taming of the Shrew, produced at Drury Lane January 31, 1805.
- Tranio, I saw her coral lips, Act I. 1.
- 345.
- I knew a wench, Act IV. 4.
- Indifferent well, Act I. 1.
- for a pot and I am Christopher Sly, Induc. Scene 2.
- The Slies are no rogues, Induc. Scene 1.
MEASURE FOR MEASURE
- 345.
- The height of moral argument. ‘The highth of this great argument,’ Paradise Lost, I. l. 24.
- 346.
- one that apprehends death, Act IV. 2.
- He has been drinking, Act IV. 3.
- wretches, Schlegel, p. 387.
- as the flesh, Act II. 1.
- A bawd, sir? and Go to, sir, Act IV. 2.
- 347.
- there is some soul of goodness. Henry V., Act IV. 1.
- Let me know the point, Act III. 1.
- 348.
- Reason thus with life, Act III. 1.
THE MERRY WIVES OF WINDSOR
- PAGE
- 349.
- commanded to shew the knight. Cf. Schlegel, p. 427.
- 350.
- some faint sparks. Hamlet, Act V. 1 [your flashes ... the table on a roar].
- to eat. 2 Henry IV., Act II. 1.
- to be no more so familiarity. 2 Henry IV., Act II. 1.
- an honest, Act I. 4.
- very good discretions. Cf. Act I. 1.
- cholers, Act III. 1.
THE COMEDY OF ERRORS
DOUBTFUL PLAYS OF SHAKESPEAR
- 353.
- All the editors, Schlegel, p. 442.
- at the blackness, Schlegel, see above.
- 357.
- a lasting storm. Per., IV. 1 [whirring me from my friends].
POEMS AND SONNETS
- 358.
- as broad and casing. Macbeth, Act III. 4 [broad and general as the casing air].
- cooped. Cf. Macbeth, Act III. 4 [cabined, cribbed, confined].
- glancing from heaven. A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act V. 1.
- 359.
- Oh! idle words. Lucrece, ll. 1016–1122 [Out, idle words, be you mediators].
- Round hoof’d. Venus and Adonis, ll. 295–300.
- And their heads. A Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act IV. 1.
- 360.
- Constancy. Sonnet XXV.
- Love’s Consolation. Sonnet XXIX.
- Novelty. Sonnet CII. [stops her pipe].
- 361.
- Life’s Decay. Sonnet LXXIII.
A LETTER TO WILLIAM GIFFORD, ESQ.
William Gifford (1756–1826), the son of a glazier, after a neglected childhood, during which he was at one time apprenticed to a shoemaker, entered Exeter College, Oxford, through the kindness of a friend, and graduated in 1782. His two satires, The Baviad (1791) and The Mæviad (1795), were published together in 1797, and his translation of Juvenal, upon which he had been working since he left Oxford, in 1802. He became editor of The Anti-Jacobin (1797), and was the first editor (1809–1824) of The Quarterly Review. He published a translation of Persius in 1821, and editions of some of the old dramatists: Massinger (1805), Ben Jonson (1816), Ford (1827), and Shirley (completed by Dyce, 1833). In The Examiner for June 14, 1818, appeared a ‘Literary Notice,’ entitled ‘The Editor of the Quarterly Review,’ which Hazlitt incorporated in the present ‘Letter.’
William Gifford (1756–1826), the son of a glazier, had a rough childhood. At one point, he was apprenticed to a shoemaker but later found his way to Exeter College, Oxford, thanks to the generosity of a friend, and graduated in 1782. His two satires, The Baviad (1791) and The Mæviad (1795), were published together in 1797, along with his translation of Juvenal, which he had been working on since leaving Oxford, in 1802. He became the editor of The Anti-Jacobin (1797) and was the first editor (1809–1824) of The Quarterly Review. He published a translation of Persius in 1821 and editions of several old dramatists: Massinger (1805), Ben Jonson (1816), Ford (1827), and Shirley (completed by Dyce, 1833). In The Examiner on June 14, 1818, there was a ‘Literary Notice’ titled ‘The Editor of the Quarterly Review,’ which Hazlitt included in this ‘Letter.’
- 366.457
- ‘False and hollow,’ etc. Paradise Lost, II. 112 et seq.
- Ackerman’s dresses for May. Rudolf Ackerman’s (1764–1834) Repository of Arts, Literature, Fashions, Manufactures, etc., was issued periodically between 1809 and 1828.
- Carlton House. The residence of the Prince Regent. It was pulled down in 1826.
- 367.
- A Jacobin stationer. Hazlitt refers to the case of William Paul Rogers, a Chelsea stationer, who for taking an active part in a petition for reform was deprived of the charge of a letter-box. Leigh Hunt referred to the case in The Examiner for February 7, 1819 (not February 9, as Hazlitt says), and opened a subscription list for Rogers. The two clergymen referred to took an active part against Rogers. Wellesley, a brother of the Duke of Wellington, was Rector of Chelsea, and Butler had a school there.
- ‘The tenth transmitter.’
‘No tenth transmitter of a foolish face.’Richard Savage’s The Bastard, l. 7.
- 368.
- Ultra-Crepidarian. Leigh Hunt published a satire on Gifford entitled Ultra-Crepidarius in 1823, but the phrase was invented for Gifford, Leigh Hunt says in his preface, ‘by a friend of mine ... one of the humblest as well as noblest spirits that exist.’ This was perhaps Lamb.
- 370.
- Your account of the first work. In The Quarterly Review, April 1817 (vol. xvii. p. 154).
- Albemarle Street hoax. John Murray (1778–1843), the founder and publisher of The Quarterly Review, purchased No. 50 Albemarle Street in 1812.
- 372.
- ‘Secret, sweet and precious.’
‘The landlady and Tam grew graciousWi’ secret favours, sweet and precious.’Burns, Tam o’Shanter.
- 373.
- ‘Two or three conclusive digs,’ etc. From a passage in Leigh Hunt’s essay ‘On Washerwomen’ referred to by Gifford.
- Note. ‘The milk of human kindness.’ Macbeth, Act I. Scene 5.
- 374.
- Earl Grosvenor. Gifford was for a time tutor in Lord Grosvenor’s family.
- ‘Their gorge did not rise.’ Hamlet, Act V. Scene 1.
- ‘You assume a vice,’ etc.
‘Assume a virtue, if you have it not.’Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
- In the ‘Examiner.’ February 25, 1816.
- 375.
- How little knew’st thou of Calista!
‘O, thou hast known but little of Calista!’Rowe’s The Fair Penitent, Act IV. Scene 1.
- Anne Davies. Gifford bequeathed £3000 to her relatives. In addition to the epitaph quoted in the text he wrote an elegy on her, beginning, ‘I wish I was where Anna lies,’ which is referred to in Hazlitt’s character of Gifford in The Spirit of the Age.
- 376.
- ‘Other such dulcet diseases.’ As You Like It, Act V. Scene 4.
- ‘Compunctious visitings of Nature.’ Macbeth, Act I. Scene 5.
- ‘You are well tuned now,’ etc. Othello, Act II. Scene 1.
- ‘Made of penetrable stuff.’ Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
- ‘Stuffed with paltry, blurred sheets.’ Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 101).
- Note 1. ‘It is easier,’ etc. St. Matthew, xix. 24.
458
- 377.
- The Admiralty Scribe. John Wilson Croker (1780–1857), who contributed two hundred and sixty articles to The Quarterly Review, was Secretary to the Admiralty from 1809 to 1830.
- His ‘Feast of the Poets.’ Published in 1814.
- 378.
- Thus painters write their names at Co. From Prior’s Protogenes and Apelles. Burke quoted the line in his Regicide Peace (Select Works, ed. Payne, p. 94).
- For this passage, etc. Leigh Hunt and his brother John were in prison for two years from February 1813 for a libel on the Prince Regent in The Examiner (March 22, 1812). Leigh Hunt was sent, not to Newgate, but to the Surrey Gaol in Horsemonger Lane, where he wrote The Descent of Liberty: A Masque, and the greater part of The Story of Rimini. Gifford’s review of Rimini appeared in The Quarterly Review for Jan. 1816 (vol. xiv. p. 473).
- 378.
- Yet you say somewhere. In the review of Hazlitt’s Lectures on the English Poets (Quarterly Review, July 1818, vol. xix. at p. 430).
- Note. Mary Robinson (1758–1800), known as ‘Perdita,’ from her having captivated
the Prince of Wales while she was acting in that part in 1778. On being deserted by him
she devoted herself to literature, and became one of the Della Cruscan School ridiculed
by Gifford. Hazlitt refers to Gifford’s Baviad, ll. 27–28:—
‘See Robinson forget her state, and moveOn crutches tow’rds the grave, to “Light o’ Love.”’
- Put on the pannel, etc. ‘If I can help it, he shall not be on the inquest of my fair value.’ Burke’s A Letter to a Noble Lord (Works, Bohn, V. 114). Note. Mr. Sheridan once spoke. See speech of March 7, 1788 (Parl. Hist., vol. xxvii.).
- 379.
- John Hoppner (1758–1810), the portrait-painter.
- Charles Long (1761–1838), paymaster-general, created Baron Farnborough in 1826.
- 380.
- ‘From slashing Bentley,’ etc. Pope, Prologue to the Satires, l. 164.
- 381.
- ‘It was Caviare to the multitude.’ ‘’Twas caviare to the general.’ Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
- Note. Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
- 382.
- An Essay on the Ignorance of the Learned. Republished in Table Talk, from The Scots Magazine (New Series), iii. 55.
- 384.
- Blackwood’s Edinburgh Magazine. Founded by William Blackwood (1776–1834) in 1817.
- You have tried it twice since. That is, in his reviews of Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (January 1818, vol. xviii. p. 458) and of Lectures on the English Poets (July 1818, vol. xix. p. 424).
- 385.
- Be noticed in the Edinburgh Review. By Jeffrey, July 1817 (vol. xxviii. p. 472).
‘Dedicate its sweet leaves.’
‘Ere he can spread his sweet leaves to the air,Or dedicate his beauty to the sun.’Romeo and Juliet, Act I. Scene 1.
- 386.
- ‘This is what is looked for,’ etc. Twelfth Night, Act III. Scene 2.
- ‘They keep you as an ape,’ etc. Hamlet, Act IV. Scene 2.
- You ‘have the office,’ etc.
‘——You, mistress,That have the office opposite to Saint Peter,And keep the gate of hell!’Othello, Act IV. Scene 2.459
- 386.
- You ‘keep a corner,’ etc.
‘Or keep it as a cistern for foul toadsTo knot and gender in.’Othello, Act IV. Scene 2.
- ‘Lay the flattering unction.’
‘Lay not that flattering unction to your soul.’Hamlet, Act III. Scene 4.
- 387.
- The authority of Mr. Burke. Burke refers to Henry VIII. as ‘one of the most decided tyrants in the rolls of history,’ and speaks of ‘his iniquitous proceedings’ ‘when he resolved to rob the abbies.’ Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 136–137). See also a passage in A Letter to a Noble Lord (Works, Bohn, V. 131 et seq.).
- With Mr. Coleridge in his late Lectures. Hazlitt probably refers to The Statesman’s Manual (1816). See Political Essays.
- ‘Truth to be a liar.’ Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
- ‘Speak out, Grildrig.’ See Swift’s Gulliver’s Travels (Voyage to Brobdingnag).
- 388.
- ‘The insolence of office,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 1.
- Those ‘who crook,’ etc. Hamlet, Act III. Scene 2.
- Spa-fields. Where the famous meeting of reformers had recently (December 2, 1816) been held.
- A seditious Sunday paper. The Examiner was published on Sunday.
- Mr. Coleridge’s ‘Conciones ad Populum.’ Two anti-Pittite addresses published in 1795.
- 389.
- ‘The pride, pomp,’ etc. Othello, Act III. Scene 3.
- ‘One murder makes a villain,’ etc. From Bishop Porteus’s prize poem Death (1759).
- 390.
- The still sad music of humanity. Wordsworth’s Lines composed a few miles above Tintern Abbey.
- 391.
- You have forgotten Mr. Burke, etc. See Letters on a Regicide Peace (Select Works, ed. Payne, iii. p. 50).
- ‘Go to,’ etc.
‘Go to, Sir; you weigh equally; a feather will turn the scale.’Measure for Measure, Act IV. Scene 2.‘The weight of a hair will turn the scales between their avoirdupois.’2 Henry IV., Act III. Scene 4.
- ‘Cinque-spotted,’ etc. Cymbeline, Act II. Scene 3.
- Note. ‘Carnage is the daughter of humanity.’ See note to p. 214 and Notes and Queries, 9th series, ii. 309, 398; iii. 37.
- 392.
- Red-lattice phrases. Alehouse language. See Merry Wives of Windsor, Act II. Scene 2.
- 393.
- Such ‘welcome and unwelcome things.’ Macbeth, Act IV. Scene 3.
- The objection to ‘Romeo and Juliet.’ See ante, p. 249. Hazlitt refers to the criticism of Paradise Lost in his Lecture on Shakspeare and Milton (Lectures on the English Poets).
- Note. Quoted from a review by Jeffrey in The Edinburgh Review, August 1817 (vol. xxviii. at p. 473).
- 394.
- ‘One of the most perfect,’ etc. Quoted from Gifford’s review of Characters of Shakespear’s Plays (vol. xviii. p. 458).
- Ends of verse, etc.
‘Chear’d up himself with ends of verse,And sayings of philosophers.’Hudibras, Part I. Canto iii.460
- 394.
- The geometricians and chemists of France. Burke’s A Letter to a Noble Lord (Works, Bohn, V. 142).
- ‘Present to your mind’s eye.’ Hamlet, Act I. Scene 2.
- ‘Holds his crown,’ etc. Burke’s Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 17).
- 395.
- The ingenious parallel, etc. See before, p. 171.
- The article in the last Review. Quarterly Review, July 1818 (vol. xix, p. 424).
- 398.
- We must speak by the card, etc. Hamlet, Act V. Scene 1.
- A knavish speech, etc. Hamlet, Act IV. Scene 2.
- Shakespear says, etc. Othello, Act III. Scene 3.
- 400.
- The authority of Mr. Burke. Hazlitt quotes inaccurately a passage in Burke’s essay ‘On the Sublime and Beautiful,’ Works (Bohn), i. 81.
- Emelie that fayrer, etc. Canterbury Tales (The Knightes Tale, 1035–8).
- 401.
- The only mistake. The reference is probably to a passage in the first edition, where Hazlitt says, ‘Prior’s serious poetry, as his Alma, is as heavy, as his familiar style was light and agreeable.’ Gifford quotes this passage and adds: ‘Unluckily for our critic, Prior’s Alma is in his lightest and most familiar style, and is the most highly finished specimen of that species of versification which our language possesses.’ In the second edition Hazlitt substituted Solomon for Alma.
- Mr. Coleridge. See Biographia Literaria, Chap, iii., note at the end. Coleridge had already in the first number of the Friend referred to this passage, which appeared in a footnote by the editor of The Beauties of the Anti-Jacobin, and not in The Anti-Jacobin itself. See Athenæum, May 31, 1900.
- Your predecessor. Gifford was himself editor of the Anti-Jacobin, or Weekly Examiner, which appeared from November 20, 1797, to July 9, 1798.
- 402.
- ‘Dying, make a swan-like end.’
‘Then, if he lose, he makes a swan-like end,Fading in music.’Merchant of Venice, Act III. Scene 2.
- ‘Being so majestical,’ etc. Hamlet, Act I. Scene 1.
- ‘Love is not love,’ etc. Shakespeare, Sonnet CXVI.
- 403.
- ‘A writer of third-rate books.’ ‘He is a mere quack, Mr. Editor, and a mere bookmaker; one of the sort that lounge in third-rate book shops, and write third-rate books.’ From a letter in Blackwood’s Magazine, August 1818 (vol. iii. p. 550).
- An Essay on the Principles of Human Action. Published in 1805.
- 408.
- Mirabaud. D’Holbach’s System of Nature is wrongly attributed to Jean Baptiste de Mirabaud (1675–1760), the translator of Tasso.
- 409.
- ‘On this bank and shoal of time.’ Macbeth, Act I. Scene 7.
1. xxviHazlitt has glanced at him in his notes on dissenters and dissent in the Political Essays, and has given a further taste of him in that very notable and gracious piece, ‘My First Acquaintance with Poets.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.xxviHazlitt has referenced him in his notes on dissenters and dissent in the Political Essays, and has provided more insight into him in that remarkable and kind piece, ‘My First Acquaintance with Poets.’
2. In 1805 he produced his essay on the Principles of Human Action. Being no metaphysician, I have never read this work; but Mr. Leslie Stephen, who is a very competent person in these matters, I am told, assures me (D. N. B.) that it is ‘scrupulously dry,’ though ‘showing great acuteness.’ This, I take leave to say—this is Hazlitt all over. None has written of the workaday elements in life and time with a rarer taste, a finer relish, a stronger confidence in himself and them. Yet, in dealing with absolutes in life and time, he is ‘scrupulously dry.’ This, I take it, is to be a man of letters.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.In 1805, he published his essay on the Principles of Human Action. I’m not a philosopher, so I haven't read this work; however, Mr. Leslie Stephen, who is quite knowledgeable about these topics, has told me (D. N. B.) that it is ‘meticulously dry,’ yet ‘shows great insight.’ I must say, this perfectly describes Hazlitt. No one has captured the everyday aspects of life and time with such refined taste, greater enthusiasm, and stronger self-assurance. Yet, when it comes to the absolute truths of life and time, he is ‘meticulously dry.’ I believe this is what it means to be a man of letters.
3. Or rather bedgown: unction-soiled and laudanum-stained.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Or rather nightgown: stained with ointment and laudanum.
4. John Hazlitt had been a pupil of Reynolds, and his miniatures were welcome at the Academy.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.John Hazlitt had studied under Reynolds, and his miniatures were well-received at the Academy.
5. Dans l’art il faut donner sa peau.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.In art, you have to give your all.
6. He had a painter in him, whether imperfectly developed or not; for he would condescend upon none but Guido, Raphael, Titian.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.He had an artist inside him, no matter how underdeveloped it was; he would only acknowledge the likes of Guido, Raphael, and Titian.
7. One was a likeness of his father, of which he has written in eloquent and engaging terms; another, a Wordsworth, which he destroyed; a third, the picture of Elia, ‘as a Venetian senator,’ now in the National Portrait Gallery; yet another, the presentment of an Old Woman, which is likened to a Rembrandt. Having seen none of these things, all I can say about them is that Hazlitt seems to have been passionately interested in colour; that he loved a picture because it was a piece of painting; and, if he knew not always bad (or rather third and fourth rate) work when he saw it, was as contemptuous of it, when he realised its status, as Fuseli himself.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.One was a portrait of his father, which he described in expressive and captivating language; another, a Wordsworth, which he destroyed; a third, the portrait of Elia, ‘as a Venetian senator,’ now at the National Portrait Gallery; and yet another, the depiction of an Old Woman, which is compared to a Rembrandt. Having seen none of these works, all I can say is that Hazlitt seems to have been deeply passionate about color; he loved a painting simply because it was art; and, if he didn't always recognize subpar (or rather third and fourth rate) work when he saw it, he was just as dismissive of it, when he understood its quality, as Fuseli himself.
8. There is an immense, even an insuperable difference between the two sorts of sensualists. To take an immediate instance: Lamb loved Hogarth, and found emotions in him, because he (Hogarth) was a novelist in paint; while Titian’s Bacchus and Ariadne touched his sense of letters, and, as Mr. Ainger has noted, suggested to him so much literature, or, at all events, so many literary possibilities, that Titian could not but be an arch-painter. Hazlitt felt his painter first, and thought not of the man-of-letters in his painter till his interest in his painter’s painting was—I won’t say extinguished but—allayed.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.There is a huge, even an unbridgeable difference between the two types of sensualists. To give a clear example: Lamb loved Hogarth and found emotions in his work because Hogarth was a storyteller through paint; meanwhile, Titian’s Bacchus and Ariadne appealed to Lamb’s literary sensibilities, and, as Mr. Ainger pointed out, suggested so much literature or, at least, so many literary possibilities, that Titian had to be an exceptional painter. Hazlitt focused on the painter first and didn't consider the writer in the painter until his interest in the painter's work was—I won't say completely gone but—diminished.
9. ‘The point in debate,’ he says, ‘the worth or the bad quality of the painting ... I am as well able to decide upon as any who ever brandished a pallette.’ I doubt not that he spoke the truth; yet the residuum of his criticisms of pictures, their after-taste, is mostly literary. And, as he was finally a man of letters, what else could one expect?
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘The issue at hand,’ he says, ‘the value or poor quality of the painting... I can judge as well as anyone who ever held a palette.’ I have no doubt he was telling the truth; however, the essence of his critiques of art, their lingering effect, is mostly literary. And, since he ultimately was a writer, what else could anyone expect?
10. Leigh Hunt said that he was the best art critic that ever lived: that to read him was like seeing a picture through stained glass, and so forth. But Leigh Hunt knew not much more about pictures than Coleridge knew about the books he talked of, but had not read.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Leigh Hunt claimed he was the greatest art critic to ever exist: that reading his work was like seeing a painting through stained glass, and so on. But Leigh Hunt didn’t know much more about art than Coleridge knew about the books he discussed but hadn’t actually read.
11. The house had been the abode of Milton; for certain months it had harboured the eminent James Mill; it belonged to the celebrated Jeremy Bentham: so that in the matter of associations Hazlitt, a thorough-paced dissenter, was as well off as he could hope to be.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The house had been home to Milton; for several months it had hosted the notable James Mill; it was owned by the famous Jeremy Bentham: so in terms of associations, Hazlitt, a committed nonconformist, was as well off as he could expect to be.
12. Ten in number: on ‘The Rise and Progress of Modern Philosophy,’ as illustrated in the works of Hobbes, Locke and his followers, Hartley, Helvétius, and others. The lectures, Mr. Stephen says, were in part a reproduction of the Principles of Human Action.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.There are ten of them: on ‘The Rise and Progress of Modern Philosophy,’ as shown in the works of Hobbes, Locke and his followers, Hartley, Helvétius, and others. The lectures, Mr. Stephen mentions, were partly a restatement of the Principles of Human Action.
13. Haydon says that Waterloo made him drunk for weeks. Then he pulled himself together, and for the rest of his life drank nothing but strong tea. He had, however, no sort of sympathy with those who held the ‘social glass’ to be Man’s safest introduction to the Pit. He only said that liquor did not agree with him, and looked on cheerfully while his friends—Lamb was as close as any—drank as they pleased.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Haydon mentioned that Waterloo left him feeling drunk for weeks. Then he got himself together and spent the rest of his life drinking only strong tea. However, he had no sympathy for those who believed that having a “social drink” was the best way for man to ease into trouble. He simply stated that alcohol didn't suit him, and he cheerfully watched his friends—Lamb was among the closest—drink as much as they wanted.
14. Both the Characters and the English Poets were reviewed by Gifford in the Quarterly. The style of these ‘reviews’ is abject; the inspiration venal; the matter the very dirt of the mind. Gifford hated Hazlitt for his politics, and set out to wither Hazlitt’s repute as a man of letters. For the tremendous reprisal with which he was visited, the reader is referred to the Letter to William Gifford, Esq., in the first volume of the present Edition. If he find it over-savage: probably, being of to-day, he will: let him turn to his Quarterly, and consider, if he have the stomach, Gifford and the matter of offence.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Both the Characters and the English Poets were reviewed by Gifford in the Quarterly. The style of these ‘reviews’ is pathetic; the inspiration is cheap; the content is the very filth of the mind. Gifford despised Hazlitt for his political views and aimed to ruin Hazlitt’s reputation as a writer. For the intense retaliation he faced, the reader is directed to the Letter to William Gifford, Esq., in the first volume of this edition. If he finds it too harsh—likely, since it's from today—let him look at his Quarterly and examine, if he can endure it, Gifford and the offensive material.
15. He lived to rejoice in the Revolution of July; but of the great movement in the arts—of Henri Trois et sa Cour and Hernani, of Delacroix and Barye, of Géricault and Bonington and de Vigny, and the rest of its heroes—he seems to have known nothing. That was his way. The new did not exist for him. A dissenter by birth and conviction, he yet cared only for the past, and the elder ‘glories of our blood and state’ were to him, not shadows but, the sole substantial things he could keep room for in the kingdom of his mind.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.He lived to celebrate the July Revolution; however, he seemed unaware of the significant changes happening in the arts—like Henry III and his Court and Hernani, along with Delacroix, Barye, Géricault, Bonington, de Vigny, and the other heroes of that time. That was just who he was. The new didn't matter to him. A dissenter by nature and belief, he only had an interest in the past, and the older ‘glories of our blood and state’ were not mere memories to him but the only real things he could accommodate in the realm of his thoughts.
16. ’Tis a pleasure to remember that Lamb was with him to the end—was in his death-chamber in the very article of mortality. We have all read Carlyle on Lamb. The everlasting pity is that we shall never read Hazlitt on Carlyle.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.It’s a pleasure to remember that Lamb was with him to the end—was in his death room at the moment of death. We’ve all read Carlyle on Lamb. The lasting sadness is that we will never read Hazlitt on Carlyle.
17. Him Shelley calls ‘a solemn and unsexual man.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.He is described by Shelley as ‘a serious and uninterested in sex man.’
18. Much as years afterwards, according to a certain Nicolardot, the expertest of their kind were ‘on the list’ of old Ste.-Beuve.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Much later, a certain Nicolardot claimed that the best of their kind were ‘on the list’ of the old Ste.-Beuve.
19. His grandson describes him as ‘physically incapable’ of any but a transient fidelity to anybody.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.His grandson describes him as ‘physically unable’ to be loyal to anyone except for a short time.
20. He confessed that one day he told it half a dozen times or so to persons he had never seen before: once, twice over to the same listener.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.He admitted that there was a day he shared it about six times to strangers he had never met before: once, and then repeated it a couple of times to the same person.
21. It cost Hazlitt a crown, perhaps less; and he arranged—apparently with Mrs. Hazlitt—to be taken in the act! After this the knowledge that Mr. and Mrs. Hazlitt took tea together, pendente lite, and that then and after his second espousals Hazlitt supplied this very reasonable woman with money, astonishes no more, but comes as a kind of anticlimax.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.It cost Hazlitt a pound, maybe less; and he apparently made arrangements with Mrs. Hazlitt to be caught in the act! After this, the fact that Mr. and Mrs. Hazlitt shared tea together, pending litigation, and that afterward, during his second marriage, Hazlitt provided this very practical woman with money is no longer surprising, but feels more like an anticlimax.
22. That damsel presently married in her station. She seems to have been a decent woman according to her lights, and to have lived up honestly to her ideals, such as they were.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.That young woman is now married in her place. She appears to have been a good person in her own way and has honestly lived up to her ideals, whatever they may have been.
23.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
24. These details are Patmore’s, and, even if they be true, are not the whole truth. Hazlitt loved solitude and the country, had to write for a living, wrote with difficulty, and left no inconsiderable body of work.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.These details belong to Patmore, and, even if they are true, they don’t tell the whole story. Hazlitt enjoyed being alone and loved the countryside, had to write to make a living, found it challenging to write, and produced a significant amount of work.
25. What I mean is, that I have heard the best, as I believe, the last of the old century and the first of the new have shown.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.What I mean is that I have heard the best, as I believe, the last of the old century and the first of the new have shown.
26. ‘He always made the best pun and the best remark in the course of the evening. His serious conversation, like his serious writing, is his best. No one ever stammered out such fine, piquant, deep, eloquent things in half a dozen half-sentences as he does. His jests scald like tears: and he probes a question with a play upon words. What a keen, laughing, hare-brained vein of home-felt truth! What choice venom!’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘He always came up with the best puns and the most insightful comments during the evening. His serious talks, just like his serious writing, are his strongest suit. No one has ever stumbled through such clever, sharp, profound, and eloquent thoughts in just a few half-sentences like he does. His jokes cut deep like tears: and he explores a topic with wordplay. What a sharp, funny, whimsical sense of truth from the heart! What exquisite sarcasm!’
27.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
28. His summary of the fight between Hickman and Bill Neate is alone in literature, as also in the annals of the Ring. Jon Bee was an intelligent creature of his kind, and knew a very great deal more about pugilism than Hazlitt knew; but to contrast the two is to learn much. Badcock (which is Jon Bee) had seen (and worshipped) Jem Belcher, and had reported fights with an extreme contempt for Pierce Egan, the illiterate ass who gave us Boxiana. Hazlitt, however, looked on at the proceedings of Neate and the Gaslight Man exactly as he had looked on at divers creations of Edmund Kean. He saw the essentials in both expressions of human activity, and his treatment of both is fundamentally the same. In both he ignores the trivial: here the acting (in its lowest sense), there the hits that did not count. And thus, as he gives you only the vital touches, you know how and why Neate beat Hickman, and can tell the exact moment at which Hickman began to be a beaten man. ’Tis the same with his panegyric on Cavanagh, the fives-player. For a blend of gusto with understanding I know but one thing to equal with this: the note on Dr. Grace, which appeared in The National Observer; and the night that that was written, I sent the writer back to Hazlitt’s Cavanagh, and said to him ——! On the whole the Dr. Grace is the better of the two. But it has scarce the incorruptible fatness of the Cavanagh. Gusto, though, is Hazlitt’s special attribute: he glories in what he likes, what he reads, what he feels, what he writes. He triumphed in his Kean, his Shakespeare, his Bill Neate, his Rousseau, his coffee-and-cream and Love for Love in the inn-parlour at Alton. He relished things; and expressed them with a relish. That is his ‘note.’ Some others have relished only the consummate expression of nothing.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.His summary of the fight between Hickman and Bill Neate stands out in literature, as well as in the history of boxing. Jon Bee was a sharp guy for his time and knew a lot more about boxing than Hazlitt did; but comparing the two teaches us a lot. Badcock (which is Jon Bee) had seen (and admired) Jem Belcher, and had reported fights with extreme disdain for Pierce Egan, the ignorant fool who gave us Boxiana. Hazlitt, however, watched the actions of Neate and the Gaslight Man just like he had observed different performances by Edmund Kean. He recognized the essentials in both forms of human activity, and his treatment of both is fundamentally similar. In both cases, he dismisses the trivial: here the acting (in its least appealing sense), there the hits that didn’t matter. Thus, by providing only the essential details, you understand how and why Neate defeated Hickman and can pinpoint the exact moment Hickman started becoming a defeated man. It’s the same with his praise of Cavanagh, the fives player. For a combination of enthusiasm and understanding, I can only think of one thing that matches this: the note on Dr. Grace, which appeared in The National Observer; and that night, I sent the writer back to Hazlitt’s Cavanagh, and said to him —! Overall, the Dr. Grace is better than the two. But it lacks the rich depth of the Cavanagh. Enthusiasm, though, is Hazlitt’s unique trait: he takes pride in what he enjoys, what he reads, what he feels, what he writes. He basked in his Kean, his Shakespeare, his Bill Neate, his Rousseau, his coffee-and-cream, and Love for Love in the inn parlor at Alton. He enjoyed things; and expressed them with passion. That is his ‘note.’ Some others have only appreciated the flawless expression of nothing.
29. Listen, else, to Lamb himself: ‘Protesting against much that he has written, and some things which he chooses to do; judging him by his conversation which I enjoyed so long, and relished so deeply; or by his books, in those places where no clouding passion intervenes, I should belie my own conscience if I said less than that I think W. H. to be, in his natural and healthy state, one of the wisest and finest spirits breathing. So far from being ashamed of that intimacy which was betwixt us, it is my boast that I was able for so many years to have preserved it entire; and I think I shall go to my grave without finding or expecting to find such another companion.’ Thus does one Royalty celebrate the kingship and enrich the immortality of another.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Listen to Lamb himself: ‘While I disagree with much of what he has written and some of the things he chooses to do; judging him by the conversations we had, which I enjoyed for so long and appreciated deeply; or by his books, in those moments where no intense emotion gets in the way, I would be lying to my own conscience if I said anything less than I believe W. H. to be, in his natural and healthy state, one of the wisest and most remarkable people alive. Far from feeling embarrassed about the friendship we shared, I take pride in having maintained it for so many years; and I believe I will go to my grave without finding, or expecting to find, another companion like him.’ This is how one Royalty honors the reign and enriches the legacy of another.
30. It is Steele’s; and the whole paper (No. 95) is in his most delightful manner. The dream about the mistress, however, is given to Addison by the Editors, and the general style of that number is his; though, from the story being related personally of Bickerstaff, who is also represented as having been at that time in the army, we conclude it to have originally come from Steele, perhaps in the course of conversation. The particular incident is much more like a story of his than of Addison’s.—H. T.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.It's by Steele, and the whole paper (No. 95) showcases his most charming style. However, the dream about the mistress is credited to Addison by the Editors, and the overall tone of that issue reflects his voice. Still, since the story is told from Bickerstaff's perspective, who is also portrayed as having been in the army at that time, we can infer it likely originated from Steele, maybe during a conversation. The specific incident feels much more like a story from Steele than from Addison's work.—H. T.
31. We had in our hands the other day an original copy of the Tatler, and a list of the subscribers. It is curious to see some names there which we should hardly think of, (that of Sir Isaac Newton is among them), and also to observe the degree of interest excited by those of the different persons, which is not adjusted according to the rules of the Heralds’ College.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Recently, we got our hands on an original copy of the Tatler along with a list of subscribers. It’s interesting to see some names that we wouldn’t expect (Sir Isaac Newton’s name is on the list), and it’s also fascinating to notice the level of interest generated by different individuals, which doesn't align with the guidelines of the Heralds' College.
32. Pope also declares that he had a particular regard for an old post which stood in the court-yard before the house where he was brought up.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Pope also states that he had a special fondness for an old post that stood in the courtyard in front of the house where he grew up.
33. See also the passage in his prose works relating to the first design of Paradise Lost.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Also check out the section in his prose works about the initial idea for Paradise Lost.
34.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
At another time, we find him ‘desiring this man’s art, and that man’s scope’: so little was Shakspeare, as far as we can learn, enamoured of himself!
At another time, we see him ‘wanting this guy’s talent, and that guy’s range’: he was so little in love with himself, as far as we can tell!
35. See an Essay on the genius of Hogarth, by C. Lamb, published in a periodical work, called the Reflector.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Check out an essay on the genius of Hogarth by C. Lamb, published in a magazine called the Reflector.
36. ‘A good sherris-sack hath a twofold operation in it; it ascends me into the brain, dries me there all the foolish, dull, and crudy vapours which environ it; and makes it apprehensive, quick, forgetive, full of nimble, fiery, and delectable shapes, which, delivered over to the tongue, becomes excellent wit,’ etc.—Second Part of Henry IV.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.“A good sherry has a twofold effect on me; it lifts my spirits, clears away all the silly, dull, and heavy thoughts that surround my mind, and makes me sharp, quick-witted, and full of lively, exciting ideas, which, once expressed, become great wit,” etc.—Second Part of Henry IV.
37. We have an instance in our own times of a man, equally devoid of understanding and principle, but who manages the House of Commons by his manner alone.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.We have a current example of a man, completely lacking in insight and integrity, yet who runs the House of Commons solely by his style.
38. Mr. Wordsworth, who has written a sonnet to the King on the good that he has done in the last fifty years, has made an attack on a set of gipsies for having done nothing in four and twenty hours. ‘The stars had gone their rounds, but they had not stirred from their place.’ And why should they, if they were comfortable where they were? We did not expect this turn from Mr. Wordsworth, whom we had considered as the prince of poetical idlers, and patron of the philosophy of indolence, who formerly insisted on our spending our time ‘in a wise passiveness.’ Mr. W. will excuse us if we are not converts to his recantation of his original doctrine; for he who changes his opinion loses his authority. We did not look for this Sunday-school philosophy from him. What had he himself been doing in these four and twenty hours? Had he been admiring a flower, or writing a sonnet? We hate the doctrine of utility, even in a philosopher, and much more in a poet: for the only real utility is that which leads to enjoyment, and the end is, in all cases, better than the means. A friend of ours from the North of England proposed to make Stonehenge of some use, by building houses with it. Mr. W.’s quarrel with the gipsies is an improvement on this extravagance, for the gipsies are the only living monuments of the first ages of society. They are an everlasting source of thought and reflection on the advantages and disadvantages of the progress of civilisation: they are a better answer to the cotton manufactories than Mr. W. has given in the Excursion. ‘They are a grotesque ornament to the civil order.’ We should be sorry to part with Mr. Wordsworth’s poetry, because it amuses and interests us: we should be still sorrier to part with the tents of our old friends, the Bohemian philosophers, because they amuse and interest us more. If any one goes a journey, the principal event in it is his meeting with a party of gipsies. The pleasantest trait in the character of Sir Roger de Coverley, is his interview with the gipsy fortune-teller. This is enough.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Mr. Wordsworth, who wrote a sonnet to the King about the good he has done over the past fifty years, has criticized a group of gypsies for not doing anything in the last twenty-four hours. “The stars had gone their rounds, but they hadn’t moved from their spot.” And why would they, if they were comfortable where they were? We didn’t see this coming from Mr. Wordsworth, whom we thought of as the king of leisurely poets and a supporter of the philosophy of idleness, who used to insist that we spend our time “in a wise passiveness.” Mr. W. will forgive us if we don’t convert to his change of heart on his original beliefs; for someone who changes their opinion loses their credibility. We didn’t expect this Sunday-school philosophy from him. What had he himself been doing in those twenty-four hours? Had he been admiring a flower or writing a sonnet? We dislike the doctrine of utility, even from a philosopher, and even more from a poet: because the only true utility is the kind that leads to enjoyment, and the outcome is, in every case, better than the method. A friend of ours from Northern England suggested making Stonehenge useful by building houses out of it. Mr. W.’s complaint about the gypsies is an improvement on this absurdity, as the gypsies are the only living monuments from the earliest stages of society. They are an endless source of thought and reflection on the pros and cons of civilization’s progress: they provide a better response to the cotton factories than Mr. W. has given in the Excursion. “They are a quirky ornament to the civil order.” We would be sad to lose Mr. Wordsworth’s poetry because it entertains and engages us: we would be even sadder to part with the tents of our old friends, the Bohemian philosophers, because they entertain and engage us even more. If anyone goes on a journey, the highlight is usually their encounter with a group of gypsies. The most delightful aspect of Sir Roger de Coverley’s character is his meeting with the gypsy fortune-teller. That’s enough.
39. The Dissenters in this country (if we except the founders of sects, who fall under a class by themselves) have produced only two remarkable men, Priestley and Jonathan Edwards. The work of the latter on the Will is written with as much power of logic, and more in the true spirit of philosophy, than any other metaphysical work in the language. His object throughout is not to perplex the question, but to satisfy his own mind and the reader’s. In general, the principle of dissent arises more from want of sympathy and imagination, than from strength of reason. The spirit of contradiction is not the spirit of philosophy.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The Dissenters in this country (if we exclude the founders of various sects, who belong to a category of their own) have produced only two notable figures, Priestley and Jonathan Edwards. The work of the latter on the Will is crafted with as much logical strength, and more true philosophical spirit, than any other metaphysical work in the language. His aim throughout is not to confuse the issue but to clarify his own thoughts and those of the reader. Generally, the principle of dissent comes more from a lack of empathy and imagination than from strong reasoning. A spirit of contradiction is not the same as a spirit of philosophy.
40. The modern Quakers come as near the mark in these cases as they can. They do not go to plays, but they are great attenders of spouting-clubs and lectures. They do not frequent concerts, but run after pictures. We do not know exactly how they stand with respect to the circulating libraries. A Quaker poet would be a literary phenomenon.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Modern Quakers get as close to the mark as they can in these situations. They don’t go to plays, but they really enjoy attending spoken word events and lectures. They don’t go to concerts, but they chase after art exhibitions. We aren’t sure exactly what their stance is on circulating libraries. A Quaker poet would be a rare literary occurrence.
41. We have made the above observations, not as theological partisans, but as natural historians. We shall some time or other give the reverse of the picture; for there are vices inherent in establishments and their thorough-paced adherents, which well deserve to be distinctly pointed out.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.We made these observations, not as supporters of one theology over another, but as natural historians. At some point, we'll present the opposite view; there are flaws within institutions and their committed supporters that definitely deserve to be clearly highlighted.
42. Is all this a rhodomontade, or literal matter of fact, not credible in these degenerate days?
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Is all this just nonsense or actual fact, unbelievable in these degenerate times?
43. One of the most interesting traits of the amiable simplicity of Walton, is the circumstance of his friendship for Cotton, one of the ‘swash-bucklers’ of the age. Dr. Johnson said there were only three works which the reader was sorry to come to the end of, Don Quixote, Robinson Crusoe, and the Pilgrim’s Progress. Perhaps Walton’s Angler might be added to the number.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.One of the most interesting aspects of Walton's friendly and straightforward nature is his friendship with Cotton, one of the bold figures of his time. Dr. Johnson mentioned that there were only three books that readers regretted finishing: Don Quixote, Robinson Crusoe, and Pilgrim’s Progress. Perhaps Walton's Angler could also be added to that list.
44. Oxberry’s manner of acting this character is a very edifying comment on the text: he flings his arms about, like those of a figure pulled by strings, and seems actuated by a pure spirit of infatuation, as if one blast of folly had taken possession of his whole frame,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Oxberry’s way of portraying this character is a really insightful take on the text: he throws his arms around like a puppet on strings and appears to be driven by a complete sense of obsession, as if a sudden wave of madness has taken over his entire being.
45. The following lines are remarkable for a certain cloying sweetness in the repetition of the rhymes:
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The following lines stand out for their overly sweet tone due to the repetition of the rhymes:
46. The late ingenious Baron Grimm, of acute critical memory, was up to the merit of the Beggar’s Opera. In his Correspondence, he says, ‘If it be true that the nearer a writer is to Nature, the more certain he is of pleasing, it must be allowed that the English, in their dramatic pieces, have greatly the advantage over us. There reigns in them an inestimable tone of nature, which the timidity of our taste has banished from French pieces. M. Patu has just published, in two volumes, A selection of smaller dramatic pieces, translated from the English, which will eminently support what I have advanced. The principal one among this selection is the celebrated Beggar’s Opera of Gay, which has had such an amazing run in England. We are here in the very worst company imaginable; the Dramatis Personæ are robbers, pickpockets, gaolers, prostitutes, and the like; yet we are highly amused, and in no haste to quit them; and why? Because there is nothing in the world more original or more natural. There is no occasion to compare our most celebrated comic operas with this, to see how far we are removed from truth and nature, and this is the reason that, notwithstanding our wit, we are almost always flat and insipid. Two faults are generally committed by our writers, which they seem incapable of avoiding. They think they have done wonders if they have only faithfully copied the dictionaries of the personages they bring upon the stage, forgetting that the great art is to chuse the moments of character and passion in those who are to speak, since it is those moments alone that render them interesting. For want of this discrimination, the piece necessarily sinks into insipidity and monotony. Why do almost all M. Vade’s pieces fatigue the audience to death? Because all his characters speak the same language; because each is a perfect resemblance of the other. Instead of this, in the Beggar’s Opera, among eight or ten girls of the town, each has her separate character, her peculiar traits, her peculiar modes of expression, which give her a marked distinction from her companions.’—Vol. i. p. 185.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The late brilliant Baron Grimm, with his sharp critical mind, recognized the value of the Beggar’s Opera. In his Correspondence, he states, ‘If it’s true that the closer a writer is to Nature, the more likely they are to please, we have to admit that the English have a significant advantage over us in their dramatic works. There's an invaluable tone of nature in them that the caution of our taste has pushed out of French works. M. Patu has just released, in two volumes, A selection of smaller dramatic pieces, translated from the English, which will strongly support what I’m saying. The main piece in this selection is the well-known Beggar’s Opera by Gay, which has been wildly popular in England. We find ourselves in the worst possible company here; the Cast of Characters are robbers, pickpockets, jailers, prostitutes, and so on; yet we are highly entertained and in no rush to leave them; and why? Because there’s nothing more original or more natural in the world. There's no need to compare our most famous comic operas with this one to see how far we are from truth and nature, and that's why, despite our wit, we often feel bland and uninteresting. Our writers generally commit two major mistakes that they seem unable to escape. They think they've done well if they've just faithfully copied the dialogues of the characters they bring to the stage, forgetting that the real art is choosing the moments of character and emotion in those who speak since it’s those moments that make them interesting. Without this understanding, the piece inevitably falls into dullness and monotony. Why do almost all of M. Vade’s works bore the audience to tears? Because all his characters speak the same way; each is a perfect copy of the other. In contrast, in the Beggar’s Opera, among eight or ten women of the town, each has her own distinct character, unique traits, and modes of expression that set her apart from the others.’—Vol. i. p. 185.
47. He who speaks two languages has no country. The French, when they made their language the common language of the Courts of Europe, gained more than by all their subsequent conquests.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Someone who speaks two languages doesn’t belong to any one country. The French, when they established their language as the common language of the courts in Europe, achieved more than through all their later victories.
48. There is, however, in the African physiognomy a grandeur and a force, arising from this uniform character of violence and abruptness. It is consistent with itself throughout. Entire deformity can only be found where the features have not only no symmetry or softness in themselves, but have no connection with one another, presenting every variety of wretchedness, and a jumble of all sorts of defects, such as we see in Hogarth or in the streets of London; for instance, a large bottle-nose, with a small mouth twisted awry.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.There is, however, in African features a sense of majesty and strength, stemming from this consistent nature of intensity and abruptness. It is cohesive throughout. Complete deformity can only be found where the features lack both symmetry and softness, and don’t connect with each other, resulting in every kind of misery and a mix of various flaws, like we see in Hogarth or on the streets of London; for example, a large bottle-shaped nose with a small mouth twisted oddly.
49. The following version, communicated by a classical friend, is exact and elegant:
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The version shared by a classical friend is accurate and stylish:
There is a striking description in Mr. Burke’s Reflections of the late Queen of France, whose charms had left their poison in the heart of this Irish orator and patriot, and set the world in a ferment sixteen years afterwards. ‘And surely never lighted on this orb, which she hardly seemed to touch, a more delightful vision.’ The idea is in Don Quixote, where the Duenna speaks of the air with which the Duchess ‘treads, or rather seems to disdain the ground she walks on.’ We have heard the same account of the gracefulness of Marie Antoinette from an artist, who saw her at Versailles much about the same time that Mr. Burke did. He stood in one corner of a little antechamber, and as the doors were narrow, she was obliged to pass sideways with her hoop. She glided by him in an instant, as if borne on a cloud.
There is a striking description in Mr. Burke’s Reflections of the late Queen of France, whose allure had left a lasting impression on this Irish speaker and patriot, stirring the world into a frenzy sixteen years later. ‘And surely never lighted on this earth, which she hardly seemed to touch, a more delightful vision.’ This idea can be found in Don Quixote, where the Duenna mentions the way the Duchess ‘walks, or rather seems to disregard the ground she walks on.’ We’ve heard the same description of Marie Antoinette's gracefulness from an artist who saw her at Versailles around the same time as Mr. Burke. He stood in one corner of a small antechamber, and since the doors were narrow, she had to pass sideways with her hoop. She glided past him in a moment, as if carried on a cloud.
50. In a fruit or flower-piece by Vanhuysum, the minutest details acquire a certain grace and beauty from the delicacy with which they are finished. The eye dwells with a giddy delight on the liquid drops of dew, on the gauze wings of an insect, on the hair and feathers of a bird’s nest, the streaked and speckled egg-shells, the fine legs of the little travelling caterpillar. Who will suppose that the painter had not the same pleasure in detecting these nice distinctions in nature, that the critic has in tracing them in the picture?
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.In a fruit or flower painting by Vanhuysum, even the smallest details gain a certain grace and beauty from the delicate way they're finished. The eye delights in the shimmering drops of dew, the gossamer wings of an insect, the hair and feathers in a bird’s nest, the patterned and speckled eggshells, and the slender legs of a tiny traveling caterpillar. Who would think that the painter didn’t feel the same joy in noticing these subtle distinctions in nature as the critic does in finding them in the artwork?
51. We here allude particularly to Turner, the ablest landscape painter now living, whose pictures are, however, too much abstractions of aerial perspective, and representations not so properly of the objects of nature as of the medium through which they are seen. They are the triumph of the knowledge of the artist, and of the power of the pencil over the barrenness of the subject. They are pictures of the elements of air, earth, and water. The artist delights to go back to the first chaos of the world, or to that state of things when the waters were separated from the dry land, and light from darkness, but as yet no living thing nor tree bearing fruit was seen upon the face of the earth. All is ‘without form and void.’ Some one said of his landscapes that they were pictures of nothing, and very like.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.We specifically refer to Turner, the most skillful landscape painter alive today, whose works are often too focused on the abstraction of aerial perspective. They represent not so much the natural objects themselves but rather the medium through which we perceive them. His paintings showcase the mastery of the artist's knowledge and the pencil's ability to enhance the simplicity of the subject. They illustrate the elements of air, earth, and water. The artist loves to revisit the original chaos of the world or that moment when the waters were divided from the dry land and light from darkness, yet when no living thing or fruit-bearing tree was visible on the earth. Everything is 'formless and empty.' Someone commented on his landscapes that they were pictures of nothing, and very similar.
52. Raphael not only could not paint a landscape; he could not paint people in a landscape. He could not have painted the heads or the figures, or even the dresses, of the St. Peter Martyr. His figures have always an in-door look, that is, a set, determined, voluntary, dramatic character, arising from their own passions, or a watchfulness of those of others, and want that wild uncertainty of expression, which is connected with the accidents of nature and the changes of the elements. He has nothing romantic about him.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Raphael not only couldn’t paint a landscape; he also couldn’t paint people in a landscape. He wouldn’t have been able to paint the faces or the figures, or even the dresses of the St. Peter Martyr. His figures always have an indoor look, meaning they have a defined, intentional, dramatic character that comes from their own emotions or their awareness of others’ emotions, and they lack that wild uncertainty of expression that comes with the unpredictability of nature and changes in the environment. There’s nothing romantic about him.
53. A good-natured man will always have a smack of pedantry about him. A lawyer, who talks about law, certioraris, noli prosequis, and silk gowns, though he may be a blockhead, is by no means dangerous. It is a very bad sign (unless where it arises from singular modesty) when you cannot tell a man’s profession from his conversation. Such persons either feel no interest in what concerns them most, or do not express what they feel. ‘Not to admire any thing’ is a very unsafe rule. A London apprentice, who did not admire the Lord Mayor’s coach, would stand a good chance of being hanged. We know but one person absurd enough to have formed his whole character on the above maxim of Horace, and who affects a superiority over others from an uncommon degree of natural and artificial stupidity.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.A good-natured person will always have a touch of pedantry about them. A lawyer who discusses law, certioraris, noli prosequis, and fancy robes, even if he’s not the brightest, isn’t very threatening. It’s a bad sign (unless it comes from unusual modesty) when you can't tell a person's profession from how they talk. Such individuals either don’t care about what matters most to them, or they just don’t express their feelings. "Not admiring anything" is a very risky rule to follow. A London apprentice who didn’t admire the Lord Mayor’s coach would be in real trouble. We only know one person foolish enough to base his entire character on that principle from Horace, and who pretends to be superior to others because of an unusual mix of natural and learned ignorance.
54. ‘Je crois que l’imagination étoit la première de ses facultés, et qu’elle absorboit même toutes les autres.’—P. 80.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘I believe that imagination was her first skill, and it even encompassed all the others.’—P. 80.
55. ‘Il avoit une grande puissance de raison sur les matieres abstraites, sur les objets qui n’ont de réalité que dans la pensée,’ etc.—P. 81.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘He had a strong ability to think logically about abstract topics, about things that only exist in our minds.,’ etc.—P. 81.
56. He did more towards the French Revolution than any other man. Voltaire, by his wit and penetration, had rendered superstition contemptible, and tyranny odious: but it was Rousseau who brought the feeling of irreconcilable enmity to rank and privileges, above humanity, home to the bosom of every man,—identified it with all the pride of intellect, and with the deepest yearnings of the human heart.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.He contributed more to the French Revolution than anyone else. Voltaire, with his sharp wit and insight, made superstition seem ridiculous and tyranny repulsive; but it was Rousseau who instilled a deep-seated hatred for rank and privilege, above humanity, in everyone’s heart—connecting it to both the pride of intellect and the deepest desires of the human soul.
57. We shall here give one passage as an example, which has always appeared to us the very perfection of this kind of personal and local description. It is that where he gives an account of his being one of the choristers at the Cathedral at Chambery: ‘On jugera bien que la vie de la maîtrise toujours chantante et gaie, avec les Musiciens et les Enfans de chœur, me plaisoit plus que celle du Séminaire avec les Peres de S. Lazare. Cependant, cette vie, pour être plus libre, n’en étoit pas moins égale et réglée. J’étois fait pour aimer l’indépendance et pour n’en abuser jamais. Durant six mois entiers, je ne sortis pas une seule fois, que pour aller chez Maman ou à l’Église, et je n’en fus pas même tenté. Cette intervalle est un de ceux où j’ai vécu dans le plus grand calme, et que je me suis rappelé avec le plus de plaisir. Dans les situations diverses où je me suis trouvé, quelques uns out été marqués par un tel sentiment de bien-être, qu’en les remémorant j’en suis affecté comme si j’y étois encore. Non seulement je me rappelle les tems, les lieux, les personnes, mais tous les objets environnans, la température de l’air, son odeur, sa couleur, une certaine impression locale qui ne s’est fait sentir que là, et dont le souvenir vif m’y transporte de nouveau. Par exemple, tout ce qu’on répétait a la maîtrise, tout ce qu’on chantoit au chœur, tout ce qu’on y faisoit, le bel et noble habit des Chanoines, les hasubles des Prêtres, les mitres des Chantres, la figure des Musiciens, un vieux Charpentier boiteux qui jouoit de la contrebasse, un petit Abbé biondin qui jouoit du violon, le lambeau de soutane qu’après avoir posé son épée, M. le Maître endossoit par-dessus son habit laïque, et le beau surplis fin dont il en couvrait les loques pour aller au chœur; l’orgueil avec lequel j’allois, tenant ma petite flûte à bec, m’établir dans l’orchestre, à la tribune, pour un petit bout de récit que M. le Maître avoit fait exprès pour moi: le bon diner qui nous attendoit ensuite, le bon appétit qu’on y portoit:—ce concours d’objets vivement retracé m’a cent fois charmé dans ma mémoire, autant et plus que dans la realité. J’ai gardé toujours une affection tendre pour un certain air du Conditor alme syderum qui marche par iambes; parce qu’un Dimanche de l’Avent j’entendis de mon lit chanter cette hymne, avant le jour, sur le perron de la Cathédrale, selon un rite de cette eglise là. Mlle. Merceret, femme de chambre de Maman, savoit un peu de musique; je n’oublierai jamais un petit motet afferte, que M. le Maître me fit chanter avec elle, et que sa maîtresse écoutait avec tant de plaisir. Enfin tout, jusqu’à la bonne servante Perrine, qui étoit si bonne fille, et que les enfans de chœur faisoient tant endêver—tout dans les souvenirs de ces tems de bonheur et d’innocence revient souvent me ravir et m’attrister.’—Confessions, LIV. iii. p. 283.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.We'll give one example here that we think perfectly captures this type of personal and local description. It's about his experience as one of the choristers at the Cathedral in Chambery: ‘It's clear that the lively and cheerful life of the choir, with the musicians and choir boys, brought me more joy than life at the Seminary with the Fathers of St. Lazare. However, this life, while freer, was still orderly and structured. I learned to appreciate independence without misusing it. For six whole months, I didn’t go out even once, except to visit my mom or attend church, and I wasn't even tempted to leave. This time is one of the few when I felt the greatest peace, and I remember it fondly. In the various situations I've experienced, some were marked by such a profound sense of well-being that thinking back on them feels like I'm still there. I not only remember the times, places, and people, but also everything around me— the temperature of the air, its scent, its color, and a certain local feeling that could only be felt there, and whose vivid memory transports me back again. For instance, everything we practiced in the choir, everything we sang, everything we did, the beautiful and elegant attire of the canons, the chasubles the priests wore, the mitres of the cantors, the appearance of the musicians, an old hunchbacked carpenter who played the double bass, a plump little abbé who played the violin, the worn soutane that the master would put on over his civilian clothes after setting aside his sword, and the lovely fine surplice that covered it for choir duties; the pride I felt walking in, holding my little recorder, settling into the orchestra and stepping up to the pulpit for a short piece the master had prepared just for me; the delicious dinner that awaited us afterward, and the hearty appetite we had:—this collection of vividly recalled details has delighted me countless times in my memory, as much, if not more, than in real life. I've always had a deep affection for a particular tune from the __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. God of the heavenly stars that flows with iambs; because one Advent Sunday, I heard this hymn sung from my bed, before dawn, on the cathedral steps, according to the practices of that church. Miss Merceret, my mom's maid, knew a bit about music; I will never forget a little motet afferte, that the master made me sing with her, which his mistress listened to with such pleasure. In the end, everything, including the good servant Perrine, who was such a lovely girl, and whom the choir boys liked to tease—everything from those times of happiness and innocence often comes back to bring me joy and sadness.’—Confessions, LIV. iii. p. 283.
58. Burns, when about to sail for America after the first publication of his poems, consoled himself with ‘the delicious thought of being regarded as a clever fellow, though on the other side of the Atlantic.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Burns, just before heading to America after his poems were first published, found comfort in the pleasant idea of being seen as a smart guy, even if it was on the other side of the Atlantic.
59. This man (Burke) who was a half poet and a half philosopher, has done more mischief than perhaps any other person in the world. His understanding was not competent to the discovery of any truth, but it was sufficient to palliate a falsehood; his reasons, of little weight in themselves, thrown into the scale of power, were dreadful. Without genius to adorn the beautiful, he had the art to throw a dazzling veil over the deformed and disgusting; and to strew the flowers of imagination over the rotten carcass of corruption, not to prevent, but to communicate the infection. His jealousy of Rousseau was one chief cause of his opposition to the French Revolution. The writings of the one had changed the institutions of a kingdom; while the speeches of the other, with the intrigues of his whole party, had changed nothing but the turnspit of the King’s kitchen. He would have blotted out the broad pure light of Heaven, because it did not first shine in at the little Gothic windows of St. Stephen’s Chapel. The genius of Rousseau had levelled the towers of the Bastile with the dust; our zealous reformist, who would rather be doing mischief than nothing, tried, therefore, to patch them up again, by calling that loathsome dungeon the King’s castle, and by fulsome adulation of the virtues of a Court strumpet. This man,—but enough of him here.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.This man (Burke), who was part poet and part philosopher, has caused more trouble than perhaps anyone else in the world. His understanding wasn't sharp enough to uncover any truths, but it was enough to soften a lie; his arguments, which were weak on their own, became dangerous when used to support power. Lacking the genius to enhance the beautiful, he had the skill to cover the ugly and repulsive with a dazzling facade; and to scatter the flowers of imagination over the decaying remains of corruption, not to stop it, but to spread the disease. His jealousy of Rousseau was one of the main reasons for his opposition to the French Revolution. One's writings had transformed a kingdom's institutions; while the other's speeches, along with his party's schemes, changed nothing but the turnspit of the King’s kitchen. He would have erased the bright, pure light of Heaven just because it didn’t first shine through the little Gothic windows of St. Stephen’s Chapel. The genius of Rousseau had brought the towers of the Bastile down to dust; our eager reformer, who preferred causing trouble to doing nothing, then tried to rebuild them by calling that vile dungeon the King’s castle, and by excessively praising the virtues of a Court harlot. This man—but that’s enough about him here.
60. This word is not English.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. This word isn't English.
61. Written in 1806.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Written in 1806.
62. Plato’s cave, in which he supposes a man to be shut up all his life with his back to the light, and to see nothing of the figures of men, or other objects that pass by, but their shadows on the opposite wall of his cell, so that when he is let out and sees the real figures, he is only dazzled and confounded by them, seems an ingenious satire on the life of a book-worm.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Plato’s cave, where he imagines a man trapped his whole life, facing away from the light and only seeing the shadows of people and objects on the wall of his cell, so that when he's released and sees the real figures for the first time, he is overwhelmed and confused by them, seems like a clever critique of the life of a bookworm.
63. The following lively description of this actress is given by Cibber in his Apology:—
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The following energetic description of this actress is provided by Cibber in his Apology:—
‘What found most employment for her whole various excellence at once, was the part of Melantha, in Marriage-à-la-mode. Melantha is as finished an impertinent as ever fluttered in a drawing-room, and seems to contain the most complete system of female foppery that could possibly be crowded into the tortured form of a fine lady. Her language, dress, motion, manners, soul, and body, are in a continual hurry to be something more than is necessary or commendable. And though I doubt it will be a vain labour to offer you a just likeness of Mrs. Montfort’s action, yet the fantastic impression is still so strong in my memory, that I cannot help saying something, though fantastically, about it. The first ridiculous airs that break from her are upon a gallant never seen before, who delivers her a letter from her father, recommending him to her good graces as an honourable lover. Here now, one would think she might naturally shew a little of the sex’s decent reserve, though never so slightly covered! No, sir; not a tittle of it; modesty is the virtue of a poor-soul’d country gentlewoman: she is too much a court-lady, to be under so vulgar a confusion: she reads the letter, therefore, with a careless, dropping lip, and an erected brow, humming it hastily over, as if she were impatient to outgo her father’s commands, by making a complete conquest of him at once: and that the letter might not embarrass her attack, crack! she crumbles it at once into her palm, and pours upon him her whole artillery of airs, eyes, and motion; down goes her dainty, diving body to the ground, as if she were sinking under the conscious load of her own attractions; then launches into a flood of fine language and compliment, still playing her chest forward in fifty falls and risings, like a swan upon waving water; and, to complete her impertinence, she is so rapidly fond of her own wit, that she will not give her lover leave to praise it: Silent assenting bows, and vain endeavours to speak, are all the share of the conversation he is admitted to, which at last he is relieved from, by her engagement to half a score visits, which she swims from him to make, with a promise to return in a twinkling.’—The Life of Colley Cibber, p. 138.
‘What employed her various talents the most was her role as Melantha in Marriage a la mode. Melantha is the most pompous person ever seen in a drawing-room, embodying a complete system of female vanity packed into the tortured form of a fashionable lady. Her language, dress, movements, manners, spirit, and body are in a constant rush to be something more than what is necessary or respectable. And while I doubt it will be useful to describe Mrs. Montfort’s actions accurately, the vivid impression is so strong in my memory that I can't help but say something, albeit in an exaggerated way, about it. The first ridiculous traits that come from her are directed at a gentleman she has never seen before, who hands her a letter from her father, recommending him to her favor as an honorable suitor. One might think she would naturally display a bit of the expected reserve of her gender, even if only slightly! No, sir; not a bit of it; modesty is a trait of a simple country lady: she is too much of a court lady to feel such common embarrassment. She reads the letter with a laid-back, slightly pouty expression and a raised eyebrow, skimming through it impatiently as if eager to surpass her father’s wishes by winning him over completely right away: and to ensure the letter doesn’t hinder her approach, crack! she crumples it into her hand and unleashes her full charm offensive upon him; her delicate body sinks as if weighed down by her own attractions; then she launches into a torrent of elegant words and compliments, constantly adjusting her posture in a graceful manner, like a swan gliding on rippling water; and to add to her arrogance, she is so enamored with her own wit that she won’t allow her suitor to praise it: all he gets are silent nods of agreement and vain attempts to speak, which finally come to an end when she announces a series of visits that she swims away to attend, promising to be back in no time.’—The Life of Colley Cibber, p. 138.
64. 362A few alterations and corrections have been inserted in the present edition.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.362This edition includes a few changes and corrections.
65. See the passage, beginning—‘It is impossible you should see this, were they as prime as goats,’ etc.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Check out the part that starts with—‘It’s impossible for you to see this, even if they were as energetic as goats,’ etc.
66.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
67. In the account of her death, a friend has pointed out an instance of the poet’s exact observation of nature:—
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.In the description of her death, a friend pointed out a moment where the poet accurately observed nature:—
The inside of the leaves of the willow, next the water, is of a whitish colour, and the reflection would therefore be ‘hoary.’
The inside of the willow leaves by the water is a whitish color, and so the reflection would be ‘grayish.’
68. See an article, called Theatralia, in the second volume of the Reflector, by Charles Lamb.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Check out an article titled Theatrical in the second volume of the Reflector by Charles Lamb.
69. There is another instance of the same distinction in Hamlet and Ophelia. Hamlet’s pretended madness would make a very good real madness in any other author.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.There’s another example of the same difference in Hamlet and Ophelia. Hamlet’s feigned insanity would easily pass as genuine madness in the hands of any other writer.
70. The river wanders at its own sweet will.—Wordsworth.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The river flows freely, following its own path.—Wordsworth.
71. The lady, we here see, gives up the argument, but keeps her mind.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The lady, as we see here, concedes the argument, but remains steadfast in her beliefs.
72. 412See the Examiner, Feb. 9.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. 412Check the Examiner, Feb. 9.
73. ‘I hated my profession’ (the business of a shoemaker, to which he was bound prentice) ‘with a perfect hatred.’ See Mr. Gifford’s Life of Himself prefixed to his Juvenal. He seems to have liked few things else better from that day to this. He tells us in the same work (though this is hardly what I should call being ‘a good hater’) that he did not much like his father, and was not sorry when he died. This candid and amiable personage always overflowed with ‘the milk of human kindness.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘I absolutely despised my job’ (the trade of a shoemaker, which he was apprenticed to) ‘with a deep hatred.’ See Mr. Gifford’s Life of Himself prefixed to his Juvenal. It seems he hasn't found many things to enjoy since that day. He mentions in the same work (although I wouldn’t exactly call that ‘being a good hater’) that he didn’t have a good relationship with his father and didn’t feel sad when he passed away. This honest and charming person was always full of ‘the milk of human kindness.’
74. ‘Undoubtedly the translator of Juvenal.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. ‘Definitely the translator of Juvenal.’
75. ‘It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for a rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven.’ Mr. Gifford here seems to exclude his band of gentlemen-pensioners, whom he pays on earth, from bursting with obscure worth into the realms of day. It is thus that Jacobin sentiments sprout from the commonest sympathy, and are even unavoidable in a government critic, when the common claims of humanity touch his pity or his self-love.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘It’s easier for a camel to get through the eye of a needle than for a rich person to enter the kingdom of heaven.’ Mr. Gifford seems to leave out his group of well-paid gentlemen from the chance of shining with hidden value in the light of day. This is how radical ideas stem from basic empathy and become inevitable for someone critiquing the government when everyday human concerns spark their compassion or self-interest.
76. A quotation of Mr. Gifford’s from Shakespeare. Yet he reproaches me with quoting from Shakespeare.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.A quote from Mr. Gifford about Shakespeare. Still, he criticizes me for quoting Shakespeare.
77. To Apollo.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. To Apollo.
78. Humanity stands as little in this author’s way as truth when his object is to please. It was in the same spirit of unmanly adulation that he struck at Mrs. Robinson’s lameness and ‘her crutches,’ with a hand, that ought to have been withered in the attempt by the lightning of public indignation and universal scorn. Mr. Sheridan once spoke of certain politicians in his day who ‘skulked behind the throne, and made use of the sceptre as a conductor to carry off the lightning of national indignation which threatened to consume them.’ There are certain small critics and poetasters who have always been trying to do the same thing.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Humanity doesn't stand in this author's way any more than truth does when his goal is to please. He attacked Mrs. Robinson’s lameness and ‘her crutches’ in the same spirit of cowardly flattery, with a hand that should have been crippled by the shock of public outrage and widespread contempt. Mr. Sheridan once referred to certain politicians of his time who ‘hid behind the throne and used the scepter as a way to deflect the storm of national outrage aimed at them.’ There are some minor critics and amateur poets who have always been trying to do the same thing.
79. This word is not very choice English: the character is not English.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.This word isn’t typical English: the character isn’t English.
80. See the Mæviad, l. 365, etc.:—
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.See the Mæviad, l. 365, etc.:—
81. ‘To be honest as this world goes, is to be one man picked out of ten thousand.’—Shakspeare.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘To be truly honest in this world is to be one person chosen out of ten thousand.’—Shakespeare.
82. This character, (which has not been relished,) appeared originally in a small pamphlet in 1806, called Free Thoughts on Public Affairs, with a note acknowledging my obligations for the leading ideas to an article of Mr. Coleridge’s, in the Morning Post, Feb. 1800.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.This character, (which hasn’t been appreciated,) first showed up in a small pamphlet in 1806, titled Free Thoughts on Public Affairs, with a note recognizing my debts for the main ideas to an article by Mr. Coleridge in the Morning Post, Feb. 1800.
83. This extreme tenderness, it is to be observed, is felt by a person who in his Life of Ben Jonson, hopes that God will forgive Shakspeare for having written his plays!
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.This intense sensitivity is experienced by someone who, in his Life of Ben Jonson, hopes that God will forgive Shakespeare for writing his plays!
84. It was a phrase, (I have understood,) common in this gentleman’s mouth, that Robespierre, by destroying the lives of thousands, saved the lives of millions. Or, as Mr. Wordsworth has lately expressed the same thought with a different application, ‘Carnage is the daughter of humanity.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.It was a saying, (I've come to realize,) frequently spoken by this gentleman that Robespierre, by ending the lives of thousands, ultimately saved the lives of millions. Or, as Mr. Wordsworth recently put it with a different twist, ‘Carnage is the child of humanity.’
85. You have spelt it wrong (Marocchius), on purpose for what I know.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.You intentionally spelled it wrong (Marocchius), as far as I can tell.
86. Quoted from the Edinburgh Review, No. 56.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Quoted from the Edinburgh Review, No. 56.
87. Antony and Cleopatra, Act IV. Scene 14.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Antony and Cleopatra, Act IV. Scene 14.
88. For Tramezzani and William Augustus Conway (1789–1828), who were not favourites of Hazlitt, see A View of the English Stage.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.For Tramezzani and William Augustus Conway (1789–1828), who were not favorites of Hazlitt, see A View of the English Stage.
89. Paradise Lost, IV. 299.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Paradise Lost, IV. 299.
90. Don Quixote, Book III. Chap. xxv.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Don Quixote, Book 3. Chap. 25.
91. The Canterbury Tales. The Wife of Bath’s Prologue, ll. 593–599.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The Canterbury Tales. The Wife of Bath’s Prologue, ll. 593–599.
92. Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Hamlet, Act II. Scene 2.
93. Cobbett’s Weekly Political Register for November 18, 1815 (vol. xxix). Cobbett’s outburst against Milton and Shakespeare is headed ‘On the subject of potatoes.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Cobbett’s Weekly Political Register for November 18, 1815 (vol. xxix). Cobbett’s rant about Milton and Shakespeare is titled ‘On the subject of potatoes.’
94. See ante, p. 116.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. See ante, p. 116.
95. Œuvres, xxxv. p. 159.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Works, xxxv. p. 159.
96. Probably the Letter from Paris, dated September 23, 1815, relating to the disposal of the works of art acquired by Napoleon.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Probably the letter from Paris, dated September 23, 1815, about the sale of the artwork acquired by Napoleon.
97. See ante, pp. 140–151. The Catalogue appeared in The Morning Chronicle during the autumn of 1815 and the spring of 1816, beginning on September 22, 1815.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.See before, pp. 140–151. The Catalog was published in The Morning Chronicle in the fall of 1815 and the spring of 1816, starting on September 22, 1815.
98. The reference seems to be to Samuel Parr (1747–1825) and Charles Burney (1757–1817). See Hazlitt’s essay ‘On the Ignorance of the Learned’ in Table Talk.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.The reference appears to be about Samuel Parr (1747–1825) and Charles Burney (1757–1817). Check out Hazlitt’s essay ‘On the Ignorance of the Learned’ in Table Talk.
99. 2 Henry IV., Act II. Scene 4.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. 2 Henry IV., Act II. Scene 4.
100. Midsummer Night’s Dream, Act I. Scene 2.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. A Midsummer Night's Dream, Act I. Scene 2.
101. Political Register, July 30, 1802.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Political Register, July 30, 1802.
102. See The Faerie Queene, II. xii. st. 86 and 87.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.See The Faerie Queene, II. xii. st. 86 and 87.
103. A variation, quoted from Burke (A Letter to a Noble Lord), of Shakespeare’s well-known lines in The Tempest, Act IV. Scene 1.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.A variation, cited from Burke (A Letter to a Noble Lord), of Shakespeare’s famous lines in The Tempest, Act IV. Scene 1.
104. For Burke on Rousseau see especially A Letter to a Member of the National Assembly (1791).
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.For Burke on Rousseau, check out A Letter to a Member of the National Assembly (1791).
105.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.
See Burke’s Speech (1780) on Economical Reform.
See Burke’s Speech (1780) on Economic Reform.
106. Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 17).
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Reflections on the Revolution in France (Select Works, ed. Payne, ii. 17).
107. See Southey’s Carmen Triumphale.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. See Southey’s Carmen Triumphale.
108. See the Notes to Southey’s Carmen Triumphale.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.Check the Notes to Southey’s Carmen Triumphale.
109. See ante, note to p. 45.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. See ante, note on p. 45.
110. Tristram Shandy, IX. 26.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__. Tristram Shandy, IX. 26.
111. In the Life of Napoleon Hazlitt refers to this saying, which he calls ‘quackery.’
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.In the Life of Napoleon, Hazlitt refers to this saying, which he labels as ‘quackery.’
112. ‘Nothing can be conceived more hard than the heart of a thorough-bred metaphysician.’ A Letter to a Noble Lord (Works, Bohn, V. 141).
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.‘Nothing is harder to understand than the heart of a true metaphysician.’ A Letter to a Noble Lord (Works, Bohn, V. 141).
113. From the Essay on Poetry of John Sheffield, Duke of Buckingham.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__.From the Essay on Poetry by John Sheffield, Duke of Buckingham.
TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
- No attempt was made to standardize inconsistencies in spelling such as Shakespear, Shakespeare, and Shakspeare.
- Changed “dissoûte” to “dissoute” on p. xxxi.
- Changed “etoit” to “étoit” on p. 90.
- Changed “bonhommie” to “bonhomme” on p. 208.
- Silently corrected typographical errors.
- Retained anachronistic and non-standard spellings as printed.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!